Skip to main content

Full text of "History of the Greek revolution;"

See other formats


fisfe         HHS 

lt;frill,ir    W3 


BBS 


■SMJ 


■■hnh 


■ 


cm 


lis 


— 


pip 

■Mi 

Ml 


BRSi 


H      HPflU  pjjflurfflDai  H8 

BBtWottS  H 

B&9I9R9H*»kB53p 

g£     H    111 

SJ* -HBiBRSiffiRl 
SwmmS 


■i 


■H  H 

dtp 


n 


.;v»j; 


H 


■ 


. 


■BHbI   HI 


an»»,*<*T<(#tl,fi47  IBaHBBB 


sffi 


{■BMH  Sttrare 


HAH 


:*    :?.?■;;• 


m  -s 


t=l 


^ 


£ 


t=j 


HISTORY 


GREEK  REVOLUTION; 


COMPILED  FROM  OFFICIAL  DOCUMENTS 


OF  THE 


GREEK  GOVERNMENT; 


SKETCHES  OF  THE  WAR  IN  GREECE,    BY   PHILIP  JAMES   GREEN,  ESfy 

LATE  BRITISH  CONSUL  FOR  PATRAS,    IN  GREECE  ;    AND  THE 

RECENT    PUBLICATIONS    OF    MR.    BLAQ.OIERE,    MR. 

HUMPHREY,  MR.  EMERSON,  COUNT  PECCHIO, 

RT.    HON.    COL.    STANHOPE,  THE 

MODERN    TRAVELLER, 


AND   OTHER   AUTHENTIC   SOURCES 


BY  JOHN  L.  COMSTgCK,  M.  D. 

ACCOMPANIED  BY  A 

MAP  OF  GREECE,  AND  OTHER  ENGRAVINGS. 


PUBLISHED  BY  WH.  W.  KEED  &  CO, 
1829. 


District  of  Connecticut,  ss. 

Be  it  remembered,  That  on  the  twenty-third  day  of  July,  In  the  fifty-third 
(L.S.)  year  of  the  Independence  of  the  United  States  of  America,  D.  P.  Robinson 
&  Co.  of  the  said  District,  have  deposited  in  this  office  the  title  of  a  Book,  the 
right  whereof  they  claim  as  proprietors,  in  the  words  following,  to  wit :  "  History  of  the 
Greek  Revolution ;  compiled  from  official  documents  of  the  Greek  Government ;  sketches 
of  the  war  in  Greece,  by  Philip  James  Green,  Esq.  late  British  Consul  for  Patras,  in 
Greece ;  and  the  recent  publications  of  Mr.  Blaquiere,  Mr.  Humphrey,  Mr.  Emerson,  Count 
Pecchio,  Rt.  Hon.  Col.  Stanhope,  the  Modem  Traveller,  and  other  authentic  sources.  By 
John  L.  Comstock,  M.  D.  Accompanied  by  a  Map  of  Greece,  and  other  engravings." 
In  conformity  to  the  act  of  the  Congress  of  the  United  States,  entitled,  "  an  act  for  the 
encouragement  of  learning,  by  securing  the  copies  of  Maps,  Charts,  and  Books,  to  the 
authors  and  proprietors  of  such  copies  during  the  times  therein  mentioned," — And  also  to 
an  act,  entitled,  ".  an  act  supplementary  to  an  act,  entitled,  an  act  for  the  encouragement  of 
learning,  by  securing  the  copies  of  Maps,  Charts,  and  Books,  to  the  authors  and  proprietors 
of  such  conies,  during  the  times  therein  mentioned,  and  extending  the  benefits  thereof  to 
the  arts  of  designing,  engraving,  and  etching  historical  and  other  prints." 

CHARLES  A.  INGERSOLL, 

Clerk  of  the  District  of  Connecticut, 
A  true  copy  of  Record,  examined  and  sealed  by  me, 

CHARLES  A.  INGERSOLL, 

Clerk  of  the  District  of  Connecticut, 


'&}. 


t 


CONTENTS. 


Chap.  I.     Geographical  Situation  and  Population  of  Greece,    •        5 

Chap.  II.     Grecian  Islands, 20 

Chap.  III.  Account  of  Greece,  from  167  B.  C.  to  1300  A.  C.  -  25 
Chap.  IV.     From  the  foundation  of  the  Turkish  Empire  to  the 

death  of  Tamerlane, 33 

Chap.  V.     From  the  Accession  of  Mahomet  I.  in  1416,  to  the 

taking  of  Constantinople  by  the  Turks,  40 

Chap.  VI.     From  the  Establishment  of   the   Turkish  power  at 

Constantinople,  to  the  death  of  Selim  in  1520,  -  50 
Chap.  VII.  From  the  Reign  of  Solyman  I.  to  the  taking  of  Cy- 
prus, in  16.1*,      -  58 

Chap.  VIII.     Account  of  the  War  between  Russia  and  Turkey, 

in  which  the  Greeks  join  the  former,  72 

Chap.  IX.  History  of  the  Tyrant  of  Ioannina  from  757  to  1809,  86 
Chap.  X.     Continuation  of  the  History  of  Ali  Bey,  from  1809  to 

1822, 116 

Chap.  XI.     History  of  the  Hetaria,  from  i814,  to  the  arrest  and 

confinement  of  Ipsilanti,  in  1821,  ....  142 
Chap.  XII.     From  the  beginning  of  the  Revolution  in  Greece 

proper,  to  the  reduction  of  the  Lalliots,      -  152 

Chap.  XIII.     From  the  time  when   Demetrius  Ipsilanti  assumes 

the  command  in  Greece,  to  his  resignation  in  1821,  170 
Chap.  XIV.     Siege  of  Tripolizza,  and  the  taking  of  the  place  by 

the  Greeks, 179 

Chap.  XV.  Continuation  of  the  War  from  the  taking  of  Tripo- 
lizza.. to  the  sitting  of/the  Congress  at  Epidaurus,  -  193 
Chap.  XVI.     Account  of  the  Congress  of  Epidaurus,  and  of  the 

destruction  of  Scio, 210 

Chap.  XVII.  Account  of  the  Campaign  oi  1822,  -  -  -  231 
Chap.  XVIII.  Continuation  of  the  Campaign  of  1822,  -  -  248 
Chap.  XIX.     The  Assembling  of  the  Congress  at  Astros,  and 

account  of  the  Campaign  of  823.  ....  264 
Chap.  XX.     Campaign  of  1824. —  L-iss  of  lpsara,  and  end  of  the 

Civil  Discords,  - 296 

Chap.  XXI.     Campaign  of  1825. — Taking  the  Island  of  Sphac- 

teria,  ....  -        -        -        -    309 

Chap.  XXII.     Commerce   of  Greece,    and   her  Productions. — 

Fire  Ships,  Navy,  &c 352 

^Jhap.  XXIII.     Campaign  of  1826  — The  taking  of  Missolonghi. — 

Arrival  of  Lord  Cochrane  and  (i  en.  Church,  -  -  375 
Chap.  XXIV.     Lord  Cochrane  takes  command  of  the  Hellas — 

Account  of  the  Campaign  of  1827 — Battle  of  Nava- 

rino, -        -        .403 

Chap    XXV.     Conduct    of  the   European   states  in  respect   to 

Greece, 439 

CfcAr.  XXVI.    Population,  revenue  and  resources  of  Greece,    *m  449 


APPENDIX. 

Last  Days  of  Lord  Byron,  -  -       •  465 

Funeral  Oration  on  Lord  Byron,  •.-..-  483 

Philanthropic  Society,         .-....'••"'.  488 

Bfciaration  of  Independence,  .--••-  499 

Declaration  to  the  Christian  powers,  ••,„*-  501 


GREEK  REVOLUTION. 

CHAP.  I. 

Geographical  Situation  and  Population  of  Greece^ 

There  is  some  difficulty  in  prescribing  the  exact  bounda-; 
ries  of  the  country  properly  called  Greece.  Formerly  it  in- 
cluded Macedonia,  Peloponnesus,  the  Ionian  Islands,  Crete, 
and  a  part  of  what  is  now  called  Albania.  D'Anville  seems 
to  have  included  under  the  title  of  Greece  Proper,  only  the 
territory  lying  between  Macedonia  on  the  north,  the  Gulf  of 
Corinth  on  the  south,  the  Ionian  sea  on  the  west,  and  the 
Archipelago  on  the  east.  Within  these  boundaries  are  in- 
cluded Thessaly  and  Epirus  on  the  north,  together  with  all 
the  territory  now  known  under  the  names  of  Eastern  and 
Western  Hellas,  extending  south  as  far  as  the  Gulf  of  Le- 
panto,  formerly  called  the  Gulf  of  Corinth,  and  including 
Athens  and  Negropont,  the  latter  formerly  known  by  the 
name  of  Eubcea.  The  territory  south  of  the  Gulf  of  Lepan- 
to,  consisting  of  the  provinces  of  Laconia,  Messenia,  Argo- 
lis,  Achaia,  Elis,  and  Arcadia,  composed  the  Peloponnesus. 
In  modern  Maps,  and  in  the  books  of  modern  travellers,  this 
territory  is  known  under  the  general  name  of  Morea. 

The  present  divisions  of  Greece,  adopted  by  the  provi- 
sional government,  are  the  following  : 

EASTERN  HELLAS, 

WESTERN  HELLAS, 

MOREA, 

EPIRUS, 

THESSALY, 

MACEDONIA, 

CRETE,  AND  THE  ISLANDS. 
Epirus  and  Thessaly  may,  however,  be  considered  as 
coming  within  the  boundaries  of  Hellas,  the  former  being  situ- 
ated at  the  southern  extremity  of  Albania,  and  bounded  on  the 
west  by  the  sea  coast  and  the  straights  of  Corcyra,  or 
Corfu,  while  Thessaly  is  situated  between  Macedonia  and 
Eastern  Hellas,  being  bounded  on  the  east  by  the  jEgean 


6  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Sea  and  Gulf  of  Salonica.  What  proportion  of  Macedonia 
is  considered  as  coming  within  the  boundaries  of  Greece, 
we  have  no  means  of  deciding.  A  line  due  east  and  west 
from  the  northern  extremity  of  the  Thermaic  Gulf,  (Gulf  of 
Salonica)  to  the  mouth  of  the  river  Viosa,  (the  ancient  Aous) 
would  include,  according  to  the  recent  maps,  a  considerable 
portion  of  that  territory,  while  according  to  Anacharsis,  Ma- 
cedonia Proper  is  still  entirely  north  of  such  a  line. 

A  recent  authority*  includes  Greece  between  lat.  36°  15 
and  40°  N.  and  long.  20°  10'  and  24°  5'  E.  being  bounded 
on  the  north  by  Albania  Proper  and  Macedonia,  on  the  east 
by  the  iEgean  Sea ;  on  the  west  by  the  Ionian  Isles  ;  and 
on  the  south  by  the  Mediterranean.  These  boundaries  'ex- 
clude the  whole  of  Crete,  or  Candia,  as  well  as  Scio,  Ipsara, 
and  many  other  Islands  where  the  language  of  Greece  is 
spoken,  and  which  have  long  been,  and  still  are,  considered 
as  Grecian  Islands.  Crete,  according  to  the  authority  al- 
ready cited,  is  embraced  in  the  jurisdiction  of  the  provincial 
government  of  Greece.  The  line  of  latitude  ought  there- 
fore to  be  extended  to  35°  south,  instead  of  36°  15',  so  as 
to  include  that  Island.  The  western  boundary  being  placed 
at  20°  of  longitude,  includes  a  part  of  Corfu,  and  all  the 
other  Ionian  Isles,  which  at  present  are  not  Grecian  Islands, 
and  excludes  a  portion  of  Epirus  which  properly  belongs 
to  Greece,  while  the  eastern  line  being  drawn  at  24°  5'  of  lon- 
gitude, includes  a  considerable  population  not  recognized 
by  the  government  of  Greece,  and  excludes  many  Islands 
over  which  the  government  exercise  jurisdiction.  From  all 
these  considerations,  the  difficulty  of  fixing  any  precise  boun- 
daries to  those  territories  and  Islands  belonging  to  Greece 
will  be  obvious,  and  hence  also  the  difficulty  of  estimating 
with  any  degree  of  certainty  her  population. 

If  we  estimate  the  population  of  Greece  before  the  com- 
mencement of  the  revolution,  and  include  within  her  limits 
Crete  on  the  south,  Thessaly  and  Epirus  in  the  north,  her 
Eastern  boundary  being  the  Ionian  Sea,  and  her  Western, 
the  jEgean  Sea,  with  the  Islands  over  which  the  government 
claim  jurisdiction,  we  shall  find  the  number  of  inhabitants  to 
be  less  than  two  millions. 

*  Modern  Traveller. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  7 

M.  Beaujour  concludes  the  total  population  of  Greece  to 
be  1,920,000,  including  Macedonia.  The  population  of  Ma- 
cedonia he'  estimates  at  700,000.  This  leaves  1,220,000, 
which  he  distributes  as  follows  : 

EPIRUS, 400,000 

THESSALY, 300,000 

.ETOLIA,  PHOCIS,  AND  BCEOTIA,    200,000 

ATTICA, 20,000 

MOREA, 300,000 


1,220,000 

This  estimate  is  evidently  defective,  as  it  includes  none  of 
the  islands.  The  estimate  for  the  Morea  is  also  probably 
much  too  low.  Mr.  Waddington  estimates  the  population 
of  the  islands  at  259,000.  The  Eastern  and  Western  Hel- 
las he  assigns  150,000  ;  and  to  the  Morea  500,000.  East- 
ern and  Western  Hellas  include  iEtolia,  Phocis,  and  Bceotia, 
which  M.  Beaujour  estimates  at  200,000.  This  is  50,000 
more  than  the  estimate  of  Mr.  Waddington.  In  respect  to 
the  population  of  the  Isles,  Crete  alone  formerly  contained 
nearly  300,000  inhabitants,  of  which  not  quite  one  half  were 
Greeks.  In  this  estimate  we  intend  to  include  the  actual 
population  of  the  territories  named,  whether  Greeks,  Turks, 
Albanians,  or  Jews. 

Mr.  Hobhouse  estimates  that  the  population  of  Upper  Al- 
bania may  be  one  million  two  hundred  thousand,  of  all  ages 
and  sexes.*  He  says,  however,  that  Upper  Albania  is  more 
populous  than  the  country  to  the  south  of  it  Lower  Alba- 
nia, which  we  include  as  belonging  to  Greece,  under  the 
name  Epirus,  cannot  therefore  be  estimated  so  high. 

"  Of  the  exact  population  of  Greece,"  says  Mr.  Emer- 
son,! "  no  accurate  statement  has  ever,  I  believe,  been  made. 
It  has  been  estimated  at  different  times,  from  2,000,000  to 
3,000,000,  but  whether  this  be  correct,  or  whether  it  does 
not  include  the  supposed  Greek  population  in  the  Crimea, 
Palestine,  Russia,  and  other  parts  of  Europe,  I  cannot  tell." 

The  reader  will  remark  that  the  diversity  of  opinions  on 
the  population  of  Greece,  by  different  writers,  is  sufficient  to 
show  the  difficulty  of  coming  near  the  truth  on  this  sub- 
ject.    We  will  venture,  however,  to  throw  together  the  fol- 

*  Hobhouse's  Tour,  vol.  1  p.  154. 
f  Emerson's  Journal,  p.  216* 


8 


HISTORY  OF  THE 


lowing  estimates,  as  coming  from  as  authentic  sources,  we 
believe,  as  exist  on  this  subject : 

EASTERN  &  WESTERN  HELLAS,  .  200,000 

MOREA, 450,000 

CRETE  &  THE  ISLANDS,         .        .  350,000 

EPIRUS, 400,000 

THESSALY,  300,000 


1,700,000 

Of  this  population,  perhaps  one  third  or  a  little  more  are 
Greeks,  the  other  two  thirds  being  Turks,  Albanians,  Franks, 
and  Jews.  The  following  estimate  is  given  on  the  authority 
of  P.  J.  Green,  Esq.  for  many  years  Consul  at  Patras. 

STATISTICAL  ACCOUNT   OF    THE    PELOPONNESUS, 
IN  1823, 

Showing  the  number  of  its  Districts,  Villages,  Population,  and  amount 
of  Tithes  farmed  to  individuals  by  the  Government,  compiled  from 
the  most  authentic  information. 


Districts. 


Mistra      ... 
Monembasia 
San  Pietro     .     . 
Argos       ... 
Napoli  di  Romania 
Kato  Achaia 
Corinth     . 
Kalavrita 
Vostizza   . 
Patras 
Gastouni  . 
Pyrgos      . 
Fanari 
Caritena  . 
Tripolizza 
Londari    . 
CuZuc  Maina 


Villages  and  Ham- 
lets, including  the 
Capital  of  each  Dis- 
trict in  possession  of 
the  Greeks. 


180 
56 
35 
38 
31 
8 

167 

152 
34 
88 

122 
10 
36 

145 

64 

28 

8 


Greek 
Population. 


48,000 

11,000 

14,000 

16,000 

17,000 

4,000 

31,000 

33,000 

6,000 

14,000 

32,000 

7,000 

7,500 

32,000 

30,000 

8,000 

2,600 


Tithes    in     Turkish 
Piastres. 


300,000 

70,000 

70,000 

40,000 

90,000 

50,000 

300,000 

200,000 

80,000 

130,000 

500,000 

75,000 

72,000 

190,000 

100,000 

70,000 

35,000 


GREEK  REVOLUTION. 


Messema, 
Calamata 
Andrussa 
Nisi   .     . 
Coron     . 
Modon   . 
Navarin  . 

42 
10 
25 
3 
56 
38 
25 
105 
96 

1602 

8,000 
7,500 
7,000 
3,100 
4,500 
4,300 
6,000 
19,000 
35,000 

70,000 
70,000 
36,000 
80,000 
20,000 
80,000 

Maina     . 

2,764,300 

Fortresses  in  possession  of  the 
Turks. 

Patras     .... 
Morea  Castle    .     . 
Modon    .... 
Coron     .     .     .     . 

407,000 

Turkish 
Population. 

9,000 
1,200 
4,500 
1,800 

£61,418  ster. 

16,500 

The  different  names  by  which  the  places  or  divisions  in 
Greece  have  been  known,  are  often  perplexing  to  the  read- 
er of  her  modern  history.  This  is  in  part  owing  to  the 
change  of  masters  to  which  Greece  has  been  subjected,  and 
|n  part  to  the  arbitrary  selection  of  names  by  the  different 
travellers  who  have  visited  that  country.  The  ancient  Greek 
names  of  places  appear  in  many  instances  to  be  entirely  un- 
known to  the  present  inhabitants,  or  if  known,  as  likely  to 
be  applied  to  a  different  place  as  to  that  to  which  it  original- 
ly belonged.  The  more  modern  names  are  partly  Venetian 
and  partly  Turkish.  The  different  divisions  of  the  country 
have  also,  in  many  instances,  made  it  difficult  to  fix  bounda- 
ries to  any  degree  of  certainty,  the  more  modern  division 
sometimes  including  some  unknown  parts  of  the  ancient 
ones.  Under  the  Turkish  Government,  the  whole  of  Greece 
was  divided  into  four  great  pachaliks,  the  names  of  which 
were  derived  from  the  several  seats  of  government.  These 
were  Tripolizza,  Egripo,  (the  present  Negropont,)  Yanina, 
(Ioannina,)  and  Salonica.     The  pachalik  of  Tripolizza  com- 


10 


HISTORY  OF  THE 


prised  all  the  Morea  ;  that  of  Egripo,  the  whole  of  Negro* 
pont,  and  a  part  of  Phocis,  and  the  whole  of  Boeotia ;  that 
of  Yanina  included  Epirus ;  and  that  of  Salonica,  the  south- 
ern division  of  Macedonia.*  The  following  tabular  view 
will  show  the  ancient  and  modern  corresponding  subdivi- 
sions. We  take  it  from  the  Modern  Traveller,  Part  XXVII. 
Part  1.  of  Greece,  p.  26 


Ancient  Divisions. 

Achaia,  N. 
Argolis,  N.  E. 
Arcadia,  Cent. 

Laconia,  S.  E. 

Messina,  S.  W. 
Elis,  N.  W. 


The  Morea,  or  Peloponnesus. 

Venetian.  Turkish.  Chief  Places. 

Chiarenza.    ~)  f  Corinth.  Patras. 

Pacha-  1  Napoli  di  Romania. 

lik     of  J  Tripolizza.  Arcadia. 
{  Zaccunia,    J>Tripo-  •{  Minstra. 


Sacania. 

Zaccunia, 
or  Maina. 


Belvedere. 


lizza. 


Navarino.  Modon. 
Kalamata. 
^Pyrgos. 


Eastern  Hellas. 


Attica. 

Modern. 

Bceotia. 

Euboea. 

Pachalik 

Locris. 

>       of 

(Opuntii) 

>  Livadia. 

Egripo.  < 

Phocis. 

Doris. 

i 

Locris. 

>  Pachalik  of 

(Ozola.)  - 

S       n 

oannina.       \ 

'Athens.  Marathon. 
Livadia.  Thebes. 
Egripo. 
Therm  opylee.  Talanta. 

Delphi,  Suru 

Gavria. 

Salona. 


Western  Hellas. 

)  Part  of  Pa-  (  Missolonghi.  Le 


GStolia.  >    Karl-ili.     >    chalik  of  \  panto.    Vonitza. 

Acarnania.f      •  i    T  k  l       a  .. 

1       '  )    Ioannma.  1         Jictium. 


Epirus. — Jllbania.% 


Thesprotia.  Tzamouria. 

Molossia.  Ioannina.      >    Ioannina. 

Chaonia.  Liapuria.     ) 

Thessaly.  Sanijak  of  Triccala. 

Macedonia.  Pachalik  of  Salonica. 


C  Arta.  Parga. 

<  Ioannina,.  Dodona. 

(  Chimara.  Ericho. 

Triccala.  Larissa. 

Salonica. 


*  See  Thornton's  Turke 
f  Acarnania  belc 
in  Western  Hellas. 


rkey 
toEt 


vol.  11.  p.  10. 
pirus,  in  ancient  geography,  but  is  included 


\  Albania  comprises  part  of  Macedonia,  Illyria,  Chaonia,  and  Epii 
Delvinachi  is  the  frontier  village  of  Epirus  and  Albania  Proper. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  11 

Greece  is  bounded  on  all  sides  by  the  sea,  except  on  the 
north,  where  it  is  bounded  by  Macedonia  and  Upper  Albania. 
Thessaly  and  Epirus  are  its  most  northern  provinces.  The 
latter  is  surrounded  on  all  sides  by  lofty  mountains.  On  the 
north  is  the  celebrated  Olympus;  (Eta  is  on  the  south; 
Ossa  on  the  east,  and  Pindus  on  the  west.  These  moun- 
tains enclose  a  pleasant  fertile  valley.  The  Pindus  extends 
to  the  north  and  south  (under  different  names)  through  the 
whole  extent  of  ancient  Greece,  terminating  south,  at  the 
Corinthian  Gulf,  (Gulf  of  Lepanto.)  It  thus  divides  Epirus 
from  Thessaly,  and  Etolia  from  Phocis  and  Bceotia ;  or, 
separates  what  are  now  termed  Eastern,  from  Western  Hel- 
las. The  branches  of  this  mountain  at  about  latitude  39° 
separate,  and  run  east  and  west  quite  across  the  continent. 
The  branch  running  east,  (the  (Eta)  terminates  at  theMalaic 
Gulf,  forming  the  celebrated  pass  of  Thermopylae.  That 
running  west,  called  the  Makrinoro,  divides  Acarnania  on 
the  south,  from  Epirus  on  the  north,  and  terminates  at  the 
eastern  extremity  of  the  Gulf  of  Arta,  (the  ancient  Ambra- 
eia.)  Ancient  Greece  is  thus  divided  into  four  unequal 
quarters,  by  high  and  often  inaccessible  mountains. 

The  Boeotian  plains  terminate  to  the  north-west  in  the 
valley  of  Phocis  and  Doris,  watered  by  the  Cephissus  and 
its  branches,  which  have  their  origin  in  mount  (Eta.  This 
valley  separates  the  mountains  that  rise  from  the  Gulf  of 
Corinth,  and  which  anciently  bore  the  names  of  Helicon, 
Corax,  Parnassus,  &c.  from  the  mountains  of  Locris,  the 
ancient  Callidromus  and  Cnemis,  which  are  a  prolongation 
of  Mount  (Eta,  and  the  northern  face  of  which  looks  down 
on  the  valley  of  the  Spercheius  and  the  Malaic  Gulf.  These 
two  ranges  are  united  in  the  region  of  the  ancient  Doris : 
and  from  their  junction,  the  central  chain  of  Pindus  con- 
tinues in  a  N.  or  N.  N.  E.  direction,  gradually  inclining  to- 
wards the  coast  of  the  Adriatic,  and  giving  off  collateral 
branches  which  intersect  Albania.  For  about  a  hundred 
miles,  this  elevated  range  is  nearly  equi-distant  from  the 
eastern  and  western  coasts. 

In  Western  Greece,  a  series  of  plains  and  valleys  lie  be- 
tween Mount  Pindus  and  the  irregular  range  which  borders 
the  entire  extent  of  the  western  and  southern  coast.  At 
some  distance  from  the  eastern  extremity  of  the  Gulf  of  Ar- 
ta, (the  ancient  Ambracia,)  which  divides  Epirus  from  Acar- 
nania, rises  a  steep,  woody  mountain,  now  called  Makrinoro 


12  HISTORY  OF  THE 

(or  Makronoros,  the  long  Mountain,)  which  constitutes  a 
pass  of  great  strength  and  importance,  corresponding  to  that 
of  Thermopylae  at  the  eastern  end  of  the  (Etean  range,  and 
completing  the  barrier  between  Eastern  and  Western  Greece. 
To  the  north  of  this  ridge  rises  the  vast  and  apparently  insu- 
lated mass  called  Tzumerka  ;*  and  still  loftier  mountains, 
rising  to  the  N.  E.  and  N.  of  this,  divide  the  valley  of  the 
Aracthus  or  river  of  Arta,  from  that  of  the  Aspropotamo  (the 
ancient  Achelous.)  These  mountains  are  commonly  known 
under  the  name  of  Agrafa :  as  seen  from  the  elevated  plain 
of  Ioannina,  they  appear  to  fill  up,  in  the  distance,  the  inter- 
val between  the  Tzumerka  and  the  narrow  and  lofty  ridge 
called  Metzoukel,  which  separates  the  plain  of  Ioannina  from 
the  deep  valley  of  the  Aracthus.  Immediately  beyond  the 
river  commences  the  ascent  of  a  lofty  group,  the  successive 
ridges  of  which  conduct  the  eye  to  summits,  supposed  to  be 
not  less  than  7000  feet  above  the  level  of  the  sea.  These 
mountains,  which  now  bear  the  name  of  the  Greater  Metzo- 
vo,  are  apparently  the  very  nucleus  of  the  chain  of  Pindus. 
The  town  of  Metzovo  is  situated  near  one  of  the  sources  of 
the  river  Arta,  in  the  bosom  of  these  Alpine  regions,  and 
forms  one  of  the  most  interesting  geographical  points  in  the 
country.  From  this  part  of  the  chain  of  Pindus,  four  con- 
siderable rivers  take  their  rise,  each  pursuing  its  course  to 
the  sea  in  a  different  direction.  These  are,  the  Aracthus, 
which  flows  in  a  south-westerly  direction  into  the  Gulf  of 
Arta ;  the  Achelous,  which  rises  at  no  great  distance,  and 
takes  a  southerly  course  through  a  mountainous  district,  en- 
tering the  Ionian  Sea  near  Missolonghi ;  the  Peneus  (or  Sa- 
lympria,)  which,  rising  on  the  eastern  side  of  that  part  of 
Pindus  immediately  above  Metzovo,  descends  into  the  great 
plains  of  Thessaly,  and  pursues  its  course  to  the  Archipela- 
go through  the  precipitous  defiles  of  Tempe;  and  lastly,  the 
Yiosa  (Vioussa,)  or  Aous,  which  has  its  origin  in  the  moun- 
tains to  the  north  of  Metzovo,  and  flowing  in  a  N.  E.  direc- 
tion to  Tepeleni,  enters  the  Adriatic  near  the  site  of  the  an- 
cient Appolonia. 

One  of  the  principal  routes  over  Pindus,  in  proceeding 
from  the  western  coast,  lies  through  the  canton  of  Zagora, 
in  which  one  of  the  branches  of  the  river  Arta  has  its 
source,  forming  its  junction  with  the  Metzovo  branch  in  the 

*  Supposed  by  Dr.  Holland  to  be  the  ancient  Tomarus. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  13 

deep  hollow  between  Metzoukel  and  Pindus.  The  Zagora 
mountains  are  distinguished  from  most  other  parts  of  the  Pin- 
dus  chain  by  their  summits  spreading  out  into  wide  and  open 
plains,  instead  of  forming  narrow  ridges.  Beyond  Metzovo, 
in  the  same  direction,  is  the  ridge  of  Mavronoros,  or  the 
Black  Mountain  ;  and  still  further  northward  are  the  moun- 
tains of  Tzebel  and  Samarina,  which  are  believed  to  be 
among  the  most  elevated  points  in  Albania.  The  chain  con- 
tinues to  run  northwards,  dividing  Illyricum  from  Macedo- 
nia till  it  unites  with  the  mountains  that  enclose  the  bason  of 
the  Danube. 

The  upper  ridge  of  Pindus,  near  Metzovo,  appears  to  be 
composed  entirely  of  serpentine.  The  exposed  surface  of 
the  rock  is  every  where  covered  with  a  yellowish  green  stea- 
tite, generally  disposed  in  a  sort  of  scales  upon  the  serpen- 
tine, which  is  probably  superposed  upon  primitive  slate. — 
The  ridge  intervening  between  the  plains  of  Ioannina  and 
the  valley  of  the  Aracthus,  exhibits  a  series  of  layers  of  cal- 
careous slate,  apparently  of  recent  formation,  interrupted  at 
intervals  by  rocks  of  limestone,  which  come  down  in  abrupt 
cliffs  to  the  channel  of  the  stream.  This  limestone  proba- 
bly forms  the  basis  of  all  the  country  westward  of  the  river 
of  Arta,  and  is  the  material  also  of  the  lower  part  of  the  Pin- 
dus chain  on  the  eastern  side.  The  bed  of  the  river,  howe- 
ver, and  the  channels  of  the  streams  which  join  it  from  the 
east,  contain  fragments  of  syenite,  porphyry,  and  serpentine, 
and  sometimes  mica-slate,  jasper,  and  conglomerate  rock, 
indicating  that  the  more  central  parts  of  Pindus  are  compos- 
ed in  part  of  primitive  formations.  In  the  valley  of  the  Sa- 
lympria,  there  is  a  most  remarkable  group  of  insulated  rocks 
composed  entirely  of  a  conglomerate,  consisting  of  granite, 

t  gneiss,  mica-slate,  chlorite-slate,  syenite,  greinstone,  and 
quartz  pebbles.     The  origin  of  this  formation,  which  is  of  a 

:  very  limited  extent,  presents  an  interesting  problem  to  the 

|  geologist.  Limestone,  however,  is  the  prevailing  rock,  for 
the  most  part  cavernous,  and  with  abrupt  and  precipitous  fa- 
ces. The  whole  chain  of  (Eta,  in  particular,  appears  to  be- 
long to  the  great  calcareous  formation  of  Greece.  The 
general  appearance  of  the  limestone  strikingly  corresponds 

|  to  that  in  the  north  of  Ireland  ;  its  colour,  in  general,  is 
nearly  milk  white:  it  contains  a  great  quantity  of  flint,  either 

I  in  layers  or  in  nodules  ;  and  large  deposits  of  gypsum  have 


14  HISTORY  OF  THE 

taken  place  upon  it,  particularly  near  the  coasts  of  the  Adri- 
atic and  Ionian  seas.  The  Scironian  rocks  on  the  southern 
coast  of  the  Isthmus  consist  of  breccia,  lying  as  in  Attica, 
and  over  all  the  northern  part  of  the  Morea,  on  a  stratum  of 
limestone.  In  Thessaly,  the  limestone  gives  way  to  the  ser- 
pentine breccia  called  verde  antico  ;  and  that  curious  aggre- 
gate of  dark  diallage  and  white  feldspar,  called  by  Italian 
lapidaries  bianco  e  nero  antico,  is  found  in  Macedonia.  Other 
varieties  of  porphyry  occur  also  in  Thrace,  particularly 
one  of  hornblende,  resembling  lava,  in  the  great  plain  of 
Chouagilarkir,  near  the  foot  of  the  Karowlan  mountains,  a 
branch  of  the  ancient  Rhodope.  But  in  Hellas  Proper,  with 
the  exception  above  mentioned,  to  which  may  be  added  the 
breccia  formation  around  Mycenae,  and  the  substratum  of 
the  rock  of  the  Acropolis  at  Athens,  the  mountains  so  uni- 
formly consist  of  limestone,  that  scarcely  any  other  substance 
can  be  met  with.* 

The  most  fertile  districts  of  Greece  are  Macedonia,  Thes- 
saly, and  the  eastern  parts  of  Phocis  and  Boeotia.f  The  agri- 
cultural produce  of  Attica,  owing  to  the  lightness  of  the 
soil,  is  confined  to  barley  and  ojives.  The  Morea  is  said  to 
be  susceptible  of  every  species  of  cultivation.^     The  moun- 

*  These  geological  observations  are  taken  chiefly  from  Dr.  Hol- 
land's Travels  in  the  Ionian  Isles,  &c.  and  Doctor  Clark's  Travels, 
part  ii. 

f  "  Marathon,  forgotten  in  every  other  respect,  is  now  only  re- 
garded, as  it  was  before  its  glory,  for  being  the  granary  of  the  barren 
Attica Pindus  and  (Eta,  with  their  various  branches,  are  im- 
practicable to  the  Albanian  husbandman  ;  though  in  the  little  winding 
valleys  that  intersect  them,  we  may  be  secure  of  always  finding  a  village 
with  its  surrounding  fields  of  maize  or  cotton." — Douglas,  p.  51. 

\  The  corn  of  the  Morea  has  long  been  highly  prized  in  the  adjoining 
islands,  and  its  culture  is  proportionably  extensive.  Its  barley,  howe- 
ver, is  not  so  much  esteemed,  and  its  Indian  corn  has  never  been  ex- 
ported. The  peninsula  is  by  no  means  a  country  for  wine,  the  greater 
portion  of  its  consumption  being  imported  from  the  Archipelago.  Two 
species,  however,  are  admired  by  the  Greeks  ;  the  wine  ofMistra,  and 
that  of  St.  George  in  Corinth.  Both  are  only  of  a  light  body,  and  ac- 
quire a  disagreeable  flavour  from  the  turpentine  with  which  they  are 
purified.  The  grapes  are  neither  large  nor  of  fine  flavour  ;  the  best  are 
produced  at  Gastouni.  One  species,  however,  the  raisin  de  Corinthe, 
(Zante  currant,)  has  been  extensively  cultivated  of  late  along  the  shores 
of  the  Gulfs  of  Lepanto  and  Salamis,  where  it  has  taken  the  place  of  to- 
bacco plantations.  Other  fruits  are  likewise  produced  in  abundance  ; — 
lemons,  not  large  nor  peculiarly  fine  ;  oranges,  the  best  are  found  at  Ca- 
famata,  peaches,  pomegranates,  apricots,  almonds,  and  a  variety  of 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  U 

tainous  region  of  Epirus  is  the  most  barren.  Thessaly  yields 
wool  and  silk ;  and  the  soil  of  Macedonia  is  particularly  fa- 
vourable to  tobacco  :  that  of  Yenige,  on  account  of  its  bal- 
samic odour,  is  preferred  even  to  that  of  Latakia  in  Syria. 
Cotton  also  is  extensively  cultivated.  But  the  principal 
wealth  of  Macedonia  anciently  consisted  of  its  mines.  The 
most  celebrated  were  those  of  the  mountain  of  Pangaeus,  from 
which  Philip  annually  derived  a  thousand  talents  of  gold ; 
and  by  means  of  the  treasure  thence  extracted,  he  became 
the  master  of  Greece.  In  the  plain  of  Arta,  one  of  the  most 
fertile  districts  of  Epirus,  maize,  wheat,  rice,  and  tobacco, 
are  cultivated ;  the  vineyards  are  numerous,  and  the  orange 
tree  and  fig-tree  are  made  objects  of  peculiar  attention. 
The  oak,  the  plane,  and  the  chesnut,  are  the  chief  ornaments 
of  the  vallies;  and  the  vast  precipices  of  the  Pindus  chain 
are  clothed  with  forests  of  pines.  The  forests  of  the  Morea 
are  in  some  districts  very  extensive,  especially  in  Elis  and  on 
the  western  coasts,  which  have  long  furnished  oak  and  pine 
for  the  construction  of  the  Hydriot  vessels,  and  large  quan- 
tities of  vallonia  for  exportation  to  Zante  and  Malta. 

The  Morea,  notwithstanding  its  susceptibility  of  cultivation, 
and  its  growth  of  forest  trees,  is  still  an  exceedingly  rough 
and  mountainous  country.  Mr.  Humphreys,  who  visited  it 
in  1825,  states,  that  with  the  exception  of  a  few  miles  along 
the  coast,  it  consists  of  hills  piled  one  above  the  other ;  and 
that  in  passing  through  Elis,  Arcadia,  and  Argolis,  he  did  not 

shell  fruit.  The  figs,  especially  those  of  Maina,  are  remarkable  for 
their  sweetness.  The  markets  of  Napoli  di  Romania  are  plentifully 
supplied  with  cucumbers,  love-apples,  spinach,  asparagus,  and  other 
vegetables.  Olives  abound  in  every  district,  but  especially  in  Maina 
and  Argolis.  Manna  and  indigo  were  formerly  cultivated,  but  are  now 
neglected,  as  well  as  the  gathering  of  galls,  which  used  to  be  found  in 
every  forest.  Cotton  was  never  grown  in  large  quantities,  but  its 
quality  was  remarkably  white  and  delicate.  The  culture  of  flax  was 
but  little  known.  The  immense  flocks  of  Argolis,  Messenia,  and  the 
valleys  of  Arcadia,  furnish  a  proportionate  quantity  of  wool,  the  expor- 
tation of  which  to  the  Ionian  Islands,  together  with  the  sheep  them- 
selves, and  a  little  wine,  constitutes  the  only  remnant  of  the  once  ex- 
tensive trade  of  Pyrgos."  Large  quantities  of  wax  are  still  exported 
from  Napoli  to  Syra.  The  barren  and  mountainous  districts  abound 
with  beds  of  thyme,  fennel,  and  mint ;  but  the  honey  of  the  Morea  is 
decidedly  inferior  to  that  of  Attica,  and  must  be  used  with  caution  on 
account  of  its  medicinal  properties. — Emerson's  Journalin  "  Picture  of 
Greece  in  1825,"  p.  314—318. 


16  HISTORY  OF  THE 

meet  with  a  level  valley  of  more  than  a  mile  in  circumference, 
with  a  single  exception  of  the  little  mountain  plain  in  which 
Tripolizza  is  situated. 

The  zoology  of  Greece,  as  far  as  known,  does  not  appear 
to  furnish  many  distinct  species.  The  lynx,  the  wild  cat, 
the  wild  boar,  the  wild  goat,  the  stag,  the  roe-buck,  the  badg- 
er, and  the  squirrel,  inhabit  the  steeper  rocks  of  Parnassus, 
and  the  thick  pine  forests  above  Callidia.  The  bear  is  also 
sometimes  found  here.  The  rugged  mountains  about  Mara- 
thon are  frequented  by  wolves,  foxes,  and  jackals  ;  weasels 
are  sometimes  taken  in  the  villages  and  out-houses  ;  hares* 
are  too  numerous  to  be  particularised.  The  mole  burrows 
in  the  rich  ground  of  Livadia,  (Bceotia)  and  the  hedge-hog  is 
found  in  the  environs  of  Athens.  The  otter  inhabits  the 
rivers  and  marshes  of  Bceotia,  and  the  phoca  and  the  por- 
poise are  seen  in  the  Corinthtian  Gulf,  and  off  the  coast  of 
Attica.  The  small  species  of  bat  flutters  about  the  ruins  of 
Athens,  and  a  larger  species  inhabit  the  caverns  of  the  island 
ofDidascalo. 

The  large  vulture  frequents  the  cliffs  of  Delphi,  and  the 
woods  and  precipices  of  Parnassus.  There  are  several  spe- 
cies of  the  falcon  tribe.  Dr.  Sibthorp  particularises  what  he 
supposed  to  be  the  falco  chrysaetos  (called  by  the  guide  aetos,) 
the  falco  ieraz,  and  the  falco  kirkenasi.  The  latter,  "  half 
domestic,  arrives  early  in  the  Spring  with  the  storks  in  im- 
mense numbers,  joint  inhabitant  with  them  of  the  houses  and 
temples  of  the  Athenians,  and  retires  with  these  birds  at  the 
end  of  August."  He  noticed  also  a  large  grey  hawk,  of  the 
buzzard  kind,  on  the  plain  of  Marathon ;  another  species, 
brown,  with  a  white  band  on  the  wings,  near  Livadia  :  and  a 
small  dark  hawk  near  Cape  Sunium.  The  little  owl  (strix 
passerina,)  is  the  most  common  species  of  Miverva's  bird  in 
Greece ;  it  abounds  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Athens.  The 
horned  owl  is  sometimes,  but  rarely,  seen.  The  ash-colour- 
ed, the  red-headed,  and  the  small  grey  butcher-bird,  frequent 
the  olive-grounds.  Of  the  crow  tribe,  the  raven,  the  hood- 
ed-crow,  the  jackdaw,  the  magpie,  the  jay,  the  ulcedo  ispida, 
and  the  Cornish  chough,  are  found  here.  The  latter  gene- 
rally confines  itself  to  the  mountainous  parts,  inhabiting  the 

*  Taooshan,  hare,  is  a  nick-name  given  by  the  Turks  of  the  Greek 
islanders. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  17 

oroken  cliffs  and  caverns  of  Parnassus,  but  sometimes  de- 
scends into  the  plains.  The  hooded  crow,  which  retires  from 
England  during  the  summer,  is  a  constant  inhabitant  of  At- 
tica. The  roller  frequents  the  gardens  and  olive-grounds. 
The  cuckoo  is  heard  early  in  the  spring.  The  merops,  at- 
tracted by  the  bees  of  Hymettus,  appears  at  the  latter  end  of 
summer.  The  hoopoe  is  also  here  a  bird  of  passage.  The 
sitta  was  seen  on  the  rocks  near  Delphi.  Wild  pigeons 
abound  in  the  rocks ;  and  the  turtle  and  wood-pigeon  are 
found  in  the  woods  and  thickets.  The  red-legged  partridge 
abounds  every  where.  Among  the  larks,  the  crested  lark  is 
the  most  frequent ;  but  there  are  some  of  the  other  species. 
"  Black-birds  frequent  the  olive-grounds  of  Pendeli ;  the 
solitary  sparrow  inhabits  the  cliffs  of  Delphi ;  and  the  song- 
thrush  is  heard  in  the  pine  woods  of  Parnassus.  Above 
these,  where  the  heights  are  covered  with  snow,  is  seen  the 
cmbcriza  nivalis,  inhabitant  alike  of  the  frozen  Spitzbergen 
and  the  Grecian  Alps.  The  bunting,  the  yellow-hammer, 
and  a  species  of  emberiza  nearly  related  to  it,  haunt  the  low 
bushes  in  the  neighbourhood  of  corn-fields."  The  goldfinch 
and  the  linnet  rank  also  among  the  Attic  choristers;  and  the 
fringilla  flaveola  is  not  unfrequent  about  Athens.  Of  the 
slender-billed  birds,  the  wheatear  is  the  most  general  species 
throughout  Greece,  inhabiting  alike  the  highest  mountains 
and  the  lowest  plains.  The  white  water-wagtail  haunts  the 
banks  of  rivulets,  and  the  red-start  is  found  on  the  eastern 
coast.  The  king-fisher  is  also  seen  here.  Various  species 
of  the  duck  tribe  visit  the  salt  lakes  and  the  shores  of  Attica 
during  the  winter,  retiring  in  summer  to  more  unfrequented 
fresh-water  lakes  and  deep  morasses.  Woodcocks,  snipes, 
and  bustards,  in  considerable  numbers,  visit  the  neighbour- 
hood of  Athens  during  winter.  The  curlew  and  the  red- 
shank, the  purple  and  the  grey  heron,  the  long-legged,  the 
gray,  and  the  sand  plover,  also  frequent  the  marshes  of 
Bceotia  and  the  eastern  coast.  The  privileged  stork  gene- 
rally arrives  at  Athens  some  time  in  March,  and  leaves  it 
when  the  young  are  able  to  support  a  long  flight,  about  the 
middle  of  August.  The  quail  is  another  annual  visiter.  All 
the  European  species  of  the  swallow  tribe  are  found  here, 
except  the  pratincola;  also,  various  species  of  motacilla, 
confounded  under  the  general  name  of  bcccqfica.  The  sand- 
martin  burrows  in  the  cliffs  of  Delphi,  and  the  goat-sucker 
trill  retains  its  ancient  name,  and  the  stigma  attached  to  it. 

3 


18  HISTORY  OF  THE 

The  storm-finch,  the  sea-gull,  and  the  sea-swallow,  are  seen 
on  the  coast  of  the  iEgean  Sea.* 

"  One  of  the  most  agreeably  diversified  countries  of  the 
globe,"  says  M.  Beaujour,  who  was  long  resident  in  it,  "  is 
Greece :  it  is  the  epitome  of  all  climates.  The  plants  which 
grow  within  the  tropics,  flourish  in  its  plains  and  on  its  hills, 
and  those  of  the  most  northern  regions  thrive  on  the  moun- 
tains. Olympus,  Pindus,  Parnassus,  the  craggy  mountains 
of  Arcadia,  preserve  on  their  sides  and  summits  a  perpetual 
coolness,  while  the  valleys  lying  at  their  feet  enjoy  a  peren- 
nial spring.  The  lands  unsusceptible  of  culture  are  still  not 
destitute  of  vegetation,  but  produce  spontaneously  thyme, 
marjoram,  and  all  the  aromatic  plants.  Such  a  country 
would  seem  to  be  singularly  adapted  to  yield  rich  pasture  : 
accordingly,  there  are  numerous  herds.  For  six  months  oi 
the  year,  indeed,  it  supports  all  those  of  the  neighbouring 
regions.  When  the  severity  of  the  winter  drives  the  Alba- 
nian shepherds  from  their  native  mountains,  they  descend  to 
seek,  in  the  fine  climate  of  Greece,  pastures  more  substan- 
tial and  luxuriant.  They  enjoy  the  right  of  common  in  all 
the  lands  which  are  not  under  cultivation ;  and  notwith- 
standing the  tyranny  of  the  Beys,  who  levy  contributions 
upon  them  without  mercy,  their  winterings  in  general  cost 
them  but  little."f 

Nothing,  it  is  said,  can  surpass  the  delicious  temperature 
of  the  islands  in  autumn,  and  of  the  winter  at  Athens,  where 
the  thermometer  rarely  descends  below  the  freezing  point. 
The  longevity  of  the  natives  bears  testimony  to  the  salubrity 
of  the  air  of  Attica,  which  was  always  esteemed  for  its  purity, 
and  is  still  the  best  in  Greece.  Its  extreme  dryness  has 
greatly  contributed  to  the  admirable  preservation  of  the 
Athenian  edifices.  The  corn  in  Attica  is  ripe  about  twenty- 
five  days  sooner  than  in  the  Morea  and  in  Crete,  owing,  it  is 

*  From  the  papers  of  the  late  Dr.  Sibthorpe.  Walpole's  Memoirs, 
pp.  73 — 77  ;  see  also  pp.  255 — 273. 

f  Beaujour.  Tableau  du  Commerce  de  la  Grece,  vol.  i.  p.  136.  The 
number  of  sheep  in  Attica  was  computed,  in  1786,  at  60,000 ;  the  goats 
at  100,000 ;  and  10,000  goats  and  5000  sheep  were  killed  annually. 
"  During  the  winter  months,'"  says  Dr.  Sibthorpe,  "  a  nomade  tribe 
drive  their  flocks  from  the  mountains  of  Thessaly  into  the  plains  of  At- 
tica and  Boeotia,  and  give  some  pecuniary  consideration  to  the  Pacha  of 
Negropont  and  the  vaivode  of  Athens.  These  people  are  much  famed 
for  their  woollen  manufactures,  particularly  the  coats  or  cloaks  worn  by 
the  Greek  sailors." — WalpoWs  Memoirs,  p.  141. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  19 

supposed,  in  part,  to  the  abundance  of  nitre  with  which  the 
soil  is  impregnated.  The  olives  and  the  honey  are  still  the 
best  in  the  world.*  Many  parts  of  Greece,  however,  are  far 
from  being  salubrious ;  and  it  is  probable,  that  great  changes 
have  taken  place  in  this  respect,  owing  to  the  desolation 
spread  by  war,  pestilence,  and  oppression.  The  air  of  Co- 
rinth is  so  bad,  that  the  inhabitants  abandon  the  place  during 
the  summer  months,  through  fear  of  the  malaria,  which  is 
the  scourge  of  the  maritime  plains. f 

Lord  Byron  pronounces  the  air  of  the  Morea  to  be  heavy 
and  unwholesome ;  but,  on  passing  the  isthmus  in  the  direc- 
tion of  Megara,  a  striking  change  is  immediately  perceptible. 
The  transition  is  equally  great  after  passing  the  ridges  of 
Citheron.  The  climate  of  Attica,  he  describes  as  a  perpetual 
spring ;  rain  is  extremely  rare,  and  even  a  cloudy  day  is 
seldom  seen.  Neither  in  the  Spanish  peninsula,  nor  in  any- 
other  part  of  the  East,  except  Ionia,  in  his  Lordship's  opinion, 
is  the  climate  equal  to  that  of  Athens ;  but  "  I  fear,"  he 
adds,  "  Hesiod  will  still  be  found  correct  in  his  description 
of  a  Boeotian  winter."^  "  The  unwholesome  marshes  of 
Boeotia,"  remarks  Mr.  Douglas,  "  are  inhabited  by  a  race 
whom  the  vanity  of  the  Athenians  still  despises  as  inferior 
beings."  Speaking  generally  of  the  countryT,  he  says :  "  The 
mixture  of  the  romantic  with  the  rich,  which  still  diversifies 
its  aspect,  and  the  singularly  picturesque  form  of  all  its 
mountains,  do  not  allow  us  to  wonder  that  even  Virgil  should 
generally  desert  his  native  Italy  for  the  landscape  of  Greece. 
Whoever  has  viewed  it  in  the  tints  of  a  Mediterranean 
spring,  will  agree  in  attributing  much  of  the  Grecian  genius 
to  the  influence  of  scenery  and  climate." 


*  Dodwell,  vol.  ii.  p.  7.  Mr.  Hobhouse,  who  was  at  Athens  in  the 
depth  of  winter,  speaks  in  more  qualified  language  of  the  climate. 
"  The  weather  was  never  so  inclement  as  to  prevent  an  excursion  on 
horseback.  To  the  northern  constitution  of  an  Englishman,  the  Athe- 
nian winters  are  not  commonly  so  rigorous  as,  from  ancient  accounts, 
you  might  be  led  to  expect.  After  having  found  it  agreeable  to  bathe, 
a  little  before  Christmas,  at  Thebes,  where  a  poet  of  the  country  (He- 
siod) describes  the  cold  to  be  so  excessive  as  to  freeze  up  the  spirits  of 
all  nature,  animate  and  inanimate,  and  to  inflict  upon  man  himself  the 
miseries  of  a  premature  decay,  it  will  not  be  supposed  that  the  incle- 
mency of  Attica  was  by  us  severely  felt." — Journey,  &c.  letter  24. 

t  Clarke's  Travels,  p.  ii.  s.  2.  ch.  9. 

i  Notes  to  Childo  Harold,  canto  ii. 


30  HISTORY  OF  THE 

CHAPTER  II. 

Grecian  Islands. 

Among  the  great  number  of  islands  with  which  the  Ionian 
and  iEgean  seas  are  sprinkled,  some  of  which  were  so  cele- 
brated in  the  history  of  ancient  Greece,  only  a  few  retain 
any  considerable  importance,  or  are  spoken  of  with  much 
interest  by  modern  travellers.  Most  of  them,  before  the 
breaking  out  of  the  late  revolution,  were  inhabited  indis- 
criminately by  Greeks  and  Turks,  being  governed  by  some 
petty  officer,  appointed  by  the  Porte.  In  a  few  instances, 
however,  the  Greeks  were  permitted  to  govern  themselves, 
by  paying  a  certain  stipulated  tribute  to  the  Sultan. 

The  number  of  islands  in  the  JEge&n  sea  is  no  more  than 
one  hundred.  The  principal  Ionian  Isles  are  seven  in  num- 
ber ;  hence  they  have  been  called  the  "  Republic  of  the 
Seven  Islands."  These  islands  were  ceded  to  the  Vene- 
tians, when  the  Greek  empire  was  divided  between  them 
and  the  French,  in  the  beginning  of  the  13th  century.  In 
1479,  the  Turks  took  them  from  the  Venetians,  and  held 
possession  of  them  for  twenty  years,  when  their  former 
owners  again  wrested  them  from  the  infidels,  and  kept  them 
until  1797,  when  they  were  taken  by  the  French.  In  1799, 
the  Russians  took  these  islands  from  the  French,  but  ceded 
them  back  to  France  in  1807.  In  1811,  they  were  captured 
by  the  English,  in  whose  possession  they  still  remain. 

Under  the  French,  these  islands  enjoyed  a  nominal  inde- 
pendence, and  under  the  government  of  the  English,  they 
have  not  only  enjoyed  liberty,  and  the  administration  of 
wholesome  laws,  but  have  been  greatly  improved  by  the  in- 
troduction of  the  arts,  sciences,  and  manufactures.  In  1817, 
the  British  cabinet  drew  up  a  constitution  of  this  Republic, 
under  the  title  of  the  "  United  States  of  the  Ionian  Isles." 

The  Ionian  Islands  are  situated  on  the  south-west  coast 
of  Greece,  from  latitude  36°  to  40°  north.  Their  names, 
beginning  north  and  counting  towards  the  south,  are, 


Names. 

Ancient  Names. 

Sq.  Miles. 

1  Corfu, 

Corcyra, 

219 

2  Paxo, 

Paxos, 

34 

3  St.  Maura, 

Leucadia, 

no 

GREEK  REVOLUTION.  21 


Names. 

Ancient  Names. 

Sq.  Miles. 

4  Cephalonia, 

5  Ithica, 

350 
66 

6  Zante, 

7  Cerigo, 

Zacynthus, 
Cythera, 

88 
98 

Corfu  is  the  first  in  fertility  and  consequence  among  the 
Ionian  Islands.  It  exports  considerable  quantities  of  oil  and 
salt.  It  also  produces  lemons,  oranges,  honey,  and  bees- 
wax, and  has  a  population  of  65,000.  Corfu,  the  capital  of 
the  island,  is  situated  on  the  eastern  coast.  It  is  strongly 
fortified ;  is  the  seat  of  a  university,  founded  by  the  English, 
and  the  residence  of  the  Governor  of  the  Ionian  Republic. 
Number  of  inhabitants,  15,000.* 

Paxo  is  situated  six  miles  south  of  Corfu,  and  ten  from  the 
coast  of  Albania.  It  contains  6,000  inhabitants,  chiefly 
Greeks. t 

St.  Maura  is  situated  on  the  coast  of  Epirus,  south-west  of 
Paxo.  It  produces  sea-salt,  wine,  oil,  citrons,  pomegran- 
ates, and  game.  This  island  contains  a  population  of  20,000 
Greeks,  and  is  the  residence  of  a  Bishop.  St.  Maura,  the 
capital,  is  strongly  fortified,  with  a  population  of  6,000.J 

Ithica  is  situated  a  few  miles  south  of  St.  Maura.  It  is  one 
of  the  most  celebrated  islands  of  Grecian  antiquity,  though 
noted  for  its  barrenness  and  rugged  aspect.  Its  population 
is  8,000  Greeks.  The  English  government,  before  the  revo- 
lution, were  about  to  establish  a  Greek  university  on  this 
island  for  the  benefit  of  the  Ionian  Republic. § 

Cephalonia  is  the  largest  of  the  Ionian  Isles.  It  is  situa- 
ted off  the  mouth  of  the  Gulf  of  Lepanto,  and  only  a  short 
distance  south  of  Ithica.  It  produces  raisins,  currants,  cot- 
ton, citrons,  &c.  Population  60,000,  mostly  Greeks.  Ar- 
gostoli,  the  chief  town,  has  one  of  the  best  harbours  in  the 
Mediterranean-!! 

Zante.  This  beautiful  island  is  situated  on  the  coast  of 
the  Morea,  a  few  miles  south  of  Cephalonia.  It  is  small,  but 
very  populous  and  well  cultivated.  Its  products  are  wine, 
currants,  figs,  olives,  pomegranates,  and  other  delicious  fruits. 
The  Greeks  have  forty  churches,  besides  convents,  on  this 
island.  Its  population  is  45,000.  Zante,  the  capital,  is  situ- 
ated on  the  north-east  side,  and  has  a  commodious  harbour 

*  Morse's  Geography  and  Gazetteer.        f  Jb. 
$  Morse's  Gazetteer.        §  lb.        II  lb. 
3* 


22  HISTORY  OF  THE 

The  town  is  placed  at  the  edge  of  the  water,  and  at  the  foot 
of  a  high  mountain,  on  which  there  is  a  citadel  which  com- 
mands the  harbour.  Its  population  is  12,000.  It  is  the  re- 
sidence of  a  Latin  and  Greek  Bishop.* 

Cerigo.  This  island  is  situated  south-east  of  the  Morea, 
and  a  hundred  miles  or  more  from  Zante.  It  is  barren  and 
little  cultivated,  having  a  population  of  only  about  10,000, 
chiefly  Greeks. 

The  inhabitants  of  some  of  these  islands  have  taken  part 
in  the  revolutionary  struggle,  though,  as  a  republic,  they 
have  remained  in  a  state  of  neutrality. 

The  islands  of  the  JEge&n  sea  are  so  numerous,  that  only 
a  few  of  the  most  important  can  be  described  here.  Some  of 
them  are  exceedingly  important  in  the  history  of  the  revolu- 
tion ;  others,  though  much  nearer  the  principal  scenes  of  ac- 
tion, are  not  named  at  all  in  this  connection. 

Scio,  the  scene  of  the  most  shocking  barbarities,  at  the 
commencement  of  the  revolution,  is  situated  on  the  coast  of 
Asia  Minor,  and  near  the  Gulf  of  Smyrna.  It  is  30  miles 
long,  and  from  10  to  18  miles  wide.  It  was  in  a  high  state 
of  cultivation,  and  produced,  besides  the  delicious  fruits 
common  to  its  climate,  as  oranges,  citrons,  wine,  and  oil, 
large  quantities  of  silk,  about  30,000  lbs.  of  which  were  ex- 
ported annually.  About  500  looms  were  employed  in  weav- 
ing silk  stuffs  of  various  kinds.  No  little  republic  could  be 
happier  or  in  a  more  flourishing  condition,  than  Scio,  at  the 
moment  when  it  was  taken  and  utterly  destroyed  by  the 
Turks  in  1822.  Its  population,  according  to  Vosgien,  was 
30,000  Greeks,  10,000  Turks,  and  3,000  Latins.  Morse 
states  its  population  to  have  been  110,000. 

The  capital  town,  Scio,  was  defended  by  a  citadel  with  a 
considerable  garrison.  Here  was  a  college,  with  14  profes- 
sors, and  700  or  800  students.f 

Hydra  is  situated  near  the  eastern  coast  of  the  Morea,  and 
is  ten  miles  long,  and  about  two  miles  wide.  The  soil  is 
little  better  than  barren  rocks,  but  the  inhabitants  are  ex- 
ceedingly enterprising  and  industrious.  They  possess  200 
vessels  from  100  to  400  tons,  and  trade  with  Italy,  France, 
Spain,  and  other  countries.  In  this  little  island,  the  best 
sailors  in  the  Archipelago  are  to  be  found.  Most  of  their  ships 
are  now  converted  to  men  of  war,  by  which  they  have 

*  Vosgien's  Dictionnaire  Geographique. 
|  Morse  and  Vosgien. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  23 

rendered  the  most  important  services  during  the  revolution. 
Population  20,000. 

Ipsara.  This  island,  about  half  the  size  of  Hydra,  lies 
near  Scio.  Its  population  is  16,000.  They  depend  chiefly 
on  their  commerce  for  wealth  and  subsistence.  They  pos- 
sessed 100  large  ships  and  nearly  500  smaller  vessels,  and 
are  a  hardy,  enterprising  people. 

Milo  lies  east  of  the  Morea  about  100  miles.  It  is  thirty 
miles  long  and  15  wide,  and  contains  one  of  the  largest  and 
best  ports  in  the  Mediterranean.  The  whole  island  is  in  a 
barren  state  from  want  of  cultivation.  The  air  is  said  to  be 
unhealthy.  The  capital  city,  also  called  Milo,  is  on  the 
eastern  shore,  but  is  deserted  and  in  ruins,  and  serves  for  the 
retreat  of  pirates.     Population  5,000,  all  Greeks.* 

Andros  is  situated  at  the  southern  extremity  of  Negro- 
pont,  and  between  that  and  Tinos.  It  is  24  miles  long  and 
6  wide.     Population  10,000,  mostly  Greeks.f 

Candia,  or  Crete,  is  one  of  the  largest  islands  in  the  Medi- 
terranean. It  lies  south-east  of  the  Morea,  and  is  240  miles 
long,  and  50  or  60  wide.  The  face  of  this  island  is  moun- 
tainous, though  fertile  and  healthy.  The  most  remarkable 
among  these  mountains  is  Ida,  so  celebrated  in  Grecian  my- 
thology. It  produces  wine,  oil,  honey,  wax,  saffron,  &c. 
The  population  is  estimated  at  300,000,  of  which  about 
150,000  are  Turks,  130,000  Greeks,  and  the  remainder 
Jews.  The  tyranny  of  the  Turks  has  prevented,  in  a  great 
measure,  the  cultivation  and  improvement  of  this  fine  coun- 
try.J 

Rhodes  is  the  most  celebrated  of  all  the  islands  in  the 
Mediterranean,  It  lies  on  the  southern  coast  of  Asia  Minor, 
between  the  latitudes  of  36°  and  37°.  It  is  48  miles  long, 
and  18  wide.  This  little  spot  was  once  the  most  celebrated 
state  in  Greece.  After  the  death  of  Alexander  the  Great, 
it  not  only  dazzled  the  world  with  its  magnificence  and 
splendour,  but  became  formidable  as  a  warlike  nation.  It 
was  in  the  possession  of  the  Knights  of  the  Order  of  St. 
John  for  more  than  200  years,  and  was,  during  this  time,  the 
scene  of  unparalleled  carnage,  the  Knights  being  often  ob- 
liged to  defend  themselves  against  the  force  of  the  whole 
Turkish  empire.  Solyman  finally  took  it  from  them  in  1523, 
ifter  the  loss  of  40,000  men.     Rhodes,  also  the  name  of  the 

*  Vosgien's  Dictionnaire.         t  lb. 
$  Vosgien  and  Morse. 


U  HISTORY  OF  THE 

capital,  was  formerly  a  walled  city  of  immense  strength,  and 
of  the  greatest  magnificence ;  but  all  remains  of  its  ancient 
grandeur  have  departed ;  all  its  colossal  statues,  and  porti- 
coes, are  destroyed,  and  a  great  proportion  of  the  houses 
which  remain,  are  uninhabited.  Population,  5,000  Turks, 
and  10,000  Jews.  Greeks  are  not  permitted  to  live  in  the 
city.  Population  of  the  island,  20,000,  of  which  two  thirds 
are  Turks.* 

Tino,  or  Tinos.  This  island  lies  south-east  of  Andros, 
and  is  about  60  miles  in  circumference.  It  produces  figs, 
currants,  melons,  grapes,  &c. ;  but  its  chief  riches  are  de- 
rived from  the  manufacture  of  silk,  of  which  large  quantities 
are  annually  produced.  Its  population  is  about  23,000, 
mostly  Greeks. 

Negropont,  the  ancient  Eubcea,  also  called  Egripos,  is  a 
narrow  island  extending  along  the  coast  of  Livadia  and  Bce- 
otia,  from  which  it  is  divided  by  a  strait  so  narrow  as  to  be 
connected  to  the  main  land  by  a  bridge.  It  is  120  miles 
long,  and  30  wide.  This  island,  through  the  middle,  consists 
chiefly  of  barren  mountains ;  but  the  valleys  are  exceedingly 
fertile.  The  present  capital,  Negropont,  occupies  the  scite 
of  the  ancient  city  of  Calchis.  It  is  strongly  fortified,  and 
has  formerly  been  the  scene  of  much  bloodshed,  particularly 
when  the  place  was  taken  from  the  Venetians  by  the  Turks, 
in  1469.  The  vallies  produce  excellent  wine,  cotton,  and 
fruits.  The  mountains  contain  marble  and  copper.  Popu- 
lation of  the  island,  60,000  ;  of  the  city,  1 6,000.  t 

What  we  have  described  must  serve  as  examples  of  the 
population,  fertility,  and  situation  of  the  other  Greek  islands. 
Some  of  them,  before  the  revolution,  were  in  a  state  of  pros- 
perity, hardly  to  be  expected  under  the  hard  and  unyielding 
servitude  of  the  Porte ;  others,  highly  celebrated  in  the 
history  of  the  ancients,  have  apparently  borne  their  chains 
with  less  fortitude,  and  have  sunk  into  a  state  of  degradation 
too  low  even  to  cultivate  the  soil  on  which  they  live. 

*  Vosgien's  Dictionnaire,  Morse's  Gazetteer, 
f  Morse  and  Vosgien. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.         25 


CHAPTER  III. 


Greece  taken  by  the  Romans. — Perseus  carried  to  Rome. — 
Subversion  of  the  Achcean  commonwealth. — Greece  becomes 
a  Roman  Colony. —  War  with  JMithridates. — Sylla  marches 
into  Greece. — Athens  given  up  to  pillage. — Battle  of  Che- 
ronea. — Destruction  of  the  Boeotians. — Cilician  pirates. — 
Nero  plunders  the  country. — Greece  divided  between  the 
Venetians  and  French. — The  Turks  establish  their  Empire 
in  the  East. 

For  more  than  nineteen  hundred  years,  Greece  has 
,'fiJ  been  under  the  yoke  of  some  foreign  power.  From 
the  period  of  the  death  of  Alexander  the  Great,  the 
history  of  the  Grecian  republics  presents  us  with  scarcely 
any  thing,  but  a  series  of  revolutions,  and  intestine  wars,  un- 
til they,  each  in  their  turns,  became  subject  to  a  foreign  pow- 
er. The  Romans,  at  that  period  the  most  powerful  of  na- 
tions, only  waited  for  a  pretext  to  establish  their  domination 
in  Greece.  The  Etolians  being  attacked  and  nearly  over- 
whelmed by  the  Macedonians,  who  had  already  enslaved  a 
great  proportion  of  Greece,  with  a  rash  policy,  sought  the 
aid  of  Rome.  The  Romans  were  not  slow  in  obeying  the 
summons,  and  soon  accomplished  the  reduction  of  the  whole 
kingdom  of  Macedonia,  and  Perseus,  its  last  Emperor,  was 
led  in  chains  to  Rome,  to  grace  the  triumph  of  Paulus 
vEmilius,  his  conqueror,  in  167,  B.  C.  From  that  period, 
the  Romans  were  nastily  advancing  in  their  conquest  of  all 
Greece,  the  progress  of  which  they  hastened  by  fostering 
dissensions  between  its  several  states,  and  corrupting  the 
principal  citizens.  A  pretext  was  only  wanting  to  draw  the 
sword  against  their  Greek  allies,  whom  they  came  to  assist 
against  the  conquering  Macedonians.  This  was  furnished  by 
the  Achaean  states,  who  insulted  the  deputies  of  Imperial 
Rome.  With  a  pretended  design  to  avenge  this  insult,  but 
really  with  the  higher  object  of  making  Greece  a  Roman 
province,  Metellus  marched  his  legions  into  that  devoted 
country,  and  entirely  defeated  the  Grecian  armies, 
-\„'  taking  possession  of  the  several  republics  and  ci- 
*  ties  in  the  name  of  Imperial  Rome.  Mummeus, 
the  Consul,  terminated  the  work,  and  made  an  easy  conquest 
of  the  whole  of  Greece,  which  from  that  period  became  a. 


26  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Roman  province,  under  the  name  of  Achaia,  146  B.  C* 
The  overthrow  of  the  Achaean  commonwealth,  says  Dr. 
Gast,  finished  the  debasement  of  Greece,  which  soon  after 
sunk  into  a  Roman  district,  under  the  denomination  of  the 
province  of  Achaia  ;  because  with  the  overthrow  of  this  re- 
public was  completed  the  final  reduction  of  the  Grecian 
states.  In  this  province  were  comprised  Peloponnesus,  At- 
tica, Boeotia,  Phocis,  and  all  that  part  of  Greece  lying  south 
of  Epirus  and  Thessaly.  All  to  the  north  of  that  line,  as  far 
as  the  utmost  verge  of  the  Macedonian  frontier,  was  the  pro- 
vince of  Macedon.  These  two  provincial  governments  of 
Macedon  and  Achaia,  including  the  ancient  dominions  of  the 
Macedonian  princes,  together  with  the  several  states  and  re- 
publics of  Greece — that  once  illustrious  land,  ennobled  by 
glorious  achievements,  the  chosen  seat  of  liberty,  of  science, 
polity  and  the  arts,  were  henceforward  to  be  consigned  to 
humiliation  and  servitude,  t  Greece,  and  particularly  Athens, 
were  still  spoken  of  by  the  Roman  historians  of  that  period, 
with  considerable  deference  and  respect.  That  pre-emi- 
nence which  the  Athenians  had  gained  in  the  sciences  and 
arts,  did  not  immediately  decline  under  the  dictation  of 
Rome.  For  several  ages  after  Greece  became  a  province, 
the  Roman  youth  resorted  thither  for  the  purpose  of  gaining 
a  knowledge  of  the  sciences  which  they  could  not  obtain  at 
home  ;  and  which  it  was  supposed  no  other  country  was  ca- 
pable of  bestowing.  The  language  of  Greece  became  the 
studied  language  of  the  polite  and  polished  Romans.  Hence 
it  is  said,  "  that  victorious  Rome  was  herself  subdued  by 
the  arts  of  Greece."  Those  \mmortal  writers  who  still  com- 
mand the  admiration  of  modern  Europe,  soon  became  the 
favourite  object  of  study  and  imitation  in  Italy  and  the  west- 
ern provinces.  But  the  elegant  amusements  of  the  Romans 
were  not  suffered  to  interfere  with  their  sound  maxims  of 
policy,  for  whilst  they  acknowledged  the  charms  of  the 
Greek,  they  asserted  the  dignity  of  the  Latin  tongue,  and  the 
exclusive  use  of  the  latter  was  inflexibly  maintained  in  the  ad- 
ministration of  civil  as  well  as  military  government.:):  The  two 
languages  exercised  at  the  same  time  their  separate  jurisdic- 
tion throughout  the  empire :  the  Grecian  as  the  natural  idiom 

*  Tytler.        f  See  Gast's  Hist.  Greece,  vol.  II,  p.  565. 
%  The  Emperor  Claudius  disfranchised  an  eminent  Grecian,  probably 
in  some  public  office,  for  not  understanding  the  Latin  language. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  27 

of  science ;  the  Latin  as  the  legal  dialect  of  public  transac- 
tions. Those  who  united  letters  with  business,  were  equal- 
ly conversant  with  both ;  and  it  was  almost  impossible  in  any 
province,  to  find  a  Roman  subject  of  a  liberal  education,  who 
was  at  once  a  stranger  to  the  Greek  and  Italian  languages.* 
From  this  period,  the  history  of  Greece  becomes  imperfect, 
and  as  it  became  a  Roman  colony,  for  many  centuries,  its 
historical  records  are  chiefly  to  be  found  in  the  accounts  of 
that  conquering  nation,  and  from  whence  it  appears,  that  the 
Romans  did  not  long  remain  peaceable  possessors  of  their 
newly  acquired  territory. 

In  the  year  89,  B.  C.  f  Mithridates  king  of  Pontus 
eg  *  conceived  the  daring  design  of  overthrowing  the 
Roman  empire  in  Greece.  Three  generals  march- 
ed against  him  with  the  conquering  legions  of  Rome  ;  but  he 
defeated  them  all,  and  having  taken  the  three  commanders 
prisoners,  he  made  a  spectacle  of  them  through  the  cities, 
where  they  were  treated  with  scorn  and  contempt.  In  ad- 
dition to  this,  he  appointed  a  day  when  all  the  Romans  who 
could  be  found  should  be  massacred,  without  regard  to  age, 
sex,  or  condition.  Thus  miserably  perished  eighty  thousand 
Romans  in  one  day.J 

The  intention  of  Mithridates  to  free  Greece  from  the  Ro- 
mans was  now  seconded  by  the  Grecians  themselves.  The 
enmity  of  the  Athenians  against  their  oppressors  had  be- 
come exasperated  by  the  fines  imposed  upon  them  at  Rome; 
they  therefore  implored  Mithridates  to  assist  them  in  obtain- 
ing their  freedom.  Nothing  could  have  been  more  gra- 
tifying to  that  prince  than  such  an  application.  His  troops 
immediately  marched  to  Athens,  the  gates  of  which  were 
willingly  thrown  open  to  him,  and  preparations  were  made 
to  resist  any  attempt  the  Romans  might  make  on  that  city. 

Meantime,  Sylla,  the  Roman  general,  was  preparing  to 
punish  this  revolt,  and  having  marched  his  army  into  Greece, 
the  terror  of  his  name  was  such  as  to  occasion  the  submission 
of  all  the  Grecian  cities,  with  the  exception  of  Athens.  To 
this  city,  therefore,  he  marched  his  troops,  with  the  intention 
of  taking  it  by  storm,  and  thus  by  a  single  blow  to  end  the 
war  in  Greece.  But  in  this  he  was  disappointed.  His  as- 
sault made  no  impression  on  the  well  prepared  and  brave 
Athenians.     His  siege  being  finally  turned  into  a  blockade, 

*  Gibbon's  Decline  and  Fall,  vol.  1.  p.  40. 
f  Gast's  Hist.  Greece,  vol.  1.  p.  579.       J  lb. 


28  HISTORY  OF  THE 

famine  and  disease,  after  many  months,  made  such  a  dreadful 
havoc  among  the  besieged,  that  they  could  hold  out  no  longer. 
The  Romans  entered  the  city  through  a  breach  in  its  wall 
in  the  dead  of  night,  and  the  inhabitants,  worn  down  with 
famine  and  fatigue,  could  make  but  little  resistance. 

Irritated  with  the  obstinacy  of  the  Athenians,  be- 

Ar>'      ing  inured  to  scenes  of  carnage,  and  determining 
to  make  an  example  of  a  revolted  city  in  Greece, 
Sylla  gave  Athens  up  to  the  sword  and  pillage  of  his  Roman 
legions,  in  the  year  86,  B.  C.# 

"Goaded  on,"  says  Dr.  Gast,  "  by  the  fierceness  of  Sylla, 
and  not  less  strongly  perhaps,  by  their  own  resentment  and 
avarice,  the  soldiery  rushed  furiously  against  the  emaciated, 
dispirited,  defenceless  multitude.  The  darkness  of  the  mid- 
night hour,  the  sound  of  the  trumpets,  the  blowing  of  horns, 
the  clang  of  arms,  the  shouts  of  the  conquerors,  and  the 
screams  of  despair,  all  contributed  to  the  horrors  of  this  in- 
human massacre.  Unchecked  by  any  resistance,  it  soon 
made  its  way  from  quarter  to  quarter;  many  of  the  miserable 
inhabitants  worn  out  with  want,  offering  themselves  to  the 
stroke  of  death  ;  and  some,  even  before  the  sword  reached 
them,  unwilling  to  outlive  the  liberties,  or  existence  of  their 
country,  or  wishing  to  prevent  the  violence  of  a  brutal  sol- 
diery, falling  by  their  own  hands."!  According  to  Plutarch, 
this  scene  was  one  of  the  most  dreadful  among  all  those  re- 
corded in  Grecian  history.  Sylla  ordered  his  soldiers  to 
make  an  indiscriminate  slaughter  of  all,  whether  citizens  o 
soldiers,  male  or  female,  young  or  old.  The  number  slai 
exceeded  all  computation,  nor  could  any  one  judge  of  it  ex 
cept  by  the  quantity  of  blood,  which  is  said  to  have  poured  in 
torrents  through  the  gates  of  the  city. 

The  Roman  legions  having  become  sated  with  blood,  and 
tired  with  the  exercise  of  killing,  Sylla  spared  what  few  Athe- 
nians remained  alive,  and  directed  the  residue  of  his  ven- 
geance against  the  city  itself,  and  the  beautiful  edifices 
which  its  murdered  inhabitants  had  raised.  The  Piraeus, 
which  had  been  the  pride  of  the  Athenians  for  centuries,  and 
on  which  they  had  expended  immense  sums,  and  exhausted 
the  arts  of  decoration,  was  totally  demolished ;  what  was 
spared  by  the  fire  being  torn  down  by  the  soldiers. 

The  destruction  of  Athens  did  not  end  the  opposition  of 
the  Greeks  towards  their  foreign  invaders,  nor  the  effusion 

*  Gast's  Hist.  Greece.  f  Gast,  vol.  II.  p.  587. 


! 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  29 

of  human  blood  by  the  victorious  Sylla.  The  Boeotians, 
probably  instigated  by  the  Macedonians,  with  whom  they 
Jiad  joined  their  forces,  set  up  the  standard  of  revolt,  even 
while  the  ruins  of  Athens  were  smoking,  and  her  sons  lay  un- 
buried  on  the  field  of  battle.  The  two  armies  met  at  Cha> 
ronea,  where  a  most  sanguinary  conflict  ensued,  in  which  the 
Romans  were  completely  victorious,  leaving,  it  is  said,  one 
hundred  and  ten  thousand  of  their  allied  enemies  dead  on  the 
field  of  battle.*  Mithridates,  notwithstanding  these  disas- 
ters, sent  a  third  army  to  oppose  the  conquering  Ro- 

\*  '  mans.  The  two  armies  again  met  in  Bceotia,  and 
on  the  field  of  Orchomenos,  Sylla  again  triumphed 
over  his  enemies,  leaving  a  vast  number  dead  on  the  field. 

After  these  victories,  it  now  only  remained  for  Sylla  to 
take  signal  vengeance  on  the  Boeotians,  whose  repeated  re- 
volts had  already  reduced  them  to  poverty,  and  their  country 
to  desolation.  But  neither  the  patriotism  of  these  brave  sol- 
diers, nor  the  sufferings  of  their  women  and  children,  had  the 
least  claim  on  the  mercy  of  the  relentless  Sylla.  He  gave 
the  whole  province  up  to  devastation  and  massacre.  Most 
of  the  cities  were  laid  in  ruins,  and  their  inhabitants,  with- 
out discrimination,  were  put  to  the  sword. f 

To  the  miseries  consequent  on  so  dreadful  a  war  as  that 
already  described,  there  succeeded  other  calamities,  scarcely 
less  destructive  to  the  lives  and  property  of  the  Greeks.  The 
Cilician  pirates  had  become  so  numerous  and  powerful,  that 
in  the  weakened  and  depopulated  state  of  Greece,  they  in- 
vested her  whole  coast,  and  committed  depredations  and 
murders,  almost  without  restraint.  Not  content  with  attack- 
ing and  robbing  ships,  these  lawless  rovers  assailed 
B'„£ '  towns,  cities,  and  islands,  which  they  pillaged,  burn- 
'  ed,  or  took  possession  of,  as  was  most  convenient  for 
themselves.  They  possessed  arsenals,  towns  strongly  for- 
tified, and  impregnable  places.  Their  gallies  amounted  to  u 
thousand,  which  were  completely  equipped,^  and  the  cities 
in  their  possession  were  not  less  than  a  hundred. §  Indeedr 
so  numerous,  rich  and  powerful  had  this  nation  of  pirates 
become,  that  at  one  time  the  whole  of  the  JEgean  sea,  with 
its  coasts  and  islands,  was  under  their  complete  control,  nor 
were  the  Ionian  Isles  or  Candia  free  from  their  depredations , 


*  Gast's  Hist.  Greece,  vol.  2.  p.  589. 

f  Plutarch  in  Sylla. 

X  Gust's  Hist.  Greece.        §  lb. 


30  HISTORY  OF  THE 

All  the  coast  of  Greece  bordering  on  the  sea,  together  with 
her  islands,  suffered  beyond  description  from  these  barbari- 
ans. Cities  and  towns  were  sacked,  and  their  inhabitants 
carried  away,  murdered,  or  suffered  to  perish  from  starvation 
and  nakedness.  Not  even  the  temples  of  the  gods  were 
spared.  Plutarch*  enumerates  seven  of  the  most  costly  and 
revered  in  all  Greece,  and  which  the  hand  of  no  conqueror 
had  dared  to  touch  before,  but  now  they  were  laid  in  ruins. 
Among  them  were  the  famous  temple  of  Juno  at  Argos, 
and  that  of  Esculapius  at  Epidaurus,  and  the  temple  of 
Apollo  at  Claros.  During  a  period  of  near  forty  years, 
these  enemies  of  mankind  had  thus  continued  -their  outrages, 
and  until  some  large  portions  of  Greece,  formerly  full  of  vil- 
lages and  inhabitants,  had  become  entirely  depopulated.  In 
some  parts  of  the  Morea  scarcely  a  living  human  being  was 
to  be  seen.  Perhaps  the  best  idea  of  this  total  destruction 
may  be  obtained  from  a  fact  recorded  by  Plutarch,  viz.  that 
when  Pompey  came  to  suppress  these  piracies,  he  found 
a  part  of  the  Morea  so  entirely  destitute  of  inhabitants,  that 
in  order  to  re-people  it,  a  colony  of  the  pirates  themselves 
were  sent  there,  where  a  province  was  designated  for  their 
cultivation,  f 

In  consequence  of  the  care  which  the  Romans 

A j '  were  always  ready  to  take  of  their  eastern  provinces. 
Greece  was  finally  delivered  from  the  power  of  these 
desolating  pirates  who  had  reduced  her  to  a  state  of  the  most 
abject  misery.  But  though  Greece  was  delivered  from  pi- 
rates, she  did  not  escape  the  desolation  of  war,  for  she  soon 
after  became  the  theatre  of  carnage  among  the  Romans 
themselves.  The  desperate  quarrel  between  Caesar  and 
Pompey,  in  which  some  of  the  Grecian  states  were  involved, 
could  not  but  protract  in  this  devoted  country  the  calamities 
it  had  already  experienced.  The  battle  of  Pharsalia,  which 
terminated  this  sanguinary  strife  by  the  ruin  of  Pompey,  did 
not  therefore  relieve  Greece  from  becoming  the  scene  of 
many  subsequent  conflicts. 

The  death  of  Caesar  had  been  celebrated  by  the  Athenians 
as  the  era  of  their  approaching  freedom,  and  Augustus  in  re- 
venge for  such  insolence,  deprived  Athens  of  many  of  the 
few  privileges  which  her  former  masters  had  allowed  her. 
He  also  plundered  the  Arcadians,  even  to  their  very  statues 

*  See  his  Pompey 
f  Plutarch. 


: 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  31 


and  monuments  of  antiquity.  He  reduced  Messenia  to  a 
-late  of  absolute  vassalage,  and  observing  the  same  line  of 
conduct  towards  every  other  Grecian  state,  he  dismembered 
some,  and  to  others  he  disallowed  all  privileges  not  consist- 
ent with  .absolute  bondage. 

The  Emperor  Nero,  when  he  became  master  of  the  desti- 

,  ny  of  Greece,  with  a  levity  well  becoming  his  character, 
made  a  mock  show  of  granting  her  freedom  and  independ- 
ence, and  this  was  declared  publicly  by  his  order,  at  the 
celebration  of  the  Isthmian  Games.  This  declaration  did 
not,  however,  prevent  his  seizing  every  relique  of  Grecian 
splendour  to  be  found,  or  even  of  plundering  the  temples  of 
the  gods  of  whatever  valuables  they  contained.*  Of  the 
condition  of  Greece  under  the  reigns  of  the  succeeding  em- 
perors, it  is  only  necessary  to  state  here,  that  little  or  no  me- 

i  lioration  of  their  servitude  was  ever  granted  her,  and  in  ad- 
dition to  Roman  bondage,  she  was  afterwards  to  suffer  from 
an  unexpected  source.  This  was  from  the  incursions  of  a 
race  of  barbarians,  before  unknown  to  the  Grecians,  and  who 
came  from  the  northern  parts  of  Germany. 

The  Goths,  for  so  they  were  called,  entered  Greece  in 
vast  numbers,  commanded  by  their  skilful  general  Alaric. 
Their  route  lay  through  Macedonia  and  Thessaly,  which  they 
laid  waste.  On  their  approach  to  the  narrow  pass  of  Ther- 
iqqK  mopylae,  they  might  have  been  destroyed,  had  the 
'  Greeks  then  possessed  the  same  valour  which  anima- 
ted Leonidas  and  his  three  hundred  men,  long  before.  The 
troops  which  had  been  posted  to  defend  this  narrow  pass  re- 
tired on  the  approach  of  Alaric  ;  and  "  immediately  the  fer- 
tile fields  of  Phocis  and  Bceotia  were  covered  with  a  deluge 
of  barbarians."!  They  massacred  all  the  males  capable  of 
bearing  arms,  and  drove  away  the  beautiful  females,  with  the 
spoil  and  cattle,  to  the  flaming  villages. 

Alaric  next  marched  to  Athens,  when  to  save  the  city 
from  plunder,  and  its  inhabitants  from  the  sword,  the  Athe- 
nians delivered  him  the  greatest  part  of  the  wealth  they  pos- 
sessed. From  Athens  he  turned  towards  Corinth,  which 
yielded  without  resistance  to  his  arms.  Argos  and  Spar- 
ta also  submitted  on  his  approach,  and  thus  all  the  most 
magnificent  cities  and  the  finest  provinces  of  Greece,  were 
cither  laid  under  contribution,  or  what  was  more  common, 


*  See  Gast's  Hist.  Greece,  vol.  II.  p.  COO. 
f  Gibbon,  chap.  xxx. 


32  HISTORY  OF  THE 

pillaged  and  burned  by  the  Goths.  "  The  vases  and  sta- 
tues," says  Gibbon,  "were  distributed  among  the  barbarians, 
with  more  regard  to  the  value  of  the  material,  than  the  ele- 
gance of  the  workmanship  ;  the  female  captives  submitted 
to  the  laws  of  war,  and  the  enjoyment  of  beauty  was  the  re- 
ward of  valour." 

No  principal  event  happened  to  Greece  Proper,  which  it 
is  necessary  here  to  record,  for  several  centuries  after  the 
incursion  of  the  Goths.  From  the  time  of  the  Roman  con- 
quest, the  character  of  the  Grecians  for  patriotism  and  va- 
lour gradually  declined,  and  their  taste  for  the  fine  arts 
and  the  sciences,  under  the  iron  sceptres  of  the  Roman  em- 
perors, was  finally  lost.  From  the  histories  of  Rome  and 
Constantinople,  and  from  the  account  of  the  crusades,  some 
gleaning  of  the  history  of  Greece  may  be,  found.  But  this 
land,  once  so  celebrated,  was  for  many  centuries  blotted  out 
of  the  list  of  empires.  The  Greeks  did  not,  however,  for 
many  centuries,  lose  their  veneration  for  the  arts  of  their  an- 
cestors, but  as  they  removed  to  other  countries,  relics  of 
their  former  pre-eminence  in  sculpture  and  other  works 
were  carried  with  them,  and  preserved  with  sacred  care  in 
many  families.  The  larger  and  more  expensive  works  which 
1204.  ad°ruecl  their  ancient  cities,  were  also,  many  of  them 
carried  away  and  preserved  at  the  public  expense. 
Hence,  when  the  Latins  took  Constantinople  from  the 
Greeks,  in  1204,  a  great  number  of  the  finest  specimens  of 
ancient  Greeian  art  were  found,  which  had  been  preserved 
with  the  greatest  care. 

Immediately  after  the  taking  of  Constantinople,  the  Ve- 
netians and  French,  after  a  pompous  show  of  ceremony  and 
circumstance,  agreed  to  divide  the  Greek  empire  between 
them.  In  this  partition,  about  three  fourths  were  given  to 
the  Venetians,  including  ancient  or  proper  Greece,*  and 
Boniface,  Marquis  of  Montferrat  was  created  king. 

Meantime  the  eastern  and  southern  provinces  of  Greece 
were  involved  in  all  the  horrors  of  war.  Boniface,  the  new 
king  of  Thessaly,  was  attacked  by  the  Bulgarians,  defeated, 
and  killed.  The  Venetians  took  possession  of  Crete,  and 
the  islands  of  the  iEgean  sek.  While  Baldwin,  Count  of 
Flanders,  lately  made  Emperor  of  Constantinople,  was  taken 
prisoner  in  Thrace,  by  John,  king  of  Bulgaria.  To  judge  of 
the  horrid  barbarities  committed  during  these  wars,  it  is  suffi- 

*  Gibbon's  Rise  and  Fall,  vol.  6.  p.  89. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  33 

•cient  to  state  that  the  Emperor  Baldwin  was  dragged  in  chains 
to  his  capital,  and  after  having  his  hands  and  feet  cut  ofTj  was 
exposed  in  a  desert  to  the  wild  beasts  and  birds  of  prey,  in 
which  dreadful  state  of  misery  he  survived  three  days.* 

After  a  protracted  and  sanguinary  war,  in  which  the 
Latins,  Greeks,  Venetians,  French,  Saracens,  Persians,  and 
Turks,  each  participated,  and  during  which  Constantinople 
was  taken  and  re-taken  several  times,  and  Greece  Proper  as 
often  overrun,  its  provinces  reduced  to  the  utmost  misery, 
and  its  cities  sacked  and  burnt,  the  Turks  finally  establish- 
ed their  empire  in  the  East,  at  the  beginning  of  the  13th 
century. 


CHAPTER  IV. 

Othman  founds  the  Turkish  Empire. — Solyman  crosses  the 
Hellespont. — Solyman  is  killed. — Orcan  also  dies. — Amu- 
rath  begins  his  reign. — He  forms  the  Janizaries. — Jlmurath 
is  killed. — Bajazet  I.  begins  his  reign. — Reduces  Greece  to 
servitude. — Battle  of  Nicopolis. — French  prisoners  decapi- 
tated.— Bajazet  taken  by  Tamerlane,  and  confined  in  a  cage. 
— Manuel  Emperor. — He  relinquishes  the  throne  to  John. — 
First  appearance  of  Tamerlane. — His  conquests. — John  of 
Constantinople  pays  him  tribute. — Tamerlane  retires  to  Sa- 
marcand. — Tamerlane  dies. 

The  foundation  of  the  Turkish  empire  is  attributed  to 
Othman,  or  Ottoman,  and  hence  its  name.  He  came  from 
,onn  the  borders  of  the  Caspian  Sea  during  the  reign  of 
Andronicus  II.  of  Constantinople.  At  this  period, 
the  Greek  empire  was  reduced  to  the  city  of  Constantinople, 
and  the  possession  of  some  provinces  in  ancient  Greece. 
The  eastern  world  had  for  nearly  a  century  been  in  a  state 
of  civil  commotion.  The  schisms  between  the  Latins  and 
Greeks,  the  interposition  of  the  crusaders,  and  the  intestine 
wars,  had  reduced  the  eastern  nations  to  a  state  of  poverty, 
and  thinned  them  of  inhabitants. 

In  this  condition  of  the  country,  Othman,  a  fearless  and 
cunning  leader,  made  by  treachery,  an  easy  conquest  of  seve- 
ral cities  and  provinces  in  the  vicinity  of  Constantinople. 

*  Anquetil's  Universal  History,  vol.  4.  p.  321. 
4* 


34  HISTORY  OF  THE 

His  son  Orcan,  who  on  the  death  of  his  father  succeeded  to 
the  throne,  continued  to  enlarge  the  Turkish  possessions,  by 
|ooq  subduing  every  place  in  the  power  of  his  arms.  He 
vanquished  Andronicus  the  Greek  Emperor  in  several 
battles,  and  took  from  him  the  cities  of  Necomeuia  and  Nice,* 
having  besieged  the  latter  city  for  two  years.  Having  pushed 
his  conquests  as  far  as  Natolia,  which  borders  on  the  Helles- 
pont, or  iEgean  sea,  he  longed  to  penetrate  across  to  Europe, 
and,  if  possible,  make  himself  master  of  Greece.  Orcan's 
son,  Solyman,  a  young  warrior  full  of  ambition,  wished  for 
such  a  conquest  more  than  his  father.  But  the  Ottomans 
were  used  to  fight  only  by  land,  and  had  neither  vessels,  nor 
pilots,  nor  constructors  ;  they  wanted  even  fishing  boats,  and 
every  means  of  attempting  this  element,  more  redoubtable 
perhaps  for  those  that  understand  it,  than  for  those  who  have- 
never  experienced  it.f  As  Orcan  had  penetrated  to  the  sea 
€oast,  the  Emperor  Andronicus,  fearing  he  might  induce,  by 
bribery  or  other  means,  masters  of  vessels  to  transport  him 
across  to  Europe,  published  a  decree  which  forbade  under 
pain  of  death,  the  putting  of  any  vessel,  or  even  barque,  on 
the  Bosphorus  of  Thrace,  or  on  the  straits  of  Gallipoli. 
Knowing  that  the  Ottomans  had  no  vessels  of  their  own,  the 
Emperor  flattered  himself  that  this  decree,  and  the  sea  itself, 
would  present  an  impenetrable  barrier  to  the  farther  progress 
of  Orcan.  But  Solyman,  the  adventurous  young  Turk,  over- 
came all  these  obstacles  by  his  fearlessness  and  ingenuity, 
and  crossed  the  Bosphorus  at  the  head  of  eighty  determined 
men,  thus  making  himself  master  of  the  key  of  Europe.^ 


*  Mignot's  Hist.  Ottoman  Empire,  vol.  1.  p.  13.        f  lb. 

t  See  Hawkins's  Mignot,  vol.  1.  p.  16.  where  the  following  account  of 
this  singular  undertaking  is  given. 

"  Solyman  having  made  a  hunting  party,  arrived,  by  a  fine  moon-light 
on  the  borders  of  the  straits,  at  the  head  of  eighty  determined  men.  He 
constructed  three  rafts  of  thin  plank,  fastened  on  corks,  and  ox  bladders 
tied  by  the  neck,  and  thus  risked  himself  and  attendants  to  cross  5  leagues 
of  sea  on  these  frail  skiffs,  by  the  aid  of  long  poles  which  served  him  as 
oars  and  even  rudders.  This  rash  enterprise  succeeded  beyond  the 
wishes  [hopes]  of  Solyman.  He  arrived  without  the  least  accident,  at  the 
foot  of  the  castle  of  Hanni,  in  Europe.  Both  the  night  and  the  moon  fa- 
voured him.  He  met  a  peasant  at  break  of  day  going  to  work.  This 
man,  enslaved  by  fear,  and  gained  by  gold,  introduced  the  Turkish 
prince,  by  a  subterraneous  passage,  into  the  castle  of  Hanni,  (the  ancient 
Sestos.)  There  was  no  garrison  in  this  place,  as  the  Greeks  thought  it 
sufficiently  defended  by  the  sea ;  all  was  still  and  hushed  in  profound 
sleep.    Solyman  made  himself  master  of  the  castle,  and  having  as- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  35 

The  life  of  Solyman  was  short.  After  having  overrun  a 
part  of  Romania  and  Thrace,  and  while  he  was  besieging 
Adrianople,  an  unruly  horse  threw  him  with  such  force  as  to 
terminate  his  life  on  the  spot.  His  father  died  with  grief  at 
the  loss.  "The  aged  Orchan  wept,  and  expired  on  the  tomb 
of  his  valiant  son."*  But,  says  Gibbon,!  "  the  Greeks  had 
not  time  to  rejoice  in  the  death  of  their  enemies  ;  and  the 
Turkish  scimetar  was  wielded  with  the  same  spirit  by  Amu- 
rath  the  First,  the  son  of  Orchan,  and  the  brother  of  Soly- 
man. By  the  pale  and  fainting  light  of  Byzantine  annals, 
we  can  discern,  that  he  [Amurath]  subdued  without  resist- 
ance the  whole  province  of  Romania  or  Thrace,  from  the 
Hellespont  to  mount  Haemus,  and  the  verge  of  the  Capital, 
and  that  Adrianople  was  chosen  for  the  royal  seat  of  his 
government  and  religion  in  Europe."  After  having  deso- 
lated the  provinces  of  Bulgaria,  Bothnia,  Albania,  and  Ser- 
via,  Amurath  met  a  sudden*  death  by  the  desperation  of  a 
wounded  soldier.  "A  Servian  soldier,"  says  Gibbon, 
"  started  from  the  crowd  of  dead  bodies,  and  Amurath  was 
pierced  in  the  belly  with  a  mortal  wound. "J 


sembled  the  principal  inhabitants,  he  addressed  them  in  the  most  flat- 
tering terms,  and  made  use  of  the  most  magnificent  promises  to  persuade 
these  Greeks,  who  were  all  pilots  or  sailors,  and  moreover  very  little 
attached  to  their  prince,  to  take  the  vessels  which  they  had  in  two  small 
ports  just  by,  and  conduct  them  to  the  other  side  of  the  strait,  to  em- 
bark four  thousand  Turks,  who  were  there  attending  him.  In  a  few 
-hours  this  small  army  was  transported  from  Asia  to  Europe." 

The  next  day  the  governor  of  Gallipoli  attacked  the  Turks  with  all 
the  forces  he  could  muster,  but  after  a  long  and  doubtful  contest  the 
G reeks  were  beaten. 

It  is  difficult  at  this  time  to  ascertain  the  points  whence  Solyman 
departed  and  where  he  landed.  D  Anville,  in  his  ancient  Geography, 
says,  "  Sestos,  which  was  the  most  frequented  passage  of  the  Helles- 
pont, only  exists  in  a  ruined  place  named  Zerneuic,  which  was  the 
first  that  the  Turks  seized  in  passing  from  Asia  to  Europe,  under 
Sultan  Or  Khan,  about  the  year  1356." 

*  Gibbon.  t  Decline  and  Fall,  vol.  6.  p.  191. 

t  It  was  Amurath  who  formed  the  band  of  soldiers,  called  Janizaries, 
and  which  has  since  become  so  famous,  and  exerted  such  an  influence 
over  the  government  of  Constantinople.  Having  a  body  of  young  men 
selected  for  this  purpose,  Amurath  stretched  out  his  arm  over  the  head 
of  the  first  soldier,  and  blessed  them  in  these  words.  "  Let  them  be 
called  Janizaries,  (yengi  cheri,  or  new  soldiers ;)  may  their  countenances 
be  ever  bright !  their  hand  victorious !  their  sword  keen !  may  they 
return  with  white  faces." 

White  and  black  faces  are  common  and  proverbial  expressions  of 
praise  and  reproach  in  the  Turkish  language.  See  Gibbon's  Decline 
and  Fall,  vol.  6.  p.  92. 


36  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Amurath  I.  was  considered  a  mild  and  modest  prince,  and 
a  lover  of  learning  and  virtue.*  We  must  remember  that  he 
lived  at  a  time  when  devastation,  and  death  by  torture,  were 
the  common  lot  of  the  vanquished  all  over  the  east,  and  that 
usages  which  at  the  present  day  would  be  barbarities  in  any 
civilized  country,  would  then  have  been  considered  mercies. 

Under  the  semblance  of  justice,  Amurath  had  the  eyes  of 
his  own  son  plucked  out.  He  also,  on  one  occasion,  con- 
demned several  young  citizens  who  had  carried  arms  against 
Mm,  to  be  put  to  death  by  the  hands  of  their  fathers,  and  if 
the  fathers  refused  to  execute  this  unnatural  order,  they 
were  massacred  by  their  sons.f  Still  he  was  called  a  mild 
and  virtuous  prince. 

Amurath  was  succeeded  by  his  son  Bajazet  the  First. 
This  celebrated  prince  was  brave,  ambitious,  and  restless. 
"In  the  fourteen  years  of  his  reign,  he  incessantly  moved  ai 
the  head  of  his  armies,  from  Boursa  to  Adrianople,  and  from 
the  Danube  to  the  Euphrates. "J  He  extended  his  conquests 
across  the  Hellespont  into  Europe,  and  whatever  remained 
of  the  Greek  empire,  in  Macedonia,  Thrace,  or  Thessaly,  he 
reduced  to  Turkish  servitude.  Penetrating  towards  the 
gates  of  Thermopylae,  a  traitorous  Greek  Bishop  led  him 
through  that  pass,  and  hence  the  whole  of  Greece  became  his 
prey.§  He  carried  death  or  Mahometanism  wherever  he 
went.  His  name  and  exploits  finally  became  so  terrible,  that 
when  Sigismond  the  king  of  Hungary  determined  to  oppose 
him,  his  cause  was  considered  that  of  Europe,  and  of  the 
Christian  Church.  The  Knights  of  France  and  Germany, 
were  eager  to  join  the  standard  of  the  Christian  King,  with 
their  armies.  An  army  of  100,000  Christians  assembled  to 
suppress  the  invasions  of  the  infidel,  and  to  break  his  power. 
The  field  of  Nicopolis  in  Bulgaria,  and  the  river  Danube, 
were  destined  to  become  the  grave  of  this  combined  army. 
The  king  of  Hungary  with  difficulty  made  his  escape,  and 
the  infidel  king  was  completely  victorious.  The  French 
captives  who  had  survived  this  dreadful  conflict,  were 
brought  before  the  throne  of  the  Sultan,  and  as  they  refused 
to  abjure  their  faith  and  embrace  Ishmaelism,  they  were  suc- 
cessively beheaded  in  his  presence.  || 

After  this  battle,  Bajazet  boasted  that  he  would  subdue 

1400  k°tn  Germany  and  Italy,  and  that  he  would  feed  his 

horse  with  a  bushel  of  oats  on  the  altar  of  St.  Peter, 

*  Gibbon.        f  Hawkins's  Mignot.        +  See  Gibbon.        §  lb. 
|i  Gibbon's  Decline  and  Fall,  vol.  6.  p.  194, 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  37 

at  Rome.*  Gibbon  says,  with  an  air  of  triumph,  "  His  pro- 
gress was  checked,  not  by  the  miraculous  interposition  of 
the  apostle ;  not  by  a  crusade  of  the  Christian  powers,  but 
by  a  long  and  painful  fit  of  the  gout."t 

The  fate  of  this  scourge  to  the  Christian  world,  is  well 
known.  He  was  taken  prisoner  by  Tamerlane,  in  whose 
hands  he  died.j: 

The  city  of  Constantinople  was  still  possessed  by  the 
Greeks,  but  the  conquests  of  Bajazet  had  given  the  Turks 
the  possession  of  the  country  and  cities  in  every  direction 
surrounding  it.  Even  the  places  from  whence  that  immense 
city  drew  its  supplies,  and  the  avenues  to  it,  were  in  the 
hands  of  the  infidels. 

In  this  state  of  things,  Manuel,  the  Greek  Emperor,  seeing 
the  impossibility  of  obtaining  provisions  for  his  capital,  and 
seeing  that  the  Greek  reign  in  the  east  was  nearly  at  an  end, 
chose  rather  to  see  the  throne  sink  under  another,  than  under 
himself.  He  therefore,  of  his  own  free  will,  relinquished  to 
John,  the  son  of  Andronicus,  his  tottering  throne,  with  the 
keys  of  his  city ;  and  quitting  Asia,  now  full  of  enemies, 
misery,  and  poverty,  passed  over  the  Hellespont,  to  lead  3 
wandering  life  at  the  different  courts  of  Europe. 

John,  it  was  well  known,  had  made  some  overtures  to  Ba- 
jazet, with  a  view  of  taking  Constantinople  by  treachery  or 
force,  and  of  dispossessing  his  uncle  Manuel  of  the  throne. 
With  this  intention,  the  Sultan  had  committed  to  him  ten 
thousand  of  his  troops,  with  which  he  was  to  besiege  the 
capital  if  necessary.  John  had,  however,  now  become  the 
quiet  possessor  of  the  throne,  by  the  abdication,  and  gift  oi 
his  uncle.  A  question  now  arose,  whether  John  should 
give  up  the  throne  and  capital  to  Bajazet,  which  he  had  pro- 
mised to  do,  if  he  became  master  of  it.  But  it  was  under- 
stood also,  that  the  troops  which  Bajazet  had  lent  him,  were 
to  be  the  means  by  which  he  was  to  possess  the  city,  which 
means  the  abdication  of  Manuel  rendered  not  necessary. 

i:  Gibbon's  Decline  and  Fall,  vol.  6.  p.  194. 

■f  History  tells  us  that  Tamerlane,  or  Timor,  as  he  is  also  called,  con- 
fined Bajazet  in  an  iron  cage,  like  a  wild  beast,  and  that  he,  to  put  an 
end  to  a  life  so  miserable  and  odious,  beat  out  his  brains  against  his 
cage.  This  story  is  rejected  as  fabulous  by  most  modern  writers.  Gib- 
bon, however,  has  collected  several  authorities  to  evince  that  this  fierce 
warrior  received  the  most  ignominious  and  harsh  treatment  from  hi? 
conqueror,  and  that  the  story  of  the  iron  cage  was  probably  not  without 
foundation.     See  Gibbon,  vol.  6.  chap.  65. 

$  Hawkins's  Mignot,  vol.  1.  p.  44. 


38  HISTORY  OF  THE 

All  the  orders  of  the  state  conjured  John  to  remain  on  his 
throne,  protesting  that  they  would  rather  see  their  children 
massacred  before  their  faces,  and  perish  themselves  in  the 
flames,  than  live  under  Turkish  barbarity.*  Whatever  John's 
decision  might  have  been,  no  Christian  power  could  then 
have  defended  Constantinople  against  the  assault  of  the  Sul- 
tan, who  had  determined  to  possess  himself  of  that  city,  and 
was  on  the  point  of  marching  towards  it,  when,  from  a  source 
least  expected,  there  rose  up  a  powerful  and  successful  op- 
poser  to  the  future  conquests  of  Bajazet.  This  was  Timor, 
or  Tamerlane.  Tamerlane  was  a  Tartarian  prince,  born  on 
the  frontiers  of  Parthia.  In  his  youth  he  was  principal 
equery  to  the  prince  of  his  country.  Living  in  an  age  when, 
and  among  a  people  where  personal  bravery,  sagacity,  and 
treachery  in  war  were  qualities  "best  adapted  to  promotion, 
he  rose  with  astonishing  rapidity  to  the  highest  distinction. 
At  the  age  of  twenty-five  or  thirty,  his  fame  as  a  conqueror 
became  such  as  to  induce  all  the  petty  princes  of  his  country 
to  join  his  standard,  and  he  was  thus  enabled  to  raise  an  army, 
so  numerous  and  powerful,  as  to  defy  all  resistance.  He 
gverran  and  conquered,  with  astonishing  rapidity,  Tartary, 
Hindostan,  Egypt,  and  other  countries.! 

From  the  Irtish  and  Volga,  to  the  Persian  Gulf,  says  Gib 
bon,  and  from  the  Ganges  to  Damascus  and  the  Archipelago, 
Asia  was  in  the  hands  of  Timor ;  his  armies  were  invincible, 
his  ambition  was  boundless,  and  his  zeal  might  aspire  to 
conquer  and  convert  the  Christian  kingdoms  of  the  West, 
which  already  trembled  at  his  name.J 

His  love  of  conquest  was  so  insatiable  that  he  warred 
a gainst,  and  indiscriminately  subdued,  both  Tartarean,  Pa- 
gan, Turkish  and  Christian  nations;  hence  when  he  came  to 
the  utmost  verge  of  Asia  Minor,  and  his  unbounded  ambition 
impelled  him  to  seek  unconquered  lands  in  Europe,  he  found 
that  the  Greeks  and  Turks  had  united  to  dispute  the  passage 
of  their  common  enemy,  either  by  the  Hellespont  or  the 
Bosphorus.  "  On  this  great  occasion,  they  forgot  the  differ- 
ence of  religion,  to  act  with  union  and  firmness  in  the  com- 
mon cause  ;  the  double  straits  were  guarded  with  ships  and 
fortifications ;  and  they  separately  withheld  the  transports, 
which  Timor  demanded  of  either  nation  under  the  pretence 
of  attacking  their  enemy."§ 


Hawkins's  Mignot.  t  Gibbon. 

Gibbon's  Decline  and  Fall,  vol.  6.  p.  219.      §  lb. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  39 

They  soothed  him  with  presents,  and  tributary  gifts,  and 
by  an  acknowledgment  of  inferiority,  tempted  him  to  re- 
treat with  the  honour  of  victory,  without  drawing  his  sword. 
John,  the  Greek  Emperor  of  Constantinople,  submitted  to 
pay  him  tribute,  and  ratified  a  treaty  with  him,  by  an  oath 
of  allegiance. 

Tamerlane,  after  having  filled  Asia,  India,  and  Europe 
with  terror,  devastation,  and  mourning,  and  after  having  con- 
quered vast  territories,  without  the  expectation  or  wish  of 
making  them  tributary  provinces,  retired  for  a  short  period 
to  Samarcand,  his  capital,  to  give  himself  some  repose  from 
the  labours  of  war,  and  to  display  his  magnificence  and  power. 
idftd  Here  he  gave  audience  to  ambassadors  from  Egypt. 
Arabia,  India,  Tartary,  Russia,  and  Spain.  On  this 
occasion  he  married  six  of  his  grandsons,  and  celebrated 
their  nuptials  with  all  the  pomp  and  splendour  of  Eastern 
magnificence.  Whole  forests  were  cut  down  to  supply  fuel 
for  the  kitchens  ;  the  plains  were  spread  with  pyramids  oi 
meat,  and  vases  were  filled  with  every  liquor,  of  which  thou- 
sands were  invited  to  partake.  A  general  indulgence  was 
proclaimed,  every  law  was  relaxed,  and  every  pleasure  al- 
lowed; the  sovereign  was  idle,  and  the  people  free.*  After 
devoting  fifty  years  to  the  attainment  of  empire,  this,  ob- 
serve the  historians  of  Tamerlane,  was  the  only  happy 
period  of  his  life.  He  could  not,  however,  remain  inactive. 
He  had  proposed  to  add  to  his  conquests  the  vast  and  ancient 
empire  of  China,  as  the  climax  of  his  military  glory.  Two 
hundred  thousand  veteran  troops  had  been  selected,  with 
sedulous  care,  for  this  great  and  important  expedition.  Their 
baggage  was  drawn  in  500  great  waggons,  and  the  journey 
from  the  capital  of  the  Great  Mogul,  to  Pekin,  it  was  esti- 
mated, could  not  be  performed  in  less  than  six  months.  This 
army,  headed  by  the  Mogul  in  person,  now  aged  seventy 
years,  had  scarcely  began  their  march,  when  their  aged  war- 
rior sickened  and  died,  the  1st  of  April,  1405. 

*  Gibbon. 


40  HISTORY  OF  THE 


CHAPTER  V. 

Mahomet  ascends  the  Ottoman  throne. — He  is  a  mild  and  just 
Prince. — Amurath  II.  ascends  the  throne. — The  impostor, 
Mustapka,  taken. — Amurath  raises  an  army,  and  ravages 
Greece. —  Thcssalonica  taken,  and  destroyed. — Amurath 
reduces  the  Pachas. — Scanderheg. — Siege  of  Oroya. — 
Amurath  obliged  to  retire  in  disgrace. — Character  ofScan- 
derbcg. — His  death. —  The  Turks  dig  up  his  hones. — Ma- 
homet II.  prepares  cm  army  to  take  Constantinople. — Con- 
stantine,  the  last  Greek  Emperor,  dies. —  The  city  is  in- 
vested by  the  Turks. — Account  of  the  Siege. —  The  city 
taken. — Distress  of  the  inhabitants. — Mahomet  pretends 
to  be  grieved,  but  destroys  all  the  nobility. — Cuts  off  the 
head  of  Irene. — Repeoples  Constantinople,  and  gives  half 
of  the  Churches  to  the  Christians. 

Mahomet  I,  ascended  the  Ottoman  throne  in  1416,  and 
fixed  his  royal  residence  at  Bursa,  the  seat  of  his  ancestors. 
The  Greek  Emperor  did  not  hesitate  to  send  him  ambassa- 
dors, who  were  received  with  respect,  and  dismissed  with 
many  honours.  Mahomet  protected  the  Greeks  from  the 
tyranny  of  their  Turkish  masters,  and  in  general,  distributed 
justice  with  an  even  hand  both  towards  Christians  and  Ma- 
hometans. Two  of  his  sons  he  even  sent  to  the  Greek 
Emperor  for  protection  and  guardianship,  for  fear,  it  is  said, 
that  their  elder  brother  would  have  them  strangled.  This 
Sultan  died  in  1421,  greatly  lamented  by  his  subjects,  as  a 
just  and  lenient  prince,  and  under  whose  reign  they  had 
enjoyed  peace  and  prosperity.* 

On  the  accession  of  Amurath  II.  to  the  Ottoman  throne, 
in  1421,  he  found  his  kingdom  greatly  disturbed  by  an  ad- 
venturer named  Mustapha,  who  pretented  that  he  was  the 
son  of  Bajazet,  and  rightful  heir  to  the  throne.  The  city  of 
Adrianople,  and  several  of  the  provinces,  espoused  the  cause 
of  Mustapha,  believing  him  to  be  their  lawful  prince.  By 
the  most  cunning  impostures,  he  drew  many  of  the  nobles  to 
join  his  standard,  and  by  this  means  raised  a  large  and  pow- 
erful army,  with  which  he  possessed  himself  of  many  cities4 
and  provinces. 

*  Hawkins's  Mignot, 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  41 

The  first  business  of  Amurath,  therefore,  was  to  subdue 
this  impostor,  who  had  passed  over  into  Europe  with  the 
hope  of  making  himself  master  of  all  the  Turkish  possessions 
on  that  side  of  the  Hellespont.  Having  crossed  into  Europe, 
Amurath  found  that  the  pretender  had  left  Adrianople, 
where  he  had  sometime  been,  and  had  gone  into  Wallachia 
for  the  purpose  of  raising  some  troops.  Here  he  was  sur- 
prised, taken,  and  carried  in  chains  to  Adrianople,  where 
Amurath,  having  exposed  him  to  the  scorn  and  derision  of 
the  populace,  had  him  hanged  in  gibbets  in  the  public  square 
of  that  city. 

While  Amurath  was  engaged  in  the  reduction  of  this  im- 
postor, he  remained  in  perfect  peace  with  Manuel,  the  Greek 
Emperor,  who  had  now  resumed  the  government. 

But  he  never  forgot  that  Manuel  had  treated  the  impostor, 
his  rival,  as  though  he  was  in  truth  the  true  Mustapha,  and 
legal  heir  to  the  throne.  Whether  Manuel  really  believed 
what  he  pretended  is  unknown.  The  Sultan,  however, 
took  him  in  earnest,  and  determined  to  punish  him  accord- 
ingly. With  this  intention,  he  retained  the  Greek  ambassa- 
dors who  were  at  his  court,  until  he  had  raised  an  army  of 
150,000  men.  He  then  marched  successively  into  Thessa- 
ly,  Macedonia,  and  Thrace,  each  of  which  he  ravaged.  His 
intention  was  to  lay  waste  the  country,  and  finally  besiege 
Constantinople  ;  but  an  unexpected  insurrection  at  Nice  ar- 
rested the  progress  of  his  desolations,  and  turned  his  atten- 
tion to  his  internal  affairs. 

1404        Meantime,  Manuel,  the  Greek  Emperor,  died  at 
Constantinople,  leaving  his  throne  to  John  Paleo- 
logus,  to  whom  he  had  already  given  a  share  of  the  govern- 
ment. 

Amurath  did  not  forget  his  hatred  of  the  Greeks,  nor  re- 
linquish his  intention  of  warring  against  them.  He  there- 
fore raised  an  army,  and  invaded  Greece  Proper,  throughout 
most  of  its  maritime  coasts.  The  Emperor  John,  seeing  his 
finest  provinces  pillaged,  and  his  subjects  miserably  enslaved, 
earnestly  sought  peace,  and  in  order  to  obtain  it  consented 
to  abandon  to  the  Turks  all  the  provinces  and  cities  they 
had  conquered,  and  to  pay  the  Sultan  an  annual  tribute  of 
300,000  aspers  besides.  The  Emperor  also  stipulated  to  re- 
sign Thessalonica,  the  present  Salonica,*  and  to  beat  down 


*  D'Anville's  Ancient  Geography. 


42  HISTORY  OF  THE 

the  wall  which  the  Greeks  had  built  across  the  Isthmus  01 
Corinth,  to  protect  the  Morea  from  the  incursions  of  the 
Turks.* 

The  Thessalonians,  however,  averse  to  being  sold  as 
slaves,  had  recourse  to  the  republic  of  Venice  for  assistance 
in  defending  themselves.  The  Venetians  most  readily  ac- 
cepted their  proposals,  and  made  immediate  preparations  for 
a  vigorous  defence.  Amurath,  surprised  to  find  himself  op- 
posed by  an  enemy  which  he  had  not  before  thought  of,  and 
irritated  that  the  Emperor  did  not  enforce  his  stipulation,  to 
put  him  in  possession  of  Thessalonica,  determined  to  subdue 
the  place,  cost  him  what  it  might. 

The  Sultan's  army  was  so  numerous,  that  the  besiegers 
were  more  than  a  hundred  to  one  of  the  besieged  ;f  yet  the 
defence  was  determined  and  desperate,  and  the  Turkish 
general  began  to  despair  of  reducing  the  place.  He  there- 
fore wrote  to  the  Sultan,  stating  the  case,  and  requesting  his 
presence  in  order  to  encourage  the  troops.  As  soon  as  he 
arrived  at  the  camp,  he  caused  to  be  published  by  sound  of 
trumpet,  that  he  gave  the  soldiers  every  thing  that  should  be 
found  in  Thessalonica,  men,  women,  children,  gold,  silver, 
furniture,  and  wares,  and  that  he  reserved  for  himself  only 
the  place  and  the  buildings.^  This  proclamation  so  en- 
couraged the  soldiers,  that  the  attack  was  renewed  with  the 
most  determined  courage.  The  number  of  Turks  was  so 
great,  that  an  assault  could  be  made  at  every  vulnerable 
point  at  the  same  instant.  The  soldiers  and  inhabitants  had 
become  worn  down,  and  enervated  with  fatigue  and  watch- 
ing. The  Turks  mounted  the  walls  in  such  numbers  as  to 
overpower  the  besieged,  and  after  a  desperate  struggle  on 
both  sides,  finally  succeeded  in  opening  the  gates  to  the  army. 

142Q  ^ne  declaration  of  Amurath  had  made  it  for  the 
interest  of  his  soldiers  not  to  put  the  inhabitants  to 
the  sword,  since  dead  bodies  would  bring  them  no  money ; 
they  therefore  saved  the  miserable  and  emaciated  sufferers 
alive,  and  each  soldier  took  for  his  own  use,  or  sold  for  his 
own  profit,  as  many  as  he  could  secure.  The  town  became 
a  desert,  for  not  only  the  gold,  silver,  and  all  the  riches  of  the 
place,  fell  into  the  hands  of  the  Turks,  but  the  inhabitants 
were  all  removed,  while  the  churches,  with  one  exception, 
were  turned  into  mosques.^ 

*  Hawkins's  Mignot,  vol.  1.  p.  91.        t  lb. 
t  Mignot's  Hist.  vol.  1.  p.  91.        §  lb. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  43 

The  attention  of  Amurath,  as  well  as  his  army,  was  drawn, 
from  Greece  soon  after  the  sacking  of  Salonica,  and  for 
twelve  years  he  made  war  with  his  vassals  in  the  different 
parts  of  Europe  and  Asia.  His  immense  dominions  had  be- 
come a  scene  of  continual  warfare.  The  Pachas,  to  whom 
he  had  committed  the  government  of  his  provinces,  if  not 
watched  closely,  soon  became  petty  despots,  enriching  them- 
selves on  the  spoils  of  his  subjects.  These  abuses  Amurath 
made  it  his  business  to  remedy  with  his  sword ;  and  either 
by  decapitation  or  imprisonment,  had  so  reduced  these  re- 
fractory spirits,  as  to  enjoy,  with  his  subjects,  a  general 
tranquillity.  But  in  the  latter  years  of  his  reign  he  had  to 
combat  a  warrior  more  formidable,  and  consequently  more 
difficult  to  subdue,  than  any  he  had  yet  met  with. 

At  a  period  of  which  we  are  now  writing,  nearly  all  the 
1  MA  Petty  princes  of  Greece  had  submitted  to  the  Ottoman 
power,  and  paid  an  annual  tribute  to  their  conqueror. 
John  Castriot  had  not  only  paid  tribute  to  the  Sultan,  as 
prince  of  Epirus,  but  had  submitted  to  have  his  four  sons 
conducted  to  the  court  of  that  prince  as  hostages.*  The 
three  eldest  of  these  sons  died,  and  not  without  suspicion  oi* 
poison.  The  youngest,  whose  name  also  was  John,  the 
Sultan  caused  to  be  circumcised,  and  brought  him  up  in  the 
Mahometan  faith ;  but  it  is  said  that  he  never  gave  up  his 
belief  in  Christianity,  though  he  did  not  profess  it  openly. 
Young  Castriot  signalized  himself  in  the  art  of  war,  on  many- 
occasions,  and  by  his  great  bodily  strength  and  courageous 
actions,  obtained  among  the  Turks  the  name  of  Scander, 
which  signifies  Alexander,  to  which  they  added  Beg,  which 
signifies  prince.f 

Scanderbeg  was  kept  constantly  in  the  field  of  action  by 
the  Sultan,  and  being  a  man  of  considerable  talents,  became 
exceedingly  skilful  in  all  the  arts  and  finesse  of  Turkish 
warfare.  On  the  death  of  Scanderbeg's  father,  the  Sultan 
established  a  Pacha  in  his  place,  thus  exercising  the  power 
of  an  usurper,  instead  of  relinquishing  to  the  only  surviving 
heir  his  hereditary  dominions.  Scanderbeg  found  that  the 
Sultan,  so  far  from  being  his  benefactor,  was  only  his  ty- 
rant. He  therefore,  for  a  long  time,  had  determined  to  leave 
him,  and  if  possible  obtain  possession  of  his  own  province. 
A  proper  opportunity  offered  at  the  close  of  the  Hungarian 


*  See  Gibbon,  vol.  6.  p.  290 — also  Hawkins's  Mignot. 
+  Hawkins,  vol.  I.  p.  108. 


44  HISTORY  OF  THE 

war,  when  the  Sultan,  having  left  his  army  under  the  direc- 
tion of  a  Pacha,  who  happened  to  be  taken  prisoner ;  the 
army  was  thus  left  without  a  commander.  Scanderbeg,  taking- 
advantage  of  this  circumstance,  invited  the  Reis  EfFendi,  or 
principal  secretary  of  the  Sultan,  to  his  tent,  where,  pre- 
senting a  dagger  to  his  breast,  he  forced  him  to  sign  a  firman, 
giving  him  the  government  of  Epirus.  This  done,  he  put 
to  death,  with  his  own  hand,  the  unoffending  secretary,  and 
buried  him  on  the  spot,  so  as  to  destroy  every  trace  of  this 
transaction.* 

Having  arrived  at  Croya,  the  capital  of  his  paternal  pro- 
vince, its  gates  were  thrown  open  to  him,  on  his  producing 
the  royal  firman ;  and  no  sooner  did  he  command  the  for- 
tress, than  he  threw  off  all  dissimulation,  and  proclaimed 
that  he,  John  Castriot,  had  come  to  avenge  the  wrongs  his 
family  and  country  had  received  at  the  hands  of  the  Turks. 
He  at  the  same  time  abjured  both  the  Prophet  and  the  Sul- 
tan, and  called  on  the  Albanians  to  defend  their  religion  and 
country  from  infidel  despotism.  A  general  revolt  was  the 
consequence,  and  at  a  meeting  of  the  several  states  of  Epi- 
rus, Scanderbeg  was  appointed  commander  of  the  army 
against  the  Sultan. 

The  city  of  Croya  was  strongly  fortified,  and  provisioned 
for  a  long  siege.  The  fame  of  Scanderbeg  was  such  as  to 
draw  to  his  standard  many  brave  adventurers  from  France 
and  Germany,!  and  the  Venetians  lent  him  both  men  and 
money,  to  assist  in  the  prosecution  of  the  war.  Croya  was 
garrisoned  by  six  thousand  men,  under  the  command  of  the 
lieutenant  general  Uruena,  while  Scanderbeg  himself  retired 
to  the  mountains  at  the  head  of  his  army. 

Amurath  was  allowed  to  approach  the  city  and  lay  siege 
to  it,  but  from  this  moment  no  rest  was  allowed  to  the  Sul- 
tan's army.  Uruena  constantly  annoyed  the  besiegers'  camp 
with  a  well  served  train  of  artillery ;  while  Scanderbeg  made 
daily  or  nightly  sallies  from  the  mountains,  and  having  de- 
stroyed as  many  Turks  as  he  could  find,  generally  retired 
without  losing  a  man. 

144ft  ^ne  wno^e  summer  was  occupied  in  fruitless  at- 
tempts to  reduce  the  place,  and  though  the  Turkish 
army  consisted  of  sixty  thousand  horse,  and  forty  thousand 
Janizaries,:):  the  Greeks  found  themselves  stronger  at  the  end 
of  the  siege  than  at  its  commencement. 

*  See  Hawkins's  Mignot,  and  Gibbon's  Decline  and  Fall. 
t  Gibbon.  $  lb. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  45 

Amurath  felt  irritated  and  ashamed  that  a  young  man, 
educated  in  his  own  family,  should  thus  triumph  over  him. 
No  means  which  he  could  possibly  devise  to  reduce  the  rebel, 
not  even  offers  of  bribery,  were  left  untried.  Scanderbeg 
constantly  came  off  victorious,  notwithstanding  his  army  was 
not  one  eighth  so  numerous  as  that  of  Amurath.* 

At  length,  after  losing  a  great  number  of  men,  the  Sultan 
saw  the  necessity  of  retiring,  however  disgraceful  it  might  be 
to  his  army,  or  vexatious  to  himself.  But  this  he  could  not 
do  without  additional  losses,  since  Scanderbeg  had  posses- 
sion of  the  mountain  passes  through  which  his  army  must 
retreat :  but  there  was  no  other  alternative,  and  the  siege  of 
Croya  was  raised.  In  attempting  to  pass  the  defiles  of  the 
mountains,  the  Turkish  army  was  constantly  harassed,  and 
great  numbers  of  them  destroyed  by  the  Greeks,  who  in  si- 
lence and  unseen,  were  waiting  at  all  the  narrow  places,  well 
prepared  for  its  arrival.  Finally,  after  experiencing  great 
difficulties  and  constant  losses,  the  Sultan  arrived  at  Adria- 
nople,  with  the  remnant  of  a  worn  out  and  disappointed  ar- 
my ;  and  it  is  said  the  vexation,  shame,  and  fatigue  of  this 
campaign,  so  wrought  upon  him,  as  to  shorten  his  days.       I 

The  enthusiasm  of  historians  has  ranked  Scanderbeg  with 
an  Alexander,  and  a  Pyrrhus,  as  a  warrior.  His  limited  do- 
mains, and  the  smallness  of  his  armies,  must,  however,  leave 
him  far  below  those  generals  on  the  pages  of  history.  But 
when  we  consider,  that  with  the  small  means  which  he  could 
command,  he  for  twenty-threeyears sustained  himself  against 
all  the  powers  of  the  Ottoman  empire,  and  that  he  uniformly 
baffled  all  the  attempts  of  the  most  skilful  generals  which 
the  Sultan  sent  to  take,  or  reduce  him,  we  cannot  withhold 
our  belief,  that  under  equal  circumstances,  his  renown  as  a 
conqueror  would  not  have  been  inferior  to  that  of  Tamerlane 
or  Bajazet.  Scanderbeg,  however,  did  not  fight  for  the  pur- 
pose of  making  conquests,  but  from  the  more  honourable 
motive  of  defending  his  country  from  cruel  oppression. 
Hence,  as  a  patriot  and  lover  of  national  liberty,  he  cannot  but 
rank  higher  in  the  estimation  of  virtuous  minds  than  any  mere 
conqueror.  His  exploits  are  still  remembered  and  recount- 
ed with  romantic  enthusiasm  by  his  countrymen.  And  the 
Turks  themselves,  even  by  the  violation  of  his  sepulchre. 

*  Hawkins. 
5* 


46  HISTORY  OF  THE 

showed  a  superstitious  reverence  for  his  name.*  The  death 
of  Scanderbeg  happened  at  Lissa,  a  Venetian  town,  where 
he  had  gone  to  confer  on  the  subject  of  a  league.  He  died 
of  a  short  illness,  on  the  17th  of  January,  1467.  Soon  after 
his  death,  his  poor  desolated  country,  after  the  most  unheard 
of  struggle,  was  obliged  to  submit  to  the  power  and  tyranny 
of  the  Turkish  arms. 

1452.  The  time  now  approached  when  the  Greek  empire 
in  the  east  was  to  yield  to  the  more  powerful  arms  of  the  in- 
fidels. Constantine,  the  last  Emperor,  still  sat  upon  his  tot- 
tering throne  at  Constantinople.  The  Turks,  with  the  ex- 
ception of  that  great  city,  had  possessed  themselves  of  al- 
most the  whole  Greek  empire. 

Mahomet  the  Second  determined  to  give  a  last  and  finish- 
1  *  -  o  ing  stroke  to  the  Christian  power  in  Asia.  After 
immense  preparations,  he  invested  Constantinople, 
with  an  army  of  three  hundred  thousand  men.f  His  artille- 
ry, consisting  of  fourteen  powerful  batteries,  were  brought  to 
bear  upon  the  city  at  the  same  time.  The  enemy  approach- 
ed nearer  every  day,  while  the  brave  Greeks,  determined  to 
defend  their  beloved  city  to  the  last,  continued  to  resist,  un- 
til but  a  handful  of  their  soldiers  remained.  Constantine,  as 
a  last  effort  to  save  his  city  from  pillage  and  massacre,  offer- 
ed to  submit,  and  pay  any  tribute  the  Sultan  might  demand. 
But  the  Turk  was  eager  for  the  glory  of  effacing  every  trace 
of  the  Greek  empire.  Thousands  of  his  troops  were  preci- 
pitated into  the  ditch  in  attempting  to  gain  possession  of  the 
walls.  The  ditch  itself  was  entirely  filled  with  dead  bodies, 
so  that  at  last  the  Janizaries  were  able  to  walk  on  them  di- 
rectly to  the  assault.  The  unfortunate  Constantine,  seeing 
that  there  was  no  longer  any  hope,  and  determining  not  to 
fall  into  the  hands  of  Mahomet,  precipitated  himself  among 
the  Janizaries,  who  killed  him  without  knowing  who  he  was. 

"  After  a  siege  of  forty  days,"  says  Gibbon,  "  the  fate  of 
Constantinople  could  no  longer  be  averted.  The  diminutive 
garrison  was  assaulted  by  a  double  attack  ;  the  fortifications, 
which  had  stood  for  ages  against  hostile  violence,  were  dis- 

*  It  is  said  that  Scanderbeg  slew  three  thousand  Turks  with  his  own 
hand,  and  that  after  his  death  the  Janizaries  dug  up  his  bones,  which, 
being  cut  into  small  pieces,  wore  distributed  and  worn  as  bracelets.,  or 
amulets.     See  Gibbon. 

t  Hawkins's  Mignot,  vol.  1.  p.  130. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  47 

mantled  on  all  sides  by  the  Ottoman  cannon  ;*  many  breach- 
es were  opened,  and  near  the  gate  of  St.  Romanus,  four 
towers  had  been  levelled  with  the  ground.  Mahomet,  to 
spur  on  the  ardour  of  his  troops,  proclaimed  that  the  spoil 
of  the  city  should  be  theirs.  "  The  city  and  the  buildings," 
said  the  Sultan,  "  are  mine ;  but  I  resign  to  your  valour  the 
captives  and  the  spoil,  the  treasures  of  gold  and  beauty :  be 
rich,  and  be  happy."  With  such  motives,  the  Turks  became 
regardless  of  life,  and  impatient  of  delay.  On  the  next  as- 
sault, the  breaches  were  found  to  be  no  longer  defensible. 
The  valour  of  the  few  Greeks  which  remained  could  do  no- 
thing against  such  numbers.  The  gate  Phenar  was  forced, 
and  the  Turks  soon  gained  admittance  at  many  points,  at  the 
same  moment. 

Immediately  on  entering  the  city,  two  thousand  Greeks 
were  put  to  the  sword  ;  but  the  richness  of  the  place  saved 
thousands  more  from  the  same  fate.  The  cupidity  of  the 
soldiers  overcame  their  hatred  to  the  Greeks,  and  they  soon 
relinquished  killing,  for  the  more  profitable  business  01 
plundering. 

Thus,  after  a  siege  of  53  days,  Constantinople,  which  had 
heretofore  defied  the  power  of  the  Caliphs,  was  irretrievably 
subdued  by  Mahomet  the  second.  It  was  taken  on  the  28th 
of  May,  1453,  two  thousand  two  hundred  and  five  years  after 
the  founding  of  Rome,  and  eleven  hundred  and  twenty-three 
ye£rs  after  Constantine,  the  first  Christian  Emperor,  had 
removed  the  seat  of  empire  from  Rome  to  Byzantium. 

After  the  Greeks  found  that  their  streets  were  full  of  Turk- 
ish soldiers,  and  that  resistance  would  only  lead  to  instant 
death,  they  threw  down  their  swords  and  submitted  to  their 
kite,  that  of  being  bound  and  sold  as  slaves.  Gibbon  gives 
a  most  pathetic  and  interesting  account  of  this  scene. — 
"  The  Turks,"  says  he,  "  encountered  no  resistance,  their 
bloodless  hands  were  employed  in  selecting  and  securing  the 
multitude  of  their  prisoners.  Youth,  beauty,  and  the  appear- 
ance of  wealth,  attracted  their  choice,  and  the  right  of  pro- 
perty was  decided  among  themselves  by  a  prior  seizure,  by 
personal  strength,  and  by  the  authority  of  command.  In  the 
space  of  an  hour  the  male  captives  were  bound  with  cords ; 

*  It  is  said  that  the  Sultan  had  caused  to  be  made  some  pieces  of  can- 
non for  this  attack,  of  enormous  magnitude.  One  piece,  of  brass,  cast 
at  Adrianople,  threw  a  stone  of  six  nundred  pounds  weight,  and  took 
two  months  for  its  removal  from  the  foundery  to  Constantinople. 


48  HISTORY  OF  THE 

the  females,  with  their  veils  and  girdles.  The  senators  were 
linked  with  their  slaves ;  the  prelates  with  the  porters  of  the 
church ;  and  the  young  men  of  a  plebeian  class,  with  noble 
maids,  whose  faces  had  been  invisible  to  the  sun  and  their 
nearest  kindred.  In  this  common  captivity,  the  ranks  of 
society  were  confounded ;  the  ties  of  nature  were  cut  asun- 
der ;  and  the  inexorable  soldier  was  careless  of  the  father's 
groans,  the  tears  of  the  mother,  and  the  lamentations  of  the 
children.  The  loudest  in  their  waitings  were  the  nuns,  who 
were  torn  from  the  altar  with  naked  bosoms,  outstretched 
arms,  and  dishevelled  hair.  Of  these  unfortunate  Greeks, 
of  those  domestic  animals,  whole  strings  were  rudely  driven 
through  the  streets ;  and  as  the  conquerors  were  eager  to 
return  for  more  prey,  their  trembling  pace  was  quickened 
with  menaces  and  blows.  Above  sixty  thousand  of  this  de- 
voted people  were  transported  from  the  city  to  the  camp 
and  the  fleet ;  exchanged  or  sold,  according  to  the  caprice  or 
interest  of  their  masters,  and  dispersed  in  remote  servitude 
through  the  provinces  of  the  Ottoman  empire."* 

Meanwhile,  the  work  of  destruction  was  going  on  against 
the  city  itself,  its  buildings,  its  churches,  and  its  ornaments. 
The  dome  of  St.  Sophia  was  despoiled  of  its  oblations  of 
ages.  Its  gold  and  silver  ornaments,  its  sacerdotal  vases, 
were  taken  or  wantonly  destroyed,  according  to  the  interest 
or  caprice  of  the  soldiers.  The  church  itself  was  converted 
into  a  mosque,  and  so  remains  to  this  day. 

Mahomet  pretended  at  first,  to  be  full  of  grief  at  this  mise- 
rable spectacle,  which  every  where  greeted  his  eye  on  enter- 
ing the  city.  He  even  ransomed  several  persons  of  rank, 
gave  others  their  liberty,  and  declared  himself  the  friend  and 
father  of  the  conquered.  In  this  way  he  allured  many  to 
come  and  claim  his  protection  and  bounty.  But  this  kind- 
ness was  only  a  prelude  to  the  fate  of  these  unhappy  vic- 
tims ;  for  before  he  left  the  city,  his  noblest  captives  were 
beheaded  in  cold  blood  by  his  order.  Almost  all  the  males, 
and  particularly  those  who  could  bear  arms,  had  been  killed 
before  the  city  was  taken.  There  remained  only  women 
and  children,  without  fathers,  husbands,  or  brothers,  and 
those  who  had  these  natural  protectors,  were,  if  possible,  in 
a  worse  condition  than  those  who  had  not,  since  they  must 
bear  the  pain  of  seeing  each  other  bound  and  drawn  away 

*  See  Decline  and  Fall,  vol.  &  p.  326. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  49 

like  beasts  of  burthen,  or  perhaps  violated  or  massacred  on 
the  spot.* 

*  The  following  account,  from  "  VertoVs  History  of  the  Knights  of 
Malta,"  will  serve  as  an  example  of  individual  suffering,  and  at  the 
same  time  give  a  good  picture  of  Mahomet's  character. 

"  The  women,"  says  he,  "  detested  the  fecundity  which  made  them 
mothers,  and  bitterly  lamented  the  fate  of  the  young  infants  they  carried 
in  their  arms.  An  infinity  of  young  girls,  timid  and  faltering  in  their 
steps,  who,  not  knowing  where  to  go,  wandered  about  like  wretched 
strangers  in  the  very  bosom  of  their  country,  and,  whilst  they  were  in 
quest  of  their  relatives,  fell  into  an  abyss  of  horrors,  and  into  the  hands 
of  barbarians,  from  whom  they  experienced  a  treatment,  more  horrid  to 
them  than  the  most  cruel  punishment.  Neither  their  tears  nor  their 
cries  touched  the  insolent  conqueror,  and  the  meanest  of  the  Turks  had 
an  accomplished  beauty  for  his  prey,  though  often  taken  from  him  by 
another  Turk,  either  stronger  than  himself  or  of  higher  authority  in  the 
army.  Most  of  these  barbarians  set  their  prisoners  up  for  sale  ;  but  the 
men  of  quality,  the  princes,  and  officers  who  were  taken  under  arms, 
were  executed  by  the  Sultan's  orders;  none  escaped  his  cruelty  but  the 
handsomest  young  persons  of  both  sexes,  whom  he  reserved  for  the 
abominations  of  the  Seraglio.  It  was  thus  that  a  young  Greek  lady  of 
noble  birth,  called  Irene,  hardly  seventeen  years  old,  fell  into  his  hands. 
A  Pacha  had  just  made  her  his  slave  ;  but  struck  with  her  exquisite 
beauty,  thought  her  a  present  worthy  the  Sultan.  The  East  had  never 
before  given  birth  to  so  charming  a  creature ;  her  beauty  was  irresisti- 
ble, and  triumphed  over  the  savage  Mahomet;  rough  as  he  was,  he  was 
forced  to  yield  himself  entirely  to  this  new  passion;  and  in  order  to  have 
fewer  avocations  from  his  amorous  assiduities,  he  passed  several  days 
without  allowing  his  ministers  and  the  principal  officers  of  the  army  to 
see  him.  It  was  soon  perceived  that  war  was  no  longer  his  passion  ; 
the  soldiers,  who  were  inured  to  plunder,  and  accustomed  to  find  booty 
in  following  him,  murmured  at  the  change ;  the  officers  as  well  as  sol- 
diers complained  of  his  effeminate  life ;  yet  his  wrath  was  so  terrible 
that  nobody  durst  undertake  to  speak  to  him  on  that  subject.  At 
length,  Mustapha  Pacha,  consulting  only  his  fidelity,  was  the  first  that 
gave  him  notice  of  the  discourses  which  the  Janizaries  held  publicly  to 
the  prejudice  of  his  glory.  The  Sultan  continued  some  time  in  a  sullen 
and  deep  silence,  as  if  he  was  considering  in  himself  what  resolution  he 
should  take.  The  only  order  Mustapha  received,  was,  to  summon  the 
Pachas  to  assemble  the  next  day,  with  all  the  guards,  and  the  troops  to 
be  posted,  under  pretence  of  a  review  ;  after  which  he  went  into  Irene's 
apartment,  and  staid  with  her  all  night.  Never  did  the  young  princess 
appear  so  charming  in  his  eyes  ;  never,  too,  had  the  Sultan  given  her 
such  tender  marks  of  his  love  before ;  and  in  order,  if  possible,  to  bestow 
new  lustre  on  her  beauty,  he  desired  her  maids  to  exert  all  their  care 
and  skill  in  dressing  her.  When  she  was  thus  set  out  and  adjusted  to 
appear  in  public,  he  took  her  by  the  hand  and  led  her  into  the  middle  of 
the  assembled  troops,  when,  tearing  off  the  veil  that  covered  her  face, 
he  haughtily  asked  the  Pachas  around,  if  they  had  ever  seen  a  more 
perfect  beauty.  All  the  officers,  like  true  courtiers,  were  lavish  of 
their  praises,  and  congratulated  him  on  his  felicity.    Upon  which,  Ma 


50  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Although  Mahomet  had  thus  taken  and  sacked  the  only 
Christian  city  of  any  consequence  in  the  East,  and  although 
it  was  then  in  his  power  to  have  exterminated  Christianity 
from  his  dominions,  yet  it  was  his  policy,  and  not  his  hu- 
manity, which  forbade  such  an  act.  Constantinople,  although 
drained  of  inhabitants,  was  not  despoiled  of  her  beautiful 
edifices,  the  work  of  ages,  nor  of  her  incomparable  local 
situation ;  it  still  bore  the  marks  of  an  immense  metropolis. 
Mahomet  designed  to  establish  his  throne  in  this  conquered 
city,  which,  though  deserted,  was  not  ruined.  He  therefore 
wanted  inhabitants  to  fill  the  vacant  houses,  and  to  carry  on 
the  business,  arts,  and  commerce  of  his  capital. 

So  soon  as  the  Greeks  heard  that  their  lives,  and  even 
liberties  and  religion,  could  again  be  enjoyed  on  returning 
to  their  native  city,  they  came  in  crowds  to  submit  them- 
selves to  their  new  master.  The  churches  were  divided  be- 
tween the  Turks  and  Christians,  and  the  city  was  separated 
into  sections  to  be  occupied  by  the  two  religions. 


CHAPTER  VI. 

Mahomet  settled  on  the  throne  of  Constantinople. — Thomas 
and  Demetrius,  princes  of  the  Morea,  and  last  remains  of 
the  Roman  and  Greek  dynasty  in  the  East. — Mahomet 
takes  Negropont,  and  barbarously  destroys  Arretzo,  the 
governor. — lie  wars  against  Albania. — He  menaces  the 
island  of  Rhodes. — Siege  of  Rhodes. — Mahomet  is  defeat- 
ed, and  marches  to  his  capital. — His  war  against  the  Per- 
sians.— Bajazet  sends  his  fleet  against  the  Venetians. — 
Takes  Lepanto  and  Coron. —  Turks  defeated  in  their  turn 
by  Cordova.— Peace  between  Venice  and  the  Porte. — Ba- 
jazet strangles  his  sons. — Selim  dethrones  his  father,  and 
afterwards  puts  him  to  death. — Death  of  Selim. 

After  having  settled  himself  on  his  throne,  and  taken 
means  to  re-people  his  city,  Mahomet  began  to  turn  his  atten- 

homet,  taking  the  fair  Greek  by  the  hair,  in  one  hand,  and  drawing  his 
sword  with  the  other,  at  one  stroke  separated  her  head  from  her  body; 
then  turning  about  to  his  grandees,  with  eyes  rolling  and  flashing  with 
fire, — '  This  sword,'  said  he  to  them, '  whenever  I  please,  can  cut  asm 
der  the  ties  of  love,' " 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  51 

tion  towards  a  fragment  of  the  Greek  Empire,  which  still  re- 
mained in  Europe.  Two  brothers  of  Constantinople,  whose 
fate  we  have  already  told,  possessed  the  principality  of  the 
Morea,  which  they  governed  together,  each  one  having  his 
separate  dominions.  These  two  princes,  Thomas  and  De- 
metrius, were  immediately  laid  under  an  annual  tribute  of 
twelve  hundred  ducats,  with  the  payment  of  which  the  Sul- 
tan was  so  far  satisfied  as  to  allow  them  to  remain  in  the  en- 
joyment of  their  government  for  several  years.  But  the 
brothers  quarrelled  between  themselves,  and  even  carried 
fire  and  sword  into  each  others  dominions.  The  Sultan,  un- 
der pretence  of  settling  this  difficulty,  marched  an  army  into 
the  Morea,  and  having  declared  for  Demetrius,  Thomas 
made  his  escape  to  Corfu,  and  from  thence  into  Italy,  where 
he  remained  an  exile.  Demetrius,  having  delivered  up  his 
daughter  to  the  Sultan,  was  given  a  small  city  in  Thrace  for 
his  maintenance,  and  that  of  his  adherents. 

1461.  Thus  ended  the  last  remains  of  a  race  of  princes, 
who  had  possessed  the  throne  of  the  east  for  more  than 
eleven  hundred  years. 

Mahomet,  continually  on  the  look  out,  in  search  of  prey, 
soon  turned  his  arms  against  Euboea,  now  Negropont, 
which  belonged  to  the  Venetians.  The  commander,  Arret- 
T4fQ  zo»  defended  Calchis,  which  was  strongly  fortified, 
with  the  greatest  courage.  But  the  army  of  Mahomet 
amounted  to  a  hundred  and  forty  thousand  men,  while  the 
besieged  had  only  twenty-four  thousand.  The  Sultan  also 
had  command  of  the  sea,  where  he  had  a  hundred  vessels, 
and  was  thus  enabled  to  prevent  the  garrison  from  receiving 
any  supplies.  Famine  finally  obliged  Arretzo  to  capitulate, 
which  he  did,  with  the  assurance  that  his  life,  and  the  lives  of 
his  soldiers,  should  be  spared.  But  no  sooner  did  this  mon- 
ster gain  possession  of  the  city,  than  he  ordered  Arretzo. 
with  his  principal  officers,  to  be  sawn  through  the  middle  of 
the  body,  saying,  with  his  usual  barbarity,  that  he  had  guar- 
anteed their  heads  but  not  their  flanks.*  The  daughter  of 
Arretzo,  a  beautiful  young  girl,  the  Sultan  designed  for  his 
Seraglio,  but  she,  resisting  the  caresses  of  her  brutal  master, 
he  put  her  to  death  with  his  own  hand.f 

The  island  was  filled  with  carnage  and  rapine.     To  the 
(Latin  Christians  they  gave  no  quarter.     Blood  and  desola- 
tion was  every  where  to  be  seen,  nor  did  these  wretches 

*  Hawkins's  Mignot,  vol.  1.  p.  166.  t  lb. 


52  HISTORY  OF  THE 

leave  this  once  beautiful  island,  until  it  was  nearly  converted 
to  a  desert. 

1480.  The  Albanians  were  next  to  suffer  from  the  fire 
and  sword  of  this  merciless  conqueror.  The  Venetians  had 
undertaken  the  defence  of  that  country,  as  guardians  to  the 
son  of  Scanderbeg,  whose  valour  and  patriotism  have  already 
been  noticed.  At  the  head  of  an  hundred  and  fifty  thousand 
men,  Mahomet  ravaged  the  whole  province,  and  spared  no- 
thing from  the  sword  or  the  flames. 

The  Sultan  next  menaced  the  island  of  Rhodes.  This  -is- 
land was  in  the  possession  of  the  Knights  of  the  order  of  St. 
John,  or  as  they  were  more  commonly  called,  the  Knights 
of  Rhodes.  Mahomet  happening  to  see  one  of  the  galleys 
belonging  to  the  knights,  his  envy  and  malice  became  ex- 
cited, and  he  swore  that  he  would  cut  off  the  head  of  their 
Grand  Master  with  his  own  hand,  and  that  he  would  exter- 
minate the  whole  order. 

Great  preparations  were  made  to  carry  this  oath  into  exe- 
cution. The  armament  consisted  of  an  hundred  and  sixty 
high  built  vessels,  besides  galliots,  and  a  hundred  thousand 
land  forces.  The  Grand  Master  Aubusson,  also  made  pre- 
parations to  receive  these  Turks  in  a  manner  becoming  their 
order. 

Finding  that  the  Turks  made  use  of  mortars,  which  threw 
shot  of  such  magnitude  as  to  fall  through  the  buildings,  and 
thus  kill  or  overturn  every  thing  opposed  to  their  force,  he 
constructed,  with  immense  beams  of  wood,  a  place  of  safety 
for  the  sick,  aged,  women  and  children.  The  knights  were 
also  possessed  of  very  formidable  artillery,  with  which  they 
hurled  destruction  and  death  on  their  enemies. 

The  fortifications  of  Rhodes  were  so  strong  as  to  be  con- 
sidered impregnable.  The  wall  surrounding  the  city  had 
been  repaired,  and  the  whole  place  fitted  up  to  withstand  the 
expected  siege. 

The  Ottoman  army  made  their  attack  from  Mount  St.  Ste- 
phen, with  some  heavy  artillery  ;  and  they  soon  so  injured 
the  wall  as  to  give  them  hopes  of  carrying  the  place  by  as- 
sault ;  but  they  were  beaten  back  with  great  loss.  The  wall 
on  the  Jew's  side  of  the  city  was  next  tried,  and  being  old, 
soon  began  to  tremble  under  the  heavy  shot  of  the  enemy. — 
The  Grand  Master,  seeing  this,  built  a  new  wall  and  ditch 
within  the  old  one-  In  this  work,  the  ladies,  Jewesses  as 
well  as  Gbristians,  assisted,  carrying  heavy  burdens,  which  no 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  53 

one  could  have  thought  them  capable  of  moving.*     Mean- 
time, the  breach  in  the  wall  continued  to  increase,  and  the 
Turks  now  thinking  themselves  certain  of  their  prey,  and 
impatient  to  seize  it,  again  mounted  the  ruins  to  the  assault. 
But  what  was  their  astonishment  and  rage  to  find  a  new  and 
stronger  wall  within  the  old  one.     The  Pacha,  now  seeing 
little  hopes  of  taking  Aubusson,  resolved  to  have  him  poison- 
ed, and  with  this  view  sent  two  men  to  him,  who  pretended 
to  be  deserters  from  the  enemy.     This  plan  also  failed,  for 
their  designs  being  discovered,  they  were  immediately  cut  in 
pieces  by  the  populace.     The  Turks,  ashamed  that  this  infa- 
mous design  should  have  been  discovered,  and  enraged  thatx 
it  did  not  succeed,  now  determined  to  sacrifice  every  thing 
rather  than  abandon  the  place.     The  fort,  called  the  tower  of 
St  Nicholas,  was  separated  from  the  Turkish  camp  by  a  ca- 
nal, and  as  this  was  the  point  on  which  the  attack  was  to  be 
made,  the  Pacha  ordered  a  bridge  to  be  taken  from  another 
place  to  the  point  most  convenient  for  his  soldiers  to  cross. 
This  was  done  under  cover  of  night,  and  the  Ottomans  be- 
gan to  cross  not  only  by  means  of  the  bridge,  but  in  boats  al- 
so.    The  Knights,  always  on  the  alert,  could  hear,  though 
they  did  not  see  what  their  enemies  were  doing.     So  soon, 
therefore,  as  the  bridge  was  full  of  soldiers,  and  the  canal  ol 
boats,  Aubusson  ordered  his  cannon  to  be  directed  towards 
the  place  from  whence  the  noise  came.     The  battle  was  fu- 
rious, and  the  destruction  of  the  infidels  terrible.    The  Grand 
Master's  fire-ships  attacked  the  galleys  of  the  enemy,  at  the 
same  time  his  cannon  was  sweeping  the  bridge.     "  Nothing," 
says  Mignot,  "  was  comparable  to  the  horrors  of  this  night ; 
the  cries  of  those  who  beheld  the  fire  approaching  them,  the 
groans  of  the  wounded,  the  vortices  of  flame  and  smoke,  the 
noise  of  the  artillery,  every  thing  rendered  the  combatants 
furious  :  they  touched  nothing  but  dead  bodies  and  arms." 
At  length  the  day  came  to  give  light  to  this  carnage  ;  the 
breach  in  the  wall,  and  the  sea,  were  covered  with  bodies, 
some  of  which  were  half  burnt ;  with  darts,  arrows,  turbans, 
and  the  wreck  of  galleys  still  burning.      As  soon  as  the 
Knights  could  see  the  bridge  covered  with  soldiers,  they 
broke  it  down  with  their  cannon,  every  person  on  it  being 
drowned. 

Again  the  Pacha  returned  to  the  attack,  and  after  a  con- 
tinual cannonade  for  four  days,  again  opened  a  breach  in  the 

*  See  Hawkins's  Mignot. 
6 


54  HISTORY  OF  THE 

wall.     But  the  fate  of  battle  was  still  on  the  side  of  the 

Knights.     The  Turks  were  repulsed  with  a  great  slaughter 

The  Pacha,  finding  that  the  Grand  Master  was  to  be  sub- 

1481  ^ue(^  ne*tner  Dy  arms5  treachery,  nor  poison,  began  to 
think  of  negotiation,  and  an  honourable  capitulation 

was  offered  to  the  besieged.  Some  of  the  people,  worn  out 
with  fatigue,  sickened  with  the  sight  of  carnage  and  misery, 
and  doubting  what  would  be  the  result  of  the  combat,  were 
in  favour  of  accepting  his  terms.  But  Aubusson,  irritated  at 
such  an  opinion,  exclaimed,  "  Gentlemen,  if  there  be  any  one 
among  you  who  does  not  think  himself  safe  in  this  place,  the 
gate  is  not  so  closely  blocked  up  but  I  can  let  him  out."* 

This  was  sufficient.  Every  man  returned  to  his  duty, 
with  a  determination  to  defend  his  city  to  the  last  extremity, 
and  no  answer  was  returned.  The  Turk  now  swore  he 
would  have  the  whole  city  put  to  the  sword.  He  even  or- 
dered a  quantity  of  stakes  to  be  sharpened  for  the  purpose  of 
empaling  the  Grand  Master  and  his  principal  Knights.  He 
promised  the  pillage  to  the  soldiers,  if  they  would  take  the 
ri ty,  and  the  attack  was  again  commenced  with  redoubled 
fury.  A  breach  was  once  more  made  in  the  wall,  and  the 
Turks  in  great  numbers  mounted  the  bastions.  But  such 
was  the  cool  and  deliberate  courage  with  which  the  Knights 
received  them,  that  they  were  either  run  through  or  thrown 
down  from  the  wall.  Aubusson,  though  twice  wounded, 
still  kept  his  ground,  and  his  blood  so  animated  the  courage 
of  the  Knights  and  soldiers,  that  they  took  immediate  re- 
venge by  clearing  the  ramparts  of  every  Turk  remaining. 
The  Pacha  finding  that  every  effort  to  possess  himself  of 
Rhodes  served  only  to  reduce  his  army,  now  already  -di- 
minished one  half,  and  panic-struck  at  the  consequences  of 
the  last  assault,  suddenly  withdrew  to  Constantinople. 

Soon  after  this  event,  Mahomet  levied  two  numerous  ar- 

1482  m*es' tne  one  destined  to  go  against  the  King  of  Per- 
sia, and  the  other  against  Rhodes.     But  in  the  midst 

of  these  great  projects,  and  greatly  to  the  relief  of  the  east- 
ern world,  that  King,  whose  power  had  been  exercised  over 
so  many  thousands — the  king  of  terrors — seized  and  carried 
him  off. 

*  See  Mignot. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  55 

Greece,  or  some  of  her  islands,  as  though  destined  to  be 
14qe;  the  perpetual  seat  of  war  from  age  to  age,  did  not 
long  remain  in  repose  after  the  death  of  Mahomet. 
His  son,  Bajazet  the  Second,  who  succeeded  him,  had  too 
much  of  his  father's  disposition  to  remain  long  in  peace. 
The  Venetians,  who  possessed  a  considerable  portion  of 
Greece,  had  become  too  commercial  and  thriving  a  people, 
not  to  excite  the  jealousy  or  cupidity  of  the  Turks.  Some 
pretended  commercial  difficulties  became  a  pretext  for  the 
declaration  of  war  on  the  part  of  Bajazet,  and  large  prepara- 
tions were  made  on  both  sides  for  the  contest. 

The  Ottoman  fleet  amounted  to  two  hundred  and  fifty  sail ; 
that  of  the  Venetians  to  about  a  hundred  and  forty  sail.  An  en- 
gagement took  place,  during  which  the  Christians  had  every 
prospect  of  success,  until  on  a  sudden,  the  Turks  discharg- 
ed a  shower  of  inflamed  arrows,  which  set  fire  to  the  sails  of 
the  Venetian  vessels,  and  afterwards  to  the  vessels  themselves. 
This  unexpected  disaster  gave  the  victory  to  the  infidels. 
The  Venetian  fleet  was  chiefly  burned,  or  otherwise  de- 
stroyed, and  a  great  number  of  sailors  perished  miserably 
in  the  flames,  or  being  forced  into  the  water,  were  drowned. 

The  Turks,  following  up  their  victory,  laid  siege  to  the 
city  of  Lepanto,  of  which  they  made  themselves  masters  in  a 
few  days.  The  city  of  Modon,  though  strongly  fortified, 
was  next  to  fall  into  their  hands.  The  immense  booty  which 
the  Turkish  soldiers  found  here  did  not  prevent  them  from 
putting  the  defenceless  inhabitants  to  the  sword.  The  city 
of  Coron  was  menaced  with  the  same  fate  ;  but  the  governor 
determined,  notwithstanding,  to  make  good  his  defence. 
The  people,  however,  hearing  of  the  shocking  barbarities 
committed  in  Modon,  shut  him  up  in  his  house  and  made 
terms  of  capitulation  with  the  Turks.  The  enemy,  now 
having  no  opportunity  of  selling  the  slaves  they  had  already 
taken,  and  not  wanting  more,  put  every  person  to  death  they 
could  find. 

At  this  period  the  kingdom  of  Naples  fell  into  the  hands 
of  the  Spaniards  by  conquest,  and  the  famous  Spanish  Cap- 
tain Gonzalo  de  Cordova,  immediately  joined  the  Venetians 
against  the  Turks,  with  a  fleet  of  thirty  sail.  The  infidels 
now  in  their  turn  were  pursued,  and  many  of  their  ships 
destroyed.  Bajazet,  seeing  that  the  fortune  of  war  had  turn- 
-jkqi  ed  against  him,  proposed  terms  of  peace,  which  were 
gladly  accepted  by  the  Venetians.  Thus  ended  a  war 
of  depredation  and  massacre,  which  had  laid  waste,  and 
nearly  depopulated  some  of  the  finest  provinces  in  Qreece. 


56  HISTORY  OF  THE 

The  Ottoman  empire  now  enjoyed  an  unwonted  tranquilli- 
ty with  all  the  surrounding  nations  for  several  years.  And 
the  Grecian  states,  though  under  the  servitude  of  a  master 
from  whom  kindness  was  not  to  be  expected,  yet  enjoyed  an 
exemption  from  the  horrors  of  war  to  which  they  had  so  long 
been  familiar.  But  the  followers  of  Mahomet  are  by  nature 
too  jealous  and  restless  to  remain  long  in  peace  even  with 
each  other. 

Bajazet,  who  now  lived  in  profound  repose  at  Constanti- 
nople, had  five  sons  who  had  arrived  to  the  age  of  manhood. 
Two  of  these  he  caused  to  be  strangled,  on  pretext  of  diso- 
bedience, or  some  other  slight  offence.  Of  the  three  that 
remained,  Achmet,  the  oldest,  was  the  one  most  beloved  by 
the  father.  To  free  himself  from  the  cares  of  the  throne, 
Bajazet,  now  advanced  in  years,  thought  of  placing  Achmet 
on  it ;  still,  however,  reserving  to  himself  his  authority  in  the 
government,  to  be  employed  as  occasion  might  require. 
The  temperament  of  Achmet  was,  however,  too  pacific,  and 
his  habits  too  tranquil,  to  please  a  soldiery  whose  only  riches 
consisted  in  plunder,  and  whose  only  glory  in  the  shedding 
of  human  blood.  The  abdication  in  favour  of  this  son  was, 
therefore,  a  matter  of  too  much  importance  to  the  Janizaries, 
now  the  ruling  power,  to  be  quietly  permitted.  They  sought 
some  occasion  against  him,  and  finally  decided  among  them- 
selves that  he  should  never  ascend  the  throne. 

Meantime  they  sent  a  deputation  to  Selim,  the  youngest 
son  of  Bajazet,  then  in  a  distant  province,  to  inquire  into  his 
character  for  war,  and  to  ascertain  whether  the  title  of  Em- 
peror would  be  a  sufficient  inducement  to  dethrone  his  fa- 
ther. The  delegation  found  in  this  young  man  the  elements 
of  all  they  could  wish.  He  was  ambitious,  courageous,  and 
cruel.  The  idea  of  possessing  his  father's  throne,  though 
by  violence,  was  delightful  to  him.  An  army  of  twenty 
thousand  men  was  immediately  raised  through  his  interest, 
and  he  crossed  the  Bosphorus,  pretending  that  he  was  going 
to  perform  the  sacred  duty  of  visiting  his  father. 

The  Sultan,  suspecting  the  dutiful  designs  of  his  son,  sent 
out  a  more  powerful  army,  by  whom  he  was  defeated,  and 
for  a  time  this  unnatural  rebellion  was  suppressed. 

Meantime  the  Janizaries  being  determined  to  place  Selim 
on  the  throne,  sent  another  delegation,  inviting  him  to  come 
and  take  command  of  the  Sultan's  troops,  who  were  ready  to 
revolt  in  his  favor.  But  being  taught  by  his  late  defeat,  he 
would  not  hazard  such  an  enterprise,  lest  he  should  lose 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  57 

every  thing.  Could  the  European  garrisons  and  the  Janiza- 
ries be  induced  to  rise  as  a  body,  and  take  part  in  his  enter- 
prize,  so  that  there  could  be  no  fear  of  failure,  he  would 
then  come  and  occupy  the  throne  thus  prepared  for  him. 

Accordingly,  Selim  arrived  in  Constantinople,  under  the 
pious  pretext  of  paying  his  respects  to  his  father.  He 
brought  no  troops  with  him,  but  the  Janizaries  marched  with 
their  arms  to  his  camp,  and  the  European  troops  joined  his 
standard.  The  people  hearing  of  Selim's  arrival,  exclaimed 
in  the  streets,  that  the  glory  of  the  empire,  and  of  the  Otto- 
man arms,  was  about  to  revive,  while  the  miserable  Bajazet 
remained  in  his  divan  chilled  with  terror.* 

The  Sultan,  seeing  that  his  son,  his  army,  his  people,  and 
the  Europeans  were  against  him,  thought  of  nothing  but  re- 
signing his  sceptre,  and  retiring,  to  spend  the  remainder  of 
his  days  in  peace  and  tranquillity.  He  therefore  left  the 
city,  and  was  retiring  to  a  place  of  refuge,  when  his  barba- 
rous and  unnatural  son,  pretending  to  suspect  his  father  of 
conspiring  against  him,  sent  orders  to  a  Jewish  physician  to 
poison  him,  which  was  immediately  done. 

Under  the  reign  of  Selim,  the  Greeks  enjoyed  a  compara- 
tive state  of  repose.  Their  servitude  was  in  no  degree 
lessened,  but  they  possessed  nothing  worthy  of  the  rapa- 
cious arms  of  the  conqueror  of  Egypt  and  Grand  Cairo. 

*  See  Hawkins's  Mignot,  vol.  1.  p.  240. 


6* 


58  HISTORY  OF  TH£ 


CHAPTER  VII. 

Death,  of  Selim. — Solyman  the  First  ascends  the  throne* — 
His  love  of  conquest. — Siege  of  Belgrade* — Collects  tfnd 
sells  religious  relics. — He  besieges  the  Island  of  Rhodes. — 
Solyman  goes  to  Rhodes  to  encourage  his  troops. —  Vigor- 
ous defence  of  the  city  by  the  Knights. — Proposals  for 
Capitulation.- — City  taken,  and  the  inhabitants  leave  the 
Island. — Greece  enjoys  a  period  of  repose. — Solyman  plun- 
ders Corfu,  and  other  Islands. — Siege  of  Malta,  and  de 
feat  of  the  Turks. — Solyman  issues  an  edict  against 
crimes. —  Takes  Scio,  and  establishes  JVIahometanism  in  the 
Island. — Death  of  Solyman. — Selim  the  second  ascends  the 
throne. — He  proves  to  be  a  weak  and  cowardly  Prince. — ■ 
Besieges  the  cities  of  Cyprus. —  Takes  Nicosia,  and  other 
cities,  and  finally  makes  himself  master  of  the  whole  Island. 

On  the  death  of  Selim,  which  happened  in  1520,  Soly- 
man I.,  surnamed  the  magnificent,  ascended  the  throne. 

The  hereditary  spirit  of  conquest  which  had  so  long  ac- 
tuated the  emperors  of  Constantinople,  had  descended  to 
Solyman  in  its  fulness.  His  predecessors  had  left  little  or 
nothing  worthy  his  arms  in  Asia,  he  therefore  determined  to 
turn  them  against  Europe.  His  ministers  to  the  king  of 
Hungary,  had  been  insulted  by  the  populace.  This  was  a 
sufficient  excuse  for  the  acts  of  hostility  which  Solyman 
meditated.  He  immediately  sent  an  army  to  besiege  Belgrade, 
which  soon  fell  into  his  hands.  Here  he  found  many  religious 
relics  which  had  been  long  venerated  by  the  pious  followers 
of  the  cross.  Solyman  ordered  them  to  be  carefully  collect- 
ed, and  carried  to  Constantinople,  where  they  were  shown 
to  devout  Christians  for  money.  He  then  sold  them  to  the 
Greek  patriarch  for  12,000  ducats,  which  he  ordered  him  to 
raise  for  this  purpose  from  those  of  his  communion. 

The  arms  of  the  Porte,  as  we  have  seen,  had  been,  under 
the  reign  of  Mahomet,  turned  against  the  Island  of  Rhodes, 
but  without  success.  Solyman  determined  if  possible  to  re- 
move the  stigma  on  the  glory  of  the  Ottoman  arms,  which 
the  defeat  of  his  predecessor  had  occasioned.  He  therefore 
wrote  to  the  Grand  Master,  L'ile  Adam,  giving  him  formal 
notice  of  his  intention. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  59 

The  Knights  made  preparation  for  their  defence,  by  re- 
pairing the  fortifications  of  Rhodes,  and  by  burning  and  de- 
stroying every  thing  on  the  island,  on  which  the  enemy  might 
subsist. 

Solyman's  fleet  consisted  of  400  sail,  on  board  of  which 
were  an  army  of  150,000  men.  The  Grand  Master,  against 
this  immense  force,  could  muster  only  6,000  men.  The  Sul- 
tan, before  the  attack  began,  offered  the  Knights  and  their 
soldiers  life  and  liberty,  if  they  would  surrender ;  otherwise 
he  declared  he  would  put  them  every  one  to  the  sword,  and 
reduce  their  towers  and  walls  to  the  height  of  the  herb  that 
grew  at  his  feet. 

For  a  long  time  after  the  siege  commenced,  no  impression 
was  made  on  the  walls  of  the  city  ;  while  the  Turks  were  de- 
stroyed in  great  numbers  by  the  cannon  of  the  besieged. 

Solyman,  hearing  that  his  arms  were  resisted  by  a  handful 
of  men,  came  himself  to  the  scene  of  action.  By  encour- 
agements and  threats,  he  caused  the  attack  to  be  made  with 
greater  vigour.  But  the  Knights  defended  themselves  with 
such  courage  and  ability,  that  the  enemy  did  not  dare  to  at- 
tempt an  assault,  until  they  had  battered  the  walls  for  two 
successive  months.  The  assault  was  finally  made  on  the 
five  principal  posts,  called  France,  Spain,  Italy,  Germany, 
England.  These  posts  were  so  named,  because  their  defence 
was  entrusted  to  Knights  belonging  to  these  different  na- 
tions. Notwithstanding  all  the  fury,  as  well  as  confidence, 
with  which  this  attack  was  made,  the  valour  and  personal 
strength  of  the  besieged,  was  more  than  proof  against  the 
number  of  their  enemies.  The  Sultan,  who  saw  that  his 
best  soldiers  perished  by  thousands,  and  that  after  an  assault 
of  six  hours,  the  Knights  stood  their  ground  undaunted,  and 
ready  to  deal  death  on  every  Turk  that  approached  them, 
with  shame  and  vexation,  sounded  a  retreat." 

The  Sultan  lost  20,000  men  in  this  attack.  He  was  about 
to  raise  the  siege  and  leave  the  place,  when  information  was 
given  him,  by  a  letter  conveyed  to  his  camp,  by  means  of  an 
arrow,  that  the  Knights  were  in  want  of  powder,  that  they 
had  lost  many  soldiers,  and  could  not  possibly  hold  out  much 
longer. 

The  Turks,  in  consequence  of  this  information,  renewed 
their  efforts  with  such  fury,  that,  by  relieving  one  another, 
they  kept  up  an  incessant  fire  upon  the  city  night  and  day. 
The  Knights  and  their  soldiers  being  too  few  in  number  to 
relieve  each  other,  were   thus  kept   constantly  on  duty. 


60  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Breaches  were  finally  made  in  the  walls,  which  the  Knights 
could  defend  only  with  the  greatest  difficulty  and  hazard. 
Their  ammunition  began  to  fail,  and  their  provisions  were 
1  ^22  nearty  consumed.  Being  reduced  to  such  extremi- 
ties, the  authorities  of  the  city,  and  the  citizens  them- 
selves, went  to  the  Grand  Master,  and  conjured  him  to  save 
the  lives  of  the  remaining  inhabitants,  and  spare  the  future 
effusion  of  blood,  by  a  capitulation.  To  this  ne  finally  con- 
sented, and  the  terms  being  agreed  on  between  him  and  the 
Sultan,  the  Rhodians  were  allowed  to  leave  their  city  with- 
out molestation.  The  Sultan,  jealous  of  his  honour  as  a 
warrior,  saw  all  the  articles  of  agreement  carried  into  effect. 
He  even  praised  the  valour  of  the  Grand  Master,  and  treated 
him  with  respect  and  kindness.  The  Knights  could  not, 
without  the  greatest  sorrow,  leave  a  place  which  they  and 
their  fathers  had  possessed  for  more  than  200  years,  and 
Avhich  they  had  before  defended,  to  the  astonishment  of  all 
the  world,  and  where  they  had  raised  the  martial  glory  of 
their  order  to  the  highest  pitch  of  fame.  The  inhabitants, 
to  the  number  of  4000,  left  the  island,  under  the  protection 
of  these  brave  warriors. 

The  Turks,  by  their  own  concession,  lost  40,000  men  in 
the  siege  and  capture  of  this  place.  Thus,  from  the  mere 
love  of  conquest,  did  Solyman  the  First  destroy  and  utterly 
ruin  a  city  and  country,  which  for  ages  was  the  most  vener- 
ated spot  on  the  earth.  The  splendour  of  its  palaces,  the 
richness  and  magnificence  of  its  cities,  and  the  glory  of  its 
arms,  dazzled  the  world,  while  the  justice  and  wisdom  of  its 
laws,  and  the  munificence  of  its  public  works,  were  exam- 
ples worthy  the  imitation  of  all  other  nations. 

From  this  period,  Greece  and  its  islands  enjoyed,  for  seve- 
ral years,  an  exemption  from  war.  The  Venetians  possess- 
ed many  of  the  islands  of  the  Archipelago,  which  they  strong- 
ly fortified,  Solyman,  meantime,  extended  his  conquests 
into  Hungary,  Germany,  and  Persia,  carrying  fire  and  sword 
wherever  he  went. 

Having  returned  to  his  capital  with  his  victorious  armies, 
he  enjoyed,  or  rather  permitted  surrounding  nations  to  enjoy, 
a  short  period  of  repose.  But  his  Janizaries,  inured  to  en- 
rich themselves  by  plunder,  could  not  long  be  restrained  in  a 
state  of  inaction.  The  Venetians  were  suspected  of  a  de- 
sign to  violate  a  treaty  which  they  had  made  with  the  Porte. 
This  was  considered  a  sufficient  excuse  to  send  an  army 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  61 

against  them.  The  island  of  Corfu  was  accordingly  pilla- 
1P.ofi  ged,  and  a  vast  amount  of  booty,  and  many  of  the  in- 
habitants, fell  into  the  hands  of  the  Ottomans,  and 
were  sold  as  slaves.  The  islands  of  Skiros,  Patmos,  Stam- 
phalia,  and  Paros,  were  also  taken  possession  of,  and  treated 
in  the  same  manner. 

Solyman,  not  contented  to  witness  the  enjoyment  of  liber- 
ty in  any  Christian  state,  now  turned  his  arms  against  the 
,  -^  island  of  Malta ;  but  after  a  long  siege,  during  which 
the  greatest  barbarities  were  committed,  he  was  final- 
ly obliged  to  relinquish  his  prey  and  retire.  The  mortifica- 
tion occasioned  by  this  defeat,  Avas  too  great  to  be  endured 
in  silence.  On  his  arrival  at  Constantinople,  he  proclaimed 
that  the  cause  of  this  disgrace  on  the  Ottoman  arms,  was 
the  wickedness  of  the  people.  The  sins  of  wine  drinking,, 
and  the  neglect  of  attendance  at  public  prayers,  were  enu- 
merated as  the  chief  causes  of  this  calamity.  Against  these 
and  other  crimes,  he  published  an  edict,  ordering  that  every 
omission  or  commission,  should  be  punished  with  fine,  se- 
vere bastinado,  or  death.  Not  contented  with  venting  his 
spleen  on  Mussulmen  only,  and  being  always  willing  to  per- 
secute Christians,  the  island  of  Scio  also  shared  in  the  effects 
of  his  rage.  This  island  was  inhabited  only  by  manufactu- 
rers and  traders.  They  had  been  so  peaceable  as  hardly  to 
know  the  use  of  iron,  or  steel,  except  in  the  cultivation  of 
their  fields,  or  the  manufacture  of  their  silks.*  This  quiet 
little  community,  Solyman  singled  out  for  destruction.  All 
who  had  any  share  in  the  government,  he  seized,  and  banish- 
ed to  various  places  in  his  dominions.  The  people  and  island 
he  delivered  up  to  rapine  and  pillage;  and,  with  his  usual 
barbarity,  established  Mahometanism  by  the  same  means 
with  which  he  destroyed  Christianity. 

On  the  death  of  Solyman,  Selim  the  second  was  raised  to 
lc.fifi  the  throne  of  Constantinople.  This  prince  was  so 
weak  and  cowardly,  that  he  was  in  constant  appre- 
hension from  his  Janizaries,  who  he  thought  sought  some  oc- 
casion to  put  him  to  death.  He  therefore  was  under  strong 
inducements  to  keep  these  restless  and  blood-thirsty  sol- 
diers constantly  in  the  field  of  battle,  or  to  employ  them  in 
some  country  which  they  could  pillage  and  destroy  at  their 
leisure.  The  Pachas  of  Selim  represented  to  their  master, 
that  the  island  of  Cyprus  was  an  object  worthy  the  Ottoman 

*  Hawkins's  Mignot,  vol.  II.  p.  117. 


63  HISTORY  OF  THE 

arms,  and  that  it  offered  a  field  for  plunder  adequate  even  to 
the  cupidity  of  the  Janizaries.  No  objections  were  made  to 
this  project  on  account  of  the  treaty  of  alliance,  which  ex- 
isted between  the  Venetians,  who  possessed  the  island,  and 
the  Porte.  The  Grand  Vizier,  though  ready  to  break  the 
treaty,  thought  that  Cyprus  contained  too  many  fortified 
towns  for  such  an  enterprise ;  but  the  Pachas  persuaded  the 
Sultan  that  the  more  formidable  the  place,  the  more  glory 
would  redound  to  his  arms,  and  besides  that,  the  longer  the 
Janizaries  were  abroad,  the  longer  his  Highness  would  enjoy 
the  sweets  of  repose  at  home. 

Having  resolved  in  Divan  to  possess  themselves  of  this 
happy  and  beautiful  island,  the  next  step  was  to  find  some 
pretext  for  breaking  a  treaty,  every  article  of  which  the  Ve- 
netians had  scrupulously  observed.  The  Divan  sent  an  Am- 
bassador to  the  Senate  with  orders  to  complain,  though  it. 
was  difficult  to  find  any  subject  of  complaint.  The  Turks., 
however,  made  it  a  point  of  religion,  not  only  to  undertake 
none  but  just  wars,  but  always  to  precede  their  hostile  acts 
by  a  solemn  declaration.*  In  the  present  instance,  the  Vene- 
tians were  accused  of  assisting  in  the  late  Hungarian  war, 
and  of  permitting  freebooters  to  molest  the  Turkish  com- 
merce. The  Venetian  Ambassador  at  the  Porte,  seeing  that 
Selim  only  wanted  work  for  his  Janizaries,  tried  to  point  out 
to  him  some  other  country,  equally  advantageous  for  such  a 
purpose.  But  the  Divan  was  not  to  be  diverted  from  its 
purpose.  An  Ambassador  was  therefore  sent  to  Venice  to 
make  a  formal  claim  of  the  island  of  Cyprus,  and  to  declare 
war,  if  this  demand  was  refused.  The  Venetians  called  in 
the  aid  of  the  Christian  powers  of  Europe  to  defend  against 
the  further  encroachments  of  the  infidels  into  Christendom : — 
But  the  spirit  which  animated  the  Crusaders  had  long  since 
became  extinct,  and  the  state  of  Europe  was  such,  as  to  de- 
mand the  care  of  each  nation,  for  its  internal  concerns. — 
Spain,  and  Pope  Pius  V.,  however,  promised  some  succours. 
The  Ottoman  forces  were  soon  assembled,  and  embarked  in 
two  hundred  vessels,  on  board  of  which  were  eighty  thou- 
sand troops,  twenty  thousand  of  which  were  Janizaries. 

The  city  of  Nicosia  was  first  besieged.  This  stood  in  the 
midst  of  a  fertile  plain,  and  was  strongly  fortified.  Dondolo, 
a  noble  Venetian,  who  commanded  the  place,  depended 
chiefly  for  its  defence,  on  fifteen  hundred  of  his  countrymen, 

*  See  Hawkins's  Mignst 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  63 

although  there  were  ten  thousand  citizens  there,  who  were 
able  to  bear  arms.  With  such  a  disproportion  between  the 
forces,  Nicosia  could  only  hold  out  for  a  month.  Dondolo 
was  obliged  to  capitulate,  and  with  a  promise  that  the  lives 
of  the  inhabitants  should  be  spared,  the  gates  were  opened  to 
the  vanquishers.  But  instead  of  keeping  this  promise,  on 
entering  the  city,  every  one  they  met  was  put  to  the  sword. 
Streams  of  blood  flowed  in  every  part  of  the  city,  and  the 
groans  of  the  dying,  and  the  screams  of  dismay,  were  mixed 
with  the  shouts  of  the  victors.* 

Fifteen  thousand  defenceless  men,  women,  and  children, 
were  massacred,  in  the  streets  and  houses  ;  and  twenty-five 
thousand  men,  whom  they  thought  fit  for  slavery,  were 
bound  in  chains,  and  saved  alive,  only  to  be  sold  into  bon- 
dage. This  rich  and  flourishing  city  was  entirely  given  up 
to  pillage — its  females,  celebrated  for  their  beauty  and  ac- 
complishments, were  forced  to  share  the  beds  of  the  brutal 
janizaries,  or  saved  to  lead  a  still  more  miserable  life  in  the 
seraglio  of  the  Sultan. 

Several  of  these  females,  of  illustrious  families  and  great 
beauty,  knowing  their  horrid  destiny,  determined  to  avoid 
it  by  a  voluntary  death.  They  had  been  but  on  board  a 
vessel,  loaded  with  booty  and  bound  to  Constantinople.  One 
of  them  having  pointed  to  the  others,  the  fate  which  await- 
ed them,  in  the  harem  of  the  Sultan,  they  all  agreed  to  pre- 
vent it,  and  at  the  same  time  deprive  the  barbarians  of  their 
rich  booty.  They  therefore  found  means  to  set  fire  to  the 
magazine,  and  thus,  at  once  destroyed  themselves,  the  vessel, 
and  the  infidels. 

,r^  Having  destroyed  Nicosia,  the  Turks  next  laid 
siege  to  Famagusta,  a  city  on  the  south  side  of  the 
island.  This  place  was  better  fortified  than  Nicosia,  and 
surrounded  by  a  forest  of  orange  and  lemon  trees,  which  the 
besiegers  immediately  destroyed.  Bragadin,  the  commander 
of  the  place,  had  taken  care  that  his  fortifications  should  be 
put  in  the  best  possible  state  of  defence.  Mustapha,  Selim's 
commander,  found  that  the  siege  went  on  slowly,  and  that 
he  could  make  but  little  impression  on  the  walls  of  his  ene- 
my ;  he  therefore,  for  the  present,  turned  the  siege  into  a 
blockade,  and  went  himself  to  examine,  and  ravage  all  the 
open  towns  throughout  the  island.  He  wished  to  ascertain 
the  value  of  his  conquest,  which  he  now  considered  as  cer- 

*  See  Hawkins's  Mignot. 


64  HISTORY  OF  THE 

tain.  Meanwhile  Bragadin  and  his  soldiers  had  not  remain- 
ed idle.  They  repaired  the  walls,  re-cast  some  pieces  of 
cannon,  and  made  preparations  for  a  vigorous  defence. 

Mustapha  returned  to  the  siege,  reinforced  with  20,000 
men.  The  siege  and  defence  were  conducted  with  great 
skill  and  vigour.  The  women,  on  this  occasion,  did  not 
leave  their  husbands  to  defend  the  place  alone,  but  were  con- 
stantly on  the  ramparts,  assisting  and  encouraging  them  to 
acts  of  heroism.  The  fate  of  their  sister  town,  and  the  want 
of  confidence  in  the  faith  of  their  enemies,  made  them  re- 
ject all  ideas  of  surrender,  so  long  as  even  hope  remained. 
After  four  months  and  a  half  siege,  not  one  single  prisoner 
was  made  on  either  side.  It  was  a  war  of  extermination. 
The  Cyprians  would  neither  give  nor  receive  quarter. 
Christians,  driven  to  despair,  became  as  relentless  and  cruel 
as  the  Turks.  Dreadful  slaughter  was  made  on  both  sides. 
Three  fourths  of  the  defenders  of  the  place  were  killed  by 
the  Turkish  cannon,  and  the  walls  became  no  longer  defen- 
sible. In  this  condition  it  was  expected  that  on  the  next  as- 
sault, the  whole  city  must  meet  with  inevitable  death  by  the 
swords  of  the  Turks.  To  avert  so  fearful  an  event,  Braga- 
din, after  many  remonstrances  from  the  people  against  hold- 
ing out  longer,  consented  to  a  capitulation.  Hostages  were 
exchanged,  and  it  was  agreed  that  the  citizens  should  march 
out  with  arms,  baggage,  and  cannon,  and  that  those  who 
wished  to  leave  the  island  should  be  provided  with  vessels 
to  transport  them  to  Candia.  Those  who  remained  were  to 
have  their  liberty,  and  the  free  exercise  of  their  religion, 
and  their  property  was  to  remain  untouched.  These  terms 
being  signed  by  Mustapha,  the  gates  of  the  city  were 
thrown  open,  and  the  soldiers  entered.  But  so  far  from 
abiding  by  the  terms  of  the  treaty,  they  began  immediately 
to  commit  disorders.  Of  this,  Bragadin  made  complaint  to 
the  Turks,  but  without  effect. 

He  then  went  to  the  Pacha's  tent,  attended  by  some  noble 
Venetians,  to  remind  him  of  his  treaty,  and  if  possible  to  pre- 
vail on  him  to  keep  it  inviolate.  Instead  of  being  softened 
toy  the  appeal  in  behalf  of  the  sufferings  of  the  people,  or 
stuck  with  admiration  at  the  presence  of  the  noble  and  pa- 
triotic Bragadin,  Mustapha  ordered  all  these  nobles  to  be 
Joaded  with  chains,  telling  them  at  the  same  time,  with  a 
barbarous  smile,  that  if  Christ  did  not  wrest  them  from  his 
hands,  they  might  expect  to  perish.*  Those  who  were  pre- 
*  Hawkins's  Mignot. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  65 

paring  to  embark  for  Candia,  he  also  seized  and  bound  as 
slaves  to  the  Sultan,  his  master.  All  who  had  accompanied 
Bragadin,  he  ordered  to  be  beheaded  in  presence  of  that  aged 
patriot.  Bragadin  himself  he  reserved  for  more  refined  cru- 
elty. Having  first  loaded  him  with  stones,  and  put  him  to 
the  hardest  and  most  menial  services,  he  then  flayed  him 
alive,  had  his  skin  stripped  off,  which  was  stuffed  with  straw, 
and  carried  to  Constantinople  as  a  trophy.* 

The  arrogance  and  infidelity  of  the  Turks  had  raised  the 
indignation  of  all  surrounding  Christian  nations,  while  their 
conquests  and  their  barbarities  were  the  cause  of  universal 
alarm  and  terror. 

The  application  of  the  Venetians  to  the  neighbouring  na- 
tions for  assistance,  had  not  been  answered  by  any  effective 
means,  until  the  surrender  of  Cyprus.  But  the  confederates 
now  found  themselves  ready  to  put  to  sea,  with  a  fleet  con- 
sisting of  two  hundred  and  twenty  galleys.  This  powerful 
armament  was  commanded  by  that  celebrated  Admiral,  Don 
John,  of  Austria. 

The  Turkish  fleet,  consisting  of  300  sail,  with  more  cou- 
rage than  wisdom,  had  entered  the  Gulf  of  Lepanto,  a  narrow 
strait,  where  their  superior  numbers  could  be  of  no  advan- 
tage to  them.  Ali  Pacha,  the  commander,  began  to  repent 
of  this  rashness,  when  he  saw  John  approach  him  with  a 
fleet,  which,  in  a  strait  line,  extended  from  shore  to  shore. 

The  battle  began  with  great  fury  on  both  sides  ;  but  the 
Turkish  line  was  soon  broken,  by  the  more  skilful  manage- 
ment, of  both  vessels  and  guns,  on  the  part  of  the  Venetians. 
The  two  admiral  galleys  attacked  each  other  with  equal  vi- 
gour and  tletermination  to  conquer.  But  after  a  most  obsti- 
nate engagement,  Ali,  and  almost  all  his  men,  were  killed, 
and  his  galley  taken.  The  victory  on  the  part  of  the  con- 
federates was  complete.  The  Turkish  fleet,  with  the  ex- 
ception of  30  sail,  was  taken  or  destroyed,  and  30,000  of 
their  men  perished.  Fifteen  thousand  Christian  galley 
slaves  were  liberated,  in  consequence  of  this  victory.  These 
miserable  men,  in  truth,  assisted  the  confederates  in  the  work 
of  destruction,  for  no  sooner  than  the  force  of  a  galley  be- 
came so  weak  as  to  be  mastered  by  the  Christians  on  board, 
they  declared  for  their  brethen,  and  assisted  them  in  dispatch- 
ing the  remainder  of  their  tyrannical  masters. 

*  Hawkins's  Mignot. 
7 


66  HISTORY  OF  THE 

The  news  of  this  defeat  spread  consternation  among  the 
Turks.  Selim,  in  the  fury  and  despair  of  the  moment,  or- 
dered all  the  Christians  in  Constantinople  to  be  slaughtered, 
But  his  ministers  represented  to  him,  that  such  a  course 
would  betray  the  greatest  want  of  policy,  and  indeed  would 
be  a  greater  loss  than  that  he  had  already  met  with,  since 
they  could  not  re-build  their  navy  without  the  help  of  Chris- 
tian artists.  The  Sultan,  therefore,  consulting  his  pecuniary 
interest,  revoked  this  barbarous  order.  But  such  was  the 
dread  which  this  signal  victory  produced  at  Constantinople, 
and  such  the  apprehension  for  the  safety  of  that  city,  that 
the  Sultan  removed,  for  a  time,  to  Adrianople,  as  a  place  of 
greater  security.  A  new  fleet  was  built  with  the  utmost  dis- 
patch. The  treasures  of  the  mosques  were  opened  for  this 
purpose,  and  workmen  were  brought  from  Asia,  Europe,  and 
Africa.  No  expense  was  spared  which  could  facilitate  this 
work ;  the  hulks,  masts,  and  rigging  were  made  at  the  same 
time,  so  that  in  less  than  six  months  a  fleet  of  200  galleys, 
completely  equipped,  covered  the  port  of  Constantinople. 

Meantime,  the  cowardly  Sultan  remained  trembling  with 
fear,  at  Adrianople  ;  nor  dared  again  to  visit  his  capital,  un- 
til the  joyful  news  reached  him  that  his  fleet  was  launched, 
and  the  city  secure  against  his  confederated  enemies. 

The  Turkish  fleet  immediately  put  to  sea,  to  seek  their 
enemies  and  prosecute  the  war.  But  the  Venetians,  worn 
down  with  a  struggle,  in  which  they  had  gained  no  solid  ad- 
vantage, but  had  lost  a  large  and  fertile  territory  in  the 
island  of  Cyprus,  were  desirous  of  making  peace.  Their  am- 
bassador at  Constantinople,  therefore,  received  orders  to  ne- 
gotiate, and  after  much  difficulty  and  delay  it  was  settled 
that  the  Turks  should  retain  all  their  conquests,  and  that  the 
Venetians  should  pay  them  300,000  ducats,  by  three  equal 
payments. 

From  this  period,  the  Christians  of  the  Mediterranean  en- 
joyed a  long  exemption  from  the  barbarities  and  conquests 
of  the  Turks.  The  Emperors  who  succeeded  Selim,  during 
several  reigns,  turned  their  arms  against  some  of  the  Asiatic 
nations,  or  were  engaged  in  quelling  repeated  insurrections 
in  their  own  dominions.  The  ancient  Greek  possessions 
had  for  a  long  period  been  in  the  hands  of  some  foreign  pow- 
er, and  had  been  taken,  and  re-taken,  it  appears,  without 
any  considerable  interference  of  the  Greeks  themselves. 
Their  condition  as  vassals  and  slaves,  deprived  them  of  the 
means  of  doing  any  thing  towards  their  own  defence.     It  is 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  67 

true,  that  in  a  choice  of  masters,  Christians  were  preferred 
to  Turks.  But  it  is  also  true,  that  their  servitude,  and  the 
horrid  barbarities  which  they  had  so  long  witnessed,  and 
which  they  had  even  practised,  had  extinguished  their  an- 
cient patriotism,  and  greatly  lowered  the  standard  of  reli- 
gious principle  among  them. 

During  the  reigns  of  Amurath  III.,  Mahomet  III.,  Achmet 
I.,  Mustapha  I.,  and  Amureth  IV.,  history  relates  nothing  of 
particular  interest  concerning  the  Greeks  of  the  Mediterra- 
nean. The  arms  of  their  predecessors  had  reduced  to  bon- 
dage the  finest  parts  of  Greece  Proper,  and  most  of  the  sur- 
rounding islands.  The  Venetians  still  possessed  Candia, 
Tinos,  Cerigo,  and  several  other  islands,  and  were  under  an 
alliance  with  the  Turks,  which  they  took  great  care  not  to 
1644  vi°^ate*  But  during  the  reign  of  Ibrahim  I.  an  occa- 
sion was  taken  to  violate  this  treaty,  and  to  open  the 
way  for  one  of  the  most  bloody  wars  of  the  time. 

A  slave  of  the  seraglio  being  banished  from  Constantino- 
ple, with  her  infant  child  and  retinue,  the  pomp  with  which 
the  banishment  was  conducted  made  the  people  believe  that 
this  was  a  sultaness,  and  the  child  a  young  prince.  In  the 
course  of  their  voyage,  the  vessels  which  carried  them,  took 
shelter  in  the  port  of  Rhodes.  The  kinghts  of  Malta  hear- 
ing of  the  embarkation,  and  being  willing  to  repay  them- 
selves for  some  of  the  expense  they  had  formerly  been  at  to 
defend  their  island  against  the  Turks,  took  possession  of  this 
little  fleet,  and  the  supposed  young  prince.  After  the  cap- 
ture the  knights  retired  into  one  of  the  ports  of  the  island 
of  Candia,  then  in  possession  of  the  Venetians.  The  news 
of  this  outrage  on  the  vessels  of  the  Porte,  produced  great 
indignation  at  the  capital.  The  Sultan  vowed  destruction 
to  the  whole  order  of  the  knights  of  Malta  ;  and  his  vizier 
bitterly  reproached  the  Venetian  ambassador,  accusing  his 
republic  as  an  accomplice  with  the  knights.  Preparations 
were  made,  apparently,  to  carry  the  emperor's  vow  into  ef- 
fect ;  but  his  ministers,  remembering  their  former  attempts 
to  reduce  Malta,  represented  to  him,  that  that  island,  if 
taken,  would  be  found  only  a  barren  rock,  and  of  no  use  to 
him  whatever. — That  since  the  Candians  might  be  brought 
in  as  accomplices  in  the  outrage  committed  on  the  empire,  it 
would  be  just  to  take  their  island  from  them  ;  and  that  such 
an  acquisition  to  his  possessions  in  the  Mediterranean, 
would  greatly  strengthen  his  power  there,  while  it  would 
tend  as  much  to  weaken  that  of  the  Venetians. 


68  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Ibrahim  was  pleased  with  these  prospects,  and  the  expedi- 
tion against  Candia,  was  accordingly  resolved  on  ;  but  lest 
the  Venetians  should  prepare  themselves  for  the  approach- 
ing contest,  it  was  given  out  at  the  Porte,  that  the  expedi- 
tion, for  which  great  preparations  were  making,  was  to  be 
sent  against  Malta. 

The  Ottoman  fleet  set  sail  in  the  spring  of  1645,  and  con- 
.. «--  sisted  of  upwards  of  four  hundred  vessels,  of  various 
sizes.  On  their  arrival  at  Tinos,  an  island  in  the 
JEgean  sea  which  belonged  to  the  Venetians,  they  were  re- 
ceived and  treated  as  friends.  At  Cerigo,  another  island  be- 
longing to  the  Republic,  they  received  the  customary  pre- 
sent of  coffee  and  sugar,  and  assured  the  inhabitants  of  their 
good  intentions.  The  fleet  next  sailed  directly  for  Candia, 
and  the  army  landed  without  opposition. 

The  Capitan  Pacha  also  took  possession  of  the  city  of 
Canea,  without  opposition,  the  Governor  retiring  to  his  gar- 
rison, and  the  inhabitants  to  the  city  of  Retimo.  The  latter 
city  was  then  besieged  and  taken ;  but  from  this  time  the 
Turks  made  no  farther  progress  towards  the  conquest  of  the 
I  nrr*  island  for  the  term  of  four  years,  when  they  reinforced 
their  troops,  and  laid  siege  to  Candia,  the  capital. 

The  knights  of  Malta,  to  the  number  of  sixty,  each  having 
a  company  of  a  hundred  soldiers,  assisted  the  Venetians  in 
this  celebrated  defence.  The  Turks  were  resisted  with  the 
most  consummate  skill,  and  one  half  their  army  soon  destroy- 
ed. The  Capitan  Pacha  was  obliged  to  retire  to  Retimo, 
until  reinforcements  could  arrive,  lest  he  should  not  preserve 
a  sufficient  number  of  men  to  defend  the  country  he  had  al- 
ready conquered.  The  Turkish  army  lay  at  Retimo  for  four 
years,  without  receiving  any  succours  from  the  Porte.  The 
Venetians  meanwhile  were  prevented  from  driving  them  out 
of  the  island  by  some  misunderstanding  among  themselves; 
and  the  Sultan  was  deterred  from  prosecuting  the  Candian 
war  in  consequence  of  disorders  at  home,  and  other  wars  in 
which  he  was  engaged. 

At  length  the  Grand  Vizier  Kiuperli,  a  general  of  great 
celebrity,  proposed  to  conduct,  in  person,  the  war  against 
the  republic.  The  magnitude  of  the  preparations  made, 
was  sufficient  to  show  the  consequence  attached  to  the  re- 
duction of  that  island  at  the  Porte.  More  than  one  hundred 
thousand  fighting  men  were  embarked  as  a  reinforcement  to 
the  army  already  there. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  69 

The  Venetians,  aware  of  those  mighty  preparations,  sent 
to  Malta  for  further  succours,  and  they  also  applied  to  the 
King  of  France  for  assistance  against  the  common  enemy  of 
Christianity.  Lewis  replied,  by  sending  them  seven  thou- 
sand troops  commanded  by  the  Duke  of  Beaufort,  admiral 
of  France.  The  Pope  of  Rome,  as  chief  defender  of  the 
Christian  faith,  had  before  rendered  the  Venetians  considera- 
ble assistance  by  sending  vessels,  men,  and  money.  A  great 
number  of  volunteers  also  arrived  from  various  nations,  but 
particularly  from  France,  from  whence  came  many  gentle- 
men of  the  highest  distinction.  Candia  was  considered  the 
barrier  which  was  to  prevent  the  further  conquests  of  the 
infidels  in  Europe.  This  war  was  therefore  in  defence  of 
Christianity,  and  against  the  abominations  of  Mahometanism. 
And  perhaps  no  struggle  between  nations  was  ever  carried 
on  with  greater  bitterness,  greater  courage,  or  more  skill. 

This  war  has  been  compared  to  that  of  Troy,  which  it  re- 
sembled in  its  length,  and  in  the  obstinacy  of  the  last  siege, 
which  continued  for  more  than  two  years,  and  was  one  of 
the  most  sanguinary  mentioned  in  history.* 

The  Turks  showed  great  knowledge  of  the  military  art  on 
this  occasion,  while  the  confederates  made  all  exertions,  and 
took  advantage  of  all  the  circumstances,  that  seemed  possi- 
ble for  valour  and  conduct,  in  opposition  to  such  superior 
armaments,  f  Kiuperli,  the  Grand  Vizier,  had  so  fortified 
himself  without  the  city,  as  to  bring  his  cannon  to  bear  upon 
its  walls  constantly.  Assaults  were  repeated  three  or  four 
times  every  day.  Sometimes  a  bastion  would  change  mas- 
ters as  often,  and  each  time  be  sprinkled  with  the  blood  of 
Infidels,  or  Christians. 

One  hundred  and  ten  thousand  Turks  perished  before  the 
city,  and  thirty-one  thousand  Christians  were  killed  in  the 
place. 

Finally,  after  a  war  of  fifteen  years,  and  a  siege  of  two 
years  and  five  months,  Candia  could  no  longer  be  defended. 
The  Christians  had  been  reduced  to  three  thousand,  and  the 
city  and  its  walls  were  literally  a  mass  of  ruins. 

A  capitulation  was  signed  by  the  contending  powers,  and 

l  fifift    '*  *s  ^ue  t0  tne  memory  °f tne  Grand  Vizier,  Kiuperli, 

'  to  state,   that  this  treaty  was  carried  into  full  efiect. 

and  that  the  vanquished  were  treated  in  the  most  honourable 

and  humane  manner. 

*  Hawkiira's  MignoU  t  Modern  Europe. 


70  HISTORY  OF  THE 

All  the  inhabitants  who  survived  had  permission  to  leave 
the  place,  so  that  when  the  Turks  entered  the  city,  which 
they  did  in  triumph,  they  found  only  thirty  people  remain- 
ing.— From  that  time  to  the  present,  the  beautiful  and  fertile 
island  of  Candia,  which  once  contained  an  hundred  cities,  has 
been  under  the  despotism  of  the  Turks.  At  present  its 
inhabitants  amount  to  about  three  hundred  thousand,  of 
which  about  one  half  are  Ottomans,  the  other  half  Greeks 
and  Jews. 

After  a  twenty  years'  peace  between  the  Turks  and  Vene- 
tians, founded  on  the  treaty  of  Candia,  the  infidels  committed 
some  outrages  on  the  flag  of  that  proud  and  powerful  repub- 
lic, which  was  the  occasion  of  a  formal  declaration  of  war. 

On  this  occasion  the  Mainotes  of  the  Morea,  who  claim 
the  Spartans  for  their  ancestors,  and  who  retain  all  the  har- 
diness, agility,  and  courage  of  that  warlike  nation,  became  the 
allies  of  the  Venetians.  The  Avar  was  prosecuted  with  great 
vigour  and  ferocity  on  both  sides  ;  but  in  the  Morea  the  allies 
had  altogether  the  advantage  of  their  adversaries.  The 
Turks  were  defeated  before  Coron  and  Calamata,  and  had 
lost  two  battles  beside.  The  Capitan  Pacha,  for  his  own 
safety  was  obliged  to  flee,  and  took  refuge  in  the  island  of 
Rhodes,  where,  however,  he  did  not  think  himself  in  safety 
until  the  port  was  shut  with  a  chain. 

During  the  after  campaigns,  the  infidels  not  only  gained 
1fiQ,~    nothing,   but  lost   considerable  portions  of  ancient 
*  '  Greece.     In  that  of  1687,  General  Morosini  beat  the 

Seraskier  of  the  Morea  in  many  battles,  and  took  from  him 
Patras,  Lepanto,  Misitra,  Lacedemonia,  Corinth,  and  Athens. 
In  short,  all  the  Morea,  and  the  whole  province  of  Attica,  fell 
into  the  hands  of  the  Venetians. 

The  Venetians,  however,  soon  found  that  their  allies,  the 
Mainotes,  had  no  thought  of  submitting  to  a  new  master, 
because  they  had  got  rid  of  an  old  one.  Under  the  Turk- 
ish government  they  had  been  allowed  the  free  exercise  of 
their  religion,  which  was  that  of  the  Greek  communion. — 
Their  alliance  with  the  Venetians  had  been  the  means  of  in- 
troducing among  them  many  zealous  priests  of  the  Latin  com- 
munion. These  Italians,  enemies  to  toleration,  had  so  much 
influence  with  the  authorities,  as  to  get  an  order  issued,  to  re- 
strain the  reading  of  the  Greek  liturgy,  and  even  to  demo- 
lish several  churches.  The  hardy  Mainotes  spurned  such 
treatment,  and  determined  not  to  submit.  They  asked  of 
the  Porte  a  governor  of  their  own  communion.    A  Mainote 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  71 

slave  who  had  been  long  in  servitude  under  a  Turkish  mas- 
ter, was  selected  for  this  purpose.  He  arrived  in  his  own 
country  with  the  sword,  mace,  and  investiture  of  the  Sultan, 
and  raised  the  standard  of  rebellion.  His  countrymen,  en- 
thusiastic in  the  cause  of  their  religion,  at  once  threw  off  all 
allegiance  to  the  Venetians,  and  joined  the  standard  of 
their  deliverer.  Little  blood  was  shed  in  this  revolution, 
since  the  Latins,  being  spread  all  over  the  country  of  the 
Mainotes,  could  not  collect  a  sufficient  number  in  time  to 
prevent  its  becoming  general. 

The  other  provinces  of  the  Morea  remained  at  peace  with 
the  Venetians,  though  it  was  by  no  means  certain  that  the 
inhabitants  considered  their  condition  any  better  under  the 
Latin  Christians,  than  under  the  Mahometans.  But  how- 
ever the  Greeks  might  have  felt  on  this  exchange  of  masters, 
the  Turks  were  exceedingly  irritated,  that  the  Christians 
should  possess  so  fine  a  country  which  was  once  tributary  to 
their  government.  They  therefore  only  waited  a  convenient 
opportunity  to  again  attempt  its  reduction. 

Internal  commotion  and  foreign  wars  had  long  absorbed 
the  sole  attention  of  the  Porte  ;  but  after  the  departure  of 
Charles  of  Sweden  from  his  confinement  at  the  capital,  the 
Turkish  empire  enjoyed  a  profound  repose.  The  Janiza- 
ries, as  usual,  having  nothing  to  do,  had  become  trouble- 
some, and  even  dangerous  to  their  master.  They  required 
enemies  for  the  exercise  of  their  swords,  and  plunder  to  en- 
rich themselves.  The  Morea  was  a  country  which  present- 
ed ample  rewards  to  the  conqueror,  and  the  Venetians  had 
long  since  been  guilty  of  wresting  it  from  its  rightful  owners. 

These  consideratious  were  sufficient,  and  it  was  decreed 
in  Divan  that  the  Morea  should  again  be  taken  under  the 
protection  of  the  Porte. 

Considerable  preparations  were  made  for  this  expedition, 
and  the  surrounding  nations  saw  that  some  foreign  country 
was  menaced,  but  no  one  knew  which.  The  Knights  of 
Malta  prepared  to  make  good  their  defence  against  their  old 
enemies,  and  several  other  powers  kept  an  eye  of  suspicion 
on  these  preparations  for  war.  The  Venetians  were,  how- 
ever, lulled  into  a  fatal  security.  They  believed  that  the 
Ottoman  armament  was  intended  to  act  against  their  neigh- 
bours, but  not  against  themselves. 

The  Venetians  had  only  eight  thousand  men  on  which 
they  could  depend,  for  the  defence  of  the  whole  of  the  Mo- 
rea.    As  soon  as  Delphino,  the  Governor,  learned  that  the 


n  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Turkish  fleet  was  on  the  Grecian  coast,  he  distributed  this 
small  force  among  the  most  important  places,  and  made  the 
best  disposition  for  defence  in  his  power. 
i~iq  Meanwhile  the  Capitan  Pacha  arrived  with  his 
army,  consisting  of  70,000  veteran  Janizaries  and 
soldiers,  at  the  island  of  Cerigo,  on  the  southern  coast  of 
Greece.  This  island  surrendered  without  drawing  a  sword, 
and  the  Pacha  caused  it  to  be  dismantled  of  its  fortifications. 
The  inhabitants  he  transported  into  Africa.  The  army  then 
landed  on  the  main,  and  soon  took  possession  of  the  Isthmus 
of  Corinth,  the  key  of  the  Morea.  Napoli  di  Romania  was 
next  taken,  and  in  succession  every  other  town  in  the  Morea. 
The  Governor  saw  with  regret  and  surprise  that  the  whole 
of  that  great  country  was  destined  again  to  fall  under  the 
Turkish  bondage.  But  he  saw  also,  that  any  opposition  he 
could  make  against  a  force  so  overwhelming,  would  only  be 
delivering  his  troops  up  to  the_  Ottoman  sword.  Many  of  the 
Greeks  too,  rather  encouraged  this  conquest  than  opposed 
it.  The  persecution  by  the  Latins,  under  the  Venetian  go- 
vernment, had  been  such  as  to  hinder  the  peaceable  exercise 
of  their  religious  rites,  and  they  hoped  for  the  liberty  of 
partaking  their  communion,  and  of  reading  their  liturgy,  with 
more  freedom  under  the  domination  of  the  Turks. 


CHAPTER  VIII. 

Greeks  join  the  Russians  against  Turkey. — Idea  of  driving 
the  Turks  from  Europe. — Catharine  proposes  to  free 
Greece. — Political  state  of  Greece. — Defects  of  the  Gre- 
cian character. — Astonishing  that  they  are  not  still  more 
debased. —  They  hear  the  Turkish  yoke  with  impatience. — 
Possess  a  manly  courage. — Ambitious  to  become  waywodes. 
— Danger  attending  that  office. — Proposition  to  slaughter 
all  the  Greeks. —  Turkish  right  of  possession. — Greeks 
never  admitted  to  the  rights  of  citizens. -^-Massacre  of 
Greeks  in  the  Morea. —  Turks  always  faithless. —  War  be- 
tween Russia  and  Turkey. — Empress  sends  manifestoes 
to  Greece. — Captain  Psaro. — Delegates  sent  to  the  Em- 
press.—  Their  Memorial. — Plan  to  raise  an  army  in  Greece 
and  invade  Turkey. — Constantine  to  be  Emperor  of  Con- 
stantinople.— Arrival  of  General  Tamara  in   Greece*— * 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  73 

Bravery  of  Lambro. — Failure  of  the  expedition. — Peace 
between  Turkey  and  Russia. 

Having  in  the  preceding  chapters  given  a  rapid  sketch  of 
the  condition  and  vicissitudes  of  Greece  and  several  of  its 
islands,  from  the  time  of  the  Roman  invasion,  to  1718,  when 
the  Morea  was  re-taken  by  the  Turks,  we  now  shall  hasten 
to  the  period  when  the  Greeks  began  to  think  of  their 
emancipation. 

In  the  war  between  Russia  and  Turkey,  which  happened 
several  years  anterior  to  the  period  of  which  an  account  will 
presently  be  given,  the  Greeks  took  up  arms  and  joined  the 
Russians.  .  The  progress  made  against  the  Turkish  power 
in  Europe,  during  that  war,  which  continued  from  1769  to 
1774,  was  very  considerable  ;  and,  according  to  the  opinion 
of  Mr.  Eton,  had  the  Russian  admiral  been  a  man  of  expe- 
rience or  enterprise,  it  might  have  ended  in  the  total  expul- 
sion of  the  Turks  from  Europe.  It  was  probably  the  ac- 
quaintance which  arose  during  this  war,  and  the  knowledge 
which  the  Russians  obtained  of  the  miserable  servitude  of 
the  Greeks,  that  laid  the  foundation  of  an  attempt  to  effect 
their  emancipation.  Their  country  as  we  have  stated,  had 
been  the  scene  of  perpetual  conflicts  between  foreign  na- 
tions, but  the  Greeks  themselves  had  never  taken  up  arms 
with  a  determination  of  freeing  themselves  entirely  from  the 
power  of  foreigners.  A  change  of  masters,  or  a  removal  of 
a  heavier  for  a  lighter  burthen,  appears  to  have  been  all  they 
had  ever  attempted,  or  even  thought  of. 

To  Peter  the  Great  is  attributed  the  first  conception  of 
restoring  the  empire  of  the  east,  and  of  driving  the  Otto- 
mans from  Europe.  This  project  was  pursued  with  earnest- 
ness by  his  successors ;  and  Catharine,  whatever  her  real 
object  might  have  been,  was  the  first  potentate  who  seriously 
proposed  to  free  Greece  from  the  power  of  the  infidels.  The 
political  state  of  Greece,  and  the  character  of  its  inhabitants 
at  that  period,  we  will  recite  from  Mr.  Eton,  who,  though 
in  some  instances,  perhaps  too  partial  to  the  Greeks,  was 
still  well  informed  on  this  subject.  The  present  struggle 
shows  that  his  views  and  opinions  did  not  want  foundation. 
"The  political  state  of  Greece,"  says  he,#  "has  long  announ- 
ced to  the  attentive  observer  that  explosion  which  late  events 
seem  to  have  happily  promoted.    Greece  can  no  longer  sub- 

*  Eton's  Survey  of  the  Turkish  Empire,  p.  320. 


74  HISTORY  OF  THE 

mit  to  the  Turkish  yoke  ;  she  pants  for  emancipation,  and 
already  aspires  to  be  ranked  among  the  independent  states 
of  Europe.  The  rise,  or  rather  the  renovation,  of  her  power 
will  form  an  important  era  in  European  politics :  to  appre- 
ciate its  probable  consequences,  we  must  consider  the  past 
and  present  circumstances  of  that  famous  country;  we  must 
recur  to  the  eclipse  of  her  former  splendour  by  the  Turkish 
conquest,  to  the  long  night  of  barbarism  and  oppression  in 
which  she  has  been  overwhelmed,  and  to  those  struggles 
which  of  late  years  have  shown  that  she  is  about  to  awake 
to  the  assertion  of  her  native  rights. 

"  It  is  not  here  my  intention  to  trace  the  details  of  classic 
story,  to  describe  those  heroic  ages  when  the  splendour  of 
genius  and  illumination  of  science  seemed  to  be  concen- 
trated within  the  narrow  boundaries  of  Greece,  and  by  their 
irradiation  to  communicate  animation  and  improvement  to 
.surrounding  nations  ;  it  will  be  sufficient  for  me  to  call  to 
the  remembrance  of  the  scholar  some  of  the  brightest  pages 
in  the  history  of  mankind;  it  will  be  sufficient  to  cite  the 
names  of  those  poets  and  orators,  those  statesmen  and 
moralists,  whose  illustrious  deeds,  and  whose  admirable  pre- 
cepts, still  extort  the  applauses  of  the  universe. 

"  India  and  Egypt  had  for  many  preceding  ages  cultivated 
the  arts ;  but  these  countries  were  only  the  cradle  of  know- 
ledge ;  wiien  transported  to  the  genial  climate  of  Greece, 
fostered  by  her  political  freedom,  and  animated  by  her  viva- 
city and  enterprise,  it  quickly  attained  the  sublimest  heights, 
and  invested  the  human  character  with  a  dignity  before  un- 
known. 

"Ancient  Rome,  the  victorious  rival  of  Greece,  in  arms, 
caught  from  her  captives  the  inspiration  of  genius  ;  but  she 
never  reached  a  similar  degree  of  sublimity ;  she  imitated, 
but  never  equalled  the  poets,  the  orators,  the  historians,  and 
the  artists  of  Greece. 

"  Such  a  nation  could  never  have  fallen  under  the  yoke 
of  a  Turkish  conqueror,  had  she  not  been  prepared  for  that 
disgrace  hy  a  long  period  of  debasement  and  superstition. 
When  this  last  and  most  terrible  catastrophe  arrived,  she 
saw  her  cities  and  palaces  laid  in  ashes,  and  the  magnificent 
monuments  of  her  ancient  glory  levelled  with  the  dust,  by 
the  rude  strokes  of  those  ferocious  barbarians,  she  saw  her 
sons,  a  race  who  had  graced  and  dignified  society,  slaugh- 
tered without  distinction  and  without  mercy,  or  subjected  to 
a  captivity  still  worse  than  slaughter ;  but  yet  her  weepin^ 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  75 

genius  seemed  to  linger  among  the  melancholy  ruins,  and  re- 
luctant to  leave  them,  to  carry  with  her  the  infant  remnants 
of  learning  and  taste  into  more  fortunate  regions,  where  she 
sowed  the  seeds  of  that  civilization  and  science,  which  at 
the  present  day  so  eminently  flourish  in  Europe. 

"  Conquered  Greece  polished  Rome,  but  the  conquerors 
were  Romans.  Conquered  Greece  did  not  polish  Turkey, 
for  the  conquerors  were  Turks.  The  insensibility  of  these 
barbarians  is  astonishing ;  living  amid  the  effulgence  of 
genius,  they  have  not  caught  one  spark  ;  they  gaze  with  un- 
feeling stupidity  on  the  wonder  and  boast  of  art,  on  their 
glorious  monuments,  on  their  temples,  and  conclude  they 
were  built  by  genii,  and  then  destroy  them,  to  burn  the  mar- 
ble for  lime,  to  make  stucco  for  their  own  tasteless  houses  ; 
whence  the  fine  arts  are  banished  ;  where  ignorance,  tyran- 
ny, superstition,  and  gross  sensuality  do  dwell,  in  sad  and 
stupid,  solemn  pomp,  or  issuing  out  with  savage  fury,  lay 
waste  the  country  round,  and  imbrue  their  hands  in  the  blood 
of  the  helpless,  murdering  those  they  have  conquered  with- 
out remorse.  Thus  the  finest  countries  in  the  world  have 
become  deserts ;  part  inhabited  by  savage  beasts,  and  part 
by  more  savage  men  ;  the  poor  aborigines  skulking  in  hiding 
places  like  the  timid  hare,  (which  epithet  the  Turks  give 
them  in  derision,)  while  those  beasts  of  prey  roam  abroad. 

"  Every  object,  moral  and  physical,  the  fair  face  of  nature, 
and  the  intellectual  energies  of  the  inhabitants,  have  alike 
been  blasted  and  defiled  by  the  harpy-touch  of  Turkish  ty- 
ranny. As  an  instance  of  those  changes  which  the  country 
has  undergone,  we  need  only  consider  the  island  of  Cyprus, 
now  an  almost  uninhabited  desert,  which  was,  not  only  in 
ancient  times,  but  when  it  was  taken  by  the  Venetians,  popu- 
lous and  exceedingly  rich.  The  gentry  lived  like  princes, 
in  splendour,  and  even  the  peasants  had  each  of  them  at 
least  a  silver  cup,  a  spear,  knife,  and  fork.  The  number 
and  excellency  of  its  productions  were  wonderful.  At  pre- 
sent, only  a  little  cotton,  some  silk  and  wine,  and  a  few 
drugs,  are  its  produce. 

"  Of  the  defects  of  Grecian  character,  some  are  doubtless 
owing  to  their  ancient  corruptions,  but  most  of  them  take 
their  rise  in  the  humiliating  state  of  depression  in  which  they 
are  held  by  the  Turks.  This  degradation  and  servility  of 
their  situation  has  operated  for  centuries,  and  has  conse- 
quently produced  an  accumulated  effect  on  the  mind ;  but 
were  this  weight  taken  off,  the  elasticity  and  vigour  of  the 


76  HISTORY  OF  THE 

soul  would  have  wide  room  for  expansion,  and  though  it 
cannot  be  expected  that  they  would  at  once  rise  to  the  proud 
distinction  of  their  former  heroes,  they  would  doubtless  dis- 
play energies  of  mind,  which  the  iron  hand  of  despotism  has 
long  kept  dormant  and  inert.  It  is  rather  astonishing  that 
they  have  retained  so  much  energy  of  character,  and  are  not 
more  debased  ;  for  like  noble  coursers,  they  champ  the  bit 
and  spurn  indignantly  the  yoke ;  when  once  freed  from  this, 
they  will  enter  the  course  of  glory.  The  truth  of  these  ob- 
servations will  appear,  whether  we  consider  the  Greeks  in 
their  common  character  as  one  people,  or  whether  we  con- 
sider them  according  to  their  local  and  peculiar  distinctions. 

"  When  we  view  the  Greeks  in  their  more  comprehensive 
character  as  a  nation,  their  superiority  over  the  Turks  in 
knowledge  is  surprisingly  great ;  they  possess  a  great  degree 
of  genius  and  invention,  and  are  of  so  lively  an  imagination, 
that  they  cannot  tell  the  same  story  twice  without  varying 
the  embellishments  of  circumstance  and  diction  ;  added  to 
this,  both  men  and  women  speak  much,  and  with  wonderful 
volubility  and  boldness,  and  no  people  are  such  natural  ora- 
tors ;  numbers  of  them  speak  Italian,  but  all  have  an  activi- 
ty and  sprightliness  which  strongly  contrasts  with  the  stupid 
and  pompous  gravity  of  the  Turks.  An  European  feels  him- 
self as  it  were  at  home  with  them,  and  amongst  creatures  of 
his  own  species  ;  but  with  Mussulmen  there  is  a  distance,  a 
non-assimilation,  a  total  difference  of  ideas,  and  the  more 
he  knows  their  language,  the  more  he  perceives  it.  On  the 
contrary,  the  more  intimately  he  knows  the  Greeks,  the 
more  similar  does  he  find  them  in  habits  and  manners  to 
other  Europeans. 

"  They  bear  the  Turkish  yoke  with  greater  impatience 
than  other  Christians,  (who  have  long  ceased  to  struggle 
against  it,)  and  possess  a  spirit  of  enterprise,  which,  however 
ridiculed  by  some  authors,  often  prompts  them  to  noble 
achievements.  Their  ancient  empire  is  fresh  in  their  memo- 
ry; it  is  the  subject  of  their  popular  songs,  and  they  speak 
of  it  in  common  conversation  as  a  recent  event. 

"  That  they  possess  a  firm  and  manly  courage,  notwith- 
standing the  insinuations  of  their  calumniators,  has  been  too 
often  testified  to  be  in  the  least  doubtful ;  the  instances 
which  they  have  displayed  in  the  Russian  service  has  been 
truly  striking.  They  are  passionate,  and  sometimes  given  to 
assassination  ;  but  except  in  Zante  and  Cephalonia,  the  sti- 
letto is  not  so  frequent  with  them  as  with  the  Italians,  whom 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  Tl 

they  in  general  resemble ;  the  best  of  them,  if  we  add  more 
energy,  being  very  similar  in  character  to  the  Venetians,  and 
the  worst,  to  the  Genoese." 

"  The  most  observable  difference  in  the  Grecian  charac- 
ter, is  between  those  of  Constantinople  and  their  countrymen 
of  the  islands.  The  merchants  and  lower  orders  of  those  at 
Constantinople,  have  indeed  no  very  marked  character;  they 
are  much  the  same  as  the  trading  Christians  in  all  parts  of 
the  Empire,  that  is  to  say,  as  crafty  and  fraudulent  as  the 
Jews,  but  less  so  than  the  Armenians,  who  are  the  most 
subtle  of  all  usurers." 

"  But  there  is  in  the  suburb,  called  the  Fenar,  a  race  of 
Greeks,  who  call  themselves  nobles,  and  affect  to  despise 
those  of  the  islands.  They  are  certain  opulent  families, 
from  which  are  generally  appointed  the  dragomans  of  the 
Porte,  and  the  waywodes  of  Wallachia  and  Moldavia.  They 
have  kept  these  places  among  them,  as  they  are  mostly  allied 
to  each  other,  and  keep  up  a  constant  connexion  with  the 
officers  of  the  Porte.  They  are  continually  intriguing  to 
get  those  in  office  removed,  and  obtain  their  places ;  even 
children  cabal  against  their  fathers,  and  brothers  against 
brothers.  They  are  all  people  of  good  education,  and  are 
polite,  but  haughty,  vain,  and  ambitious,  to  the  most  ridicu- 
lous degree,  considering  the  contempt  they  are  treated  with 
by  the  Turks." 

"  Strange  as  is  the  infatuation  which  induces  these  Greeks 
io  aim  at  the  post  of  waywodes,  it  is  perhaps  not  more  as- 
tonishing than  many  examples  which  daily  occur,  in  other 
nations,  of  the  power  of  ambition.*  Though  styling  them- 
selves noble,  and  affecting  a  superiority  over  the  other 
Greeks,  they  only  have  relinquished  the  ancient  Grecian 
spirit :  they  seem  not  anxious,  as  the  islanders  are,  for  liber- 
ty, but  delight  in  their  false  magnificence,  and  in  the  petty 
intrigues  of  the  Seraglio ;  and  their  pride  is  to  appear  in  their 
dress  like  the  Turks  ;  and  yet  the  situation  which  they  are 
thus  eager  to  obtain,  is  beset  with  perils,  and  scarcely  one 
who  holds  it  escapes  deposition  and  punishment." 


*  We  see  nothing  strange  or  singular  in  this  propensity  to  obtain 
places  of  office  and  emolument.  A  Greek,  when  once  in  office,  exer- 
cises all  the  authority  and  tyranny  which  is  so  much  complained  of 
among  the  Turks.  Mr.  Eton  describes  on  the  same  page,  indeed,  the 
very  reason  why  this  place  is  worthy  of  ambition.  The  way  wode  moves 
m  state,  and  is  enabled  to  give  sinecures  to  his  relations  and  friands 
Such  infatuation  is  the  common  lot  of  man. 

8 


78  HISTORY  OF  THE 

"  No  sooner  is  the  waywode  appointed,  than  he  sets  out 
in  great  state  for  his  government,  attended  by  a  crowd  of  his 
relatives  and  dependants,  for  all  of  whom,  as  well  as  for  his 
own  splendour,  he  must  provide,  by  oppressing  the  unhappy 
subjects  of  his  tyranny.  Meanwhile,  his  countrymen  at 
Constantinople  are  engaged  in  continual  plots  for  his  re- 
moval, and  it  becomes  necessary  for  him  to  accumulate  a 
large  sum,  to  bribe  the  ministers  and  others  on  his  return, 
and  to  avert  the  persecution  which  continues  for  years  after- 
wards to  hang  over  him. 

"  The  Greeks  of  Macedonia  are  robust,  courageous,  and 
somewhat  ferocious ;  those  of  Athens  and  Attica  are  still  re- 
markably witty  and  sharp ;  all  the  islanders  are  lively  and 
gay,  fond  of  singing  and  dancing  to  an  excess,  affable,  hos- 
pitable, and  good  natured :  in  short,  they  are  the  best.  Those 
of  the  Morea  are  much  given  to  piracy ;  but  it  is  not  to  be 
wondered  at,  considering  the  cruel  treatment  they  have  met 
with,  and  the  struggles  they  are  continually  making  against 
the  Turks.  Those  of  Albania  and  Epirus,  and  in  general 
the  mountaineers,  are  a  very  warlike,  brave  people ;  but 
they  are  very  savage,  and  make  little  scruple  of  killing  and 
robbing  travellers.  A  Turk  cannot  venture  in  their  country 
alone,  for  there  is  no  one  in  it,  but  would  make  a  merit  of 
shooting  him,  so  deeply  rooted  is  their  hatred  to  their 
oppressors. 

"  It  is  scarcely  possible,"  continues  Mr.  Eton,  "  for  any 
person  not  to  be  mistaken  in  judging  of  the  conduct  of  the 
Porte  towards  its  provinces,  by  any  analogy  from  the  politi- 
cal operations  of  other  nations.  Amongst  us,  the  unsuccess- 
ful revolt  of  a  whole  province  would  indeed  give  birth  to 
some  additional  rigour,  and  to  some  striking  example  of 
punishment ;  but  the  ferocious  Turk  proposes  nothing  short 
@f  extermination,  in  order  to  free  himself  from  the  fear  of 
future  defection.  It  was  thus,  that  when  the  inhabitants  of 
the  Morea,  who,  instigated  by  the  desire  of  liberty,  had  ta- 
ken up  arms  in  favour  of  Russia,  returned  to  their  yoke,  a 
deliberate  proposal  was  made  in  Divan,  to  slaughter  them  all 
in  cold  blood,  innocent  and  guilty,  of  whatever  age  or  sex. 
Nor  was  this  the  first  time  that  the  massacre  of  the  whole 
Greek  nation  had  been  seriously  debated.  It  was,  how- 
ever, in  the  present  instance,  successfully  opposed  by  Gazi- 
Hassan,  both  on  motives  of  humanity  and  policy.  The 
chief  argument  which  he  used,  and  which  alone  carried  con- 
viction to  his  hearers,  was :  "  if  toe  hill  all  the  Greeks,  toe' 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  79 

shall  lose  all  the  capitation  they  pay."  Even  without  such  a 
provocation,  Sultan  Mustapha,  on  his  accession  to  the 
throne,  proposed  to  cut  off  all  the  Christians  in  the  Empire, 
and  was  with  difficulty  dissuaded  from  it.* 

In  respect  to  the  right  of  possession,  which  the  Turks 
ought  to  have  over  their  conquered  provinces,  Mr.  Eton  says, 
"  The  Greeks  were  conquered  by  the  Turks,  but  they  were 
(like  all  other  nations  they  conquered)  attacked  by  them 
without  provocation.  It  was  not  a  war  for  injury,  or  insult 
received,  for  jealousy  of  power,  or  for  the  support  of  an  ally, 
contests  which  ought  to  end,  when  satisfaction  or  submis- 
sion is  obtained  :  it  was  a  war,  having  for  its  aim  conquest, 
and  for  its  principle,  right  to  the  dominion  of  the  whole  earth ; 
a  war  which  asserted  that  all  other  sovereigns  were  usurp- 
ers, and  that  the  deposing  and  putting  them  to  death  was  a 
sacred  duty.  Do  the  laws  of  nations  establish,  that  such  a 
conquest  gives  right  of  possession  ?  They,  on  the  contrary, 
declare  such  conquests,  usurpation." 

The  conquered  were  never  admitted  by  the  Turks  to  the 
right  of  citizens,  or  fellow  subjects,  unless  they  abjured  their 
religion,  and  their  country;  they  became  slaves,  and  as,  ac- 
cording to  their  law,  the  Turks  have  a  right  at  all  times  to 
put  to  death  their  prisoners,  the  conquered  and  their  poste- 
rity are  forever  obliged  annually  to  redeem  their  heads,  by 
paying  the  price  set  on  them.  They  are  excluded  from  all 
the  offices  of  state  ;  it  is  death  for  a  conquered  Greek  to 
marry  a  Turkish  woman  ;  they  are  in  every  respect  still 
treated  as  enemies  ;  the  testimony  of  a  Greek  is  not  valid  in 
a  court  of  judicature,  when  contrasted  with  that  of  a  Turk  ; 
even  their  houses  are  painted  of  a  different  colour  ;  in  fine, 
they  are  as  totally  distinct  a  nation  as  they  were  on  the  day 
they  were  conquered,  and  therefore,  have  the  same  right 
now  as  they  had  then,  to  free  themselves  from  the  barbarous 
usurpers  of  their  country. 

At  the  close  of  the  war  between  the  Russians  and  Turks 
in  1774,  it  was  stipulated  by  treaty  between  the  two  nations, 
that  Russia  should  restore   to  the  Sublime  Porte  all  the 


*  Tlttise  propositions  will  not  appear  extraordinary,  when  it  is  consi- 
dered that  the  law  of  Mahomet  makes  the  destruction  of  infidels  a  source 
of  merit.  Nor  does  it  seem  cruel  in  the  eye  of  a  Turk  to  kill  his  natu- 
ral enemy,  when  it  is  well  known  that  on  the  accession  of  a  Sultan  to 
the  throne,  the  custom  has  been,  for  him  to  order  all  his  brothers  to  be 
strangled  in  his  presence.  This,  with  an  exception  or  two,  has  always 
been  the  first  business  of  the  new  Sultan. 


SO  <       HISTORY  OF  THE 

islands  of  the  Archipelago,  which  were  under  its  dependence 
and  it  was  solemnly  and  sacredly  stipulated  by  the  Sublime 
Porte,  that  the  inhabitants  of  the  realm,  so  restored,  should 
enjoy  a  general  amnesty,  and  that  all  crimes  whatever,  com- 
mitted against  the  Porte,  should  be  forgiven ;  that  neither 
the  Christian  religion,  nor  its  character,  should  suffer  the 
smallest  oppression ;  and  that  families  which  wished  to  leave 
the  country  should  freely  depart,  &c. 

Notwithstanding  these  sacred  engagements,  almost  as  soon 
as  the  Russians  had  left  the  country,  already  exhausted  by 
war,  the  Turks  fell  upon  the  defenceless  and  unsuspecting 
inhabitants,  and  massacred  great  numbers,  particularly  in 
the  Morea.  Whole  districts  were  left  without  an  inhabitant, 
and  that  fine  country  was  reduced  to  a  desert.* 

This  terrible  punishment  was  inflicted  on  the  inhabitants 
for  having  joined  the  Russians  in  the  war.  The  Russians, 
however,  as  well  as  the  miserable  inhabitants,  depended  on 
the  treaty  to  save  them  from  the  common  lot  of  all  who  fall 
into  Turkish  power.  But  the  mufti,  or  priests  of  Mahomet, 
do  not  hesitate  to  teach  that  no  faith  is  to  be  kept  with  Chris- 
tians ;  nor  do  the  Turks  hesitate  to  put  this  precept  in 
practice  whenever  it  is  found  to  be  for  their  interest,  or 
whenever  they  can  do  it  with  impunity,  and  at  the  same  time 
dip  their  swords  into  the  blood  of  Christians. 

In  the  account  of  their  innumerable  battles  and  sieges,  it 
is  as  difficult  to  find  an  instance  where  the  terms  of  capitula- 
tion have  been  strictly  kept  with  Christians,  as  it  is,  in  read- 
ing their  history,  to  find  a  Sultan  who  did  not  strangle  his 
brothers  on  the  first  day  of  his  coronation.  After  swearing 
by  the  head  of  Mahomet,  the  strongest  and  most  sacred  oath 
a  Turk  can  take,  to  spare  life,  limb,  and  property,  these 
faithless  wretches  make  it  a  point  of  religion,  to  murder, 
maim,  and  destroy,  the  moment  they  possess  the  power. 
The  history  of  their  wars  present  numerous  instances  where 
cities  and  communities  have  fallen  into  their  hands  on  the 
strength  of  such  oaths,  and  have  been  utterly  destroyed  : 
women  and  children  massacred  without  mercy,  and  cities 
sacked  and  burned  without  remorse. 

The  sufferings  of  the  Greeks,  and  the  inevitable  conse- 
quences which  they  know  must  follow  the  failure  of  any  en- 
terprise against  the  Turks,  did  not  deter  them  from  again 
joining  the  Russians  in  a  subsequent  war  against  the  Porte. 


*  Eton's  Survey  of  the  Turkish  Empire. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  81 

l*,£7  In  the  year  1787,  a  war  broke  out  between  the  Ot- 
tomans and  the  allied  powers  of  Russia  and  Austria, 
and  again  the  Empress  Catharine  sent  manifestoes  to  all 
parts  of  Greece,  inviting  the  inhabitants  to  take  up  arms  and 
co-operate  with  her  in  expelling  the  enemies  of  Christianity 
from  the  countries  they  had  usurped,  and  in  regaining  their 
ancient  liberty  and  national  independence.* 

The  invitation  of  the  Empress  was  not  suffered  to  pass  un- 
heeded. A  man  by  the  name  of  Sottiri  was  sent  to  Epirus 
and  Albania,  to  distribute  Catharine's  manifestoes,  and  to 
consult  with  the  chiefs  on  the  best  mode  of  raising  and  or- 
ganizing a  revolt.  A  plan  was  soon  concerted,  an  army 
raised,  the  head  quarters  of  which  were  established  at  Sulli. 
The  Pacha  of  Ioannina  was  next  attacked  by  the  insurgent?, 
his  army  defeated,  and  his  son  killed  in  the  battle.f 

Meanwhile,  the  Empress  sent  Captain  Psaro  to  Sicily,  to 
establish  a  magazine  for  her  fleet,  which  was  expected  to  ar- 
rive under  the  command  of  the  English  Admiral  Greig,  whom 
she  had  taken  into  her  service.  She  also  sent  several  other 
persons  to  furnish  the  Greeks  with  money,  and  to  remove 
the  difficulties  which  the  Venetians,  still  unwilling  to  offend 
the  Porte,  had  opposed  to  the  progress  of  the  insurrection. 

Captain  Psaro,  however,  seems  to  have  deceived  the  Em- 
press and  her  ministers  in  respect  to  his  character.  He  re- 
ceived money,  as  the  agent  of  his  mistress,  for  the  use  of 
the  suffering  Greeks,  but  retained  it  in  his  own  hands,  never 
paying  a  single  rouble  for  the  purpose  intended.  Where- 
upon a  commission  was  selected  to  represent  to  her  Majesty 
the  defection  and  deceit  of  her  servant,  to  pray  for  the  con- 
tinuance of  her  protection  and  favour,  and  finally  to  beg  that 
she  would  give  them  her  grandson,  Constantine,  for  their 
sovereign. 

The  memorial  was  presented  by  three  deputies,  who  at 
the  same  time  laid  at  the  feet  of  her  Majesty  the  rich  armour 
of  the  Pacha's  son,  whom  they  had  slain  in  battle.  Eton, 
who  seems  to  attach  great  importance  to  this  memorial,  has 
inserted  it  in  Greek,  French,  and  English,  j 

*  Eton's  Survey. 
t  Eton,  p.  343. 

|  As  this  memorial  laid  the  foundation  of  several  important  opera- 
tions, we  have  given  the  English  translation : 
Madam — 

It  was  not  until  we  had  long  solicited  in  vain  your  Imperal  Ma- 
jesty's ministers  for  an  answer  to  the  memorial,  which  we  had  the 

8* 


82  HISTORY  OF  THE 

The  Empress  received  the  deputies  most  graciously,  and 
promised  them  the  assistance  they  asked.     They  were  then 


honour  of  presenting  to  them ;  it  was  not  until  driven  to  the  utmost  des- 
pair, by  the  reflection  of  the  dreadful  evils  which  this  delay  might  pro- 
duce to  our  countrymen,  who  (invited  by  the  manifestoes  of  your  Im- 
perial Majesty,)  have  taken  arms  against  the  enemy  of  the  Christian 
name,  and  deputed  us  to  lay  the  offer  of  their  lives  and  fortunes  at  the 
foot  of  your  Imperial  throne ;  it  was  not  until  we  had  lost  all  hopes  of 
otherwise  obtaining  a  speedy  answer,  to  stop  those  streams  of  the  blood 
of  our  brethren,  which  doubtless  flow  already  through  this  delay,  that 
we  have  at  length  dared  to  prostrate  ourselves  at  your  feet,  and  to  pre- 
sent our  humble  memorial  to  your  Imperial  Majesty  in  person. 

Another  duty  equally  sacred,  and  which  was  a  principal  object  of  our 
mission,  induced  us  to  take  this  daring  step  :  it  was  to  undeceive  your, 
Imperial  Majesty,  whom  (as  well  as  your  ministers,)  there  have  been 
people  audacious  enough  to  mislead.  We  have  learned  with  indigna- 
tion, that  the  chevalier  Psaro  now  erects  himself  into  a  chief,  and  con- 
ductor of  our  people ;  a  man  abhorred  by  our  nation,  out  of  the  dregs  of 
which  he  rose,  and  where  he  would  have  remained,  if  he  had  not,  with 
an  unheard  of  audaciousness,  deceived  your  Imperial  Majesty's  minis- 
ters, and  assumed  a  reputation  by  attributing  to  himself  exploits  he 
never  performed.  If  no  ill  consequences  would  ensue,  but  to  himself, 
we  should  patiently  await  his  appearance  in  our  country,  a  boast,  how- 
ever, which  he  never  will  perform,  but  in  his  writings.  How  he  has 
acted  towards  us,  your  Imperial  Majesty  will  see  in  our  memorial.  We 
hear  that  he  has  received  immense  sums,  which  he  pretends  to  have  ex- 
pended for  us.  We  assure  your  Imperial  Majesty  that  neither  he,  nor 
any  of  your  officers  sent  to  us,  ever  paid  us  a  single  rouble.  The  flo- 
tilla, and  the  other  armament  of  Lambro,  were  equipped  at  our  own  ex- 
pense. One  of  us,  (deputies,)  abandoning  his  peaceful  home,  fitted 
out  two  vessels  at  his  own  expense,  and  expended  in  armaments 
12,000  zechins,  whilst  the  Turks  massacred  his  mother  and  his  brother, 
levelled  with  the  ground  his  possessions,  and  desolated  his  lands.  We 
never  asked  for  your  treasures,  we  do  not  ask  for  them  now  ;  we  only 
ask  for  powder  and  balls,  (which  we  cannot  purchase,)  and  to  be  led  to 
battle.  We  are  come  to  offer  our  lives  and  fortunes,  not  to  ask  ibr  your 
treasures. 

Deign,  O  great  Empress !  Glory  of  the  Greek  faith  !  deign  to  read 
our  memorial.  Heaven  has  reserved  our  deliverance  for  the  glorious 
reign  of  your  Imperial  Majesty.  It  is  under  your  auspices  that  we 
hope  to  deliver  from  the  hands  of  barbarous  Mahometans  our  empire, 
which  they  have  usurped,  and  our  patriarch,  and  our  holy  religion, 
which  they  have  insulted ;  to  free  the  descendants  of  Athens  and  Lace- 
demon  from  the  tyrannic  yoke  of  ignorant  savages,  under  which  groans 
a  nation,  whose  genius  is  not  extinguished ;  a  nation  which  glows  with 
the  love  of  liberty ;  which  the  iron  yoke  of  barbarism  has  not  vilified ; 
which  has  constantly  before  its  eyes  the  images  of  its  ancient  heroes, 
and  whose  example  animates  its  warriors  even  to  this  day. 

Our  superb  ruins  speak  to  our  eyes,  and  tell  us  of  our  ancient 
grandeur,  our  innumerable  ports,  our  beautiful  country,  the  heavens 
which  smile  onus  all  the  year,  the  ardour  of  our  youth,  and  even  our 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  83 

conducted  to  the  apartments  of  her  grandsons,  and  offering 
to  kiss  the  hand  of  the  eldest,  the  grand-duke  Alexander,  he 
pointed  to  his  brother  Constantine,  telling  them,  that  it  was 
to  him  they  were  to  address  themselves.  To  Constantine, 
therefore,  they  represented  in  Greek  the  object  of  their  mis- 
sion, and  concluded  by  doing  homage  to  him  as  their  Empe- 
ror. He  answered  them  in  the  same  language,  Go,  and  let 
every  thing  be  done  according  to  your  wishes* 

With  their  memorial,  the  deputies  presented  to  the  Em- 
press a  plan  of  operations,  by  which  they  proposed,  that  she 
should  furnish  them  with  cannon,  and  send  them  engineers 
to  conduct  sieges, — that  the  army  should  assemble  at  the 
head-quarters,  Sulli,  where  the  congress  was  held,  and  from 
thence  proceed  to  Livadia,  and  Athens.  At  appointed 
places  they  were  to  be  joined  by  troops  from  the  Morea, 
from  Negropont,  and  from  other  sections  of  the  country. 
From  thence  the  army,  thus  increased,  was  to  proceed  to 
Thessaly,  where  large  reinforcements  were  expected  to  join 
it,  from  Macedonia.  From  this  point,  the  whole  army,  now 
amounting,  as  these  patriots  calculated,  to  three  hundred 
thousand  men,  was  to  march  to  the  plains  of  Adrianople  to 
meet  the  Russians,  and  then  proceed  to  Constantinople, 
where  they  hoped  to  find  the  Russian  fleet.  If  the  fleet  had 
not  arrived,  it  was  calculated  that  their  force  would  be  suffi- 
cient to  take  that  city,  and  to  drive  the  Turks  out  of  Europe 
and  the  islands.f 

The  Empress  dismissed  the  deputies,  with  a  present  of  a 
thousand  ducats,  and  sent  them  to  Prince  Potemkin,  who. 


decrepid  elders,  tell  us  that  nature  is  not  less  propitious  to  us  than  it, 
was  to  our  forefathers.  Give  us  for  a  sovereign  your  grandson  Con- 
stantine :  it  is  the  wish  of  our  nation,  (the  family  of  our  Emperors  is 
extinct,)  and  we  shall  become  what  our  ancestors  were. 

We  are  not  persons  who  have  dared  to  impose  on  the  most  magnani- 
mous of  Sovereigns  ;  we  are  the  deputies  of  the  people  of  Greece,  fur- 
nished with  full  powers,  and  other  documents,  and  as  such,  prostrated 
before  the  throne  of  her,  whom,  next  to  God,  we  look  on  as  our  saviour ; 
we  declare  we  shall  be,  till  our  latest  breath, 

Madam,  your  Imperial  Majesty's 

Most  faithful  and  most  devoted  servants, 
PANO  KIRI, 
CHRISTO  LAZZOTTI, 
NICCOLO  PANGOLO. 
St  Petersburgh,  April,  1790. 

*  Eton,  p.  355. 
t  Eton,  p.  356. 


84  HISTORY  OF  THE 

with  the  Russian  army,  lay  in  Moldavia.  In  the  autumn  oi 
the  same  year  they  arrived  in  Greece,  by  the  way  of  Vienna, 
with  major-general  Tamara,  who  had  been  commissioned  to 
command  the  whole  expedition,  by  the  Russian  government. 
The  Greeks  were  assured  that  they  should  have  all  the  suc- 
cour this  great  expedition  required.  They  were  enjoined  to 
prepare  every  thing,  but  to  undertake  nothing  until  further 
notice  from  Petersburgh.  In  this  state  affairs  remained  un- 
til a  peace  was  concluded  between  Russia  and  the  Porte, 
and  thus  all  the  hopes  of  the  Greeks  for  emancipation,  were 
blasted,  and  all  the  preparations  for  this  great  expedition 
lost. 

The  fate  of  Lambro  Canziani,  a  brave  and  patriotic  Greek, 
deserves  to  be  mentioned  on  this  occasion.  He  had  fitted 
out  a  small  fleet  by  private  subscription,  which  he  command- 
ed. In  an  engagement  with  the  Turks,  in  numbers  greatly 
his  superior,  he  lost  his  whole  fleet,  himself,  and  a  few  of  his 
men,  saving  themselves  in  boats.  His  resources  now  only 
enabled  him  to  procure  a  single  vessel ;  the  news  of  peace 
arrived ;  but  boiling  with  indignation  at  the  treatment  he 
had  received  from  the  Russian  agents,  and  thirsting  for  re- 
venge on  the  Turks,  he  sailed,  notwithstanding,  and  destroy- 
ed several  of  their  vessels.  He  was  now  declared  a  pirate 
by  the  Empress ;  but  continued  his  work  of  destruction,  un- 
til again  overpowered,  his  vessel  sunk  under  him,  and  he 
again  saved  himself  in  a  boat,  and  fled  to  the  mountains  of 
Albania.  He  was  afterwards  imprisoned  for  debts  contract- 
ed in  fitting  out  his  vessels,  and  only  released  by  the  contri- 
butions of  his  countrymen. 

Whether  Catharine  really  intended  to  deliver  Greece 
from  Turkish  barbarity,  and  to  attempt  the  great  enterprise 
of  placing  her  grandson  on  the  throne  of  Constantinople,  i^ 
perhaps  doubtful.  In  1790,  the  King  of  Prussia  posted  an 
^q..  army  of  150,000  men  on  the  frontiers  of  Bohemia, 
'  and  in  the  spring  of  1791,  an  armament  was  prepared 
in  England,  to  sail  for  the  Baltic.  Eton,  who  was  probably 
well  acquainted  with  all  the  circumstances,  supposes  that 
these  preparations  were  made  to  intimidate  Catharine,  and 
to  deter  her,  if  possible,  from  the  prosecution  of  such  a 
mighty  project  as  settling  her  dynasty  on  the  throne  of 
Turkey. 

"  Thus,"  says  he,  "  ended  a  war,  which,  had  it  not  been 
for  the  interference  of  Great  Britain  and  Prussia,  would  have 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  86 

placed  the  Empress'  grandson  on  the  throne  of  Constantino- 
ple ;  and  had  not  circumstances  prescribed  to  them  the  part 
they  acted,  we  should  have  had,  in  Russia  and  Greece,  allies 
which  would  long  ago  have  enabled  his  Majesty,*  and  the 
Emperor,!  in  all  human  probability,  to  have  humbled  a  foe, 
which  now  threatens  all  Europe  with  total  subversion. 

That  the  nations  of  Europe  should  dread  any  accession  to 
the  power  of  Russia,  or  any  extension  of  her  vast  territo- 
ries, even  so  long  ago  as  1790,  is  neither  extraordinary  nor 
unknown.  England,  in  particular,  always  guided  by  a  wily 
policy,  had  every  reason  to  believe,  whatever  the  condition 
of  Greece  might  be,  it  would  be  safer  for  her,  that  Turkey 
should  remain  in  the  hands  of  infidels,  than  that  it  should  go 
to  increase  the  already  mighty  power  of  Russia.  Prussia, 
also,  might  perhaps  with  equal  justice,  fear  the  further  ex- 
tension and  power  of  Russia.  Actuated  by  such  considera- 
tions, these  two  nations  had  at  least  an  excuse,  notwith- 
standing the  situation  of  Greece,  for  compelling  Catharine 
to  conclude  a  peace  with  the  Turks. 

On  the  contrary,  as  stated  by  Mr.  Eton,  while  it  was  still 
undetermined  by  the  Empress,  whether  she  would  brave 
England  and  Prussia,  and  proceed  with  the  plans  she  had  laid 
down,  a  British  ambassador  arrived  at  Petersburg,  instead 
of  the  English  fleet.  On  the  arrival  of  another  ambassador, 
the  Empress  ascertaind  that  she  had  but  a  little  to  fear 
from  the  British  armament,  and  consequently  as  little  from 
the  Prussian  army.  Still  she  concluded  a  peace  with  the 
Turks,  and  left  the  Greeks,  now  in  a  state  of  revolt  by  her 
instigation,  to  protect  themselves  in  the  best  way  they  could 
against  the  accumulated  fury  of  their  barbarian  masters. 

The  Empress  Catharine  died  in  1796,  and  with  her  expir- 
ed, for  the  time,  the  hopes  of  those  who  looked  to  see  an- 
other Constantine  on  the  throne  of  Constantinople.  In  the 
mean  time,  another  personage  had  arisen  in  commanding 
influence  and  importance  in  the  mountains  of  Epirus,  who  at 
one  period  bid  much  fairer  to  become  the  king  of  Greece, 
than  any  one  who  had  appeared  on  the  theatre  of  Europe 
since  the  extinction  of  the  Eastern  Empire.J  This  was  no 
other  than  the  celebrated  Tepeleni,  or  Tepelene,  Pacha  of 
Ioannina,  an  account  of  whose  birth,  progress  in  power,  and 
exploits,  will  be  the  subject  of  another  chapter. 

*  The  king  of  England. 

t  Constantino  of  Constantinople. 

t  Modern  Traveller. 


86  HISTORY  OF  THE 


CHAPTER  IX. 


Tyrant  of  Ioannina. — Mountains  of  Epirus  never  subdued. 
— Predatory  warfare  of  the  Albanians. — Klephts  or  rob- 
bers.— Instances  of  hardihood  and  valour. — Manners  of  the 
Albanians. —  Their  Morality. —  Their  mode  of  attack. — 
Paramathians. —  Their  lawless  depredations  and  cruelty. — 
Character  of  AliBey,  Pacha  of  Ioannina. — His  exploits 
while  a  youth. — His  misfortunes. — Finds  a  treasure  which 
enables  him  to  prosecute  his  wars. — His  credit  at  Constan- 
tinople.— Is  appointed  Pacha  of  Ioannina. — His  attempts 
to  reduce  the  Suliots. — His  letter  to  the  Suliot  Captains. — 
The  reply. — Mosco. — Her  prowess. — The  Pacha's  eleva 
tion  and  power. 

The  history  of  the  tyrant  of  Ioannina,  is  closely  connect- 
ed with  that  of  the  Greeks,  on  whose  political  changes  he 
exerted  great  influence,  though  his  conquered  dominions  ex- 
tended no  further  south  than  Epirus.  His  capital  Ioannina, 
or  as  others  call  it,  Yanina,  was  situated  in  Lower  Albania, 
the  ancient  Epirus.  The  condition  of  this  country,  and  that 
surrounding  it,  first  claims  our  attention,  otherwise  the 
reader  will  be  unable  to  understand  what  is  to  follow. 

"  #The  mountains  of  Greece  have  never  been  completely 
subdued  by  the  Ottomans.  While  the  Christian  inhabitants 
of  the  plains  either  retired  before  the  conquerors,  or  became 
their  vassals,  the  hardy  peasantry  of  the  mountains  retain- 
ed possession  of  their  native  soil,  where  they  were  joined 
by  many  of  the  Lowlanders,  fleeing  from  Turkish  tyranny. 
From  thence  they  waged  a  predatory  warfare,  which  was 
not  confined  to  their  oppressors.  The  depopulation  arising 
from  these  circumstances,  together  with  frequent  visitations 
of  the  plague,  had  produced,  in  many  of  the  most  fertile  parts 
of  Greece,  desolation  and  consequent  insalubrity.  And  the 
effects  would  have  been  still  more  extensive,  had  not  the  va- 
cancy been  in  part  supplied  by  successive  migrations  from 
Albania  and  of  the  Black  Sea.  The  extension  of  education 
in  Bulgaria,  where  local  wars,  Mussulmen  persecution, 
or  redundant  numbers  on  a  very  poor  soil,  had  occasion- 
ally caused  even  greater    distress    than   had    driven    the 

*  Modern  Traveller,  part  I. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  8? 

Greeks  from  their  native  lands.  About  two  centuries  ago. 
a  large  colony  of  Christian  Albanians  settled  in  Bceotia,  At- 
tica, and  Argolis,  and  a  small  tribe  passed  over  into  the  bar- 
ren island  of  Hydra,  where  they  founded  the  community 
which  has  since  been  so  conspicuous  for  its  commercial  en- 
terprize  and  opulence. 

"  The  greater  part  of  the  peasantry  in  the  plains  of  north- 
ern Greece,  and  in  the  neighbourhood  of  the  great  Turkish 
towns,  were  unarmed  ;  but  in  the  more  mountainous  parts, 
and  generally  throughout  the  Morea,  there  were  but  few 
who  did  not  possess  a  weapon  of  some  kind.  In  case  of  any 
alarm  of  war  with  a  Christian  power,  the  Porte  never  failed 
to  issue  its  decree  for  disarming  all  the  rayahs  ;  but  the 
Turks,  not  being  very  fond  of  venturing  in  the  mountainous 
districts,  were  always  willing  to  accept  a  small  pecuniary 
compromise  ;  and  the  Sultan's  commands,  like  many  other 
of  his  decrees  relating  to  his  Christian  subjects,  ended  in  a 
contribution  to  the  provincial  governments.  In  some  of  the 
more  mountainous  parts,  villages  and  even  whole  districts 
were  left  to  the  management  of  the  primates,  (proesti  or  na- 
tive magistrates,)  who  were  responsible  for  the  payment  of 
the  ordinary  contributions,  and  who  generally  farmed  the 
taxes  for  the  Turkish  government.  In  some  parts,  not  even 
the  kharadja,  or  mountain  tax,  was  paid.  These  village  oli- 
garchs are  represented  to  have  been,  in  many  cases,  as  op- 
pressive towards  the  peasantry  as  they  were  contentious  and 
jealous  of  each  other  :  and  the  more  powerful  chieftains 
would  often  league  with  the  Pacha,  and  plunder  their  fellow 
Christians.  "  These  persons,"  says  Mr.  Leake,  "  being  in- 
terested in  the  continuance  of  ignorance  and  Turkish  tyran- 
ny, were,  together  with  some  of  the  higher  clergy,  the 
greatest  obstacles  to  national  improvement ;  for  the  latter 
class,  having  generally  procured  their  ecclesiastical  dignitieF 
at  a  considerable  expense,  were,  (except  in  the  greater  per- 
manence of  their  offices)  placed  in  a  situation  very  similar  to 
that  of  the  Turkish  governors  of  provinces  and  districts, 
whose  object  it  necessarily  was,  to  exact  from  the  governed 
as  much  as  they  possibly  could  during  their  transitory  au- 
thority. 

"  The  armatoli  were  originally  a  species  of  militia,  an  es- 
tablishment of  the  Byzantine  Empire,  whose  most  important 
office  was  to  keep  the  roads  clear  of  robbers,  and  to  guard 
the  mountain  passes.  The  Ottomans  found  it  necessary  to 
maintain  the  same  kind  of  police  ;  and  all  Greece,  from  the 


88  HISTORY  OF  THE 

river  Axius  to  the  Isthmus,  was  gradually  divided  into  se- 
venteen armatoliks.  Of  these,  ten  were  in  Thessaly  and  Li- 
vadia,  four  in  Etolia,  Acarnania,  and  Epirus,  and  three  in 
Southern  Macedonia.  The  Morea  never  contained  any. 
The  rank  of  a  captain  of  armatoli  was  hereditary.  The 
members  of  each  band  were  called  palikars  (bravos  or  he- 
roes,) and  the  protopalikar  acted  as  lieutenant  and  secretary 
to  the  capitanos.  In  addition  to  the  bodies  of  armatoli  ac- 
knowledged by  the  Porte,  all  the  mountain  communities 
maintained  a  small  body  of  palikars,  professedly  for  the  pro- 
tection of  the  district ;  but  more  frequently  they  were  em- 
ployed against  a  neighbouring  rival,  or  to  withstand  either 
Turkish  or  Albanian  encroachments. 

"  The  klephtai,  or  robbers,  (and  they  gloried  in  the  name) 
differed  chiefly  from  the  armatoli  in  preferring  open  rebel- 
lion and  the  adventurous  life  of  marauders,  to  any  compro- 
mise with  their  Turkish  masters.  In  fact,  the  only  distinction 
vanished,  when,  as  often  happened,  the  discontented  or  op- 
pressed armatoli  became  a  klepht,  or  when  it  suited  the 
Turkish  Pachas  to  include  them  under  one  common  title. 
Owing  to  this  the  terms  came  to  be  often  used  indiscrimi- 
nately ;  and  in  Thessaly,  the  word  klepht  designated  either, 
or  both.  Their  general  character  and  habits  are  thus  por- 
trayed by  an  enthusiast  in  the  cause  of  Greece,  to  whose  he- 
reditary talent  we  are  indebted  for  a  translation  of  some  of 
the  more  popular  ballads  still  current  in  the  highlands, — the 
minstrelsy  of  the  Grecian  border.* 

"  The  klephts  were  hardy  to  a  degree  scarcely  credible. 
They  had  no  fixed  encampment ;  wandering  in  summer 
among  the  higher,  in  winter  over  the  lower  mountainous  re- 
gions. But  they  had  always  a  spot  for  rendezvous  and  oc- 
casional sojourn,  called  limeri,  situated  near  the  armatolik, 
from  which  they  have  been  driven.  When  not  engaged  in 
an  expedition,  their  chief  resource  for  amusement  was  found 
in  martial  games,  and  particularly  in  firing  at  a  mark.  Con- 
stant practice  in  this  led  to  a  surprising  degree  of  skill.  By 
day-light,   they  could  strike  an  egg,  or  even  send  a  ball 

*  Sheridan's  "  Songs  of  Greece."  London,  1825.  One  highly  cha- 
racteristic mark,  Mr.  Sheridan  says,  distinguished  the  klepht  from  a 
regular  armatole  :  this  was  a  worsted  rope  coiled  round  his  waist  for  the 
purpose  of  binding  the  Turks  whom  he  might  capture  who  were  gene- 
rally kept  for  the  sake  of  ransom ;  "  though,  on  occasions  when  it  was 
impossible  to  make  prisoners,  they  were  killed  like  wolves,  without  he- 
sitation." 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  89 

through  a  ring  of  nearly  the  same  diameter,  at  the  distance 
of  200  paces ;  and  in  the  most  pitchy  darkness  they  could 
hit  an  enemy,  directed  only  by  the  flash  of  his  musket.  The 
activity  of  their  limbs  equalled  the  correctness  of  their  eye. 
Niko  Tzaras  could  jump  over  seven  horses  standing  abreast, 
and  others  could  clear,  at  one  leap,  three  wagons  filled  with 
thorns  to  the  height  of  eight  feet.  Their  powers  of  absti- 
nence were  not  less  surprising.  A  band  of  klephts  have 
been  known  to  combat  during  three  days  and  nights,  without 
either  eating,  drinking,  or  sleeping.*  Pain  found  their  cou- 
rage as  untameable  as  thirst  and  hunger,  although  every 
klepht  taken  alive  was  inevitably  subjected,  before  death 
came  to  his  relief,  to  the  most  dreadful  and  protracted  tor- 
tures. The  klephts  combined  to  a  degree  very  rare  among 
a  rude  tribe,  an  enthusiastic  piety,  with  a  distrust  of  the 
«Iergy,  and  of  that  union  of  church  and  state,  the  efficacy  of 
which  for  the  support  of  despotism  and  the  rivetting  of  men- 
tal chains,  was  no  where  better  understood  than  in  Turkey, 
where  the  Sultan  was  in  fact  the  real  head  of  the  Christian, 
as  well  as  of  the  Mahomedan  hierarchy.  Yet,  in  their  wild- 
est solitudes,  in  their  most  pressing  dangers,  they  performed 
the  ceremonies  of  their  religion  ;  and  the  captain  who  plun- 
dered a  chapel  or  a  votive  offering,  was  as  unrelentingly 
put  to  death  as  if  he  had  insulted  a  female  captive.  Bla- 
chavas,  with  his  protopalikar,  left  his  beloved  mountains,  at 


*  "  The  instance  referred  to,  in  substantiation  of  this  statement,  is 
that  of  the  famous  Thessalian  klepht,  Niko  Tzaras,  who,  on  his  road  to 
join  Prince  Ipsilanti  in  Wallachia,  at  the  head  of  300  klephts,  was 
stopped  at  the  bridge  of  Pravi,  on  the  banks  of  the  Karasau,  by  3,000 
Turks  ;  he  '  broke  through  them,  crossed  the  bridge,  and  entered  Pravi, 
where  his  gallant  band  refreshed  themselves,  after  a  fast  of  four,  and  a 
iight  of  three  days.'  This  was  in  1804  or  1805  :  he  perished  about  two 
years  after  in  an  affray,  by  the  hand  of  an  assassin,  who  had  been  one 
of  his  own  palikers." — Sheridan's  Songs  of  Greece,  p.  63.  "  Another 
remarkable  story  is  that  of  Spiros  Skyllodemos,  of  an  ancient  armatoli 
family  in  Acarnania.  In  1806  he  fell  into  the  hands  of  Ali  Pacha,  who 
threw  him  into  a  deep  dungeon,  where  he  lay  for  many  months,  chained 
and  immersed  in  mud  and  water.  By  means  of  a  long  sash  and  a  file, 
he  one  night  escaped  from  prison,  but  the  gates  of  the  citadel  were 
dosed.  As  his  sole  chance  of  escape,  he  buried  himself  to  the  throat  in 
the  forest  of  reeds  which  fringes  the  lake  of  Ioannina,  enduring  in  this 
situation,  during  three  days  and  nights,  the  extremes  of  cold  and  hun- 
ger ;  then,  seizing  a  boat,  crossed  the  lake,  and  escaped  by  mountain 
paths  into  Acarnania.  He  was  subsequently  pardoned  by  Ali,  and  be- 
came protopalikar  to  Odysseus,  when  appointed  by  that  Pacha  com- 
mander in  Livadia." — Ibid.  p.  52. 

9 


90  HISTORY  OF  THE 

the  age  of  seventy-six,  to  visit  the  holy  city  on  foot,  and  ac- 
tually died  at  Jerusalem.  Frequent  as  apostacy  was  for 
ages  among  the  harassed  inhabitants  of  the  plains,  never  did 
a  klepht  hesitate  to  prefer  captivity,  death,  and  even  tor- 
tures, to  the  denial  of  his  Redeemer.  Yet,  they  had  the  sa- 
gacity to  perceive,  that  the  clergy,  who  looked  to  the  Turks 
for  promotion,  and  whose  corporate  property  the  infidels  al- 
ways respected,  must  be  suspicious  friends,  and  often  dan- 
gerous enemies  to  the  revolted  Greeks.  The  clergy  of 
Greece  have  been  her  curse,  alike  under  the  Byzantine  and 
under  the  Tartar  systems  of  tyranny,  and  would  equally 
continue  to  be  so  if  the  Scythians  seized  the  country.  Con- 
temporaneous documents  exist  to  show,  that  the  Russian 
cabinet  fully  expects  to  receive  their  assistance  from  the  hie- 
rarchy of  Greece.  Next  to  their  touching  piety,  the  most 
striking  qualities  among  the  klephts,  were  generosity  to 
their  poorer  and  more  timid  countrymen,  and  especially  to 
the  herdmen  who  shared  the  mountains  with  them  ;  devoted 
love  to  their  country  in  general,  and  of  their  own  rugged 
parts  in  particular ;  and  tenderness  in  those  domestic  affec- 
tions which  formed  a  beautiful  relief  to  the  stern  and  rugged 
parts  of  their  character."* 

"  There  is  nothing,"  says  Mr.  Hobhouse,f  "  more  san- 
guinary in  the- character  of  the  Albanians,  than  there  is  in 
that  of  the  other  inhabitants  of  the  Levant ;  though,  as  they 
live  under  no  laws,  and  each  individual  is  the  redresser  of  his 
own  wrongs,  bloodshed  cannot  but  frequently  occur.  A 
blowis  revenged  by  the  meanest  among  them  by  the  instant 
death  of  the  offender ;  their  military  discipline  admits  of  no 
other  punishment,  and  their  soldiers  are  hanged  or  behead- 
ed, but  never  beaten.  The  custom  of  wearing  arms  openly, 
which  have  been  considered  as  one  of  the  certain  signs  of 
barbarity,  instead  of  increasing,  diminishes  the  instances  of 
murders,  for  it  is  not  probable  that  a  man  will  often  hazard 
an  offence,  for  which  he  may  instantly  lose  his  head.  They 
are  not  of  a  malignant  disposition;  and  when  cruel,  with  the 
exception  of  some  tribes,  it  is  more  from  sudden  passion 
than  from  a  principle  of  revenge.  Treachery  is  a  vice  hard- 
ly to  be  found  among  them  ;  such  as  have  experienced  your 
favours,  or,  as  their  saying  is,  have  eaten  your  bread,  and 
even  those  who  are  hired  into  your  service,  are  entirely  to  be 

*  Sheridan's  Songs  of  Greece  ;  see  Modern  Traveller. 
t  See  Hobhouse's  Journey  through  Albania,  1809  and  1810. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  91 

depended  upon  ;  and  are  capable  often  of  the  most  devoted 
attachment." 

"  I  feel  no  great  inclination,"  continues  Mr.  Hobhouse, 
"  to  speak  of  the  morals  of  the  Albanians.  Their  women, 
who  are  almost  all  of  them  without  education,  and  speak  no 
other  than  their  native  tongue,  are  considered  as  their  cattle, 
and  are  used  as  such,  being,  except  the  very  superior  sort, 
obliged  to  labour,  and  are  often  punished  with  blows.  They 
have  in  truth  rather  a  contempt,  and  even  an  aversion  for 
their  females  ;  and  there  is  nothing  in  any  of  their  occasion- 
al inclinations,  which  may  be  said  to  partake  of  what  we 
call  the  tender  passion.  Yet  all  of  them  get  married  who 
can,  as  it  is  a  sign  of  wealth,  and  as  they  wish  to  have  a  do- 
mestic slave."* 

In  respect  to  the  religion  of  this  people,  it  is  said  that  the 
Christians,  who  can  be  fairly  called  Albanians,  are  scarcely, 
if  at  all,  to  be  distinguished  from  Mahometans.  They  carry 
arms,  and  are  many  of  them  enrolled  in  the  service  of  the 
Turkish  Pacha,  and  differ  in  no  respect  from  his  other  sol- 
diers. There  is  a  spirit  of  independence,  and  a  love  of  their 
country,  in  the  whole  people,  that,  in  a  great  measure,  does 
away  the  vast  distinctions  observable  in  other  parts  of  Tur- 
key between  the  two  religions.  For  when  the  natives  of 
other  provinces,  upon  being  asked  who  they  are,  will  say, 
4  we  are  Turks,'  or  *  we  are  Christians,'  a  man  of  this  coun- 
try answers,  '  I  am  an  Albanian.'! 

All  these  men  are  warriors,  and  equally  capable  of  using 
the  sword  and  the  long  gun ;  the  latter  weapon,  when  slung 
across  their  right  shoulders,  they  carry  without  any  apparent 
effort,  running  up  their  hills  with  great  ease  and  agility.  Nor 
are  their  arms  for  show  only,  for  until  very  lately,  and  in 
some  places  even  now,  every  district  was  either  upon  the 
defensive  against  the  band  of  robbers,  or  in  alliance  with 
them,  and  in  rebellion  against  the  Pachas  of  the  Porte. 

In  their  mode  of  attack,  these  warriors  are  extremely 
cautious.  They  lie  patiently,  and  in  dead  silence,  perhaps 
for  hours,  covered  with  leaves,  behind  stones,  in  the  water- 
courses, or  in  thickets  on  each  side  of  the  road.  They  suf- 
fer their  prey  to  get  into  the  midst  of  them,  when,  if  the  par- 
ty be  numerous,  they  fire  upon  them  suddenly  without  rising, 
and  continue  to  do  so,  unless  beaten,  until  they  have  made 


*  Hobhouse 's  Albania,  vol.  1.  p.  129. 
i  Hobhouse's  Albania,  vol.  1. 


92  HISTORY  OF  THE 

their  adversaries  throw  down  their  arms,  and  ask  for  quar- 
ter. In  that  case  the  prisoners  are  then  gagged,  bound,  and 
plundered ;  and  if  there  be  a  man  among  them  of  consequence, 
the  robbers  make  him  write  to  his  friends  for  a  ransom  oi 
so  many  thousand  piastres,  and  if  the  money  arrives  they  re- 
lease him ;  if  it  does  not,  they  cut  off  his  head,  or  keep  him 
amongst  them  until  they  disperse.* 

The  life  they  lead  in  the  course  of  their  profession  as 
plunderers,  enables  them  to  support  every  hardship,  and  to 
take  the  field,  when  in  regular  service,  without  baggage  or 
tents  of  any  kind.  If  badly  wounded,  they  leave  their  corps 
and  retire  to  their  homes,  until  they  are  cured,  when  they 
return  again  to  the  field.  Indeed  their  love  of  arms  is  so 
ardent,  that  those  who  may  fear  too  long  an  interval  of  peace 
in  their  own  country,  enter  into  the  service  of  the  Pachas  in 
every  part  of  the  Turkish  empire.  The  guard  of  the  sacred 
banner  from  Mecca  to  Constantinople,  used  to  be  entrusted 
to  one  hundred  and  fifty  of  them,  armed  and  dressed  in  their 
own  fashion. f 

Mr.  Eton,  who  published  his  account  some  fifteen  years 
before  the  travels  of  Mr.  Hobhouse,  gives  a  still  more  revolt- 
ing picture  of  a  particular  tribe  of  these  barbarians. 

"  I  will  speak  a  little,"!  says  he,  "  on  the  subject  of  these 
Paramathian  Albanese.  Their  towns  are  situated  twelve 
leagues  distant  from  Yanina ;  (Ioannina ;)  they  possess  a  ter- 
ritory of  twelve  leagues  in  circumference,  and  can  bring  into 
the  field  20,000  men.  Their  country  is  so  mountainous  and 
inaccessible,  that  they  have  never  been  conquered  by  the 
Turks.  How  they  became  Mahometans  they  do  not  know 
themselves  exactly ;  some  of  them  say,  that  when  the  Turks 
first  invaded  these  countries,  they  made  peace  on  condition 
of  becoming  Mahometans,  and  preserving  their  indepen- 
dence. They  speak  Greek,  and  know  no  other  language  : 
they  look  on  the  Turks  and  other  Albanians  as  effeminate, 
and  hold  them  in  the  utmost  contempt.  They  have  no  regu- 
lar government;  each  family  or  relationship  (clan,)  ad- 
ministers justice  among  themselves.  The  largest  clans  have 
the  most  influence  in  the  country,  in  all  public  or  generaJ 
matters.  They  are  careful  not  to  kill  a  person  of  another 
kindred,  as  the  relations  revenge  his  death,  and  when  once 
bloodshed  is  begun,  it  goes  on  until  one  of  the  clans  is  ex- 

*  Hobhouse 's  Albania,  vol.  1. 
f  Hobhouse  s  Albania. 
t  Eton's  Survey,  p.  368. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  93 

tinct.  They  always  carry  their  guns  with  them  whenever 
they  go  out  of  their  houses,  and  never  quit  them  ;  even  at 
home  they  do  not  go  without  pistols  in  their  girdles  ;  at  night 
they  put  them  under  their  pillows,  and  lay  their  gun  by  their 
side.  The  same  precautions  are  taken  in  all  those  parts, 
except  in  the  town  of  Ioannina.  There  are  among  the  rara- 
mathians,  however,  a  considerable  number  of  Greek  Chris- 
tians, who  live  in  the  same  manner.  Those  who  are  Maho- 
metans know  little  of  their  religion,  or  pay  little  regard  to  it ; 
their  women  are  not  veiled,  they  drink  wine,  and  intermarry 
with  Christians.  It  is  true,  indeed,  that  they  will  not  eat 
pork  ;  but  if  the  husband  and  wife  are  of  different  religions, 
they  make  no  scruple  of  boiling  in  the  same  pot  a  piece  of 
pork  and  a  piece  of  mutton."* 

All  strangers,  Turks,  Europeans,  Greeks,  or  others,  who 
happen  to  pass  on  their  territory,  or  are  caught  by  them,  are 
carried  to  the  public  market  and  there  sold. 

"  Being  one  day  at  Ioannina,  says  he,  at  the  Greek  Arch- 
bishop's house,  I  saw  a  Piedmontese  priest,  who,  travelling 
in  those  parts,  had  been  seized  by  the  Paramathians,  and  sold ; 
his  story,  as  related  to  me  by  the  prelate,  is  as  follows  :  Soli- 
man  Ciapar  being  at  his  house  one  day  on  a  visit,  told  him 
that  he  had  bought  a  Frank  for  four  piastres,  but  he  was  good 
for  nothing,  and  though  he  had  beat  him  daily,  he  could  not 
make  him  do  as  much  work  as  his  bread  was  worth ;  he 
would  therefore,  he  said,  when  he  got  home,  kill  him  as  a 
useless  beast.  The  Archbishop  offered  to  buy  him  for  the 
four  piastres  he  had  cost,  and  to  pay  him  the  money  imme- 
diately, if  Ciapar  would  give  him  security,  for  here  no  one 

*  These  mountain  Albanians  are  known  at  Constantinople  under  the 
name  of  Jlimots.  Their  religion  is  generally  determined  by  that  of  the 
master  under  whom  they  serve.  Their  business  being  war,  they  care 
not  under  whose  banner  they  enlist,  provided  they  are  well  paid ;  they 
therefore  become  Christians  or  Mahometans,  as  they  happen  to  serve 
under  the  sign  of  the  cross  or  crescent.  According  to  the  account  of 
Lady  Montague,  they  blend  the  two  religions  still  more  closely,  and 
with  a  view  to  insure  their  future  happiness, practice  the  rights  of  both. 

"  These  people,"  says  she,  "  living  between  Christians  and  Mahome- 
tans, and  not  being  skilled  in  controversy,  declare  that  they  are  utterly 
unable  to  judge  which  religion  is  best,  but  to  be  certain  of  not  entirely 
rejecting  the  truth,  they  very  prudently  follow  both.  They  go  to  the 
mosque  on  Fridays,  and  to  the  church  on  Sundays,  saying  for  excuse. 
that  they  are  thus  sure  of  the  protection  of  the  true  Prophet;  but  which 
that  is  they  are  unable  to  determine  in  this  world.' 

9* 


94  HISTORY  OF  THE 

trusts  another.  The  bargain  being  settled,  the  Frank  was 
sent :  he  proved  to  be  a  man  of  learning,  and  the  Archbishop 
established  a  school  at  Ioannina  for  Greek  children,  under 
His  direction."  "A  stranger," continues  the  author,  "  might, 
however,  travel  into  these  mountains  and  would  be  treated 
hospitably  by  the  inhabitants,  if  he  put  himself  under  the 
protection  of  a  Paramathian,  who  would  give  security  for  his 
being  brought  back  safe."* 

These  mountain  robbers  or  klephts,  became  so  great  a 
nuisance  to  the  country,  that  the  Ottoman  government  con- 
cluded to  appoint  some  proper  person  to  reduce  them,  and 
to  insure  the  safety  of  travellers  who  had  occasion  to  pass 
these  mountains.  This  office  was  bestowed  on  Ali  Bey,  af- 
terwards Pacha  of  Ioannina,  a  man  who  made  himself  as  fa- 
mous for  his  courage  and  talents  as  he  was  infamous  for  his 
tyranny  and  diabolical  cruelty. 

The  life  of  Ali  has  been  the  subject  of  several  pens.  The 
following  sketch  of  him,  compiled  with  considerable  labour. 
is  extracted  from  a  recent  English  periodical  work.f 

Ali,  whose  surname  was  Hissas,  was  born  at  Tepeleni,  a 
small  town  of  the  Toshke  clan,  situated  on  the  left  bank  of 
theVioussa,  about  the  year  1748.J  His  family  had  been 
established  in  that  place  for  several  centuries  :  and  one  of 
his  ancestors,  named  Muzzo,  having  been  very  successful  in 
the  honourable  profession  of  a  klepht,  procured  to  himself 
the  lordship  of  Tepeleni,  which  he  transmitted  to  his  de- 
scendants. Ali's  grand-father,  Mouctar  Bey,  was  deemed 
the  greatest  warrior  of  his  age,  and  fell  bravely  fighting  at 
the  siege  of  Corfu,  leaving  three  sons.  Veli  Bey,  the  father 
of  Ali,  was  the  youngest :  though  in  early  life  a  professed 
klepht  and  a  fratricide,  he  is  said  to  have  been  a  man  of  hu- 
mane disposition,  and  extremely  well  disposed  to  the  Greeks  a) 

*  Eton,  p.  370. 

f  Modern  Traveller,  part  xxvii.  p.  16. 

|  M.  Pouqueville,  indeed,  makes  Ali  to  have  been  78  years  of  age  in 
1819,  which  would  carry  back  his  birth  to  1741 ;  but  he  does  not  give 
his  authority.     Mr.  Hobhouse  says  he  was  born  in  1750. 

§  This  excellent  person,  as  Mr.  Hughes  characterises  him,  having 
been  expelled  his  parental  home  by  his  two  brothers  on  the  death  of  the 
father,  followed  for  some  years  the  profession  of  knight-errant  of  the 
mountains,  till,  having  collected  a  sufficient  sum  to  retire  on,  he  sud- 
denly appeared  with  his  banditti  before  Tepeleni,  and  burned  his  two 
brothers  in  their  own  citadel.  He  then  took  quiet  possession  of  the 
family  title  and  estates,  prudently  renouncing  his  old  trade  forever. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  95 

He  held  for  some  time  the  pashalik  of  Delvino,  but  was  de- 
prived of  it  by  the  intrigues  of  a  cabal,  and  retired  in  chagrin 
to  his  native  lordship  of  Tepeleni,  where,  harassed  by  the 
neighbouring  beys  and  agas,  and  unable  to  make  head  against 
his  enemies,  he  is  stated  to  have  died  of  grief  and  vexation, 
at  the  age  of  forty-five,  leaving  five  children.*  The  mother 
of  Ali  and  his  sister  Shainitza,  was  a  woman  of  uncommon 
talents  and  undaunted  courage,  fierce  and  implacable  as  a 
tigress.  "  I  owe  every  thing  to  my  mother,"  said  Ali,  allu- 
ding to  the  education  he  received  from  her,  and  the  ambitious 
projects  with  which  she  inspired  him.  At  the  death  of  his 
father,  Ali  was  under  fourteen  years  of  age ;  an  obstinate, 
petulant,  intractable  child ;  but  he  was  attached  to  his  mo-' 
ther,  and  she  was  well  able  to  assert  her  authority.  So  long 
as  Veli  Bey  lived,  Chamco  had  appeared  only  an  ordinary 
woman ;  but  now,  with  courage  equal  to  her  ambition,  she 
renounced  the  spindle  for  the  sword,  the  veil  for  the  helmet, 
and  with  a  handful  of  faithful  followers,  defended  the  remain- 
der of  her  possessions  against  the  hostile  clans,  and  effect- 
ually checked  their  encroachments.  At  one  time,  she  was 
taken  prisoner,  together  with  her  daughter  Shainitza,  by  the 
inhabitants  of  Gardiki,  who  are  said  to  have  treated  their 
captives  with  almost  incredible  brutality :  if  authenticated, 
it  would  go  far  to  extenuate  the  dreadful  retribution  with 
which,  forty  years  after,  the  town  was  visited  at  the  hands  of 
Ali.  After  enduring  this  barbarous  treatment  for  more  than 
a  month,  they  obtained  their  liberty, — it  is  said  by  ransom ; 
at  all  events,  Chamco  was  reinstated  at  Tepeleni,  where  she 
still  continued  to  maintain  her  authority,  till  Ali  grew  old 
enough  and  powerful  enough  to  take  the  burden  of  govern- 
ment off  her  hands.f 


*  M.  Pouqueville  says  that  he  was  carried  off  by  a  disorder,  "  attri- 
bute a  des  exces  bachiques.v  He  says  nothing  of  his  having  filled  the 
office  of  Pacha  of  Delvino,  and  attributes  his  quarrels  with  his  neigh- 
bours to  his  unsubdued  kleptic  propensities. 

f  In  attempting  to  combine  the  various  accounts  of  Ali's  early  life  in 
a  consistent  narrative,  we  are  met  at  every  step  by  irreconcilable  con- 
tradictions or  discrepancies.  The  Rev.  T.  S.  Hughes,  who  appears  to 
have  taken  considerable  pains  in  collecting  authentic  materials,  states 
that  Veli  Bey  left  two  widows  and  three  children,  attributing  to  Cham 
co,  Ali's  mother,  the  poisoning  both  of  her  rival  and  of  the  elder  son. 
M.  Pouqueville  (whom  the  compiler  of  the  Life  of  Ali  Pacha,  Svo.  1823, 
has  copied)  states,  that  Veli  left,  five  children,  but  that  the  mother  of  the 
elder  two  died  before  him.    He  imputes  to  Chamco  the  poisoning  of  the 


96  HISTORY  OF  THE 

-^-7  Ali's  first  exploits,  undertaken,  as  it  should  seem, 
without  the  sanction  of  his  mother,  were  more  daring 
than  successful.  Before  he  had  attained  his  sixteenth  year, 
he  had  acquired  as  much  celebrity  as  the  fabled  offspring  of 
Jupiter  and  Maia,  and  in  the  same  honourable  calling.  He 
plundered  all  his  neighbours,  till  he  found  himself  possessed 
of  means  sufficient  to  raise  a  small  number  of  partisans ;  and 
now  commencing  operations  on  a  bolder  scale,  he  undertook 
an  expedition  against  the  town  of  Chormovo.  He  was  beat- 
en, and  re-entered  Tepeleni  a  fugitive,  where  he  had  to  en- 
counter the  indignant  taunts  of  his  mother,  who  bade  him, 
coward  as  he  was,  go  join  the  women  of  the  harem.  Again, 
however,  he  took  the  field,  and  having  commenced  hostile 


elder  brother,  and  says,  that  the  idiocy  of  a  second  was  believed  to  have 
been  caused  by  her  hand.  According  to  M.  de  Vaudoncourt,  on  the 
contrary,  whose  narrative  bears  stronger  internal  marks  of  authentici- 
ty, the  brother  was  made  away  with  at  the  time  that  Ali  seized  the  reins 
of  authority  from  the  hands  of  his  mother,  and  the  suspicion  of  fratri- 
cide attached  to  Ali.  "  The  partisans  of  Ali  Pacha,''  he  says,  "  assert 
that  Ali's  mother  caused  him  to  be  poisoned,  in  order  to  secure  to  her 
own  son  the  remains  of  his  father's  inheritance,  and  free  him  from  a 
dangerous  rival.  This  report  is,  at  least,  most  prevalent  throughout 
the  whole  of  his  states.  His  enemies,  on  the  contrary,  affirm,  that  it 
was  he  himself  who  stabbed  his  brother,  having  persuaded  the  multitude 
that  he  was  engaged  in  a  treacherous  correspondence  with  their  ene- 
mies. It  is  thus  also  that  the  story  is  related  in  the  Ionian  Islands." 
M.  Pouqueville,  too,  kills  one  of  Ali's  brothers  at  this  period.  Again, 
with  regard  to  the  alleged  treatment  of  Ali's  mother  and  sister  at  Gar- 
diki,  Mr.  Hughes  tells  us,  that  the  people  of  that  town  secretly  attacked 
Tepeleni  by  night,  and  succeeded  in  carrying  them  off;  that  their  sub- 
sequent-escape was  effected  through  the  generous  aid  of  an  individual 
Gardikiote,  named  Dosti,  "  whose  turn  it  was  to  receive  them  into  his 
dwelling;"  he  escorted  them  in  safety  to  Tepeleni,  "  where  they  found 
the  indignant  Ali  just  preparing"  (after  the  lapse  of  a  month  !)  "  to  at* 
tempt  their  liberation  with  a  large  body  of  troops  he  had  collected ;" 
further,  that  on  discovering  the  flight  of  their  captives,  the  people  of  the 
town  pursued  them,  but  in  vain,  and  on  their  return,  set  fire  to  Dosti's 
house.  M.  Pouqueville's  version  of  the  story  is,  that  Ali  was  taken 
prisoner  with  his  mother  and  sister ;  that  it  was  by  means  of  an  ambus- 
cade ;  and  that  their  liberation  was  effected  by  a  Greek  merchant  of 
Argyro  Castro,  who  ransomed  them  for  22,800  piastres,  (about  3,700Z.) 
The  atrocious  treatment  they  are  said  to  have  met  with,  the  most  im- 
probable as  well  as  revolting  part  of  the  tale,  is,  strange  to  say,  the  only 
point  in  which  the  two  stories  agree.  M.  de  Vaudoncourt,  without  ad- 
verting to  the  circumstance  alluded  to,  simply  says :  "  It  was  about  this 
time  that  she  (Ali's  mother)  was  taken  prisoner  by  the  inhabitants  of 
Goritza,  when  her  ransom  absorbed  the  greater  part  of  the  treasures 
she  had  been  able  to  save." 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  97 

operations  in  the  sanjiak  of  Avlona,  was  taken  prisoner. 
Kourd  Pacha,  into  whose  hands  he  had  thus  fallen,  was  an 
old  man,  of  mild  and  humane  character.  Struck,  it  is  said, 
with  the  youthful  beauty,  the  graceful  manners,  and  the  na- 
tural eloquence  of  the  young  klepht,  he  satisfied  himself  with 
reprimanding  him,  and  after  a  friendly  detention,  dismissed 
him  with  presents.* 

It  must  have  been  about  this  period  that,  at  the  head  of 
thirty  palikers,  he  entered  into  the  service  of  the  Pacha  of 
Egripo.  From  this  engagement,  though  it  could  not  have 
been  of  long  duration,  he  reaped  sufficient  wealth  to  enable 
him  on  his  return  to  his  native  mountains,  to  re-commencc 
operations  as  a  klepht  on  a  grander  scale.  After  some  suc- 
cesses near  Tepeleni,  he  turned  his  steps  towards  the  passes 
of  Pindus,  and  pillaged  some  hamlets  of  the  canton  of  Zago- 
ra  ;  but  being  overtaken  and  defeated  by  the  Pacha  of  Ioan- 
nina,  he  was  made  prisoner  a  second  time.  And  now,  we 
are  told,  that  the  neighbouring  beys,  and  more  especially  Se- 
lim,  Pacha  of  Delvino,  urged  the  necessity  of  inflicting  sum- 
mary justice  on  the  incorrigible  marauder.  The  vizier,  how- 
ever, had  his  reasons  for  not  obliging  them  in  this  matter. 
He  knew  that  he  had  less  to  dread  from  Ali  than  from  the 
beys  of  Argyro-castro  and  Premeti,  while  Selim's  Venetian 
connexions  rendered  him  equally  an  object  of  suspicion :  he 
therefore  was  not  sorry  to  afford  them  fresh  occupation,  and 
he  turned  Ali  loose  again,  who,  it  is  said,  gave  him  no  further 
cause  for  inquietude  during  the  rest  of  his  days.  Neverthe- 
less, collecting  the  remains  of  his  scattered  troops,  he  again 
ventured  to  take  the  field,  but  he  was  beaten  afresh  near  the 
sources  of  the  Chelydnus  ;  and  so  complete  was  the  route, 
that  he  was  obliged  to  seek  for  refuge  alone  on  Mount  Mert- 
zika.  Here  he  was  reduced  to  pledge  his  scimitar,  in  order 
to  procure  barley  for  his  horse,  no  longer  able  to  carry  him. 

On  returning  again  to  Tepeleni,  a  fugitive,  he  was  assail- 
ed by  his  mother  with  harsher  reproaches  than  ever.  When 
with  great  difficulty  he  appeased  her,  and  obtained  further 
supplies,  they  were  accompanied  with  the  injunction  not  to 

*  Mr.  Hughes  maks  both  the  wife  and  the  daughter  of  Kourd  Pacha 
fall  in  love  with  the  young  hero ;  and  adds,  that  in  a  war  which  broke 
out  between  the  Kourd  and  the  Pacha  of  Scutari,  Ali  so  distinguished 
himself,  and  gained  on  the  affections  of  the  soldiery,  that  Kourd's  hasna- 
dar,  (treasurer,)  advised  his  master  either  to  put  him  to  death,  or  make 
him  his  son-in-law.  Kourd  preferred  the  middle  course  of  honourably 
dismissing  him  with  presents. 


98  HISTORY  OF  THE 

return  again  but  either  as  a  conqueror  or  a  corpse.  "  With 
the  money  thus  obtained,  AM  immediately  collected  600 
men,  and  directed  his  march  through  the  valley  of  the  Che- 
lydnus,  towards  Mertzika  and  Premeti.  His  first  battle  was 
again  unsuccessful,  and  he  was  obliged  to  retire  with  loss. 
Having  encamped  the  remnant  of  his  troops  in  the  vicinity 
of  a  deserted  chapel  not  far  from  Velera,  he  entered  into  the 
solitary  pile  to  repose,  as  well  as  to  meditate  on  his  bereft 
situation.  There,  he  said,  (for  it  was  from  himself  that  the 
narrative  was  obtained,)  reflecting  on  that  fortune  by  which 
he  was  persecuted,  calculating  the  enterprise  he  was  still  able 
to  attempt,  and  comparing  the  weakness  of  his  means  with 
the  forces  he  had  to  combat,  he  remained  a  long  time  in  a 
standing  posture,  mechanically  furrowing  up  the  ground  with 
his  stick,  which  the  violence  of  his  sensations  caused  him 
frequently  to  strike  with  vehemence.  The  resistance  of  a 
solid  body,  and  the  sound  which  issued  from  it,  recalled  his 
attention.  He  bent  down,  and  examined  the  hole  he  had 
unconsciously  made,  and  having  dug  further,  had  the  happi- 
ness to  find  a  casket.  The  gold  which  it  contained  enabled 
him  to  levy  2,000  men,  and  having  been  successful  in  a 
second  battle,  he  returned  to  Tepeleni  a  victor.  From  this 
period  fortune  never  abandoned  him."* 


*  Vaudoncourt,  p.  226.  Mr.  Hughes  tells  the  same  tale,  with  some 
slight  variation.  M.  Pouqueville  says,  the  whole  story  is  a  fiction,  in- 
invented  by  a  Greek  named  Psalida,  and  that  Ali  himself  told  him  so. 
"  Cela  donne  une  physionomie  miraculeuse  a  ma  fortune"  was  his  in- 
dignant remark.  It  may  be  true,  nevertheless.  In  Mr.  Hughes'  nar- 
rative, however,  Ali  is  represented  as  having  daied  the  commencement, 
of  his  good  fortune  from  a  still  more  romantic  circumstance.  He  had. 
it  seems,  got  married,  and  having  raised  fresh  levies,  was  determined  to 
make  one  last  desperate  effort  against  his  ancient  foes.  In  this  expe- 
dition he  was  accompanied  by  his  mother  and  his  bride.  The  confede- 
rate beys  of  Argyro-castro,  Gardiki,  Kiminitza,  Goritza,  Chormove,  &c. 
opposed  him  with  an  overwhelming  force,  and  the  Tepelenites  were 
totally  routed.  The  chiefs  of  Argyro-castro  and  Gardiki  had  returned 
home,  when  Ali  resolved  on  the  bold  and  decisive  manoeuvre  of  going- 
alone  by  night  to  the  camp  of  the  other  confederates,  and  placing  his 
life  and  fortunes  in  their  hands.  The  hazard  he  ran  was  not  so  great  as 
might  at  first  appear,  since  a  voluntary  suppliant  is  sure  of  obtaining 
protection  from  an  Albanian  chieftain;  but  Ali  aimed  at  something 
more  than  securing  his  own  safety.  He  sought  to  win  them  over  to 
his  cause,  by  representing  that  his  enemies  were  in  fact  theirs  ;  that  the 
absent  chiefs  were  already  too  formidable,  and  that  they  sought  his  de- 
struction, only  to  be  enabled  the  more  easily  to  place  the  yoke  on  their 
necks .    And  so  well  did  he  succeed  in  rousing  the  jealousy  of  the  Beys, 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  99 

.  ^q  And  now  it  was,  as  it  should  seem,  that  Ali  resolv- 
ed to  take  the  management  of  affairs  into  his  own 
hands.  Having  gained  over  the  principal  chiefs  of  Tepeleni, 
he  took  possession  of  the  fortress,  and  confined  his  mother 
henceforth  to  the  harem.  She  died  soon  after.  The  state 
of  his  coffers  being,  however,  unequal  to  his  ambitious  pro- 
jects, he  resolved  to  have  recourse  to  his  old  profession. 
Having  secured  the  whole  of  the  defiles  leading  across  the 
chain  of  Pindus  into  Thessaly  and  Macedonia,  he  pillaged 
and  ransomed  travellers  and  caravans,  levied  contributions 
on  the  villages,  and  sacked  several  defenceless  places,  till 
the  ravages  committed  awakened  the  attention  of  the  divan, 
and  the  dervenji  pacha  was  ordered  to  march  against  him. 
The  office  was  at  this  time  held  by  no  other  person  than 
Ali's  old  friend,  Kourd  Pacha,  who  soon  found  it  advisable 
to  attempt  to  settle  matters  by  negotiation,  as  there  was  lit- 
tle prospect  of  accomplishing  it  by  force  of  arms.  He  invited 
Ali  to  a  conference,  at  which  the  latter  displayed  his  usual 
address,  and  the  old  vizier  was  induced  to  accept  of  his  ser- 
vice in  the  warfare  he  was  prosecuting  against  the  rebel  Pa- 
cha of  Scutari.  The  effective  aid  which  Ali  rendered  se- 
cured the  success  of  the  expedition,  and  his  conduct  was  re- 
presented in  the  most  favourable  light  at  Constantinople. 

Supported  by  this  powerful  alliance,  Ali  now  came  to  be 
held  in  high  consideration,  and  the  Pacha  of  Argyro-castro 
granted  his  daughter  to  him,  by  whom  he  had  his  two  eldest 
sons,  Mouctar  and  Veli.*  His  ambitious  projects  soon  be- 
gan to  develope  themselves.  The  towns  of  Kaminitza  and 
Goritza  first  fell  under  his  power  :  they  were  taken  and  pil- 
laged. His  next  attempt  was  a  daring  one.  The  old  Pacha 
of  Argyro-castro,  Ali's  father-in-law,  had  died,  and  the  elder 
son  had  been  assassinated  by  his  brother.  Ali  hastened  to 
allay  the  civil  war  this  murder  had  given  rise  to  ;  but  the  in- 
habitants, aware  of  his  designs,  united  against  him,  and  he 

1  hat  they  not  only  determined  to  spare  his  life,  but  to  range  themselves 
under  his  standard.  Ali's  mother,  who,  on  discovering  his  flight,  had. 
we  are  told,  given  way  to  transports  of  alarm  or  vexation,  met  him  re- 
turning at  the  head  of  the  troops  who  had  fought  against  him.  By  the 
support  thus  obtained,  he  secured  an  honourable  peace,  as  well  as  his 
future  fortune.  On  reaching  Tepeleni,  he  took  possession  of  the  place 
as  its  master. 

*  His  marriage  must  have  taken  place  long  before  this,  if,  as  M. 
de  Vaudoncourt  states,  he  was  only  twenty  years  of  age  when  he  mar- 
ried. 


100  HISTORY  OF  THE 

was  compelled  to  withdraw.*  About  this  period,  he  is  sta^ 
ted  to  have  entered  into  a  war  with  the  town  of  Liebovo,  (or 
Libochobo,)  which,  after  an  ineffectual  resistance,  submitted 
to  his  arms.  Lekli,  Giates,  and  some  other  places,  were 
subdued  in  the  same  manner.  He  now  determined  to  attack 
the  strong  place  of  Chormovo,  on  the  inhabitants  of  which 
he  had  vowed  vengeance.  Internal  dissensions  favoured 
his  project.  The  inhabitants,  alarmed  at  his  approach,  en- 
deavoured to  propitiate  him  by  submission ;  but  Ali,  having 
decoyed  the  chief  citizens  to  a  conference,  had  them  treach- 
erously seized,  while  his  troops  fell  upon  the  defenceless  in* 
habitants,  massacred  a  great  number,  and  razed  the  town  to 
the  ground.  The  women  and  children  were  sold  into  slavery. 
One  individual,  particularly  obnoxious  to  Ali,  named  Papas 
Oglou,  or  Krauz  Pifti,  (son  of  a  priest,)  is  stated  to  have 
been  impaled  and  roasted  alive  by  his  orders  :  the  execution- 
er was  a  black  slave,  his  foster-brother.  By  this  execrable 
act  of  vengeance,  he  spread  a  terror  of  his  name  throughout 
the  neighbouring  tribes.f 


*  M.  Pouqueville  gives  a  totally  different  account.  In  the  first  place, 
he  states  that  Ali  was  about  twenty-four  when  he  married  Emina,  the 
daughter  ofCapelan  the  tiger,  Pacha  of  Delvino,  who  resided  at  Argy- 
ro-castro;  this  said  Capelan,  urged  on  by  his  worthy  son-in-law,  is 
represented  as  having  secretly  favoured  the  Montenegrins,  while  Ali 
gave  secret  information  of  his  disloyalty  to  the  Porte.  Capelan  was 
consequently  sent  for  to  answer  for  his  conduct,  and  his  son-in-law 
strongly  urged  him  to  obey  the  summons;  he  lost  his  head  of  course, 
but  the  pachalik  was  given  to  Ali  of  Argyro-castro,  and  the  traitor  was 
disappointed.  The  insurrection  of  Stephano  Piccolo  took  place  in 
1767 :  and,  if  this  account  be  correct,  Ali  must  have  been  born  before 
1747,  or  he  could  not  have  become  Capelan's  son-in-law  by  that  time, 
at  twenty-four  years  of  age,  and  have  acted  subsequently  the  part  here 
ascribed  to  him.  M.  Pouqueville  goes  on  to  state,  that  a  marriage  was 
brought  about  between  the  new  Pacha  of  Delvino  and  Shainitza,  Ali's 
sister ;  but  the  Pacha  in  vain  endeavoured  to  conciliate  the  good  will  of 
his  brother-in-law  by  benefits.  Not  having  been  able  to  persuade  his 
sister  to  poison  her  husband,  Ali  found  means  to  persuade  the  Pacha's 
brother,  Soliman,  to  turn  assassin,  on  condition  of  marrying  the  widow ! 
Again,  however,  Ali  was  disappointed  of  obtaining  the  vacant  pachalik, 
which  was  given  to  Selim  Bey,  whose  treacherous  assassination  by  his 
dear  friend  Ali,  is  not  very  consistently  made  to  follow  close  upon  the 
breaking  out  of  the  war  in  1768.  According  to  this  statement,  Ali  must 
have  got  rid  of  three  successive  Pachas  of  Delvino  in  about  a  twelve- 
month ! 

f  This  act  of  diabolical  cruelty,  which  reminds  us  of  the  crusa- 
ders, seems  to  be  the  best  attested  part  of  the  narrative.  Vassily, 
Mr.  Hobhouse's  attendant,  who  appears  to  have  been  a  native  of 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  101 

1767  These  expeditions  had  made  him  master  of  the 
whole  valley  of  the  Chelydnus  in  front  of  Argyro- 
oastro,  which  he  held  under  observation,  while  the  inhabitants 
on  their  side  established  a  sort  of  redoubt,  and  a  post  of  500 
men  on  the  bridge  below  the  city.  He  is  said  to  have  even 
made  attempts  at  this  time  on  both  Ioannina  and  Arta,  but 
was  repelled.  Shortly  after,  by  means  of  his  emissaries  at 
Constantinople,  he  procured  a  commission  for  attacking  Se- 
lim,  Pacha  of  Delvino,  who  had  fallen  under  the  displeasure 
of  the  Porte  for  having  delivered  up  to  the  Venetians  the 
fortress  and  territory  of  Bucintro.  Resorting  to  his  favour- 
ite measures  of  deceit,  he  appeared  before  Delvino  with  only 
a  small  band  of  troops,  under  pretence  of  flying  from  his  ene- 
mies. Having  gained  the  confidence  of  the  unsuspecting 
Selim,  as  well  as  of  his  son  Mustapha,  he  was  enabled  to  sur- 
round them  with  his  own  satellites.  He  caused  the  father 
to  be  beheaded,  and  the  son  to  be  arrested,  and  succeeded  in 
carrying  off  his  prisoner  in  the  precipitate  retreat  wkich  he 
was  obliged  to  make,  in  order  to  escape  from  the  indignation 
of  the  inhabitants.  He  obtained  a  large  sum  as  a  ransom 
for  his  captive,  but  this  was  the  only  fruit  of  his  perfidy. 

In  the  mean  time,  Kourd  Pacha  having  fallen  into  dis- 
grace,* a  new  dervenji  pacha  had  been  appointed,  who,  either 
actuated  by  the  policy  of  setting  a  thief  to  catch  a  thief,  or 
influenced  by  more  substantial  inducements,  named  Ali  as 
his  lieutenant.  Instead  of  clearing  the  roads  of  banditti, 
Ali  commenced  a  trade  in  licences,  which  he  sold  regularly 
to  the  klephts,  receiving  over  and  above,  a  per  centage  on 
their  booty.  This  traffic  did  not  last,  however,  above  six 
months,  though  Ali  is  said  to  have  cleared  150,000  piastres 
by  the  job.     The  country,  as  the  natural  consequence,  hav- 

Chormovo,  although  the  name  of  the  place  is  not  given,)  told  him,  that 
lie  had  many  a  time  gone  down  with  the  men  of  the  village,  and  broke 
Ali's  windows  with  shot,  when  he  durst  not  stir  out  of  Tepeleni. — 
'  Well,' he  was  asked,  "and  what  did  Ali  do  to  the  men  of  your  village1"' 
"  Nothing  at  all;  he  made  friends  with  our  chief  man,  persuaded  him  to 
come  to  Tepeleni ,  and  there  roasted  him  on  a  spit )  after  which  we  sub- 
mitted."— Hobhouse's  Albania,  letter  xi. 

*  Kourd  Pacha  is  styled  by  Mr.  Hughes  and  M.  Pouqueville,  vizier 
and  Pacha  of  Berat.  M.  de  Vaudoncourt  says,  he  was  vizier  of  Avlona ; 
that  on  his  disgrace,  the  sanjiak  of  Avlona  was  dismembered,  several 
districts  passed  under  the  control  of  the  vizier  of  Scutari,  while  others 
were  united  to  the  sanjiak  of  Elbassan,  whose  Pacha  was  created  a  vizier, 
and  fixed  his  residence  at  Berat. 

10 


102  HISTORY  OF  THE 

ing  become  quite  impassable,  the  dervenji  pacha  was  recalled, 
and  paid  the  penalty  of  his  head,  while  his  crafty  lieutenant 
bought  himself  off. 

So  high  did  Ali's  character,  however,  now  stand  for  brave* 
ry,  or  so  well  was  his  money  laid  out  at  Constantinople, 
that,  on  the  breaking  out  of  the  war  with  Russia,  he  obtained 
a  command,  at  the  head  of  his  Albanian  corps,  in  the  army  of 
the  grand  vizier  Jousouf.  "  His  conduct  during  the  war," 
we  are  told  by  M.  de  Vaudoncourt,  "  was  brilliant:  his  mili- 
tary talents,  and  the  valour  of  his  soldiers,  inured  by  twenty 
years  of  war  and  victory,  obtained  for  him  general  esteem, 
and  at  the  same  time  tended  greatly  to  enrich  him.  But  his 
attention  was  not  withdrawn  from  his  ambitious  projects. 
Hitherto,  he  had  no  government,  no  title,  and  he  wished  to 
be  a  sovereign,  whatever  was  the  sacrifice.  Under  the  pre- 
text of  obtaining  the  release  of  Mahmoud,  one  of  his  ne- 
phews, who  had  been  taken  prisoner  by  the  Russians,  he  en- 
tered into  correspondence  with  Prince  Potemkin.  The  cor- 
respondence soon  became  active,  and  took  a  direction  fa- 
vourable to  the  interests  of  Russia,  who  would  have  been 
able  at  that  time  to  rely  on  Ali  Bey  in  case  of  a  fresh  expe- 
dition to  the  Mediterranean.  The  correspondence  between 
Ali  and  the  Russian  government  lasted  till  he  had  become 
master  of  Ioannina,  as  well  as  of  nearly  all  Albania,  and  had 
no  longer  any  direct  interest  in  aiding  the  designs  of  that 
power."* 

The  war  being  ended,  Ali  had  gained  sufficient  credit  at 
Constantinople  to  have  himself  nominated  to  the  government 
of  Triccala,  [Thessaly,]  with  the  rank  of  a  Pacha  of  two  tails. 
The  situation  of  this  place  was  particularly  adapted  to  his 
views.  It  commands  the  passage  of  merchandise  from  Io- 
annina to  Constantinople  ;  and  whoever  possesses  the  coun- 
try has  it  in  his  power  to  intercept  all  supplies  of  corn  from 
the  fertile  plain  of  Thessaly,  upon  which  the  provinces  of 
Western  Greece  frequently  depend  for  their  subsistence. 
Here   he  established  himself  as  absolute  master  over  all 

*  Vaudoncourt,  p.  234.  The  Author  himself  saw  at  Ioannina  a  watch 
set  in  diamonds,  which  Potemkin  presented  to  Ali  after  the  treaty  of 
peace  had  been  signed, "  in  testimony  of  esteem  for  his  bravery  and  ta- 
lents." Mr,  Hughes  says,  that  Ali  had  conceived  strong  hopes  of  being 
acknowledged  sovereign  of  Epirus,  when  his  friend  should  be  seated  on 
the  throne  of  Constantinople  ;  that  the  correspondence  which  Potemkin 
held  with  Ali  and  many  other  Greek  and  Turkish  chieftains,  became 
known  to  Catharine,  and  probably  precipitated  the  fall  of  the  favourite. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  103 

Thessaly,  except  Larissa,  which  is  an  independent  jurisdic- 
tion. The  people  of  Ioannina,  particularly  the  Greek  mer- 
chants, who  feared  his  exactions,  beheld  with  the  more  alarm 
their  formidable  neighbour,  inasmuch  as  complete  anarchy 
then  prevailed  in  that  city.  The  turbulent  and  powerful  beys 
were  not  only  in  rebellion  against  the  Pacha,  but  were  en- 
gaged in  the  fiercest  contests  with  one  another,  so  that  it  was 
frequently  unsafe  for  a  person  to  stir  out  into  the  streets. 
The  most  atrocious  murders  were  committed  in  open  day, 
till  the  bazar  became  deserted.  At  length,  the  death  of 
the  Pacha  afforded  Ali  the  golden  opportunity  he  had  been 
watching  for.  We  give  the  sequel  in  the  words  of  Mr. 
Hughes,  with  whose  narrative  the  statement  of  M.  de  Vau- 
doncourt  substantially  agrees. 

"  When  Ali  thought  affairs  were  ripe  enough  for  his  pre- 
sence, he  collected  a  considerable  number  of  troops,  passed 
the  chain  of  Mount  Pindus,  and  made  his  appearance  on  the 
plains  to  the  north  of  Ioannina.  The  manoeuvre  caused  great 
consternation  in  the  city  :  the  beys,  in  imminent  danger, 
stifled  their  enmity  towards  each  other,  joined  their  forces 
together,  and  advanced  to  meet  the  invader.  In  a  great 
battle,  which  was  fought  at  the  head  of  the  lake,  they  were 
beaten  and  driven  back  into  the  city  by  Ali,  who  encamped 
before  it  with  his  victorious  troops.  Not  being  strong  enough 
to  attempt  it  by  storm,  he  employed  a  surer  method  for  suc- 
cess. He  had  already  gained  a  considerable  number  of  ad- 
herents amongst  the  Greeks  in  the  city,  and  especially  in  the 
district  of  Zagori  :  these,  by  bribery  and  large  promises,  he 
engaged  to  enter  into  his  views,  and  send  a  deputation  to 
Constantinople,  to  solicit  for  him  the  pashalik.  They  acted 
as  he  requested  ;  but  the  opposite  interest  proved  too  strong 
for  them  at  the  Porte,  and  they  were  made  the  bearers  of  an 
order  to  their  principal  to  retire  immediately  to  his  own  go- 
vernment, and  disband  his  troops.  One  of  the  deputies, 
most  attached  to  his  interest,  rode  forward  night  and  day,  to 
give  him  early  information  of  the  failure  of  their  mission, 
and  on  this  occasion  Ali  executed  one  of  those  strokes  of  po- 
licy which  has  given  him  such  advantage  over  the  imbecility 
of  the  Ottoman  Porte.  After  a  short  consultation  with  his 
friend,  he  dismissed  him  to  return  and  meet  the  deputies, 
who  waited  a  few  days  on  the  road,  and  then  proceeded 
straight  to  Ioannina.  The  beys,  to  whom  its  contents  had 
been  already  intimated,  advanced  as  far  as  the  suburbs  to 


104  HISTORY  OF  THE 

meet  the  firman.  It  was  produced,  and  drawn  out  of  its 
crimson  case  ;  when  each  reverently  applied  it  to  his  fore- 
head, in  token  of  submission  to  its  dictates.  It  was  then 
opened,  and  to  the  utter  consternation  of  the  assembly,  it  an- 
nounced Ali,  Pacha  of  Ioannina,  and  ordered  instant  submis- 
sion to  his  authority. 

"  The  forgery  was  suspected  by  many,  but  some  credited 
it ;  whilst  others,  by  timely  submission,  sought  to  gain  fa- 
vour with  the  man  who  they  foresaw  would  be  their  ruler ; 
in  short,  his  partizans  exerted  themselves  on  all  sides,  the 
beys  were  dispirited,  and  whilst  they  were  irresolute  and 
undetermined,  Ali  entered  the  city  amidst  the  acclamations 
of  the  populace.  His  chief  enemies,  in  the  mean  time,  sought 
their  safety  by  flight,  passing  over  the  lake,  apd  taking  refuge 
in  the  districts  of  Arta,  Etolia,  and  Acarnania. 

"  Ali's  first  care  was  to  calm  the  fears  of  all  ranks ;  to  the 
people,  he  promised  protection ;  to  the  beys  who  remained, 
rich  offices  and  plunder  ;  his  friends  were  amply  recompen- 
sed, and  his  enemies  reconciled  by  his  frankness  and  engaging 
affability.  In  the  mean  time,  he  put  a  strong  garrison  into 
the  castron,  or  fortress,  and  thus  acquired  firm  possession  ot  - 
the  pashalik  before  the  imposture  of  the  firman  was  discover- 
ed. It  was  now  too  late  to  dispossess  him  of  his  acquisition  : 
his  adherents  increased  daily ;  a  numerous  and  respectable 
deputation,  led  by  Signore  Allessio's  father,  carried  a  peti- 
tion to  Constantinople,  and  seconding  it  with  bribes  to  a 
large  amount,  ultimately  prevailed  in  establishing  his  usurp- 
ed dominion.  Thus,  according  to  custom,  despotism  suc- 
ceeded to  the  turbulence  of  faction,  and  the  people  not  un- 
willingly submitted  to  the  change." 

17SS  Soon  afterwards,  Ali,  doubtless  by  the  same  potent 
'  agency,  gold,  obtained  from  the  Porte  the  important 
office  of  dervenji-pacha  of  Rumelia:  whether  he  had  a  lieu- 
tenant is  not  stated,  but  if  he  had,  he  took  good  care  that  he 
should  not  trade  in  licences  to  the  klephts.  This  office  not 
only  augmented  his  revenue,  but  gave  him  an  opportunity  to 
create  an  influence  in  many  provinces  of  the  Turkish  empire. 
His  next  step  was  to  pick  a  quarrel  with  his  neighbour,  the 
Pacha  of  Arta,  and  to  annex  his  territories,  as  well  as  the 
whole  of  Acarnania,  to  his  own  dominions.  Then,  in  order 
to  establish  a  free  communication  between  Ioannina  and  his 
native  territory,  he  attacked  and  took  possession  of  the  strong 
post  of  Kilssura,  followed  it  up  by  the  reduction  of  Premeti, 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  105 

Ostanizza  and  Konitza,  which  secure  the  whole  course  of  the 
Vioussa,  from  its  source  in  Mount  Pindus,  to  Tepeleni.* 

Soon  after  this,  Ibrahim  Pacha  of  Berat,  who  had  former- 
ly rejected  his  alliance,  gladly  accepted  the  proposal  to  af- 
fiance his  three  daughters  to  the  two  sons  and  nephew  of 
Ali,  who  himself  espoused  the  rich  widow  of  a  Pacha  with  a 
considerable  dowry  in  land. 

The  accession  of  Ali  Pacha  to  the  government  of  loannina 
is  stated  by  M.  Pouqueville  to  have  taken  place  towards  the 
end  of  the  year  1788.  In  the  following  year,  the  Sultan  Ab- 
dulhamid  died,  and  was  succeeded  by  Selim  III.,  who,  on  his 
exchanging  the  imprisonment  of  the  Seraglio  for  the  throne, 
confirmed  Ali  Pacha  in  all  his  honours  and  appointments. 
The  situation  of  the  Turkish  empire  was  at  this  period  most 
critical.  The  plan  for  the  seizure  of  the  Ottoman  territories 
is  said  to  have  been  arranged  in  the  personal  interviews  be- 
tween the  Emperor  Joseph  and  the  Russian  Czarina,  during 
their  journey  to  the  Crimea,  in  1787,  and  they  were  carry- 
ing on  their  preparations  for  opening  the  campaign  with  an 
attack  along  the  whole  line  of  the  Turkish  frontier  in  Europe, 

*  Klissura  is  situated  at  the  entrance  of  the  narrow  defile  anciently 
called  the  Fauces  Antigonea  Stena  Aoi,  where,  in  the  first  Macedonian 
war,  Philip  stopped  the  advance  of  the  Roman  legions  till  the  key  of  his 
position  was  betrayed  to  Flaminius,  by  a  shepherd. — Liv.  1.  xxxii.  c  5. 
The  mountains  forming  the  defile  are  now  called,  those  on  the  north 
side,  Trebechina  and  Mejourani ;  those  on  the  south,  Melchiovo.  The 
defile  is  about  ten  miles  in  length  from  Klissura,  (which,  from  the  re- 
mains of  Cyclopean  masonry  observable  there,  Mr.  Hughes  supposes  to 
be  the  site  of  Antigonea,)  to  the  junction  of  the  Aous  with  the  river  of 
Argyro-castro  above  Tepeleni.  The  precipices  on  each  side  are  tre- 
mendous, being  not  much  less  than  a  thousand  feet  in  perpendicular 
height.  Premeti,  which  some  persons  have  taken  for  Antigonea,  is 
about  twelve  miles  higher  up  the  Aous  or  Vioussa.— Hughes,  ii.  p.  119. 
M.  Pouqueville  states,  thai  the  Bey  of  Klissura  at  this  time,  was  Mou- 
rad,  Ali's  own  nephew ;  and  he  gives  a  very  minute  account  of  his  as- 
sassination by  his  uncle,  who  pretended  to  have  been  attacked  by  him. 
Mr.  Hughes  says,  "  I  have  read,  in  an  account  which  pretends  to  be 
genuine,  that  Ali  shot  his  favourite  nephew  in  one  of  the  apartments 
of  his  palace  at  Litoritza.  But  mark  the  difference !  I  once  spent  an 
hour  in  that  very  apartment  with  Ali's  chief  physician,  waiting  for  an 
audience.  This  gentleman,  in  whose  arms  the  young  Bey  expired, gave 
me  the  particulars  of  his  death,  which  was  the  consequence  of  a  fever  : 
he  informed  me  that  the  Vizier  was  so  dotingly  fond  of  the  youth,  that 
he  could  scarcely  be  induced  to  quit  his  bed-side,  and  so  inconsolable  at 
his  loss,  that  he  had  never  once  entered  into  the  room  from  that  time  to 
the  present  And  this  relation  was  amply  confirmed  to  me  by  others." — 
Hughes,  vol.  ii.  p.  108. 

10* 


106  HISTORY  OF  THE 

when  the  Porte  anticipated  them  in  the  declaration  of  war. 
It  is  stated  by  M.  de  Vaudoncourt,  that  Greek  officers  in  the 
service  of  the  Emperor,  accompanied  by  engineers,  had  gone 
over  the  coasts  of  Albania,  the  Morea,  and  the  gulfs  of  Le- 
panto  and  Avlona ;  that  they  had  made  plans  of  the  fortified 
towers  of  Navarino,  Modon,  and  Patras,  and  reconnoitered 
the  Isthmus ;  that  by  means  of  a  Greek  archbishop,  whom 
he  had  allured  to  Pesth,  and  of  Greek  merchants  settled  at 
Trieste  and  Fiume,  he  had  opened  communications  with  all 
parts  of  Greece ;  that  he  kept  up  a  large  number  of  emissa- 
ries in  Albania,  who  had  extended  themselves  as  far  as 
loannina,  and  even  Larissa ;  that  at  Ragusa,  the  Emperor  had 
forty-four  vessels,  placed  under  the  name  of  a  merchant, 
which  in  a  few  days  could  be  equipped  as  frigates ;  that  in 
a  word,  the  Austrian  government  at  that  time  had  neglected 
nothing  to  obtain  the  support  of  the  Greeks,  who,  in  fact, 
began  to  consider  Joseph  II.  as  their  future  liberator,  and  to 
feel  towards  him  the  same  attachment  they  had  always  en- 
tertained for  Russia.*  But  if  ever  there  was  any  cordial 
union  between  the  two  imperial  confederates  who  planned, 
at  this  time,  the  overthrow  of  the  Ottoman  empire,  the  death 
of  that  Emperor  terminated  the  dangerous  alliance*  The 
mutual  jealousy  by  which  each  power  was  actuated,  prevent- 
ed their  union  in  any  common  effort ;  and  the  war  was  pro- 
secuted by  Austria,  as  much  for  the  sake  of  checking  or 
thwarting  its  too  powerful  rival,  as  with  any  view  to  the  con- 


*  Under  the  pretence  of  furnishing  Hungary  with  cultivators,  he 
sought  to  induce  Greeks  to  fix  their  residence  there.  He  not  only  fa- 
voured the  emigration  of  whole  families,  seeking  to  flee  from  the  op- 
pression of  their  masters,  but  he  also  spread  decoyers  in  the  most  distant 
provinces  of  his  dominions.  Another  not  less  efficacious  means  was  his 
edict  of  toleration,  issued  in  1782.  He  therein  formally  promised  the 
Greeks  who  might  come  to  establish  themselves  within  his  states,  to 
admit  them  to  all  civil  and  military  dignities,  according  to  their  merits. 
A  great  number  of  Greeks  flocked  there  from  all  parts.  Many  formed 
establishments  in  Trieste  and  Fiume ;  others  were  admitted  into  the 
military  service.  The  Archbishop  of  Patras,  Parthenius,  who  had  been 
one  of  the  most  ardent  in  stirring  up  the  Morea  in  favour  of  Russia,  in 
the  year  1770,  and  who  had  been  obliged  to  take  refuge  at  St.  Peters- 
burgh,  was  allured  to  Pesth,  where  Joseph  made  a  handsome  provision 
for  him,  and  whence  he  carried  on  an  active  correspondence  with 
Greece.  In  1782,  two  Albanian  captains  penetrated  to  Maina,  and  en 
tered  into  negotiations  with  that  republic,  offered  succour  in  warlike 
stores  and  money,  and  promised  to  transport  field-pieces  there  by  a  sea 
conveyance."—  Vaudoncourt,  p.  24 — 31. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  107 

quest  of  Greece.  Thus  it  was  that  their  united  attack  on  a 
tottering  and  debilitated  empire  produced  nothing  but  the 
capture  of  Oczakow  and  Belgrade,  followed  by  separate 
treaties  of  peace.*  By  the  treaty  of  Yassy,  Russia  added  to 
her  vast  dominions  only  the  steppe  between  the  Bogh  and 
the  Dniester. 

i~gq  Ali  Pacha  received  orders  to  join,  at  the  head  of 
his  contingent  of  troops,  the  Turkish  army  on  the 
banks  of  the  Danube.  According  to  M.  Pouqueville,  he  had 
seen  only  the  smoke  of  the  German  Bivouacks,  when  he  re- 
entered his  winter  quarters  atloannina,  bringing  home  with 
him,  instead  of  captives,  some  hundred  of  Servians  and  Bul- 
garians, peaceable  subjects  of  the  grand  Seignior,  whom  he 
formed  into  two  little  colonies  at  Bonila  and  Mouchari,  in 
the  interior  of  Epirus.  This  appears  to  have  been  in  1789. 
Whatever  were  Ali's  views  at  this  time,  the  death  of  his 
friend  Potemkin,  and  the  unexpected  turn  of  affairs  in  Eu- 
rope, appear  to  have  decided  him,  on  identifying  his  inter- 
ests with  those  of  the  Porte.  But  his  correspondence  with 
Potemkin  had  got  wind,  and  his  enemies  at  Constantinople 
were  endeavouring  to  make  use  of  the  circumstance,  to  un- 
dermine his  influence  in  the  divan.  Fertile  in  expedients, 
he  found  means  to  counteract  these  plots,  and  to  allay  the 
coming  storm  ;  principally  it  is  asserted,  by  the  good  offices  of 
the  French  Minister  at  the  Porte,  whose  protection  he  ob- 
tained through  the  means  of  the  Consul  at  Prevesa.f 

17Q0       ^  not  aPPear  tnat  tne  long-protracted  contest 

'  between  Ali,  and  the  little  republic  of  Suli,  had  any 
political  causes  for  its  origin.  M.  Pouqueville  represents 
the  Suliots  to  have  been  instigated  to  hostilities  by  Ibrahim, 
the  vizier  of  Berat,  and  the  agas  of  Thresprotia ;  but  he 
seems  to  think  that  their  minds  were  inflamed  by  the  flatter- 
ing statements  brought  back  by  the  Greek  deputies  from  St. 
Petersburgh.     It  is  not,  however,  at  all  likely  that  they  would 

*  The  reduction  of  Orsova,  in  April,  1790,  was  the  only  military 
event  of  importance  that  took  place  on  the  part  of  the  Austrians  after 
the  death  of  Joseph  11.  The  insurrection  in  the  Low  Countries,  the 
transaction  on  the  Prussian  frontier,  and  the  influence  of  Great  Britain, 
compelled  the  Emperor  to  enter  into  an  armistice,  and  finally  conclude 
a  separate  peace  with  the  Porte. 

f  Hughes,  vol.  ii.  p  118.  Vaudoncourt,  p.  238.  The  latter  tells  an 
improbable  story  of  Ali's  writing  to  Louis  XVI,  and  received  from  the 
French  minister  an  insulting  reply,  declining  his  proposals,  on  which  he 
turned  his  rage  on  the  French  consul  at  Arta. 


108  HISTORY  OF  THE 

have  attempted  a  rising  at  so  inauspicious  a  crisis,  contrary 
to  the  express  injunctions  of  the  Russian  government.  It 
may  be  true,  that  at  Suli,  the  rebellion  was  planned  under 
Lambro  Canziani,  that  was  to  have  liberated  the  Greeks 
from  the  Ottoman  yoke  ;*  and  Sottiri  may  have  endeavour- 
ed to  engage  the  mountaineers  of  Epirus  in  the  visionary 
plans  of  a  revolution  to  be  undertaken  under  the  faithless 
auspices  of  Russia.  But  the  Suliots  were  genuine  klephts  ; 
and  nothing  was  more  inevitable  than  that  their  proceedings 
should  clash  with  the  official  duty  and  private  interests  of  the 
dervenji-pacha,  in  which  capacity  the  vizier  of  Epirus  had 
most  legimate  grounds  for  waging  warfare  against  them. 
It  seems  that  the  first  force  which  was  sent  out  against  these 
mountaineers,  was  defeated  with  great  slaughter,  and  pursu- 
ed to  the  very  plain  of  loannina.  This  is  said  to  have  taken 
place  before  AH  joined  the  army  of  the  Danube,  and  must 
apparently  have  happened  in  the  time  of  his  predecessor.  In 
the  spring  of  1791,  the  Suliots  who  had  been  for  some  time 
quiet,  issued  from  their  retreats,  and  ravaged  Amphilochia. 
"  Pillaging  alike  friends  and  foes,"  says  M.  Pouqueville, 
"  they  carried  their  imprudence  so  far  as  to  embroil  them- 
selves with  the  chiefs  of  the  armatolis,  and  even  with  the 
Turks  of  Thesprotia.  All  commercial  intercourse  was  in- 
terrupted in  Lower  Albania.  The  denies  were  no  longer 
passable  without  numerous  escorts,  which  were  often  defeat- 
ed by  these  audacious  mountaineers.  They  even  ventured  to 
spread  themselves  over  Pindus,  and  only  withdrew  to  their 
own  country  at  the  approach  of  winter,  at  which  season  the 
snows  render  the  rocky  heights  of  Epirus  uninhabitable." 
It  seems  pretty  clear,  that  in  his  attempt  to  restrain  and  pu- 
nish these  marauders,  Ali  was  supported  by  the  Greek  arma- 
tolis, whom  he  is  stated  to  have  taken  into  his  pay,  but  who 
had  themselves  suffered  from  the  incursions  of  the  klephts. 
In  his  first  serious  expedition  against  the  Suliots,  it  is  ex- 
pressly mentioned,  that  to  the  forces  of  the  agas  of  Cha- 
mouri,  and  a  corps  of  auxiliaries  furnished  by  Ibrahim,  Pacha 
of  Berat,  were  joined  by  the  armatolis  of  Agrafa,  headed  by 
Demetrius  Paleopoulos,  his  brother-in-law  Anagnostis,  Cana- 
vos  and  Hyscos  of  Karpenitza.  Altogether,  the  army  is  stated 
to  have  amounted  to  15,000  men. f     At  the  head  of  this  formi- 

*  Hughes,  vol.  ii.  p.  122.    Eton,  p.  364. 

f  Pouqueville,  voL  i.   p.  51,  90.     This  Demetrius  Paleopoulos,  a 
native  of  Karpenitza  in  JEtolia,  is  celebrated  as  a  man  of  distin 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  109 

dable  force,  Ali  set  out  from  Ioannina  on  the  1st  of  July. 
1792.  To  conceal  his  designs,  he  began  to  march  in  the 
direction  of  Argyro-castro,  but  he  had  scarcely  proceeded 
twenty  miles  when  he  halted  and  encamped.  A  copy  is  given 
by  Mr.  Hughes  of  a  letter  which,  he  is  said  to  have  sent 
to  Botzari  and  Tzavella,  two  of  the  most  distinguished  Suli- 
ot  leaders,  requesting  them  to  join  his  army  at  the  head  of 
their  palikars,  and  promising  them  double  pay.*  Suspicious, 
as  it  should  seem,  of  his  real  intention,  Tzavella  only  obey- 
ed the  summons  at  the  head  of  70  palikars.  All  of  these 
were  now  seized  and  bound,  except  one,  who  escaped  by 
swimming  the  river  Kalamas,  and  gave  the  alarm  at  Suli. 
When  Ali  made  his  appearance  in  that  district,  therefore,  he 
found  the  Suliots  fully  prepared  to  give  him  a  warm  reception. 
Having  ordered  Tzavella  to  be  brought  before  him,  the 
wily  Pacha  now  offered  him  the  amplest  reward  if  he 
would  procure  the  submission  of  the  republic,  holding  out 
the  horrible  alternative  of  being  flayed  alive.     Tzavella  re- 


guished  bravery  and  talent.  In  the  heroic  age,  says  M.  Pouque- 
ville,  he  would  have  been  a  Theseus.  As  it  was,  he  was  only  a 
klepht,  till  promoted  by  the  Porte  to  be  a  waywode  of  his  native  dis- 
trict. He  had  attached  himself  to  Ali  as  far  back  as  1786,  when  they 
met  at  Triccala,  and  their  fathers  are  said  to  have  been  intimate.  On 
the  occasion  of  the  Suliot  war,  this  Greek  patriot  took  the  lead  against 
the  klephtic  republic.  Nicholas  Cojani,  Boucovallas,  Stathoss,  his  son- 
in-law,  Euthymos  Blakavas,  Zitros  of  Olosson,  Macry  Athanasius,  and 
Macry  Poulios  of  Greveno,  Christakis  of  Prevesa  and  Andriscros,  the 
companions  in  arms  of  Lambro  Canzianis,  are  mentioned  by  Pouqueville 
as  maintaining  on  this  occasion  an  armed  neutrality.  A  pretty  clear 
proof  that  the  cause  of  Suli  was  not  then  considered  as  identical  with 
that  of  Grecian  liberty.  The  number  of  troops  which  were  sent  against 
Suli,  is  stated  by  M.  Prevaux,  "  the  historian  of  Suli,"  at  28,000  men. 
Mr.  Hughes  says,  "  about  10,000,  all  tried  Albanian  troops." 

*  This  letter,  written  in  modern  Greek,  is  preserved  and  translated 
by  Eton.  He,  however,  spells  the  names  of  the  Suliot  chiefs  Bogia  and 
Giavella.     The  letter  runs  thus  • 

My  friends,  Captain  Bogia  and  Captain  Giavella,  I,  Ali  Pacha,  salute 
you  and  kiss  your  eyes,  because  I  well  know  your  courage  and  heroic 
minds.  It  appears  to  me  that  I  have  great  need  of  you  ;  therefore,  I 
intreat  you  immediately,  when  you  receive  this  letter,  to  assemble  all 
your  heroes,  and  come  to  meet  me,  that  I  may  go  and  fight  my  enemies. 
This  is  the  hour  and  the  time  that  I  have  need  of  you.  I  expect  to  see 
your  friendship,  and  the  love  which  you  have  for  me.  Your  pay  shall 
be  double  that  which  I  give  to  the  Albanians,  because  1  know  your  cou- 
rage is  greater  than  theirs ;  therefore,  I  will  not  go  to  fight  before  you 
come,  and  I  expect  that  you  will  come  soon.  This  only,  and  I  salute 
you. 


110  HISTORY  OF  THE 

presented,  that  his  countrymen  would  never  treat  while  he  re* 
mained  a  prisoner,  but  he  offered  his  son  Foto  as  a  hostage, 
if  Ali  would  let  him  return  to  Suli,  to  endeavour  to  bring 
about  a  negotiation.  His  proposal  was  accepted,  and  as 
soon  as  he  had  regained  the  mountains,  and  consulted  the 
other  captains,  he  sent  back  a  letter  of  defiance,  in  which, 
anticipating  the  sacrifice  of  his  son,  he  swears  to  revenge 
him.*  Foto,  however,  was  not  put  to  death,  but  subsequent- 
ly obtained  his  liberty.  The  Pacha  now  prepared  to  attack 
Suli  by  force  of  arms  ;  but  at  this  crisis,  the  campaign  had 
well  nigh  been  terminated  by  the  death  of  their  enemy.  A 
detachment  of  these  brave  mountaineers,  to  the  number  of 
200,  having  learned  that  Ali  was  encamped  with  his  body- 
guard at  some  little  distance  from  the  main  army,  marched 
out  with  the  determination  to  take  him  alive  or  dead  ;  and 
but  for  the  timely  information  conveyed  to  Ali  by  a  traitor, 
they  would  probably  have  succeeded.  Ali,  now  infuriated 
to  the  utmost,  put  his  troops  immediately  in  motion. 

The  four  villages  which  formed  the  principal  seats  of  this 
martial  clan,  occupied  a  sort  of  natural  citadel  in  the  heart  of 
the  Cassopaean  mountains,  consisting  of  a  small  plain  about 
2000  feet  above  the  bed  of  the  Acheron :  a  grand  natural 
breast-work  descends  precipitously  to  the  river,  while  behind 
towers  a  lofty  range  of  mountains.  "  The  Acheron,  (Kala- 
mas,)  after  passing  through  the  valley  of  Dervitziana,  first 
enters  this  chasm  at  the  gorge  of  Skouitias,  so  called  from  a 
small  village  of  that  name.  A  narrow  path,  which  winds 
through  the  dark  woods  on  the  right  bank,  conducts  the 
traveller  in  about  two  hours  to  a  narrow  cut  across  his  path, 
called  Klissura,   admirably  adapted  to  stop    the    progress 

*  See  Eton,  p.  371,  where  there  is  the  following  translation  of  the 
Captain's  letter : 
Ali  Pacha — 

I  am  glad  I  have  deceived  a  traitor ;  I  am  here  to  defend  my  country 
against  a  thief.  My  son  will  be  put  to  death,  but  I  will  desperately 
revenge  him  before  I  fall  myself.  Some  men,  like  you  Turks,  will  say 
I  am  a  cruel  father,  to  sacrifice  my  son  for  my  own  safety.  I  answer,  if 
you  took  the  mountain,  my  son  would  have  been  killed,  with  all  the 
rest  of  my  family  and  my  countrymen  ;  then  I  could  not  have  revenged 
his  death.  If  we  are  victorious,  I  may  have  other  children,  my  wife  is 
young.  If  my  son,  young  as  he  is,  is  not  willing  to  be  sacrificed  for  bis 
-country,  he  is  not  worthy  to  live,  or  to  be  owned  by  me  as  a  son.  Ad- 
vance, traitor;  I  am  impatient  to  be  revenged.  I  am  your  sworn 
enemy. 

CAPTAIN  GIAVELLA. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  Hi 

of  an  enemy.  This  defile  was  commanded  by  a  fort  called 
Tichos,  and  near  it  was  the  first  Suliote  village,  called  Ava- 
rice From  this  point  a  gradual  ascent  leads  to  the  deserted 
site  of  Samoniva,  thence  to  Kiaffa,  (a  word  signifying  a 
height,)  and  lastly  to  Kako-Suli,  the  capital  of  the  republic. 
Near  the  spot  where  the  mountain-path  leaves  the  side  of  the 
Acheron,  to  wind  up  the  precipices  between  Kiaffa  and  Ka- 
ko-Suli, a  conical  hill  overhangs  the  road,  called  Kunghi,  on 
which  stood  the  largest  of  the  Suliot  fortresses,  named 
Aghia  Paraskevi  (Saint  Friday.)  At  this  point,  another 
small  river,  flowing  from  the  Paramathian  mountains,  joins 
the  Acheron,  which,  descending  the  romantic  defile  of  Glyki, 
enters  the  great  Paramathian  plain,  and  empties  itself,  after 
flowing  through  the  Acherusian  lake,  into  the  Ionian  Sea, 
near  the  ancient  city  of  Cichyrus,  or  Ephyre.* 

The  Suliots,  being  obliged  to  retreat  before  superior  num- 
bers, were  closely  pursued  by  Ali's  forces  down  the  valley  of 
the  Acheron,  but,  at  the  pass  of  Klissura,  they  made  a  stand. 
And  here  the  Albanian  troops  were  assailed  by  such  volleys 
of  musketry  from  the  fortress  of  Tichos,  and  from  behind  the 
rocks  which  form  the  defile,  that  the  passage  became  nearly 
choked  up  with  the  slain.  The  ammunition  of  the  Suliots  at 
length  beginning  to  fail,  they  were  compelled  to  retire  to- 
wards Kiaffa.  This  also  was  soon  found  to  be  untenable, 
and,  followed  by  the  Pacha's  army,  they  retreated  towards 
Kako-Suli.  The  great  fort  of  Aghia  Paraskevi,  which  com- 
mands the  Tripa,  a  deep  chasm  between  Kiaffa  and  the  capi- 
tal, was  at  this  time  so  thinly  garrisoned,  that  Suli  would 
have  been  lost  but  for  an  act  of  female  valour,  which  well 
deserves  comparison  with  that  of  Telesilla  and  her  Argives. 
"  The  heroine  Mosco,  (the  wife  of  Tzavellas,)  arming  all 
her  female  warriors,  rushed  out  of  the  town  sword  in  hand, 
stopped  the  retreat  of  husbands  and  brethren,  headed  them 
in  a  valiant  attack  upon  the  assailants,  now  breathless  from 
iheir  pursuit  of  the  fugitives  up  these  steep  acclivities,  and  in 
a  moment  turned  the  tide  of  war.  The  Albanians,  in  their 
turn,  retreated  and  fled;  the  garrison  of  Paraskevi,  reinforced 
by  a  number  of  fugitives,  made  a  sally  to  increase  their  con- 


*  Hughes,  vol.  n\  p.  121.  The  name  of  Suli  is  probably  &  corruption 
of  the  ancient  Selli ;  (Homer,  Iliad,  lib.  xvi.  233 ;)  but  no  vestiges  of 
any  ancient  cities  have  been  discovered  within  the  district  of  the  Su- 
iiotes.  The  distance  of  Suli  from  Ioannina  is  14  hours ;  from  Prevesa. 
13;  from  Arta,  14;  from  Parga,  8;  from  Margarita,  6;  from  Parama- 
thia,  8. 


112  HISTORY  OF  THE 

fusion ;  heaps  of  stone  were  rolled  down  upon  the  flying 
foe,  who  were  again  intercepted  at  the  fort  of  Tichos,  and 
almost  annihilated.  Hundreds  of  dead  bodies  were  rolled 
into  the  bed  of  the  Acheron,  whose  torrent  was  encumbered 
with  the  slain. 

"  Arrived  at  this  tower,  Mosco  discovered  the  body  of  hei 
favourite  nephew,  who  had  been  killed  in  the  first  attack  on 
this  position.  Animated  with  a  desire  of  vengeance  at  the 
sight,  she  kissed  the  pale  lips  of  the  corpse,  and  calling  on 
the  Suliots  to  follow,  she  led  them,  like  a  tigress  bereft  of 
her  whelps,  against  those  troops  who  remained  about  the 
Pacha  in  the  upper  regions  of  the  valley.  Terrified  by  the 
fate  of  their  companions,  these  took  immediately  to  flight, 
and  were  pursued  by  the  victorious  Suliots  as  far  as  the  vil- 
lage of  Vareatis,  within  seven  hours  of  Ioannina  :  they  lost 
all  their  baggage,  ammunition  and  arms,  which  were  thrown 
away  in  the  flight,  besides  an  immense  number  of  prisoners, 
whose  ransom  served  to  enrich  the  conquerors.  Ali  himself 
killed  two  horses  in  his  precipitate  escape,  and  when  he  ar- 
rived at  his  capital,  he  shut  himself  up  in  his  harem  for 
several  days.  About  6,000  men  are  said  to  have  been  slain 
and  taken  prisoners  :  the  remainder  having  been  dispersed 
over  the  woods  and  mountains,  did  not  collect  together  at 
Ioannina  for  several  weeks.  This  battle  occurred  July  20, 
1792."* 

Ali  now  saw  that  the  conquest  of  Suli  must  be  given  up 
for  the  present,  and  he  is  said  to  have  made  peace  on  most 
degrading  terms,  ceding  to  them  possession  of  their  acquired 
territory  as  far  as  Devitzianna,  and  paying  a  large  sum  as 
ransom  for  his  captive  troops,  besides  restoring  the  palikars 
whom  he  had  trepanned,  and  Foto  Tzavella  among  the  rest. 

During  the  ensuing  four  or  five  years,  Ali  appears  to  have 
kept  quiet,  directing  his  attention  to  the  improvement  of  his 
capital,  the  construction  of  roads  for  the  facilitating  of  inter- 
nal commerce,  and  the  extirpation  of  the  robbers  who  infest- 
ed all  parts  of  the  country.  His  subjects  had  to  complain  of 
his  oppressive  avanias ;  but  it  seems  to  be  admitted,  that,  at 
this  period,  he  did  not  display  that  severity  of  character 


*  Hughes,  vol.  ii.  p.  132.  M.  Pouqueville  says,  that  Ali  escaped  in 
disguise,  having  exchanged  clothes  with  Paleopoulos;  and  that  the  great- 
er part  of  those  who  rallied  round  him  were  armatolis,  who  had  formed 
his  body-guard ;  those  who  perished  in  the  defile,  were  chiefly  Moslems. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  1 13 

which  subsequently  broke  out  into  so  many  acts  of  wanton 
cruelty ;  and  his  despotism  was,  on  the  whole,  a  beneficent 
one  to  the  country.  In  the  meantime,  French  revolutionists 
were  busy  about  Ali,  flattering  him  with  the  hope  of  being 
enabled  to  throw  off  the  yoke  of  obedience  to  the  Porte,  and 
to  assume  the  independent  sovereignty  of  Epirus ;  and  when, 
in  1797,  he  saw  the  Venetians  driven  from  the  Ionian  Islands, 
and  their  continental  dependencies,  in  pursuance  of  the  trea- 
ty of  Campo  Formio,  and  the  French  flag  waving  on  the 
shores  of  Epirus,  he  eagerly  entered  into  secret  negotiations 
With  General  Bonaparte,  then  at  the  head  of  his  victorious 
army  in  Italy.  The  benefits  which  he  drew  from  this  alli- 
ance were  substantial  and  immediate.  He  gained  permission 
to  sail  with  his  flotilla  through  the  channel  of  Corfu,  in  spite 
of  former  treaties  ;  and  he  surprised  and  captured  the  two  in- 
dependent towns  of  Aghia  Vasili  and  Nivitza,  on  the  coast 
opposite  to  that  island,  massacreing  the  inhabitants  in  church 
one  Easter  Sunday,  while  engaged  in  divine  service.  Soon 
after  this,  he  took  possession  of  the  important  fishery  at  San- 
ta Quaranta,  as  well  as  of  the  excellent  harbour  of  Porto  Pa- 
lermo, where  he  built  a  large  fort ;  thus  drawing  a  cordon 
round  the  pachalik  of  Delvino.  His  agents  at  Constantino- 
ple made  a  permit  of  these  acts,  by  representing  them  as 
done  solely  for  the  advantage  of  the  Porte  and  the  subjuga- 
tion of  infidels,  which  Ali  did  not  fail  to  confirm  by  paying 
tribute  for  every  place  he  conquered.  Still  further  to  raise 
his  credit  at  Constantinople,  he  headed  his  contingent  of  Al- 
banian troops,  and  joined  the  Grand  Vizier  in  his  campaign 
against  the  rebel  Pacha  of  Widin,  Paswan  Oglou.*  He  was 
engaged  in  this  expedition  when  he  received  intelligence  of 
the  invasion  of  Egypt  by  the  French,  and  the  approaching 
rupture  between  France  and  Turkey.  Foreseeing  that  the 
Ionian  Islands  would  probably  again  change  hands,  he  has- 
tened back  to  Ioannina,  leaving  his  son  Mouctar  in  command 
of  his  troops,  that  he  might  be  in  readiness  to  avail  himself  of 
any  events  that  might  be  converted  to  his  own  advantage.    In 

*  An  anecdote,  highly  characteristic,  is  related  of  him  at  this  period- 
The  Grand  Vizier,  under  pretence  of  bestowing  public  approbation  upon 
'lis  conduct,  requested  his  attendance  in  full  divan.  Ali,  conscious  how 
much  more  he  merited  the  bow-string  than  half  the  victims  who  had 
been  honoured  with  that  Turkish  martyrdom,  went,  but  had  the  pre- 
caution to  surround  the  vizier's  tent  with  6,000  of  his  Albanians.  As 
might  be  expected,  his  reception  was  courteous,  but  the,  conference 
was  short- 

11 


114  HISTORY  OF  THE 


fact,  he  did  not  wait  long  before  he  commenced  operations 
by  seizing  on  Prtyyesa,  the  strongest  and  most  important  of 
all  the  ex-Venetian  possessions  on  the  continent.  The  al- 
leged detention  of  one  of  his  brigs  sailing  into  the  Gulf  of 
Arta,  was  made  the  pretext  for  attacking  his  former  allies. 
The  unfortunate  Prevesans  had  scarcely  time  to  send  their 
families  and  moveable  property  to  the  neighbouring  islands ; 
and  many,  discrediting  the  report  of  the  Pacha's  approach, 
neglected  that  precaution.  The  place  was  ill  prepared  to 
make  any  defence.  The  French  garrison  capitulated  after 
a  short  resistance,  and  the  Prevesans  being  most  easily  rout- 
ed, their  city  was  given  up  to  pillage.*  Vonitza,  Gomenit- 
za,  and  Bucintro,  subsequently  fell  into  his  hands,  and  Parga 
and  Santa  Maura  narrowly  escaped  ;  the  former,  through 
the  determined  conduct  and  bravery  of  the  inhabitants,  the 
latter  through  the  timely  interposition  of  a  Greek  captain  in 
the  Russian  service,  who  arrived  off  the  island  just  in  time  to 
intercept  Ali's  flotilla.  No  failure  in  his  schemes,  it  is  said, 
ever  annoyed  him  so  much  as  this  disappointment. 

In  March,  1800,  a  treaty  was  concluded  between  Russia 
and  Turkey,  by  which  the  independence  of  the  Seven  Islands 
was  guaranteed  under  protection  of  the  former  power,  upon 
payment  of  an  annual  tribute  of  75,000  piastres  to  the 
Porte  :  the  continental  dependencies  were  all  annexed  to  the 
dominions  of  the  Sultan,  except  Parga,  which  resolutely 
maintained  its  independence.  When  the  Russian  forces  had 
retired,  Ali,  unwilling  to  abandon  his  project,  still  indulged 
in  the  hope  of  being  able  to  seize  on  Corfu  and  Santa  Maura, 
the  possession  of  which  would  have  consolidated  his  power 
on  the  adjacent  part  of  the  continent.  Under  pretext  of  sus- 
taining the  pretensions  of  the  nobility,  he  excited  the  first 
commotions  that  broke  out  in  those  islands,  of  which  he 
availed  himself  to  represent  to  the  Divan,  that  the  only 
means  of  restoring  tranquillity,  would  be  to  allow  him  to  gar- 
rison Corfu,  Parga,  and  Santa  Maura.  His  representations 
and  his  gold  would  probably  have  prevailed  at  Constantino- 
ple, had  not  the  Ionian  senate  defeated  his  intrigues  by 
throwing  themselves  into  the  arms  of  Russia.   This  measure, 

*  The  bishop  of  Prevesa  is  said  to  have  been  an  active  agent  in 
forming  a  party  at  Prevesa  in  favour  of  Ali ;  but,  disgusted  with  his 
atrocious  cruelties,  he  afterwards  deserted  him.  Upwards  of  300  Pre- 
vesans are  stated  to  have  been  massacred,  by  Ali's  orders,  in  cold 
blood. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  115 

which  overturned  all  his  projects,  did  not  fail  to  increase  his 
jealousy  against  that  power,  and  he  was  thenceforth  its  im- 
placable enemy.  Anxious  to  extend  his  foreign  relations,  he 
now  availed  himself  of  the  appearance  of  a  British  squadron 
in  the  Ionian  Sea,  to  open  a  correspondence  with  the  admi- 
ral ;  but  it  does  not  appear  that  his  negotiations  led  at  this 
time  to  any  definite  result,  and  he  soon  reverted  to  his  French 
connexions. 

It  was  some  compensation  for  the  disappointment  of  his 
schemes,  that  the  ambitious  Vizier  now  received  the  public 
thanks  of  the  Sultan  for  his  eminent  services,  together  with 
a  present  of  the  keliclc-caftan  (a  fine  ermine  pelisse)  and  a 
sword  decorated  with  brilliants.  To  complete  hi»elevation. 
he  was  made  Rumelie-valisee,  or  Viceroy  of  Roumelia.  Bound 
by  the  duties  of  his  office  to  visit  the  provinces  confided  to 
his  jurisdiction,  he  did  not  fail  to  turn  to  good  account  the 
discharge  of  this  obligation.  Being  charged  to  collect  the 
arrears  of  contributions  due  to  the  imperial  treasury,  as  well 
in  money  as  in  kind,  he  increased  them,  it  is  said,  in  the  pro- 
portion of  three  to  five,  reserving  two  fifths  as  his  per  centage 
for  the  trouble  of  collecting.  He  took  up  his  residence  for 
same  time  at  Monastir,  a  large  town  about  a  day's  journey 
west  of  the  lake  of  Ochrida,  which  he  pillaged  in  the  most 
shameless  manner,  carrying  away  nineteen  waggons  laden 
with  valuable  effects.  It  is  calculated  that,  besides  money 
and  other  articles,  20,000  sheep  were,  by  this  visitation,  ad- 
ded to  his  property ;  and  the  sum  total  of  the  exactions 
wrested  from  these  provinces  has  been  estimated  at  10,000,000 
of  piastres. 


J!6  HISTORY  OF  THE 


CHAPTER  X. 

Ali  intends  to  attach  the  Ionian  Isles.— -He  sends  an  agent  to 
Bonaparte. — Obtains  a  skilful  Engineer. — Napoleon  oc- 
cupies the  Ionian  Isles. — Suli  and  the  Suliots. — War  be- 
tween them  and  Ali. — Suliots  take  the  fortress  of  Villa. — 
Their  women  destroy  their  children  and  then  themselves. — 
Mosco,  a  womant  holds  a  commission. — Ali's  intrigues. — 
Plan  of  the  French  and  the  Porte  to  attack  him. — The 
city  of  Argyro-castro  taken  by  Ali. — He  also  takes  Gar- 
diki  and  slaughters  the  inhabitants. — Sultan's  Executioner 
visits  Ali. — Carries  a  good  account  of  him  to  his  Master. — 
Attempts  to  take  Parga. — Divan  pronounces  sentence 
against  him. — His  extremity  and  distress. — Retreats  to 
his  Castle  at  Ioannina%  where  he  is  besieged  by  the  Sultan's 
troops. — His  death. 

The  victory  of  Austerlitz  and  the  peace  of  Presburg,  by 
which  Dalmatia  and  Illyricum  were  annexed  to  the  kingdom 
of  Italy,  recalled  the  attention  of  Ali  towards  France.  As 
Russia  still  continued  in  hostility  with  Napoleon,  and  had 
just  seized  on  Cattaro,  Ali  thought  that  a  favourable  opportu- 
nity was  now  afforded  for  attacking  that  power  in  the  Ionian 
Islands.*  He  accordingly  sent  a  secret  agent  to  Bonaparte, 
to  solicit  that  a  French  consul  might  be  sen*  to  reside  at  his 
capital ;  and  M.  Pouqueville  was  selected  for  the  office,  with 
the  title  of  consul  general,  while  his  brother  was  appointed 
vice-consul  under  him  at  Prevesa.  The  French  minister 
at  the  Porte  at  this  time  governed  the  Divan.  Through  his 
interest,  Ali  procured  the  pachalik  of  Lepanto  for  his  elder 
son,  Mouctar,  and  for  Veli,  his  younger  son,  that  of  the 
Morea.  In  return,  he  assisted  Sebastiani  in  promoting  the 
rupture  between  Turkey  and  Russia.  Hostilities  having 
commenced,  he  engaged  to  push  the  war  so  vigorously 
against  the  Russians  in  the  islands,  that  they  should  be  una- 
ble to  annoy  the  French  army  in  Dalmatia,  provided  that  he 
were  supplied  with  artillery  and  engineers.  At  the  com- 
mencement of  1807,  he  appeared  to  be  on  the  point  of  ob- 
taining the  object  of  his  wishes.     Fifty  artillery  men,  several 

*  The  reader  will  remember  that  these  islands  were  taken  by  the 
Russians  in  1799,  and  kept  by  them  until  1807. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  117 

officers,  together  with  ordnance  and  military  stores,  were 
sent  out  to  him  in  a  gunboat  and  a  corvette  from  the  kingdom 
of  Naples,  while  Colonel  Vaudoncourt,  a  skilful  engineer, 
sent  out  by  Marshal  Marmont,  remained  with  Ali  to  superin- 
tend operations.  Under  his  direction,  additional  works  were 
thrown  up  round  Ioannina,  Prevesa  was  fortified,  and  the 
siege  of  Santa  Maura  was  begun.  Notwithstanding  a  well- 
timed  diversion  promoted  by  the  Russians,  who  excited  a 
general  insurrection  of  the  Tzamouriots  and  Paramathians,  it 
was  prosecuted  with  vigour.  The  explosion  of  a  powder- 
magazine  having  dismantled  one  of  the  forts,  a  landing-point 
was  left  uncovered,  and  orders  were  given  to  construct  a 
sufficient  number  of  flat-bottomed  boats  to  turn  it  to  advan- 
tage. Indeed,  every  thing  was  ready  for  the  arrival  of  a 
corps  of  10,000  Albanians,  when  the  peace  of  Tilsit  most 
opportunely  put  a  stop  to  hostilities.  Ali  would  fain  have 
prosecuted  his  operations  ;  but  the  French  officers  refused  to 
consent,  and  Santa  Maura  was  saved.  Napoleon  was  suffi- 
ciently informed  that  all  Ali's  selfish  views  centred  in  the 
occupation  of  the  Septinsular  republic,  and  Mehemet  EfFen- 
di,  an  Italian  renegade,  despatched  by  Ali  to  the  Emperor, 
used  every  exertion  to  obtain  a  promise  from  Napoleon,  that 
at  least  Santa  Maura  and  Parga  should  be  ceded  to  his  mas- 
ter. The  integrity  of  the  Ionian  Republic  was,  however, 
one  of  the  bases  of  the  negotiations  resolved  upon  at  Tilsit, 
and  his  agent  could  accomplish  nothing  ;  Parga,  of  which 
he  endeavoured  to  gain  possession,  placing  itself  under  the 
protection  of  the  Ionian  government. 

As  soon  as  Ali  saw  the  islands  occupied  by  French  troops, 
his  friendship  with  Napoleon  was  at  an  end.  He  now  again 
turned  to  England,  and  requested  that  an  accredited  agent 
might  be  sent  out  to  him  from  that  country.  In  the  autumn 
of  1808,  a  British  agent  had  a  secret  conference  with  the  Vi- 
zier at  Prevesa,  at  which  the  plan  of  operations  was  concert- 
ed. Ali  engaged  to  second,  by  all  his  influence,  the  attempts 
of  Sir  A.  Paget  to  bring  about  a  peace  between  Turkey  and 
Great  Britain  ;  and  to  him  it  is  stated  to  have  been  entirely 
owing,  that  the  point  was  carried.  At  that  moment,  the  in- 
surrection of  the  janizaries  and  the  death  of  the  Grand  Vi- 
zier had  thrown  every  thing  at  Constantinople  into  such  con- 
fusion, that  Mr.  Adair  was  about  to  quit  his  station  in  despair, 
when  Ali  wrote  to  him  to  urge  his  remaining  to  wait  the 
event.  So  important,  indeed,  were  his  services  deemed  by 
the  British  cabinet,  that,  by   way  of  acknowledgment,  a 

11* 


118  HISTORY  OF  THE 

very  fine  park  of  artillery,  with  several  hundreds  of  the  then 
newly-invented  Congreve's  rockets,  were  sent  him  on  board 
a  transport,  while  Major  Leake,  who  had  the  care  of  the  ar- 
tillery, was  ordered  to  remain  to  teach  his  Albanian  troops 
the  use  of  it,  and  to  act  as  English  resident.  The  expulsion 
of  the  French  from  Zante,  Cephalonia,  Ithica,  and  Cerigo, 
and  the  occupation  of  those  islands  by  the  English  in  the 
ieOQ  autumn  of  1809,  confirmed  his  determination  openly 
to  espouse  the  interest  of  Great  Britain.  He  now 
opened  his  ports  to  our  merchants  and  cruizers,  and  granted 
supplies,  on  the  most  liberal  terms,  for  our  navy  and  army 
in  the  Spanish  Peninsula.  By  this  means,  he  secured  a  pow- 
erful ally  against  the  hour  of  need ;  and  when,  in  1813,  the 
Divan,  instigated  by  Andreossy,  the  French  minister  at  the 
Porte,  had,  as  it  appears,  well  nigh  determined  on  his  de- 
struction, the  representations  of  the  British  ambassadors  had 
no  small  influence  in  averting  the  storm  from  the  dominion  of 
so  useful  an  ally.* 

We  must  now  go  back  a  little,  to  give  the  sequel  of  the 
history  of  Suli.  On  his  return  to  Ioannina,  after  his  expedi- 
tion to  Romelia  in  1800-1,  Ali  determined  to  recommence 
operations  against  this  little  republic,  to  which  he  was  more 
particularly  incited  by  its  intimate  connexion  with  Parga  and 
Corfu.  Botzari,  one  of  the  most  distinguished  leaders,  had 
been,  in  the  meantime,  bought  over  to  his  interests,  and  the 
Pacha  was  led  to  believe  that  Suli  would  surrender  on  the 
first  attack.  He  was,  however,  wofully  mistaken.  Foto 
Tzavella  survived,  and  together  with  the  Amazon  Mosco,  a 
martial  calayer  or  monk,  named  Samuel,  of  wild,  enthusiastic 
character,  and  some  other  leaders  of  kindred  spirit,  still  de- 
fied his  power.  Ali  took  the  field  with  about  18,000  men  ; 
the  number  of  Suliot  palikars  never  exceeded  at  any  time 
3000.  f     But  numbers,  far  from  being  of  avail  in  such  a  field 


*  M.  Pouqueville  asserts,  that  Ali  actually  received  orders  to  quit 
Ioannina,  and  to  retire  to  Tepeleni  ;  and  he  gives  a  long  conversation 
which  he  alleges  to  have  passed  between  the  vizier  and  himself  on  the 
occasion  of  his  departure.  The  French  had  then  just  entered  Moscow. 
But  no  sooner  had  the  tragical  twenty-ninth  bulletin  of  the  grand 
army  spread  through  Greece  the  news  of  Napoleon's  disasters,  than 
Ali  returned  to  Ioannina. 

f  Before  their  first  war  with  Ali  Pacha,  the  Suliots  possessed  six- 
ty-six villages,  "  all  conquered  by  their  arms  ;"  but  the  republic 
consisted  of  the  four  stations,  Kako-Suli,  containing  425  families ; 
Kiaffa,  60 ;  Avarico,  55 ;  and  Samonia,  30 ;  total  570.  The  settle- 
ment is  said  to  have  originated  with  a  few  goatherds  about  the  mrd 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  119 

of  action,  only  served  to  create  confusion  and  embarrassment. 
The  Albanian  troops,  on  endeavouring  to  penetrate  the  de- 
file of  Glyki,  were  overwhelmed  with  huge  stones  poured 
down  from  the  overhanging  precipices,  and  with  volleys  of 
musket-balls  from  unseen  marksmen.  Foto  Tzavella,  at  the 
head  of  about  200  chosen  palikars,  is  stated  to  have  routed 
with  great  slaughter  a  detachment  of  3,000  Albanians,  while 
his  own  loss  did  not  exceed  twenty  men.  The  total  loss,  in 
killed  and  prisoners,  on  the  part  of  Ali,  in  various  successive 
attacks,  exceeded  in  numbers  the  sum  total  of  the  Suliot  ar- 
my. Botzari  was  himself  repulsed  in  a  treacherous  attempt 
to  lead  a  party  over  the  mountain  of  Raithovuni  ;  and  his 
death,  a  few  months  after,  was  supposed  to  be  the  effect  either 
of  chagrin,  or  of  poison  administered  by  his  own  hand. 

Despairing  to  subdue  such  valiant  and  determined  enemies 
in  open  warfare,  Ali  turned  the  siege  into  a  blockade,  re- 
solving to  trust  to  famine  and  treachery.  But  his  troops  be- 
gan to  desert ;  and  while  the  Suliots,  according  to  a  Parghi- 
ot  historian,  lost  in  nine  months  but  twenty-five  men,  Ali  lost, 
by  defection,  and  in  various  skirmishes  within  the  same  pe- 
riod, nearly  4,000.  In  the  desperate  emergency  to  which  the 
besieged  were  sometimes  reduced,  many  stratagems  were 
resorted  to  for  procuring  provisions,  among  which  the  con- 
trivance of  Gianni  Striviniotti  deserves  particular  mention. 
"  This  man,  having  received  intelligence  that  the  Turk? 
had  lately  procured  a  large  supply  of  cattle  from  the  neigh- 
bouring pastures,  dressed  himself  in  his  white  capote  and 
camise,  and  concealing  himself  till  the  shades  of  evening  had 
descended,  walked  out  on  all  fours  from  his  lurking  place, 
and  mingling  with  the  herds,  entered  together  with  them 
into  the  stalls  where  they  were  shut  up.  In  the  dead  of  the 
night  he  arose  silently,  opened  the  doors,  unloosed  the  oxen. 
and  drove  them  towards  a  party  of  his  friends  who  were  in 
waiting  to  receive  them.  The  Albanians  heard  the  noise, 
but  were  so  alarmed  by  suspicion  of  an  ambuscade,  that  the} 
lay  still,  and  preferred  the  loss  of  their  cattle  to  the  danger 
of  their  lives." 

About  this  time,  Ali  was  called  off  by  orders  from  the 
Porte  to  lead  his  contingent  against  Paswan  Oglou,  and  the 

die  of  the  seventeenth  century.  In  the  notes  to  Sheridan's  Songs  of 
Greece,  among  which  will  be  found  several  relating  to  Suli,  it  is  stated 
that  the  Suliots  never  reckoned  more  than  1,500,  and  seldom  above 
1,000  muskets.  The  population  is  set  down  at  5,000  souls.  But  little 
dependence  can  be  placed  on  Greek  statements. 


120  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Suliots  availed  themselves  of  his  absence  to  lay  in  stores  botl 
of  provisions  and  •  arms.  On  his  return,  he  again  had  re- 
course to  a  false  and  treacherous  proposal  of  peace,  on  the 
conditions  of  being  allowed  to  build  and  garrison  one  tower 
within  their  district,  and  of  their  banishing  the  brave  Foto 
Tzavella  from  the  Suliot  territory,  as  the  chief  impediment  in 
the  way  of  tranquillity.  It  does  not  appear  that  the  former 
condition  was  complied  with ;  and  yet,  the  folly  and  in- 
fatuation which  a  compliance  with  it  would  have  displayed, 
would  not  have  been  greater  than  the  Suliots  were  actually 
guilty  of  in  "  requesting  the  succession"  of  their  bravest 
captain,  whose  highest  panegyric  was  conveyed  by  the  insult- 
ing proposal.  Ali's  ambassadors  on  this  occasion  were,  as 
usual,  two  traitors,  who  had  deserted  their  country's  cause  ; 
and  by  dint  of  threats  and  promises,  they  prevailed.  Foto, 
on  finding  himself  forsaken  by  his  deluded  followers,  set  fire 
to  his  dwelling,  declaring  that  no  enemy  of  Suli  should  ever 
cross  the  dwelling  of  the  Tzavellas;  he  then  buried  his 
sword,  and  left  his  countrymen,  "  much  in  the  same  state," 
remarks  Mr.  Hughes,  "  as  the  silly  sheep  who  were  persua- 
ded by  the  wolves  to  dismiss  their  guardians."  After  this 
act  of  folly  and  baseness,  one  really  feels  a  diminished  inter- 
est in  the  fate  of  the  republic. 

Whether  a  peace  was  or  was  not  nominally  concluded,  or 
whether  the  Suliots  were  still  in  a  state  of  blockade,  is  not 
very  clear  ;  but  in  May,  1803,  the  Suliots  made  a  vigorous 
attack  upon  an  Albanian  fortress  at  Villa,  which  served  as 
the  principal  magazine  for  Ali's  army.  This  they  succeeded 
in  taking,  and  destroyed  by  fire  and  sword  nearly  the  whole 
garrison.  So  daring  an  achievement  could  not  but  inflame 
their  implacable  enemy  to  the  utmost  height  of  fury.  He  is- 
sued proclamations,  calling  upon  every  Mahometan  through- 
out his  dominions  to  avenge  this  slaughter  upon  the  heads  of 
the  infidels,  and  an  immense  army  was  again  brought  into  the 
field  against  this  small  band  of  mountaineers.  Treachery 
opened  to  the  invaders  the  otherwise  impenetrable  passes, 
and  the  Suliots,  worn  down  at  length  by  war  and  famine,  and 
strictly  blockaded,  were  reduced  to  the  necessity  of  accept- 
ing terms  of  capitulation,  which  Ali  never  meant  to  fulfil. 
The  treaty  was  ratified  on  the  12th  of  December,  1803,  by 
which  the  whole  population  was  to  be  allowed  to  emigrate 
and  settle  wherever  they  might  please.  Men,  women,  and 
children  being  gathered  together,  they  separated  into  two 
bodies ;  one  taking  the  direction  of  Parga,  the  other  that  of 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  121 

Prevesa.  Both  parties  were  waylaid  by  the  troops  of  the 
perfidious  tyrant :  the  former  fought  their  way  through,  but 
the  latter  all  eventually  perished.  A  party  of  about  a  hun- 
dren  women  and  children,  being  cut  off  from  the  rest,  fled, 
it  is  stated,  to  a  steep  precipice  near  the  monastery  of  Za- 
longo ;  there,  the  children  were  first  thrown  over  the  rocks 
by  their  mothers,  and  then  the  matrons,  joining  hand  in 
hand,  and  raising  their  minds  to  the  highest  pitch  of  enthu- 
siasm by  native  songs,  whirled  round  and  round  in  a  species 
of  frantic  dance  till  they  approached  the  edge  of  the  cliff, 
from  which  they  one  and  all  threw  themselves  headlong. 
Another  small  detachment,  having  been  taken  captive,  was 
subsequently  released,  and  allowed  by  Ali  to  settle  at  Vurga- 
reli,  at  the  foot  of  Mount  Tzumerka ;  but  this  was  only  a 
treacherous  respite ;  they  were  afterwards  extirpated  by  a 
detachment  of  Albanians,  except  a  few  that  escaped  into 
Acarnania.  The  scattered  remnant  of  the  tribe  took  refuge, 
some  at  Santa  Maura,  others  with  the  Albanian  beys ;  but 
the  greater  part  retired  to  Parga  and  Corfu,  to  subsist  on 
charity,  or  to  enrol  themselves  in  the  service  of  their  pro- 
tectors. A  number  of  them  subsequently  entered  into  the 
Russian  service,  and  formed  a  regiment  in  the  Albanian  bat* 
talion.  After  the  peace  of  Tilsit,  this  corps  passed  into  the 
service  of  the  French  under  Colonel  Minot.  Foto  TzaveJIa 
and  Mosco,  his  mother,  both  held  commissions  for  some 
time,  but  resigned  them  from  disgust  at  ill  treatment.  The 
former  passed  over  to  Ioannina,  threw  himself  at  the  feet  ot' 
the  destroyer  of  his  country,  and  was  received  into  his  ser- 
vice. Mosco,  who  accompanied  him,  married  a  second  hus- 
band, and  was  living  in  the  capital  at  the  time  of  Mr.  Hughes' 
visit.  Their  native  mountains  then  formed  the  strongest 
post  in  their  conqueror's  dominions,  and  a  splendid  fortified 
serai  adorned  the  highest  top  of  Kiaffa  as  a  monument  of  his 
base  triumph. 

The  history  of  Ali  Pacha  now  becomes  interwoven  with  a 
complicated  series  of  intrigues  and  counter-intrigues  on  the 
part  of  Russian,  French,  and  English  agents,  which  it  is  very 
difficult  to  develope.  M.  Pouqueville  admits,  that  Ibrahim 
Pacha  of  Berat  had  written  to  the  French  government,  in- 
treating  to  be  taken  under  its  protection,  and  offering  the 
exclusive  commerce  of  the  port  of  Avlona,  as  well  as  propo- 
sing to  admit  some  French  artillery-men  into  that  fortress. 
The  expedition  of  Ali  against  Berat,  was  not  undertaken, 
therefore,  without  a  plausible  pretext.  The  Vizier  of  Ioannina 


122  HISTORY  OF  THE 

had  good  reason  to  dread  the  machinations  of  the  French  in 
that  quarter ;  and  notwithstanding  M.  Pouqueville's  pathetic 
and  sentimental  exclamations  against  the  cruel  treatment  of 
the  venerable  Ibrahim,  who,  as  being  in  the  French  interest. 
must  needs  have  been  one  of  the  very  best  of  men,  there  can 
be  no  doubt  that,  had  not  Ali  seized  upon  Berat,  his  own 
dominions  would  soon  have  been  invaded  from  that  quarter. 
The  citadel  of  that  town,  planted  on  a  lofty  hill  on  the  right 
bank  of  the  Apsus,  had  hitherto  been  deemed  impregnable  ; 
but  so  effectively  plied  were  the  newly  invented  rockets  un- 
der the  driection  of  the  English  engineer  officer,  (Major 
Leake,)  that  Ibrahim  was  obliged  to  capitulate  upon  condi- 
tion of  retiring  with  all  his  suite  and  treasure  to  Avlona. 
u  Ali,  in  his  carriage,"  (we  borrow  the  account  from  Mr. 
Hughes,)  "  surrounded  by  his  troops,  waited  on  the  left 
bank  of  the  river  till  Ibrahim  had  passed  over  the  bridge ; 
he  then  entered  and  took  possession  of  Berat,  not  only  with- 
out the  sanction,  but  even  without  the  knowledge  of  the 
Porte.  He  thought  it  proper,  however,  to  send  a  despatch 
to  Constantinople,  informing  his  sovereign,  that  a  great  part 
of  Upper  Albania  being  in  a  state  of  revolt,  and  Ibrahim 
Pacha  being  not  only  incapable,  by  reason  of  his  age  and 
other  infirmities,  to  restore  order,  but  lying  under  strong 
suspicions  from  his  attachment,  first  to  the  Russians,  and 
lately  to  the  French,  he  had  deemed  proper  to  secure  this 
important  fortress  with  troops  that  could  be  relied  on.  He 
also  sent  very  large  sums  of  money  to  be  distributed  among 
the  members  of  the  Divan,  and  thus  procured,  not  only  par- 
don, but  approbation  from  the  Sultan,  who  yielded  immedi- 
ately to  his  request  of  conferring  the  government  upon  his 
son  Mouctar.  The  three  tails,  however,  were  not  taken,  as 
is  usual  on  losing  a  pashalik,  from  Ibrahim,  whose  character 
was  held  in  high  estimation  both  at  Constantinople  and  in 
his  own  dominions. 

"  This  success  threw  into  the  hands  of  Ali,  not  only  the 
strongest  fortress,  but  the  finest  province  of  Upper  Albania ; 
for  the  great  plain  of  Musakia  is  the  very  granary  of  the 
country.  He  at  first  used  his  victory  with  great  moderation, 
lest  the  people,  if  persecuted,  should  join  the  standard  of 
their  former  chief.  Leaving  this  new  acquisition  in  the  hands 
of  his  faithful  follower,  UsuffAraps,  Ali  returned  speedily 
to  his  capital,  to  take  every  advantage  of  the  success  of  the 
British  in  the  Ionian  sea.  During  the  bombardment  of  Santa 
Maura  by  the  British  troops,  he  encamped  opposite  that  island 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  133 

with  a  large  force,  anxious  to  find  some  opportunity  of  min- 
gling in  the  affray,  and  urging  his  own  claims  to  the  occupa- 
tion of  the  island.  These  he  pressed  vehemently  after  its 
surrender,  but,  being  unable  to  substantiate  them,  he  deceiv- 
ed the  commanders  by  cunningly  gaining  permission  to  build 
barracks  for  his  soldiers  ;  instead  of  which,  he  threw  up  two 
strong  fortresses,  each  commanding  an  entrance  into  the 
channel,  and  one  of  them  even  the  castle  of  Santa  Maura. 

"  But,  though  Ali,  could  neither  gain  from  his  British  allies 
the  possession  of  Santa  Maura,  nor  persuade  them  at  this 
time  to  drive  the  French  out  of  Parga,  that  he  might  himself 
occupy  that  fortress,  he  did  not  think  it  his  interest  to  show 
any  sign  of  ill-humour  at  present :  he  still  had  a  great  game 
to  play,  in  which  no  ally  could  afford  him  such  material  as- 
sistance as  England.  He  was  placed  in  a  most  advantageous 
position  between  the  great  rival  powers,  and  he  was  deter- 
mined to  make  the  most  of  it.  Five  of  the  islands  were  un- 
der the  protection  of  the  British,  and  two  under  that  of  the 
French ;  the  former  courting  his  assistance,  the  latter  dread- 
ing his  enmity.  In  this  conjuncture  of  circumstances,  he 
played  his  cards  admirably.  He  encouraged  the  blockade  of 
Corfu,  under  promise  of  co-operation,  while  he  took  advan- 
tage of  the  distress  to  introduce  provisions  secretly  for  his 
own  gain  and  profit.  Forging  letters  of  correspondence  be- 
tween the  French  generals  and  Ibrahim  Pacha,  or  the  rulers 
of  other  states  upon  the  coast  of  the  Adriatic,*  he  very  easily 
procured  the  assistance  of  our  naval  commanders  in  all  his 
enterprises  ;  while  those  hardy  and  warlike  tribes  who  had 
hitherto  resisted  his  aggressions,  because  their  own  valour 
had  been  seconded  by  the  powers  which  possessed  the  Ionian 
Isles,  finding  their  succours  thus  cut  off,  and  their  offers  ol 
devotion  rejected,  were  obliged  to  surrender  unconditionally 
to  his  arms,  or  run  the  chance  of  extermination.  The  Chi- 
marriots,  descendants  of  the  ancient  Chaonians,  and  the 
bravest  people  of  Epirus,  whose  very  trade  was  war,  defend- 
ed their  rugged  mountains  to  the  last  extremity,  fighting 
sword  in  hand,  with  very  little  intermission,  for  three  suc- 

*  Whether  they  were  forged  letters,  as  Mr.  Hughes  asserts,  may  be 
questioned.  M.  Pouqueville  admits,  that  Ibrahim  Pacha  had  trans- 
mitted proposals  to  the  French  government ;  and  Mr.  Hughes,  in  the 
latter  branch  of  this  same  sentence,  speaks  of  an  actual  correspondence 
between  the  Chimarriots  and  the  French  and  Russian  authorities  in 
the  Ionian  Isles. 


124  HISTORY  OF  THE 

cessive  days,  after  they  had  expended  all  their  ammunition. 
Ali,  however,  had  gained  possession  of  their  principal  vil- 
lage, called  Vouno,  by  his  old  art  of  bribery,  and  falling  upon 
the  rear  of  these  warriors,  cut  the  greater  part  of  them  to 
pieces.  The  country  then  surrendered,  and  the  Vizier, 
having  garrisoned  its  strong  holds,  carried  to  Ioannina  250 
hostages,  for  the  peaceable  conduct  of  the  inhabitants. 

1810  "  *n  1810,  Ali  escaped  the  greatest  danger  with 
which  he  had  hitherto  been  threatened.  This  was 
nothing  less  than  a  plan  of  operations  concerted  between  the 
French  generals,  and  sanctioned  by  the  Porte,  to  attack  him 
by  a  force  from  the  island  of  Corfu,  and  at  the  same  time 
by  a  large  corps  under  Marshal  Marmont,  from  Dalmatia. 
Nothing  but  the  success  of  the  British  armies  in  Spain, 
which  called  Marmont's  army  to  that  quarter,  preserved  Ali 
from  destruction.  The  French,  however,  never  totally  gave 
up  the  plan,  and  would  have  made  the  attempt  from  Corfu 
alone,  but  for  the  intervention  of  a  British  fleet.  Poor  Ibra- 
him Pacha  had  been  implicated  in  the  formation  of  this  en- 
terprise, and  was  now  left  alone  to  resist  the  attack  of  his 
irritated  and  powerful  adversary.  Ali  besieged  him  so  close- 
ly in  Avlona,  while  two  English  frigates  blockaded  the  port 
against  the  introduction  of  supplies  from  the  French,  that 
Ibrahim  fled  in  disguise,  with  a  few  of  his  principal  follow- 
ers, and  took  refuge  in  the  mountains  of  Liaberi  or  Liapuria. 
There,  he  was  soon  after  betrayed,  and  was  conducted  by 
his  conqueror,  in  a  species  of  mock  triumph,  to  the  city  oi 
Konitza,  whence,  after  the  lapse  of  a  year,  he  was  conduct- 
ed to  Ioannina,  and  confined  a  close  prisoner  in  a  solitary 
tower,  where  this  venerable  old  man,  the  father-in-law  oi 
Ali's  two  sons,  might  be  seen  like  a  wild  beast  through  the 
iron  bars  of  his  dungeon. 

"  The  Pacha  of  Del  vino,  with  the  chiefs  of  Liapuria,  Ar- 
gyro-castro, and  Gardiki,  alarmed  at  the  storm  which  they 
saw  gathering  round  them,  speedily  assembled  their  forces, 
which  were  attacked  and  defeated  by  Ali  in  the  plains  be- 
tween Argyro-castro  and  Delvino.  He  then  entered  and 
took  possession  of  the  latter  place,  making  prisoners  two  sons 
of  Mustapha  Pacha,  whom  he  sent  to  Ioannina,  and  confined 
in  a  convent  of  the  island.  Two  others  made  their  escape 
to  Corfu,  where  they  were  soon  assassinated  by  an  emissary 
of  the  Vizier's.  Mustapha  himself  had  retired  to  Gardiki. 
The  great  city  of  Argyro-castro  next  surrendered  after  a 


GREEK  REVOLUTION. 

short  conflict ;  and  the  whole  valley  of  the  Drimo,  the  rich- 
est and  most  populous  in  all  Albania,  fell  entirely  under  the 
Vizier's  dominion.* 

No  place  now  remained  for  him  to  conquer,  but  Gardiki. 
which  had  first  offended  him,  and  upon  which  he  resolved  to 
pour  the  vial  of  his  wrath.  This  place,  the  population  ol 
which  was  entirely  Mahometan,  surmounted  a  fine  conical 
hill,  surrounded  with  an  amphitheatre  of  the  most  splendid 
mountain  scenery.  Well  knowing  what  they  had  to  expect 
from  the  resentment  of  their  ancient  foe,  the  Gardikiotes 
prepared  for  the  most  vigorous  defence.  For  a  long  time 
operations  went  on  slowly.  Ali's  own  generals  discovered  a 
reluctance  to  execute  his  vindictive  intentions  ;  upon  which 
he  despatched  a  confidential  officer,  at  the  head  of  a  large 
body  of  Greek  and  Albanian  troops,  with  instructions  to  act 
promptly  in  combination  with  all  the  other  Greeks  in  the 
army.  They,  he  well  knew,  would  exterminate  a  Mahometan 
tribe  with  the  greatest  alacrity;  and  as  the  Turkish  generals 
did  not  dare  interfere,  the  city  was  soon  given  up  to  all  the 
horrors  of  assault.  Very  few  persons  escaped.  Those  who 
were  reserved  as  prisoners,  were  afterwards,  to  the  number 
of  between  seven  and  eight  hundred,  massacred  in  cold 
blood  in  the  presence  of  Ali,  their  bodies  being  left  un- 
buried  to  rot  upon  the  place  of  execution,  which  was  a  large 
khan  near  the  commencement  of  the  Gardikiote  territory. 
The  gate-way  of  the  area  was  then  walled  up,  and  an  inscrip- 
tion placed  over  it  cut  in  stone,  which  signifies,  "  Thus  pe- 
rish all  the  enemies  of  Ali's  house."  It  is  stated,  that  every 
individual  victim  underwent  a  personal  examination  by  the 
Vizier  himself,  previously  to  the  order  being  given  for  the 
execution,  and  that  some  few  were  in  consequence  spared, 
probably  on  its  being  found  that  they  were  unconnected  with 
the  old  inhabitants.  On  the  same  day,  seventy-two  Gardi- 
kiote beys,  and  other  prisoners  of  distinction,  who  had  been 
conveyed  to  Ioannina,  and  treated  with  a  delusive  show  of 
clemency  and  respect,  were  all  strangled.  From  the  khan. 
Vli  marched  to  Gardiki  itself,  which  he  laid  in  ruins,  and 
placed  it  under  an  anathema,  prohibiting  it  from  ever  again 
becoming  the  habitation  of  man.  The  property  of  its  citizens 
he  had  already  converted  to  his  own  use ;  and  as  they  were 
great  merchants,  he  is  stated  to  have  kept  an  accurate  ac- 
count of  all  the  debts  due  to  them,  and  to  have  exacted  the 

*  Hughes,  vol.  ii.  p.  187 — 191. 


126  HISTORY  OF  THE 

most  punctual  payment.  "  Every  Gardikiote  that  was  sub- 
sequently  discovered  within  the  dominions  of  Ali,  was  ar- 
rested and  put  to  death,  when  his  corpse  Was  sent  to  augment 
the  mouldering  heap  of  his  unfortunate  countrymen  at  the 
khan  of  Valiare.  The  Vizier  was  grievously  offended  with 
his  son  Veli,  who  refused  to  put  to  death  some  Gardikiotes 
in  his  service,  or  surrender  them  up." 

1S19  This  crowning  act  of  atrocity  took  place  on  the 
18  4'  15th  of  March,  1812.  Mustapha,  Pacha  of  Delvino, 
died  soon  after  in  prison  at  loannina,  not  without  suspicion 
of  having  been  starved  to  death.*  A  few  months  after  this, 
Ibrahim  Pacha  disappeared :  it  was  the  general  belief  at  loan- 
nina, that  be  too  had  been  put  to  death,  and  the  French 
consul  despatched  a  courier  with  the  intelligence  to  Con- 
stantinople. A  capigi-bashee  j  of  the  highest  rank  was  con- 
sequently sent  to  loannina,  with  orders  to  investigate  the 
affair.  On  his  arrival,  Ali  expressed  the  greatest  astonish- 
ment, and  directed  the  officer  of  the  Porte  to  be  conducted 
to  Ibrahim's  apartment,  where  the  object  of  his  visit  was 
found,  surrounded  with  every  comfort,  and  professing  to  be 
perfectly  happy  in  the  society  of  his  daughters  and  their 
children.  The  capigi-bashee  was  dismissed  with  magnificent 
presents,  and  on  his  return,  gave  a  most  favourable  report  of 
Ali's  conduct.  This  attempt  to  draw  down  on  him  the  ven- 
geance of  the  Porte,  only  turned  therefore  to  his  advantage; 
but  Ali  was  not  ignorant  of  the  danger  to  which  he  had  been 
exposed,  or  of  the  quarter  in  which  it  had  originated.}: 

In  the  meantime,  the  battle  of  Leipsig  had  totally  changed 
the  aspect  of  political  affairs  in  Europe,  and  Ali  saw  him- 
self on  the  point  of  being  relieved  from  any  dangers  arising 
from  French  influence  in  the  Divan.  Foreseeing  that  the 
French  possessions  in  the  Ionian  Sea  would  fall  into  the 
hands  of  the  British,  he  resolved  to  be  before-hand  with  them 
in  seizing  upon  Parga, — "  that  single,  solitary  rock,  which 
alone,  throughout  the  whole  extent  of  his  dominions,  was 

*  M.  Pouqueville  states,  that  his  fate  was  the  same  as  that  of  Tous- 
saint  Louverture.  In  his  anxiety  to  blacken  the  dark  character  of  Ali. 
he  forgot  that  he  was  himself  at  this  time  the  agent  of  Toussaint's 
murderer. 

|  Sultan's  Executioner. 

jMr.  Hughes  considers  the  whole  to  have  been  a  manoeuvre  of  Ali's? 
having  for  its  object  to  sound  the  feelings  of  the  Divan,  prior  to  his 
venturing  on  the  murder  of  Ibrahim.  This  does  not  appear,  however, 
to  be  more  than  a  probable  surmise.  If  it  was  so,  the  French  consul 
was  clearly  outwitted. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  127 

illuminated  by  the  rays  of  liberty."  "  Having  failed,"  says 
Mr.  Hughes,  "  in  the  alluring  temptations  which  he  held  out 
to  M.  Pouqueville  and  General  Denzelot,  (the  commandant 
at  Corfu,)  he  determined  upon  one  of  those  prompt  move- 
ments which  were  so  habitual  to  him,  and  for  which  he  had 
been  some  time  prepared,  feeling  little  doubt  that,  if  he  should 
once  gain  possession  of  the  place,  he  could  tind  means  to 
justify  his  conduct,  or  to  appease  resentment.  Unauthorized, 
then,  by  his  government,  which,  at  this  time,  was  at  peace 
with  France,  and  without  any  declaration  of  war,  he  moved, 
an  overwhelming  force  against  Parga,  in  the  month  of  Fe- 
bruary, 1814;  at  the  same  time  ordering  his  flotilla  to  sail 
from  Prevesa  for  the  purpose  of  aiding  in  the  siege,  and  of 
intercepting  all  the  inhabitants  that  might  endeavour  to  es- 
cape to  the  islands.  These  directions,  however,  were  ren- 
dered nugatory  by  the  spirited  conduct  of  some  English 
cruisers,  who  refused  to  let  his  vessels  approach.  On  the 
28th  of  February,  Ali's  troops  carried  by  assault  Aja  and 
Rapesa,  two  frontier  villages  of  the  Farghiot  territory,  put- 
ting to  death  many  of  the  inhabitants,  and  sending  the  re- 
mainder into  slavery.  Here  a  small  fort  was  erected,  and 
the  army  advanced  upon  Parga.  The  French  garrison  re- 
tired into  the  citadel  without  any  show  of  resistance,  the  on- 
ly opposition  being  made  by  the  bravery  of  the  inhabitants. 
These  marched  out  with  exultation  to  the  defence  of  their 
country,  accompanied  by  women  and  children,  who  handed 
ammunition,  and  loaded  the  muskets  of  their  husbands  and 
parents.  The  contest  was  neither  long  nor  sanguinary :  for 
the  Parghiots,  having  the  advantage  of  ground  and  shelter, 
effectually  checked  the  Vizier's  troops  ;  especially  his  caval- 
ry, as  they  charged  up  a  narrow  causeway,  leading  to  the 
city,  so  that  they  were  obliged  to  retreat,  after  losing  several 
of  their  companions,  among  whom  was  a  near  relation  of 
Ali's,  the  commander  of  the  Albanian  forces,  called  Athana- 
sius  Macrys. 
..OJ4  In  spite  of  this  victory,  the  Parghiots  had  sufficient 
'  cause  to  tremble  ;  and  they  had  additional  reason 
for  alarm  when  they  discovered  that  a  secret  correspondence 
was  carried  on  between  their  inveterate  foe  and  the  com- 
mandant of  the  French  garrison.*  In  this  dilemma,  they 
despatched  a  message  to  Captain  Garland,  who  had  lately 


*  M.  Pouqueville  pretends,  that  Colonel  Nicole  had  not  been  in 
correspondence  with  Ali,  but  his  own  statement  makes  against  him. 


128  HISTORY  OF  THE 

taken  possession  of  the  little  island  of  Paxo,  requesting  to  be 
received  under  British  protection.  With  the  utmost  se- 
crecy, a  plan  was  organized  for  taking  possession  of  the  cita- 
del. An  English  flag,  concealed  under  the  girdle  of  a  boy, 
was  brought  into  the  fortress,  without  exciting  suspicion  ;  a 
signal  was  given,  by  ringing  a  bell,  to  the  conspirators,  who 
rushing  forward,  disarmed  the  centinels,  seized  upon  the  rest 
of  the  garrison,  and  hoisted  the  British  standard  in  place  of 
the  tri-coloured  flag.  Only  one  man  lost  his  life  in  this  al- 
most bloodless  conspiracy ;  he  was  a  Cephalonian,  in  the 
French  service,  and  commissary  of  police,  who,  thrusting  his 
head  out  of  a  window,  with  loud  exhortations  to  blow  up  the 
magazine,  was  instantly  shot.  The  inhabitants  being  now 
in  full  possession  of  the  place,  the  Hon.  Sir  Charles  Gordon 
landed  with  a  detachment  of  British  troops,  sent  off  the 
French  garrison,  under  terms  of  capitulation,  to  Corfu,  and 
took  possession  of  the  place  on  the  22d  of  March,  1814. 

"  Under  the  powerful  aegis  of  Great  Britain,  Parga  remain- 
ed for  about  three  years  comparatively  happy,  increasing 
both  in  wealth  and  population,  although  the  mention  of  its 
name  was  omitted  in  the  treaties  of  Vienna  and  Paris, 
which  consigned  to  English  protection  the  Septinsular  Re- 
public  But  Ali  Pacha's  ambitious  mind   could  not    rest 

quietly  when  disappointed  in  a  design  which  lay  nearest  his 
heart ;  and  his  gold  proved  in  this,  as  in  many  other  in- 
stances, all  powerful  at  Constantinople.  Parga  was  demand- 
ed by  the  Porte  as  the  price  of  her  acquiescence  to  the  Bri- 
tish occupation  of  the  Ionian  Isles  ;  and  a  secret  treaty  con- 
signed over  to  Mahometan  despotism  the  last  little  spot  o 
ancient  Greece,  that  had  remained  unpolluted  by  her  infidel 
conquerors.  An  article,  however,  was  inserted  in  this  trea- 
ty, which  provided  that  every  person  who  emigrated  should 
be  remunerated  for  the  loss  of  his  property."* 

jciq  On  the  10th  of  May,  1819,  the  unfortunate  inhabit- 
'  ants  resolving  not  to  live  under  Turkish  despotism, 
prepared  to  evacuate  their  native  soil :  and  when  Ali  Pacha 
reached  the  walls,  he  found  the  city  silent  and  deserted. 
The  whole  population  had  embarked,  voluntary  exiles,  for 
the  Ionian  Isles.  Still,  he  exulted  over  the  barren  conquest, 
which  made  him  the  master  of  continental  Greece  "  from 
the  Attic  boundary  of  Fames  to  the  rugged  mountains  of  II- 
lyricum." 

*  Hughes,  vol.  2. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  129 

But  the  career  of  this  modern  Herod  was  now  drawing  to 
a  close.*  The  accidental  destruction  of  his  palace  at  Tepe- 
leni  by  fire,  is  stated  to  have  led  to  the  discovery  of  the  im- 
mense wealth  concealed  within  its  walls,  exaggerated  ac- 
counts of  which  reaching  the  ears  of  the  Sultan  Mahmoud, 
excited  the  cupidity,  while  it  offended  the  pride  of  that  mo- 
narch. Ali,  however,  might  yet  have  been  permitted  to  die 
in  his  bed,  and  the  Porte  would  have  been  contented  to  be- 
come his  heir,  had  it  not  been  for  the  secret  measures  taken 
by  his  implacable  enemy,  Ismael  Pacho,  whom  Ali's  emissa- 
ries had  repeatedly  attempted  to  assassinate.  Having  gain- 
ed over  Chalet  Effendi,  who  had  formerly  been  in  the  in- 
terest of  Ali,  but  whom  the  avaricious  Vizier  had  imprudent- 
ly ceased  to  salary,  Pacho  resolved  to  make  use  of  his  pow- 
erful influence  in  the  Divan,  to  execute  his  long  cherished 
scheme  of  vengeance  against  the  family  of  Tepeleni.  Ali 
heard  with  dismay,  that  the  object  of  his  hatred  and  fear  was 
nominated  a  capiji  bashee ;  and  the  next  intelligence  was, 
that  his  son  Veli  was  dismissed  from  the  government  of  Tric- 
cala,  (Thessaly,)  to  the  pashalik  of  Lepanto.  It  was  evident, 
either  that  his  gold  had  lost  its  charm  at  Constantinople,  or 
that  it  had  not  been  of  late  so  liberally  distributed  as  former- 
ly ;  and  there  is  some  reason  to  believe  that  his  avarice  pa- 
ved the  way  for  his  downfall.  It  was,  however,  now  too  late 
to  intrigue,  and  Ali  resolved  to  intimidate  the  Divan  by  one 
of  those  bold  strokes  which  he  had  often  found  to  succeed. 
Two  Albanians  were  despatched  to  Constantinople  with  or- 
ders to  destroy  Pacho  Bey.  The  attempt  was  made,  but 
their  intended  victim  escaped  ;  and  one  of  the  culprits  being 
pursued  and  overtaken,  after  confessing  that  they  had  been 
employed  by  Ali  Pacha,  was  hung  before  the  gate  of  the  im- 
perial seraglio. f  The  Divan  now  thought  it  high  time  to  take 


*  In  1819,  Ali  himself  was,  according  to  M.  Pouqueville,  seventy- 
eight  years  of  age.  Of  his  family,  there  were  living  Mouctar  Beglier, 
Bey  of  Berat,  aged  fifty ;  Veli,  Vizier  of  Thessaly,  (Triccala,)  aged 
forty-six  ;  Salik,  Pacha  of  Lepanto,  aged  eighteen. 

f  M.  Pouqueville  tells  us,  that  Ali  sent  three  assassins ;  that  they  all 
fired  at  Pacho  Bey,  as  he  was  on  his  way  to  the  mosque  of  St.  Sophia, 
but  that  he  was  only  slightly  wounded ;  and  that  all  three  were  seized 
in  the  very  act,  and  executed.  An  anonymous,  but  more  credible  ac- 
count, given  in  a  private  letter,  states,  that  the  chamberlain  was  fired 
at  while  looking  out  of  his  window  ;  that  the  assassins  scampered  off  at 
full  gallop,  and  that  one  only  was  overtaken  at  a  village  about  sixty 
miles  from  Constantinople.     Jn  this  account,  the  promotion  of  Pacho 

]0# 


130  HISTORY  OF  THE 

strong  measures ;  and  in  council  specially  summoned,  the 
sentence  of  Jirmanly  was  pronounced  against  the  old  Pacha, 
by  which  he  was  placed  under  the  ban  of  the  empire,  unless 
within  forty  days  he  should  appear  at  the  golden  threshold 
of  the  gate  of  felicity,  to  answer  to  the  charge  of  high  trea- 
son. His  old  enemy,  Ismael  Pacho  Bey,  was  nominated 
Pacha  of  Ioannina,  and  appointed  to  the  command  of  the  ex- 
pedition that  was  directed  to  proceed  against  tips  too  formi- 
dable subject.  And  to  give  the  greater  effect  to  these  de- 
cided measures,  a  bull  of  excommunication  and  anathema 
was  issued  against  Ali  by  the  mufti,  the  primate  of  Islam. 
1820  These  events  took  place  in  the  month  of  February. 
r  1820.  March,  however,  passed  away  without  the 
army  having  been  put  in  motion  ;  and  an  interval  occurred, 
which  might  have  been  turned  to  good  account,  had  Ali  pos- 
sessed talents  and  energy  equal  to  the  occasion.  But  he 
seems  to  have  halted  between  a  desire  to  be  reconciled  to  the 
Grand  Seignior,  and  the  determination  to  defend  his  posses- 
sions ;  and  thus  divided,  he  took  no  effectual  or  decisive  steps 
to  accomplish  either.  His  mind  does  not  appear  to  have 
been  enfeebled  by  age,  so  much  as  by  avarice  and  distrust, 
which  infallibly  attend  the  last  stage  of  a  despot's  career, 
neutralising  or  paralysing  the  passion  of  ambition  itself. 
Ali's  avarice  had  raised  up  his  most  formidable  enemies, 
and  it  now  withheld  him  from  making  the  sacrifices  which 
might  yet  have  propitiated  the  Divan,  or  defeated  its  mea- 
sures. On  the  other  hand,  he  had  reason  for  distrusting  his 
Mahometan  subjects,  well  knowing  that  their  religious  scru- 
ples would  restrain  them  from  openly  resisting  the  imperial 
firman,  backed  as  it  was  by  the  anathema  of  the  mufti.  Un- 
der these  circumstances,  Ali  had  no  alternative  but  to  call 
the  armatolis  to  his  aid,  and  to  put  arms  into  the  hands  of 
the  Albanian  and  Greek  Christians,  with  the  promise  of  libe- 
ral pay  and  ample  booty.  At  the  same  time,  he  despatched 
emissaries  to  the  Montenegrins  and  Servians,  to  excite 
them  to  a  simultaneous  revolt.  It  is  even  said,  that  he  dis- 
sembled so  far  as  to  profess  an  intention  to  embrace  Chris- 
tianity ;  that  he  talked  of  emancipating  the  Greeks  as  a  na- 
tion, and  driving  their  Ottoman  tyrants  beyond  the  Bospho- 
rus.     The  armatolis  rose  in  a  mass  at  his  call,  and  dispers- 

Bey,  who  had  previously  been  sentenced  to  death,  through  the  machi- 
nations of  Ali,  is  ascribed  to  the  influence  of  the  viceroy  of  Egypt,  to 
whom  he  had  fled  for  protection. — See  Hughes'  Travels,  vol.  ii.  p.  221. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  131 

ing  themselves  over  the  mountain  roads  and  denies,  perform- 
ed with  alacrity  his  orders  in  intercepting  all  couriers,  plun- 
dering the  caravans,  and  putting  a  stop  to  all  intercourse 
with  the  western  provinces.  But  it  does  not  appear  that  All 
placed  much  reliance  on  these  guerilla  bands  ;  and  his  ob- 
ject seems  to  have  been,  to  intimidate  the  Porte  by  this  ma- 
noeuvre, rather  than  to  repel  invasion.  The  time  had  been 
when  the  Divan  might  have  been  compelled  by  these  means 
to  come  to  some  amicable  arrangement  ;  but  in  vain  did  the 
primates  now  represent  that  Ali  alone  was  capable  of  re- 
pressing these  disorders  :  the  stratagem,  if  such  it  was,  did 
not  take.  The  Turkish  authorities  had  recourse,  indeed,  to 
a  very  dangerous  and  impolitic  expedient  for  counteracting 
these  operations.  Suleyman  Pacha,  on  entering  Thessaly 
as  seraskier,  addressed  a  proclamation  to  the  ecclesiastics, 
civil  primates,  and  others,  persons  in  authority,  authorising 
the  people  to  take  up  arms  against  Ali.  It  has  been  suppos- 
ed, however,  that  this  measure  was  either  an  unauthorized 
act  of  the  Turkish  commander,  and  disapproved  of  by  the 
Porte,  or  that  it  was  the  result  of  intrigue,  perfidiously  de- 
vised by  Suleyman's  Greek  secretary,  Anagnostis,  who  issu- 
ed the  proclamation  in  his  own  language  only.  However 
this  may  have  been,  or  whether  Suleyman  had  really  enter- 
ed into  any  correspondence  or  not  with  the  rebel  Vizier,  he 
was  suddenly  recalled,  and,  in  his  way  to  Constantinople, 
was  met  at  Salonica  by  the  fatal  capigi-bashcc*  who  came 
for  his  head.  Thepashalik  was  given  to  Mohammed  Drama 
Ali,  the  father-in-law  of  Ismael  Pacho. 

And  now  the  war  against  Ali  appears  to  have  been  under- 
taken in  earnest ;  and  while  Ismael  Pacho  received  orders 
to  hold  himself  in  readiness  to  march  on  Epirus,  a  Turkish 
squadron  appeared  in  the  Ionian  Sea.  Elated  by  some  tri- 
fling success,  and  deceived  by  hollow  protestations  of  fidelity, 
and  the  semblance  of  enthusiasm  in  ihe  people  of  loannina, 
Ali  appears  to  have  been  lulled  into  a  fatal  security.  Could 
he  have  depended  upon  his  troops,  indeed,  his  situation 
would  have  been  by  no  means  hopeless.  All  his  fortresses, 
twenty-five  in  number,  had  been  put  into  a  state  of  complete 
defence,  and  he  was  amply  supplied  with  warlike  stores. 
But  the  beys  and  warlike  chieftains  of  Albania  who  might  yet 
have  rallied  round  his  standard,  had  been  exterminated  ; 
and  all  faithful  Moslems  eagerly  longed  to  be  delivered  from 

"  Chamberluin  of  the  court,  Sultan's  executioner. 


132  HISTORY  OF  THE 

the  infidel ;  while  the  Greeks,  who  were  for  the  most  part 
little  disposed  to  confide  in  his  professions,  were  again  look- 
ing to  Russia  for  deliverance,  and  the  despot  of  Epirus  was 
the  enemy  of  Russia.  On  former  occasions,  Ali  had  been 
able  to  play  off  the  Greeks  against  the  Moslems,  and  the 
Moslems  against  the  Greeks ;  and  holding  tne  scales  between 
contending  foreign  factions,  he  had  been  indebted  alternate- 
ly, more  perhaps  than  he  was  aware,  to  Russian,  French,  and 
English  co-operation,  in  defeating  his  enemies.  But  alike 
selfish  and  faithless,  he  had  betrayed  all  his  allies  by  turns  ; 
and  left  to  himself,  the  colossus  fell  as  by  his  own  weight. 
The  armatolis  of  Thessaly  submitted  to  Mohammed  Drama 
Pacha  without  a  blow.  Veli,  at  the  approach  of  the  Turkish 
army,  abandoned  Lepanto,  and  took  the  road  to  Ioannina, 
sending  away  his  harem  and  all  his  moveables  by  sea  to  Pre- 
vesa.  Avlona  and  Eerat  opened  their  gates  to  the  Pacha  oi 
Scutari ;  and  when  the  Capudan  bey,  having  seized  the  port 
of  Panormo  and  the  fortresses  of  Delvino  and  Butrinto,  ap- 
peared before  Parga,  young  Mehemet  Pacha,  Ali's  grandson, 
embarking  with  about  thirty  followers  in  a  felucca,  surren- 
dered at  discretion.  Finally,  as  soon  as  Pacho  Bey  had  en- 
tered the  defiles  of  AnovW  hia,  Omer  Bey  Brioni,  Ali's  se- 
raskier  and  favoured  general,  together  with  his  lieutenants, 
Mantho  (who  had  been  one  of  the  Vizier's  private  secreta- 
ries) and  Alexis  Noutza,  primate  of  Zagori,  went  over  with 
their  divisions,  to  the  invading  army.  Thus  Ali,  who  had 
reckoned  upon  17,000  men,  suddenly  found  himself  without 
generals,  and  without  an  army. 

Ali's  means  of  defence,  however,  were  still  formidable, 
and  he  had  prepared  for  the  worst.  His  castle  and  vast  for- 
tress on  the  lake  of  Ioannina  were  fortified  with  250  pieces 
of  cannon,  and  by  means  of  a  small  squadron  of  gun-boats, 
he  still  commanded  the  navigation  of  the  lake.*  Hither,  there- 

*  It  is  singular  enough  that  a  city  of  the  size  and  importance  of 
Ioannina,  the  capital  of  this  tyrant,  should,  with  a  single  exception, 
have  escaped  the  notice  of  modern  travellers  ;  and  yet,  says  Mr.  Hob- 
house,  after  Adrianople  and  Salonica,  it  is  the  most  considerable  place  in 
European  Turkey.  It  is  perhaps  doubtful  when  or  by  whom  it  was 
founded,  but  it  was  conquered  by  one  of  the  generals  of  Amurath  the 
Second,  in  1424.  We  shall  not  attempt  to  give  a  history  of  its  pro- 
gress, even  from  that  time,  but  only  extract  from  Hobhouse's  Albania, 
his  description  of  it  in  1809. 

"  This  city,"  says  he,  "  stands  on  the  western  bank  of  the  lake, 
(Ioannina,)  at  about  two  miles  from  its  northern  extremity.  In  its 
utmost  length  it  may  be  perhaps  two  miles  and  a  half;  and  in  breadth- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  133 

fore,  he  now  retreated  with  his  remaining  adherents,  while 
Ioannina,  after  being  pillaged,  was  set  on  fire  in  order  to 
prevent  its  affording  shelter  to  the  enemy.  The  ruins  of 
the  capital  were  yet  smoking,  when  Pacha  Bey,  on  the  20th 
of  August,  made  his  public  entry,  and  set  up  his  three-tail 
standard  as  Pacha  of  Ioannina  and  Delvino.  From  the  bas- 
tions of  his  castle,  Ali  might  hear  the  acclamations  of  the 
Turks  saluting  his  successor,  and  the  cadi  reading  the  sen- 
tence of  deposition  and  anathema ;  a  brisk  fire  from  the  guns 
and  mortars  of  his  fortress,  was  his  comment  upon  the  pro- 
ceeding. Ali's  garrison  was  about  8000  strong,  all  firmly 
attached  to  him  ;  and  the  castle  on  the  lake  to  which  he  had 
retired,  was  provisioned  for  four  years.  The  Turkish  army, 
on  the  contrary,  had  brought  neither  heavy  artillery  nor  en- 


though  in  some  places  it  is  much  narrower,  nearly  a  mile.  Near  the 
lake  it  stands  on  i  flat,  but  the  north,  and  north-western  parts  of  it  are 
built  on  slopes  of  rising  and  uneven  ground.  A  triangular  peninsula 
juts  into  the  lake,  and  contains  the  residence  of  the  Pacha,  being  defend- 
ed by  a  fortification,  and  a  tower  at  each  angle.  The  entrance  of  this 
fortress  is  over  a  draw-bridge,  and  from  this  point  runs  one  of  the  two 
principal  streets,  which  is  intersected  by  the  other,  running  nearly  the 
whole  length  of  the  city.  The  houses  are  many  of  them  large  and  well 
built,  containing  a  court-yard,  and  having  warehouses  or  stables  on  the 
ground,  with  an  open  gallery,  and  the  apartments  of  the  family  above. 
These  houses  have  a  gloc  my  aspect  from  the  street,  but  from  within, 
they  are  many  of  them  very  pleasant,  being  furnished  in  the  rear  with 
gardens,  planted  with  orange  and  lemon  trees.  The  Bazar,  or  principal 
street  inhabited  by  the  tradesmen,  is  well  furnished,  and  has  a  showy 
appearance.  The  covered  Bazar  is  of  considerable  size,  .and  somewhat 
resembles-Exeter-Change. 

The  lake  is  from  ten  to  twelve  miles  in  length,  and  at  least  three 
miles  wide.  On  the  one  side  it  is  enclosed  by  the  city,  a  long  succession  of 
groves  and  verdant  plains  and  gardens,  and  on  the  other  by  a  chain  of 
lofty  mountains,  that  rise  almost  abruptly  from  its  banks. 

The  Pacha  had  four  places,  one  situated  in  the  fortress,  one  in  the 
suburbs  of  the  city,  which  he  occupied  as  a  summer  residence,  and  two 
others,  allotted  to  his  two  sons.  His  summer  residence  is  placed  in  the 
midst  of  a  garden,  abounding  with  every  kind  of  tree  and  fruit,  that 
flourishes  in  that  warm  and  favoured  climate.  It  is  in  the  form  of  a 
pavilion,  and  has  one  large  saloon,  with  small  latticed  apartments  on 
every  side.  The  floor,  made  of  marble,  has  in  the  middle  a  little  fortress, 
also  of  marble,  the  brass  guns  of  which  spout  forth  jets  of  water,  on  a 
given  signal.  At  the  same  time  a  small  organ  turned  by  the  water,  and 
placed  in  the  recess,  plays  some  Italian  airs.  The  shade  of  orange  trees 
protects  this  charming  spot  from  the  heat  of  the  sun  ;  and  here  the  Pa- 
cha, with  the  most  favoured  ladies  of  his  harem,  spent  their  time  during 
the  heats  of  the  summer." 

\ 


134  HISTORY  OF  THE 

gineers  for  commencing  the  siege  in  form ;  and  their  provi- 
sions had  begun  rapidly  to  diminish,  exciting  symptoms  of 
discontent  and  even  mutiny,  before  mortars  and  cannon  ar- 
rived. The  approach  of  winter  rendered  Ismael  Pacha's 
situation  still  more  critical.  Already  the  early  snows  began 
to  cover  the  summits  of  Pindus,  and  the  different  hordes  of 
Macedonia  and  Thessaly  had  disbanded  for  the  purpose  of 
reaching  their  homes.  Discontent  soon  found  its  way  among 
the  Albanian  militia,  unaccustomed  to  the  tardy  operations 
of  a  siege  ;  and  dissensions  broke  out  between  the  Moslems 
and  the  Christians.  In  order  to  procure  fuel,  the  Turks 
were  obliged  to  rummage  among  the  ruins  of  the  town ;  pro- 
visions, too,  had  become  scarce,  as  the  convoys  were  gene- 
rally attacked  by  the  banditti  headed  by  Odysseus,  who,  after 
a  pretended  desertion  to  Ismael,  had  disappeared,  and  col- 
lected a  band  of  klephts  or  armatoles  in  the  mountains.  The 
total  consumption  of  their  harvests,  and  the  devastation  of 
their  villages,  made  the  inhabitants  regret  even  the  govern- 
ment of  Ali.  In  the  meantime,  seditious  movements  in  the 
northern  provinces  occasioned  fresh  alarms,  and  the  Rume- 
lie-valisee,  Achmet  Pacha,  received  orders  to  quit  Epirus  for 
the  banks  of  the  Danube.  More  than  5000  bombs  had  al- 
ready been  thrown  against  the  castles  of  Ali,  without  pro- 
ducing any  considerable  effect ;  and  the  Sultan  growing  im- 
patient addressed  a  hatti  shereef  to  Ismael  Pacha,  blaming 
the  inefficiency  of  his  plans  for  reducing  the  rebel  Vizier. 

Ali,  in  the  meantime,  greater  in  adversity  than  he  had 
ever  shown  himself  in  the  day  of  his  power,  maintained  an 
unshaken  firmness  and  tranquillity,  and  set  his  enemies  at  de- 
fiance. He  seemed,  indeed,  to  have  triumphed  not  only  over 
his  years,  but  over  his  passions.  When  informed  that  his 
sons  Mouctar  and  Veli,  who  held  the  fortresses  of  Argyro- 
castro  and  Prevesa,  had  capitulated  to  his  enemy,  on  the 
faith  of  the  deceitful  promises  of  the  Porte,*  he  told  his  fol- 
lowers, that  thenceforth  the  brave  defenders  of  his  cause 
were  his  only  children  and  heirs.  The  aged  Ibrahim  Pacha 
and  his  son,  he  set  at  liberty  to  gratify  his  troops ;  and  when 

*  The  proposals  made,  were,  that  Veli  should  be  nominated  Pacha  of 
Acre,  and  Mouctar  and  Salik  were  to  be  appointed  to  sanjiakals,  in 
Anatolia.  Both  of  them  subsequently  fell  by  the  hand  of  a  capiji  bashi, 
on  the  very  doubtful  charge  of  holding  a  secret  correspondence  with 
their  father. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  135 

they  next  demanded  an  advance  of  pay;  he  immediately 
raised  it  to  about  4/.  a  month,  saying,  "  I  never  haggle  with 
my  adopted  children :  they  have  shed  their  blood  for  me,  and 
gold  is  nothing  in  comparison  with  their  services."  Having 
exact  information  as  to  the  state  of  the  besieging  army,  he 
insultingly  sent  Ismael  Pacha  some  sugar  and  coffee,  and 
even  offered  to  sell  him  provisions.  His  communication 
with  the  interior  was  secured  by  the  gun-boats  which  still 
commanded  the  lake ;  by  this  means  he  was  able  to  obtain 
better  intelligence  than  the  seraskier  himself,  and  to  disperse 
his  emissaries  in  all  directions.  So  well  did  they  execute 
their  commission,  that  the  Suliotes  entered  into  the  service 
of  their  ancient  enemy,  on  condition  of  receiving  2000 
purses,  and  being  reinstated  in  their  strong  holds.  Joining 
the  armatolis  under  Odysseus,  and  800  Zagorites  under 
Alexis  Noutza,  (whose  desertion  seems  also  to  have  been  a 
mere  feint,)  they  gave  a  new  character  to  the  contest;  and 
the  winter  of  1820  had  hardly  expired,  when  Ali  found  him- 
self unexpectedly  supported  by  a  general  insurrection  of  the 
Greeks.  It  is  possible  that  he  might  even  imagine  himseli 
to  be  the  prime  mover  of  a  revolt  to  which  he  only  furnish- 
ed the  stimulus  of  opportunity,  and  perhaps  gave  the  signal; 
and  he  talked  of  planting  the  Greek  standard  upon  the  walls 
of  Adrianople.  If  this  was  not  mere  bravado,  the  subse- 
quent defeat  of  the  insurgents,  by  Chourschid  Pacha,  must 
nave  convinced  him  that  no  Greek  army  was  likely  to  come 
to  his  relief. 

,q21  Ismael  Pacha  had  been  superseded  as  seraskier  by 
this  general  in  the  spring  of  1821,  but  Chourschid's 
presence  was  soon  required  in  other  quarters,  and  it  was  not 
tjll  November,  that  he  re-appeared  before  Ioannina  with  a 
powerful  reinforcement,  and  made  preparations  to  carry  the 
fortresses  by  storm.     In  the  month  of  July,  Ali's  castle  on 

'  the  lake  had  taken  fire  from  accident,  and  almost  all  his  maga- 
zines had  been  destroyed.  Owing,  it  may  be  presumed,  to 
(his  disaster,  he  began  to  be  straightened  about  December 

I  for  necessaries.     Disease  and  desertion  had  reduced  his  gar- 

I  rison  to  600  men ;  and  now  his  chief  engineer,  a  Neapolitan 
adventurer,  named  Curetto,  went  over  to  the  enemy,  and 
perfidiously  instructed  the  besiegers  how  to  direct  the  fire 

i  of  the  batteries  with  the  greatest  effect.  The  island  of  the 
lake  was  taken  towards  the  close  of  December,  by  a  small 
flotilla  which  the  Turks  had  at  length  fitted  out.  Treachery 
Opened  to  Chourschid  the  gates  of  the  fortress  of  Litaritza 


136  History  of  the 

soon  after  tins ;  and  "  the  Old  Lion"  was  at  length  reduced 
to  take  refuge,  with  about  sixty  resolute  adherents,  in  the 
citadel,  to  which  he  had  previously  transported  provisions, 
all  his  remaining  treasures,  and  a  tremendous  quantity  of 
gunpowder.  The  sequel  is  as  differently  told  as  every  other 
part  of  Ali's  eventful  story.  The  following  account,  given 
by  Mr.  Waddington,  is  stated  to  be  derived  from  the  official 
communication  verbally  made  by  the  Reis  Effendi  to  the  first 
interpreter  of  the  Britannic  Embassy,  for  the  information  of 
his  Excellency  Lord  Strangford. 

"  Chourschid  Pacha,  informed  of  this  arrangement,  sent 
his  silikdar  to  Ali,  to  propose  to  him  to  surrender  at  discre- 
tion, to  restore  the  part  of  the  citadel  which  he  possessed, 
and  to  consign  his  treasures  to  that  officer ;  for  such  appear- 
ed, in  the  extremity  to  which  he  was  reduced,  to  be  the  only 
rational  determination  which  remained  for  him  to  adopt.  He 
added,  that  he  knew  a  report  had  been  spread,  that  Ali  had 
resolved,  in  case  he  should  be  thrown  into  despair,  to  set 
fire  to  the  powder,  and  to  blow  up  himself  with  his  treasures 
and  all  those  who  surrounded  him  ;  but  that  this  threat  did 
not  frighten  him,  and  that  if  Ali  did  not  decide  immediately, 
he  would  come  himself  and  apply  the  torch.  Ali  Pacha  re- 
plied to  the  silikdar,  that  he  was  well  assured  that  in  his  situ- 
ation there  was  no  other  choice,  and  that  he  was  determined 
to  surrender  as  soon  as  he  should  be  assured  of  his  life. 

"  The  silikdar  undertook  to  carry  his  answer  to  his  mas- 
ter ;  and  returned  soon  afterwards  to  inform  him,  in  the 
name  of  Chourschid  Pacha,  that  the  fulfilment  of  this  request 
depended  exclusively  on  the  Sultan ;  that  the  Pacha  would 
willingly  give  him  his  good  offices  with  His  Highness,  but 
that  he  could  not  do  it  with  any  hope  of  success  unless  AH 
should  previously  deliver  up  all  he  possessed  ;  that  he  pro- 
posed to  him  consequently  to  effect  the  surrender  of  the  fort, 
©f  the  treasures,  of  the  stores,  <fcc.  &c,  and  to  retire  and 
await  the  arrival  of  the  resolution  of  the  Sultan  in  the  small 
island  on  the  lake,  near  the  citadel. 

"  Ali  Pacha  asked  time  at  first  to  reflect  on  the  decision 
which  he  should  make ;  at  last,  after  several  conversations 
with  the  silikdar,  he  consented  to  leave  the  citadel,  and  he 
retired  into  the  island  with  all  his  little  troop,  with  the  ex- 
ception of  one  of  his  trusty  friends,  with  whom  he  agreed 
on  a  signal  which  would  instruct  him  whether  he  was  to  set 
fire  to  the  powder,  or  give  up  all  that  was  entrusted  in  his 
care  to  the  officers  of  Chourschid  Pacha. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  137 

li  The  silikdar  received  Ali  Pacha  in  the  island,  at  the 
head  of  an  equal  number  of  men  with  that  which  accompa- 
nied the  Vizier ;  they  paid  him  all  the  honour  due  to  his  rank, 
and  after  having  been  treated  for  several  days  by  Chourschid 
Pacha  with  the  greatest  respect,  Ali  had  confidence  enough 
to  order  the  surrender  of  all  that  he  had  left  in  the  citadel. 
They  immediately  made  haste  to  transport  the  powder  into 
a  place  of  safety. 

"  Directly  afterwards,  Ali  Pacha  requested  that  one  of  his 
officers  who  commanded  a  small  party  of  a  hundred  men  in 
the  environs  of  Ioannina,  might  be  permitted  to  join  him  in 
the  island.  Chourschid  Pacha  consented  to  this,  but  sent  at 
the  same  time  a  detachment  composed  of  an  equal  number 
of  men,  to  keep  Ali's  troops  in  awe. 

"  Different  Pachas  of  inferior  rank  had  been  several  times 
to  visit  Ali.  On  the  5th  of  February,  Mohammed  Pacha, 
governor  of  the  Morea,  offered  to  procure  for  Ali  every  pos- 
sible comfort,  naming  particularly  provisions.  Ali  replied 
to  this  offer,  that  he  desired  nothing  more  than  a  supply  of 
meat ;  he  added,  however,  that  he  had  still  another  wish, 
though  his  unwillingness  to  offend  the  scruples  of  religion 
forbade  him  to  give  utterance  to  it.  Being  pressed  to  name 
it,  he  owned  that  it  was  wine  which  he  wished  for,  and  Mo- 
hammed Pacha  promised  that  he  should  receive  it.  The 
conversation  continued  for  some  time  in  the  most  friendly 
manner,  till,  at  last,  Mohammed  Pacha  rose  to  take  leave. 
Being  of  the  same  rank,  they  rose  at  the  same  moment  from 
the  sofa,  according  to  the  usual  ceremonies,  and  before  leav- 
ing the  room  Mohammed  Pacha  bowed  profoundly.  Ali 
returned  the  compliment,  but  at  the  instant  of  his  inclination, 
Mohammed  executed  the  will  of  his  sovereign,  and  put  him 
to  death  by  plunging  a  poignard  in  his  left  breast.  He  im- 
mediately quitted  the  apartment,  and  announced  that  Ali  had 
ceased  to  exist.  Some  men  of  Mohammed's  suit  then  en- 
tered, and  divided  the  head  from  the  body.  The  former 
having  been  shewn  to  the  Sultan's  troops  as  well  as  to  those 
Avho  had  embraced  the  rebel's  part,  a  strife  followed,  in 
which  several  men  were  killed.  But  the  minds  of  the  peo- 
ple were  soon  calmed,  and  all  discord  was  appeased  by 
shouts  of"  Long  live  Sultan  Mahmoud  and  his  Vizier  Chour- 
schid Pacha."* 

*  M.  Pouqueville  must  be  allowed  to  kill  Ali  in  his  own  way,  and 
it  will  be  confessed,  he  does  it  with  more  dramatic  effect :  but  he  omits 

12 


138  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Thus  fell  a  man,  who,  for  nearly  sixty  years,  had  braved 
every  danger  and  dared  every  crime,  and  who,  for  half  that 
period,  had  virtually  ruled  the  greater  part  of  Continental 
Greece  and  Epirus.  With  regard  to  his  character,  there 
cannot  be  two  opinions  :  it  was  one  of  pure  unsophisticated 
evil,  with  scarcely  a  redeeming  quality  ;  one  of  those  rank 
productions  of  the  hot-bed  of  Turkish  despotism  which  arc 

to  mention  his  authorities.  _  "  It  was  five  o'clock,"  says  the  Historian 
with  his  accustomed  precision,  "  when  the  Vizier,  who  was  sitting  op- 
posite to  the  entrance  gate,  saw  arrive,  with  gloomy  countenances,  Has- 
san Pacha,  Omer  Briones,Mehemet,  Chourschid's  selictar,his  kafetanji, 
several  officers  of  the  army,  and  a  numerous  suite.    At  their  appear- 
ance, Ali  arises  with  impetuosity,  his   hand  on  the  pistols  in  his  girdle. 
-  Stop  !  what  do  you  bring  me  ?"  he  exclaims  to  Hassan,   in  a  voice  of 
thunder.    "  The  will  of  his  Highness ;  do  you  know  these  august  cha- 
racters?" — showing  him  the  brilliant  gilded  frontispiece  which  adorned 
the  firman.     u  Yes  ;   I  reverence  it."     "  Well,  then,  submit  to  fate  ; 
make  your  ablutions  ;  address  your  prayer  to  God  and   the  Prophet ; 
your  head  is  demanded  by" — "  My  head,"  replied  Ali,  furiously  inter- 
rupting him, ';  is  not  to  be  given  up  so  easily."    These  words  were  no 
sooner  uttered,  than  they  were  followed  by  a  pistol  shot,  which  wound- 
ed Hassan  in  the  thigh.     With  the  rapidity  of  lightning,  Ali   kills  the 
Jcafetanji,  and  his  guards  firing  at  the  same  moment  on  the  crowd,  bring 
down  several  tchoadars.     The  terrified  Ottomans  flee  from  the  pavilion. 
Ali  perceives  that  he  is  bleeding  :  he   is  wounded  in  the  breast.     He 
roars  like  a  bull.     They  fire  from  all  parts  on  the  kiosk,  and  four  of  his 
palikars  fall  at  his   side.     He  no  longer  knows  where  to   make  head 
He  hears  the  noise  of  assailants  beneath  his  feet ;  they  fire  through  the 
wooden  floor  which  he  treads.     He  has  just  received  a  ball  in  his  side  ; 
another,  firing  upwards  from  below,  hits   him  in  the  vertebral  column ; 
he  totters — catches  at  a  window — falls  on  a  sofa.  "  Run,"  he  cries  to  one 
*f  his  tchoadars  ;  "  go,  my  friend,  and  despatch  poor  Visiliki-'  (his  fa- 
vourite wife,)  "  that  the  unhappy  woman  may  not  be  outraged  by  these 
wretches."     The  door  opens  ;  all  resistance  is  at  an  end.     The  palikars, 
who  have  ceased  to  defend  the  tyrant,  throw   themselves  from  the  win- 
dows.  The  selictar  of  Chourschid  Pacha  enters,  followed  by  executioners. 
Ali  was  yet  full  of  life.     "  Let  the  justice  of  God  be  accomplished,"  said 
a  cadi ;  and  the  executioners  seizing,  at  these  words,  the  criminal  by  the 
feeard,  drag  him  under  the  perystile  ;  there,  placing  his  head  on  one  of 
the  stairs,  they  had  to  strike   repeatedly  wTith  a  notched  cutlass  before 
they  could  effect   his  decapitation."     Historic,  &c.  torn.  iii.  p.  374 — 6 
M.  Pouqueville's  sentimental  reflections  on  the  agonies  which  Ali  is  re- 
presented to  have  suffered,  and  on  the  warning  which  his  fate   reads  to 
tyrants,  we  have  not  thought  it  necessary  to  give.     If  his  authority  may 
be  relied  on,  the  head  of  Ali  preserved  something  so  imposing  and  ter- 
rible, that  the  Turks  could  not  help  gazing  on  it  with  a  sort  of  stupor  : 
Chourschid  rose  when  it  was  brought  him,  bowed  thrice,  and  kissed  the 
beard  of  the  deceased  hero  ;  and  the  lamentations  of  the  warlike  Epiri 
otes3  were  eloquent  and  unparalleled  ! 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  139 

remarkable  only  for  their  enormous  growth,  not  differing 
otherwise,  in  a  moral  point  of  view,  from  the  vulgarest  speci- 
mens. Ali,  Tepeleni,  Djezzar,  Kutchuk  Ali,  Mohammed 
Ali,  have  all  risen  to  power  by  the  same  profligate  means  ; 
and  their  biography  consists  of  a  repetition  of  the  same 
crimes  or  intrigues.  The  horrible  political  system  of  which 
they  were  component  parts,  the  government  of  which  they 
Avere  the  legitimate  and  patronised  depositaries  and  minis- 
ters, must  be  considered  as,  in  fact,  the  parent  of  all  the  evil. 
Estimating  Ali  with  a  reference  to  the  habits  of  his  country, 
the  system  of  his  education,  and  the  principles  of  his  reli- 
gion, comparing  him  with  his  predecessors  and  his  rivals, 
there  was  nothing  in  his  character  out  of  nature,  nothing 
enormous  but  his  power.  And  if  we  consider  the  state  of 
social  disorder  to  which  his  strong  governmnnt  succeeded, 
die  multitude  of  petty  tyrants  and  brigands  which  he  swept 
away  to  make  room  for  the  foundation  of  his  empire,  the 
number  of  smaller  reptiles  which  this  arch-serpent  swallow- 
ed up,  we  shall  be  disposed  to  adopt  Mr.  Hughes'  conclu- 
sion, that  his  government  was  on  the  whole  a  blessing  to  the 
inhabitants. 

Nothing  could  be  worse,  that  traveller  remarks,  than  the 
implacable  feuds  between  fierce  and  independent  tribes,  and 
the  perpetual  civil  dissensions  which  desolated  the  western 
pashaliks  prior  to  the  consolidation  of  Ali's  power  ;  and  so 
lawless  were  the  natives  of  the  wild  mountains,  to  such  an 
extent  did  brigandage  prevail,  that  agriculture  was  neglect- 
ed, commerce  languished,  the  very  arts  of  civilization  began 
to  disappear,  and  the  whole  land  presented  one  unvaried 
scene  of  poverty  and  wretchedness.  But,  under  Ali,  though 
all  were  subject  to  one  mighty  despot,  no  petty  tyrants  were 
permitted  to  exist,  and  protection  was  given  equally  to  the 
Turk,  and  Greek,  and  the  Albanian,  against  the  aggressions 
of  each  other.  Religious  toleration  was  freely  granted,  and 
the  regularity  of  monarchial  power  had  in  some  measure  suc- 
ceeded to  the  factions  of  aristocracies  and  republics. — 
"  There  exists  at  present,"  says  Mr.  Hughes,  in  1819,  "a  se- 
curity in  these  dominions,  which  we  should  seek  for  in  vain 
elsewhere  where  the  baneful  influence  of  the  Crescent  ex- 
tends. A  police  is  organized,  robbers  are  extirpated,  roads 
and  canals  are  made  or  repaired,  rivers  are  rendered  naviga- 
ble, so  that  the  merchant  can  now  traverse  the  Albanian 
districts  with  safety,  and  the  traveller  with  convenience. 


140  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Agriculture,  in  spite  of  all  obstacles,  improves  ;  commerce 
increases  ;  and  the  whole  nation  advances,  perhaps  uncon- 
sciously, towards  higher  destinies  and  great  happiness."* 

The  author  and  main  spring  of  these  improvements  may 
have  been  licentious, — he  was  a  Moslem  ;  cruel  and  pitiless — 
he  was  born  and  bred  a  brigand ;  faithless  and  perfidious — 
he  was  a  compound  of  Turk  and  Greek,  and  all  mixed  castes 
inherit  the  vices  of  both  sides  ;  besides,  he  had  Turks  and 
Greeks  to  deal  with.  In  a  word,  totally  devoid  of  reli- 
gion, he  was  restrained  by  no  conscientious  scruples,  no 
moral  principles.  But  he  must  be  admitted  to  have  possess- 
ed at  least  a  capacity  for  greatness  :  and  he  deserves  to  rank 
in  this  respect,  not  with  the  Djezzars  or  Domitians  of  the 
earth,  but  with  the  Herods  and  the  Napoleons. 

1822       ^e  ^  °^  ^^  was  *^e  occas^on  °f  mgn  satisfac- 
'  tion  and  triumph  to  the   Porte.     The  exhibition  of 
his  head  at  the  imperial  gate  in  February,   1822,  and  the  tri- 
umphal conveyance  into  the  capital  of  part  of  his  spoils,  ex- 

*  Hughes,  vol.  ii.  p.  215.  Some  further  anecdotes  relating  to  Al* 
Pacha's  personal  character  and  habits  will  be  given  in  the  description, 
of  Ioannina.  It  is  in  a  political  point  of  view,  chiefly,  that  the  historian 
has  to  contemplate  him. 

f  Mr.  Hobhouse,  who  visited  the  Pacha  of  Ioannina  in  his  own  pa- 
lace, gives  the  following  description  of  what  he  saw  there. 

After  being  conducted  through  a  gallery  crowded  with  soldiers,  and 
through  several  rooms  of  a  mean  appearance,  he  was  ushered  into  the 
apartment  of  Ali.  He  was  standing  to  receive  his  guests,*  but  as  they 
advanced,  seated  himself,  and  desired  them  to  do  the  same.  His  room 
was  large,  handsomely  furnished  in  the  Turkish  style,  and  contained  a 
marble  fountain  in  the  middle. 

The  Pacha  was  a  short  man,  about  five  feet  five  inches  high,  thick  set, 
and  very  fat.  He  had  a  pleasing  face,  fair  and  round,  with  blue,  quick 
eyes,  and  not  at  all  settled  into  the  usual  gravity  so  universal  among  the 
Turks.  His  beard  was  long  and  white,  and  such  an  one  as  any  other 
Turk  would  have  been  proud  of;  though  he,  who  was  more  taken  up 
with  his  guests  than  himself,  did  not,  as  is  customary  among  his  coun- 
trymen, continue  stroking  and  looking  at  it,  to  fill  up  the  intervals  of  con- 
versation. He  wore  a  high  turban,  composed  of  many  small  rolls,  appa- 
rently made  of  fine  gold  muslin,  and  his  ataghan,  or  long  dagger,  was  stud- 
ded with  brilliants.  Instead  of  having  his  room  crowded  with  the  officers 
of  his  court,  as  is  customary  with  the  Pachas,  and  other  great  men,  he 
was  attended  by  only  four  or  five  young  men,  very  magnificently  dressed 
in  the  Albanian  costume.  These  brought  in  refreshments,  consisting, 
as  usual,  of  coffee,  sweetmeats,  and  pipes. 

*  Lord  Byron  accompanied  Mr.  Hobhouse  in  this  journey,  and  pro- 
bably was  present  on  this  occasion. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  141 

cited  a  high  degree  of  popular  enthusiasm  at  this  critical  mo- 
ment. Only  a  small  part  of  the  Pacha's  gold,  however, 
found  its  way  into  the  imperial  treasury ;  and  the  Porte  gain- 
ed but  little  in  the  substitution  of  one  Albanian  for  another 
in  the  government  of  Epirus,  when  it  bestowed  on  Omer 
Vrionis  the  pashalik  of  Ioannina  and  Arta,  as  the  reward  of 
his  treachery.  "  Ali  Pacha,"  remarks  Mr.  Leake,  "  may 
have  thwarted  the  execution  of  all  the  measures  of  the  Porte, 
which  tended  to  reduce  his  authority,  and,  in  general,  those 
which  did  not  originate  with  himself;  he  may  have  transmit- 
ted a  larger  sum  to  Constantinople  in  the  shape  of  presents 
to  persons  in  power,  than  in  that  of  tribute  to  the  imperial 
treasury ;  and  in  the  latter  respect,  he  may  never  have  sent 
as  much  as  would  satisfy  the  wishes  of  government ;  never- 
theless, it  is  probable,  that  the  Porte,  during  his  reign,  was 
more  truly  master  of  Greece  than  it  had  ever  been  before, 
and  that  it  derived,  upon  the  whole,  as  much  revenue  from 
the  country  ;  while  it  is  certain,  that,  by  leaving  Ali  to  op- 
pose tiie  armed  Greeks  to  one  another,  and  to  suppress  the 
spirit  of  revolt  by  the  military  strength  of  Albania,  she  most 
effectually  secured  herself  against  the  consequences  of  fo- 
reign intrigues  among  the  Christian  subjects  of  European 
Turkey  ; — that  concentration  of  power  in  Ali's  hands,  was 
the  best  protection  which  the  empire  could  possess,  on  a 
frontier  where  it  was  (at  one  time)  endangered  by  the  in- 
crease of  the  power  of  France,  not  less  than  the  north-east- 
ern side  was  menaced  by  the  encroachments  of  Russia, 
Affairs,  in  fact,  became  less  favourable  to  the  future  influence 
of  the  Porte  over  Albania,  after  his  fall,  than  they  had 
been  under  Ali,  or  than  they  would  have  been  under  the  go- 
vernment of  his  sons.* 

*  Outline,  p.  34—62. 

13* 


11%  HISTORY  OF  THE 


CHAPTER  XI. 

Hetaria>  the  objects  of  this  Association. —  The  oath  and  cater 
chism  of  the  Hetarists. — Riga,  his  patriotism,  character, 
and  death. — Count  Capo  d'Istria. — Czerni  George,  and 
Galati,  determine  to  begin  the  Revolution. — Death  of 
George. — Death  of  Galati. — Michael  Suzzo. — Alexander 
Ipsilanti  and  Prince  Cantacuzene. — Plan  to  commence  the 
Revolution. — Revolt  of  the  Moldavians  under  Suzzo  and 
Ipsilanti. —  They  take  possession  of  Bucharest. — Black 
uniform  of  the  Hetarists. — Hazardous  condition  of  Ipsilan- 
ti and  his  army. — Russian  Manifesto. — Ipsilanti  pro- 
claimed a  rebel. — Suzzo  retires. — Defection  of  Vlademir- 
esco  and  his  execution. —  Turks  take  the  field. — Ipsilanti 
returns  from  Bucharest,  which  city  is  taken  by  the  Turks. 
— Plan  of  an  intended  Revolt  at  Constantinople,  discover- 
ed.—  The  Turks  commit  the  most  horrid  barbarities. — Ipsi- 
lanti defeated  on  the  Oltau. — Heroism  of  the  Sacred  band. 
—  They  most  of  them  fall. — Ipsilanti  retires  towards  the 
Morea. — His  arrest  and  confinement. 

That  the  reader  may  understand  the  exciting  cause  of  the 
present  struggle  in  Greece,  we  must  now  go  back  to  about 
the  year  1814,  when  that  celebrated  association  called  the 
Hctaria*  was  founded. 

The  object  of  the  Hetaria,  or  Society  of  Friends,  undoubt- 
edly was  the  emancipation  of  Greece.  Its  head  quarters 
were  established  at  St.  Petersburg,  and  nearly  all  the  Greeks 
in  Europe  hastened  to  join  it.  An  active  correspondence 
was  carried  on  between  the  agents  appointed  by  the  society ; 
and  men  of  the  highest  standing  in  Greece  visited  Peters- 
burg under  the  pretext  of  commercial  speculations,  but  real- 
ly with  a  view  to  promote  the  objects  of  the  association. 
This  society,  formed  in  imitation  of  the  secret  associations  of 
Germany  and  France,  carried  on  their  correspondence  by 
means  of  emblems  and  signs.  It  was  divided  into  three 
classes  of  members,  viz.  chiefs,  coadjutors,  and  priests.  Each 
class  had  distinct  signs,  and  cyphers,  and  like  the  Free  Ma- 
sons, understood  each  other  by  the  position  of  the  hands  or 

*  From  the  Greek,  signifying  Society. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  143 

lingers  in  their  salutations.  The  three  classes,  also  had  cer- 
tain means  of  communication  intelligible  to  all.  The  facility 
of  admitting  members  was  the  means  of  rendering  their 
numbers  very  great,  for  any  member  with  the  knowledge 
and  consent  of  a  single  additional  brother,  had  a  right  to  ad- 
mit the  candidate.  The  requisite  qualifications  were,  that 
be  should  be  a  true  Greek,  a  zealous  lover  of  his  country,  a 
good  and  virtuous  man  ;  and  that  he  should  not  be  a  member 
of  any  other  secret  society.  By  the  form  of  the  oath  of  ad- 
mission, they  bound  themselves  to  devote  their  lives  and  for- 
tunes to  the  liberation  of  their  country.* 

With  regard  to  the  persons  who  originated  this  society,  or 
the  authors  of  the  oath  and  catechism,  we  have  at  the  pre- 
sent time  no  certain  knowledge.!  By  the  catechism  is  under- 

*  Mr.  Waddington,  from  a  Romaic  document,  gives  the  following  ac- 
count of  the  objects  of  the  Hetaria,  their  oath,  &c. 

"  The  Hetaria  consists  of  native  Greeks,  patriots,  and  is  named  the 
Society  of  the  Friendly.  Their  object  is  the  purification  of  this  nation, 
and,  with  the  aid  of  heaven,  their  independence."  The  principal  oath, 
or  form  of  adjuration,  contained  the  following  clauses :  "  In  the  presence 
of  the  true  God,  spontaneously  I  swear,  that  1  will  be  faithful  to  the  He- 
taria in  all,  and  through  all;  I  will  never  betray  the  slighest  portion  of  its 
acts  or  words  ;  nor  will  I  ever  in  any  manner  give  even  my  relatives  or 
friends  to  understand  that  I  am  acquainted  with  them.  I  swear,  that 
henceforward  I  will  not  enter  into  any  other  society,  or  into  any  bond 
of  obligation  ;  but  whatever  bond,  or  whatever  .1  may  possess  in  the 
world,  when  compared  with  the  Hetaria,  1  will  hold  as  nothing.  I 
swear,  that  I  will  nourish  in  my  heart  irreconcilable  hatred  against  the 
tyrants  of  my  country,  their  followers  and  favourers  ;  and  I  will  exert 
every  method  for  their  injury  and  destruction."  [Then,  after  two  or 
three  clauses,  binding  the  members  to  acts  of  friendship  and  mutual 
assistance,  and  referring  to  the  introduction  of  others  into  the  society, 
it  proceeds.]  "  I  swear,  that  I  will  ever  so  regulate  my  conduct,  that 
I  may  be  a  virtuous  man  ;  I  will  incline  with  piety  towards  my  own 
form  of  worship,  without  disrespectfully  regarding  those  of  foreigners  ; 
I  will  ever  present  a  good  example  ;  I  will  aid,  counsel,  and  support  the 
sick,  the  unfortunate,  and  the  feeble  ;  I  will  reverence  the  government, 
the  tribunals,  and  the  ministers  of  the  country  in  which  1  may  be  re- 
siding. Last  of  all,  I  swear  by  thee,  my  sacred  and  suffering  country, 
—  I  swear  by  the  long-endured  tortures, — I  swear  by  the  bitter  tears 
which  for  so  many  centuries  have  been  shed  by  thy  unhappy  children. 
—I  swear  by  the  future  liberty  of  my  countrymen, — that  I  consecrate 
myself  wholly  to  thee  ;  that  henceforth  thou  shalt  be  the  scope  of  my 
thoughts,  thy  name  the  guide  of  my  actions,  thy  happiness  the  recon; 
pense  of  my  labours.''  * 

f  Mr.  Blaquiere  says,  "  it  has  been  confidently  asserted  that  the  ori- 
ginal idea  of  forming  secret  societies  in  Greece,  is  due  to  the  Empress 
Catharine  ;.  at  all  events,  there  is  no  doubt  of  her  agents  having  pi»- 


144  HISTORY  OF  THE 

stood  an  explanation  of  the  plans,  principles,  and  ultimate 
objects  of  the  society,  which  was  from  time  to  time  laid  open 
to  all  new  members  ;  and  it  was  necessary  that  the  candidate, 
before  his  initiation,  should  not  only  desire  to  receive  this 
information,  but  that  his  desire  to  be  cathechised  should 
proceed  from  no  other  motive,  than  a  pure  love  of  country. 
Whether  the  oath  and  catechism  were  written  for  the  Heta- 
ria,  or  whether  they  were  composed  for  another  association 
previously  instituted,  is  not  known.  It  appears  that,  as  early 
as  1782,  a  fraternity  of  seven  individuals  was  formed  for  the 
purpose  of  preparing  the  minds  of  the  Greeks  for  an  effort  to 
regain  their  liberties.  One  of  these  individuals  was  the  cele- 
brated Riga,  who  it  is  said,  with  his  companions,  travelled 
all  over  Europe  with  the  view  of  exciting  sympathy  and  gain- 
ing advocates  for  their  intended  object.* 

In  a  memoir  of  the  origin  of  the  Revolution,  referred  to 
by  Mr.  Waddington,  it  is  stated,  that  Prince  Mavrocordato, 
a  Greek,  who  was  exiled,  formed  the  plan  of  a  society  while 
in  Russia,  for  the  purpose  of  instructing  and  enlightening 
his  countrymen.  This  project  was  executed  in  1802,  and  the 
Prince  died  in  1814.  After  his  death,  four  persons,  whose 
names  are  not  mentioned,  assumed  the  direction  of  the  socie- 
ty, and  it  appears  that  they  depended  chiefly  on  the  assist- 
ance they  expected  from  the  court  of  Russia  to  carry  their 
plans  into  execution.  The  count  Capo  dTstrias,  the  minis- 
ter to  whom  applications  were  made,  for  this  purpose,  was  a 

moted  their  formation,  as  affording  the  best  means  of  successfully  resist- 
ing the  Turks." 

*  Riga  was  born  in  Thessaly,  in  1760,  and  finished  his  education 
in  Italy.  He  was  a  poet,  scholar,  and  patriot,  and  to  this  day  is 
the  theme  of  admiration  among  all  classes  of  the  Greeks.  Having  fin- 
ished his  education,  and  made  the  tour  of  Europe  he  returned  to  his 
own  country,  where  he  infused  a  spirit  of  liberty,  and  thirst  for  eman- 
cipation, which  undoubtedly  had  its  influence  in  bringing  forward  the 
present  Revolution.  He  translated  into  his  own  language  several  for- 
eign works,  calculated  to  increase  the  knowlegde  of  his  countrymen, 
and  prepare  them  for  the  effort  he  intended  to  make.  He  also  published 
a  map  of  Greece,  with  a  nomenclature  of  modern  Greek,  for  the  use  of 
the  natives.  The  fate  of  this  modern  Tyrtaeus,  as  he  is  called,  was 
well  calculated  to  excite  lasting  impressions  of  indignation  and  regret 
on  the  minds  of  his  countrymen.  His  talents,  his  celebrity,  and  the 
part  he  was  acting,  could  not  but  have  been  known  at  the  court  of  Con- 
stantinople. He  was  seized  by  Turkish  emissaries  while  in  the  territory 
of  Austria,  and  with  the  evident  connivance  of  the  court  of  Vienna, 
and  to  its  indelible  disgrace  was  dragged  to  Belgrade,  and  there  be? 
hea^d. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  145 

native  of  Corfu,  and  consequently  supposed  to  take  an  espe- 
cial interest  in  the  affairs  of  the  society.  His  answers  were 
rather  evasive  than  discouraging,  and  it  is  said  that  his  refu- 
sal to  act  decisively,  was  generally  accompanied  by  a  pre- 
sent to  the  applicant,  in  the  name  of  the  Emperor.  Under 
this  state  of  suspense,  a  Moreote,  named  Galeotti,  was  sent 
by  the  Society  to  St.  Petersburgh,  to  ascertain  the  real  state 
of  the  case,  and  to  obtain  official  intelligence  of  the  inten 
tions  of  the  Russian  cabinet.  The  answer  which  the  minis- 
ter returned  destroyed  all  hopes  of  assistance  from  that 
quarter.  The  Russian  cabinet,  whatever  might  have  been 
the  expectations  of  the  Greeks,  could  lend  them  no  aid, 
either  in  men  or  money.  The  delegate,  Galeotti,  had  scarce- 
ly returned  to  his  own  country  when  he  died. 

Probably  the  disappointment  which  the  Hetaria  experi- 
enced in  the  refusal  of  the  Russian  Court  to  give  their  as- 
sistance, for  a  time  dampened  the  ardour  of  its  members.  It 
did  not,  however,  prevent  its  silent  and  secret  proceedings, 
nor  its  extension  into  distant  provinces. 

In  1817,  Czerni  George,  an  exiled  chief  of  Servia,  and 
Count  Galati,  a  native  of  Corfu,  seeing  no  immediate  pros- 
pect of  foreign  aid,  determined  to  commence  the  revolution, 
and  trust  to  their  own  talents  and  resources  for  its  success. 
They  had  concerted  a  plan  of  operations,  by  which  George 
was  to  appear  suddenly  in  Servia,  his  native  province,  put 
himself  at  the  head  of  his  former  subjects,  and  thus  draw  the 
attention  of  the  Porte  to  that  quarter.  In  the  meantime, 
Galati,  and  other  Greek  chiefs,  were  to  raise  the  standard  of 
insurrection  in  the  southern  parts  of  Greece  and  the  Morea, 
and  having  collected  an  army,  the  two  forces  were  to  join, 
and  continue  the  revolution.  In  the  prosecution  of  this  de- 
sign, the  Servian  chief  set  forward  for  his  native  province, 
and  on  his  way  discovered  himself  and  his  enterprise  to  a 
relative  and  former  friend,  named  Milosh,  on  whose  assist- 
ance he  supposed  he  could  depend.  But  instead  of  lending 
his  co-operation,  he  treacherously  caused  his  relation  to  be 
murdered,  and  his  head  sent  to  the  Pacha  of  Belgrade,  who 
transmitted  it  to  Constantinople.*     The  Count  Galati  being 

*  The  following  extract  is  made  from  the  narrative  of  a  diplomatic 
agent,  long  resident  at  Bucharest : 

Czerni  George,  the  Servian  chief,  who  acquired  great  celebrity  du- 
ring the  late  war  between  Russia  and  Turkey,  had,  in  consequence  of 
his  country's  submission  to  the  Turks,  retired  into  Russia   »ihere  ho 


146  HISTORY  OF  THE 

thus  deprived  of  his  coadjutor,  and  having  no  authority 
among  the  Servians,  on  whom  they  depended  to  begin  the 
revolution,  retired  to  Bucharest,  where  he  soon  afterwards 
died. 

These  circumstances,  for  a  time,  postponed  the  attempts 
of  the  Hetarists,  but  did  not  dishearten  them.  Determined 
in  the  next  attempt  not  to  begin  until  every  part  of  their 
plans  had  been  more  completely  matured,  they  fixed  on  the 
year  1825  for  the  execution  of  the  great  enterprise,  thus 
giving  ample  time  for  every  arrangement. 

In  the  meantime,  Michael  Suzzo,  or  Sutzo,  was  appoint- 
ed by  the  Porte,  Viceroy  [Hospodar]  of  Moldavia.  He  was 
a  young  Greek  of  accomplished  manners  and  insinuating  ad- 
dress, and,  being  naturally  ardent  and  ambitious,  he  listened 
with  attention  to  the  suggestions  of  the  Hetarists,  and  warm- 
ly espoused  their  cause. 

Another  person,  who  appeared  about  the  same  time,  and 
on  whom  great  reliance  was  placed,  was  Alexander  Ipsilanti, 
a  prince  by  birth,  a  Major-General  in  the  Russian  service, 
and  son  of  the  late  governor  of  Walachia.  He  had  embraced 
the  military  profession  in  his  youth,  had  served  in  the  cam- 
paigns of  1812  with  distinction,  and  was  aid-de-camp  to  the 
Emperor  at  the  time  when  the  Hetarists  called  on  him  to  as- 
sist in  the  emancipation  of  his  country. 

With  Ipsilanti  and  Suazo,  was  associated  Prince  Catacu- 


was  living  a- quiet  life  with  the  rank  of  Russian  Lieutenant- General,  de- 
corated with  the  order  of  St  Andrew,  and  enjoying  a  very  liberal  pen- 
sion from  the  court  of  St.  Petersburgh.  No  man  appeared,  to  the  con- 
certers  of  the  plot,  more  fit  for  so  difficult  and  important  an  undertaking 
as  that  of  raising  the  standard  of  revolt  against  the  Turks.  Overtures 
were  made  to  him,  and  an  understanding  took  place  between  the  parties. 
It  was  understood  that  Czerni  George,  after  sounding  and  finding  fa- 
vourable the  dispositions  of  the  Servians,  should  suddenly  appear  among 
them,  call  them  up  to  arms,  seize  upon  the  fortified  places  occupied  by 
a  few  unsuspecting  Turks,  and  place  the  Province  in  such  a  menacing 
attitude  as  was  likely  to  engross  the  attention  of  the  Turkish  govern- 
ment, and  attract  its  principal  forces.  It  was  calculated  that  the  Ser- 
vians, to  the  number  of  40,000,  would  join  the  standard  of  their  old 
leader,  in  which  case  they  could,  for  a  considerable  time  at  least,  set  at 
defiance  the  Turkish  army.  Meantime,  the  Greeks  throughottt  the  pro- 
vinces,it  was  expected,  would  rise  on  all  sides,  and  so  perplex  the  Turks, 
as  to  compel  them  to  divide  their  means,  and  ultimately,  it  was  hoped, 
they  would  be  overpowered  by  numbers,  and  driven  from  Europe.  But 
this  plan,  as  we  have  already  seen,  was  entirely  defeated  by  the  death 
of  the  principal  actor,  Czerni  George. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  147 

zene,  a  man  not  less  celebrated  than  his  coadjutors  as  a  mili- 
tary chieftain.  He  was  descended  from  an  illustrious  Greek 
family,  and  though  superior  in  rank  and  age  to  Ipsilanti,  he 
generously  volunteered  to  serve  under  him.  These  accom- 
plished soldiers,  with  the  assistance  of  other  Hetarists,  laid 
down  the  plan  of  the  approaching  campaign. 

In  the  first  place  they  entertained  no  doubt  of  the  speedy 
reduction  of  the  northern  Turkish  principalities,  since  Suz- 
zo,  Governor  of  Moldavia,  engaged  to  declare  himself  open- 
ly at  the  proper  time,  and  the  Servians,  though  they  had  lost 
their  leader  in  the  death  of  Czerni  George,  were  still  in  a 
state  of  revolt,  and  of  course,  expected  to  rise  and  join  in 
the  contest.  Ipsilanti  was  to  assume  the  offensive  beyond 
the  Danube,  while  a  spirited  proclamation  should  summon 
the  whole  of  Greece  to  arms,  from  Ossa  to  Tonarus.  A  for- 
midable conspiracy  was  at  the  same  time  set  on  foot  at  Con- 
stantinople, the  explosion  of  which  it  was  calculated  would 
shake  the  Ottoman  empire  to  its  very  foundation ;  and  it 
was  hoped  that  certain  circumstances  connected  with  this 
plan  would  lead  to  a  rupture  between  Turkey  and  the  great 
northern  Potentate,  from  which  source  the  patriots  still  con- 
fidently expected  assistance. 

All  parts  of  this  enterprise  were  undoubtedly  well  concert- 
ed, and,  had  each  been  carried  into  full  execution,  it  would 
probably  have  been  crowned  with  the  highest  success  ;  but 
unforseen  difficulties  and  disappointments  entirely  frustrat- 
ed the  plans  and  present  hjpes  of  this  band  of  patriots. 
Ipsilanti,  owing  to  peculiar  circumstances,  was  obliged  to 
cross  the  Pruth  and  begin  his  operations  sooner  than  was 
expected.  The  minds  of  the  Moldavians  were  not  prepared 
for  so  sudden  an  appearance,  and  symptoms  of  resistance 
were  at  first  manifested ;  but  on  the  declaration  of  Prince 
Suzzo,  that  he  fully  participated  in  the  measures  of  Ipsilanti. 
instead  of  resistance  they  joined  the  standard  of  revolt,  and 
threw  off  all  allegiance  to  the  Porte.  Ipsilanti  now  pub- 
lished an  energetic  proclamation,  addressed  to  his  country- 
men, calling  upon  them  to  shake  off  the  Turkish  yoke,  to 
follow  the  standard  of  the  cross,  and  to  join  him  in  the  great, 
and  glorious  project  of  liberating  Greece.*  This  document 
also  contained  an  assurance,  that  a  great  power  (meaning 
Russia)  was  ready  to  punish  the  infidels  for  their  frequent 
breaches  of  faith,  cruelty,  and  arrogance. 

*  Blaquiere,  vol.  1.  p.  02. 


148  HISTORY  OF  THE 

The  uniform  of  the  Hetarists  was  entirely  black,  in  sign 
of  mourning  for  their  afflicted  country,  and  on  their  banners 
was  planted  a  phoenix  rising  from  its  ashes,  being  the  emblem 
©f  regeneration.*  The  Moldavians  were  greatly  excited  by 
the  proclamation  and  these  appearances,  and  some  young 
men  offered  their  persons  and  fortunes  for  the  benefit  of  the 
cause,  while  recruits  came  in  from  all  quarters. 

Having  obtained  possession  of  Moldavia,  the  Hetarists 
marched  towards  Bucharest,  the  capital  of  Walachia,  a  city 
in  part  fortified,  and  containing  about  80,000  inhabitants. 
The  governor,  on  the  approach  of  the  insurgent  army,  ab- 
sconded in  the  night,  and  the  city  was  thrown  into  a  state  of 
the  greatest  consternation  and  confusion.  The  patriots, 
however,  after  doing  all  in  their  power  to  restore  order  ana 
calm  the  fears  of  the  citizens,  took  possession  of  the  city. 

It  was  now,  says  Mr.  Blaquiere,  that  Prince  Ipsilanti  be- 
gan to  feel  all  the  difficulties  of  his  situation.  He  was  in- 
deed master  of  Moldavia  and  Walachia,  but  so  far  from  be- 
ing able  to  advance,  it  plainly  appeared  that  he  had  little 
chance  of  being  allowed  to  maintain  his  position  at  Bucha- 
rest. But  the  most  fatal  blow  to  his  hopes  came  from  a  quar- 
ter the  least  expected,  and  indeed  from  which  he  calculated 
even  direct  assistance.  As  so  unequivocally  insinuated  in 
his  proclamation,  Ipsilanti  had,  it  seems,  no  doubt  but  his 
rising  would  be  followed  by  the  declaration  of  the  Russian 
government  in  his  favour,  and  the  flattering  reception  he  re- 
ceived by  the  Moldavians,  after  the  declaration  of  Suzzo, 
was  indeed  owing  to  this  opinion ;  for  like  the  rest  of  Europe, 
the  people  believed  that  Ipsilanti  would  not  have  embarked 
in  so  perilous  an  enterprise  without  the  promise  and  assur- 
ance of  some  foreign  aid.  But  the  illusion  was  soon  dissi- 
pated, and  while  the  Russian  Ambassador  at  the  Porte  re- 
ceived daily  insults  as  being  accessary  to  the  revolt,  his  mas- 
ter at  home  was  preparing  a  manifesto,  in  which  Ipsilanti  was 
published  as  a  rebel  and  incendiary,  and  his  conduct  formal- 
ly disapproved. 

The  publication  of  the  manifesto  fell  like  a  thunderbolt  on 
the  Hetarists  and  their  associates.  The  enthusiasts  became 
cool,  and  the  wavering  loudly  condemned  the  measures  of 
the  patriots,  while  Suzzo  gave  up  his  command  in  Moldavia, 
and  retired  with  his  family  beyond  the  Pruth.     At  Gonstan 

*  Blaquiere,  vol.  1.  p.  62. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  149 

tinople,  the  prospect  was  not  less  discouraging,  the  plot  for 
effecting  the  revolution  being  entirely  frustrated.* 

In  addition  to  these  disastrous  events,  it  was  suspected 
that  Vladimiresco,  a  chieftain  who  had  joined  Ipsilanti  with 
a  considerable  number  of  troops,  was  engaged  in  a  traitorous 
correspondence  with  the  Turks.  The  Prince,  in  consequence, 
had  him  arrested  and  tried  by  a  military  court ;  when  it  was 
found,  that  for  the  consideration  of  being  made  Hospodar. 
he  had  agreed  to  betray  his  associates  into  the  hands  of  the 
infidels.  He  was  condemned  to  death  and  immediate  exe- 
cution. 

The  situation  of  Ipsilanti  now  became  disagreeable  and 
hazardous.  He  was  still  at  Bucharest,  and  before  the  defec- 
tion of  Vladimiresco,  was  desirous  to  hazard  a  battle  for 
its  defence.  The  Turks  had  taken  the  field,  and  were  ap- 
proaching that  place,  and  Ipsilanti,  therefore,  thought  it  most 
prudent  to  abandon  it,  and  retreat  to  Tergovist.  This  re- 
treat was  not  effected  without  precipitation  and  consequent 
disorder.  The  Turks  soon  after  entered  the  city  with  an 
army  of  10,000  men,  without  firing  a  shot.  On  their  way  to 
this  place,  they  had  committed  the  most  horrid  barbarities. 
The  Hetarists,  who  had  the  misfortune  to  fall  into  their 
hands,  were  empaled  alive,  and  numbers  of  little  children 
were  hung  up  by  the  feet  along  the  public  roads.f 

,™  The  Prince  did  not  reach  Tergovist  before  he 
'  found  that  the  Turkish  army  was  in  pursuit,  and  hav- 


*  Mr.  Blaquiere  says,  that  the  object  of  this  extensive  and  deep-laiu 
plot,  was  to  arm  the  Greeks,  who  formed  a  numerous  portion  of  tho 
working  and  operative  classes  in  the  capital,  to  fire  the  Arsenal,  and 
seize  the  person  of  the  Sultan  as  he  went  to  his  devotions.  Every 
thing  was  prepared,  and  the  plan  might  have  succeeded,  had  it  not  been 
for  a  certain  merchant,  one  of  the  principal  conspirators.  He  having 
some  goods  on  hand,  which  he  wished  to  dispose  of  before  the  explosion 
took  place,  had  the  time  of  rising  postponed,  and  during  the  interval  a 
discovery  took  place. 

f  In  addition  to  the  terrific  atrocities,  several  Monasteries,  in  which 
the  inhabitants  took  refuge,  were  entered,  and  every  soul  butchered. 
Some  idea  may  be  formed  of  the  scenes  which  marked  the  paths  of  the 
Turks,  when  it  is  added,  that  in  one  Monastery  alone  they  destroyed 
three  hundred  women  and  children.  Among  these  wretched  victims 
was  the  wife  of  Major  Rhote,  and  her  seven  children. 

A  person  named  Udricky,  attached  to  the  Austrian  consulate,  is  said 
to  have  been  the  principal  eause  of  these  calamities.  He  constantly  as- 
sured the  peaceable  inhabitants  that  they  had  nothing  to  fear  from  the 
Turks,  and  thus  lulled  them  into  a  fatal  security,  until  it  was  too  late 
for  them  to  escape. —  See  Blaquiere. 

14 


150  HISTORY  OF  THE    , 

ing  called  a  council  of  war,  it  was  determined  to  risk  a  bat- 
tle. As  a  preparatory  measure,  he  crossed  the  river  Oltau, 
and  took  his  position  at  the  monastery  of  Dragachan,  within 
a  few  miles  of  Rimnik,  in  Walachia.  Ipsilanti  having  made 
the  necessary  disposition  of  his  troops,  the  battle  commenced 
in  the  morning  of  the  17th  of  June.  The  Turkish  infantry 
rushed  forward  with  loud  shouts,  but  were  repulsed  with  the 
point  of  the  bayonet.  A  second  charge  was  repelled  with 
equal  intrepidity.  But  at  this  moment  the  fate  of  the  patriot 
army  was  decided  by  the  cowardice  and  treason  of  Caravia, 
an  officer  of  the  cavalry,  who  turned  suddenly  round  and 
fled,  followed  by  his  men.  The  corps  of  Nicholas  Ipsilanti, 
brother  to  the  Prince,  followed  the  example  of  the  fugitives 
in  spite  of  his  authority,  and  thus  the  whole  army  was  thrown 
into  the  utmost  confusion.  The  panic  soon  became  so  uni- 
versal that  almost  all  the  troops  recrossed  the  Oltau,  nor 
could  all  the  efforts  of  bravery  on  the  part  of  the  Prince,  pre- 
vent a  retreat  so  shameful  and  cowardly.  Honourable  ex- 
ceptions to  this  conduct  were,  however,  displayed  in  the  he- 
roism of  the  chieftain  Giorgaki  and  his  corps,  and  in  the  de- 
voted bravery  of  the  Sacred  Band.  Giorgaki,  during  the 
rout,  fell  suddenly  on  a  Turkish  corps,  killed  great  numbers, 
dispersed  the  remainder,  and  retook  from  them  several  pieces 
of  cannon.  The  Sacred  Band  was  a  battalion  of  young 
Greeks,  educated  in  Europe,  and  for  the  most  part  students 
or  merchants'  clerks,  who  had  repaired  to  the  standard  of 
Ipsilanti,  from  Russia  and  Germany.  They  wore  a  uniform 
of  black,  as  an  emblem  of  mourning  for  the  sufferings  of  their 
country,  to  whose  service  they  had  devoted  their  fortunes 
and  lives.  Their  zeal,  patriotism,  and  union,  obtained  for 
them  the  above  appellation. 

These  young  men,  animated  by  the  spirit  which  taught 
their  ancestors  to  perish  at  Thermopylae,  preferred  a  glorious 
death  to  flight  or  dishonour.  They  scorned  to  turn  their 
backs  on  their  ferocious  and  blood-thirsty  enemies,  and  while 
the  main  part  of  the  army  crossed  the  Oltau,  they  alone  stood 
firm.  But  their  numbers,  amounting  to  only  four  or  five 
hundred,  exposed  in  an  open  plain  to  the  attack  of  fifteen 
hundred  Turkish  cavalry,  was  too  small  to  effect  the  fate  of 
the  day.  Each  one,  however,  sold  his  life  dearly  as  possi- 
ble, and  the  contest  ended  in  the  fall  of  nearly  four  hundred 
Greek  youth,  at  once  the  flower  and  hope  of  their  country. 
"  The  heroism  displayed  on  this  occasion,"  says  Mr.  Bla- 
quiere,  "  will  bear  an  advantageous  comparison,  with  the 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  151 

best  days  of  Grecian  history,  and  is  by  far  the  most  brilliant 
trait  in  the  contest.  As  an  example  of  true  patriotism,  it  has 
had  a  most  salutary  effect  on  the  people  of  Greece." 

Prince  Ipsilanti*  was  now  without  an  army,  and  bereft  of 
all  hope  ;  he  therefore  proceeded  to  Trieste,  with  the  inten- 
tion of  joining  his  countrymen  in  the  Morea,  where  the  patri- 
ot banner  was  already  displayed  ;  but  a  mandate  from  the 
Austrian  Cabinet  arrested  him  on  his  way,  and  ordered  his 
imprisonment  in  the  Castle  of  ?vIongatz  in  Hungary.  On 
what  pretext  of  justice  this  unfortunate  patriot  has  been  thus 
incarcerated  does  not  appear.  He  is  neither  a  subject  of 
Austria,  nor  has  he  taken  arms  against  any  state  under  the 
protection  of  that  power.  Some  have  suspected  that  the 
pleasure  of  the  Ottoman  Court  was  the  cause  of  his  arrest ; 
while  others  suppose  him  to  have  been  the  depository  of 
some  state  secret,  the  disclosure  of  which  his  freedom  would 
endanger.  "  With  respect  to  the  origin  of  Ipsilanti's  enter- 
prise, it  is  still  involved  in  considerable  mystery.  Whatever 
part  the  agents  of  the  Russian  Cabinet  may  have  had  in 
stimulating  this  officer  to  come  forward,  no  person  who  had 
Matched  the  uniform  policy  of  Russia,  could  feel  the  smallest 
surprise  at  the  Emperor's  disapproval  of  any  participation  in 
his  proceedings.  If  he  took  the  field  without  any  other  as- 
surances of  support,  except  what  could  be  derived  from  four 
or  five  hundred  followers,  against  whom  an  overwhelming 
force  could  at  any  time  be  sent,  Ipsilanti  must  have  added 
madness  to  folly,  but  there  is  nothing  connected  either  with 
his  public  or  private  character,  to  justify  such  an  imputa- 
tion."! 

*  The  character  of  the  Prince,  as  drawn  by  M.  Pouqucville  is  not 
calculated  to  elevate  our  ideas  of  a  Russian  Major  General. 

Destitute  of  talent,  says  he,  but  educated  by  preceptors,  who  had 
taught  him  to  speak  correctly  several  languages, — he  was  learned 
without  possessing  that  masculine  knowledge  which  is  the  result  of 
well  directed  study ;  a  poet  without  inspiration ;  amiable  without 
urbanity  ;  a  soldier  without  being  warlike,  although  he  had  lost  his 
right  arm  at  the  battle  of  Culm.  But  what  especially  characterised 
Alexander  Ipsilanti,  was  the  vanity  common  to  the  Phanariots,  their 
spirit  of  intrigue,  the  ambitious  end  of  which  terminated  in  his  becoming 
Hospodar  of  the  brutish  nations  of  ancient  Dacia,  and  a  feebleness  of 
character  which  shewed  itself  in  his  suffering  himself  to  be  ruled  by 
persons  unworthy  of  his  confidence.  To  what  person  the  biographer 
here  alludes,  he  does  not  explain  ;  nor  do  we  know  in  this  instance  how 
far  the  prejudices  of  M  Pouqueville  has  led  him  astray  in  the  drawing 
of  his  picture. 

f  See  Blaquiere,  vol.  1.  p.  77. 


152  HISTORY  OF  THE 


CHAPTER  XII. 


Sultan  orders  all  Greeks  to  be  disarmed.— -The  Archbishop 
Gregory  hanged,  with  several  other  Ecclesiastics. — Indig- 
nation of  the  Greeks. — Emissaries  called  Apostles. — Revo- 
lution expected  at  Patras. — Order  for  disarming  resisted. 
— Revolt  begins  at  Suda,  and  then  at  Patras. — Greeks 
and  l^urks  plunder  each  other. —  Turks  shut  themselves  up 
in  a  Fortress. —  Want  of  skill  in  the  art  of  War  among 
the  Turks. — Greek  with  the  White  Flag,  shot,  on  coming 
to  town. — Insurrection  in  the  Morea. — Hydra,  Ipsara,  and 
Spezzia,  join  in  the  common  cause. —  Turks  obliged  to  retire 
to  the  strong  places. — List  of  officers  in  the  Morea. — 3Iav~ 
romicaWs  manifesto. — Arrival  of  Isovf  Pacha,  and  relief 
of  the  Turks  in  the  Fortress. — Greeks  evacuate  Patras. 
— Burning  of  the  town. — Horrid  scene. — Attack  and  re- 
duction of  the  Lalliots. 

1821  ^°  sooner  did  the  news  of  the  insurrection  at 
'  Moldavia  and  Wallachia  reach  the  Porte,  than  the 
Sultan  sent  off  orders  to  all  his  Pachas  to  disarm  the  Greek 
population  throughout  his  dominions,  and  at  the  same  instant 
the  signal  for  a  war  of  extermination  was  given  at  the  capi- 
tal. On  the  22d  of  April,  being  Easter  day,  on  which  is  held 
the  greatest  festival  of  the  Greek  church,  the  Patriarch, 
Gregorius,  appointed  and  acknowledged  by  the  Porte,  and 
who  had  recently  issued  his  anathemas  against  the  insur- 
gents, was  seized  and  hanged  in  front  of  the  church  from 
which  he  was  just  retiring.*     His  body,  to  increase  the  ig- 

*  Mr.  Blaquiere  says,  that  the  Patriarch,  whether  considered  in  his 
capacity  of  head  of  the  church,  or  as  a  man  of  the  most  exemplary 
virtue  and  unaffected  piety,  it  would  perhaps  be  impossible  to  name 
any  victim  that  has  fallen  since  the  introduction  of  Christianity,  more 
entitled  to  the  honours  of  martyrdom.  How  melancholy  to  reflect,  that 
it  is  only  by  such  sacrifices,  mankind  have  hitherto  been  able  to  acquire 
religious  and  political  freedom. 

Gregorious  was  a  native  of  Calavrita,  and  had  made  repeated  efforts 
to  retire  to  the  place  of  his  birth,  but  was  always  brought  back  by  the 
orders  of  the  Sultan,  to  whom  he  had  rendered  some  very  eminent 
services.  He  had  passed  his  70th  year  when  the  murder  was  perpe- 
trated, and  no  patriarch  was  ever  held  in  higher  estimation  by  the 
Oreek  people. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  153 

Hominy  of  this  savage  murder,  was  given  to  the  Jews,  to  be 
dragged  through  the  streets  as  a  spectacle  and  warning  to 
his  terrified  brethren.  This  murder  was  accompanied  or 
speedily  followed  by  that  of  several  other  ecclesiastics  of  the 
highest  dignity  in  the  capital  and  other  parts  of  the  Empire, 
as  well  as  by  that  of  several  other  Greeks  of  every  class. 
The  motives  for  these  atrocious  proceedings,  were  probably 
the  hope  of  terrifying  the  Greeks  into  submission  ;  but  they 
excited  more  indignation  than  terror,  and  only  tended  to 
make  the  insurrection  more  universal.  The  destruction  of 
several  Greek  churches,  heightened  the  exasperation  of  the 
Christians,  and  a  general  eonvietion'prevailed  that  these  pro- 
ceedings were  but  a  prelude  to  an  intended  extermination  of 
the  whole  nation.  The  priesthood  of  the  islands  of  the  Mo- 
rea,  thinking  themselves  to  be  peculiarly  marked  out  for  de- 
struction, did  not  hesitate  to  increase  the  ferment  by  their 
spiritual  influence,  and  to  inspire  the  rebellion  with  all  the  en- 
ergy and  malignity  of  religious  warfare.  Hence,  neither  the 
reverses  of  Moldavia,  and  the  overthrow  of  Ipsilanti,  nor  the 
failure  of  the  conspiracy  at  Constantinople,  prevented  the 
resistance  of  the  Greeks,  who  constantly  expected  that  there 
would  be  war  between  Russia  and  the  Porte,  and  that  thus 
the  power  and  attention  of  the  Turks  would  be  divided.* 

Added  to  these  feelings  and  expectations,  were  those  of 
indignation  and  horror,  at  the  slaughter  which  the  Turks  had 
begun  in  the  various  provinces  and  islands,  as  well  as  in  Con- 
stantinople. In  many  places  indeed,  the  Greeks  were  under 
the  fullest  conviction  that  it  had  been  determined  at  the 
Porte  to  exterminate  their  entire  race,  and  hence  prepara- 
tions were  made  to  sell  their  lives  as  dearly  as  possible. 

Another  circumstance  which  tended  to  add  enthusiasm  to 
the  passions  already  existed,  was  the  harangues  of  emissa- 
ries, called  by  their  employers,  Apostles.  These  men  were 
known  to  the  people  under  the  denomination  of  philosophers, 
and  began  their  work  just  before  the  revolt  of  Moldavia. 
They  were  sent,  it  is  said,  from  Russia,  to  stir  up  the  people 
of  Greece,  and  it  is  probable  they  were  intrusted  with  some 
of  the  secrets  of  the  Hetari.  They  were  in  the  highest  de- 
gree enthusiastic,  and  circulated  reports  that  the  Sultan  had 
declared  his  resolution  to  transport  all  the  Greeks  into  Asia 
Minor,  and  to  establish  Turkish  colonies,  drawn  from  that 
portion  of  his  empire,  in  their  places  ;  that  Prince  Ipsilanti 

*  Modern  Traveller, 
14* 


154  HISTORY  OF  THE 

was  under  the  patronage  and  pay  of  Russia,  and  that  he  was 
marching  with  a  large  force  upon  Constantinople,  <fcc. 
These  orators  occasionally  pretended  to  select  for  their  mo- 
dels, some  one  of  their  ancient  brethren  and  countrymen, 
and  would  mount  the  rostrum  in  an  open  space,  and  harangue 
the  people  on  the  duties  they  owed  their  country  and  kin- 
dred, and  on  the  means  of  protecting  themselves  and  their 
children  from  the  barbarities  of  their  oppressors.  These 
preachers  produced  considerable  effect,  particularly  on  the 
middling  and  lower  class,  who,  not  waiting  to  inquire  into  the 
truth  of  what  they  heard,  prepared  themselves  at  once  to 
march  towards  the  field  of  battle. 
1R21  About  the  first  of  April  the  excitement  became 
*  general,  and  a  mutual  distrust  was  apparent  between 
the  Greeks  and  Turks  everywhere.  The  inhabitants  of  Pa- 
tras  had  become  particularly  disaffected  on  account  of  the 
heavy  levies  made  upon  them  by  the  Turkish  government, 
for  the  purchase  of  supplies  for  the  army  in  Albania,  which 
was  acting  against  Ali  Bey.  Open  hostilities  had  not  yet  be- 
gan, but  both  Greeks  and  Turks  saw  that  a  revolution  was 
on  the  point  of  commencing.  The  Greeks  at  Patras,  ship- 
ped off,  or  secreted  their  property,  and  the  Turks  who  inha- 
bited the  town,  began  to  prepare  for  their  defence,  by  repair- 
ing the  fortress,  into  which  many  of  them  transported  their 
families.  The  Ionihns  residing  in  the  city  also  became 
alarmed,  and  sent  their  families  off  to  the  islands.* 

In  this  state  of  things,  the  inhabitants  of  Suda,  a  large  vil- 
lage near  Calavrita,  in  the  northern  part  of  Arcadia,  were  the 
first  to  take  the  field.  In  order  to  conceal  their  design  for  a 
short  period,  they  gave  out  that  they  intended  to  plunder 
travellers  in  the  mountains,  well  knowing  that  the  Turks  are 
seldom  in  haste  to  suppress  such  excesses. 

At  Patras,  the  order  for  disarming  the  Greeks  was  at- 
tempted to  be  enforced,  but  they  flatly  refused  to  deliver  up 
their  arms  ;  on  which  the  Turks  turning  the  cannon  of  the 
fortress  against  the  town,  soon  took  possession  of  it.  Mean- 
while, Germanos,  Archbishop  of  Patras,  retired  to  Calavrita, 
where  he  assembled  an  army  of  nearly  four  thousand  pea- 
sants. At  their  head  he  entered  the  city,  and  took  it  from 
the  Turks,  who  were  obliged  to  shut  themselves  up  in  the  ci- 
tadel. On  the  4th  of  April,  the  Turks  set  fire  to  one  of  the 
Greek  Primate's  houses.     This  was  a  signal  for  attack  ;  and 

*  Green's  Sketches  of  the  War  in  Greece,  p.  10    12. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  155 

a  brisk  lire  of  musketry  took  place  between  the  Turks  and 
Greeks  in  the  streets  of  the  city.  The  Turks  now  opened  a 
lire  from  a  fortress,  probably  for  the  purpose  of  preventing 
the  people  from  extinguishing  the  conflagration,  which  in  a 
short  time  spread  over  a  considerable  portion  of  the  city, 
and  in  twelve  hours  upwards  of  three  hundred  houses  were 
destroyed. 

While  the  town  was  burning;,  both  parties  were  pillaging 
each  other  without  reserve,  and  in  some  instances  the  Greeks 
even  robbed  those  of  their  own  nation. 

At  the  very  commencement  of  the  insurrection,  says  Mr. 
Green,  a  Patracine  Greek,  who  inhabited  and  owned  the 
house  adjoining  my  own,  determined  on  quitting  the  place, 
and  requested  I  would  take  charge  of  the  key  of  his  house, 
in  which  was  deposited  a  great  part  of  his  property,  and  fur- 
ther intreated  me  to  protect  it  until  he  should  be  able  to  re- 
turn in  safety.  Shortly  after  the  entry  of  the  insurgents, 
one  of  the  leaders,  whose  residence  likewise  adjoined  mine, 
but  on  the  other  side,  paid  me  a  visit,  and  in  the  name  of  the 
Greek  chiefs  demanded  the  key  of  his  neighbour's  house, 
which  he  had  learnt  was  in  my  possession.  Although  I  of 
course  refused  to  comply  with  so  unjust  a  demand,  the  Greek 
still  persisted,  and  at  length  told  me  to  my  face,  that  if  I  re- 
tained the  key,  he  should  force  the  doors  open.  I  cannot 
deny  that  I  was  exceedingly  irritated  at  such  unlooked-for 
and  insolent  conduct ;  however,  1  thought  it  prudent  merely 
to  request  the  Greek  to  quit  my  house;  observing  to  him. 
that  a  few  days  previous  he  probably  would  not  have  made 
use  of  such  an  argument.  Determined  to  protect  the  proper- 
ty entrusted  to  my  care,  I  forthwith  sent  to  the  Archbishop 
and  Primates,  informing  them  of  what  had  passed,  when  they 
assured  me  that  it  was  without  their  knowledge,  and  that  the 
house  should  be  respected.  Two  days  after  this  declaration, 
it  was  forced  open,  pillaged,  occupied,  and  converted  into  a 
manufactory  of  ball  cartridges. 

The  slate  of  Patras  at  this  period,  cannot  be  better  descri- 
bed than  in  the  language  of  Mr.  R.  L.  Green,*  from  whom 
we  borrow  the  following  account : 

"  The  moment  of  the  breaking  out  of  the  revolution  in 
Greece,  was  a  most  interesting  one.     For  some  weeks  pre- 

*  Sketches  of  the  war  in  Greece,  by  Philip  James  Green,  late 
British  Consul  for  the  Morea,  with  notes  by  R.  L.  Green.  Vice- 
Consul. 


156  HISTORY  OF  THE 

vious  to  the  affair  of  Calavrita,  great  distrust  and  jealousy 
prevailed  between  the  Greeks  and  Turks.  The  latter  were 
evidently  making  preparations  for  repairing  and  provisioning 
their  old  and  neglected  fortresses,  and  the  task  of  putting 
them  into  good  order  had  commenced.  There  was  no  longer 
that  supineness,  that  absolute  security,  which  had  hitherto 
marked  the  Turkish  government.  The  inhabitants  of  the 
towns  and  villages  began  to  look  at  each  other  with  suspicion, 
and  the  Greek  was  bold  and  gibing,  in  his  bearing  towards 
his  Turkish  neighbour.  He  first  insulted  him  in  the  streets 
of  Patras,  and  then,  contrary  to  the  known  regulations,  ap- 
peared with  arms.  The  Turk,  on  the  other  hand,  instead  of 
coming  out  merely  with  his  pistols  in  his  girdle,  rarely  stirred 
abroad  without  gun  and  sword.  And  yet,  in  spite  of  this 
state  of  feelings  in  spite  of  the  great  disproportion  in  num- 
bers between  the  two  classes,  the  Turks  forced  the  Greeks 
to  drag  up  new  ordnance  from  the  sea-shore,  and  such  is  the 
force  of  habit,  absolutely  to  plant  it  in  the  very  fortress 
which  was  shortly  to  be  attacked  by  them. 

"  As  soon  as  an  open  rupture  had  taken  place,  the  mode  of 
warfare  between  these  two  semi-barbarous  people  was 
strikingly  characteristic. 

"  The  Greeks  at  first  had  no  cannon,  but  at  length  they 
procured  some  four  and  six  pounders  from  an  Ionian  vessel 
that  was  lying  off  Patras,  and  transported  them  to  a  house 
which  was  within  one  hundred  and  twenty  feet  of  the  wall  of 
the  castle.  They  then  erected  a  battery  within  the  house 
itself,  and  when  they  were  prepared  they  unmasked  it  by  sud- 
denly pulling  down  the  wall  which  intervened  between  them 
and  the  castle,  and  instantly  commenced  a  vigorous  attack. 
Had  these  little  guns  been  directed  even  to  the  most  tottering 
part  of  the  fortress,  they  would  scarcely  have  moved  a  stone ; 
but  here,  unfortunately,  their  battery  was  directly  opposed  to 
a  portion  of  the  wall  which  the  Turks  had  just  repaired  from 
the  damage  done  by  lightning.  The  consequence,  as  may 
easily  be  conceived,  was,  that  their  time,  trouble,  and  shot, 
were  absolutely  thrown  away.  However,  they  persevered, 
and  several  Greeks  were  killed.  At  last,  a  Turk  seeing 
one  man  very  busily  employed  at  the  guns,  took  deliberate- 
aim  from  the  embrasures,  and  shot  him  in  the  head  as 
he  was  in  the  act  of  stooping  to  load.  This  poor  fellow 
happened  to  be  an  Italian,  and  probably  therefore  was  more 
expert   at   gunnery    than   the    Greeks.      The   latter    no 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  157 

sooner  found  their  loss  than  they  quitted  their  battery  in  de- 
spair. 

"  The  Turks,  on  the  other  hand,  were  not  a  whit  more 
skilled  than  their  enemies.  In  the  first  place,  being  merely 
the  inhabitants  of  a  town,  and  having  no  soldiers  to  instruct 
them,  for  there  was  only  a  nominal  garrison  at  Patras,  not  a 
soul  knew  the  management  of  a  gun  ; — and  in  the  second, 
had  they  possessed  the  requisite  knowledge,  the  whole  of 
the  ordnance,  with  the  exception  of  the  new  guns,  just  re- 
ceived, was  in  such  a  miserable  state,  that  nothing  effectual 
could  have  been  done.  Many  of  the  cannon  were  without 
carriages,  and  being  of  enormous  weight,  could  only  be  moved 
with  the  greatest  difficulty.  The  Turks  might  be  seen  hoist- 
ing and  propping  them  up  with  levers  of  wood,  and  then 
firing  in  any,  or  rather  in  no  direction.  The  Greeks  in  the 
meanwhile,  occupied  houses  close  to  the  castle,  and  kept  up 
a  brisk  fire  of  musketry ;  others,  however,  who  were  not 
quite  so  brave,  used  to  make  a  noise  at  a  ridiculous  distance, 
and  expend  their  courage  and  powder  most  vigorously. 
Those  within  the  houses  usually  tried  to  pick  off  the  Turks 
employed  at  the  cannon,  and  this  they  might  do  with  perfect 
safety  to  themselves,  for  it  was  quite  clear,  that  there  was  no 
gunner  among  them  who  even  hit  a  house  by  aiming  at  it. 
The  Turks,  therefore,  were  obliged  to  screen  themselves 
when  loading  their  guns,  by  stopping  up  the  embrasures  with 
matrasses  and  boards,  and  when  they  were  ready  to  fire, 
these  were  withdrawn. 

"  Clusters  of  Greeks,  who  were  chattering  away  in  the 
vine-yards,  would  be  on  the  look-out,  and  as  soon  as  they 
marked  the  spot  where  the  ball  fell,  they  ran  towards  it  and 
picked  it  up,  carrying  it  to  their  magazine.  If,  as  it  often 
happened,  a  six  pound  shot  had  been  discharged  by  the  con- 
summate skill  of  the  Turks  out  of  a  twenty-four  pounder,  the 
Greeks  used  to  load  their  small  cannon  with  it,  and  send  it 
back  again. 

"Thus  there  was  a  constant  noise  with  little  execution. 
In  spite  of  all  their  practice,  there  was  nobody  among  the 
Turks  that  acquired  any  skill  in  gunnery,  with  the  exception 
however,  of  one  man,  a  barber.  His  skill,  nevertheless,  was 
limited,  for  he  could  only  fire  from  his  own  cannon,  but  that 
to  be  sure,  happened  to  be  mounted.  Among  the  earliest 
and  most  memorable  of  his  feats,  was  the  following.  When 
Patras  was  attacked!,  the  Greeks  used  to  come  from  the 
neighbourhood  to  assist  their  brethren  in  the  town.     One 


158  HISTORY  OF  THE 

fine  day,  a  reinforcement  of  these,  coming  from  Gastouni, 
were  observed  from  the  castle,  just  appearing  on  the  brow  of 
a  hill.  In  the  midst  of  the  troop  was  an  unfortunate  fellow 
mounted  on  a  white  horse,  and  he  by  way  of  eclat,  was  car- 
rying and  flourishing  a  white  flag.  The  Turkish  grandees 
who  were  besieged,  were  in  the  habit  of  offering  money  to 
their  gunners  if  they  hit  any  object  pointed  out  to  them; 
and  one  of  them  told  the  barber,  that  he  would  give  him  a 
machmoudie  if  he  would  bring  the  man  on  the  white  horse 
down.  The  barber  pointed  his  gun,  and  neither  flag,  horse, 
nor  man  were  ever  after  heard  of.  The  next  feat  which 
the  redoubtable  barber  accomplished  was  this.  The  houses 
in  Patras  are  built  of  mud  and  straw,  made  into  a  sort  of 
bricks.  This  is  done  for  the  sake  of  economy,  as  the  soil 
thrown  up  in  digging  the  foundation  not  only  serves  as  ma- 
terial for  the  walls,  but  as  earthquakes  are  frequent,  damages 
are  thus  easily  and  speedily  repaired.  One  of  these  houses, 
situated  just  under  the  walls  of  the  fortress,  was  occupied  by 
the  Greeks,  and  became  from  its  proximity  a  source  of  great 
annoyance  to  the  besieged.  Whenever  a  Turk  appeared, 
half  a  dozen  bullets  whizzed  about  his  head,  while  the 
Greeks  remained  in  perfect  security.  This  went  on  for  a 
long  time ;  the  guns  of  the  fortress  had  been  directed  in 
vain  upon  it,  and  each  man  had  tried  his  luck  in  hitting  it 
but  all  to  no  purpose.  At  last  the  barber  desired  to  essay 
his  skill :  the  first  shot  he  fired  took  effect,  and  in  a  moment 
a  score  of  Greeks  were  seen  issuing  from  a  cloud  of  dust, 
some  scampering,  others  crawling  off  most  nimbly  on  their 
bellies  among  the  vines,  and  no  one,  I  believe,  ever  ventured 
there  again." 

While  these  things  were  taking  place  at  Patras,  the  insur- 
rection became  general  throughout  the  Morea,  and  several 
of  the  islands  being  prepared  for  such  news,  on  hearing  what 
was  transacting  on  the  continent,  instantly  threw  off  all  re- 
straint and  joined  in  the  general  cause. 

Among  the  islands,  the  most  conspicuous  for  patriotism 
and  promptness  were  Hydra,  Spezzia,  and  Ipsara.  The  en- 
terprising and  industrious  inhabitants  of  these  islands  imme- 
diately prepared  a  naval  armament,  by  turning  their  merchant 
vessels  into  men  of  war.  Their  united  force  amounted  to 
eighty  or  ninety  vessels  averaging  250  tons  each,  and  carry- 
ing on  an  average  12  guns.  Besides  these,  fifty  or  sixty 
smaller  ones  were  supplied  by  the  otherfslands.  In  the  lat- 
ter end  of  May,  the  inferiority  of  Turkish  marine  in  skill  and 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  159 

enterprise,  to  that  of  the  Greeks,  was  shown  in  the  loss  of 
me  of  theii  two-decked  ships  of  war,  which  having  been 
separated  from  the  fleet,  near  Lesbos,  was  burned  by  a 
.lydriot  fire-ship. 

Soon  after  midsummer,  not  only  in  the  Morea,  but  through- 
>ut  a  great  part  of  northern  Greece,  as  far  as  Salonica,  the 
Turks  had  retired  into  the  fortified  towns,  and  strong  places, 
til  the  mountains  and  open  country  being  either  in  the  hands 
of  the  Greeks,  or  subject  to  their  incursions.  Agents  had 
been  sent  to  Europe  for  the  purchase  of  arms  and  ammuni- 
tion. Many  volunteers,  Franks*  as  well  as  Greeks,  had  ar- 
rived in  the  Morea,  and  many  generous  contributions  of 
money  and  stores  had  been  received  both  from  foreigners 
and  from  opulent  Greek  merchants  settled  in  different  Eu- 
ropean sea-ports. 

The  native  Greeks  who  took  the  lead  in  the  Morea,  were 
Petros  Bey,  better  known  by  the  name  of  Mavromicali,  who 
had  been  some  time  before  nominated  by  the  Sultan,  Bey  of 
Maina,  Constantine  Colocotroni,  who  like  his  father  had 
long  been  a  capiianos  of  armatolif  in  the  Morea,  and  had 
held  commissions  both  in  the  Russian  and  English  service. 
Demetrius  Ipsilanti,  a  younger  brother  of  the  Prince  Alex- 
ander, who  like  him  had  been  an  officer  in  the  Russian  ser- 
vice. He  bore  a  commission  from  the  Prince,  appointing 
him  general-in-chief  of  all  the  military  forces  in  Greece. 
He  was  received  by  the  Hydriots  with  discharges  of  cannon 
and  other  demonstrations  of  joy.  Among  his  followers  came 
a  younger  brother  of  Prince  Cantacuzene,  and  an  individual 
named  Condiotti,  who  had  served  as  valet-de-chambre  to 
Count  Capo  d'Istria.  There  also  arrived  in  the  month  of 
August,  Prince  Mavrocordato,  a  distinguished  Greek,  whoso 
talents  and  character  procured  him  great  authority  among  all 
classes. 

On  the  commencement  of  the  revolution,  Mavromicali  ad- 
dressed a  manifesto  to  the  European  courts,  through  their 
Consuls,  residing  in  Greece,  stating  that  the  tyranny  of  the 

*  By  Franks,  is  meant  not  only  Frenchmen,  but  I  believe  any  white 
foreigner  from  Europe  or  America,  with  the  exception  of  Russians. 

f  The  armatoli  were  a  kind  of  militia  appointed  by  the  Turks,  whose 
duty  it  was  to  keep  the  roads  clear  of  robbers;  and  guard  the  mpimtaiu 
passes. 


160  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Turks  had  forced  the  Greeks  to  take  up  arms,  and  soliciting 
assistance  from  the  several  European  governments.* 

A  council  for  the  direction  of  affairs  was  also  formed  at 
Patras,  consisting  of  several  Primates,  Mavromicali,  and  a 
number  of  rich  and  influential  Greeks.  Meanwhile,  the 
Turks  were  closely  besieged  in  the  citadel,  and  had  began  to 
suffer  for  want  of  water  and  provisions,  while  the  Greeks 
were  making  every  effort  to  compass  their  destruction. 
They  had  nearly  completed  a  mine  with  which  in  a  short 
time  to  blow  up  the  place. 

*  The  following  is  a  translation  of  that  instrument  from  Modern 
Greek. — See  Green's  Sketches,  p.  272. 

MANIFESTO. 

To  the  European  Courts,  on  the  part  of  the  Patriot  Coritmander  of  the 
Spartan  and  Messinian  forces. 

The  intolerable  yoke  of  Ottoman  oppression,  after  a  period  of  above 
a  century,  had  reached  that  height,  that  nothing  remained  to  the 
unhappy  Greeks  of  the  Peloponnesus,  but  the  liberty  of  breathing, 
and  this  served  only  to  force  out  their  sighs  from  the  bottom  of  their 
hearts. 

Reduced  to  a  condition  so  pitiable,  deprived  of  every  right,  we  have, 
with  an  unanimous  voice,  resolved  to  take  up  arms,  and  struggle  against 
the  tyrants.  All  factions  and  discords  amongst  ourselves,  sown  by 
tyranny,  are  sunk  in  the  abyss  of  eternal  oblivion. 

Our  arms — shackled  up  to  this  hour  with  chains  of  iron,  now  burst 
their  bonds,  and  eagerly  grasp  the  sword  to  annihilate  abhorred 
tyranny. 

Our  feet — that  have  laboured  day  and  night  at  the  most  cruel  tasks, 
now  hasten  to  vindicate  our  rights. 

Our  heads — which  bent  the  neck  to  the  yoke,  now  plan  our  freedom. 

Our  tongues — which  before  dared  not  utter  a  sound,  except  vain  sup- 
plications for  clemency,  now  cry  with  a  loud  voice,  and  make  the  air 
re-echo  with  the  sweet  name  of  liberty.  In  one  word,  v/e  are  unani- 
mously resolved  on  Liberty  or  Death.  Thus  determined,  we  earnestly 
invite  the  united  aid  of  all  civilized  nations  to  promote  the  attainment 
of  our  holy  and  legitimate  purpose,  the  recovery  of  our  rights,  and  the 
revival  of  our  unhappy  nation. 

With  every  right  does  Greece,  our  mother,  whence  yc  also,  O 
Nations,  have  become  enlightened,  anxiously  request  your  friendly  as- 
sistance, with  money,  arms,  and  counsel,  and  we  entertain  the  highest 
hope  that  our  appeal  will  be  listened  to  :  promising  to  show  ourselves 
deserving  of  your  interest,  and  at  the  proper  time  to  prove  our  grati- 
tude by  deeds. 

Given  from  the  Spartan  Head  Quarters,  Calamata,  23d  March, 
1831,  (O.  S.) 

Signed,  PIETRO  MAVROMICALI, 

Commander-in-chief  of  the  Spartan  and  Messinian  forces. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  161 

In  this  state  of  affairs,  Isouf,  Pacha  of  Negropont,  arrived 
at  the  head  of  three  hundred  and  fifty  Turkish  soldiers, 
chiefly  on  horseback.  Mr.  Green,  who  was  present  on  this 
occasion,  says  that  the  Turks  did  not  fire  a  shot,  but  that  on 
their  approach,  the  garrison  besieged  in  the  fortress  dischar- 
ged all  the  artillery  simultaneously,  as  a  kind  of  salute.  This 
roused  the  Greeks,  most  of  whom  were  in  their  beds,  and 
they  commenced  a  precipitate  flight  towards  the  mountains 
and  the  sea-shore.  It  is  quite  impossible,  says  he,  to  de- 
scribe the  scene  that  followed.  Crowds  of  men,  women, 
and  children,  rushed  towards  St.  Andrea,  on  the  sea-shore, 
where  there  were  about  sixty  vessels  and  boats.  Ionians 
and  Greeks,  with  their  women  and  children,  embarked  on 
board  the  different  vessels,  which  weighed  anchor  and  pro- 
ceeded towards  Zante  ;  the  Russian,  Prussian,  and  Swedish 
Consuls  being  among  the  number. 

The  evacuation  of  the  town  by  the  Greeks  really  appeared 
to  have  been  agreed  upon,  as  the  Turks  did  not  attempt  to 
pursue  them  or  cut  off  their  retreat ;  and  the  entire  popula- 
tion, amounting  to  perhaps  eight  thousand  souls,  of  which 
number  there  were  six  thousand  men  capable  of  bearing 
arms,  were  suffered  quietly  to  depart. 

Four  hours  after  the  arrival  of  the  Pacha,  the  town  was 
given  up  to  pillage,  and  the  work  of  destruction  began. 
Numbers  of  Greeks,  chiefly  old  men,  women,  and  children, 
took  refuge  in  the  Consulates.  Several  unfortunate  Greeks 
were  found  near  the  town,  whom  the  Turks  took,  and  having 
cut  off  their  heads,  threw  the  bodies  into  the  streets. 

On  the  16th  of  April,  the  Pacha  gave  orders  to  set  fire  to 
the  houses  of  the  Greek  primates,  who  were  suspected  to  be 
the  instigators  and  leaders  of  the  revolution  ;  the  wind  be- 
ing high,  and  the  houses  composed  of  combustible  materials, 
about  700  were  burned  in  the  space  of  ten  hours,  including 
the  Dutch,  Russian,  and  Swedish  Consulates. 

It  is  impossible,  continues  Mr.  Green,  for  me  to  give  an 
adequate  description  of  the  horrid  scenes  that  have  taken 
place.  About  forty  Greeks  have  been  decapitated,  and  their 
bodies  thrown  into  the  streets  :  the  women  and  children  who 
fell  into  the  hands  of  the  Turks  are  retained  as  slaves. 

The  insurrection  soon  became  so  universal  as  to  strike 
the  infidels  with  terror  and  dismay.  At  Calavrita  and  Cala- 
mata,  the  Turkish  authorities  capitulated  and  delivered  them- 
selves up  to  the  Greeks,  while  at  Gastouni  and  Lalla  the 
two  parties  carried  on  a  destructive  warfare  with  each  otherf 


162  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Lalla  is  situated  on  a  mountain,  a  little  north  of  the  river  Al- 
pheus,  and  was  originally  a  colony  of  Turkish  soldiers,  who 
were  governed  by  their  own  Beys.  They  held  their  lands 
by  the  tenure  of  military  service,  and  had  acquired  a  great 
reputation  as  soldiers.  This  little  community  did  not  lose  a 
tittle  of  their  reputation  on  the  present  occasion.  Being  at- 
tacked, and  finally  surrounded  by  the  Greeks,  they  were 
obliged  to  retire  to  their  town,  which,  though  unfortified, 
their  resistance  was  such  as  to  keep  the  enemy  at  bay,  until 
their  provisions  became  scanty.  They  then  made  application 
for  assistance  to  Isouf  Pacha,  at  Patras,  who  marched  to 
their  relief  with  twelve  hundred  men.  The  Count  Metaxa, 
a  Cephalonian,  who  commanded  a  party  of  lonians  and  Zan- 
tiots,  having  with  the  other  Greeks  taken  post  on  a  neigh- 
bouring eminence,  waited  the  attack  of  the  Lalliots  with  the 
reinforcements  from  Patras,  when  a  most  desperate  contest 
ensued.  "  The  Turks,"  says  Mr.  Blaquiere,  "  who  were 
far  superior  in  numbers,  made  repeated  charges  with  their 
cavalry  upon  the  intrenchments  of  the  lonians  :  constantly 
repulsed,  however,  by  hot  fire  of  grape  and  musketry,  they 
were  forced  to  retire  with  the  loss  of  more  than  three  hun- 
dred men ;  that  of  the  lonians  was  also  considerable,  and 
Metaxa,  their  leader,  received  a  severe  wound.  In  conse- 
quence of  this  affair,  the  Lalliots  abandoned  their  town,  af- 
ter setting  it  on  fire,  and  retreated  with  their  families  to  Pa- 
tras."* 


*  Blaquiere,  vol.  1.  p.  100.  Mr.  Green,  (Sketches,  p.  52.)  gives  a 
different  version  of  this  affair.  "  I  learn,"  says  he,  "  that  the  Pacha  had 
just  returned  to  Patras  from  Lalla,  with  all  the  inhabitants  of  that  place. 
It  appears  that  upon  Isouf  s  arrival  before  Lalla,  he  found  a  large  body 
of  Greeks  collected,  which  he  instantly  attacked,  and,  with  the  assist- 
ance of  the  Lalliots,  after  a  desperate  conflict  succeeded  in  putting  them 
to  flight.  On  the  approach  of  the  Ottomans,  the  Ionian  auxiliaries 
opened  a  heavy  fire  from  six  guns,  which  did  considerable  execution. 
The  Selictar  (Sword-bearer)  of  the  Pacha  was  killed  by  his  side,  and 
the  chief  of  the  Albanians  had  his  horse  shot  under  him.  The  Turks 
being  unprovided  with  artillery,  judged  it  best  to  advance  as  rapidly  as 
possible;  the  moment  they  came  hand  to  hand,  the  Moreot  Greeks  fled 
precipitately,  leaving  the  lonians  to  their  fate  ;  these  last  resisted  with 
great  courage  as  long  as  practicable,  but  being  overpowered  by  num- 
bers, and  abandoned  by  the  Moreots,  they  were  compelled  to  give  way, 
and  retreated  towards  the  coast,  pursued  by  the  victors.  Those  who 
were  able  got  on  board  boats,  and  effected  their  escape  to  Zante 
and  Cephalonia.  They  complain  bitterly  of  the  conduct  of  the  Mo- 
reots, and  apparently  with  reason,  if  their  statement  be  true,   that 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  163 

At  Carilena,  about  one  hundred  Turks  took  refuge  in  an 
old  Venetian  castle,  above  the  town,  built  on  a  rock  which 
overhangs  the  Alpheus.  As  they  had  no  means  of  subsist- 
ence in  this  isolated  spot,  two  thousand  Turks  were  detach- 
ed from  Tripolizza  to  bring  them  off.  Colocotroni  hearing 
of  this  expedition,  advanced  with  three  thousand  Greeks  to 
prevent  the  passage  of  the  Turks.  But  such  was  the  dread 
with  which  these  Greeks  were  struck  on  the  approach  of 
their  enemies,  that  they  dispersed,  to  the  great  mortification 
of  their  leader,  and  permitted  the  Ottomans  to  extricate  their 
countrymen  without  molestation. 

But  notwithstanding,  it  was  some  time  before  the  Greek 
peasants  could  accustom  themselves  to  bear  the  glances  of 
those  tyrants,  in  whose  presence  they  had  been  wont  to 
cringe  in  abject  servility ;  yet  these  impressions  of  terror 
soon  wore  off,  and  gave  place  to  the  utmost  comempt.  In- 
deed, it  was  only  a  few  months  .after  the  revolution  com- 
menced, that  the  Greeks  were  able  to  meet  the  Turks,  man 
to  man,  with  at  least  an  equal  chance  of  success. 

Among  the  soldiers  of  the  Morea,  the  Mainotes  were  the 
most  brave  and  skilful  in  the  use  of  their  arms.  On  many 
occasions  they  gave  examples  of  intrepidity,  which  other  Gre- 
cian troops  hardly  dared  to  imitate.  But  their  characters  are 
stained  with  many  vices,  being  particularly  addicted  to  pil- 
lage and  robbery,  without  caring  much  whether  the  subject 
be  friend  or  foe.  The  success  of  the  first  campaign  in  the 
Morea  seemed  to  depend  considerably  on  the  warlike  habits 
of  these  men.  They  had  been  accustomed  to  a  kind  of  wild 
independence,  which  they  had  maintained  in  their  native 
mountains  for  several  centuries,  and  though  they  had  occa- 
sionally been  forced  to  pay  tribute  to  the  Porte,  had  still 
been  in  a  permanent  state  of  hostility  to  the  Turks.  On  the 
breaking  out  of  hostilities  they  were  among  the  first  to  throw 
off  all  reserve,  and  join  the  standard  of  revolt,  and  to  their  co- 
there  were  twelve  hundred  Ionians,  and  four  thousand  Greeks  before 
Lalla,  as  it  is  certain  that  the  Lalliot  force  did  not  exceed  fifteen  hun- 
dred, and  that  of  Isouf  Pacha  twelve  hundred  men.  Mr.  Green  further 
states,  that  the  loss  of  the  Turks  was  serious,  but  the  number  unknown; 
that  the  loss  of  the  Greeks  in  killed  and  wounded  might  have  been 
three  hundred  ;  and  that  such  was  the  exasperated  feelings  of  the  vic- 
tors, that  several  Ionians,  who  fell  into  the  hands  of  the  Turks,  were 
impaled  alive  on  the  field  of  battle,  and  a  sack  of  noses  and  ears  brought 
to  Patras,  to  be  sent  as  trophies  to  the  Grand  Signior,  which  revolting 
plan  is  often  adopted,  as  affording  proof  positive  of  the  favourable  result 
of  an  action. 


164  HISTORY  OF  THE 

operation  may  be  attributed  the  fact,  that  before  the  middle 
of  May  the  whole  of  the  Morea,  with  the  exception  of  a  few 
fortified  places,  was  in  the  hands  of  the  Greeks.* 

The  new  government,!  composed  of  Archons  and  Bishops, 
was  first  established  at  Calamata,  but  afterwards  transferred 
to  the  centre  of  the  Province,  when  the  Turks  were  shut  up 
in  the  strong  holds,  and  an  Arcadian  army  had  sat  down  be- 
fore Tripolizza.  The  Greeks  did  not,  however,  as  yet  dare 
to  approach  the  city,  but  remained  perched  upon  the  highest 
summit  of  Tricopha,  a  sharp  and  rocky  ridge  to  the  north, 
observing  the  place  from  a  distance,  and  occasionally  skir- 
mishing with  parties  of  the  garrison. 

In  the  meanwhile,  the  Seraskier  Chourschid  Pacha,  though 
sufficiently  occupied  in  keeping  up  the  blockade  before  the 
Citadel  of  Ioannina,  into  which  Ali  had  retired ;  as  well  as  in 
protecting  his  communications  from  the  Suliot  bands,  resolv- 
ed nevertheless,  to  send  whatever  troops  he  could  spare  into 
Greece.  Agreeable  to  this  design,  the  Pacha's  Kiayah,  or 
Lieutenant,  landed  at  Patras,  with  nearly  twr>  thousand  Al- 
banian cavalry,  and  immediately  marched  to  Tripolizza. 
Being  unwilling  to  expose  himself  among  the  mountains  that 
separate  Achaia  from  Arcadia,  he  followed  the  coast  of  the 
Corinthian  Gulph.  On  the  approach  of  Kiayah  Bey,  the 
consternation  of  the  Greeks  became  general.  The  blockade 
of  the  Acropolis  of  Athens  was  raised,  upon  which  the  Turk- 
ish garrison  took  advantage  of  the  respite  thus  afforded,  to 
reap  the  harvest  of  the  neighbouring  districts  then  ripe,  and 
carry  it  into  the  fortress.  From  Corinth,  the  infidel  chief 
proceeded  to  Argos,  passing  through  the  intermediate  de- 
files, without  the  least  opposition,  and  putting  every  Chris- 
tian who  fell  into  his  hands  to  the  sword.  Argos  was  given 
to  the  flames,  but  a  part  of  the  armed  inhabitants  having  oc- 
cupied a  ruined  castle,  on  the  lofty  rock  above  the  town,  he 
did  not  venture  seriously  to  attack  that  point,  and  after  ex- 
changing some  rounds  of  musketry  with  its  defenders,  went 
on  towards  Napoli  di  Romania,  opened  a  communication 
with  that  place,  and  thence  directed  his  steps  to  Tripolizza. 
The  Greeks,  who  had  by  this  time  approached  somewhat 
nearer,  and  encamped  before  the  city,  being  afraid  to  risk  an 
action,  retreated  to  Valdezza,  on  the  road  to  Calamata, 
where  according  to  their  favourite  method,  they  entrenched 

*  Blaquiere,  vol.  i.  p.  100—104.  f  Blaquiere,  vol.  i.  p.  104, 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  165 

themselves  behind  heaps  of  loose  stones  piled  up  for  the  oc- 
casion. 

The  Kiayah  having  assumed  the  chief  command  on  enter- 
ing Tripolizza,  he  began  to  make  predatory  excursions  on 
every  side,  for  the  purpose  of  collecting  supplies,  and  de- 
stroyed several  christian  villages.  It  was  in  one  of  these 
marauding  parties,  that  Nicetas,  or  as  he  is  called  by  the  na- 
tives, Nikitas,  the  bravest  and  most  disinterested  of  the 
Greek  Captains,  acquired  the  high  reputation  for  valour, 
which  he  lws  since  preserved  among  his  countrymen.  Hav- 
ing halted  in  a  small  hamlet  with  only  fifty  soldiers,  he  was 
suddenly  attacked  by  nearly  three  thousand  Turks,  and  three 
pieces  of  cannon.  Nikitas,  undaunted  by  such  fearful  odds, 
took  his  measures  so  well,  and  kept  up  such  a  spirited  fire, 
that,  however  strange  it  may  appear,  he  repulsed  the  enemy 
with  great  loss.  Ali  Bey,  second  in  command  of  the  Turk- 
ish division,  was  killed  by  a  musket  ball  in  this  affair. 

At  Valdezza,  a  difference  of  opinion  arose  among  the 
Greek  leaders  ;  Colocotroni,  Anagnostoras,  and  the  Bey  of 
Maina,  as  to  whether  it  would  be  more  expedient  to  wait  for 
the  Ottoman  army,  in  that  position,  or  retire  farther  into  the 
mountains  ;  Colocotroni  proposed  the  latter  plan,  but  he 
yielded  to  the  suggestions  of  Anagnostoras,  who  represent- 
ed that  their  retreat  would  expose  the  whole  country  to  de- 
vastation. On  the  6th  of  June,  they  were  attacked  by  the 
Kiayah  in  person,  at  the  head  of  all  his  disposable  force.  He 
anticipated  an  easy  victory,  and  on  the  night  before  quitting 
Tripolizza,  military  dances  were  executed  in  the  streets,  by 
his  Albanians,  who  promised  to  exterminate  the  christian 
rebels.  But  the  result  was  far  different.  The  Ottoman 
cavalry,  while  on  a  plain,  would  no  doubt  have  soon  over- 
whelmed their  antagonists  ;  embarrassed  and  unable  to  act 
on  narrow  and  rocky  ground,  they  were  thrown  into  disorder 
by  the  fire  of  the  Greek  light  infantry.  The  Mainotes,  by  a 
vigorous  attack  in  flank,  completed  their  defeat,  and  a  total 
rout  ensued.  Two  hundred  infidels  were  slain,  the  re- 
mainder succeeded  in  re-entering  the  city,  though  in  the  ut- 
most confusion,  many  of  them  having  lost  their  arms  and 
accoutrements.  It  is  a  singular  fact,  that  this  action,  which 
may  be  said  to  have  mainly  decided  the  fate  of  the  Pelopon- 
nesus, should  have  coincided  so  nearly  with  the  discomfiture 
of  Ipsilanti  at  Dragachan. 

As  the  Turks  did  not  attempt  to  keep  the  field  after  this 
overthrow,  it  merely  remained  for  the  Greeks  to  watch  the 

15* 


166  HISTORY  OF  THE 

fortresses.  The  head -quarters  of  the  Mainotes,  and  of  the 
Arcadians  under  Colocotroni,  were  therefore  once  more  es- 
tablished in  front  of  Tripolizza  ;  while  Modon,  Coron,  and 
Malvasia,  were  invested  on  the  land  side  by  the  peasants  of 
Laconia  and  Messina,  and  some  parties  of  Mainotes.  Two 
thousand  Peloponnesians  and  a  body  of  Ionians  formed  the 
siege  of  Navarin,  while  a  more  numerous  corps  of  Achaians, 
reinforced  by  auxiliaries  from  Cephalonia  and  Zante,  sat 
down  before  Patras.  Napoli  di  Romania  was  also  blocked 
up  by  the  militia  of  Argolis,  and  the  Acropolis  of  Corinth  by 
the  Corinthians  and  Sycionians.  The  Hydriots  and  Spez- 
ziots  cruised  along  the  shore  with  some  light  vessels,  and 
prevented  any  supplies  from  arriving  by  sea  ;  and  the  heroic 
Bobolina  of  Spezzia,  undertook  to  conduct  the  naval  block- 
ade of  Napoli  di  Romania,  with  seven  sail  of  armed  ships, 
brigs,  and  schooners,  her  own  property,  and  fitted  out  solely 
at  her  own  expense.* 

It  was  truly  fortunate  for  the  cause  of  Grecian  freedom, 
that  a  long  peace  had  induced  the  infidels  of  the  Morea  to 
neglect  provisioning  their  strong  holds,  and  that  the  hurry 
and  precipitation  with  which  they  took  shelter  behind  their 
ramparts,  allowed  no  opportunity  of  repairing  that  fault,  for 
the  Greeks,  without  artillery,  and  so  deficient  in  military  sci- 
ence or  discipline,  had  no  chance  of  reducing  them  except 
by  famine :  their  method  of  conducting  these  novel  sieges 
was  as  follows  :  the  main  body  took  post  upon  heights  at  a 
considerable  distance,  generally  beyond  the  reach  of  can- 
non shot,  while  some  advanced  parties,  profited  by  any  ine- 
qualities of  ground  to  approach  the  walls,  remaining  with 
extraordinary  patience,  behind  the  shelter  afforded  by  banks 
or  stones,  watching  an  occasion  to  fire  at  their  enemies 
through  the  embrasures  and  loop-holes.     Prompted  by  the 

*  This  extraordinary  woman  was  killed  in  an  affray  which  happened 
in  June,  1825.  It  appeared  that  one  of  her  brothers,  of  which  she  had 
five,  had  seduced  a  girl  of  the  island ;  her  friends  surrounded  the  house 
of  Bobolina,  where  he  lived,  for  the  purpose  of  forcing  the  young  man 
to  marry  her.  The  Amazon  who  harangued  them  from  a  window,  had, 
it  seems,  been  rather  too  profuse  of  her  abusive  terms,  when  a  shot 
from  the  brother  of  the  injured  girl,  passed  through  her  head,  and  at 
once  put  an  end  to  her  eloquence  and  her  life. 

Such  however  is  the  regard  for  female  virtue  in  those  Islands,  that 
the  delinquent  was  never  brought  to  trial ;  whilst  the  universal  voice  of 
tlie  inhabitants  compelled  the  brother  of  Bobolina  to  marry  the  girl  a 
few  days  after*— -Picture  cf  Greece,  vol  i.  p.  112. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  167 

hope  of  procuring  a  little  forage  and  provisions,  or  more  fre- 
quently from  mere  lassitude,  the  Mussulmen  sometimes  made 
a  sortie,  and  drove  back  the  outposts,  upon  which  the  main 
body  would  hasten  to  their  support ;  after  a  distant  exchange 
of  musketry,  the  Turks  thinking  that  they  had  given  them- 
selves sufficient  exercise,  retired  within  the  walls,  and  were 
often  pursued  by  the  Greeks.  Neither  party  had  any  idea 
of  acting  in  a  body,  but  merely  as  sharp  shooters.  In  these 
skirmishes,  the  Mainotes  and  Ionians  were  always  the  bold- 
est and  most  forward  of  the  Christian  troops.  It  is  true  that 
the  latter,  by  taking  part  in  the  war,  exposed  themselves  to 
severe  penalties,  as  well  as  confiscation  of  property,  enacted 
by  the  Parliament  of  the  Seven  Islands  ;  but  the  brave  men 
whom  a  sentiment  of  patriotism  and  zeal  for  their  religion 
induced  to  come  forward  thus  nobly,  will  have  their  reward 
in  history,  while  those  legislators  who  so  easily  lent  then- 
sanction  to  measures,  dictated  solely  by  prejudice  and  pas- 
sion, have  already  incurred  the  galling  ban  of  public  opinion. 
It  did  not  unfrequently  happen  that  a  short  truce  was  agreed 
upon  by  mutual  consent :  during  this,  groups  of  the  two 
nations  might  be  seensitting  on  the  grass,  smoking,  convers- 
ing, and  even  eating  together :  this  intercourse  continued 
till  the  armistice  was  declared  to  be  at  an  end,  when  each 
party  went  back  to  their  respective  stations,  and  hostilities 
recommenced  as  fiercely  as  ever. 

While  these  scenes  were  passing  in  the  Peloponnesus,  the 
insurrection  continued  to  gain  ground  in  the  northern  parts 
of  Greece,  though  with  less  vigour  and  with  fewer  striking 
events.  The  Roumeliots  generally  boasted  that  they  were 
better  soldiers  than  the  natives  of  the  Morea,  but  their  con- 
duct during  the  early  part  of  the  contest  cannot  certainly  be 
cited  as  a  proof  of  superiority.  In  Acarnania  and  Etolia,  the 
revolution  was  effected  without  any  difficulty,  there  being  no 
Turkish  troops  in  these  provinces,  except  a  few  at  Lepanto. 
In  Phocis,  Attica,  and  Bosotia,  the  peasants  assembled  in 
arms  upon  the  mountains,  but  struck  no  blow  worthy  of  be- 
ing mentioned ;  the  Athenians  and  Boeotians  were  indeed 
regarded  as  the  worst  troops  in  Greece. 

About  the  time  that  the  Kiayah  Bey  entered  the  Pelopon- 
nesus, another  detachment  of  Chourschid  Pacha's  army  ad- 
vanced through  the  passes  of  Oeta,  into  Bceotia,  burned  the 
city  of  Livadia,  and  occupied  Thebes.  Omer  Vrioni,  an 
Albanian  chief  of  some  reputation,  who  had  the  honour  of  de- 
feating a  party  of  British  troops  near  Rosetta,  in  the  ill-con- 


168  HISTORY  OF  THE 

certed  expedition  of  1807,  marched  towards  Athens,  with 
seven  hundred  horse.  The  town  was  in  possession  of  the 
peasants  of  Attica,  and  the  few  Turks  it  contained  shut  up  in 
the  Acropolis,  were  in  great  distress  for  want  of  provisions  ; 
while,  in  order  to  accelerate  its  capture,  the  Hydriots  had 
disembarked  a  body  of  islanders  with  some  ship  guns  at  the 
Piraeus.  But  no  sooner  did  they  receive  tidings  of  Omer's 
approach,  than  a  general  flight  took  place.  The  Hydriots 
sailing  away,  while  the  Athenians  sought  shelter  either  in 
the  mountains  or  in  the  island  of  Salamis,  where  fifteen  hun- 
dred of  them  found  a  refuge  ;  thus  imitating  the  conduct  of 
their  ancestors,  though  it  must  be  confessed,  under  circum- 
stances infinitely  less  honourable  to  themselves.  Soon  after- 
wards, however,  Odysseus  and  some  other  Greek  captains, 
who  had  been  attached  to  the  former  army  of  Ali  Pacha, 
came  from  Epirus,  and  occupying  the  defiles  of  Thermopylae, 
effectually  prevented  any  more  reinforcements  from  advanc- 
ing in  that  direction. 

In  Macedonia,  hostilities  had  already  commenced,  and  the 
Christians  of  that  Province,  meeting  at  first  with  some  suc- 
cess, pushed  their  incursions  as  far  as  the  gates  of  Salonica, 
causing  great  alarm  in  that  rich  and  populous  city.  But,  in- 
stead of  following  any  fixed  plan,  they  roamed  about  the 
country  in  separate  bands,  and  for  objects  of  little  impor- 
tance :  having  at  length  been  discomfited  in  a  few  insignifi- 
cant skirmishes,  their  courage  began  to  fail  them  ;  the  panic 
that  ensued  was  also  followed  by  the  abandonment  of  sixty 
or  seventy  villages,  whose  inhabitants  retired  into  the  treble 
Peninsula  of  Cassandra,  Torone,  and  Mount  Athos.  At 
the  commencement  of  these  tumults,  the  Greek  inhabitants 
of  Mount  Pelion,  in  Thessaly,  were  excited  to  revolt,  by  the 
eloquent  exhortations  of  Anthimos  Gazi,  a  distinguished  lite- 
rary character  long  resident  at  Vienna.  But  this  insurrec- 
tion was  soon  suppressed  by  the  Turks,  and  Anthimos  obliged 
to  conceal  himself  in  the  first  instance,  and  finally  quit  the 
country.* 

At  sea  the  Greeks  carried  every  thing  before  them,  and 
for  a  long  time  rode  undisputed  masters  of  the  Egean,  keep- 

**  The  persecutions  and  cruelties  at  Salonica  were  little  inferior  to 
those  at  Constantinople,  and  although  the  victims  were  not  so  nume- 
rous, yet  many  thousand  Greeks  of  every  age  and  sex  perished  under 
the  Mussulman  knife.  It  is  worthy  of  remark,  that  the  Jews,  of  whom 
there  are  considerable  numbers  in  this  part  of  Greece,  were  armed  by 
th*  Turks,  and  joined  heartily  in  all  their  excesses. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  169 

ing  the  Turkish  ports  and  islands  in  a  state  of  complete 
blockade  :  with  the  exception  of  merchant  vessels,  however, 
the  only  prizes  hitherto  made,  consisted  of  a  corvette,  with  a 
small  complement  of  men,  surprised  in  the  port  of  Milo,  and 
also  one  or  two  brigs  of  war.  But  a  far  more  glorious  tri- 
umph was  afforded  them,  by  the  first  attempt  the  Ottomans 
made  to  regain  possession  of  the  sea,  and  re-establish  the 
maritime  communication  between  Constantinople,  Smyrna, 
and  Egypt,  as  its  interruption  caused  much  inconvenience  to 
the  inhabitants  of  the  capital,  who  were  thus  deprived  of 
their  usual  supplies  of  rice  and  fruits.  In  order  to  effect 
this  purpose,  two  line  of  battle-ships,  and  several  smaller  ves- 
sels, quitted  the  Hellespont  towards  the  end  of  May,  and 
proceeded  as  far  as  the  Island  of  Lesbos.  The  Greek 
squadron  fell  in  with  one  of  the  two  deckers,  a  seventy-four 
gun  ship,  which  had  separated  from  the  others  off  the  south- 
ern coast  of  the  Island.  The  following  are  a  few  particulars 
of  the  action,  as  related  by  Tombasi  the  Hydriot  Admiral. 
Instead  of  keeping  the  open  sea  and  making  use  of  his  for- 
midable artillery,  the  Turkish  captain  only  thought  of  flight, 
but  being  unable  to  escape  without  fighting,  he  anchored  his 
ship  at  the  entrance  of  the  gulf  of  Adrametum.  On  this,  the 
Greeks  immediately  prepared  fire-ships  to  lay  him  on  board ; 
their  first  attempt  failed,  but  the  second  completely  succeed- 
ed. Two  of  these  destructive  masses  being  linked  together, 
fell  athwart  the  bows  of  the  Ottoman,  while  the  ignorant 
Mussulmen  stood  on  deck  with  their  muskets,  to  oppose 
what  they  imagined  to  be  an  attempt  at  boarding,  deceived 
by  several  effigies  the  Greeks  had  dressed  up  in  different 
parts  of  the  fire  vessels.  When  once  attacked,  only  a  few 
minutes  elapsed  before  the  Turkish  ship  was  enveloped  in 
flames,  the  captain  then  cut  his  cables  and  allowed  her  to 
drift  towards  the  shore,  but  long  before  reaching  it  she  run 
aground.  The  crew  now  endeavoured  to  save  themselves 
by  swimming  ;  but  the  victorious  islanders  pursued  in  their 
boats,  and  such  was  the  perils  which  the  Turks  had  to  en- 
counter, that  out  of  a  complement  of  eight  hundred  men, 
scarcely  a  single  individual  was  saved.  As  to  the  ship,  she 
burned  to  the  water's  edge.  On  getting  intelligence  of  this 
disaster,  the  rest  of  the  infidel  squadron  fled  with  all  possible 
speed  to  the  Dardanelles.* 

*  Blaquiere,  p.  100—114. 


170  HISTORY  OF  THE 


CHAPTER  XIII. 

Demetrius  Ipsilanti  assumes  the  command. — Cantacuzene.— 
Their  Reception  — Candiotti. — Affendouli. — State  of  Par- 
ties in  1821. — Hetarists  and  Ephors:  their  respective 
views. — Germcmos. — Klepthis. — Character  of  the  Ephors. 
■ — Qualities  of  the  Hetarists  :  their  Confidence  in  Russia. 
• — Ipsilanti. — Cantacuzene. — Prince  Mavrocordato. — Car- 
adja.—Mavromicali,  Prince  of  Maina. — Kyriacoula. — 
Colocotroni  ;  his  character  and  views. — Anagnostaras  of 
Leondari. — Plans  of  * Ipsilanti. —  Opposed  by  the  Ephors. 
—Siege  of  Malvasia  and  Navarin ;  their  Capture. — Ex- 
cesses of  the  Patriots.—  Tipoldo. — Resignation  and  recall 
of  Prince  Demetrius. 

*  "  The  arrival  of  Demetrius  Ipsilanti  at  Hydra  gave  anew 
impulse  to  the  enthusiasm  of  the  patriots;  this  young  officer 
reached  the  island  early  in  June  from  Trieste,  having  travers- 
ed the  Austrian  dominions  in  disguise,  and  thus  evaded  the 
late  of  his  brother.  He  bore  a  commission  from  Prince  Alex- 
ander, appointing  him  general  in  chief  of  all  the  forces  in  i 
Greece,  and  was  accompanied  by  a  younger  brother  of  prince 
Cantacuzene  and  some  other  Greeks  belonging  to  families 
settled  in  the  north  of  Europe.     The  Hydriots  received  Ip- 
silanti  with  discharges  of  artillery  and  other  demonstrations  ; 
of  joy.     After  remaining  a  few  days  in  the  island,  in  the 
course  of  which  a  proclamation  was  issued  explaining  the 
object  of  his  coming,  he  made  some  changes  in  the  local 
government,  and  proceeded  to  the  Morea,  where  he  assum-  [ 
ed   the  command  of    the  army  before   Tripolizza.      Thej 
disastrous  issue  of  his  brother's  expedition  could  not  then 
be  known,  and  it  was  generally  supposed  that  Demetrius 
had  brought  large  sums  of  money  and  a  quantity  of  military 
stores ;    but  this  illusion  soon  vanished,  for  it  was  found 
he  had  not  more  than  200,000  Turkish  piastres,  most  of 
which  Petros  Beyt  borrowed  for  the  support  of  his  followers ! 
and  two  hundred  stand  of  arms.     As  the  melancholy  termi- 
nation of  the  northern  campaign  became  known,  the  ardour 
excited   by    Ipsilanti's    arrival    began  to  cool,   when    the 
Ephors  turned  a  deaf  ear  to  all  his  propositions  for  organi- 

*  Blaquiere  p.  115.  f  Mavromicali. 

a 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  171 

sing  the  army  and  establishing  a  regular  system  ef  adminis- 
tration. They  were  equally  insensible  to  the  menaces  of 
one  of  his  companions,  named  Condiotti,  formerly  valet-de- 
chambre  to  Count  Capo  d'Istria,  and  who  threatened  them 
not  only  with  the  vengeance  of  Prince  Alexander,  but  with 
that  of  the  Autocrat  himself.  They  had,  however,  already 
heard  that  one  was  a  fugitive  and  prisoner,  and  that  the  other 
loudly  disavowed  their  cause.  Unable  to  realize  his  plans; 
Condiotti  withdrew  from  the  Morea,  though  not  without  a 
strong  suspicion  of  being  one  of  those  who  had  embezzled 
part  of  the  sums  raised  by  subscription  among  the  Hetarists. 
'  Another  determined  partizan  of  Russia,  Affendouli,  who  con- 
stantly appeared  in  the  uniform  of  that  nation,  went  to 
Crete,  and  obtained  the  command  of  the  independent  forces 
there,  but  he  was  soon  driven  away  as  an  impostor,  and  nar- 
rowly escaped  with  his  life.  Having  alluded  to  the  first 
symptoms  of  dissension  between  Ipsilanti  and  the  Ephors. 
that  is,  perhaps,  the  most  proper  place  to  offer  a  few  remarks 
on  the  state  of  parties  in  Greece  at  this  period ;  for  it  is  only 
by  a  correct  data  on  the  actors,  that  many  of  these  circum- 
stances which  have  marked  the  progress  of  the  contest  can 
be  explained. 

The  attempt  to  regenerate  a  people  who  have  been  long 
weighed  down  by  tyranny,  and  exposed  to  the  influence  of  a 
corrupt  and  demoralizing  government,  is  a  task  of  infinite 
difficulty,  and  must  ever  encounter  obstacles  almost  insur- 
mountable. On  the  first  dawn  of  freedom  in  Modern 
Greece,  it  is  to  be  lamented,  that  so  much  of  the  spirit  of 
dissension,  coeval  with  the  formation  of  the  ancient  republics, 
and  aptly  characterised  as  the  inveterate  malady  of  the  Greek 
cities,  by  a  writer  of  antiquity,  should  have  survived  the 
Lower  Empire  and  Turkish  despotism  : — when  a  system  of 
rule  like  that  to  which  the  Greek  people  had  been  subjected 
by  all  their  conquerors,  and  the  abuses  connected  with  their 
religious  dogmas,  are  considered,  who  can  wonder,  if  many 
of  the  chiefs  who  now  came  forward,  seemed  more  anxious 
for  the  interests  of  his  native  village  or  city,  than  the  general 
good  of  the  confederacy.  The  want  of  concert,  as  well 
as  that  variety  of  detached  operations  which  were  pursu- 
ed at  different  points,  may  be  attributed  to  the  above  causes. 
The  nation  was,  besides,  divided  into  two  great  parties  ; 
those  of  the  Hetarists,  and  Ephors  or  Primates.  It  is  also 
to  be  observed,  that  there  was  scarcely  a  man  in  either  party, 
who  had  been  accustomed  to  the  direction  of  a  public  ad- 


172  HISTORY  OF  THE 

ministration  or  conducting  national  affairs  on  a  grand  scale. 
As  soon  as  the  Turkish  magistrates  had  lost  their  power,  all 
authority  in  civil  matters  naturally  fell  into  the  hands  of  the 
Bishops  and  Primates,  who  had,  under  the  Ottoman  yoke, 
been  employed  to  collect  imposts  and  arrange  the  minor  de- 
tails of  domestic  and  municipal  polity  among  the  Christian 
Communities ;  but  these  men,  accustomed  to  every  species 
of  low  intrigue,  fraud,  and  extortion,  and  to  enrich  them- 
selves at  the  expense  of  the  poorer  classes,  were  neither  able 
to  quit  the  beaten  track  in  which  they  had  so  long  moved, 
nor  get  rid  of  theii  grovelling  habits ;  much  less  raise  them- 
selves to  the  level  of  existing  circumstances.  The  charac- 
ters of  such  men  were  by  no  means  calculated  to  inspire  re- 
spect, while  their  influence  could  only  be  maintained  by 
Caballing  together  and  retaining  bands  of  unprincipled 
satellites  in  their  pay.  One  of  the  most  conspicuous  indi- 
viduals in  this  class,  was  Germanos,  Archbishop  of  Patras, 
a  vain,  ambitious,  selfish,  and  intriguing  churchman.  The 
armed  population  was  commanded  by  officers  bearing  the 
title  of  Capitani,  a  word  of  very  vague  signification  ;  since 
some  were  at  the  head  of  two  thousand  men,  while  others 
were  not  followed  by  more  than  twenty  or  thirty.  In  the 
military  Councils,  the  greatest  share  of  influence  and  authority 
was  either  assumed  by,  or  conferred  on  the  leading  klephts, 
who  were  the  only  persons  capable  of  heading  the  troops,  the 
inferior  commanders  being  elected  by  the  voluntary  suffrage 
of  the  provincial  militia  that  served  under  them.  Thus, 
each  village  had  its  petty  chief,  who  was  allowed  to  com- 
mand while  he  made  himself  agreeable,  and  no  longer.  It 
.Sometimes  happened  that  these  officers,  though  engaged  in 
the  same  enterprise,  acted  quite  independently  of  each  other ; 
but  it  more  frequently  occurred,  that  a  number  of  them 
agreed  to  obey  one  chief  of  superior  reputation.  Nor  did 
the  best  understanding  always  exist  between  the  Captains 
and  the  Primates,  although  they  were  reciprocally  depen- 
dent on  each  other  ;  the  first  for  receiving  a  regular  supply 
of  rations,  which  it  was  the  business  of  the  Ephors  to  collect 
and  send  to  the  army ;  the  second,  for  having  their  decrees 
enforced,  and  measures  carried  into  effect.  The  confusion 
arising  from  the  jumble  of  civil  and  military  organization,  to 
which  the  country  party  adhered  but  too  obstinately,  may  be 
easily  conceived  :  brought  up  under  the  Turkish  system,  and 
participating  in  its  abuses,  they  seemed  to  have  no  permanent 
rule  of  action,  and  took  a  singular  pride  in  attempting  to  imi- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  173 

tale  the  barbarous  pomp  displayed  by  the  Mahometans  of 
rank.  But  the  views  of  the  Hetarists  were  altogether  dif- 
ferent :  educated  in  Europe,  and  more  accustomed  than 
their  less  favoured  countrymen  to  the  usages  of  civilized 
life,  they  were  anxious  to  introduce  them  into  Greece  :  un- 
fortunately, however,  they  consisted  for  the  most  part  of 
young  men,  who  had  no  experience  of  public  business. 
Having  but  lately  issued  from  colleges  and  counting  houses, 
often  carried  away  by  passion  and  enthusiasm,  they  took  too 
little  pains  to  conceal  the  high  opinion  they  entertained  of 
their  own  powers,  and  their  contempt  for  associates  who 
had  not  enjoyed  the  same  advantages.  Their  hopes  were 
fixed  upon  Russia,  and  however  strange  it  may  appear,  they 
would  have  been  willing  to  govern  regenerated  Greece,  un- 
der Russian  protection.  At  the  head  of  this  little  party, 
was  Demetrius  Ipsilanti,  whose  name,  whatever  may  have 
been  the  errors  of  the  Hetarists,  cannot  be  mentioned  with- 
out feelings  of  esteem  and  respect.  This  young  man,  though 
not  more  than  twenty-two  years  of  age,  had  held  the  rank  of 
lieutenant-colonel  in  the  Russian  army,  but  without  having 
found  an  opportunity  of  acquiring  a  knowledge  of  his  pro- 
fession by  active  service  in  the  field.  His  exterior  is  rather 
unfavourable,  being  of  short  stature,  and  nearly  bald  ;  and 
there  is  an  expression  of  coldness  in  his  manner,  which  is  apt 
to  repel  strangers ;  but  on  a  closer  acquaintance,  this  reserve 
wears  away,  when  his  excellent  qualities  appear  in  their  true 
colours.  Intrepid,  persevering,  and  totally  indifferent  to  the 
allurements  of  pleasure,  Ipsilanti  has  no  thought,  no  wish, 
but  for  the  honour  and  happiness  of  Greece :  and  if  he  desired 
to  be  at  the  head  of  the  government,  it  was  only  that  he 
might  be  able  to  render  her  more  essential  service.  Un- 
like many  others,  he  was  scrupulous  in  the  means  he  em- 
ployed to  gain  even  his  most  favourite  ends,  and  disinter- 
ested in  the  extreme,  amidst  a  system  of  pillage  and  pecula- 
tion which  would  have  followed  a  similar  revolution  in  the 
most  enlightened  country  of  Europe.  Although  no  man  had 
deeper  reasons  to  hate  the  Turks,  yet  he  constantly  inter- 
posed to  save  them  from  insult  and  ill  treatment  when  van- 
quished, and  by  example  as  well  as  precept,  endeavoured  to 
check  the  excesses  inseparable  from  such  a  war.  If  his  ef- 
forts were  not  always  crowned  with  success,  there  is  not  less 
credit  due  to  the  character  and  motives  of  Prince  Demetrius. 
His  greatest  fault  is,  perhaps,  that  of  not  possessing  sufficient 
energy,  and  being  too  mild  for  the  circumstances  in  which 

16 


174  HISTORY  OF  THE 

he  was  placed,  and  the  men  with  whom  he  had  to  act.  The 
situation  of  the  Prince  was  both  difficult  and  delicate  ;  sur- 
rounded by  jarring  interests  and  passions,  an  object  of  con- 
stant jealousy  to  the  Primates,  and  frequently  opposed  in 
his  attempts  to  correct  prevailing  defects. 

Prince  Cantacuzene,  the  colleague  of  Ipsilanti,  though 
sprung  from  a  Greek  family,  was  in  all  respects  a  Russian  : 
full  of  spirit  and  activity,  he  appeared  to  be  gifted  with  a  con- 
siderable share  of  military  skill,  but  soon  became  tired  of  a 
service,  in  which  the  objects  of  a  man's  ambition  could  only 
be  attained  by  sacrifices  which  few  are  willing  to  make.^ — 
After  the  capture  of  Malvasia,  where  he  commanded  the  be- 
sieging force,  Cantacuzene  refused  to  accept  any  employ- 
ment, unless  sufficient  means  were  given  him,  with  an  assur- 
ance of  support :  and  as  the  gratification  of  these  wishes 
were  impracticable  in  the  existing  state  of  the  contest,  he 
quitted  Greece  altogether  in  October,  and  repaired  to  Italy, 
whence  he  has  not  since  returned. 

Early  in  August,  Prince  Mavrocordato  and  Caradja,  the 
first  a  highly  distinguished  Panariot,  and  the  second  a  son  of 
a  fugitive  Hospodar,  arrived  from  Marseilles  in  a  Greek  ves- 
sel, loaded  with  military  stores,  which  Mavrocordato  had 
purchased  there,  and  after  visiting  the  camp  before  Patras, 
disembarked  their  supplies  at  Missolonghi.  The  talents  and 
noble  character  of  Mavrocordato,  soon/  procured  him  great 
weight  and  authority  among  all  classes,  while  Caradja  was  a 
mere  cypher,  and  his  name  scarcely  ever  mentioned.  With 
respect  to  the  Bey  of  Maina,  Mavromicalis,  though  as  anx- 
ious to  see  his  country  free  as  most  men,  his  period  of  per- 
sonal activity  has  gone  by,  and  he  was  also  destitute  of  those 
powers  of  the  mind,  indispensable  for  those  destined  to  take 
a  prominent  part  in  such  a  revolution.  His  brother,  Kyria- 
couli,  on  whom  the  command  of  the  Mainotes  seemed  prin- 
cipally to  devolve,  gave  proofs  of  courage  and  enterprize  : 
and  his  eldest  son  was  a  young  man  of  very  great  promise, 
possessing  a  fascinating  exterior,  amiable  manners,  ahd  full 
of  patriotism  :  both  found  a  glorious  death  in  the  summer  of 
1822  :  the  first  was  killed  on  the  coast  of  Epirus,  and  the  se- 
cond being  surrounded  near  Carystus,  in  Eubcea,  by  a  body 
of  the  enemy,  far  superior  in  number,  after  seeing  all  his 
companions  slain  by  his  side,  chose  rather  to  plunge  a  dag- 
ger into  his  heart,  than  fall  alive  into  the  hands  of  the  infi- 
dels. 

Of  all  those  who  have  been  called  upon  to  aid  the  Greek 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  175 

cause,  Colocotroni  deserves  most  particular  notice.  This 
chief  had  never  submitted  to  the  Ottomans,  but  like  his  an- 
cestors, had  almost  from  his  cradle  carried  on  a  petty  warfare 
against  them,  spreading  alarm  throughout  his  native  province, 
at  the  head  of  a  band  of  faithful -and  determined  followers, 
making  the  most  inaccessible  mountains  of  Arcadia  his 
abode,  and  plundering  all  who  came  in  his  way.  No  wonder 
if  the  character  of  such  a  man  received  a  tinge  from  the 
wild  habits  of  his  life  :  hasty  and  violent  in  his  temper ;  an 
Ajax  in  person  ;  bold  and  daring  in  the  field,  where  he  seem- 
ed to  court  danger ;  greedy  and  rapacious  of  spoil,  fertile 
in  stratagem,  it  would  have  been  almost  impossible  to  find  a 
more  active  or  efficient  partizan.  Driven  from  the  Morea  by 
Veli  Pacha,  he  first  entered  into  the  Russian,  and  subse- 
quently the  British  service,  and  was  appointed  captain  of 
guides  in  one  of  the  Greek  battalions  raised  in  the  Ionian 
Islands.  But  his  military  experience  had  given  Colocotroni 
no  relish  for  tactics  or  discipline  :  to  neither  of  which  did  he 
appear  to  attach  the  smallest  importance.  When  pressed 
on  these  points,  he  merely  remarked,  that  if  the  Greeks  were 
ignorant  of  the  art  of  war,  their  enemies  the  Turks  were 
equally  so.  Content  to  practise  the  lessons  of  early  life,  the 
first  resource  that  presented  itself  to  his  mind  in  moments  of 
danger,  was  a  retreat  to  the  mountains  ;  these  were  looked 
upon  as  his  castles  and  citadels,  and  once  among  them  he 
deemed  himself  invincible.  In  politics,  he  appeared  rather 
wavering  and  undecided.  Colocotroni  neither  loved  nor  es- 
teemed Ipsilanti,  whom  he  accused  of  sloth  and  want  of  vi- 
gour :  yet  did  he  for  a  long  time  affect  to  give  the  Prince  his 
countenance  and  support.  Some  of  the  Ephors  had,  how- 
ever, a  certain  degree  of  influence  over  him.  In  his  heart, 
Colocotroni  is  probably  a  Russian,  although  it  should  be  ad- 
ded, that  he  never  showed  himself  well-disposed  towards  the 
Hetarists ;  on  the  other  hand,  it  is  not  improbable  but  that 
he  wished  to  perpetuate  the  reign  of  anarchy,  in  order  to  pro- 
fit by  it,  and  rule  the  storm. 

Anagnostaras  of  Leondari,  had  led  the  same  kind  of  life 
as  Colocotroni,  to  whom  he  was  allied  by  a  long  friendship  ; 
had  been  captain  of  grenadiers  in  the  same  corps,  and  like 
him,  enjoyed  a  green  and  vigorous  old  age  :  he  was  besides 
a  good  soldier,  endowed  both  with  prudence  and  discretion. 
The  name  of  the  brave  and  modest  Nikitas  has  already  ap- 
peared ;  few  of  the  other  captains  of  this  period  enjoyed,  or 
indeed  seemed  to  deserve,  much  reputation. 


176  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Ipsilanti  had  two  important  projects  in  view :  one  of  these 
was  to  establish  a  general  and  central  government  for  all 
Greece ;  the  other,  to  put  the  army  upon  a  regular  footing, 
and  assimilate  it  to  the  troops  of  Europe.  Both  the  above 
designs  met  with  numberless  obstacles ;  the  first  would  have 
destroyed  the  influence  of  many  interested  individuals,  who 
were  at  the  head  of  different  states  of  the  confederation,  and 
ihe  second  was  calculated  to  lessen  the  power  of  the  military 
chiefs.  The  captains  and  ephors  therefore  joined  in  oppos- 
ing them,  and  in  other  respects,  created  such  difficulties  as  to 
render  the  situation  of  the  Prince  exceedingly  irksome.  In 
the  meanwhile  two  events  occurred,  which,  though  favoura- 
ble to  the  cause  of  independence,  tended,  by  their  conse- 
quences, to  exasperate  Ipsilanti  still  more. 

The  strong  fortresses  of  Malvasia*  and  Navarin  surren- 
dered to  the  patriots  in  August.  The  former,  situated  on 
the  east  coast  of  Laconia,  is  a  place  very  difficult  to  reduce, 
being  built  on  a  rock  washed  on  every  side  by  the  Egean  sea, 
and  communicating  with  the  continent  only  by  a  bridge. 
Defended  in  this  quarter  by  a  strong  treble  wall,  it  is  inac- 
cessible at  every  other  point,  containing  within  itself, 
sources  of  excellent  water,  and  a  small  patch  of  cultivated 
land,  sufficient  to  support  a  garrison  of  fifty  or  sixty  men. 
Below  this  impregnable  citadel,  is  a  port  and  suburb,  where 
most  of  the  inhabitants  reside.  The  Greeks  had  kept  it 
closely  blockaded  both  by  sea  and  land,  since  the  month  of 
April ;  Cantacuzene  arrived  in  the  camp  about  the  middle 
of  July,  and  took  the  command ;  famine  had  already  made 
dreadful  havoc  amongst  the  Mahometans,  who,  after  prolong- 
ing their  existence  by  the  most  unnatural  aliments,  were  at 
length  reduced  to  feed  on  human  flesh,  eating  their  prison- 
ers, and  even  their  own  children.  Nor  was  this  a  solitary 
instance,  as  most  of  the  strong  holds  in  the  Peloponnesus, 
presented  similar  examples.  To  such  extremities  will  men 
go,  in  obedience  to  the  great  and  irresistible  law  of  self-pre- 
servation. 

But  while  the  majority  of  the  population  was  thus  suffer- 
ing, the  governor,  shut  up  with  two  hundred  soldiers  in  the 
citadel,  enjoyed  abundance,  and  gave  himself  no  trouble 
about  the  fate  of  his  countrymen  in  the  lower  town.  These 
last,  were  disposed  rather  to  famish,  than  trust  to  the  mercy 
of  the  peasants  and  Mainotes,  who  were  investing  the  place : 

*  Napoli  di  Malvasia. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  177 

but  the  arrival  of  the  Prince  Cantaeuzene  having  inspired 
them  with  some  degree  of  confidence,  they  ventured  to  open 
a  negotiation.  Full  protection  was  stipulated  for  their  lives, 
moveable  property,  and  the  honour  of  their  families  ;  it  was 
also  agreed  that  they  should  be  transported  in  Greek  vessels 
to  the  coast  of  Anatolia.  On  the  faith  of  these  assurances, 
a  part  of  the  inhabitants  got  into  the  castle  by  stratagem, 
seized  and  disarmed  the  governor  and  his  troops,  and  on  the 
3d  of  August  opened  the  gates  to  the  besiegers. 

Prompted  by  those  feelings  of  irritation  and  revenge 
which  have  been  so  often  betrayed  under  similar  circumstan- 
ces, and  impressed  with  a  notion  that  the  garrison  was  not 
entitled  to  the  benefits  of  a  capitulation  entered  into  by  the 
inhabitants  of  the  town,  the  Greek  soldiery,  strangers  to 
discipline,  fell  on  the  former,  of  whom  numbers  perished. 
To  the  credit  of  Cantaeuzene,  it  should  be  added,  that  he 
displayed  equal  prudence  and  firmness  on  this  occasion;  in- 
terposing his  authority  with  such  effect  as  to  save  a  number 
of  lives,  and  eventually  succeeded  in  putting  a  stop  to  the 
excesses,  though  not  without  considerable  risk  from  his  own 
soldiers,  who  conceived  they  were  only  retaliating  the  count- 
less murders  previously  committed  by  the  infidels  :  consider- 
ing the  relative  situation  of  the  parties  now  opposed,  and 
the  nature  of  the  war,  it  could  hardly  be  expected  that  the 
minor  articles  of  the  capitulation  were  very  scrupulously  ob- 
served. The  Turks  were,  however,  shipped  off  in  three 
Ipsariot  vessels,  and  landed  on  a  small  island  close  to  the 
Asiatic  coast,  whence  they  reached  the  continent.  Though 
the  Greeks  have  been  reproached  for  this  act,  they  can 
scarcely  be  blamed  for  not  entering  an  Ottoman  port,  well 
knowing  that  such  a  step  would  have  been  attended  with 
certain  death. 

Navarin,  which  also  surrendered  soon  after,  was  the  thea- 
tre of  another  tragedy,  to  which  none  but  wars  between 
slaves  and  their  task-masters  eVer  give  rise.  Well  fortified, 
and  possessing  one  of  the  finest  harbours  in  Europe,  this  city 
is  built  in  the  immediate  vicinity  of  the  ancient  Pylos  ;  it  was 
ably  defended  by  the  Turks,  Avho  made  several  vigorous  sor- 
ties, but  at  last,  every  kind  of  sustenance  being  exhausted, 
after  devouring  even  their  slippers,  they  were  forced  to  ca- 
pitulate. Ipsilanti  had  sent  one  of  the  best  and  most  distin- 
guished of  his  friends,  Tipaldo,  the  Cephalonian,  to  conduct 
the  siege.  Tipaldo  was  a  man  of  virtue  and  abilities,  who, 
after  practising  as  a  physician  in  Bessarabia  with  great  suc- 

16* 


178  HISTORY  OF  THE 

cess,  abandoned  the  rising  prospect  of  wealth  to  take  his 
part  in  the  national  war.  He  manifested  great  spirit  at  the 
head  of  some  Ionians,  in  the  various  actions  which  were 
fought  under  the  walls,  and  it  was  his  presence  that  chiefly 
induced  the  Turks  to  treat  about  a  surrender  ;  for  such: was 
their  obstinate  resolution,  that  they  had  placed  barrels  of 
gunpowder  under  their  houses,  with  the  intention  of  blowing- 
up  the  town,  when  a  longer  resistance  should  become  im- 
possible :  the  same  terms  were  granted  here  as  at  Malvasia. 
It  was  while  the  siege  of  both  these  places  had  been  carrying 
on,  that  the  news  of  the  Patriarch's  murder,  and  that  of  the 
Greek  clergy  at  Adrianople,  together  with  the  profanation  of 
the  Christian  churches  throughout  the  empire,  spread 
through  Greece ;  the  fury  of  the  troops,  worked  up  to  mad- 
ness, was  therefore  vented  on  the  garrison,  of  whom  a  con- 
siderable number  was  sacrificed.  Tipaldo  endeavoured  in 
vain  to  arrest  the  heart-rending  spectacle,  the  infuriated  sol- 
diery answering  his  exhortation  by  citing  some  act  of  per- 
sonal suffering  or  oppression,  and  directing  his  attention  to 
the  recent  massacres  of  the  capital  and  other  places.* 

These  disorders,  joined  to  the  opposition  he  experienced, 
in  other  respects,  roused  the  indignation  of  Ipsilanti,  who  de- 
termined to  withdraw  until  a  clearer  understanding  could  be 
established.     He  accordingly  issued  a  proclamation,  in  which 


*  Mr.  Green,  (Sketches.)  p.  57,  gives  a  different  colouring  to  this 
affair.  The  place,. says  he,  was  closely  invested  by  the  Greek  peas- 
antry, assisted  by  some  Ionians,  under  the  command  of  Count  Mercati. 
of  Zante  ;  all  supplies,  or  communication,  were  cut  off,  and  the  scanty 
stock  of  provisions  that  had  been  hastily  carried  into  the  fortress  soon 
began  to  fail.  The  water  was  also  turned  from  the  aqueducts,  and  none 
was  obtainable  within  the  walls.  Disease  made  dreadful  ravages,  and 
the  besieged,  seeing  no  chance  of  succour,  entered  into  a  negotiation 
with  the  Greeks,  when  a  capitulation  was  agreed  on,  stipulating  that 
the  Turks  should  be  transported  in  Greek  vessels  to  the  coast  of  Barba- 
ry.  The  Greek  Bishop  of  Modon  and  Arcadia,  who  commanded, ratified 
this  treaty  by  the  most  solemn  professions  sworn  on  the  cross ;  but  no 
sooner  was  the  fortress  taken  possession  of  than  he  advised  and  indeed 
insisted  on  all  the  Turks  being  put  to  death,  as  the  best  means  of  getting 
rid  of  them.  In  consequence  of  this  decision,  after  a  massacre  of  one 
day,  between  three  and  four  hundred  men,  women,  and  children,  were 
put  upon  the  small  island  in  the  middle  of  the  harbour,  opposite  the  town, 
there  stripped  naked  and  left  to  die  of  hunger  ;  their  remains  are  to  be 
seen  to  this  day. 

We  have  seen  no  author  who  confirms  this  horrid  account,  and  as  Mr. 
Green  does  not  pretend  that  he  saw  these  remains,  wa  hope  there  i* 
some  exaggerations  in  the  story. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  179 

lie  inveighed  bitterly  against  the  cruelties  and  indiscipline  of 
the  Peloponnesians,  and  giving  up  the  command,  proceeded 
to  Leondari.  The  Primates  and  Captains  being  however 
alarmed  at  this  step,  sent  a  deputation  to  the  place  of  his  re- 
treat, and  persuaded  him  to  resume  his  functions  as  general- 
issimo."* 


CHAPTER  XIV. 

Siege  of  Tripolizza. — Its  Situation  and  Fortifications. — 
Garrison  and  Inhabitants. — Inadequate  means  of  attack 
possessed  by  the  Greeks. — Arrival  of  Prince  Mavrocorda- 
to. — Mr.  Gordon  of  Cairness  joins  the  Christian  Camp. — 
Plans  of  Ipsilanti. — Conduct  of  the  Ephors. — Difficulties 
opposed  to  the  Regular  Siege. — Batteries  arc  established. 
— Abortive  attempt  at  Mining. — Privations  and  Suffer- 
ings of  the  Besieged. —  Views  of  the  Primates  and  Cap- 
tains.— Negotiations  icith  the  Albanian  Troops. — Action 
of  the  23rf  September. — Ipsilanti  marches  toicards  the 
Gulf  of  Lepanto. —  The  command  devolves  on  Mavromi- 
chaii. —  The  Conferences  are  continued. — A  parti/  of 
Greeks  enter  the  Town. —  The  Assault  becomes  general. — 
Catastrophe  which  followed. — Concluding  Remarks. 

1621  "  H°WEVER  essential,"  says  Mr.  Blaquiere,  "  the 

reduction  of  other  points  in  the  Peloponnesus  may 
have  been  to  the  patriots,  the  eyes  of  all  were  naturally  fixed 
on  the  fall  of  Tripolizza,  as  an  object  of  paramount  impor- 
tance :  the  forces  employed  at  Navarin  and  Malvasia  were, 
therefore,  immediately  ordered  to  co-operate  in  the  siege  of 
the  capital. 

"  Tripolizza,  a  town  of  modern  origin,  is  built  on  the 
southern  side  of  a  long  and  elevated  plain,  surrounded  by 
bleak  and  rugged  mountains,  almost  destitute  of  wood,  and 
lays  nearly  half  way  between  the  ancient  Arcadian  cities  of 
Mantanea  and  Tygea.  The  town  is  irregularly  constructed, 
mostly  of  stone,  with  narrow,  dirty,  and  crooked  streets,  hav- 
ing on  the  whole  a  very  mean  appearance.  With  respect  to 
the  fortifications,  they  consist  of  a  wall  of  masonry  nine  feet 
high,  six  feet  thick  at  the  bottom,  and  three  at  the  top ;  and 
which  is  furnished  with  a  double  row  of  ill  contrived  loop 

*  Blaquiere,  p.  120— 130, 


180  HISTORY  OF  THE 

holes :  at  about  two  thirds  of  its  height  from  the  ground, 
runs  a  narrow  and  inconvenient  banquette,  which  can  only 
be  ascended  by  flights  of  steps,  placed  at  unequal  distances 
for  this  purpose.  Instead  of  bastions  there  are  demi-towers 
at  different  points,  where  cannon  are  placed,  the  rest  of  the 
wall  being  only  defended  by  musketry.  A  citadel  has  been 
constructed  west  of  the  town,  and  on  a  somewhat  more  regu- 
lar plan,  with  casements,  whose  roofs  are  bomb-proof:  but, 
as  these  are  open  at  the  sides,  and  the  whole  interior  space 
is  extremely  small,  it  is  incapable  of  defence,  if  regularly  at- 
tacked. The  artillery,  composed  of  thirty  pieces  of  brass, 
and  partly  of  old  iron  guns,  many  of  them  honey-combed, 
was  mounted  on  loose  blocks  of  wood,  instead  of  carriages, 
and  but  very  indifferently  supplied  with  ammunition  or  shot. 
Besides  these  advantages,  another  rocky  eminence,  com- 
manding the  town  and  citadel,  within  little  more  than  two 
hundred  yards,  completely  screens  the  approaches  of  a  be- 
sieging army. 

"  The  population,  usually  consisting  of  about  fifteen  thou- 
sand persons,  was  now  much  augmented  by  the  influx  of 
Turks  from  various  quarters  of  the  Morea.  The  Bardou- 
niots,  a  wild  Mussulman  tribe  of  Laconia,  bordering  upon 
Maina,  and  r^sembiing  the  Mainetes  in  their  warlike  disposi- 
tion and  predatory  habits,  had  also  taken  shelter  at  Tripo- 
lizza.  All  these,  *with  the  Albanians  of  the  Kiayah,  forming 
a  garrison  of  about  8,00Q  men,  the  whole  number  of  persons 
collected  there,  could  not  probably  have  been  less  than 
20,000:  yet  did  they  allow  themselves  to  be  blockaded  by 
5,000  raw  and  ill-armed  Greeks,  encamped  without  artillery 
or  cavalry,  on  the  summits  of  Tricopha. 

"  So  long  as  the  Turkish  horses  were  fresh  and  fit  for  ser- 
vice, the  Christians  did  not  attempt  to  occupy  the  plain. 
But  the  Mussulmen  cavalry  was  gradually  ruined  for  want  of 
forage,  and  could  no  longer  appear  in  the  field  in  sufficient 
numbers.  As  the  ground  is  entirely  parched  up  in  autumn, 
and  destitute  of  a  single  blade  of  grass,  their  only  forage 
consisted  of  vine  leaves.  The  Greeks  were,  therefore,  ena- 
bled lo  render  the  blockade  closer,  by  posting  themselves  in 
the  hamlets  and  villages  round  the  town.  Frequent  skir- 
mishes now  took  place,  brought  on  by  the  attempts  of  the 
Turks  to  penetrate  into  the  vineyards.  On  one  occasion,  a 
large  body  of  them  having  made  a  sally,  and  marched  for 
some  distance  into  the  country,  fell  into  an  ambuscade  on  its 
return,  and  was  defeated  by  Colocotroni  with  the  loss  of  more 
than  100  men,  in  killed  alone ;    this  check  rendered  the 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  181 

iiiiidels  more  cautious.  Provisions  soon  began  to  be  scarce, 
and  they  were  greatly  distressed  for  water,  the  Greeks  hav- 
ing cut  the  pipes  that  conducted  it  into  the  town. 

Ipsilanti  was,  however,  unwilling  to  wait  for  the  slow  ope- 
rations of  famine,  and  therefore  felt  very  desirous  of  com- 
mencing a  regular  siege.  To  carry  this  purpose  into  effect 
two  things  were  required  ;  ordnance  fit  to  batter  the  walls, 
and  men  who  had  some  acquaintance,  at  least,  with  the  rudi- 
ments of  gunnery  and  engineering.  After  the  capture  of  Mal- 
vasia  and  Navarin,  some  pieces  of  cannon  and  mortars  were 
transported  from  these  places  ;  their  management  was  en- 
trusted to  an  Italian  adventurer,  who  gave  himself  out  for  a 
skilful  master  of  that  art ;  but  having  burst  a  mortar  in  his 
very  first  essay,  he  was  dismissed  with  disgrace. 

"  Having  communicated  with  Marco  Bozzaris,  and  other 
chiefs  of  Epirus,  as  well  as  appropriating  a  part  of  his  sup- 
plies to  the  wants  of  Missolonghi,  Prince  Mavrocordato 
reached  the  camp  before  Tripolizza  towards  the  end  of  Au- 
gust, bringing  in  his  suite  some  French  and  Italian  officers, 
who  had  accompanied  him  from  Marseilles.  The  arrival  of 
Mr.  Gordon  of  Cairness,  in  the  last  days  of  September,  also 
gave  a  most  salutary  impulse  to  the  progress  of  the  siege. 
This  gentleman,  having  travelled  in  the  east  of  Europe,  was 
intimately  acquainted  with  the  system  of  tyranny  under 
which  the  Christian  communities  had  so  long  groaned.  He 
had  also  been  distinguished  for  his  military  talents  during  the 
late  war  ;  and  though  in  the  enjoyment  of  all  the  advantages 
which  fortune  could  bestow,  every  other  consideration  gave 
way  to  his  sympathy  for  the  struggling  people  of  Greece. 
Hastening  to  Marseilles  soon  after  the  rising  took  place  in 
the  Peloponnesus,  he  loaded  a  vessel  with  cannon,  arms,  and 
ammunition,  and  having  selected  a  few  followers  whose  sup- 
port could  be  relied  on,  proceeded  to  Hydra,  and  thence  to 
Tripolizza.  Brave,  humane,  generous,  and  unassuming,  the 
arrival  of  such  an  auxiliary  could  not  fail  to  cheer  the 
Greeks  ;  and  it  is  but  justice  to  say,  that  the)'  have  never 
ceased  to  appreciate  the  importance  of  services,  rendered 
doubly  valuable  at  a  time  when  their  cause  seemed  to  be  to- 
tally abandoned  by  the  whole  Christian  world. 

"  Thus  strengthened,  councils  of  war  were  held,  and  pre- 
parations made  for  pushing  the  siege,  with  all  possible  vigour. 
Ipsilanti  had  never  given  up  his  intention  of  forming  regular 
troops,  and  having  now  so  many  men  at  his  disposal,  he  en- 
deavoured to  carry  this  design  into  execution.     A  brave 


182  HISTORY  OF  THE 

French  officer,  named  Balisto,  who  had  accompanied  the 
Prince  from  Trieste,  was  already  employed  at  Calamata,  in 
training  a  battalion  who  were  clothed  in  black,  the  colour  of 
the  Hetarists,  and  armed  with  muskets  and  bayonets.  Some 
of  the  officers  were  European,  and  the  men  mostly  from  the 
islands  on  the  coast  of  Asia  Minor.  Amongst  them  were 
many  unfortunate  Cydonians,  whose  flourishing  city  had 
been  given  up  to  the  flames,  and  destroyed  during  the  recent 
persecutions  in  that  quarter.  Mr.  Gordon,  who  had  been 
received  with  open  arms  by  the  chiefs  as  well  as  the  Prince, 
and  immediately  placed  at  the  head  of  the  general  staff,  un- 
dertook the  training  of  some  companies  in  the  camp  of  Tri- 
copha.  Recruits  presented  themselves  with  alacrity,  allured 
by  the  hope  of  obtaining  a  good  musket  and  better  accoutre- 
ments :  nearly  all  of  them  showed  great  quickness  in  learn- 
ing their  evolutions.  But  the  jealousy  of  the  Ephors  defeat- 
ed this  scheme,  for  they  dissolved  the  corps  by  refusing  to 
furnish  provisions,  and  thereby  inducing  the  soldiers  to  de- 
sert. They  would  have  willingly  done  the  same  at  Calama- 
ta, obliging  Ipsilanti  not  only  to  disburse  the  pay  of  the  bat- 
talion out  of  his  own  resources,  but  even  to  find  its  rations  at 
an  exorbitant  price  :  thus  opposed,  it  was  with  some  diffi- 
culty he  could  obtain  forage  for  the  few  horses  on  which  his 
staff  was  mounted,  while  his  stable  was  very  scantily  sup- 
plied. All  these  obstacles  were  borne  with  great  patience  by 
the  Prince,  who  seemed  only  to  think  of  the  interests  at 
stake,  not  doubting  but  that  the  former  would  be  removed  by 
time. 

"  There  were  at  this  period  about  two  thousand  men  in 
different  parts  of  Greece,  who  had  belonged  to  the  regiments 
formed  in  the  Ionian  Islands  by  General  Church,*  an  officer 
whose  name  is  very  popular  among  the  military  chiefs.  Yet, 
not  one  of  these  would  aid  in  the  establishment  of  regular 
troops,  preferring  their  own  bands  where  there  was  no  re- 
straint of  discipline.  With  regard  to  those  Greeks  who  had 
served  in  Russia  and  France,  the  case  was  altogether  differ- 
ent. Being,  in  general,  meritorious  officers  who  came  to 
their  country's  aid  in  its  hour  of  need,  they  highly  favoured 
the  project.     But  what  could  be  effected  by  the  zeal  of  a  few 

*  This  officer  is  still  in  the  service  of  Naples,  and  is  the  same  who 
was  forced  to  fly  from  popular  vengeance  in  Sicily,  when  the  people  of 
that  unhappy  and  oppressed  Island  sought  to  shake  off  the  Neapolitan 
yoke  in  1821. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  183 

isolated  individuals,  who  were  almost  looked  upon  as  fo- 
reigners ? 

"  Though  the  resolution  to  commence  the  siege  in  regular 
form  had  been  made  early  in  September,  every  day  some 
new  difficulties  arose.  The  artillery  consisted  of  one  twenty- 
four  pounder  in  the  worst  possible  state  of  repair,  one 
eighteen  and  two  sixteen  pounders ;  one  twelve  and  ten 
inch  mortar,  all  of  iron,  and  three  or  four  light  brass  field 
pieces,  two  and  four  pounders.  There  were  not  above  fifty 
bullets  for  the  heavy  pieces,  and  the  bombs  which  had  been 
left  at  Malvasia,  by  the  Venetians,  were  almost  choked  up 
with  dirt ;  the  powder  was  of  the  most  indifferent  descrip- 
tion, and  yet  it  was  necessary  to  put  in  very  weak  charges, 
to  prevent  the  old  and  honey-combed  pieces  from  bursting. 
Not  a  gabion  or  fascine  could  be  procured,  although  there 
was  an  abundance  of  materials  in  the  neighbourhood,  and 
some  thousand  idlers  in  the  camp.  The  only  substitute  was 
a  small  quantity  of  bags,  generally  so  rotten  that  many  of 
them  burst  in  the  attempt  to  fill  them  with  earth.  Whether 
it  arose  from  obstinacy  or  ignorance,  the  Greeks,  who  hazard- 
ed every  thing  on  the  events  of  the  war,  and  were  content 
to  remain  twelve  hours  together  behind  a  stone,  watching  for 
an  opportunity  to  fire  at  a  Turkish  sentinel,  refused  to 
touch  a  shovel  or  a  pick  axe  :  and  it  was  only  occasionally, 
and  by  great  perseverance  of  the  chiefs,  that  a  few  labourers 
could  be  collected  ;  as,  without  a  military  chest,  every  idea 
of  paying  was  out  of  the  question.  A  small  corps  of  artille- 
rymen, composed  of  Ionians,  Dalmatians,  and  Italians,  form- 
ed a  most  agreeable  contrast  to  this  unaccountable  apathy  : 
almost  destitute  of  food  or  clothing,  they  served  throughout 
with  unwearied  courage  and  perseverance,  never  quitting 
their  guns  for  a  moment. 

"  Amidst  so  many  difficulties  the  progress  of  the  siege 
could  not  be  very  rapid ;  but  the  Greeks,  who  seemed  to 
expect  that  the  sound  of  cannon  was  to  produce  the  same 
effect  which  the  trumpets  of  Joshua  did  at  Jericho,  murmur- 
ed incessently  against  the  foreign  officers,  whom  they  taxed 
with  want  of  skill,  for  not  reducing  the  place  to  dust.  Some 
advances  were,  however,  made  before  the  end  of  September. 
The  height  commanding  the  citadel  was  entrenched,  and  a 
battery  established  on  it  of  two  heavy  guns,  intended  to  ef- 
fect a  breach  in  the  town  wall.  But  after  expending  the 
stock  of  shot,  it  was  found  that  no  more  than  the  upper  part 
was   beaten  down ;    the   lower  and   more   solid   portions 


184  HISTORY  OF  THE 

having  received  no  detriment.  To  the  right  of  the  entrench- 
ment were  the  field  pieces,  which  could  always,  by  few  dis- 
charges of  grape,  clear  the  opposite  ramparts.  On  the  emi- 
nence in  the  rear,  and  within  musket-shot  of  the  town,  the 
two  mortars  were  placed  in  battery,  and  sometimes  threw 
shells  and  other  incendiary  balls  into  the  town,  without  how- 
ever any  other  result,  than  damaging  a  few  houses,  and 
frightening  the  women  and  children.  On  the  other  side,  the 
supineness  of  the  infidels  was  really  astonishing.  There  is 
not  a  doubt  but  that  by  a  brisk  cannonade  of  two  hours,  they 
might  at  any  time  have  ruined  the  Greek  batteries  and  dis- 
mounted the  guns  ;  yet  they  never  appeared  to  think  of  such 
an  expedient,  merely  firing  a  few  shots  in  the  morning  from 
cannon  which  had  been  charged  the  night  before  :  for  unless 
they  apprehended  an  assault,  they  never  ventured  to  load 
during  the  day  time,  lest  they  should  be  exposed  to  the  Greek 
marksmen  ;  and  though  their  fire  of  musketry  never  ceased 
altogether,  it  was  always  weak  and  ill  sustained. 

"  In  the  Greek  camp,  various  projects  were  agitated  for 
the  more  speedy  reduction  of  the  city.  Ipsilanti  proposed 
to  storm,  and  was  seconded  by  the  eager  impatience  of  the 
troops,  who  demanded  to  be  led  to  the  assault ;  but  the  pri- 
mates and  captains,  anxious  to  save  the  vast  treasures  it  was 
supposed  to  contain,  from  general  pillage,  evaded  this  pro- 
posal, and  never  furnished  the  scaling  ladders  ordered  by  the 
Prince.  These  latter  determined  to  proceed  by  mining, 
and  accordingly  they  summoned  the  inhabitants  of  a.  neigh- 
bouring village,  who  were  miners  by  profession,  to  the  camp 
for  that  purpose.  The  proposed  attempt  was,  however,  to- 
tally disapproved  by  the  foreign  officers  ;  first,  because  the 
ground  presented  nothing  but  one  solid  rock ;  and  secondly, 
because  if  ever  completed,  there  was  not  powder  enough  to 
charge  the  mine.  The  Greeks  began,  however,  close  to  the 
foot  of  the  wall,  and  worked  with  great  spirit  for  two  days, 
when  the  great  impediment  in  the  soil  forced  them  to  desist ; 
meanwhile  the  distress  of  the  besieged  was  extreme ;  the 
little  provision  that  remained  consisted  principally  of  biscuit ; 
horseflesh  was  appropriated  to  men  of  the  highest  rank,  and 
the  Kiayah's  troops  ;  while  crowds  of  the  poorer  classes 
were  seen  wandering  about  the  streets,  gnawing  the  half 
burnt  bones  of  dead  animals.  Many  of  these  unhappy 
wretches,  looking  more  like  phantoms  than  human  beings, 
came  out  with  their  families,  and  surrendered  themselves, 
but  were  of  course  sent  back  to  the  town :  some  endeavour- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  185 

ed  to  escape  to  the  mountains,  but  they  were  intercepted  and 
slain.  An  epidemic  disease,  the  consequence  of  famine,  and 
of  the  want  of  good  water,  also  made  great  ravages  among 
those  who  but  a  short  time  before  lorded  it  over  their  Chris- 
tian vassals  with  no  less  pride  than  haughtiness.  To  height- 
en the  natural  horrors  of  such  a  scene,  their  chiefs  did  not 
agree  among  themselves ;  the  Kiayah  and  Commandant  be- 
ing at  daggers  drawn  with  Khamil  Bey,  Governor  of  Co- 
rinth, the  richest  Turk  of  the  Morea,  or  perhaps  in  the  em- 
pire. The  result  of  all  this  was,  that  the  garrison  became 
quite  dispirited,  and  the  Albanians  had  even  become  muti- 
nous. Under  these  circumstances,  the  Ottomans  began  to 
make  some  indirect  overtures  for  a  capitulation,  which  were 
readily  listened  to  by  the  Peloponnesian  leaders,  who  promi- 
sed to  grant  their  lives,  and  the  means  of  transport  to  Asia  or 
Egypt.  The  Turks,  however,  always  disposed  to  procrasti- 
nate, spun  out  the  negotiation ;  for  being  aware  that  their 
fleet  was  on  the  coast,  they  still  cherished  some  hopes  of  re- 
lief;  at  the  same  time  the  Albanians,  objects  of  less  animo- 
sity to  the  Greeks,  and  therefore  less  fearful  of  their  ven- 
geance, began  to  stipulate  for  themselves,  and  promised  to 
abandon  the  Turkish  cause,  could  they  be  assured  that  their 
old  master  Ali  Pacha  was  still  in  existence.  To  convince 
them  of  this  fact,  a  Greek,  whose  name  they  mentioned,  and 
in  whose  word  they  reposed  confidence,  was  sent  for  express 
from  Albania,  to  hold  a  conference  with  them. 

"  On  the  23d  of  September,  and  while  these  various  nego- 
tiations were  going  on,  an  accidental  circumstance  brought 
on  a  sharp  action,  in  which  the  garrison  gave  some  last  proofs 
of  expiring  vigour.  Ipsilanti  had  in  vain  given  strict  orders 
to  prevent  the  practice  that  prevailed  of  the  two  parties 
meeting  near  the  walls,  to  converse  and  even  trade  toge- 
ther. On  the  day  in  question,  a  species  of  fair  was  establish- 
ed before  the  spot  on  which  the  Mainotes  were  posted ; — 
when  their  old  neighbours,  the  Bardouniots,  came  out  to  ex- 
change their  silver  mounted  pistols  for  strings  of  dried  figs, 
Kyriacouli  hastened  to  the  place,  and  fired  his  musket  in  the 
direction  of  the  Turks  as  a  warning  for  them  to  withdraw  ; 
but  the  latter,  not  understanding  the  signal,  and  suspecting 
treachery,  snatched  up  their  arms,  fell  upon  the  Greeks, 
and  drove  them  back.  On  perceiving  this  success,  a  large 
body  of  the  Mussulmen  issued  forth  to  support  their  coun- 
trymen, and  the  whole  Greek  army  advanced  to  take  part 
ih  the  attion.    The  fire  of  musketry  which  followed  was 

17 


186  HISTORY  OF  THE 

very  heavy  for  above  two  hours,  while  the  cannon  from  the 
Christian  batteries  played  furiously  on  the  town,  the  engage- 
ment being  fought  on  the  other  side.  The  parties  alternate- 
ly gained  and  lost  ground,  until  Colocotroni,  having  march- 
ed quite  round  the  walls,  fell  in  the  rear  of  the  Turks,  and  at 
the  same  moment  a  French  officer,  M.  de  la  Villasse,  char- 
ged them  in  front,  sword  in  hand,  at  the  head  of  about  eighty 
Ionians,  when  they  were  routed  and  driven  back  with  great 
loss.  The  Greeks  had  also  some  men  killed  and  wounded 
in  this  affair. 
TR21  "  ^^e  arriva*  °f  some  disagreeable  intelligence  from 
'  Patras,  on  the  25th  of  September,  having  obliged 
Ipsilanti  to  march  northward  at  the  head  of  a  large  detach- 
ment, the  command  of  the  troops  at  Tricopha  devolved  on 
the  Bey  of  Maina  ;  for  Mavrocordato  and  Cantacuzene  had 
proceeded  to  Missolonghi  a  fortnight  before,  to  assume  the 
Government  of  Western  Greece.  The  force  now  collected, 
amounted  to  seven  thousand  men,  and  re-inforcements  were 
coming  in  daily,  allured  as  much  by  the  hopes  of  obtaining 
arms,  as  an  anxiety  to  see  their  enemies  driven  from  a  place 
which  has  been  a  source  of  so  many  calamities  to  Greece  : 
it  was  indeed  now  evident,  that  its  fall  could  not  be  far  dis- 
tant. Frequent  conferences  were  held,  the  Kaiyah  Bey 
treated  with  an  officer  of  the  Prince's  staff  left  there  on  pur- 
pose, the  Bardouniots  with  the  Bey  of  Maina,  and  the  Alba- 
nians with  Colocotroni.  These  last  soon  came  to  an  under- 
standing :  it  was  agreed  that  they  should  return  to  the  ser- 
vice of  Ali  Pacha,  and  that  they  should  even  be  paid  their 
arrears  from  the  spoils  of  the  city  ;  but  there  was  probably 
no  serious  intention  of  executing  the  second  article.  On  the 
1st  of  October,  two  thousand  five  hundred  Bardouniots 
came  out  and  surrendered  to  the  Mainotes,  taking  up  their 
quarters  in  the  Greek  camp,  and  the  Turkish  chiefs  now  be- 
gan to  treat  in  good  earnest.  During  the  negotiations,  hos- 
tilities did  not  altogether  cease  :  the  mortars  occasionally 
played  on  the  town,  and  were  served  with  precision  ;  but  it 
was  impossible  to  keep  up  the  bombardment  with  spirit,  be- 
cause their  beds,  made  of  unseasoned  wood,  were  continual- 
ly giving  way.  On  Friday,  the  5th  of  October,  a  capitulation 
is  said  to  have  been  verbally  agreed  upon,  but  scarcely  was 
it  concluded,  when  a  fortuitous  circumstance  rendered  the 
compact  of  no  avail,  and  brought  on  a  terrible  catastrophe 
A  few  Greek  soldiers  having  approached  the  gate  of  Argosy 
entered  into  conversation  with  the  Turkish  sentinels,  ant/ 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  187 

began  as  usual  to  barter  fruit.  The  Turks  were  imprudent 
enough  to  assist  them  in  mounting  the  wall,  with  a  large  bas- 
ket of  grapes,  in  exchange  for  which  they  gave  their 
arms ;  but  no  sooner  had  the  Greeks  gained  the  summit, 
than  they  hurled  down  the  unguarded  Mahometans ;  opened 
the  gate,  the  only  one  that  was  not  walled  up,  to  their  com- 
rades, and  displayed  the  standard  of  the  Cross  above  it. 
When  this  emblem  was  perceived  from  the  camp,  it  acted 
like  an  electric  shock  ;  the  whole  Christian  army  instantly 
rushed  from  ail  sides  to  the  assault,  and  the  disorder  once 
began  could  not  be  stopped,  for  the  Turks  immediately  open- 
ed a  brisk  tire  of  cannon  and  small  arms  upon  them  from  the 
citadel  and  ramparts.  The  principal  Greek  officers,  who 
certainly  could  net  have  restrained  their  men,  were  drawn 
away  by  the  torrent  :  Colocotroni  was  one  of  the  last  to  hear 
what  was  passing,  and  as  he  would  not  deign  to  follow  the 
steps  of  another  Captain,  he  determined  to  force  a  passage 
for  himself,  so  that  his  troops  suffered  severely.  After  the 
gates  were  broken  down  and  the  walls  scaled,  a  furious  strug- 
gle was  maintained  in  the  streets  and  houses  ;  but  the  Pelo- 
ponnesians,  flushed  with  victory,  and  spurred  on  by  ven- 
geance, were  irresistible,  and  before  sunset  all  opposition 
was  quelled  in  the  blood  of  the  unfortunate  Moslems.  The 
citadel,  where  a  large  body  of  Turks  had  taken  refuge,  hav- 
ing held  out  till  the  following  evening,  surrendered  at  discre- 
tion. 

Filled  as  the  history  of  Europe  is,  with  the  recital  of  cities 
taken  by  storm,  and  the  scenes  which  have  followed,  it  were 
a  task  as  needless  as  it  would  be  painful  to  retrace  those 
which  occurred  at  Tripolizza  between  the  evening  of  the  5th 
and  the  morning  of  the  7th  of  Occober,  1821.  The  most  su- 
perficial observer  does  not  require  to  be  told  that  cities  thus 
taken,  have,  in  civilized,  as  among  the  most  savage  nations, 
seldom  failed  to  bring  all  the  bad  passions  of  our  nature  into 
frightful  activity.  On  this  occasion,  that  animosity  which 
generally  inflames  the  victorious  assailant,  was  aggravated 
by  the  accumulated  oppressions  of  centuries,  and  by  recent 
atrocities  on  the  part  of  the  infidels  of  so  dreadful  a  cast, 
that  they  seemed  to  cry  aloud  for  retribution  and  vengeance. 
The  Arcadian  peasants,  naturally  tierce  and  ungovernable, 
and  who  had  long  suffered  every  species  of  outrage  and  in- 
dignity from  the  haughty  Mahometans  of  Tripolizza,  show- 
ed themselves  both  cruel  and  relentless  towards  their  fallen 
oppressors.    The  Mainotes,  less  greedy  of  blood  than  oi 

4 


188  HISTORY  OF  THE 

spoil,  secured  the  largest  and  most  valuable  share  of  booty  ; 
about  six  thousand  Turks  are  said  to  have  perished,  and  some 
thousands  were  made  prisoners,  while  numbers  escaped  to 
the  mountains.  The  loss  of  the  Greeks  was  never  very 
exactly  known,  but  estimated  at  five  hundred  killed  and 
wounded.*  One  of  the  many  reports  circulated  in  Europe, 
and  which  a  French  author  who  pretends  to  write  a  history 
of  the  Greek  Revolution,  has  gravely  repeated,  stated  that 
several  hundred  Greeks  lost  their  lives  in  fighting  with  each 
other  for  the  spoil ;  but  this,  like  too  many  other  charges,  is 
utterly  devoid  of  foundation.  The  Albanians,  to  the  num- 
ber of  fifteen  hundred,  marched  out  of  the  town,  as  the  Greeks 
entered,  without  the  least  hostility  passing  between  them. 
It  has  been  said  that  the  latter  not  only  received  a  sum  of 
money,  which  was  afterwards  taken  from  them,  but  that  they 
were  massacred  ;  nothing  can  be  further  from  the  truth  :— 
the  fact  is,  they  marched  through  the  Morea  in  a  peaceable 
and  orderly  manner,  were  regularly  supplied  with  provisions, 
and  escorted  by  five  hundred  of  Colocotroni's  troops  to  Vos~ 
tizza,  whence  they  crossed  over  to  Roumelia ;  but  finding 
themselves  on  the  other  side,  and  out  of  danger,  the  remain- 
der of  their  march  was  marked  with  the  greatest  excesses. 
"  With  respect  to  the  catastrophe  of  Tripolizza  :  it  is  well 
known  how  acrimoniously  the  conduct  of  the  Greeks  on  this 
occasion  was  brought  forward  at  the  time,  and  evidently 
with  a  view  of  throwing  general  discredit  on  the  nation  as 
well  as  the  sacred  cause  in  which  it  was  struggling.  Were 
it  possible  to  measure  the  cruelties  committed  there  by  any 
ordinary  standard,  doubtless  much  of  what  has  been  said, 
would  be  considered  as  admissible  by  those  who,  without  at- 
tempting to  apologize  for  the  excesses  of  an  infuriated  sol- 
diery, yet  feel  anxious  that  all  the  circumstances  of  the  case 
should  be  laid  before  the  European  public.  That  those,  who 
so  readily  pronounced  judgment  in  the  first  instance,  were 
totally  incompetent  to  decide  between  the  Greeks  and  their 
oppressors,  cannot  be  fairly  denied,  now  that  prejudice  and 
passion  have  given  way  to  fact  and  sober  reasoning.  If  it 
could  be  shown  that  the  infidels  had  preserved  the  life  of  a 
single  armed  Greek  who  fell  into  their  hands,  from  the  break- 


*  Mr.  Green  says,  "  It  is  asserted  that  the  Greeks  did  not  lose  more 
than  two  hundred  men  in  the  assault  Their  total  force  collected  be 
fore  the  place  might  amount  to  12,000  men  j  that  of  the  Turks  within 
the  walls,  I  am  covinced,  never  exceeded  9,000  men." — Green's  Sketches^ 
p.  72. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  189 

ing  out  of  the  contest  till  the  storming  of  Tripolizza,  then, 
indeed,  might  there  be  something  like  a  plausible  pretext  for 
a  great  deal  of  what  has  been  said.  But  surely,  every  fact 
that  has  transpired,  tends  to  prove,  that  the  former  consider- 
ed it  as  a  war  of  extermination  from  the  very  commence- 
ment, and  that  the  whole  of  their  conduct  was  influenced  by 
this  consideration. 

"  It  has  been  shown  under  what  circumstances  the  insur- 
rection commenced  throughout  Greece,  and  more  especially 
in  the  Morea,  where  it  was  not  in  the  first  instance  so  much 
a  rising  in  favour  of  freedom  as  a  struggle  for  existence. 
But  the  motives  of  revenge  were  infinitely  stronger  at  Tri- 
polizza than  in  any  other  part  of  Greece  :  it  has  been  the 
seat  of  government,  and  as  such,  the  scene  of  innumerable 
atrocities ;  not  to  mention  a  systematic  plan  of  violence  and 
spoliation,  unequalled  throughout  the  Ottoman  dominions. 
Indeed,  the  Turks  of  this  place  had  always  been  proverbial 
for  their  oppressions  and  irascible  hatred  to  Christianity. 
The  inhabiatnts  of  the  surrounding  villages  were  the  first  to 
flock  down  and  co-operate  in  the  siege.  The  exactions  to 
which  these  unfortunate  people  and  their  ancestors  had  been 
subjected,  could  only  be  credited  by  those  who  have  been 
long  conversant  with  the  system  of  rule  towards  Christians, 
in  Mahometan  countries.  Can  it  be  for  one  moment  a  matter 
of  surprise,  therefore,  that  persons  that  had  been  thus  treat- 
c  1,  were  foremost  in  rushing  into  the  city  when  they  saw  the 
standard  of  Christ  displayed  on  the  walls ;  or  that  when 
once  before  the  authors  of  their  sufferings,  the  rude  and 
uncultivated  Greek  peasant  did  what  has  been  done  in  a 
thousand  instances  by  the  best  disciplined  troops  of  Eu- 
rope ?"* 


*  Pursuant  to  the  usual  mode  of  governing  in  the  dominions  of  the 
Sultan,  as  well  as  among  the  Barbary  pirates,  who  are  still  permitted 
to  pollute  the  beautiful  regions  of  Northern  Africa,  it  was  custo- 
mary to  send  large  bodies  of  troops  forth  in  various  directions  and  at 
stated  periods,  to  collect  the  tribute  and  capitation  tax  of  the  Mo- 
rea. It  would  be  scarcely  possible  to  name  any  excess  that  was  not 
committed  during  these  predatory  expeditions,  which  might  in  all 
respects  be  assimilated  to  those  of  an  open  enemy  ;  for  the  Turks 
on  reaching  a  Greek  village,  would  at  once  take  possession  of 
the  houses,  forcing  the  ill-fated  inmates  to  supply  whatever  they 
I  possessed  without  the  smallest  compensation  : — many  were  the  fa- 
!  thers,  who  were  drawn  to  Tripolizza  for  no  other  motive  than  to  be 
avenged  for  the  nameless  robberies  and  violations  which  had  been 

17* 


190  HISTORY  OF  THE 

"  Leaving,  however,  the    multifarious  motives  to  ven- 
geance on  the  part  of  the  people  untouched,  what  was  the 


perpetrated  in  the  course  of  these  journeys.  Also  a  great  number  of 
the  Greek  women,  who  had  experienced  injuries  that  admit  of  no 
compensation  short  of  personal  vengeance.  The  story  of  one  of 
these  poor  creatures  may  serve  as  a  specimen :  she  had  inhabited  a 
neighbouring  village,  and  lived  in  a  state  of  comparative  happiness 
with  her  husband,  an  honest  and  industrious  peasant.  Having  in 
the  course  of  her  visits  to  the  market  of  Tripolizza,  excited  the  cu- 
pidity of  a  Turkish  soldier,  he  left  nothing  untried  to  induce  her 
compliance  with  his  wishes.  Being,  however,  foiled  in  his  efforts, 
the  infidel  determined  to  gratify  the  predominant  passion  of  Mussul- 
men  revenge.  Having  in  pursuance  of  this  design,  waylaid  and 
murdered  the  husband,  he  followed  up  the  horrible  act,  by  placing 
the  mangled  head  in  such  a  situation,  that  it  was  the  first  object 
seen  by  his  distracted  wife  on  the  following  day.  It  was  to  demand 
justice  against  the  perpetrator  of  this  act,  that  the  poor  wretch  pre- 
sented herself  at  the  head-quarters  of  Colocotroni,  a  few  days  after  the 
assault. 

The  palace  of  the  Bey  at  Tripolizza,  was  one  of  those  which  af- 
forded the  greatest  facility  for  defence  to  the  Turks.  When  the  as- 
sault commenced,  seven  hundred  cf  the  infidels  shut  themselves  up 
here,  and  continued  to  fire  on  the  Greeks  from  the  windows,  until 
the  latter  were  obliged  to  set  it  on  fire  to  dislodge  their  opponents : 
— such  was  the  honor  in  which  this  edifice  was  held,  that  the  Greek 
peasantry  rased  the  walls  to  the  ground,  rather  than  suffer  the  sight 
to  offend  their  eyes,  and  remind  them  of  those  terrific  scenes  of  which 
it  had  been  the  theatre. 

While  walking  over  the  immense  mass  of  ruins  exhibited  by  this 
once  stately  pile,  with  my  inestimable  friend  Alexis  Lucopulo,  one 
evening  last  summer,  he  suddenly  stopped  on  a  small  platform  of 
flags,  opposite  to  that  portion  of  the  palace,  where  there  had  once 
been  a  balcony,  from  which  the  bey  used  to  review  the  troops  and 
witness  executions.  "  It  was  here,"  said  my  friend,  "  that  the  vir- 
tuous Lundo,  primate  of  Vostizza,  lost  his  head  in  the  autumn  of 
1813  ;  at  once  the  most  cruel  and  unprovoked  murder  ever  com- 
mitted by  our  Moslem  tyrants."  On  further  inquiry,  I  found  that 
Lundo  had  been  a  man  of  very  great  talents,  and  universally  be^ 
loved,  not  only  by  his  own  countrymen,  but  also  very  popular  among 
the  infidels.  He  had  rendered  highly  important  services  to  the 
Porte ;  and  was  the  confidential  friend  of  Cheli  bey,  the  person  who 
ordered  his  assassination.  Suspected  of  some  partiality  for  his 
countrymen,  in  a  question  which  arose  between  the  inhabitants  of 
a  small  town  near  Tripolizza,  and  the  bey,  Lundo  was  one  day  in- 
vited to  take  coffee  with  him  at  the  palace,  where  he  was  consulted 
upon  all  occasions  that  advice  was  wanting.  Mounting  his  horse — 
for  he  was  allowed  to  ride  one — the  unsuspecting  primate  proceed- 
ed to  obey  the  summons,  and  on  reaching  the  platform,  was  dragged 
from  the  saddle,  when  the  usual  sign  of  the  hand  being  given  by 
Cheli,  who  sat  smoking  his  pipe  in  the  balcony,  the  head  of  Lund© 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  191 

situation  of  the  soldiery  ?  The  defence  of  the  Turks  was  at 
intervals  extremely  obstinate:  they  made  several  desperate 
sorties,  in  which  number?  of  the  Greeks  fell ;  a  capitulation 
had  been  repeatedly  offered,  and  as  often  refused,  until  all 
hope  of  promised  and  expected  relief  was  vain.  As,  during 
the  attack  at  Malvasia,  not  a  day  passed  without  the  recital 
of  some  new  horrors  committed  by  the  infidels  ;  and  it  was 
only  a  short  time  before  the  assault,  that  the  Capita n  Pacha's 
fleet  had  entered  the  gulf  of  Lenanto,  landed  troops  at 
Vostizza,  Galaxidi  and  other  points,  to  which  they  set  fire, 
massacreing  all  the  inhabitants  who  fell  in  their  way.* 

"  When  the  great  privations  to  which  both  the  peasantry 
and  soldiers  employed  before  Tripolizza,  are  considered ; 
unarmed!  and  exposed  on  the  pinnacles  of  the  mountains, 
where  storms  are  frequent,  without  clothing  or  shelter  of  any 
kind,  and  not  unfrequently  deprived  of  food  for  whole  days 
together,  the  feelings  of  irritation  arising  from  such  suffer- 
ings deserve  the  most  serious  attention.  But  it  has  been 
asked  by  the  Greek  chiefs,  who  most*  lament  the  excesses 
committed  on  this  occasion,  what  would  have  been  the  cer- 
tain consequences  of  a  capitulation.  What  means  did  they 
possess,  either  to  guard  the  Turks  as  prisoners,  or  send  them 
out  of  the  country  1  A  scarcity,  bordering  on  famine,  had  al- 
ready overspread  the  land ;  Patras,  Corinth,  Modon,  Co- 
ron,  and  Napoli  di  Romania  were  still  in  the  hands  of  the  en- 
was  instantly  severed  from  his  body,  put  into  a  sack,  and  forwarded  to 
Constantinople. 

The  death  of  this  illustrious  victim  still  continues  to  be  most  deep- 
ly lamented  throughout  the  Morea ;  his  two  sons,  one  of  whom  is  a 
military  leader  of  the  greatest  eminence,  and  another,  a  member  of  the 
legislative  body,  are  among  the  most  popular  citizens  of  the  confedera- 
tion. 

*  No  conduct  on  the  part  of  the  Turkish  soldiery  can  ever  excuse 
the  Greeks  for  having  given  up  to  indiscriminate  slaughter  the  inno- 
cent with  the  guilty.  But  a  fact  mentioned  by  Mr.  Green  must  have 
greatly  heightened  the  indignation  of  the  Greeks,  and  stimulated  them 
to  revenge  on  this  occasion.  "  It  is  reported,  and  I  believe  with  truth," 
says  he,  "  that  before  the  city  was  taken,  the  Turks  put  to  death  two 
Greek  archbishops,  and  several  other  persons,  who  had  been  detained 
as  hostages,  on  the  breaking  out  of  the  rebellion."  Now  Mr.  G.  is  always 
Careful  never  to  accuse  the  Turks  of  any  crime  of  which  they  are  not 
guiltv- 

j  Few  of  the  peasants  who  collected  under  the  walls  of  Tripolizza, 
had  any  other  arms  than  bludgeons  or  old  ataghans.  Nor  would  it  have 
been  easy  to  remedy  this  want,  were  it  not  for  the  success  which  at- 
tended their  attacks  on  those  who  composed  the  sorties  from  the  town. 


192  HISTORY  OF  THE 

emy :  to  crown  all,  a  very  formidable  Turkish  fleet  was  at 
sea,  while  a  large  squadron  of  Algerines  were  cruising  among 
the  islands  of  the  Archipelago.  In  forming  an  opinion  of 
this  event,  it  should  be  recollected,  that  besides  the  difficul- 
ties which  opposed  every  effort  to  establish  discipline,  there 
was  no  government  formed ;  and  that  the  Greek  people  were 
to  all  intents  and  purposes  reduced  to  that  situation  in 
which  men  are  no  longer  bound  by  any  of  the  ties  which 
control  civilized  communities. 

"  Admitting  that  none  of  those  public  writers,  who  either 
prompted  or  joined  in  the  outcry  which  was  raised  after  the 
fall  of  Tripolizza,  were  incompetent  to  argue  the  question, 
much  less  decide  on  its  merits,  surely  there  cannot  be,  on 
the  other  hand,  any  impropriety  in  comparing  the  excesses 
committed  there  with  those  which  have  marked  the  progress 
of  all  the  wars  that  have  desolated  Europe  during  the  last 
century,  for  it  is  needless  to  go  any  further  back.  Without 
entering  into  the  subject  at  greater  length,  or  citing  the  in- 
numerable facts  which  might  be  brought  forward,  even  from 
our  own  history,  it  may  surely  be  safely  asked,  whether, 
when  all  the  circumstances  are  taken  into  consideration, 
the  aggregate  excesses  in  Greece  bear  any  comparison  in 
point  of  wantonness  and  enormity  with  those  which  prece- 
ded the  partition  of  Poland,  or  that  occurred  during  the 
French  revolution,  and  the  wars  to  which  it  has  given  rise 
in  almost  every  quarter  of  the  globe  ?  Would  to  God,  that 
scenes  of  almost  daily  occurrence  in  the  sister  kingdom,  did 
not  also  furnish  proofs  of  what  appalling  crimes  men  can 
commit,  when  once  brought  to  believe  that  the  social  com- 
pact is  broken,  and  all  notions  of  moderation  or  virtue  are 
extinguished  by  a  sense  of  their  calamities."*! 

*  "  Those  who  so  harshly  judge  the  conduct  of  the  Greeks  at  Tri- 
polizza, and  other  points,  would  do  well  to  recollect  the  battle  of  Agin- 
cdurt,  Siege  of  Magdeburgh,  ravages  in  the  Palatinate  under  Turenne, 
the  treatment  of  the  Scotch  after  the  battle  of  Culloden,  various  events 
of  the  North  American  war,  the  massacres  of  both  parties  in  Ireland,  the 
assault  of  Jamael,  Prague,  and  Belgrade  ;  not  to  mention  the  many 
other  instances  of  cruelty  which  stain  the  page  of  history." 

f  Blaquierejvol.  l.p.  131— 154. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.        193 


CHAPTER  XV. 

Progress  of  the  war  in  Thcssaly  and  Macedonia. — Battle  of 
Fontana  — Relative  Position  of  the  contending  Parties  in 
Livadio. — Revolt  in  Euboea. — Departure  of  the  Capitana 
Bey  from  Constantinople  : — His  first  Operations. —  The 
Greek  Vessels  return  to  port. — A  Turkish  Squadron  ap- 
pears before  Calamata. —  The  Fleet  proceeds  to  Patras. — 
Expedition  of  Ipsilanti. — Calamata': — Descent  of  the  In- 
fidels at  Vostizza. — Attack  and.  destruction  of  Galaxidi. — 
Heroism  of  the  Inhabitants. — Intrepidity  of  two  Greek 
Soldiers. — Ipsilanti  returns  to  Tripolizza.— His  entry  and 
reception. — Appearance  of  the  Town. — It  is  abandoned. — 
Congress  convoked  at  Argos. — Project  of  taking  Napoli 
di  Romania  by  assault :  it  fails. —  The  Congress  is  trans- 
ferred to  Epidaurus. 

"  Leaving  the  irritated  victors  (we  continue  to  cite  Mr. 
Blaquiere)  amidst  the  smoking  ruins  of  Tripolizza,  it  is  now 
time  to  recur  to  the  object  of  Prince  Ipsilanti's  expedition, 
as  well  as  to  passing  events  at  other  points  of  the  confedera- 
tion. 

"  In  the  month  of  August,  four  Pachas  advanced  from  the 
confines  of  Thessaly  and  Macedonia  at  the  head  of  Jive  thou- 
sand men,  to  Zetouni,  where  one  of  them  died  suddenly. — 
Their  object  was  to  fprce  the  straits  of  Thermopylae,  and 
uniting  with  the  Ottoman  troops  at  Thebes  and  Athens,  to 
enter  the  Morea  and  relieve  Tripolizza  and  the  other  for- 
tresses. Odysseus*  was  posted  with  a  small  corps  above  the 
defiles  on  the  high  road  to  Livadia,  at  a  place  called  Fonta- 
na, near  the  banks  of  the  Asopus,  and  on  the  ancient  site  of 
Heraclea.  The  Pachas  sent  an  advanced  guard  of  three 
hundred  horse  in  the  first  instance,  to  reconnoitre  his  posi- 
tion :  this  detachment  having  fallen  into  an  ambuscade,  was 
cut  to  pieces.  On  the  following  day  the  Turks  assailed  Odys- 
seus with  their  whole  force;  the  circumstances  attending 

*  Called  also  Ulysseus,  one  of  the  most  popular  and  warlike  of  the 
Albanian  Capitanos.  He  was  afterwards  appointed  Captain  General  of 
Eastern  Greece. 


194  HISTORY  OF  THE 

this  action,  strongly  demonstrate  the  little  reliance  that  can 
be  placed  on  irregular  bands,  and  on  what  a  slender  thread 
their  success  or  failure  depends.  At  the  first  onset,  the 
Christians  gave  way,  and  would  soon  have  dispersed  entirely, 
had  not  a  valiant  chief,  named  Gouraz,  made  a  stand  with 
only  ten  of  his  companions,  calling  out  in  the  words  of  the 
patriarchal  warriors,  "  to  the  spoil,  O  Greeks."  Encouraged 
by  his  voice  and  example,  they  returned  to  the  charge,  and 
after  a  desperate  struggle,  the  infidels  were  completely  routed. 
According  to  the  accounts  of  the  victors,  twelve  hundred  of 
the  former  were  left  dead  on  the  field  ;  the  Ottomans  ac- 
knowledged a  loss  of  five  hundred.  One  Pacha  was  slain  ; 
and, several  standards  and  pieces  of  cannon,  a  number  of 
horses,  and  quantities  of  baggage,  fell  into  the  hands  of  the 
Greeks.  This  victory,  which  was  achieved  on  the  31st  of 
August,  proved  of  great  importance  tc  the  cause  of  the  Pa- 
triots. Had  the  battle  been  lost,  there  is  indeed  no  calcula- 
ting what  the  consequences  might  have  been.  For  nearly 
two  months  afterwards,  the  positions  of  the  armies  in  Greece 
were  various.  At  Zetouni  and  in  front  of  Odysseus,  were 
the  remains  of  the  Mussulman  forces  beaten  on  the  31st;  in 
his  rear  was  a  Turkish  division  of  three  thousand  men  at 
Thebes  ;  and  the  corps  of  Omer  Vrioni  at  Athens,  both  of 
which  had  continual  affairs  of  advanced  posts  at  Dolreni 
and  Dorbeni,  with  the  Greeks  who  defended  the  Isthmus  of 
Corinth.  Two  thousand  Bc3ol;an  peasants  occupied  some 
points  round  the  mountains  of  Thebes,  while  fifteen  hun- 
dred armed  Athenians  held  the  Island  of  Sammis,  and  other 
parties  were  assembled  on  the  hills  of  Attica. 

"  About  the  end  of  August,  an  insurrection  broke  out  in 
Eubcea,  headed  by  the  Bishop  of  Carystus,  who  endeavour- 
ed to  interrupt  the  communication  between  Athens  and  Ne- 
gropont,  and  to  cut  off  a  Turkish  detachment  passing  from 
the  former  to  the  last  named  place,  with  a  convoy  of  valua- 
ble effects.  But  his  followers  taking  to  flight  at  the  first 
fire,  he  was  forced  to  escape  to  Hydra. 

"  It  was  on  the  14th  of  August,  that  the  grand  Ottoman 
fleet  quitted  the  Dardanelles,  under  the  command  of  Kara 
Ali,  the  Capitana  Bey,  who  was  afterwards  blown  up  by  the 
Ipsariots  at  Scio.  It  consisted  of  thirty  sail,  of  which  four 
were  of  the  line,  and  one  a  three  decker.  After  an  ineffect- 
ual attempt  on  the  Island  of  Samos  the  Turkish  admiral 
steered  to  the  southward,  pursued  by  one  hundred  and  nine 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  195 

Greek  vessels.*    The  islanders,  whose  largest  ships  did  not 
carry  more  than  thirty  guns,  did  not  however  seek  an  action 


*  The  reader  cannot  but  be  amused  and  interested  with  the  following 
description  of  the  Turkish  and  Grecian  navies.  We  borrow  it  from 
Green's  Sketches,  p.  63 — 68. 

"  The  Turks  can  bring  a  hundred  sail  of  armed  vessels  into  action, 
though  they  have  never  produced  more  than  fifty  at  once.  The 
Tunisians,  Tripolitans,  and  Algerines,  have  occasionally  furnished 
about  twenty  vessels  of  war,  consisting  of  corvettes,  brigs,  and 
schooners,  well  armed  and  manned,  but  these,  though  acting  under 
the  Turkish  Admiral,  in  reality  do  just  as  they  please.  The  Turkish 
naval  force  proper,  or  that  which  is  furnished  from  the  arsenal  at 
Constantinople,  consists  of  five  or  six  three-deckers,  six  or  eight, 
seventy -fours,  thirty  frigates  and  corvettes,  and  between  forty  and 
fifty  schooners  and  brigs.  There  is  no  regular  marine,  but  when- 
ever the  ships  are  to  be  manned  for  any  expedition,  an  impressment 
takes  place.  The  press-gang  run  into  the  coffee  and  wine  houses 
where  the  poorer  orders  resort,  and  seize  all  indiscriminately,  with- 
out making  the  least  inquiry  as  to  their  knowledge  of  naval  tactics. 
Nay,  people  quietly  walking  the  streets  do  not  escape.  A  more  efficient 
race  of  sailors,,  however,  is  found  among  the  traders  of  the  Black  Sea, 
and  the  boatmen  of  the  Bosphorus,  and  these  are  impressed  without 
mercy. 

"  Before  the  Revolution  broke  out,  the  islands  of  Hydra  and 
Spezzia  were  obliged  to  furnish  a  certain  number  of  seamen  when- 
ever they  should  be  called  upon  by  the  Porte  so  to  do,  and  this  was  a 
condition  of  their  being  allowed  to  govern  themselves.  This  will 
account  for  so  many  Gr  .eks  being  found  in  the  Turkish  navy  at  the. 
beginning  of  the  war.  Europeans  also  are  never  wanting,  but  it 
must  be  stated  in  justice  to  these,  that  many  have  been  regularly 
trepanned  into  their  service.  There  are  a  set  of  wine-houses  at 
Constantinople,  which  are  kept  by  Maltese  and  other  Europeans,  to 
which  almost  all  the  Frank  sailors  resort.  The  landlord  goes  to  the 
Turkish  Capoudan,  and  asks  if  he  requires  any  Europeans,  and  if 
so,  how  many.  The  Capoudan  states  the  number  he  wants,  and 
generally  pays  down  the  money  for  them.  The  landlord  then  re- 
turns to  the  inn,  finds  out  all  the  discontented  sailors  in  the  Porte, 
plies  them  well  with  liquor,  and  contrives  to  make  them  sign  a  regu- 
lar agreement  of  service.  As  soon  as  this  is  effected,  they  are  im- 
mediately conveyed  on  board  ship,  drunk  as  they  are,  and  most 
especial  care  is  taken  that  no  opportunity  of  landing  shall  be  afforded 
them,  as  long  as  the  vessel  remains  in  harbour.  They  have  the 
same  rations  as  the  Turkish  sailor,  but  wine,  spirits,  or  grog,  must 
be  paid  for  extra,  in  fact  in  any  way  that  the  unfortunate  Christian 
can.  Every  Turkish  ship,  however,  has  a  regular  coffee-house  on 
board,  at  which  all  imaginable  wants  may  be  gratified:  the  keeper 
of  this  coffee-house  is  perhaps  the  very  scoundrel  who  assisted  in 
kidnapping  the  Europeans,  or  at  least  he  has  something  to  do  with 
it.  If  the  European  has  need  of  any  thing,  he  is  allowed  to  get 
it  from  the  coffee-house  on'  credit,  and  about  two  hundred  per  cent, 
-on  the  value  ef  the  article  is  charged.    The  sailor,  therefore,  after 


196  HISTORY  OF  THE 

in  the  open  sea,  but  sought  an  opportunity  of  separating  the 
hostile  fleet  or  attacking   it  with  fire  ships.     The  Turks 

he  has  served  several  months,  so  far  from  having  any  pay  to  receive, 
is  told  that  the  whole  is  due  to  the  coffee-house  keeper,  and  that 
moreover  he  has  a  further  debt  to  liquidate,  which  of  course  can  only 
be  done  by  further  service.     I  have  more  than  once  been  called  upon 
officially,    to   liberate   Englishmen    who    had   been  first   kidnapped, 
and  then  cheated ;  and   in  some   instances   I  have  been   successful, 
though  in  others  the  terms  of  agreement  signed  with  the  man's  own 
hand  has  been  shown  me  to  prove  that  he  was  not  forced  into  the 
Turkish  service.     The  officers  of  the  fleet  are  chosen  from  among 
the  soldiery,  and  their  nomination  is  a  matter  of  interest  resting  in 
the  hands  of  the  Capoudan  Pacha.     Nautical  skill  may  truly  be  said 
not  to  exist  among  the  Turks,  and  any  one  who  has  had  the  good 
fortune   to   have   sailed   with  the  squadron  which   accompanied  our 
fleet  at  the  time  of  Bonaparte's  expedition  to  Egypt,  is  thought  a  very 
Nelson.     With  such  a  crew  it  is   matter  of  surprise   how  the  Turks 
manage  to  navigate  at  all ;    but  the  fact  is,  that  the  vessel  is  sailed 
and  steered  by  Europeans,   while   the  fighting   part   belongs   exclu- 
sively to  the  Turks.     I  have  been  told,  and,  from  what  I  have  seen, 
I  can  easily  believe,  that  the  confusion  on  board  a  Turkish  vessel  is 
absolutely   ridiculous.     One   half  of  the  men   are,   perhaps  horribly 
sea-sick,  sprawling  about  the  deck ;    while  the  other  half  are  pulling 
at  ropes,  of  which  they  have  no  knowledge.     The  Chaouses  are  seen 
running  here  and  there,  bastinadoing  right  and  left,  and  forcing  the 
men  to  their  duty.     Indeed,  the  way  in  which  the  sailors  are  taught 
to  handle  and  know  the  different  ropes  is,  as  I  was  informed,  quite 
on  a  par  with  the  rest  of  the  system.     Vegetables,  pipes,  pieces  of 
cloth,  &c.  are  attached  to  the  rigging  and  the  cordage,  and  then  the 
command  is  given,  "  haul  up  the  long  pipe  ;   let  go  the  cabbage," 
&c.     After  the  news  was  known  of  the  destruction  of  a  fine  ship  of 
war,  by  the  fire-ships  of  the  Greeks,  the  panic  that  seized  the  crew 
of  a  Turkish  vessel  on  the  approach  of  a  Greek  one  was  excessive. 
Sailors  on  board  these  have  told  me,  that  nothing  could  exceed  the 
scene  of  confusion.     The  guns  were  fired  without  aim,  and  often  on 
the  side  on  which  the  enemy  was  not :  the  men  were  flying  here  and 
there,  vociferating  and  running ;  many  were  preparing  to  jump  over- 
board, and  others  absolutely  did  so.     In  fact,  at  the  best  of  times, 
there  is  little  discipline  ;  but  at  such  a  juncture  there  is  none.     It  was 
the  knowledge  of  this  that  emboldened  the  small   Greek  vessels  to 
approach  and  manoeuvre  round  the  heavy  armed  Turkish  frigates  with 
perfect  impunity.     A  Greek  vessel  once  approached  a  Turkish  heavy 
frigate  so  close  that  the  anchor  of  the  latter  caught  hold  of  some  part 
of  the  rigging  of  the  former.     In  an  instant  both  one  and  the  other 
ran  to  cut  away  and  disentangle  themselves;  the   Greek  not  liking 
such  close  quarters,  and  the  Turk  taking  his  enemy  to  be  a  fire  ship. 
Not  a  single  shot  was  fired.     The  loquacious  Greek  was  heard  to 
vociferate  the  vilest  abuse  on  the  Turk  and  on  Mahomet,  while  the 
grave  Turk,  on  the  other  side,  merely  shook  his  finger,  and  invited 
him  to  fight  it  out  hand  to  hand.  A  single  broadside  from  an  European, 
of  half  the  weight  of  metal  of  the  Turk,  would  have  blown  the  Greek 
§ut  of  the  water. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  197 

grown  weary  by  experience,  avoided  exposing  themselves  to 
these  destructive  machines,  taking  care  to  keep  in  a  close 

"  These  scenes,  however,  occurred  in  the  beginning  of  the  revo- 
lution. Both  their  panic  and  their  thorough  want  of  skill  have  been 
bettered  by  experience,  and  in  more  than  one  instance  a  single 
Turkish  vessel  has  fought  its  way  through  a  whole  Greek  squadron. 

"  The  Viceroy  of  Egypt,  for  some  years  past,  has  been  gradually 
increasing  his  naval  force,  and  his  fleet  now  consists  of  at  least  sixty 
vessels  of  war.  Of  these,  six  or  seven  are  frigates,  which  have  been 
chiefly  built  in  private  dock-yards  at  Marseilles,  Leghorn,  and  Trieste  ; 
the  others  consist  of  corvettes,  brigs,  and  schooners,  and,  with  feu- 
exceptions,  the  whole  of  these  vessels  are  of  a  very  superior  class,  and 
in  excellent  order.  In  action,  and  in  the  management  of  their  vessels, 
the  Egyptians  have  proved  themselves  infinitely  superior  to  the  Con- 
stantinople Turks  ;  but  this,  no  doubt,  is  owing  in  a  great  measure  to 
the  fact  of  there  being  many  foreign  seamen  in  the  Viceroy's  service. 
who  form  part  of  the  crew  of  each  vessel. 

"  Such  is  the  Turkish  naval  power.  The  Greek  remains  now  to  be 
described. 

"  Five-and-twenty  years  ago,  the  present  populous  towns  of  Hydra 
and  Spezzia  were  two  small  fishing  villages.  About  this  time  the 
coasts  of  Spain  and  France  were  blockaded  by  our  vessels ;  the  Hy- 
driots  speculated,  and  sent  in  small  craft  with  corn  to  the  blockaded 
station  ;  and  the  immense  profits  they  realized  soon  induced  them 
to  extend  their  risks.  Their  Admiral,  Tombazi,  whom  I  knew,  in- 
formed me,  that  he  was  the  first  to  get  an  American  ship  as  a  model, 
and  from  this,  his  countrymen  constructed  those  vessels  which  have 
subsequently  been  converted  into  armed  ones.  In  a  few  years, 
almost  the  whole  of  the  corn-trade  of  the  Black  Sea  was  in  the 
hands  of  the  Greeks,  and  the  inhabitants  of  Hydra  and  Spezzia 
became  enormously  rich.  At  the  breaking  out  of  the  revolution, 
this  profitable  trade  ceased,  and  their  vessels  returned  to  their  re- 
spective islands  without  delay.  With  the  exception  of  four  or  five 
three-masted  polaccos,  and  six  or  eight  schooners,  the  whole  of  the 
vessels  belonging  to  Hydra,  Spezzia,  and  Ipsara,  are  rigged  as  polacca 
brigs,  their  size  varying  from  a  hundred  and  fifty  to  five  hundred 
tons,  being  pierced  for  twelve  to  twenty  guns.  I  am  unable  to  state 
the  exact  number  of  vessels  belonging  to  these  three  islands  at  the 
period  above  alluded  to,  but  only  forty  or  fifty  were  armed  and  equip- 
ped during  the  first  months  of  the  revolution :  and  at  no  one  period 
does  it  appear  that  the  Greek  naval  force  sent  to  sea,  ever  exceeded 
eighty  vessels. 

"  The  Greek  vessels,  with  few  exceptions,  have  been  built  from 
beautiful  models,  and  sail  remarkably  fast :  their  crews  have  all  tin- 
capabilities  of  good  seamen,  except  that  essential  one — discipline. 
There  are  several  Capitani  on  board,  and  each  man  has  as  much  voice 
in  the  direction  of  the  vessel  as  the  Captain  himself.  This,  therefore 
gives  rise  to  great  confusion ;  but  in  the  management  of  their  vessels, 
they  are  infinitely  superior  to  the  Turks. 

"Respecting  the  Greek  marine,  however,  I  conceive  that  an  er 


198  HISTORY  OF  THE 

body  and  always  under  sail.  They  had  now  a  number  of 
European  seamen,  chiefly  natives  of  Malta  and  Genoa,  on 
board  the  fleet.  These  men,  of  whom  there  are  a  great  ma- 
ny generally  idle  at  Constantinople,  were  allured  more  by 
the  hope  of  pecuniary  advantages  than  any  interest  in  the 
struggle,  which  was  indeed  a  matter  of  perfect  indifference 
to  them.  The  Greek  sailors,  with  a  spirit  of  impatience 
which  has  often  proved  prejudicial  to  their  cause,  obliged 
their  chiefs  to  return  to  port,  so  that  ail  their  exploits  during 
this  cruise,  were  limited  to  burning  a  few  Turkish  transports 
on  the  coast  of  Anatolia.  A  single  fast  sailing  schooner, 
commanded  by  a  brother  of  the  Hydriot  Admiral  Tombasi, 
was  left  to  watch  the  enemy's  movements  ;  but  she  returned 
to  Hydra  on  the  3d  of  September,  bringing  intelligence,  that 
the  Capitana  Bey,  reinforced  by  the  Egyptian  and  Algerine 
squadrons,  had  passed  the  island  of  Cos,  on  his  way  to  Can- 
dia.  This  information  proved  erroneous,  as  Kara  Ali  steer- 
ed direct  for  the  Peloponnesus,  and  supplied  Coron  and 
Mod  on  with  provisions.  His  appearance  on  the  southern 
shore  of  the  Morea,  created  general  consternation.  Some 
of  his  smaller  vessels  having  approached  Calamata,  the  mili- 
tary commandant  and  garrison  prepared  to  fly  to  the  moun- 
tains, but  were  encouraged  to  remain  by  the  example  of  the 
brave  Balisto,  who  drew  up  his  weak  battalion,  in  order  of 
battle,  upon  the  strand,  partially  covered  by  some  sand  hills, 
and  caused  his  trumpet  and  drums  to  sound,  while  a  body  of 
one  thousand  Mainotes  fired  a  general  volley  of  musketry 
from  behind  the  rocks.  The  pusillanimous  Turks,  disheart- 
ened by  this  show  of  resistance,  sheered  off,  without  daring 
to  disembark  : — while  thus  employed,  Balisto  learned  that 
the  people  of  Calamata  were  about  to  despatch  the  Mussul- 
man prisoners  confined  there  ;  he  instantly  flew  to  the  town 
with  a  party  of  soldiers,  arrived  in  time  to  prevent  the  act ; 

i 

roneous  opinion  generally  exists  in  Europe,  as,  with  the  exception  of 
the  Hydriots  and  Spezziots.  experience  has  taught  me,  that  the  Greeks 
are  far  from  being  experienced  sailors.  Few  even  of  the  Captains  of 
those  two  islands  have  studied  navigation,  and  that  to  a  very  limited 
extent;  their  ignorance,  in  this  respect,  being  obviated  by  the  circum- 
stance of  their  rarely  navigating  out  of  sight  of  land.  During  fine 
weather  they  manage  their  vessels  and  small  craft  very  well,  and  even 
expertly ;  but  in  a  squall  or  gale  of  wind,  especially  during  the  night,  they 
generally  lose  all  self-possession,  the  greatest  confusion  prevails,  incense 
S  burnt,  the  Virgin  invoked,  and  every  endeavonr  made  to  rtm  the  ves-, 
sel  into  the  nearest  port  for  shelter. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  190 

and  then  returned  to  his  post  on  the  beach.  The  loss  of 
this  excellent  officer,  who  died  gloriously  in  Crete,  on  the 
field  of  battle,  in  1822,  was  a  great  misfortune  to  the  Greek 
cause.  Born  in  that  island,  of  French  parents,  and  habitua- 
ted to  war  under  Napoleon,  he  spoke  the  language  of  Greece 
fluently,  exercised  considerable  influence  over  the  people, 
and  was  capable  of  rendering  the  most  eminent  services.* 

"  From  Modon,  the  Capitana  Bey  sailed  to  Patras  ;  three 
thousand  Achians  and  Ionians  blocked  up  that  place  on  the 
land  side,  while  some  light  vessels  prevented  supplies  from 
entering  by  sea.  The  latter  iled  on  the  appearance  of  the 
fleet,  taking  shelter  either  at  Galaxidi,  or  running  on  the 
shallows  of  Missolonghi,  where  they  were  burned  by  the 
Turkish  boats.  Kara  AJi,  having  arrived  in  the  roads,  made 
a  discharge  of  his  artillery  upon  the  Greek  camp,  and  the 
garrison  sallied  forth  at  the  same  time  :  a  single  post  of  two 
hundred  men  offered  a  slight  resistance  ;  the  rest  of  the  be- 
siegers dispersed  themselves  in  the  mountains,  leaving  the 
few  pieces  of  cannon  they  had  in  the  power  of  the  Turks. 
This  was  the  event  which  induced  Ipsilanti  to  quit  the  walls 
of  Tripolizza  for  the  purpose  of  re-establishing  the  block- 
ade, as  well  as  obviating  the  consequences  of  such  a  defeat. 
The  troops  destined  to  accompany  him,  amounting  to  about 
seven  hundred  men,  marcher!  in  two  columns  ;  the  first,  con- 
sisting of  five  hundred  of  the  militia  at  Caritena,  left  the 
camp  on  the  24th  of  September,  under  the  orders  of  two  sons 
and  a  nephew  of  Colocotroni.  The  Prince  himself,  accom- 
panied by  31r.  Gordon  and  his  own  staff,  the  battalion  of  Ba- 
listo,  which  had  just  arrived  from  Calamata,  not  exceed- 
ing two  hundred  men  and  officers,  and  a  few  artillery-men, 
having  one  mounted  gun,  a  light  brass  four  pounder,  set  out 
on  the  following  day.  On  the  28th,  both  divisions  formed  a 
junction  at  Calavrita.  This  town,  of  four  hundred  houses, 
the  ancient  Cynethus,  is  seated  in  a  fine  valley  among  the 
mountains,  and  in  a  central  point,  whence  roads  branch  off 
to  Patras,  Corinth,  and  Tripolizza.  The  advantages  of  its 
position  engaged  the  Prince  to  suspend  his  march  to  Pa- 
tras; whither  he  despatched  an  aid-de-camp,  uniil  he  should 
receive  intelligence  of  the  enemy's  movements.  Indeed,  his 
presence  before  that  fortress  was  no  longer  necessary,  as  the 


*  Mr.  Gordon,  under  whose  direction,  as  chief  of  the  staff,  Balisto  was 
frequently  employed,  bears  the  highest  testimony  to  his  merits  as  a 
patriot  and  a  soldier. 


200  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Turks  had  not  attempted  to  improve  their  victory,  and  the 
Greeks  were  beginning  to  recover  from  their  panic ;  seven 
hundred  having  re-assembled  in  the  mountains,  they  were 
soon  increased  to  more  than  double  that  number.  On  the 
night  of  the  29th,  a  messenger  arrived  in  breathless  haste, 
bringing  information  that  the  Sultan's  forces  had  landed  at 
Vostiz'za,  only  a  few  leagues  from  Calavrita,  and  having 
burned  the  town,  were  advancing  into  the  interior.  Ipsilanti 
instantly  took  his  measures  with  great  judgment,  and  at  day 
break  on  the  30th,  marched  to  meet  the  enemy.  His  little 
army,  reinforced  by  some  militia  of  Calavrita,  and  now 
amounting  to  nearly  a  thousand  men,  with  one  field  piece, 
was  in  high  spirits,  and  extremely  well  disposed  to  fight.  But 
a  second  messenger  met  the  Prince  on  his  way,  and  stated 
that  the  enemy  had  re-embarked,  after  committing  various 
excesses,  and  carrying  off  a  large  flock  of  sheep  found  near 
Vostizza.  Approaching  the  coast,  Ipsilanti  took  post  for 
the  night  on  a  lofty  eminence  between  the  plain  and  the  sea, 
adopting  such  precautions  as  were  necessary  to  prevent  a 
surprise  :  for  the  Ottoman  squadron  of  one  frigate  and  thir- 
ty brigs  was  seen  at  anchor  near  the  shore,  and  it  was  known 
that  the  Pacha  of  Egypt  had  sent  fifteen  hundred  Albanians, 
who  passed  for  good  troops.  The  1st  of  October  was  stormy 
and  rainy,  but  on  the  mist  clearing  away  about  noon,  the 
Turkish  vessels  were  perceived  to  weigh  anchor  and  steer  to 
the  north-east.  There  could  be  no  doubt  that  their  first  ob- 
ject was  the  attack  of  Galaxida,  but  well  founded  apprehen- 
sions were  entertained  with  regard  to  their  ulterior  opera- 
tions. The  wind  was  blowing  steadily  from  the  north-west, 
and  a  few  hours  might  carry  them  to  the  head  of  the  Gulf  of 
Corinth.  It  was  nearly  certain  that,  if  they  landed  troops 
there,  the  fifteen  hundred  Greeks  blockading  the  Acropolis 
would  fly  to  the  hills,  when  the  other  troops  employed  to  de- 
fend the  Isthmus  would  be  exposed  to  a  double  attack  in 
front  and  rear  :  or  the  Turkish  division  at  Thebes  might,  in 
one  long  march,  reach  the  fort  of  Livadostro,  and  be  thence 
transported  by  their  own  shipping  into  the  Morea,  thus 
turning  the  defiles  ;  while  OmerVrioni  was  ready  to  co-ope- 
rate from  Eleusis.  Indeed,  none  but  the  Turks  could  have 
been  blind  to  the  advantages  of  such  a  plan,  or  so  timid  as 
not  to  attempt  its  execution.  But  recollecting  that  he  had 
no  right  to  calculate  on  the  faults  of  an  enemy,  however  ig- 
norant, the  Prince  resolved  to  advance  towards  Corinth  with 
all  speed. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  201 

"  The  small  commercial  town  of  Galaxidi,  on  the  shore  of 
Ozolian  Locris,  is  situated  within  the  Bay  of  Cyrrha,  and 
near  its  entrance.  The  principal  wealth  of  its  industrious 
inhabitants  consisted  in  a  number  of  small  trading  vessels. 
Aware  that  their  vigilance  in  blockading  Lepanto  had  ren- 
dered them  peculiarly  obnoxious  to  the  barbarians,  they  had 
made  preparations  for  defence,  by  erecting  a  battery  on  an 
islet  at  the  harbour's  mouth,  and  mooring  their  little  flotilla 
in  line  before  the  town.  The  women  and  children  were 
sent  to  Salona,  so  that  none  but  combatants  remained.  On 
the  evening  of  the  1st  of  October,  the  Ottoman  squadron 
took  up  its  position  and  summoned  the  Galaxidoes  to  sur- 
render. But,  regardless  of  the  vast  disparity  of  force,  the 
latter  answered  by  firing  on  the  boat  which  brought  the  mes- 
sage. The  Turks  immediately  began  the  attack,  and  bat- 
tered the  place  for  two  hours,  when  night  put  an  end  to  the 
action.  It  was  renewed  at  day-break  and  lasted  for  three 
hours  more.  Ipsilanti  and  his  staff  were  on  a  height  on  the 
opposite  side  of  the  gulf,  anxiously  watching  the  issue  of  the 
battle  ;  a  tongue  of  land  concealed  the  fleet  and  town  from 
their  view,  but  the  cannonade  from  so  many  pieces  of  heavy 
artillery  was  tremendous  ;  at  length  it  suddenly  ceased, 
when  a  mingled  cloud  of  flame  and  black  smoke  ascended  to 
heaven,  and  told  but  too  surely  the  fate  of  Galaxidi.  After 
opposing  a  most  gallant  resistance  to  such  a  prodigious  su- 
periority, both  in  numbers,  guns,  and  weight  of  metal,  the 
brave  inhabitants  fled  to  the  mountains  of  Salona,  having 
previously  destroyed  their  vessels  and  batteries.  The  Turks 
hesitated  to  land,  but  the  Algerines,  stimulated  by  the  hopes 
of  plunder,  jumped  into  their  boats  and  rowed  to  the  beach. 
The  town  was  then  pillaged,  and  being  set  on  fire,  its  blaz- 
ing ruins  continued  for  two  or  three  successive  nights  to 
shed  a  lurid  and  melancholy  light  over  the  waters  of  Le- 
panto. 

"  The  army  of  Ipsilanti  witnessed  a  trait  of  heroism  on 
this  occasion  which  ought  not  to  be  passed  over  in  silence. 
An  earnest  wish  was  entertained  at  the  head-quarters  of  the 
Prince,  to  open  a  correspondence  with  the  leading  men  in 
the  opposite  districts  of  Roumelia,  but  no  bark  could  be 
found :  upon  which  two  soldiery  of  Balisto's  division,  for- 
merly sailors  by  profession,  boldly  offered  to  cross  the  gulf 
on  a  raft,  thus  exposing  themselves  both  to  the  waves  and 
the  enemy's  vessels  :  when  offered  a  reward,  their  reply  was, 
that  they  deserved  none,  and  would  undertake  the  dnty,  not 

18* 


202  HISTORY  OF  THE 

from  the  hope  of  gain,  but  to  serve  their  country.  A  letter 
was  accordingly  prepared,  and  they  were  on  the  point  of 
setting  out,  when  the  wind  became  so  strong,  and  the  sea  so 
rough,  that  it  was  not  considered  safe  to  allow  these  intrepid 
men  to  carry  the  design  into  effect. 

"  After  witnessing  the  destruction  of  Galaxidi,  Ipsilanti 
proceeded  by  forced  marches  towards  the  Isthmus,:  on  the 
3d  he  slept  at  Akrara,  and  on  the  next  night,  at  Hylocastro. 
The  wind  having  changed  to  the  east,  the  Turkish  fleet 
stood  down  the  gulf  again  in  its  way  to  Patras,  and  under  a 
press  of  sail.  All  immediate  cause  of  apprehension  being 
thus  removed,  the  Prince  went  on  to  Basilico  on  the  4th,  and 
halted  there  for  some  days,  amidst  the  ruins  of  the  ancient 
Sycion.  It  was  here  that  he  received  intelligence  of  the  fall 
of  Tripolizza.  From  thence  he  proceeded  to  Hexamilia 
and  Kanchra,  where  he  held  a  conference  with  the  officers 
to  whom  the  care  of  guarding  the  Isthmus  was  entrusted. 
In  passing  before  Corinth,  he  sent  a  written  summons  to  the 
garrison  of  the  Acropolis,  stating  what  had  passed  at  Tripo- 
lizza, and  containing  a  menace,  that  if  they  did  not  surrender, 
a  similar  fate  awaited  themselves,  as  they  would  be  stormed 
and  put  to  the  sword.  Such  a  threat,  addressed  to  an  im- 
penetrable fortress,  having  provisions  for  three  months, 
could  not  be  expected  to  produce  much  effect.  The  Turks 
made  no  answer  at  the  time,  but  replied  the  next  day,  by 
firing  some  cannon  shot  at  Ipsilanti' s  column  as  it  passed  on 
its  way  to  St.  Basil,  by  a  road  which  the  Acropolis  ought  at 
all  times  completely  to  command. 

"  Having  halted  a  day  or  two  at  Argos,  and  visited  the 
posts  round  Napoli  di  Romania,  Demetrius  made  his  entry 
into  the  capital  of  the  Morea  on  the  15th  of  October,  amidst 
very  great  demonstrations  of  joy,  and  attended  by  a  large 
body  of  troops  who  went  out  to  meet  him.  Nothing  could 
be  more  deplorable  than  the  appearance  of  the  town ;  not  a 
single  door  lock,  and  scarcely  a  nail  was  left — the  Mainotes 
having  carried  off  every  thing  of  that  description.  The 
plunder  was  carried  home  on  the  backs  of  their  wives,  who 
came  down  in  great  numbers  for  this  purpose  from  their  na- 
tive fortresses.  Ipsilanti  had  intended  to  appropriate  the  lead 
which  covered  the  mosques  to  the  public  service,  but  it  had 
all  been  stripped  off.  When  every  other  portable  article  wa5 
gone,  the  peasants  were  seen  driving  away  their  asses  load- 
ed with  doors  and  window  shutters.  Of  the  immense  booty 
nothing  was  assigned  t#  the  exigencies  of  the  naiipn>  except 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  203 

the  artillery :  every  thing  else  became  private  property — 
most  of  the  chiefs  and  primates  enriched  themselves  ;  the 
Prince  alone  sternly  refused  to  convert  any  thing  to  his 
own  use.  The  streets  were  incumbered  with  dead  bodies ; 
even  the  houses  were  filled  with  the  slain  of  either  party  ; 
while  the  mountaineers  and  shepherds,  accustomed  to  dwell 
in  rocks  and  woods,  had  now  established  their  bivouacs 
amidst  the  broken  fragments  of  oriental  luxury.  Fires 
broke  out  in  the  town  every  night,  and  the  prince  himself 
was  burnt  out  of  his  quarter's  a  few  days  after  his  arrival. 
The  only  thing  that  occupied  the  Greeks,  was  the  unequal 
manner  in  which  the  spoils  had  been  shared.  Complaints 
were  heard  on  every  side,  and  while  some  wished  to  conceal 
their  gains,  others  murmured  loudly  at  being  defrauded  of  a 
fair  portion.  Ipsilanti's  first  object  was  to  put  an  end  to  the 
great  confusion  that  prevailed.  He  certainly  succeeded  in 
restoring  some  degree  of  order,  but  this  was  chiefly  owing 
to  the  breaking  up  of  the  army,  which  gradually  dispersed 
and  melted  away,  carrying  into  the  farthest  corners  of  the 
Peloponnesus  those  discontents  and  heartburnings,  the 
seeds  of  which  were  sown  at  the  sacking  of  Tripolizza. — 
There  now  remained  only  the  regular  troops,  consisting  of 
one  battalion  of  infantry,  and  a  company  of  artillery,  with  the 
retinue  of  some  captains  ;  a  force  scarcely  sufficient  to  guard 
the  Turkish  prisoners.  The  Greeks  had  always  pointed  to 
the  reduction  of  this  place,  as  the  period  when  disorder  and 
anarchy  were  to  cease,  and  be  replaced  by  a  regularly  organ- 
ized system  of  government. — It  had  now  fallen,  and  such 
were  the  difficulties  opposed  to  this  most  desirable  object, 
that  the  event  seemed  only  to  have  embittered  the  dissensions 
of  the  leading  men.  Perceiving  that  his  plans  of  ameliora- 
tion were  opposed  with  scarcely  less  pertinacity  than  before, 
and  his  influence  every  day  declining,  Ipsilanti  resolved  to 
submit  all  the  disputed  points  to  a  national  congress,  which 
was  summoned  to  meet  at  Tripolizza.  But  a  contagious 
disease,  caught  probably  from  the  Turks,  and  aggravated  by 
the  great  number  of  putrifying  carcases,  broke  out  there 
in  the  beginning  of  November,  and  spread  with  such  rapi- 
dity, that  it  was  found  necessary  to  abandon  the  place  alto- 
gether for  a  short  time.  The  assembly  was  therefore  con- 
voked  at  Argos,  where  the  Prince  repaired  to  attend  the  deli- 
berations. 

"  In  the  meanwhile,  deputies  arrived  from  different  parts 
,«f  Greece,  charged  to  demand  succours  from  the  government 


204  HISTORY  OF  THE 

of  the  Peloponnesus,  and  to  give  an  account  of  what  was 
passing  in  their  respective  districts. 

"  The  news  from  Macedonia  excited  most  attention,  as 
the  campaign  there  did  not,  as  yet,  wear  a  hopeless  aspect. 
Allusion  has  already  been  made  to  the  insurrection  at  Salo- 
nica,  and  the  retreat  of  the  Greeks  into  the  peninsula  of  Cas- 
sandra, where  they  threw  up  intrenchments,  and  cut  a  ditch 
across  the  Isthmus.  The  adjacent  promontories  of  Torone 
and  Mount  Athos  was  also  in  a  state  of  revolt,  and  each 
contained  several  thousand  armed  men.  It  is  well  known 
that  the  woody  and  romantic  crags  of  x^thosare  studded  with 
Greek  monasteries  which  enjoy  certain  chartered  privileges: 
one  of  these,  is  an  exemption  from  the  presence  of  Turkish 
troops.  A  single  Aga  residing  at  Kares,  conducts  the  civil 
administration  in  concert  with  a  monastic  council.  The 
convents,  very  difficult  of  access,  are  fortified  and  even  pro- 
vided with  artillery,  to  resist  the  attacks  of  pirates.  Not 
long  before  his  martyrdom,  the  patriarch  had  dispatched  a 
very  learned  and  estimable  Albanian  physician  to  the  Holy 
Mountain,  with  instructions  to  persuade  the  monks  to  remain 
quiet,  and  take  no  part  in  the  existing  troubles.  But  this 
emissary,  on  his  arrival,  found  that  the  violent  measures  of 
the  Turks  had  already  driven  the  religious  community  into 
rebellion.  The  Pacha  of  Salonica  begun  by  summoning 
them  to  deliver  up  their  arms,  and  receive  an  Ottoman  garri- 
son; and  scarcely  waiting  for  a  reply,  caused  a  great  num- 
ber of  servants  who  cultivated  their  estates  in  the  open 
country,  to  be  seized  and  publicly  executed.  Thus  pressed, 
the  monks  took  a  decisive  resolution,  refused  to  obey  the  or- 
ders of  the  Pacha,  imprisoned  their  governor,  whom  they 
however  treated  with  the  utmost  mildness,  and  co-operated 
with  the  forces  at  Potidea  and  Torone. 

"  During  the  summer  and  autumn,  the  Macedonian  Turks 
sent  two  expeditions  against  the  intrenchments  of  Cassandra, 
and  were  twice  repulsed.  On  the  second  occasion,  the 
Christians,  by  a  vigorous  sally,  possessed  themselves  of  nine 
pieces  of  heavy  artillery.  They  were,  however,  much  dis- 
tressed for  want  of  grain  and  ammunition,  having  received 
only  some  scanty  supplies  from  the  Hydriots,  and  therefore 
demanded  assistance  from  the  Peloponnesians.  It  happen- 
ed most  unfortunately,  that  while  the  affair  was  in  agitation, 
the  new  Pacha  of  Salonica,  who  had  brought  up  an  over- 
whelming force,  succeeded  completely  in  a  fresh  attack. 
Ctossandra  was  takeilby  storm  on  the  12th  of  November,  and 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  305 

its  garrison  put  to  the  sword,  as  a  matter  of  course.     Soon 
after  this  event,  Mount  Athos  capitulated. 

"  A  deputation  from  Mount  Olympus  reached  Tripolizza, 
about  the  middle  of  October,  stating  that  seven  thousand 
Macedonians  were  prepared  to  rise  in  the  southern  parts  of 
that  country,  and  demanding  cannon,  gunpowder,  and  offi- 
cers. Two  six  inch  mortars  were  given  to  them,  but  scarce- 
ly had  these  pieces  been  lanued  at  Ekatarina,  than  they  were 
seized  by  a  party  of  Turks.  The  projected  insurrection, 
however,  took  place,  and  has  continued  with  various  success 
ever  since. 

"  In  the  Peloponnesus,  there  were  but  two  points  at  which 
hostilities  were  prosecuted  with  any  degree  of  vig  ur  :  these 
were  Patras  and  Napoli   di  Romania.     The  Capitana  Bey 
having  thrown  supplies  into  the  fortresses  on  the  coast,  and 
added  the  squadron  that  had  been  employed  against  Ali  Pa- 
cha, and   which  had   not  hitherto  dared  to  quit  Prevesa,  to 
his  own  fleet ;  exulting,  besides,  in  the  success  of  his  offi- 
cers at  Galaxidi,  he  prepared  to  return  to  the  Dardanelles, 
immediately  after  the  destruction  of  that  town.     Passing 
before  the  island  of  Zante,  with  nearly  eighty  sail,   he  had 
the  fairest  opportunity  that  could  have  offered,  of  destroying- 
twenty-two  Greek   vessels   land-locked  under  the  point  of 
Chiarenza.     But  this  gallant  commander,  whose  valour  and 
abilities  were  a  theme   of  frequent  eulogium  in  the  official 
journal  of  Austria,  did  not  even  make  the  attempt.     After 
firing  a  few  distant  broadsides,  to  intimidate  the   enemy,  he 
cast  anchor  in  the  bay  of  Zante,  and  having  obtained  a  sup- 
ply of  provisions  from  his  agents  there,  quietly  proceeded 
towards  the  Hellespont.     On  his  departure,  the  Peloponne- 
sians  renewed  their  attacks  against  Patras.     The  besieging 
force  having  been  considerably  swelled  by  reinforcements 
from  Arcadia  and  Elis,  was  joined  by  Prince  Mavrocordato, 
and  young  Caradja,  who  brought  over  some  pieces  of  ord- 
nance, and  a  quantity  of  muskets,   from   Missolonghi.     To- 
wards the  end  of  October,  the  town  was  carried   by  assault, 
and  the  garrison  once  more  forced  to  retire  into  the  citadel. 
The  Greeks  displayed  a  good  deal  of  courage  in  this  affair, 
and  experienced  a  considerable  loss.     Having  occupied  the 
minarets,  and  entrenched  themselves  in  the  houses,  they  kept 
up  a  continued  fire  of  musketry  against  the  ramparts  of  the 
castle,  which  the  Turks  answered  from  their  great  guns. — 
Unhappily,  the  vigilance  of  the  assailants  was  not  equal  to 
their  bravery.     It  was  impossible  to  induce  them  to  take 


206  HISTORY  OF  THE 

proper  measures  for  preventing  a  surprise,  and  this  negli- 
gence exposed  them  to  a  bitter  affront.  Isouf  Pacha  had 
retreated  into  the  castle  of  the  Morea,  which  with  one,  on 
the  opposite  coast  of  Romelio,  defends  the  entrance  of  the 
Gulf  of  Lepanto,  and  the  strait  known  by  the  name  of  the 
Little  Dardanelles.  Quitting  this  place  on  the  15th  of  No- 
vember at  noon,  with  only  four  hundred  horse  and  foot,  and 
marching  in  the  rear  of  the  Greeks,  Isouf  was  not  perceived 
until  he  entered  the  gates,  and  commenced  an  attack.  The 
garrison  of  the  citadel  immediately  sallied,  and  after  a  short 
and  tumultuary  conflict  in  the  streets,  the  Christians  were 
entirely  routed.  Mavrocordato  and  Caradja,  escaped  with 
difficulty  to  a  boat  which  conveyed  them  back  to  Missolon- 
ghi ;  their  cannon,  baggage,  and  a  magazine  containing  fif- 
teen hundred  muskets,  fell  into  the  hands  of  the  Turks. — 
This  action  did  honour  to  the  vigour  and  military  talents  of 
Isouf  Pacha  ;  and  it  was  the  third  time  he  had  raised  the 
siege  of  Patras,  by  completely  dispersing  the  corps  by  which 
it  was  invested.  He  is  son  to  the  famous  Ishmael,  Bey  of 
Seres,  who,  from  an  Albanian  robber,  raised  himself  almost 
to  the  condition  of  an  independent  prince. 

"  Ipsilanti  had  another  object  in  view,  in  going  to  Argos, 
besides  presiding  over  the  deliberations  of  Congress.  He 
wished  to  push  the  siege  of  Napoli  di  Romania.  Colonel 
Youtier,  a  French  officer  who  then  commanded  the  Greek 
artillery,  had  been  actively  engaged  at  Tripolizza  in  making 
preparations  ;  but  the  means  of  attacking  so  strong  a  for- 
tress were  lamentably  deficient.  A  plan  was  suggested  to 
the  Prince  for  carrying  it  by  assault.  This  was  adopted, 
and  measures  taken  in  consequence,  for  re-assembling  the  ar- 
my. To  effect  this  the  more  expeditiously,  a  report  was  cir- 
culated, that  Napoli  was  on  the  point  of  capitulating,  sure 
that  the  hope  of  sharing  its  spoils,  would  attract  the  pea- 
sants from  all  quarters  ;  and  not  less  than  twelve  thousand  of 
them  were  in  fact  said  to  have  passed  through  Argos  in  a 
few  days  after  Scaling  ladders  were  accordingly  prepared, 
and  on  the  night  of  the  15th  of  December,  every  thing  being 
ready,  the  troops  and  ships  of  war  having  taken  up  their  re- 
spective stations,  the  following  arrangements  were  made. 
Nikitas,  with  five  hundred  men,  was  to  scale  the  walls  on  the 
east  side  :  a  hundred  and  fifty  European  volunteers,  with  Ba- 
listo's  corps,  were  to  support  his  attack,  and  one  company  of 
the  battalion,  under  the  orders  of  Mr.  Justin,  also  a  French- 
.  man,  wa3  destined  to  assail  the  Palamida,  seated  on  a  moun- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  207 

lain,  which  looks  down  on  the  town,  commanded  both  the 
sea  and  adjacent  plain.     This  was,  however,  only  meant  as 
a  demonstration,  to  divert  the  attention  of  the  Turks.     Ya- 
thraco,  chief  of  the  contingent  from  Mistra,  was  in  reserve. 
One  hundred  sail  of  vessels,  and  fifty  armed  boats,  were  to 
co-operate  by  attacking  the  fort.     Three  thousand  Hydriotes 
and  Spezziotes  were  embarked  on  board  the  boats  with  in- 
tention to  land.     This  project,  too  bcld  and  complicated  for 
the  Greeks,  and  presenting  but  slender  chances  of  success, 
was  only  executed   in  part.     The  columns  were  put  in  mo- 
tion on  the  16th,  at  one  o'clock  in  the  morning  :  that  of  Ni- 
kitas  and  Balisto,  carried  the  scaling  ladders  to  within  two 
yards  of  the  ditch,  and  remained  there  for  nearly  an  hour, 
waiting  the  signal  of  attack,  without  being  perceived  by  the 
Turks,  although  the  moon  was  shining  with  great  brilliancy. 
At  length  the  Mussulmen  began  to  give  some  signs  of  life, 
by  sounding  their  rude  military  music,  which  was  soon  fol- 
lowed by  a  brisk  discharge  of  cam: on  and  musketry.     Ipsi- 
lanti  then  caused  the  signal  to  be  given ;  but  the  Greeks,  af- 
ter a  general  volley,  which  only  served  to  show  the  enemy 
where  the  men  had  retired  behind  the  rocks,  subsequently- 
dispersed    themselves  over  the  plain.      The   fleet  did  not 
make  any  attack,  neither  did  Colocotroni ;  each  party  wait- 
ing till  the  'other  should  begin.     Balisto,  with  the  French  and 
German  volunteers,  and  a  part  of  his  own  battalion,  remain- 
ed for  a  considerable  time  exposed  to  a  hot  fire,  not  more 
than  fifty  paces  from  the  ramparts,  and  then  fell  back  slowly, 
and  in  good  order.     The  Turks,  emboldened  by  the  retreat 
of  their  adversaries,  made  a  sortie,  repulsed  Justin's  party, 
which  had  kept  its  ground  after  the  flight  of  Colocotroni's 
division,  seized  the  scaling  ladders,  and  bore  them  off  in  tri- 
umph.    The  result  of  this  affair  ought  to  have  convinced  the 
Greeks  how  imprudent  it  is  to  attempt  great  or  perilous  en- 
terprises, with  raw  troops,  unaccustomed  to  brave  danger. 
Fortunately,  the  loss  of  the  assailants  was  trifling,  and  fell 
almost  exclusively  on  the  foreign  auxiliaries  and  Balisto's 
troops — these  two  corps  had  thirty  men  killed  and  wounded, 
"  After  the  above  check,  Prince  Demetrius  went  to  Ar- 
gos,  where  frequent  meetings  of  the  deputies,  who  had  col- 
lected there  from  various  points  of  the  confederation,  took 
place  at  his  quarters :   these  continued  until  the  arrival  a£ 
Mavrocordato,  whose  presence,  however,  produced  an  im- 
mediate diminution  in  the  number  of  Ipsilanti's  visitors  :  nor 
$i&  many  days  elapse,  before  it  was  evident  that  he  regard 


208  HISTORY  OF  THE 

ed  the  former  as  a  rival.  Despairing,  therefore,  of  being 
able  to  carry  his  plans  into  effect,  and  not  wishing  to  expose 
himself  to  further  humiliation,  his  whole  attention  was  now 
directed  to  the  progress  of  the  war,  and  he  departed  soon 
after  for  Corinth,  accompanied  by  Kiamel  Bey,  through 
whose  influence,  it  was  hoped,  that  place  would  shortly  sur- 
render. 

"  Owing  to  the  vicinity  of  Argos  to  Napoli  di  Romania, 
and  the  consequent  interruption  which  might  be  occasioned 
by  the  operations  of  the  siege,  it  was  determined,  after  some 
preliminary  arrangements,  that  the  more  important  delibera- 
tions of  the  Congress  should  be  held  at  Epidaurus,  in  the 
Gulf  of  Egina  ;  to  which  place  the  members  accordingly  re- 
paired early  in  December,  attended  by  Prince  Mavrocordato, 
and  several  other  military  leaders  of  distinction."* 

A  very  serious  disturbance  took  place  at  Zante  in  the 
month  of  November. 

"  It  seems,  that  on  the  12th  ultimo,  an  engagement  took 
place  off  Zante,  between  an  Algerine  brig,  belonging  to  the 
Turkish  fleet,  and  a  squadron  of  eighteen  Greek  vessels. 
The  Algerine  vessel  had  been  separated  from  the  fleet,  and 
surrounded  by  the  Greek  squadron.  Finding  it  impossible 
to  beat  off  so  superior  a  force,  she  kept  up  a  running  fight, 
steering  towards  the  land,  which  having  approached  suffi- 
ciently near,  an  attempt  was  made  to  anchor^  but  from  mis- 
management, or  the  nature  of  the  ground,  did  not  succeed, 
and  the  vessel  was  run  on  shore  in  Cheri  Bay,  on  the  south 
side  of  the  island,  about  four  miles  from  the  town.  Thou- 
sands of  the  inhabitants,  and  refugee  Moriote  Greeks,  had  col- 
lected on  the  neighbouring  heights,  to  witness  the  engage- 
ment, part  of  whom  were  armed  with  pistols,  guns,  and 
knives.  As  soon  as  the  Algerine  brig  was  stranded,  the 
Greek  squadron  bore  away,  and  the  crew  commenced  land- 
ing on  a  raft,  but  on  their  approaching  the  shore  the  inhabit- 
ants fired  on  them.  A  detachment  of  eighteen  men  of  the 
eighth  regiment  had  been  sent  out  in  the  morning  by  Lieut. 
Colonel  Duffy,  the  Resident,  to  prevent  the  Turks  breaking 
quarantine  regulations,  in  case  they  landed  ;  this  party  was 
commanded  by  Lieut.  Hill,  assisted  by  Lieut.  Wright,  of  the 
Royal  Engineers.  Staff  Surgeon  Thomas,  President  of  the 
Health  Office,  whose  immediate  duty  it  was  to  have  superin- 
tended the  proceedings,  was  confined  to  his  bed  through 

*Bla<juiero,p.  100— 17& 


GREEK  RESOLUTION.  209 

fever.  The  Zantiots  being  in  a  state  of  open  insurrection, 
and  having  fired  on  the  Turks,  Lieut.  Hill,  thought  it 
right  to  endeavour  to  intimidate  them,  and  ordered  two  sol- 
diers to  advance  before  the  others,  and  discharge  their 
muskets  in  the  air,  whereupon  the  Zantiots  instantly  fired  on 
the  military,  and  wounded  a  soldier.  Seeing  the  impossibili- 
ty of  resisting  so  many  thousand  armed  men,  and  being  in 
want  of  ball  cartridges,  Lieutenant  'Wright  advised  a  retreat 
to  a  neighbouring  height  and  house,  where  a  position  might 
be  taken  by  the  party  :  on  their  retiring  for  this  purpose,  the 
Zantiots  pursued  and  fired  on  them,  the  wounded  soldier 
was  again  struck  by  a  ball,  which  killed  him,  and  his  body 
Was  abandoned.  Lieut.  Wright  was  severely  wounded  in 
the  thigh,  in  the  act  of  entering  the  house,  where  the  de- 
tachment succeeded  in  defending  themselves.  Reports  of 
these  events  having  reached  the  town,  a  company  of  fifty 
men  were  instantly  sent  out  to  the  scene  of  action  ;  they  re- 
lieved the  detachment  which  was  surrounded  by  the  Zanti- 
ots, who  even  had  the  temerity  to  oppose  resistance  to  the 
reinforcement,  but  dispersed  precipitately,  after  two  vollies 
from  the  soldiers,  leaving  two  or  three  killed,  and  carrying 
away  several  wounded.  The  body  of  the  soldier  was  dis- 
covered to  have  been  outraged  in  the  most  barbarous  man- 
ner, his  breast  bone  beaten  in,  accoutrements  plundered,  &c. 
The  crew  of  the  Algerine  vessel  were  escorted  to  the  Laza- 
retto near  the  town,  where  they  remained  until  embarked  on 
board  the  Turkish  fleet,  which  arrived  two  days  afterwards 
in  the  harbour.  The  stranded  vessel  soon  went  to  pieces; 
some  of  her  brass  guns,  spars,  and  ropes  were  subsequently 
saved  and  lodged  in  the  government  stores,  and  some 
months  afterwards  were  sent  to  the  government  at  Constan- 
tinople. 

"Martial  law  was  proclaimed,  and  despatches  sent  off  fo 
the  seat  of  government.  Sir  Frederick  Adam  was  Lord 
High  Commissioner,  pro  tempore,  in  the  absence  of  Sir  Tho- 
mas Maitland ;  he  came  to  Zante  without  delay,  caused  two 
regiments  to  be  sent  from  the  other  islands,  and  directed  all 
the  naval  force  on  the  station  to  proceed  here.  Sir  Frede- 
rick Adam  ordered  a  general  disarming  of  the  inhabitants, 
and  about  forty  thousand  guns,  pistols,  and  blunderbusses, 
was  delivered  up  by  their  owners  into  the  government  stores 
in  the  castle.  Detachments  of  troops  were  still  scouring 
the  interior;  but  the  people  seem  to  have  completely  re- 
turned to  their  senses,  and  offer  no  opposition  to  any  of  the 


210  HISTORY  OF  THE 

public  orders.  Five  individuals  were  hanged,  and  their 
bodies  gibbeted  on  the  hills,  surrounding  the  town  and  har- 
bour :  they  were  convicted  by  a  court-martial  of  having  been 
present  at  the  time  the  troops  were  fired  on,  and  of  taking 
an  active  part  in  the  insurrection.  Several  persons  known 
to  be  disaffected  to  the  government,  were  likewise  arrested, 
and  placed  in  the  castle.  In  short,  such  measures  were 
adopted  and  enforced,  that  there  was  no  fear  of  a  recurrence 
of  such  disagreeable  events.  The  Zantiots  were  led  away 
by  their  enthusiasm  for  the  Greek  cause,  and  encouraged  by 
the  lenity  observed  towards  them  by  the  government  on 
former  occasions ;  the  severe  and  prompt  example  now  made, 
will  show  how  dangerous  and  fatal  such  acts  of  rebellion 
must  inevitably  prove."* 


CHAPTER  XVI. 

Congress  of  Epidaurus. — Deputies  assembled  there. — Pro- 
mulgation of  the  Political  Code. — Address  to  the  People. — 
Nominations  of  President  and  3Iinisters. — Military  opera- 
tions before  Corinth. — Duplicity  of  Kiamil  Bey. — Pa- 
nouria  of  Salona. — Retirement  of  the  Albanians. — Sur- 
render of  the  Acrocorinthus. —  The  Seat  of  Government  is 
established  at  Corinth. — General  state  of  the  Confedera- 
tion.— Arrival  of  Prince  Mavrocordato. — Decrees  of  the 
Executive. — Military  organization. — Disposal  of  the 
Forces. — Proclamation  to  the  People. — Catastrophe  at 
Scio,  and  reflections  suggested  by  that  event. — Destruction 
of  the  Capitan  Pacha. — Fire  ships. 

;  ^  coo  "  The  assemblage  of  a  Congress  at  Epidaurus," 
(we  borrow  from  Mr.  Blaquiere,)  "has  been  justly 
regarded  as  a  new  era  in  the  Greek  Revolution,  and  were 
there  any  doubts  as  to  the  real  cause  of  many  of  those  dis- 
orders which  occurred  before  this  event  took  place,  they 
would  be  removed,  by  merely  marking  the  subsequent  cha- 
racter assumed  by  the  war,  as  well  as  the  affairs  of  the  con- 
federation generally. 

"  The  anxiety  of  all  classes  to  witness  the  formation  of  a 
government,  was  strongly  evinced  in  the  eagerness  with 

, ,,, :  *  Green's  Sketches,  p.  76—79. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  211 

which  deputies  were  elected  throughout  the  country  and 
sent  to  Argos.  Besides  Prince  Mavrocordato  and  the  mili- 
tary chiefs,  the  number  of  representatives  who  had  reached 
Epidaurus  by  the  middle  of  December  exceeded  sixty,  con- 
sisting of  ecclesiastics,  landed  proprietors,  merchants,  and 
civilians,  who  had  for  the  most  part  received  a  liberal  edu- 
cation in  the  west  of  Europe. 

"  The  first  act  of  a  Congress  thus  met,  to  re-establish  in- 
stitutions, which  may  be  said  to  have  ceased  with  the  Roman 
conquest,  about  twenty-one  centuries  before,  was  that  of 
naming  a  commission,  including  the  most  enlightened  mem- 
bers, to  draw  up  a  political  code  :  the  remainder  being  oc- 
cupied in  examining  into  the  general  state  of  the  nation, 
"ascertaining  its  resources,  and  devising  the  best  mode  of  com- 
mencing the  second  campaign,  with  proper  effect. 

"  Although  the  declaration  of  independence*  was  sent  forth 
on  the  first  of  January,  and  the  draft  of  a  Constitution  pre- 
sented at  the  same  time,  yet,  as  the  various  articles  required 
examination  and  discussion,  it  was  not  promulgated  till  the 
27th,  when  the  code  passed  into  a  law,  and  was  solemnly 
proclaimed  amidst  the  acclamations  of  the  deputies,  soldie/y 
and  people.     Notwithstanding  the  imperfections  inseparable^ 
from  a  work  thus  hastily  prepared,  it  has  been  much  admired 
for  its  moderation  and  firmness,    while  the  framers,  greatly 
to  their  credit,  knew  how  to  avoid  more  than  one  glaritf4* 
error  with  which  the  publicists  of  Europe  have  reproached 
the  Spanish  Constitution  of  1812.     Aware  of  the  difficulty 
of  their  task;  and  convinced  moreover,  that  a  perfect  sys- 
tem of  legislation  can  only  be  the   work  of  time  and  perse- 
verance, the  Greek  code  was  wisely  left  open  to   the  im- 
provement and  revision,  which  the  genius  of  the  people,  and 
future  experience,   should  render  necessary.     While  all  the 
objections  that  might  have  been  urged  against  the  form  of 
Lr^vernment,  are  obviated  hy  the  simple  precaution  of  its  be- 
ing styled  "provisional;"  the  promulgation  of  the  code,  was 
accompanied  by  an  address  to  the  people  of  Greece,  setting 
forth  the  motives  for  shaking  off  the  Turkish  yoke,  and  con- 
taining a  triumphant  reply  to  trios;1   who   had  confounded 
their  cause  with  that  of  other  countries." 

By  the  constitution,!  the  established  religion  of  Greece  is 

*  For  this  memorable  instrument,  as  well  ae  several  other  import- 
ant state  papers,  see  Appendix. 

t  Modern  Traveller,  Part  II.  p.  14?, 


212  HISTORY  OF  THE 

declared  to  be  that  of  the  Orthodox  Eastern  Church,  with 
full  toleration  of  all  other  forms  of  worship.  The  govern- 
ment is  composed  of  a  Senate,  and  an  executive  body.  The 
Senators  to  be  chosen  annually.  The  executive  power  is 
composed  of  five  members,  taken  from  the  legislative  body, 
and  the  President  and  Vice-President  are  annual  officers. 
The  judicial  power  formed  of  eleven  members,  chosen  by  the 
government,  is  declared  to  be  independent  of  both  the  se- 
nate and  the  executive.  Civil  and  criminal  justice  is  to  be 
regulated  according  to  the  legislation  of  the  Greek  empe- 
rors; and  with  respect  to  all  mercantile  affairs,  the  French 
commercial  code  is  to  have  the  force  of  law  in  Greece.* 
Such  are  the  leading  features  of  the  Greek  constitution, 
which,  upon  the  whole,  reflects  great  credit  on  its  authors 
by  its  moderation  and  enlightened  spirit.f  Its  grand  defect 
is  that,  in  common  with  all  republican  theories,  it  imposes 
shackles  on  the  executive  power,  scarcely  compatible  with 
an  efficient  discharge  of  the  functions  of  government,  more 
especially  under  the  exigencies  of  such  a  contest.  J     All  ex- 

•j  *  The  Greek  code  referred  to  is  known  under  the  name  of  the 
JBasilics,  and  was  the  work  of  the  emperors,  Basil  I.,  Leon  the  Phi- 
losopher, his  son,  and  Constantine  Porphyrogenitus,  his  grandson. — 
See  Gibbon,  c.  xlviii.  This  code  had  not  altogether  ceased  to  be 
in  force  among  the  Greeks.  The  French  commercial  code  was  first 
established  in  some  of  the  maritime  towns  of  the  Levant  in  1817,  the 
permission  of  the  Turkish  government  having  been  obtained  by  pur- 
chase by  the  Greek  merchants.  Two  Greek  translations  of  this 
Gode  have  been  published;  one  at  Constantinople,  the  other  at  Paris, 
in  1820. 

t  "  Article  2  secures  to  every  individual  of  the  Christian  faith, 
whether  a  native  or  naturalized  foreigner,  an  equal  enjoyment  of  every 
political  right ;  a  liberality  which  the  Spanish  revolutionists  either 
did  not  possess  nor  durst  not  display.  Article  4G  gives  every  periodi- 
cal writer  a  free  entry  in  the  sittings  of  the  legislative  body ;  an 
enactment  more  liberal,  however,  than  prudent  or  convenient  during  a 
national  struggle.  Not  only  torture,  but  confiscation,  is  abolished  by 
Article  99 ;  and  by  Article  107,  the  government  charges  itself  with 
providing  for  the  widows  and  orphans  of  those  who  die  in  defending 
their  country." 

\  "  No  declaration  of  war,  uor  any  treaty  of  peace,  can  be  made 
without  the  participation  of  the  senate.  In  like  manner,  every 
agreement,  of  whatever  mature,  between  the  executive  and  a  foreign 
power,  must  be  previously  approved  by  the  Senate,  except  in  the 
case  of  a  very  short  armistice." — Article  40.  And  even  in  such 
case,  the  executive  is  under  the  obligation  of  communicating  it 
to  the  senate. — Article  77  "  The  senate  has  the  right  of  approving 
a  military  promotion  which  the  government  proposes." — Article 
42.    "  It  is  likewise  entitled  to  decree,  on  the  proposal  of  govern 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  213 

perience  proves  that  a  state  is  in  more  danger,  at  such  a 
crisis,  from  the  cabals  of  a  faction,  than  from  the  ascendancy 
of  any  too  powerful  citizen.  It  has  been  proposed  to  con- 
centrate the  executive  power  in  a  triennial  president,  and  to 
make  the  senate  re-eligible  every  other  year.  The  rejection 
of  this  plan  discovered  an  unseasonable  jealousy  on  the  part 
of  the  national  representatives  ;  and  the  issue  has  shewn 
how  much  easier  it  is  to  frame  a  constitution  than  to  create  a 
government.  Up  to  the  present  time,  the  Greeks  may  be 
said  to  be  without  a  ruler,  for  the  executive  has  not  been  in- 
vested with  the  power  to  rule.  That  power,  it  would  seem, 
must  either  originate  in  usurpation,  or  in  concessions  made 
in  the  hour  of  public  danger,  by  people  willing  to  compro- 
mise their  rights  in  order  to  obtain  efficient  protection. 

"  The  office  of  president  of  the  executive  body  was  confer- 
red by  the  congress  upon  Prince  Mavrocordato,  whose  ta- 
lents and  extensive  information  were  eminently  displayed  in 
aiding  the  commission  appointed  to  draw  up  the  constitution.* 
Demetrius  Ipsilanti  was  invited  to  preside  over  the  senate, 
but  he  declined  the  proffered  honour,  having,  it  is  supposed, 
conceived  himself  to  be   entitled  to  fill  the   highest  station  : 

mc-nt,  the  distinguished  recompenses  due  to  patriotic  services." — Art. 
43.  "  It  is  to  settle  a  new  system  of  money  to  be  struck  at  the  national 
mint,  under  the  direction  of  government. — Art.  44.  "  The  senate  is  ex- 
pressly forbidden  to  accede  to  any  transaction  which  threatens  the  po- 
litical existence  of  the  nation.  On  the  contrary,  if  it  perceives  the  ex- 
ecutive engaged  in  negotiations  of  this  nature,  the  senate  is  to  prosecute 
the  president,  and  after  his  condemnation,  to  declare  his  charge  for- 
feited in  the  face  of  the  nation." — Art.  45.  By  articles  63  and  64,  the 
executive  is  authorised  to  contract  loans,  and  to  pledge  the  national  pro- 
perty for  them,  "consulting  the  senate  ;"  and  to  alienate,  under  the 
same  condition,  a  portion  of  this  property,  according  to  the  wants  of  the 
state.  By  Art.  83.  it  is  provided,  that,  "  as  soon  as  an  accusation  against 
one  of  the  members  of  the  executive  is  received,  the  accuser  is  consider- 
ed as  stripped  of  his  office,*'  and  his  trial  is  to  proceed.  Thus,  the  no- 
minal inviolability  of  the  executive  power,  "  taken  collectively,"  (Art. 
54)  is  completely  nullified  ;  and  the  senate,  by  reserving  to  themselves 
the  legal  attributes  of  levying  war,  approving  of  military  promotion, 
and  settling  the  mintage,  is  in  fact,  the  fountain  of  honour  as  well  as  the 
depository  of  all  real  power. 

Mavrocordato 's  name  is  affixed  to  the  provisional  constitution  as 
President  of  the  Congress.  Then  follow  the  names  of  Adam  Douca, 
(Dacas.)  Athan,  Canacaris,  Alexander  Naxius,  Alexis  Zimpouropoulo, 
and  fifty-four  others,  among  which  occur  those  of  Germanus,  archbishop 
of  Patras,  the  bishops  of  Litza  and  Agrafa,  Toumbosi,  and  Talantium. 
Tli  Negri,  J.  Logotheti,  J.  Orlando,  Petro  Bey  Mavromichali,  J.  Co- 
letti,  &c. 

19* 


214  HISTORY  OF  THE 

and  the  office  was  bestowed  on  Petro  Bey  Mavromichalr. 
The  other  members  of  the  central  government  were  Atha- 
uasius  Canacari,  vice-president,  Anagnosti  Pappaiannopoulo, 
John  Orlando,  and  John  Logotheti.  Theodore  Negri  was 
appointed  first  secretary  of  state. 

Having  decided  on  the  civil  and  political  rights  of  the  na- 
tion, the  next  object  of  Congres  was  to  select  five  members 
to  form  an  executive  ;  and  in  order  that  still  greater  effect 
might  be  given  to  the  measures  of  the  new  government,  min- 
isters were  named  to  superintend  the  various  departments  of 
war,  finance,  public  instruction,  interior,  and  police  ;  a  com- 
mission of  three  individuals  from  Hydra,  Spezzia,  and  Ipsara, 
was  also  appointed  to  direct  the  naval  affairs. 

"  While  the  National  Congress  were  pursuing  their  ardu- 
ous labours  at  Epidaurus,  the  capture  of  Corinth  became  an 
object  of  increasing  solicitude  and  importance  to  the  execu- 
tive. A  large  force  was  therefore  collected  before  that 
place,  but  such  is  the  impregnable  nature  of  its  position, 
that  every  effort  was  made  to  induce  the  garrison,  whose 
number  did  not  exceed  six  hundred,  to  capitulate.  It  was 
to  facilitate  this  object,  that  Kiamil  Bey  had  been  brought 
from  Tripolizza.  Owing  to  their  great  wealth  and  conse- 
quent means  of  bribery,  the  family  of  this  Turk  had  go- 
verned Corinth,  and  the  surrounding  districts,  for  nearly  a 
century  ;  and  from  their  influence  at  Constantinople,  every 
succeeding  heir  considered  his  claim  to  the  government  as 
an  hereditary  right  ;  nor  was  there  any  part  of  the  Morea  in 
which  the  Greek  population  were  so  much  exposed  to  extor- 
tion and  tyranny.  Happening  to  be  absent  when  the  insur- 
rection broke  out,  Kiamil  Bey  took  refuge  at  Tripolizza, 
leaving  his  family  at  Corinth.  Anxious  to  save  them,  no 
sooner  had  the  capital  fallen,  than  he  affected  to  become  a 
warm  advocate  of  the  Greek  cause,  drank  to  its  success  at 
the  table  of  Ipsilanti,  and  even  promised  to  induce  the  gar- 
rison to  surrender  if  he  was  only  permitted  to  approach  the 
walls.  Now  that  this  favour  had  been  accorded,  the  cunning 
Mussulman,  who  was  secretly  informed  of  the  preparations 
of  Chourschid  Pacha  at  Albania,  contrived  to  elude  the  pro- 
mises made  at  Tripolizza  under  various  pretences,  until  vio- 
lently threatened  by  Colocotroni  and  the  other  chiefs,  when 
he  was  forced  to  write  a  letter  to  his  wife  and  mother,  or- 
dering them  to  enter  into  negotiation  with  the  Greeks.  He 
had,  however,  found  means  to  apprize  them  of  what  was  pass* 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  215 

ing,  aud  thus  prevented  all  the  effect  which  his  letter  might 
have  otherwise  produced. 

The  arrival  of  Panouria,  of  Salona,  a  popular  chief  of  that 
neighbourhood,  gave  a  new  and  more  favourable  turn  to  the 
operations  before  Corinth.  Originally  a  peasant  of  Mount 
Parnassus,  he  had  in  early  life  been  driven  to  the  necessity  of 
drawing  the  sword  to  avenge  the  cruelty  of  a  Turkish  Aga, 
and  greatly  distinguished  himself  at  the  head  of  some  brave 
Arnatolians  ever  since  the  insurrection  began.  Having  re- 
proached the  chiefs  and  soldiery  with  their  inactivity,  Panou- 
ria suggested  various  projects  by  which  the  Acropolis  of  Co- 
rinth might  be  carried  :  finding,  however,  but  little  disposition 
to  adopt  them,  he  determined  to  open  a  communication  with 
the  Albanian  portion  of  the  garrison ;  this  plan  succeeded  so 
Well,  that  a  treaty  was  concluded,  by  which  they  consented 
to  withdraw,  on  condition  of  being  allowed  to  return  home 
with  their  arms,  and  a  gratification  in  money.  These  terms 
being  readily  granted,  they  descended  from  the  citadel  to 
the  number  of  two  hundred,  on  the  22nd  of  January  ;  and 
having  been  escorted  to  the  beach,  were  embarked  in  boats, 
which  transported  them  to  the  opposite  shore  of  the  gulf. 

"  The  retirement  of  the  Albanians,  having  removed  all 
farther  hope  of  holding  out  on  the  part  of  the  Turks,  they 
also  declared  themselves  ready  to  capitulate.  Such,  how- 
ever, was  the  altered  state  of  things,  that  they  were  now  ob- 
liged to  accept  the  terms  granted  by  the  besiegers.  It  was 
then  agreed  that  th*  garrison  should  lay  down  their  arms, 
and  be  conveyed  to  the  coast  of  Asia  Minor  in  transports 
provided  by  the  government  of  Greece.  The  first  part  of 
these  conditions  was  carried  into  effect  on  the  26th,  and 
preparations  made  to  execute  the  second,  which  was  also 
fulfilled  to  a  certain  extent  :  but  owing  to  a  delay  in  the  ar- 
rival of  transports,  the  peasants  who  had  been  exposed  to 
the  innumerable  exactions  and  oppressive  acts  of  Kiamel 
Bey,  rushed  into  the  citadel,  and  gratified  their  irresistible 
thirst  for  revenge  on  many  of  the  Turks.*     The  conduct  of 

*  The  following  anecdote  is  extracted  from  a  Memoir  of  the  War 
j'n  Greece,  by  Colonel  Voutier,  whose  name  has  already  appeared  in 
a  former  chapter  : — "  While  I  was  walking  in  the  fields  near  Corinth, 
a  few  days  after  its  capture,  an  old  man,  who,  taking  care  of  a  flock  ot 
sheep,  asked  me  when  Bekir  Aga  was  to  quit  the  fortress.  "  Why  ?"  1 
replied  with  a  melancholy  presentiment  of  his  motives.  "  To  wait  for 
him3':  said  he.  at  a  particular  place  which  he  named.     a  An  !  my  friend/ 


216  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Ipsilanti  on  this,  as  on  every  former  occasion,  was  marked 
by  the  greatest  humanity,  and  though  his  interposition  could 
not  entirely  prevent  the  effervescence  of  popular  feeling,  it 
soon  had  the  effect  of  calming  the  passions  of  the  multitude.* 

"  The  reputed  wealth  of  Kiamel  Bey,  without  any  refer- 
ence to  his  former  tyrannies  and  recent  duplicity,  was  thought 
a  sufficient  plea  for  his  being  retained  as  a  prisoner  :  but  it  was 
in  Vain  that  the  Greeks  urged  him  to  disclose  where  his  trea- 
sures were  deposited,  as  he  maintained  an  obstinate  silence 
on  this  point. 

"  Associated  as  Corinth  has  been,  with  all  that  is  great 
1099  or  glorious  in  Grecian  history:  dominating  the  gulfs 
of  Egina  and  Lepanto,  while  its  strength  as  a  milita- 
ry position,  is  unrivalled  by  any  other  in  the  Morea,  the  ex- 
ecutive naturally  took  advantage  of  its  capture,  to  establish 
the  seat  of  government  there.  This  event  took  place  on  the 
27th  of  February,  and  it  may  truly  be  said,  that  on  their 
reaching  Corinth,  those  whom  the  legislators  of  Epidaurus 
had  appointed  to  watch  over  the  destinies  of  Greece,  had  lit— 

added  the  old  Greek,  "  you  are  happy  not  to  know  the  Turks ;  the  earth 
must  be  purged  of  this  cursed  stain.  It  offends  God  and  nature.  This 
Bekir-Aga  one  day  asked  my-son  for  some  milk  to  refresh  himself ;  but 
it  was  not  to  allay  his  thirst  that  the  request  was  made,  he  had  a  differ- 
ent object  in  view  :  unhappily  for  my  son,  he  was  handsome  :  resisting 
the  infidel,  Bekir  seized  his  ataghan,  and  my  son's  clothes  were  torn. — 
Exasperated  by  this  treatment,  the  boy  took  up  a  stone  and  threw  it  at 
the  Aga,  who  killed  him  on  the  spot.  And  all  this  happened  under  my 
own  eyes  in  the  midst  of  these  very  sheep." — Having  ended  his  story, 
the  shepherd  scraped  the  earth  with  his  staff,  and  looking  at  me  wist- 
fully, exclaimed,  "  Here  are  his  bones." 

*  While  the  Turkish  garrison  were  embarking  in  the  gulf  of  Egina, 
an  English  transport  arrived  at  Vostizza  under  the  protection  of  a  brig 
of  war  ;  these  vessels  were  sent  from  Corfu  to  receive  the  wife  and  ha- 
rem of  Chourschid  Pacha,  left  at  Tripolizza,  when  he  was  called  on  to 
march  into  Albania.  These  women  had  been  treated  with  the  greatest 
respect  during  the  assault.  The  negotiation  for  their  ransom  was  car- 
ried on  under  the  immediate  auspices  of  the  late  Lord  High  Commissioner 
of  the  Ionian  islands,  and  though  Chourschid  is  said  to  have  offered  an 
immense  sum,  they  were  liberated  for  about  60,000  Spanish  dollars. — 
Knowing,  as  the  Greeks  of  the  Morea  did,  that  all  the  riches  possessed 
fey  their  former  tyrant,  had  been  wrung  from  themselves,  it  was  natural 
for  them  to  be  high  in  their  demands.  ~  It  is  said  that  Giorgaki  the  se- 
cond son  of  Petros  Prince  of  Maina,  a  very  fine  young  man,  became 
enamoured  of  the  legitimate  wife  of  Chourschid,  a  beautiful  young 
Giorgian,  and  that  his  love  was  returned.  A  person  who  saw  them 
part,  for  Giorgaki  superintended  the  embarkation,  represents  the  scene 
as  very  affecting  and  even  romantic. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  217 

the  more  to  depend  on,  than  the  justice  of  her  cause  and 
constancy  of  the  people.  Destitute  of  resources  at  home, 
anathematized  by  the  Holy  Alliance  assembled  at  Laybach, 
and  exposed  to  the  mistaken  policy  adopted  by  a  late  minis- 
ter of  England,  they  had  nothing  but  persecution  to  antici- 
pate from  the  Christian  potentates.  On  the  other  hand,  the 
preparations  of  the  enemy  were  such  as  to  appal  ordinary 
minds.  The  reduction  of  Ioannina,  and  the  death  of  Alt 
Pacha,  had  placed  a  very  large  disposable  force  in  the  hands 
of  Chourschid  Pacha,  together  with  the  immense  treasures 
of  the  Albanian  tyrant :  an  army  had  collected  at  Larissa  to 
invade  the  Peloponnesus,  while  a  formidable  fleet  was  ready 
to  lea  re  the  Dardanelles.  In  addition  to  all  these  causes  of 
despondency,  it  is  needless  to  say,  that  there  still  remained 
a  considerable  degree  of  jealousy  among  several  of  the  pri- 
mates ;  and  that  those  among  them,  entrusted  with  local 
authority  or  influence,  were  not  as  yet  fully  convinced  of  the 
importance  of  union  and  obedience  to  the  new  government, 
as  the  interest  of  the  nation  required. 

Ipsilanti,  who  had  suffered  from  a  severe  attack  of  typhus 
fever,  after  the  fall  of  Corinth,  but  was  now  restored  to 
health,  did  not  conceal  his  disappointment  on  hearing  of 
Mavrocordato's  nomination  to  the  presidency,  which  he  con- 
ceived to  be  due  to  himself.  Instead,  therefore,  of  accept- 
ing the  place  of  President  of  the  Legislative  Assembly,  he 
accompanied  Nikitas  and  a  body  of  troops  destined  to  watch 
the  motions  of  the  enemy  at  Zetouni,  having  previously  re- 
nounced the  title  of  Generalissimo,  assumed  on  his  first 
coming  to  Greece. 

"  On  the  arrival  of  the  President  from  Hydra,  where  he 
had  proceeded  to  urge  the  necessity  of  sending  divisions  of 
the  fleet  towards  the  Dardanelles  and  gulf  of  Lepanto,  a 
system  of  order  and  activity  commenced,  which  had  been 
hitherto  unknown  in  the  confederation.  As  to  the  spirit 
which  animated  the  new  government,  it  might  be  easily  traced 
in  the  decrees  which  followed  the  transfer  to  Corinth.  It 
was  while  the  Porte  was  meditating  fresh  schemes  of  ven- 
geance, and  preparing  to  attack  Greece  by  sea  and  land,  that, 
a  decree  was  issued  to  abolish  slavery,  as  well  as  the  sale  of 
the  Turkish  prisoners  who  should  henceforth  fall  into  their 
hands,  which  was  interdicted  under  the  severest  pen;Uties, 
and  ordering  that  they  should  be  treated  as  those  of  the  most 
civilized  countries.  Another  edict,  regulated  the  compen- 
sations for  military  service,  as  also  the  provisions  to  be  made 


218  HISTORY  OF  THE 

for  the  widows  and  orphans  of  those  who  should  fall  in  bat- 
tle :  while  a  third  established  a  regular  system  of  internal 
administration  for  the  provinces." 

"  Menaced  on  every  side  by  forces  so  infinitely  superior  in 
number  to  their  own,  and  headed  by  the  most  able  of  the  in- 
iidel  chiefs,  the  necessity  of  organizing  the  army  on  the 
European  system  now  became  more  apparent  than  ever. 
Although  the  means  of  effecting  this  great  object  were  so 
slender,  still  it  was  of  importance  to  make  a  beginning:  a 
corps  to  be  styled  the  first  regiment  of  the  line  was  therefore 
formed,  and  many  of  the  officers  were  selected  from  the 
volunteers  who  had  joined  the  Christian  standard  from  the 
west  of  Europe.  There  being,  however,  a  much  larger 
number  of  these  than  was  required,  they  were  embodied  into 
a  second  corps,  which  assumed  the  name  of  Philhellenes. 
The  organization  and  command  of  the  regular  troops  were 
entrusted  to  General  Norman,  a  distinguished  German  of- 
ficer, who  had  just  arrived  from  Marseilles  with  a  number 
of  volunteers. 

"  It  has  already  been  stated  that  Ipsilanti  and  Nikitas  had 
gone  towards  Zetouni :  a  second  corps  of  three  thousand 
men  were  sent  to  re-establish  the  blockade  of  Patras,  under 
Colocotroni  :  and  a  smaller  body  of  troops  was  detached  to 
Athens  under  the  French  Colonel  Voutier,  in  order  to  re- 
duce the  Acropolis  of  that  place.  An  addition  was  also 
made  to  the  force  before  Napoli  di  Romania,  and  every 
precaution  adopted  to  secure  its  blockade  by  sea.  As  to 
the  garrisons  of  Modon  and  Coron,  they  continued  to  be 
closely  invested  by  the  armed  peasantry  of  the  neighbouring 
villages. 

"  The  commencement  of  the  second  campaign  for  the 
emancipation  of  Greece,  was  marked  by  an  event  at  once 
the  most  atrocious  and  terrific  that  the  historians  of  the 
present  age  will  have  to  record.  It  is  scarcely  necessary  to 
name  the  desolation  of  Scio,  and  massacre  of  its  ill-fated  in- 
habitants. This  fertile  beautiful  island,  the  chosen  asylum 
of  modern  Greek  learning,  not  less  distinguished  for  the 
wealth  and  industry,  than  the  hospitable  urbanity  of  the 
natives,  had  long  been  singled  out  as  an  object  of  spoliation 
and  vengeance  by  the  infidels,  who  only  waited  for  a  pretext, 
no  matter  how  trifling,  to  carry  their  nefarious  design  into 
execution.  However  painful  the  sensations  may  be,  to  which  a 
recurrence  to  the  above  heart-rending  tragedy  must  give  rise, 
a  knowledge  of  the  circumstances  attending  its  perpetration 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  219 

is  highly  important,  as  enabling  the  most  superficial  observer 
to  form  a  correct  estimate  of  the  great  question  at  issue,  be- 
tween the  Greeks  and  their  oppressors  ;  while  a  slight  ex- 
amination of  the  leading  facts  will  decide  the  merits  of  a 
charge,  which  has  so  frequently  represented  the  followers  of 
Christ  as  on  a  level  with  those  of  Mahomet,  in  point  of  their 
respective  claims  to  forbearance  and  humanity  during  the 
contest. 

"  The  people  of  Scio  had  been  remarkable  for  their  peace- 
able habits  and  quiet  submission  to  the  Porte,  ever  since  the 
capture  of  Constantinople,  and  although  the  inhabitants  of  a 
spot  where  education  had  made  such  rapid  progress,  could 
not  be  less  interested  in  the  regeneration  of  Greece,  than 
the  rest  of  their  countrymen,  yet,  were  there  many  causes  to 
prevent  them  from  taking  any  part  of  the  revolt  when  it  first 
broke  out.  The  commercial  relations  of  the  island  were 
more  complicated  and  extensive  than  those  of  any  other 
part  of  the  confederation  ;  there  being  scarcely  a  capital  ot 
Europe  without  some  establishments  kept  by  Sciot  mer- 
chants, while  a  very  larue  portion  of  their  wealth  was  locked 
up  at  Constantinople  and  Smyrna  ;  the  trade  between  these 
two  cities  being  almost  exclusively  conducted  by  them. — 
Possessing  such  ample  means  of  ministering  to  the  avarice 
of  their  tyrants,  the  civil  government  had  long  been  confided 
to  the  elders,  whose  administration  was  of  the  most  paternal 
description.  What  with  its  palaces,  country  houses  and  gar- 
dens, its  colleges  and  general  state  of  improvement,  Scio  pre- 
sented so  striking  a  contrast  to  the  other  islands  of  the  Ar- 
chipelago, that  travellers  could  hardly  be  persuaded  it  was 
under  the  same  dominion.  No  wonder,  therefore,  that  such 
a  picture  of  happiness  and  prosperity  should  have  excited  the 
hatred  and  jealousy  of  the  infidels. 

"  Occupied  in  their  commercial  pursuits,  or  in  promoting 
the  cultivation  of  learning  and  science,  there  was  no  attempt 
whatever  made  to  participate  in  the  revolution,  so  that  the 
island  remained  perfectly  tranquil,  until  the  beginning  of 
May,  1821,  when  the  appearance  of  a  small  squadron  of  Ip- 
sariots  off*  the  coast  furnished  the  Aga  or  military  governor 
with  a  pretence  for  commencing  the  same  system  of  intole- 
rable violence,  which  had  been  already  extended  to  Myti- 
lene,  Rhodes,  and  Cyprus.  One  of  the  first  measures  now 
adopted,  was  that  of  seizing  forty  of  the  elders  and  bishops, 
who  were  shut  up  in  the  castle  as  hostages  for  the  good  con- 
duct of  the  people.     A  large  body  of  troops  were  brought 


220  HISTORY  OF  THE 

from  the  neighbouring  coast  of  Asia  Minor  ;  as  in  the  other 
islands,  the  arrival  of  these  lawless  hordes  was  attended  with 
every  species  of  irregularity  and  excess.  In  addition  to  nu- 
merous assassinations,  and  plundering  the  most  wealthy  in- 
habitants, all  the  provisions  that  could  be  found  were  seized 
for  the  use  of  the  garrison,  while  new  imposts  were  levied  to 
pay  the  troops  and  Pacha,  who  had  led  them  to  the  island. 
It  was  not  until  Scio  had  been  a  whole  year  exposed  to  a 
system  like  the  above,  and  when  it  seemed  impossible  any 
longer  to  bear  up  against  it,  that  any  attempt  was  made  to 
rouse  the  people  to  resistance.  Totally  unprovided,  how- 
ever, as  were  the  peasantry,  either  with  arms  or  leaders* 
there  is  no  doubt  but  they  would  have  continued  to  suffer 
all  the  evils  of  their  situation,  had  it  not  been  for  two  adven- 
turers named  Burnia  and  Logotheti,  who,  without  any  pre- 
vious communication  with  the  provisional  government,  and 
merely  to  gratify  views  of  personal  ambition,  concerted  a 
plan  of  revolt.  Landing  from  Samos  on  the  17th  and  18th 
of  March,  at  different  points  of  the  island,  with  a  very  small 
number  of  followers,  they  called  upon  the  people  to  join 
them.  Aware  of  the  disastrous  consequences  which  must 
follow  this  unexpected  descent,  the  elders,  who  were  still  at 
Jarge,  made  every  effort  to  prevent  the  peasantry  from  taking 
any  part  in  the  insurrection.  In  the  meanwhile,  a  strong  de- 
tachment of  cavalry  were  sent  out  by  the  Pacha,  to  oppose 
the  Greeks,  and  on  the  22d  the  number  of  hostages  already 
in  the  citadel  were  doubled,  the  victims  being  selected  from 
the  most  opulent  and  distinguished  inhabitants.  Hearing  on 
the  following  day  that  another  body  of  men  had  landed  from 
Samos,  the  Pacha  sent  to  ascertain  whether  they  had  been 
joined  by  the  peasantry,  and  on  being  assured  they  had  not, 
a  considerably  force  was  ordered  to  march  against  them. 

"  The  Turks  set  forward  for  this  purpose,  but  perceiving 
iqoo  that  the  Greeks  determined  to  resist,  they  imme- 
diately retreated  towards  the  town,  pursued  by  the 
former,  till  they  were  at  length  forced  to  shut  themselves  up 
ih  the  castle  :  thus  leaving  the  Greeks  in  full  possession  of 
the  open  country.  Encouraged  by  their  success,  Burnia  and 
Logotheti  appealed  once  more  to  the  people,  and  as  matters 
had  now  gone  so  far,  that  it  was  impossible  to  retrograde,  a 
few  hundred  peasants  flocked  to  their  standard,  many  of 
these  being  merely  provided  with  sticks  for  their  defence. 
Although  the  elders  and  primates  who  had  not  been  impri- 
soned, continued  to  remonstrate  against  the  conduct  of  Bur- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  221 

nia  and  his  coadjutor,  they  now  saw  the  necessity  of  acceding 
to  the  entreaties  of  all  parties,  that  a  local  government 
should  be  established.  A  junta  of  twelve  persons  being 
named  for  this  purpose,  they  began  to  make  various  requisi- 
tions, and  to  organize  the  means  of  securing  the  advantage 
which  had  been  already  achieved.  It  was,  however,  soon 
discovered,  that  there  were  really  no  means  of  arming  the 
people  to  any  extent,  and  that  the  expedition  was  itself  but 
badly  armed,  as  well  as  totally  unprovided  with  cannon. 
Convinced,  on  the  other  hand,  that  union  and  perseverance 
could  alone  save  them,  several  plans  of  organization  were 
adopted,  and  had  the  Greek  fleet  anticipated  the  arrival  of  the 
Pacha,  there  was  every  reason  to  hope  the  inhabitants  would 
have  been  enabled  to  prevent  the  catastrophe  which  followed 
his  appearance.  This  event  took  place  on  the  23d  of  April, 
when  a  fleet  of  fifty  sail,  including  five  of  the  line,  an- 
chored in  the  bay,  and  immediately  began  to  bombard  the 
town,  while  several  thousand  troops  were  landed  under  the 
guns  of  the  citadel,  which  also  opened  a  heavy  fire  on  the 
Greeks.  It  was  in  vain  for  the  islanders  to  make  any  resist- 
ance ;  deserted  by  the  Samians,  most  of  whom  embarked 
and  sailed  away,  when  the  Turkish  fleet  hove  in  sight,  they 
were  easily  overpowered,  and  obliged  to  fly.  From  this  mo- 
ment, until  the  last  direful  act,  Scio,  lately  so  great  an  object 
of  admiration  to  strangers,  presented  one  continued  scene  ot 
horror  and  dismay  Having  massacred  every  soul,  whether 
men,  women,  or  children,  whom  they  found  in  the  town,  the 
Turks  first  plundered  and  then  set  fire  to  it,  and  watched  the 
flames  until  not  a  house  was  left,  except  those  of  the  fo- 
reign consuls.  Three  days  had,  however,  been  suffered  to 
pass,  before  the  infidels  ventured  to  penetrate  into  the  inte- 
rior of  the  island,  and  even  then  their  excesses  were  con- 
fined to  the  low  grounds.  But  there  was  ample  scope  on 
these  for  gratifying  their  thirst  for  Christian  blood.  An  eye- 
witness, who  escaped  as  it  were  by  a  miracle,  thus  express- 
ed himself  in  a  letter  to  a  friend  : — "  0  God  !  what  a  specta- 
cle did  Scio  present  on  this  lamentable  occasion  :  on  what- 
ever side  I  cast  my  eyes,  nothing  but  pillage,  murder,  and 
conflagration  appeared.  While  some  were  occupied  in  plun- 
dering the  villas  of  rich  merchants,  and  others  setting  fire 
to  the  villages,  the  air  was  rent  with  the  mingled  groans  of 
men,  women,  and  children,  who  were  falling  under  the 
swords  and  daggers  of  the  infidels.  The  only  exception 
made  during  the  massacre,  was  in   favour  of  young  women 

20 


222  HISTORY  OF  THE 

and  boys,  who  were  preserved  only  to  be  afterwards  sold  as 
slaves.  Many  of  the  former,  whose  husbands  had  been 
butchered,  were  running  to  and  fro  frantic,  with  torn  gar- 
ments and  dishevelled  hair,  pressing  their  trembling  infants 
to  their  breasts,  and  seeking  death  as  a  relief  from  the  still 
greater  calamities  that  awaited  them." 

"  Above  40,000  of  both  sexes  had  already  either  fallen 
victims  to  the  sword,  or  been  selected  for  sale  in  the  Ba- 
zaars, when  it  occurred  to  the  Pacha,  that  no  time  should  be 
lost  iu  persuading  those  who  had  fled  to  the  more  inaccessi- 
ble parts  of  the  island,  to  lay  down  their  arms  and  submit.  It 
being  impossible  to  effect  this  by  force,  they  had  recourse  to 
a  favourite  expedient  with  Mussulmen  ;  that  of  proclaiming 
an  amnesty.  In  order  that  no  doubt  should  be  enter- 
tained of  their  sincerity,  the  foreign  consuls,  more  particu- 
larly those  of  England,  France,  and  Austria,  were  called 
upon  to  guarantee  the  promises  of  the  Turks  :  they  accord- 
ingly went  forth,  and  invited  the  unfortunate  peasantry  to 
give  up  their  arms  and  return.  Notwithstanding  their  long; 
experience  of  Turkish  perfidy,  the  solemn  pledge  given  by 
the  consuls  at  length  prevailed,  and  many  thousands,  who 
might  have  successfully  resisted  until  succours  arrived, 
were  sacrificed :  for  no  sooner  did  they  descend  from  the 
heights,  and  give  up  their  arms,  than  the  infidels,  totally  un- 
mindful of  the  proffered  pardon,  put  them  to  death  without 
mercy.  The  number  of  persons  of  every  age  and  sex  who 
became  the  victims  of  this  perfidious  act,  was  estimated  at 
7,000. 

"  After  having  devoted  ten  days  to  the  work  of  slaughter, 
it  was  natural  to  suppose  that  the  monsters  who  directed  this 
frightful  tragedy  would  have  been  in  some  degree  satiated  by 
the  blood  of  so  many  innocent  victims  ;  but  it  was  when  the 
excesses  had  begun  to  diminish  on  the  part  of  the  soldiery, 
that  fresh  scenes  of  horror  were  exhibited  on  board  the  fleet, 
and  in  the  citadel.  In  addition  to  the  women  and  children 
embarked  for  the  purpose  of  being  conveyed  to  the  markets 
of  Constantinople  and  Smyrna,  several  hundred  of  the  na- 
tives were  also  seized,  and  among  these  all  the  gardeners  of 
the  island,  who  were  supposed  to  know  where  the  treasures 
of  their  employers  had  been  concealed.  There  were  no  less 
than  five  hundred  of  the  persons  thus  collected  hung  on 
board  the  different  ships  ;  when  these  executions  com- 
menced, they  served  as  a  signal  to  the  commandant  of  the 
citadel,  who  immediately  followed  the  example,  by  suspend- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  223 

ing  the  whole  of  the  hostages,  to  the  number  of  seventy-six, 
on  gibbets  erected  for  the  occasion.  With  respect  to  the 
numbers  who  were  either  killed  or  consigned  to  slavery, 
during  the  three  weeks  that  followed  the  arrival  of  the  Capitan 
Pacha,  there  is  no  exaggeration  in  placing  the  former  at 
twenty-five  thousand  souls.  It  has  been  ascertained  that 
above  thirty  thousand  women  and  children  were  condemned 
to  slavery,  while  the  fate  of  those  who  escaped  was  scarcely 
less  calamitous.*  Though  many  contrived  to  get  oft'  in 
open  boats,  or  such  other  vessels  as  they  could  procure, 
thousands  who  were  unable  to  do  so,  wandered  about  the 
mountains,  or  concealed  themselves  in  caves,  without  food 
or  clothing  for  many  days  after  the  massacre  had  began  to 
subside  on  the  plains  ;  among  those  who  had  availed  them- 
selves of  the  pretended  amnesty,  many  families  took  refuge 
in  the  houses  of  the  consuls,  who  were  indeed  bound  by 
every  tie  of  honour  and  humanity  to  afford  them  protection. 
It  has,  however,  been  asserted  upon  authority  which  cannot 

*  On  the  13th  of  May  was  the  first  arrival  (at  Constantinople)  of 
slaves  from  that  devoted  island  ;  and  on  the  ISth,  sixteen  most  respecta- 
ble merchants,  resident  at  Constantinople,  but  who  were  guilty  of 
having  been  born  at  Scio,  were  executed.  Three  of  these  persons 
were  by  the  Turks  called  hostages,  which  means,  that  they  were  per- 
sons of  influence  and  character,  who  had  been  seized  by  the  govern- 
ment, and  by  it  made  responsible  for  the  conduct  of  their  countrymen. 
The  continued  sale  of  the  Sciot  captives  led  to  the  commission  of  daily 
brutalities.  On  June  19th,  an  order  came  down  to  the  slave  market 
for  its  cessation;  and  the  circumstances  which  are  believed  to  have  oc- 
casioned that  order,  are  extremely  singular,  and  purely  oriental.  The 
island  of  Scio  had  been  granted  many  years  ago  to  one  of  the  sultanas, 
as  an  appropriation,  from  which  she  derived  a  fixed  revenue  and  a  title 
of  interference  in  all  matters  relating  to  police  and  internal  administra- 
tion. The  present  patroness  was  Asma  Sultana,  sister  of  the  sultan  ; 
and  that  amiable  princess  received  about  200,000  piastres  a  year,  be- 
sides casual  presents,  from  her  flourishing  little  province.  When  she 
was  informed  of  its  destruction,  her  indignation  was  natural  and  ex- 
cessive ;  and  it  was  directed,  of  course,  against  Valid,  the  pacha  who 
commanded  the  fort,  and  the  capudan  pacha,  to  whose  misconduct  she 
chiefly  attributed  her  misfortune.  It  was  in  vain  that  that  officer 
selected  from  his  captives  sixty  young  and  beautiful  maidens,  whom  he 
presented  to  the  service  of  her  highness.  She  rejected  the  sacrifice 
with  disdain,  and  continued  her  energetic  remonstrances  against  the 
injustice  and  illegality  of  reducing  rayafis  to  slavery,  and  exposing 
them  for  sale  in  the  public  markets.  The  sultan  at  length  yielded  to 
her  eloquence  or  importunity.  A  license,  the  occasion  of  hourly  bru- 
talities, was  suppressed  :  and  we  have  the  satisfaction  of  believing  that, 
this  act  of  rare  and  unprecedented  humanity  may  be  attributed  to  the 
influence  of  a  woman."— Waddington's  Visit  to  Greece,  p.  19. 


224  HISTORY  OF  THE 

well  be  doubted,  that  the  wretched  beings  thus  saved  from 
Mussulman  vengeance,  were  obliged  to  pay  large  ransoms, 
before  they  could  leave  the  Island.  Nay,  more,  numbers  of 
those  who  escaped  the  massacre,  affirm,  that  it  was  extreme- 
ly difficult  to  obtain  even  temporary  protection  under  the 
Christian  flags,  without  first  gratifying  the  avaricious  demands 
of  those  who  conceived  this  appalling  event  a  legitimate 
object  of  mercantile  speculation." 

"  Melancholy,  and  utter  desolation,"  says  Mr.  Leedes,* 
has  befallen  this  once  beautiful  and  flourishing  island.  I 
could  not  have  conceived,  without  being  an  eye  witness,  that 
destruction  could  have  been  rendered  so  complete.  We 
walked  through  the  town,  which  was  [once]  handsome  and 
built  entirely  of  stone,  and  found  the  houses,  the  churches, 
the  hospitals,  the  extensive  college,  where,  a  few  months 
ago,  600  or  700  youths  were  receiving  their  education,  one 
entire  mass  of  ruins.  On  every  side  were  strewed  fragments 
of  half-burned  books,  manuscripts,  clothes,  and  furniture  ; 
and  what  was  most  shocking  to  the  feelings,  numerous  bodies 
were  mouldering  on  the  spot  where  they  fell.  Nothing  that 
had  life  was  to  be  seen,  but  a  few  miserable,  half-starved 
dogs  and  cats.  The  villages  have  shared  the  same  fate; 
and  of  a  population  of  130,000  Greeks,  there  remain,  per- 
haps, 800  or  1000  individuals  scattered  through  the  most 
distant  places.  In  the  town,  nothing  has  escaped  but  the 
consuls'  houses,  and  a  very  few  immediately  adjoining  them, 
which  could  not  be  burned  without  burning  the  consulates. 
The  British  Yice  Consul  has  a  little  colony  of  270  Sciots 
hutted  in  his  garden  and  premises,  whom  he  feeds  at  his  own 
expense,  and  who,  under  the  British  flag,  have  found  pro- 
tection amid  the  wreck  of  their  country.  There  are  similar 
establishments  in  some  of  the  other  European  establishments. 
Their  food  at  present  consists  of  grapes  and  figs,  which  are 
now  common  property,  there  being  no  hands  to  gather  in  the 
fruits  of  the  soil." 

"As  the  massacre  of  Scio  furnishes  the  best  occasion 
presented  by  the  war  to  establish  a  comparison  between  the 
conduct  of  the  Greeks  and  their  inexorable  masters,  it  is  of 
consequence  to  prove,  that  so  far  from  the  atrocities  in  that 
devoted  island  having  been  the  result  of  these  excesses  in 


*  Mr.  Leedes,  a  British  Missionary,  visited  Scio  in  September,  after 
its  destruction. — See  Miss.  Reg.  Jan.  1823. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  225 

which  a  soldiery  irritated  by  previous  resistance  and  suffer- 
ings, have  so  frequently  indulged,  they  originated  in  the  cool 
and  deliberate  councils  of  the  Divan.  With  respect  to  the 
provocations  given  by  the  Sciots,  their  fidelity  to  the  Porte 
had  never  been  suspected  before  the  revolution  ;  and  it  has 
been  ascertained  beyond  contradiction,  that  the  number  of 
those  who  joined  the  expedition  from  Samos  did  not  exceed 
two  thousand,  while  it  is  equally  true,  that  the  whole  loss  of 
the  Turks  during  the  ephemeral  conflict  did  not  amount  to 
three  hundred,  and  these  fell  in  the  skirmishes  which  took 
place  between  the  opposing  parties,  as  there  was  no  instance 
of  gratuitous  cruelty  on  the  part  of  the  Greeks.  The  readi- 
ness with  which  the  elders  and  primates  gave  themselves  up 
as  hostages,  and  their  efforts  to  prevent  the  peasantry  from 
joining  Burnia  and  Logotheti,  is  an  ample  proof  of  their  per- 
fect innocence.  Yet  was  it  under  all  these  circumstances, 
that  a  population  of  more  than  one  hundred  thousand  souls 
was  doomed  to  general  destruction  ;  not  by  an  unbridled 
and  undisciplined  soldiery,  stimulated  by  the  opposition  and 
privations  attendant  on  a  long  siege,  but  by  a  positive  order 
from  a  sovereign  and  government,  whose  legitimacy  had 
been  solemnly  proclaimed  by  the  Christian  potentates  assem- 
bled at  Laybach  and  Verona.  That  the  whole  of  this  terri- 
fic drama  had  been  got  up  at  Constantinople,  a  variety  of 
concurrent  circumstances  tend  to  prove  beyond  the  shadow 
of  a  doubt.  When  the  messenger  who  announced  the  de- 
scent from  Samos  reached  the  capital,  it  was  decided  in  full 
Divan,  that  the  Capitan  Pacha,  whose  preparations  were 
still  incomplete,  should  sail  with  all  possible  dispatch,  and 
take  such  measures  with  the  people  of  Scio  as  would  effectu- 
ally prevent  their  joining  the  confederation.  All  the  most  opu- 
lent Sciot  merchants  resident  in  the  capital  were  at  the  same 
time  seized  and  thrown  into  prison  as  hostages.  The  fate  of 
these  unfortunate  persons  leaves  no  room  whatever  to  doubt, 
that  the  proceedings  at  Scio  were  fully  approved  of  at  Con- 
stantinople ;  for  it  was  immediately  after  the  arrival  of  the 
Capitan  Pacha  in  the  former  place,  and  when  the  steps  he 
had  taken  must  have  been  known,  that  the  whole  of  them 
were  impaled  alive  by  a  mandate  from  the  Sultan  himself. 

"  With  a  thorough  knowledge  of  all  that  had  happened 
elsewhere,  and  while  their  brethren,  the  professors  of  a 
common  faith,  were  writhing  under  the  unutterable  torments 
of  such  a  death,  surely  the  time  had  arrived  when  the  Chris- 
tian ambassadors  were  called  upon  bv  the  voice  of  God  and 

20* 


226  HISTORY  OF  THE 

nature  to  interpose.  Will  posterity  believe  that  this  inter- 
position was  withheld,  or  that  while  the  ambassadors  remain- 
ed quietly  at  their  posts,  the  lamentable  catastrophe  rung 
through  Christian  and  civilized  Europe,  without  exciting 
much  more  notice  than  the  loss  of  an  East-Indiaman,  or  a 
trifling  fall  in  the  public  funds  ?*  When,  however,  posteri- 
ty shall  contrast  the  indifference  now  betrayed,  and  the  ran- 
corous malignity  with  which  the  excesses  of  an  infuriated  and 
starving  soldiery  at  Tripolizza  were  visited,  and  even  alleged 
as  a  sufficient  motive  for  abandoning  the  cause  of  Christ,  it 
will  most  assuredly  have  but  little  cause  to  admire  the 
social  and  political  system  of  Europe  in  the  nineteenth 
century. 

"  Of  all  the  errors  laid  to  the  charge  of  the  naval  chiefs, 
of  Greece,  their  delay  in  coming  to  the  relief  of  Scio  is  un- 
questionably the  best  founded,  as  it  is  most  to  be  lamented. 
This  omission  is  doubly  to  be  deplored,  when  it  is  consider- 
ed, that  the  appearance  of  a  squadron  simultaneously  with  the 
Capitan  Pacha,  would  have  paralysed  his  operations,  and  en- 
couraged the  inhabitants  to  greater  resistance.  Had  the 
fleet  arrived  even  after  the  slaughter  commenced,  there  is 
every  reason  to  believe,  that  a  few  well  directed  fire-ships 
could  not  fail  taking  effect  on  the  Turkish  ships,  a  great  part 
of  whose  crews  were  employed  in  aiding  to  perpetrate 
the  massacre  on  shore.     From  whatever  cause  it  arose,  the 


*  In  answer  to  a  question  put  by  Mr.  William  Smith,  the  member 
for  Norwich,  to  Lord  Londonderry,  in  the  House  of  Commons,  relative 
to  the  massacre  of  the  Sciot  hostages,  the  latter  merely  replied,  that. 
"  a  calamity  had  occurred,  which  had  arisen  out  of  the  peculiar  acts  of 
barbarity  perpetrated  on  both  sides."  The  observations  of  Sir  James 
Mackintosh,  on  this  occasion,  are  well  worthy  of  historical  record.  He 
asked  "  if  dispatches  had  been  received  from  our  Ambassador  at  the 
Ottoman  Porte,  from  which  it  could  be  ascertained  whether  any  of  the 
persons  who  had  been  murdered  by  the  barbarian  tyrants  at  Constanti- 
nople, had  been  under  the  protection  of  the  British  Minister,  Lord 
Strangford,  or  had  surrendered  themselves  to  the  Turks,  under  any 
pledge,  promise,  or  assurance  of  safety  from  that  nobleman ?"  He  also 
asked  "  whether  it  was  mentioned  in  any  of  the  recent  dispatches  re- 
ceived by  the  Secretary  of  State  for  Foreign  Affairs,  that  the  markets 
of  Smyrna  and  Constantinople  were  filled  with  amiable  Greek  ladies 
and  children,  offered  to  the  caprices  of  barbarous  Mahomedan  voluptua- 
ries ?  And  finally,  whether  ministers  could  afford  the  nation  any  ac- 
count of  the  new  slave  trade,  established  in  the  East,  for  the  sale  ot 
amiable  and  accomplished  Christian  females,  by  a  government  which 
was  encouraged  and  supported  by  the  administration  of  this  free  and 
enlightened  country  ?" 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  227 

fleet  did  not  arrive  until  the  last  week  in  May,  when  the  ca- 
tastrophe was  already  consummated.  Tombasi,  the  Hydriot 
admiral,  who  commanded,  .had,  however,  the  satisfaction  of 
saving  a  great  number  of  both  sexes,  who  succeeded  in 
escaping  to  the  mountains.* 

*  The  scene  which  presented  itself  to  the  Greek  sailors  who  landed  on 
the  southern  shores  of  Scio,  was  such  as  no  pen  could  trace,  no  lan- 
guage could  describe.  The  beach  for  several  miles  was  strewed  with 
dead  bodies  of  men,  women,  and  children,  many  of  whom  were  still 
warm  and  bathed  in  their  own  blood.  Most  of  those  taken  on  board 
had  been  wounded,  and  looked  more  like  spectres  than  human  beings. 
Mr.  Hastings,  a  young  Englishman  of  family,  who  was  embarked  on 
board  Tombasi's  ship,  witnessed  these  horrors,  and  shuddered  while  lie 
essayed  to  describe  them  to  me  at  Tripolizza.  An  unhappy  fugitive 
had  informed  my  friend  that  he  was  one  of  two  thousand  who  took  re- 
fuge in  a  cavern  on  the  coast,  in  the  hope  of  concealing  themselves. — 
As,  however,  there  was  not  space  enough  within  for  half  the  number, 
those  who  could  not  penetrate  remained  outside,  many  of  them  beinir 
obliged  to  stand  up  to  their  knees  in  water.  It  was  while  they  were 
contending  with  each  other  to  get  into  this  imagined  place  of  security, 
that  a  party  of  Turks  appeared  on  the  rocks  above  their  heads,  and  im- 
mediately began  to  fire  down  on  them.  Having  thus  despached  all 
those  who  stood  without,  the  infidels  drew  their  ataghans,  rushed  into 
the  cave,  and  also  put  every  soul  they  found  to  death. 

A  French  officer,  who  had  landed  soon  after  the  massacre,  saw  an  in- 
fant clinging  to  the  breast  of  its  mother,  a  young  and  beautiful  woman, 
whose  lifeless  corpse  lay  bleeding  on  the  ground. 

The  situation  of  those  who  succeeded  in  getting  to  Ipsara  was  most 
deplorable,  reaching  that  place  without  having  any  sustenance  for 
many  days,  and  almost  naked,  there  were  no  means  of  providing  for 
their  wants  in  the  island  :  so  that  thousands  were  obliged  to  sleep  in  the 
open  air  until  they  could  obtain  a  passage  to  some  other  place.  The 
separation  of  wives  and  husbands,  brothers,  sisters  and  children,  which 
occurred  in  almost  every  family,  was  not  the  least  agonizing  part  of  the 
calamities  now  endured.  While  at  Marseilles,  on  my  way  to  Greece,  I 
Era  w  a  lovely  babe,  who  had  been  just  brought  to  its  parents  by  the 
nurse,  after  having  been  given  up  as  lost,  for  many  months.  This  faith- 
ful creature  had  fled  to  the  mountains  in  the  first  days  of  the  massacre, 
and  wandered  about,  living  on  the  herbs  of  the  field,  until  at  length 
Providence  threw  the  means  of  escape  in  her  way,  and  she  was  con- 
veyed to  a  neighbouring  island.  The  parents  of  the  child  had  also  fled, 
but  happening  to  gain  a  different  point  of  the  coast,  they  departed  in 
another  direction,  and  had  given  up  every  hope  of  seeing  their  child, 
when  he  was  thus  restored  to  them. 

Thousands  of  the  Sciot  women,  remarkable  throughout  the  Ar- 
chipelago for  their  grace  and  beauty,  continued  to  be  exposed  for 
sale  both  in  the  island  and  at  Constantinople  and  Smyrna,  for  seve- 
ral months  after  the  massacre.  After  detailing  such  scenes  as  the 
above,  to  which  a  thousand  others,  equally  heart-rending,  might  be 
added,  it  becomes  a  matter  of  very  trifling  import  to  state,  that  the 


228  HISTORY  OF  THE 

"  Having  rendezvoused  at  Ipsara,  Tombasi  was  joined  by 
a  division  from  that  island,  when  it  was  decided  that  a  com- 
bined effort  should  be  made  against  the  enemy's  fleet.  The 
two  squadrons  accordingly  entered  the  channel  which  sepa- 
rates Scio  from  the  Asiatic  continent,  but  owing  to  light 
winds,  they  advanced  so  slowly,  that  the  Turks  had  time  to 
weigh  their  anchors  and  gain  the  open  sea.  The  Greeks 
came  up  with  them  between  Scio  and  Ipsara,  and  were  pre- 
paring their  fire-ships,  when  a  gale  of  wind  came  on,  and 
separated  the  hostile  fleets.  Meeting  some  days  after,  in  the 
straits  of  Scio,  the  attempt  to  fire  the  enemy  was  again  made, 
and  though  unsuccessful,  it  threw  all  the  Turkish  ships  into 
the  utmost  confusion,  and  they  could  only  escape  the  threat- 
ened danger  by  cutting  their  cables  and  running  out  to  sea. 

"  The  sailing  of  an  Egyptian  squadron  from  Alexandria 
for  the  relief  of  Candia,  where  the  inhabitants  had  recently 
made  a  most  gallant  stand,  having  obliged  Tombasi  to  pro- 
ceed towards  that  island,  the  second  great  naval  triumph  of 
the  Greeks  was  destined  to  be  achieved  under  the  auspices 
of  Miaoulis,  the  most  celebrated  admiral  of  Greece.  Fertile 
in  expedients,  and  anxious  to  avenge  some  portion  of  the 
horrors  committed  at  Scio,  this  modern  Themistocles  deter- 
mined to  adopt  a  stratagem,  which,  though  extremely  haz- 
ardous to  those  employed  to  carry  it  into  effect,  yet  pre- 
sented the  greatest  probabilities  of  success.  Perceiving  that 
the  Turks  were  now  on  their  guard,  and  prepared  for  the 
mode  of  attack  practised  by  the  Greeks,  he  directed  two 
fire  vessels,  one  from  Ipsara,  and  the  other  a  Hydriot,  to  sail 
alone  ;  and  when  close  to  the  coast  of  Asia  Minor,  they 
were  to  bear  up  towards  the  Turkish  fleet,  and  keep  near  the 
shore,  as  if  they  were  merchant  ships  bound  to  Smyrna.* — 

finest  modern  Greek  library  in  existence,  collected  at  an  immense 
expense,  and  comprising  above  60,000  volumes,  was  completely  de- 
stroyed during  the  conflagration  of  the  town.  It  is  a  coincidence 
worthy  of  remark,  that  it  was  the  followers  of  Mahomet  who  burnt 
the  grand  Alexandrian  library  twelve  centuries  before.  The  glit- 
tering of  the  mathematical  instruments  saved  them  from  being  de- 
stroyed :  these  were  part  of  the  booty,  and  taken  to  Smyrna,  where 
they  found  a  purchaser  in  one  of  the  French  merchants  resident  there. 

*  Of  these  fire-ships  Mr.  Emerson  gives  such  an  appaling  account, 
as  to  leave  no  wonder  on  the  mind  that  even  the  bravest  sailors  could 
not  witness  their  approach  without  dismay. 

"  The  vessels  usually  employed  for  this  purpose,  says  he,  are  old 
ships  purchased  by  the  government.    Their  construction  as  fire-ships 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  229 

■. 

They  were  thus  allowed  m  pass  the  look-out  ships  unmo- 
lested, and  sailing  boldly  into  the  midst  of  the  fleet,  which 
were  at  anchor  in  Scio  roads,  both  their  commanders  laid  a 
Turkish  line  of  battle  ship  on  board.  One  of  the  latter  con- 
trived to  disengage  herself,  but  the  Ipsariot,  under  the  intre- 
pid Canari,  took  full  effect,  and  he  had  the  glory  of  destroy- 
ing the  Capitan  Pacha's  ship,  together  with  the  monster  him- 
self and  all  his  crew.  The  ship  was  loaded  with  the  spoils 
of  Scio,  and  it  is  to  be  feared  that  many  Greek  women  and 

are  very  simple  ;  nothing  more  being  wanted  than  active  combustion. 
For  this  purpose,  the  ribs,  hold,  and  sides  of  the  vessel  after  being  well 
tarred,  are  lined  with  dry  furze  dipped  in  pitch  and  lees  of  oil,  and 
sprinkled  with  sulphur  ;  a  number  of  hatchways  are  then  cut  along  the 
deck,  and  under  each  is  placed  a  small  barrel  of  gunpowder  ;  so  that 
at  the  moment  of  conflagration  each  throws  off  its  respective  hatch,  and 
giving  ample  vent  to  the  flames,  prevents  the  deck  from  being  too  soon 
destroyed  by  the  explosion. 

"  A  train  [of  gunpowder]  which  passes  through  every  part  of  the 
ship  and  communicates  with  every  barrel,  running  round  the  deck, 
and  passing  out  at  the  steerage  window,  completes  the  preparations 
below  ;  whilst  above,  every  rope  and  yard  is  well  covered  with  tar 
so  as  speedily  to  convey  the  flames  to  the  sails  ;  and  at  the  extremi- 
ty of  each  yard  arm  is  attached  a  wickered  hook,  which  being  once 
entangled  with  the  enemy's  rigging,  renders  escape,  after  coming  in 
contact,  almost  a  matter  of  impossiblity.  The  train,  to  prevent  acci- 
dents, is  never  laid  till  the  moment  of  using  it ;  when  all  being  placed 
in  order,  and  the  wind  favourable,  with  every  possible  sail  set,  so  as  to 
increase  the  flames,  she  bears  down  upon  the  enemy's  line,  whilst  the 
crew,  usually  twenty-five  or  thirty  in  number,  have  no  other  defence 
than  crouching  behind  the  after  bulwarks.  When  close  upon  the 
destined  ship,  all  hands  descend  by  the  stern,  into  a  launch  fitted  out 
for  the  purpose  with  high  gun-wales  and  a  pair  of  small  swivels  ;  and  at 
the  moment  of  contact,  she  is  fired  by  the  captain,  and  every  hatch  be- 
ing thrown  off,  the  flames  burst  at  the  same  instant  from  stem  to  stern  : 
and  ascending  by  the  tarred  ropes  and  sails,  soon  communicates  with 
the  rigging  of  the  enemy's  vessel,  who  have  never  yet,  in  one  instance, 
been  able  to  extricate  themselves.  In  fact,  such  is  the  terror  with 
which  they  have  inspired  the  Turks,  that  they  seldom  make  the  slightest 
resistance.  On  the  distant  approach  of  the  fire-ship,  they  maintain,  for 
several  minutes,  an  incessant  random  cannonade  ;  but  at  length,  long 
before  she  comes  in  contact,  precipitate  themselves  into  the  sea,  and 
attempt  to  reach  the  other  vessels,  scarcely  one  remaining  to  the  last 
moment  to  attempt  to  save  the  devoted  ship.  Sometimes,  however, 
armed  boats  are  sent  off  from  the  other  vessels  of  the  fleet,  but  they 
have  never  yet  been  able  either  to  prevent  the  approach  of  the  fire 
ship,  or  seize  on  the  crew  whilst  making  their  escape  ;  and,  though  fire- 
ships  are  in  other  countries  considered  a  forlorn  hope,  such  is  the  stu- 
pidity and  terror  of  the  Turks,  that  it  is  rarely  that  one  of  the  brulot- 
tiers  is  wounded,  and  very  seldom  indeed  that  any  lose  their  lives."- 
Picture  nf  Greece,  vol.  i.  p.  116 — 118. 


230  HISTORY  OF  THE 

children  perished  in  her.  This  event  happening  at  such  a 
time,  was  attributed  to  the  interposition  of  a  special  provi- 
dence by  the  people  of  Greece,*  for  had  the  Turkish  fleet 
been  enabled  either  to  co-operate  with  the  Egyptian  squad- 
ron sent  against  Candia,  or  with  the  army  which  invaded  the 
Morea,  it  is  impossible  to  calculate  what  the  consequences 
might  have  been.  Fortunately  for  the  Christians,  the  infidels 
were  panic-struck,  and  fled  to  the  Dardanelles,  where  some 
weeks  were  unavoidably  lost  in  preparing  to  resume  their 
operations  by  sea.""j" 

"  It  appears,"  says  Mr.  Green,  "  that  the  Turkish  inhabi- 
tants of  Athens  shut  themselves  up  in  the  Acropolis  in  May, 
1821,  and  that  the  town  was  occupied  by  the  Greeks  until 
the  following  August,  when  Omer  Vrioni  Pacha  relieved  the 
place,  and  drove  away  the  Greeks  with  some  loss.  After 
remaining  three  months  at  Athens,  he  returned  with  his  Al- 
banians to  Roumelia,  leaving  the  same  Turks  whom  he  had 
relieved  to  garrison  the  Acropolis. 

"Not  a  month  elapsed  before  the  Greeks  returned  once 
more  from  the  mountains  and  the  neighbouring  islands,  and 
the  Turkish  garrison  were  again  compelled  to  seek  refuge  in 
the  Acropolis.  Many  attempts  were  made  by  the  Greeks 
to  take  the  place  by  assault  or  by  surprise,  but  without  suc- 
cess. 

"  At  length  provisions  and  water  failed,  and  the  garrison 
were  much  reduced  in  numbers  from  deaths  caused  by  dis- 
ease. Seeing  no  chance  of  succour,  the  besieged  entered 
into  negotiation  with  the  insurgents,  and  a  treaty  was  at 
length  concluded,  by  which  the  Acropolis  was  to  be  deliver- 
ed up  to  the  Greeks,  on  condition  that  the  lives  of  the  Turks 
should  be  spared,  and  that  they  should  be  transported  in 
vessels,  to  be  provided  by  the  Greek  government,  to  some 
port  in  Asia  Minor.  On  the  22d  of  June,  1822,  the  Acropolis 
was  delivered  up  :  some  disputes  arose  concerning  property, 
and  a  few  Turks  were  killed :  however,  the  French,  Aus- 
trian, and  Dutch  Vice-Consuls  (who  still  remained  at 
Athens,  the  English  Vice-Consul,  Signor  Logotheti,  having 
died  subsequent  to  the  breaking  out  of  the  revolution)  in- 

*  On  the  same  day  which  witnessed  the  destruction  of  the  Caps- 
tan Pacha  and  his  ship,  the  Acropolis  of  Athens  capitulated  to  the 
Greeks, 

I  Blaquiere,  p.  177—204. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  231 

terfered,  and  caused  order  to  be  restored.  The  garrison  and 
their  families  were  provided  with  houses  in  the  town,  until 
such  time  as  the  vessels  that  were  to  embark  them  could  ar- 
rive; some  were  even  sheltered  by  the  Consuls,  particularly 
the  women  and  children. 

"  It  has  been  said  that  the  town  of  Athens  has  been  near- 
ly destroyed  during  the  repeated  struggles  between  the  con- 
tending parties  to  keep  possession  of  it ;  but  the  highly  in- 
teresting remains  of  antiquity  have,  with  scarcely  an  excep- 
tion, been  preserved  uninjured."*! 


CHAPTER  XVII. 

Colocotroni  marches  to  Patras. — Action  before  that  place. — 
Meeting  of  the  Greek  and  Turkish  Squadrons. — Prepara- 
tions of  Chourschid  Pacha. — Error  of  the  Congress  at  Epi- 
daurus. — Plan  of  Prince  Mavrocordato  :  he  departs  for 
Missolonghi. — Colocotroni  raises  the  Blockade  of  Patras. 
— Invasion  of  the  Morea  by  Machmout  Pacha  of  Drama. — 
The  Members  of  the  Executive  embark. — Firmness  of  Co' 
locotroni. — Operations  on  the  Plain  of  Argos. — Corinth  is 
abandoned  by  the  Greeks. — Gallant  conduct  of  Demetrius 
Tpsilanti. — Retreat  of  the  Turkish  Army :  it  is  attacked 
in  the  Passes. — Return  of  the  Executive  to  Lerna. — Events 
near  Corinth. —  The  Dervenachi  are  occupied  by  Colocotro- 
ni and  Nikitas. — Privations  and  sufferings  of  the  Greeks, 
contrasted  with  those  of  the  Turks. — Capture  of  Napoli 
di  Romania. — Forbearance  and  Moderation  of  the  Greeks. — 
Arrival  of  the  Cambrian  Frigate,  and  generous  conduct  of 
Captain  Hamilton. — Affair  at  Akrata. — End  of  the  Cam' 
paign  of  1822. 

I  s9^>  "  While  tne  provisional  government  was  sedulous- 
'  ly  occupied  in  preparing  for  the  approaching  cam- 
paign at  Corinth,  an  event  occurred  which  rendered  it  ne- 
crssary  to  send  Colocotroni  with  a  force  of  three  thousand 
men  towards  Patras  ;  this  was  the  arrival  of  a  division  of 
the  Turkish  fleet  which  had  sailed  from  the  Hellespont  be- 
fore the  Capitan  Pacha ;  it  consisted  of  six  large  frigates, 
and  above  fifty  transports  and  smaller  vessels,  the  whole  fill- 

*  Green's  Sketches,  p.  112.  t  See  Appendix. 


232  HISTORY  OF  THE 

ed  with  troops,  which  were  landed  at  Patras  in  the  latter 
end  of  February.  Colocotroni  arrived  before  the  walls  soon 
after  they  had  been  disembarked. 

On  perceiving  his  approach,  the  Turks  quitted  their  posi- 
tion, and  went  in  pursuit  of  the  Greeks  with  nearly  the  whole 
of  their  force.  Apprehensive  that  his  detachment  was  un- 
equal to  cope  with  such  numbers,  Colocotroni  retreated  to- 
wards the  mountains,  closely  pursued  by  the  enemy ;  and 
when  in  a  situation  where  his  men  could  act  with  advantage, 
he  suddenly  halting,  harangued  the  troops,  upon  which  they 
immediately  turned  round  and  advanced  towards  the  infidels 
— the  latter,  supposing  that  reinforcements  had  by  this  time 
appeared  in  sight,  became  panic  struck  in  their  turn,  and 
were  followed  sword  in  hand  by  the  Greeks  to  the  very  walls 
of  Patras  :  the  result  of  this  affair  was,  that  five  hundred  of 
the  enemy  were  slain  in  less  than  two  hours.*  On  seeing 
the  kind  of  troops  he  had  to  contend  with,  the  Greek  chief- 
tain now  took  up  a  position  close  to  the  town,  and  establish- 
ed a  rigorous  blockade. 

Miaouli  and  Tombasi  having  pursued  the  infidel  squadron 
with  a  division  of  the  Greek  fleet,  attacked  them  as  they 
were  quitting  the  waters  of  Patras  on  the  3d  of  March,  and 
but  for  a  heavy  gale  that  separated  the  ships,  there  was  a 
confident  expectation  that  the  frigate  of  the  Turkish  Admi- 
ral would  have  fallen  into  the  hands  of  the  Greeks,  as  a  close 
running  fight  was  maintained  between  her  and  Tombasi's 
small  ship  of  twenty  guns  for  some  time,  and  he  would  have 
been  ultimately  laid  on  board,  but  for  the  boisterous  state  of 
the  weather. 

Mr.  Consul  Green,  who  as  we  have  already  stated  is  care- 
ful never  to  give  the  Greeks  credit  for  more  than  they  de- 
serve, gives  a  very  different  version  of  this  affair. 

"  The  Capitana  Bey  on  the  approach  of  the  Greek  fleet 
ordered  the  vessels  of  war  to  be  got  under  weigh,  and  sent 
the  transports  for  protection  to  Lepanto  ;  he  then  bore  down 
on  the  Greeks,  brought  them  to  action  in  the  Bay,  and  sus- 
tained an  engagement  with  them  for  three  hours,  during 
which  four  Greek  vessels  attempted  to  board  a  Turkish  fri- 


*  A  French  officer.  M.  de  le  Villasse,  whose  name  has  already  ap- 
peared, was  present  at,  this  affair : — he  states,  that  on  approaching  the 
walls  of  Patras  during  the  pursuit,  some  Turks  cried  out,"  Why  do 
you  kill  our  brethren,  don't  you  know  the)'  were  forced  to  come  here 
from  Constantinople  ?" 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  233 

gate,  which  had  become  nearly  unmanageable,  from  the  top- 
sail haul-yards  being  shot  away.  They  were,  however,  re- 
pulsed, and  a  Greek  vessel  catching  fire,  she  drifted  on 
shore  ;  which  accident  so  disconcerted  the  crews  of  the 
other  vessels,  that  they  simultaneously  set  all  sail,  and  steer- 
ed before  the  wind,  closely  pursued  by  the  Turks." 

"  The  Turkish  vessels,"  continues  Mr.  Green,  "  did  not 
appear  to  have  suffered  further  than  by  a  few  grape  shot  in 
their  sides. "*f 

Notwithstanding  the  large  force  collected  before  Ioannina-. 
and  in  other  parts  of  Epirus,  the  Greeks  under  Marco  Boz- 
zaris  and  Rango  had  gained  many  advantages,  and  taken 
Arta,  after  a  desperate  struggle  on, the  5th  of  December. 
This  was  a  highly  important  point  to  the  patriots  ;  but  owing 
to  the  treason  of  a  chief  named  Tairabos,  it  was  abandoned, 
the  Greek  leaders  conceiving  themselves  too  weak  to  resist 
the  forces  which  might  be  sent  against  them  by  Chourshid 
Pacha.  The  necessity  of  thus  giving  up  the  key  of  Albania 
Was  a  great  misfortune  for  the  Hellenists,  and  could  not  fail 
to  expose  Acarnania  to  the  incursions  which  were  made  not 
long  after. 

While  Odysseus  and  his  brave  companions  were  endea- 
vouring to  check  the  progress  of  the  enemy  in  Livadia  and 
Negropont,  the  recent  discomfiture  of  the  Greek  population 
at  Cassandra  and  Mount  Athos  placed  such  a  force  at  their 
disposal,  that  they  were  enabled  to  advance  once  more,  and 
even  reinforce  the  garrison  of  Athens. 

The  tyrant  of  Ioannina's  fall  had  placed  such  abundant  re- 
sources in  men  and  money  at  the  disposal  of  Chourshid  Pa- 
cha, that  he  was  enabled  to  concert  a  plan  of  operations, 
which,  if  carried  into  execution  with  an  ordinary  portion  of 
skill,  must  have  led  to  the  total  destruction  of  the  Greek 
cause.  One  of  the  errors  attributed  to  the  Congress  of  Epi~ 
daurus,  was  that  of  its  omitting  to  name  any  of  the  chiefs 
who  had  commenced  the  insurrection  to  situations  in  the 

*  Sketches  of  the  War,  p.  98. 

t  The  British  Consul's  partiality  for  the  Turks,  the  reader  will 
observe,  has  led  him  into  an  unwitting  and  palpable  contradiction  in 
this  account.  At  one  moment,  and  during  the  heat  of  the  action,  the 
Greeks  were  such  cowards,  that  four  of  their  vessels  attempted  in 
vain  to  board  an  unmanageable  Turkish  frigate ;  but  after  all,  the 
Turks  did  not  suffer,  except  by  a  few  grape  shot  in  the  sides  of 
their  vessels.  If  Mr.  Green  will  make  it  appear  that  the  Turks 
shot  away  their  own  haul-yards,  the  account  would  be  much  more 
plausible. 

21 


234  HISTORY  OF  THE 

new  government.  Although  this  arose  from  the  excessive 
jealousy  entertained  by  the  Greeks,  of  giving  too  great  an 
ascendancy  in  civil  affairs  to  military  men,  it  would  perhaps 
have  been  prudent  to  waive  this  objection  in  the  present 
case;  at  all  events,  there  is  little  doubt  but  it  produced  a 
considerable  degree  of  indifference  on  the  part  of  some  of  the 
leaders. 

Aware  of  the  consequences  which  must  ensue,  were 
Chourshid  Pacha  and  his  lieutenants  quietly  permitted  to 
organize  their  projects  in  Albania,  Mavrocordato  had  long 
thought  of  a  plan,  which  if  it  did  not  frustrate  the  designs  of 
the  enemy,  would  at  least  operate  as  a  powerful  diversion  in 
favour  of  the  Peloponnesus.  The  object  he  had  in  view, 
was  an  expedition  into  Epirus,  which  should  establish  the 
new  system  of  government  in  western  Greece ;  draw  the  at- 
tention of  the  Turks  from  the  Morea  ;  relieve  the  brave  Sou- 
liotes,  who  were  defending  themselves  in  Kiapha,  with  their 
wonted  heroism,  and  carry  the  war  into  the  very  heart  of  Al- 
bania. The  conception  was  excellent,  and  had  there  been 
adequate  means  of  carrying  it  into  effect,  this  project  must 
have  been  crowned  with  entire  success.  Even  with  all  the 
disadvantages  opposed  to  the  Prince,  it  will  hereafter  be 
seen  that  his  operations  were  productive  of  highly  impor- 
tant consequences  to  the  safety  of  the  confederation. 

Having  communicated  his  plan  to  the  members  of  the 
executive,  it  was  greatly  applauded,  and  an  arrangement  was 
made,  by  which  five  thousand  men  should  be  immediately 
appropriated  to  this  service,  and  placed  at  the  disposal  of 
the  president,  who  determined  to  lead  the  expedition  in  per- 
son. Owing,  however,  to  the  number  of  troops  detached  in 
different  directions,  the  only  force  he  could  now  avail  him- 
self of,  was  the  battalion  of  Philhellenes,  and  the  first  regi- 
ment of  the  line,  neither  of  which  bodies  was  by  any  means 
complete.  With  these,  the  Prince  set  out  from  Corinth  ac- 
companied by  General  Norman  and  Kiriakouli,  who  had 
seven  hundred  men  under  his  orders  :  these  were  more  par- 
ticularly destined  to  relieve  the  Souliotes.  The  expedition 
was  to  be  joined  by  fifteen  hundred  men  from  the  army  be- 
fore Patras.  The  Prince  arrived  there  on  the  12th  of  June, 
and  was  received  by  Colocotroni  with  every  demonstration 
of  joy ;  but  such  were  the  difficulties  the  latter  opposed  to 
allowing  any  part  of  his  troops  to  be  detached,  that  the  expe- 
dition was  compelled  to  depart  without  the  promised  assist- 
ance.    Embarking  next  day  on  board  a  small  Greek  squad- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  235 

ron  which  had  been  waiting  near  Patras  for  the  purpose, 
Mavrocordato  landed  at  Missolonghi  with  only  a  few  hun- 
dred men,  while  Kiriakonli  and  his  party  proceeded  north- 
wards, in  order  to  disembark  as  near  Kiapha  as  circumstan- 
ces would  admit. 

While  the  above  named  chiefs  were  pursuing  their  ardu- 
ous task  in  Epirus,  a  storm  was  gathering  in  Thessaly,  which 
the  cowardice  and  incapacity  of  the  infidels  alone  prevented 
from  rendering  the  triumph  of  the  Hellenists  a  matter  of  ex- 
treme uncertainty.  As  a  large  force  had  been  for  some  time 
collecting  at  Larissa  and  Zetouni,  nothing  but  the  confi- 
dence entertained  by  Mavrocordato,  that  the  appearance  ot 
a  corps  in  Acarnania  would  counteract  the  projects  of  the 
enemy,  would  have  justified  his  absence  at  such  a  moment. 
For  though  the  virtuous  and  patriotic  Canacari,*  who  re- 
mained to  superintend  the  administration  of  affairs  as  Vice- 
president,  was  greatly  esteemed  by  the  people,  his  means 
were  inadequate  to  give  efficiency  to  the  plans  of  govern- 
ment. One  of  the  immediate  effects  of  thus  weakening  the 
executive,  was  to  enable  those  chiefs  who  had  been  dissatis- 
fied with  the  arrangements  at  Epidaurus,  to  betray  their  in- 
difference to  the  new  system  with  greater  impunity. 

The  first  glaring  manifestation  of  discontent  among  the 
chiefs,  was  made  by  Colocotroni,  who  suddenly  raised  the 
blockade  of  Patras  on  the  6th  of  July,  without  orders,  and 
proceeded  with  the  whole  of  his  forces  to  Tripolizza,  thus 
leaving  the  Turkish  garrison  at  liberty  either  to  penetrate  into 
the  Morea,  or  cross  the  gulf  of  Lepanto.  Although  this 
unexpected  movement  excited  great  astonishment,  as  well 
as  the  displeasure  of  the  government,  it  is  not  improbable 
that  Colocotroni  might  have  had  a  suspicion  of  what  was 
about  to  happen  ;  for  he  had  scarcely  been  a  week  in  his 
new  quarters,  before  the  intelligence  arrived,  that  a  Turk- 
ish army  had  passed  the  great  Dervenachi,  or  defiles,  and 
had  advanced  to  the  walls  of  Corinth.  Here,  it  should  be 
observed,  that  the  seat  of  government  had  been  transferred 
to  Argos,  soon  after  the  departure  of  Mavrocordato,  and  a 
small  garrison  had  been  left  to  defend  the  Acropolis.     The 


*  Greece  has  since  had  to  deplore  the  loss  of  this  most  excellent  man. 
He  died  at  Castries  in  January,  1823,  after  having  devoted  a  long  life  to 
the  grand  object  of  the  regeneration  of  his  country.  The  death  of  Atha- 
nasius  Canacari  was  universally  and  deeply  lamented :  nor  will  it  be 
easy  to  supply  the  place  of  so  inestimable  a  citizen. 


236  HISTORY  OF  THE 

exact  force  of  the  enemy  was  not  known,  but  from  the  na- 
ture of  the  information  communicated,  it  must  have  been 
very  considerable.  The  arrival  of  this  news,  at  a  moment 
when  so  little  progress  had  been  made  in  the  military  organi- 
zation, and  the  executive  had  no  money  to  pay  the  troops, 
was  well  calculated  to  create  alarm.  The  conduct  of  Colo- 
cotroni  was,  however,  marked  by  the  greatest  firmness  and 
presence  of  mind,  while  his  subsequent  efforts  and  success 
fully  entitled  this  chief  to  the  gratitude  of  his  country.  Not 
doubting  but  that  the  relief  of  Napoli  di  Romania  was  a 
grand  object  with  the  enemy,  he  determined  to  march  to- 
wards that  place,  but  on  preparing  to  depart,  the  utmost 
force  he  could  muster  did  not  exceed  two  thousand  men. 
Forming  this  small  corps  into  two  divisions,  he  sent  the 
largest,  consisting  of  twelve  hundred  men,  towards  Corinth, 
under  the  command  of  his  most  confidential  officer,  Coliopulo, 
to  occupy  the  passes  between  that  place  and  Argos  ;  while 
the  remainder  was  destined  to  act  under  his  own  immediate 
orders.  Messengers  were  dispatched  on  every  side  to  re- 
call the  troops  who  had  retired  to  cultivate  their  fields  or 
visit  their  families.  Colocotroni  proceeded  to  Argos,  where 
he  only  found  Demetrius  Ipsilanti  with  little  more  than  three 
hundred  men,  the  members  of  the  executive  having  thought 
it  expedient  to  embark,  and  to  proceed  to  a  neighbouring 
island,  when  they  heard  of  the  enemy's  approach.  The  con- 
sternation which  now  spread  throughout  the  Morea  was 
greatly  increased  by  the  abandonment  of  Corinth,  and  its  re- 
occupation  by  the  infidels.  Whether  it  arose  from  the  want 
of  means  or  of  foresight,  that  important  point  had  not  been 
supplied  with  provisions.  There  was  indeed  but  too  much 
reason  to  conclude,  that  the  person  who  had  been  left  in 
command  there,  added  pusillanimity  to  treason,  having  fled 
on  the  approach  of  the  Turks,  without  making  any  attempt 
to  defend  the  post  confided  to  his  charge.*     There  is  per- 

*  The  individual  entrusted  with  the  defence  of  Corinth,  was  a  Papas 
of  Hydra,  who  had,  like  many  other  priests,  taken  up  arms  when  the 
revolution  broke  out.  Previous  to  his  evacuation  of  the  Acropolis  of 
Corinth,  he  caused  Kiamel  Bey  to  be  dispatched,  for  having,  as  some 
persons  assert,  kept  up  a  secret  correspondence  with  the  enemy  ;  and 
according  to  others,  because  the  Turkish  chief  persisted  in  refusing  to 
disclose  where  his  treasures  were  concealed.  With  respect  to  these,  it 
is  said  that  his  wife,  whose  life  was  preserved,  and  whom  Machmout 
Pacha  married  after  his  retreat  from  the  plain  of  Argos,  made  the  above 
important  discovery  to  her  new  husband. 

Whatevej  may  have  been  the  motive  for  putting  Kiamel  Bey  to1 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  237 

haps  uo  act  of  the  new  government,  which  has  been  so  much 
censured,  as  its  omitting  to  secure  Corinth  against  re-cap- 
ture ;  and  the  error  became  still  more  apparent  from  it  be- 
ing well  known,  that  a  very  small  garrison  would  have  been 
sufficient  for  its  defence  against  all  the  power  of  Turkey. 
Had  the  Greeks  retained  this  place,  it  is  probable  that  Mach- 
mout  Pacha  would  not  have  passed  the  Isthmus  ;  the  chiefs 
would,  at  all  events,  have  had  more  time  to  prepare  for  his 
reception.  But  Providence  seems  on  this,  as  well  as  on 
other  occasions,  to  have  taken  the  Greeks  under  its  special 
protection,  so  that  their  very  faults  proved  advantageous  to 
them  in  the  end. 

It  was  thus  that  Colocotroni's  sudden  departure  from  Pa 
tras,  which  might  have  been  productive  of  such  serious  con 
sequences,  now  enabled  him  to  reach  the  plain  of  Argos 
just  as  his  presence  was  above  fell  things  necessary.  Nothing 
could  be  more  embarrassing  or  alarming  than  the  situation 
of  Ipsilanti  and  himself  at  this  moment,  without  money  or 
provisions,  and  having  scarcely  thirteen  hundred  men,  to 
oppose  to  an  army  of  thirty  thousand,  which  was  the  number 
said  to  be  advancing  towards  the  plain.  In  this  state  of 
things,  Ipsilanti,  with  a 'degree  of  courage  and  resolution 
which  did  him  the  highest  honour,  threw  himself  into  the  ru- 
ined citadel  of  Argos,  there  to  impede  the  progress  of  the 
enemy,  while  Colocotroni  entrenched  himself  at  Lerna,  a 
strong  position  on  the  western  shore  of  the  gulph,  and  wait- 
ed the  arrival  of  reinforcements  from  Maina,  Arcadia,  and 
other  points. 

Several  small  detachments  of  the  enemy  were  seen  de- 
scending into  the  plain  from  Corinth,  on  the  20th  of  July, 
upon  which,  the  numerous  villages  that  cover  its  prolific  sur- 
face, were  immediately  abandoned  by  the  inhabitants  :  and 
in  two  days  after,  the  first  column,  composed  of  seven  thou- 


death,  he  had  no  claims  to  the  pity  of  a  people  over  whom  he  had  exer* 
eised  a  system  of  the  most  flagitious  tyranny  ever  practised  in  the  Mo- 
rea,  where  his  name  is  held  in  deserved  execration.  Besides  his  innu- 
merable other  exactions  from  the  ill-fated  Greeks,  a  regular  corvee  or 
forced  labour  was  established  throughout  the  Pachialic  for  the  person- 
al benefit  of  the  tyrant.  Like  most  of  the  Pachas,  he  was  the  greatest 
trader  in  the  province,  and  a  most  determined  forestaller  of  corn.  No 
stronger  proof  can  be  given  of  the  state  of  the  Greek  peasantry  under 
their  late  rulers,  than  the  incontestible  fact,  that  Kiamel  Bey  made  a 
common  practice  of  obliging  them  to  receive  the  old  wheat  remaining 
unsold  in  his  own  granaries-,  in  exchange  fox  that  which  they  had  just, 
roapttk 

21* 


238  HISTORY  OF  THE 

sand  cavalry,  and  four  thousand  infantry,  came  in  sight, 
and  halted  about  three  miles  from  Argos.  A  part  of  this  di- 
vision was  observed  to  file  off  towards  Napoli  di  Romania, 
with  which  place  a  negotiation  for  capitulation  had  been 
commenced  fifteen  days  before,  and  even  hostages  had  been 
exchanged  as  a  preliminary  to  its  surrender.  No  sooner, 
however,  did  the  Turkish  commandant  perceive  the  approach 
of  his  friends,  than  he  sent  to  break  off  the  treaty,  request- 
ing that  the  Turks  might  be  liberated,  as  he  was  himself  pre- 
paring to  give  up  the  Greeks. 

The  precaution  having  been  taken  of  destroying  or  carry- 
ing off  whatever  could  be  of  use  to  the  enemy,  more  espe- 
cially corn  and  forage  of  every  kind,  the  Turks,  who  expect- 
ed large  supplies  of  wheat,  from  the  produce  of  the  recent 
harvest,  and  other  booty,  found  nothing  but  the  bare  walls 
of  the  villages  and  churches  standing  ;  they  attempted  to  as- 
cend to  the  citadel,  where  the  Christian  banner  was  display- 
ed, but  were  immediately  repulsed.  Machmout  had  arrived 
by  this  time,  with  a  second  column  of  ten  thousand  men,  ca- 
valry and  infantry,  so  that,  as  far  as  numbers  were  consider- 
ed, the  Greeks  had  ample  cause  of  alarm.  Contrary,  how- 
ever, to  general  expectation,  the  Pacha,  who  was  accompa- 
nied by  Ali  Bey,  the  governor  of  Napoli  di  Romania,  entered 
that  fortress,  and  remained  there  several  days  without  a  sin- 
gle movement  on  the  part  of  his  army,  or  indeed  seeming  to 
have  any  decided  plan  of  operation  in  view.  The  Greeks 
were  by  no  means  so  inactive.  Colocotroni  continued  to 
strengthen  his  position  at  Lerna,  while  the  number  of  his 
troops  increased  daily,  and  soon  amounted  to  eight  thousand 
men.  On  the  appearance  of  the  second  division  of  the  ene- 
my, Ipsilanti  prepared  to  quit  the  Acropolis,  which  was  en- 
tirely destitute  of  water,  and  as  the  object  of  checking  the 
Turks  had  been  fully  attained,  his  presence  was  no  longer  ne- 
cessary. The  retreat  was  effected  in  a  very  masterly  style  ; 
for  though  surrounded  by  detachments  of  the  enemy,  Prince 
Demetrius  profiting  by  an  interval  of  darkness,  left  the  dilapi- 
dated position  which  he  had  so  well  maintained,  and  suc- 
ceeded in  joining  the  main  body  at  Lerna,  without  losing  a  man. 

When  there  had  been  sufficient  time  for  the  Greeks  to 
look  around  them,  and  send  out  reconnoitering  parties,  the 
state  of  affairs  assumed  a  much  less  terrific  aspect  than  at 
first.  It  was  soon  found,  that  so  far  from  having  brought 
supplies  to  the  starving  garrison  of  Napoli,  the  infidels  had 
advanced  without  any  means  of  subsistence  for  themselves 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  239 

Nothing  could  be  more  characteristic  of  the  Turkish  military 
system,  than  this  omission.  They  might  have  readily  ima- 
gined, that  the  Greeks  would  not  suffer  the  produce  of  the 
harvest  to  fall  into  their  hands,  while  it  was  equally  certain, 
there  was  not  a  blade  of  grass  to  be  procured  at  this  season 
of  the  year.  To  render  the  fatality  which  seemed  to  await 
the  enemy  still  more  complete,  Machmout  had  not  left  a 
single  detachment  to  guard  any  of  the  defiles  through  which 
he  had  entered  the  Morea. 

Threatened  with  all  the  horrors  of  famine  and  drought, 
which  had  already  began  to  make  considerable  ravages 
among  the  Turks,  the  Pacha  seemed  at  length  to  awake  from 
his  lethargy,  and  quitting  Napoli,  followed  by  a  numerous 
suite,  gave  orders  for  their  preparing  to  return  towards  Co- 
rinth. It  is  needless  to  say,  with  what  alacrity  these  orders 
were  obeyed.  The  whole  camp  was  instantly  on  the  alert, 
and  no  sooner  were  the  camels  laden  with  the  baggage,  than 
the  infidel  army  set  forward  in  great  disorder.  Minutely  in- 
formed of  what  was  passing  on  the  plain,  by  their  out-posts, 
the  chiefs  at  Lerna  had  already  sent  off  detachments  by  a 
mountain  path-way,  so  as  to  overtake  the  enemy's  columns 
as  they  entered  the  defiles  between  Corinth  and  Mycene. 
Colocotroni  himself  advanced  with  the  main  body  the  mo- 
ment that  he  perceived  the  Turks  were  in  motion  ;  while  a 
part  of  the  troops  employed  before  Napoli,  advanced  on  their 
right  flank.  These  movements  were  so  well  contrived  and 
executed,  that  the  enemy,  whose  rear-guard  had  suffered  se- 
verely on  the  first  day's  march,  was  attacked  with  such  im- 
petuosity on  the  second,  that  not  less  than  five  thousand 
were  destroyed  in  the  course  of  a  few  hours.  And  had  it 
not  been  that  many  of  the  Greek  soldiery,  paid  more  atten- 
tion to  the  loaded  camels,  than  to  the  fugitives,  the  loss  of 
the  Turks  would  have  been  much  greater.  The  fate  of  thr 
advanced  guard  was  little  better  than  that  of  their  compa- 
nions. On  reaching  the  defiles  near  Corinth,  they  were  met 
by  the  Mainotes,  dispatched  from  Lerna,  under  Nikitas,  and 
attacked  so  furiously,  that  above  twelve  hundred  of  them 
perished  in  the  first  onset.  Many  more  were  killed  in  trying 
to  force  the  passes.  A  great  quantity  of  baggage  and  a 
number  of  horses  fell  into  the  hands  of  the  Greeks.  These 
memorable  successes  occurred  between  the  4th  and  7th  of 
August.  Some  of  the  foreign  volunteers  who  were  present 
during  this  retreat,  have  expressed  their  astonishment  at  the 
.Ctamqilil  manner  in  which  the  Turks,  bofh  infantry  and  caval- 


240  HISTORY  OF  THE 

ry,  suffered  themselves  to  be  cut  down,  without  making  the 
smallest  resistance,  as  if  they  had  looked  upon  themselves  as 
consigned  to  death  by  some  supernatural  power. 

The  almost  entire  destruction  of  this  army  is  acknowledged 
by  the  British  Consul.  And  while  as  humane  beings  we 
cannot  rejoice  at  the  relation  of  so  much  suffering,  still,  we 
may  consider  that  the  Greeks  not  only  fought  in  defence  of 
their  country,  but  their  lives,  and  that  on  the  part  of  the 
Turks  this  was  a  war  of  extermination.  Mr.  Green's  ac- 
count is  as  follows. 

"I  have  been  particularly  anxious  to  obtain  a  correct  ac- 
count of  the  disasters  of  the  large  army  which  invaded  the 
Morea  in  July,  1822.  The  following  particulars  I  obtained 
from  Cara  Osman  Oglu,  the  Commissary-General,  and  from 
other  Turks  who  were  with  the  army. 

It  consisted  of  twenty-three  thousand  men,  although  ra 
tions  were  allowed  for  twenty-eight  thousand  :  there  were 
also  between  fifty  and  sixty  thousand  horses  and  mules,  as, 
independent  of  a  horse,  many  of  the  men  possessed  three  or 
four  mules,  acquired  by  pillage  in  the  different  districts 
through  which  they  passed.  Of  this  force,  fifteen  hundred 
men  were  sent  to  the  relief  of  Napoli  in  July,  under  the 
command  of  Ali  Pacha,  formerly  Ali  Bey,  Governor  of  Ar- 
gos.  Another  division  of  five  thousand  men  attempted  to 
penetrate  by  Argos  to  Tripolizza,  but  were  repulsed  by  the 
Greeks,  and  wanting  provisions,  returned  to  Corinth  with  a 
considerable  loss.  In  addition  to  the  supplies  brought  with 
the  army,  five  cargoes  of  wheat  and  rice  were  received  at 
Corinth  from  Constantinople  and  Alexandria,  besides  a  few 
eccasional  supplies  sent  by  Isouf  Pacha  from  Patras.  Na- 
poli being  quite  destitute  of  provisions,  Ali  Pacha  made  the 
most  pressing  demands  for  a  supply,  which  Dramali  attempt- 
ed to  furnish,  by  sending  two  expeditions,  only  one  of  which 
arrived  safe,  and  that  consisting  of  fifty  mules  laden  with 
wheat  and  rice,  escorted  by  a  body  of  cavalry.  The  town 
#f  Corinth  having  been  burnt  by  the  Insurgents  before  they 
evacuated  it,  the  troops  were  compelled  to  bivouac  in  the 
4>pen  air,  or  some  few  under  tents  ;  the  rainy  season  set  in, 
and  the  mortality  was  very  great ;  their  horses  and  mules 
also  died  from  want  of  pasturage  and  grain,  or  were  killed  to 
supply  food.  The  Greeks  collected  in  the  vicinity,  and. 
several  skirmishes  took  place,  but  none  of  any  consequence. 
In  short,  of  the  twenty-three  thousand  men  who  undisputed- 
}y  finlered  Gorinth,  upwards  of  seventeen  thousand  perished 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  241 

in  the  space  of  eight  months,  and  four  fifths  of  that  number 
through  disease  and  starvation  :  only  three  thousand  five 
hundred  arrived  at  Patras,  and  with  the  survivors  of  the  fif- 
teen hundred  who  surrendered  at  Napoli,  and  the  garrison 
left  in  Corinth,  form  the  remnants  of  that  large  army  which 
was  destined  by  the  Sultan  to  re-conquer  the  Morea,  and 
reduce  the  rebel  subjects  of  the  Porte  to  obedience."* 

Having  collected  the  remnant  of  his  army  under  the  walls 
of  Corinth,  and  been  joined  by  the  reserves  left  there,  Mach- 
mout  Pacha  made  a  movement  on  the  18th,  with  the  seem- 
ing view  of  resuming  the  offensive,  and  marching  towards 
Argos  :  the  real  object  of  this  movement,  was,  however,  to 
draw  the  Greeks,  who  had  been  watching  him,  into  an  am- 
buscade. Aware  of  his  intentions  in  time,  the  Greeks,  in- 
stead of  attempting  to  impede  him,  got  into  his  rear,  when 
the  Turks  attacked  them,  but  owing  to  the  advantageous  po- 
sition taken  up  by  the  Greeks,  the  enemy  was  again  repuls- 
ed with  great  loss.  A  still  more  bloody  affair  took  place  on 
the  following  day.  Determined  to  regain  the  position  they 
had  abandoned,  the  Turkish  troops  were  headed  by  Hadji  Ali, 
second  in  command  to  Machmout  :  this  officer,  one  of  the 
bravest  of  the  Ottoman  army,  was  killed  while  encouraging 
his  men.  In  the  above  desperate  effort,  the  enemy  lost  near- 
ly two  thousand  men,  together  with  a  large  quantity  of  bag- 
gage, and  several  hundred  horses. f 

The  blockade  of  Napoli  di  Romania  was  now  renewed, 
with  increased  vigilance,  and  Ipsilanti  proceeded  to  reinforce 
the  garrison  at  Athens,  lest  other  divisions  of  the  enemy 
should  advance  towards  that  place.  Ali  Bey  had  retained 
the  five  hundred  cavalry  which  he  brought  to  strengthen  the 
garrison  of  Napoli ;  but  with  the  exception  of  a  small  quan- 
tity of  grain  found  concealed  in  some  parts  of  the  plain,  du- 
ring its  recent  occupation,  his  stock  of  provisions  was  ex- 
hausted. 

"  Sketches,  p.  140. 

f  Mr.  Waddington  states,  that  he  possesses  a  copy  of  the  letter  from 
Nikitas  to  Odysseus,  giving  an  account  of  this  affair,  in  which  he  esti- 
mates his  own  loss  at  fifteen  killed  and  wounded,  and  eight  missing, 
while  the  loss  of  the  Turks  was  500.  "  The  Mussulmen  rode  into  the 
passes,  with  their  sabres  in  their  sheaths,  and  their  hands  before  their 
eyes,  the  victims  of  destiny  ;  and  if  the  Greeks,  from  fear,  or  neglect, 
had  not  left  one  road  entirely  unoccupied,  by  which  most  of  the  enemy 
escaped,  the  whole  of  the  Ottoman  army  might  have  fallen  on  that  spot 
-^Wadding ton,  p.  144. 


242  HISTORY  OF  THE 

-Qrto  After  the  successes  between  Corinth  and  Argos, 
Colocotroni  collected  the  whole  of  his  troops,  within 
a  short  distance  of  the  former  place,  and  leaving  them  under 
the  direction  of  Coliopulo,  with  orders  to  watch  the  shatter- 
ed remains  of  Machmout's  army,  he  went  on  to  Tripolizza,  to 
concert  with  the  Senate,  which  had  been  formed  after  the 
embarkation  of  the  executive,  relative  to  the  subsistence  of 
the  troops,  and  vigorous  prosecution  of  the  campaign. 

The  members  of  the  government,  who  had  never  left  the 
gulph,  disembarked  at  Derna  in  the  beginning  of  September. 
The  reasons  given  for  their  withdrawing  were  by  no  means 
satisfactory  to  the  soldiery  :  It  was  alleged  that  by  remain- 
ing on  shore,  they  had  no  means  whatever  of  adding  to  the 
resources  of  the  Morea,  or  contributing  to  its  defence,  whereas 
the  influence  of  the  military  chiefs  neutralized  all  their  pow- 
er there.  On  the  other  hand,  there  was  no  doubt,  that  in 
retiring  they  were  enabled  not  only  to  communicate  their 
decrees  to  the  different  points  of  the  confederation,  but  could 
appeal  with  more  effect  to  the  naval  islands  for  succour  and 
support.  However  conclusive  these  reasons  might  have 
been  to  the  less  partial  observer,  they  did  not  prevent  a  num- 
ber of  ill-natured  remarks,  more  particularly  on  the  part  of 
Colocotroni,  who  was  loudest  in  his  censures,  and  from  hav- 
ing performed  so  conspicuous  a  part  in  gaining  the  late  vic- 
tory, naturally  thought  himself  entitled  to  all  the  honours  of 
the  triumph.  Hence  arose  an  altercation  which  prevented 
the  executive  from  resuming  their  functions  for  some  weeks: 
to  this  circumstance  may  also  be  traced  a  great  deal  of  that 
jealousy  between  the  civil  and  military  authorities,  which  has, 
on  more  than  one  occasion,  retarded  the  interests  of  the  con- 
federation since  the  above  period. 

As  it  happened  in  almost  every  other  instance  of  success, 
the  Greeks  had  no  means  of  following  up  the  events  of  July 
and  August,  1822.  Finding  that  the  enemy  did  not  attempt 
to  approach  Athens,  Ipsilanti  returned  to  the  Morea,  and  to- 
gether with  Nikitas,  advanced  towards  Napoli,  to  assist  in  the 
reduction  of  that  fortress.  The  troops  left  under  Colio- 
pulo, not  being  regularly  supplied  with  rations,  nor  receiving 
any  pay,  became  so  tired  of  the  service  in  which  they  were 
engaged,  that  the  greatest  part  withdrew  ;  merely  leaving 
Colocotroni's  eldest  son,  a  brave  and  promising  young  offi- 
cer, with  two  or  three  hundred  men,  to  maintain  the  block- 
ade of  Corinth.  N  As  there  was  still  a  body  of  three  thou- 
sand   men,  of  whom   two  thirds  were  cavalry,  encamped 


I 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  243 

under  the  walls,  the  situation  of  young  Colocotroni  was  now 
very  critical,  and  he  had  certain  information  that  the  Turks 
were  preparing  to  march  at  all  hazards  to  the  relief  of  Napo- 
li.  They  did  succeed  in  sending  a  small  detachment,  which 
gained  the  fortress  unobserved  by  the  troops  before  Corinth, 
or  those  employed  in  the  blockade  of  Napoli.  The  latter 
were,  however,  in  general  extremely  vigilant,  as,  excepting 
a  convoy  of  fifty  mules  laden  with  grain,  that  contrived  to 
steal  across  the  plain  of  Argos  and  enter  the  citadel  in  the 
night,  and  during  a  heavy  storm,  the  exertions  of  the  Greeks 
were  so  unremitted,  that  whoever  attempted  to  leave  or  ap- 
proach the  walls,  was  almost  sure  of  being  intercepted.  It 
was  thus,  that  nearly  all  the  cavalry  brought  by  Ali  Beyft 
were  cut  off  in  detail,  during  their  attempts  to  obtain  sup- 
plies. 

The  time  had,  however,  now  approached,  when  the  garri- 
son of  Napoli  could  no  longer  hope  for  relief  on  the  side  of 
Corinth.  Colocotroni,  who  had  succeeded  in  making  ar- 
rangements for  the  more  regular  subsistence  of  the  troops, 
uniting  his  forces  with  those  under  Nikitas,  marched  to  the 
passes  near  the  Isthmus,  with  a  determination  not  to  aban- 
don them  before  Napoli  surrendered.  He  had  not  been 
many  days  here  before  the  Turks  advanced  with  the  inten- 
tion of  forcing  the  passes,  but  finding  the  Greeks  posted  on 
each  side,  they  halted,  when  a  parley  ensued.  After  much 
recrimination  and  abuse  on  both  sides,  the  infidels  closed  the 
conference,  by  asking  how  long  the  Greeks  intended  to  re- 
main in  their  present  position,  and  on  being  answered  "  un- 
til you  dislodge  us,"  they  immediately  retired  ;  a  scarcity  of 
ammunition,  joined  to  his  resolution  of  not  quitting  the  fast- 
nesses, prevented  Colocotroni  from  pursuing  the  Turks  on 
this  occasion.  The  sufferings  and  privations  of  the  Greek 
soldiers,  whether  employed  before  Napoli  or  in  the  passes, 
during  November  and  the  following  month,  were  of  the  most 
harassing  description.  They  had  no  shelter  whatever  at 
night,  though  exposed  to  the  piercing  cold  and  incessant 
storms,  which  prevail  on  the  mountains  of  Greece  at  this 
period,  and  without  any  other  covering  than  the  rude  Alba- 
nian mantle  :  while  the  daily  ration  of  each  man  did  not  ex- 
ceed half  a  pound  of  the  coarsest  bread.  Those  stationed  at 
the  Dervenachi,  or  passes,  were  frequently  obliged  to  march 
over  rocks  and  inaccessible  crags  from  day-light  till  dark,  and 
not  unfrequently  during  the  night.  Nor  was  the  situation  of 
the  blockading  force  before  Napoli  much  better  :    it  wa« 


244  HISTORY  OP  THE 

very  rare  for  those  to  have  their  arms  out  of  their  hands*, 
while  they  were  either  exposed  to  chilling  blasts  on  the 
heights,  or  inundated  with  rain  on  the  plain  below.  It  is  true, 
the  sufferings  of  the  Greeks  here  were  trifling  when  compar- 
ed with  those  of  the  Turkish  garrison,  which  had  been  re- 
duced to  the  last  extremity  of  want,  for  some  weeks  before 
its  capitulation.  Nor  was  it  until  all  the  horses  were  con- 
sumed, and  that  many  of  the  wretched  soldiery  were  driven 
to  the  horrible  necessity  of  subsisting  on  the  carcases  of  their 
fellow-sufferers,  that  those  charged  with  the  defence  of  the 
Palamida,  or  citadel,  built  by  the  Venetians  on  a  mountain 
which  overlooks  the  town,  suffered  themselves  to  be  sur- 
prised by  a  party  of  Greeks,  without  making  the  least  resist- 
ance. On  scaling  the  wall,  there  were  not  more  than  thirty 
men  found  in  that  part  of  the  fortress,  and  these  had  nearly 
the  appearance  of  skeletons.  Hearing  that  the  Greeks  had 
entered,  the  remainder  of  the  Turks  descended  into  the  town 
by  a  covered  way.  Notwithstanding  the  dreadful  condition 
of  the  garrison,  Ali  Bey  hesitated  to  enter  into  terms,  even 
after  he  discovered  that  the  Palamida  had  been  carried. 
But  there  was  now  no  choice  between  immediate  destruc- 
tion and  surrendering.  The  gates  were  therefore  opened, 
On  condition  that  the  lives  of  the  prisoners  should  be  saved, 
and  that  they  should  be  transported  to  the  coast  of  Asia  Mi- 
nor, by  the  provincial  government.  Pursuant  to  the  terms 
thus  arranged,  the  Greeks  took  possession  of  this  highly  im- 
portant place,  on  the  11th  of  January,  1823,  the  anniversary 
of  St.  Andreas,  the  patron  saint  of  the  Morea,  a  circumstance 
which  could  not  fail  greatly  to  enhance  the  value  of  the  tri- 
umph, in  the  eyes  of  the  people. 

t  onn  Measures  were  immediately  taken  to  procure  ships 
from  the  islands  for  .the* transport  of  the  garrison, 
Agreeable  to  the  terms  of  the  capitulation  ;  but  Captain  Ha- 
milton, of  His  Majesty's  ship  Cambrian,  happening  to  anchor 
ih  the  bay,  and  perceiving  the  deplorable  state  of  the  Turks? 
exposed  to  an  inclement  season,  without  any  means  of  exist- 
ence, determined  to  receive  them  on  board.  Being  accord- 
ingly embarked,  and  having  experienced  all  those  kind  offi- 
ces, from  the  officers  and  crew  of  the  frigate,  which  religion 
and  humanity  dictated,  they  were  soon  after  landed  at  Scula 
Nova.  The  conduct  of  the  Greeks  in  not  offering  the  small- 
est violence,  or  committing  any  excesses  towards  the  garrison 
of  Napoli,  though  it  had  been  for  several  days  in  their  power, 
previous  to  the  arrival  of  the  British  ship,  proves  at  least,  that 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  245 

they  were  not  so  insensible  to  the  sentiments  of  compassion 
and  mercy  as  their  detractors  have  so  often  asserted.  With- 
out dwelling  on  the  meritorious  conduct  of  the  Greeks,  in 
this  case,  it  may  well  be  asked,  what  would  have  been  the 
fate  of  a  Christian  garrison,  thus  taken  by  the  Turks  in  a 
place  that  had  held  out  as  long  as  Napoli  di  Romania  1* 


*  As  an  excuse  for  the  surrender  of  his  friends,  the  Turks,  on  this 
occasion,  Mr.  Green  makes  the  following  note. — "  The  Turks  inform- 
ed me,"  says  he,  "  that  they  could  have  held  out  much  longer,  but  for 
fear  lest  the  hostages  should  suffer  by  their  acts.  It  has  been  stated, 
that  a  capitulation  of  this  strong  fortress  had  been  agreed  upon,  unless 
the  garrison  was  relieved  within  a  certain  time.  That  for  this  purpose 
hostages  had  been  exchanged,  and  a  little  island,  which  had  a  small  fort 
on  it,  and  was  situated  in  the  middle  of  the  harbour,  had  been  given  up 
to  the  Greeks.  Now,  though  the  Turks  could  bring  upwards  of  fifty 
heavy  guns  to  bear  upon  it,  yet  when  they  were  relieved,  and  the  terms 
of  the  capitulation  became  void,  the  Greeks  not  only  kept  possession  oi 
the  island  itself,  but  absolutely  hindered  any  ship  from  throwing  pro- 
visions into  the  town.  More  than  once  the  Pacha  took  courage,  and 
ordered  the  fort  to  be  blown  to  pieces  ;  and  once  the  Greeks  informed 
me,  that  had  he  continued  the  tremendous  fire  any  longer,  they  should 
have  surrendered.  But  they  stuck  up  the  Pacha's  son  and  the  other 
hostages  on  the  wall,  and  the  poor  father  was  obliged  to  give  immedi- 
ate orders  to  cease  firing.  It  was  thus  by  constantly  threatening  to  de- 
stroy their  hostages,  that  the  Greeks  compelled  the  Turks  to  suffer  in- 
numerable privations,  to  eat  grass  and  human  flesh,  and  ultimately  to 
surrender,  rather  than  allow  one  of  them  to  be  harmed.  When  the 
Cambrian  received  a  remnant  of  this  garrison,  I  saw  a  little  girl  of 
twelve  years  of  age  come  on  board  gnawing  the  foot  of  an  ass,  the  skin 
and  sinews  of  which  she  had  peeled  off.  Many  of  the  others  had  just 
strength  enough  to  get  to  the  different  ships,  and  then  died.  There 
was  one  curious  trait  in  this  siege,  which  I  shall  relate,  as  it  affords  an 
example  how  the  Turks  and  Greeks  feel  towards  each  other,  and 
how  this  patriotic  war  was  conducted.  Colocotroni,  whose  patriotism 
is  on  a  par  with  his  disinterestedness,  got  all  his  own  followers  into  the 
town,  and  took  particular  care  that  none  of  the  rabble  should  share  in 
the  plunder.  Each  man  followed  the  example  of  their  noble  leader,  and 
cared  very  little  what  the  government  got,  provided  he  was  satisfied. 
The  rich  Turks  were  too  well  acquainted  with  the  power  of  a  bribe  not 
to  know  its  effect  on  a  Greek.  They  used,  therefore,  to  call  some  one 
whom  they  had  previously  known,  and  tell  him,  '  Now  I  have  got  so 
much  treasure;  I  will  give  you  the  half  of  it,  provided  you  allow  me  to 
retain  the  other  half,  and  escort  me  to  the  ships  :  if  you  won't  do  so,  I 
will  tell  your  companions,  and  they  will  then  divide  my  property  among 
fhem,  and  you  will  get  nothing.'  A  great  number  of  such  bargains 
were  made.  After  this  they  were  escorted  to  the  different  vessels ; 
and  it  is  an  odd  circumstance,  that  although  the  various  massacres  of 
Navarin,  Tripolizza,  &c.  had  already  taken  place,  yet  comparatively 
few  of  the  rich  would  come  on  board  the  Cambrian :  they  said  thev 

22 


246  HISTORY  OF  THE 

The  surrender  of  Napoli  led  to  another  triumph  on  the 
part  of  the  Greeks,  destined  to  form  the  last  portion  of  that 
terrible  fate  which  had  awaited  the  army  of  Machmout 
Pacha.  The  object  of  the  division  which  remained  at  Co- 
rinth, being  to  relieve  the  garrison  of  the  above  place, 
there  was  no  longer  any  motive  for  its  continuance  there. 
Want  of  provisions  had,  besides,  rendered  a  change  of  po- 
sition absolutely  necessary.  The  Turkish  commanders, 
therefore,  determined  to  march  towards  Patras,  the  blockade 
of  which  place  had  been  lately  neglected  by  the  Greeks. 
Setting  out  about  the  middle  of  January,  with  nearly  3,000 
men,  of  whom  a  large  portion  were  cavalry,  they  had  only 
advanced  as  far  as  Akrata,  near  Vostizza,  when  Lunda,  who 
was  returning  from  Missolonghi  with  a  small  body  of  troops, 
appeared  on  a  height  through  which  the  road  lay,  while  the 
infidels  were  reposing  in  a  deep  valley,  and  thus  suddenly 
stopped  their  progress.  There  being  no  attempt  made  to 
force  a  passage,  the  Greek  general  had  ample  time  to  send 
oft*  expresses  for  reinforcements,  and  was  shortly  joined  by 
Petmezza,  another  distinguished  chief,  who  occupied  the  op- 
posite side  of  the  valley.  A  new  scene  of  horror  was  thus 
prepared  for  the  devoted  Turkish  soldiers.  Their  scanty 
stock  of  bread  being  exhausted,  they  began  to  feed  on  the 
horses ;  when  the  whole  of  these  were  devoured,  recourse 
was  had  to  the  herbs  which  grew  on  the  surrounding  rocks  ; 
having  subsequently  attempted  to  derive  sustenance  from 
their  saddles,  they  were  at  last  obliged  to  follow  the  shock- 
ing example  furnished    at    Malvasia  and    Napoli.*      The 


knew  the  captains  of  such  and  such  vessels,  they  were  their  friends,  and 
to  them  they  would  go." — Green's  Sketches,  p.  135,  136. 

*  The  following  particulars  of  the  horrid  state  of  suffering  to  which 
this  party  were  reduced,  we  take  from  Mr.  Green. 

"  This  division,"  says  he,  "  was  under  the  command  of  Delhi  Ach- 
met,  the  Delhi  Bashi,  or  commander  of  the  Cavalry  of  Dramali. 
The  coast  was  for  the  most  part  bold  and  rocky,  and  the  mountains  run 
almost  perpendicularly  into  the  sea,  leaving  but  a  line  of  level  road 
for  the  troops  to  march  on.  The  Turks,  half  famished,  disheart- 
ened, and  weak,  crept  along  the  sea-shore  as  far  as  Akrata,  within 
ft  few  miles  of  Vostizza.  Here  there  is  a  tongue  of  land  that  runs 
ijoldly  into  the  sea,  at  the  back  of  which  are  the  Mavralitharia,  or 
"dack  rocks.  The  Greeks,  who  had  tracked  them  narrowly,  occu- 
pying the  tops  of  the  mountains,  while  their  enemies  marched  at 
!  heir  bases,  now  determined  to  inclose  them  :  for  this  purpose  they 
*iug  deep  trenches  on  each  side  of  this  tongue  of  land  :  thus  the 
'i'urks  were  shut  up  on  a  piece  of  ground  shaped  like  a  T  :  the  per- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  24T 

blockade  continued  for  nearly  three  weeks,  when  Odysseus, 
who  had  joined  the  other  chiefs  with  about  200  men,  chanced 
to  recognise  an  old  acquaintance  in  one  of  the  two  beys  who 
commanded  the  Turks:  negotiations  were  entered  into  by 
which  those,  who  survived,  obtained  permission  to  embark, 
on  condition  of  giving  up  their  arms  and  effects.  The  beys 
were  however  conducted  to  Napoli  di  Romania  as  prisoners, 
and  have  been  detained  there  ever  since,  without  any  effort 
being  made  by  the  Porte,  either  for  their  ransom  or  exchange. 
The  number  of  Turks  who  perished  thus  miserably  without 
firing  a  shot  or  drawing  a  sword  in  their  defence,  was  esti- 
mated at  two  thousand.  No  apprehensions  could  be  enter- 
tained from  those  who  escaped,  for  they  were  nearly  dying, 
when  embarked  on  the  gulph  of  Lepanto. 

Such  was  the  termination  of  the  second  campaign  in  the 
Morea  ;  and  upon  the  results  of  which,  the  Porte  fondly 
calculated  on  restoring  its  iron  sway  over  Greece.  Insteadj 
however,  of  realizing  this  hope,  the  loss  of  the  Turks, 
whether  by  famine  or  the  sword,  could  not  be  less  than 
twenty-five  thousand  men  in  the  Peloponnesus  alone,  while 
the  total  want  of  those  military  talents  which  enabled  their 
predecessors  to  enter  Europe  in  the  fifteenth  century,  and 
their  utter  worthlessness  as  a  political  power,  were  never 
more  strongly  exemplified. — Blaquiere,  p.  205 — 228. 

pendicular  portion  represents  the  tongue,  and  the  transverse  figures  the 
coast  where  the  black  rocks  have  been  isolated  by  the  two  trenches.  In 
this  spot  the  Turks  remained  one  month,  and  the  privations  they  under- 
went almost  exceed  belief.  Delhi  Achmet  himself  told  me  that  for 
three  weeks  they  lived  on  horse  flesh  ;  that  then  they  resorted  to  human 
flesh.  They  fought  over  the  graves  of  their  comrades  whom  they  had 
buxied  in  the  morning,  and  dug  up  at  night  to  satisfy  the  cravings  o*' 
hunger. — Sketches,  p.  138. 


248  HISTORY  OF  THE 


CHAPTER  XVin. 

Operations  in  Acarnania. — State  of  the  province. — Mavro- 
eordato  assumes  the  offensive. — Affair  at  Combatti. —  The 
Traitor  Gogo.— Marco  Bozzaris.— Battle  of  P eta. — Re- 
treat of  the  Greeks. — Calamos. — Defection  of  Varnachi- 
otti. — Death  of  Kiriakouli. — Omer  Vrioni  advances. — 
The  passes  are  occupied  by  the  Greeks. — Retreat  to  Misso- 
longhi. — State  of  the  Town. — Arrival  of  the  Turkish  Army 
before  that  place. — Preparations  of  the  Greeks  to  defend 
themselves. — Perilous  state  of  the  garrison. — Succours  ar- 
rive.— Departure  of  Mavromichalis. — General  assault  by 
the  Turks. —  They  are  repulsed  with  great  loss. — Precipi- 
tate Retreat  of  the  Enemy. — He  is  pursued  to  the  Ache- 
ron.— Passage  of  that  River. — Civil  and  Military  organi- 
zation of  the  Province. — Mavrocordato  returns  to  the 
Morea. 

1822.  Though  on  a  much  smaller  scale,  the  operations 
in  Epirus  were  scarcely  less  interesting  than  those  of  the 
Peloponnesus,  since  it  was  owing  to  the  perseverance  and 
gallantry  of  the  chief  employed  in  directing  the  former,  that 
the  enemy  were  prevented  from  invading  the  Morea  from 
the  north. 

The  state  of  anarchy  and  confusion  in  which  Mavrocor- 
dato found  Acarnania  and  Etolia,  was  more  than  sufficient 
to  damp  the  ardour  of  an  ordinary  mind ;  but  aware  of  the 
consequences  which  depended  on  his  efforts,  the  Prince  de- 
termined to  bear  up  against  every  difficulty.*  Having  col- 
lected all  the  troops  he  could  find  at  Missolonghi,  and  incor- 


*  It  appears  that  Prince  Mavrocordato  is  a  most  accomplished  scholar, 
as  well  as  a  great  statesman  and  warrior.  In  a  letter  from  Lord 
Chores  Murray  to  Sir  Frederic  Adam,  the  Prince  is  thus  spoken  of: 

"  Prince  Mavrocordato  has  received  me  with  so  much  hospitality, 
that  I  shall  ever  retain  a  lasting  sense  of  his  Highness's  liberal  prin- 
ciples and  moderate  and  upright  conduct.  When  I  add,  that  he  unites 
to  all  the  first-rate  qualities  of  a  statesman,  the  most  critical  and  accu- 
rate knowledge  of  his  own  language,  as  well  as  of  the  Arabic,  Persian, 
Turkish,  Wallachian,  French,  and  Italian  languages,  and  that  he 
reads  English  with  the  utmost  facility,  and  the  most  correct  pro- 
nunciation, I  feel  I  am  only  describing  a  patriot,  a  scholar,  and  a 
philosopher,  worthy  in  every  respect  of  your  Excellency's  good 
opinion." — Blayuiere's  Second  Visit,  p.  110. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  249 

poraled  them  into  the  newly  organized  levies,  the  whole  did 
not  amount  to  two  thousand  men,  being  less  than  half  the 
number  first   proposed.     With  this  force,  he  however  took 
the  field,    and   having  passed  the  Acheron,  or  Asprotomos 
as  it  is  now  called,  in  the  latter  end  of  June,  proceeded 
through  Loutraki,  towards  the  defiles  of  Macrinorous,  where 
the  Greeks  could  easily  defend  themselves,  and  arrange  a 
more  extended  plan  of  attack,  according  as  their  numbers 
should  increase.     The  Turks,  who  were  posted  in  a  far  su- 
perior force  at  Combatti,  attacked  the  left  occupied  by  a 
part  of  the  first  regiment,  on  the  2d  of  July.     The   new  sys- 
tem of  tactics  was  now  put  into  execution  with  such   effect, 
that  the  enemy  was  soon  forced  to  retreat,  having  been  pur- 
sued to  some  distance  by  the  Philhcllenes,  with  a  loss  of  thir- 
ty men  in  killed  and  wounded.     Several  days  had  been  pass- 
ed here,  during  which  there  were   frequent   skirmishes  with 
the  Turkish  cavalry.     Such  was  the  success  attending  these, 
that  the  Greeks  considered  it  no  longer  necessary  to  confine 
themselves  to  the  defensive,  and  as  the  siege  of  Kiapha  was 
carrying  on  with  great  vigour  by  a  large  body  of  Albanians, 
Marco  Bozzaris,  who  had  accompanied  the  Prince,  expressed 
so  much  anxiety  to  go  to  the  relief  of  his  brave  countrymen, 
and  such  confidence   in  the  success  of  the  enterprise,  that  he" 
was  at  length  allowed  to  set  forward,  with  six  hundred  men, 
although  the  reinforcement  had  not  yet  arrived.     In    order 
to  support  this  movement,  the  main  body   under   General 
Norman,  advanced  to  the  village  of  Peta,  while   the   Prince 
continued  his  rounds  to  the  neighbouring  districts,  for  the 
purpose  of  reconciling  jarring  interests,    arming  the  people, 
and  procuring  the  necessary  supplies.     Had    the     Greeks 
been  aware  of  the  number  of  the  enemy,  they  would  never 
have  adopted    the  above  plan  ;    of  which  the  imprudence 
soon  became  apparent  ;  but  they  were  deceived  by  the  re- 
presentations of  an  old  Anatolican  chief,  named  Gogo,  whose 
subsequent  conduct  proved  him  to  have  been  in  communica- 
tion with  the  Turks.     The  enemy  having  been  secretly   ad- 
vised by  Gogo,  of  the   march  of  Bozzaris,  attacked   him  at 
Placa,  compelled  him  to  fall  back  and   retreat  to  the  moun- 
tains.    The  separation  of  the  forces,  which  were  already  so 
inferior  to   those  of  the  enemy,  could  not    fail  to  expose 
the  small  corps  at  Peta  to  the  general  attack,  which  new 
took  place. 

The  village  of  Peta  is  within  a  few  miles  of  Arta, 
and  built  in  a  hollow,  on  each  side  of  which  rise 
22* 


250  HISTORY  OF  THE 

two  lofty  heights,  rendering  the  position  very  strong.     Thg 
Philhellenes  were  posted  on  the  right,  where  the  attack  was 
expected  to  commence,  and  had  two  small  pieces  of  mount- 
ed artillery.     The  fii'st  regiment,   under    Colonel  Tarella, 
was  placed  in  the  centre,  while  a  small  corps  of  Cephaloni- 
ans,  commanded  by  Spirro  Pauno,    occupied  the  left.     The 
remainder  amounting  to  about  eight  hundred   Greeks  under 
Gogo,  were  posted  in  the  village  and  on  the  height  in  its  rear. 
The  Turks  were  seen  marching  out  of  Arta   at   daylight  on 
the  morning  of  July  the  16th.     Their  number  was  estima- 
ted at  above  six  thousand  men,  of  whom  twelve   hundred 
were   cavalry.     The  latter  took  up   several  positions  on  the 
right,  so   as  to  intercept  all  communication  with  Combatti, 
and  cut  off  the  retreat  of  the   Hellenists.     The  attack  was 
commenced  by  a  large  body  of  Albanians,  who  rushed   for- 
ward with  loud  shouts  and  waving  of  banners  ;  they  were, 
however,  received  with  such  a  brisk  fire  by  the  Philhellenes, 
that   great  numbers  fell    before   they   could  reach  the   en- 
trenchments.    The  fire  of  musketry  had  been  maintained  for 
above  two  hours,  in  the  course   of  which   time  the  Greeks 
had  scarcely  lost  a  man,  whilst  hundreds   of  the   Albanians 
were  strewed  over  the  field,  when  it  was  reported  that  Gogo 
had  abandoned  the  village,  and   fled  with  all  his  followers, 
thus    enabling    the  Turks  to  turn  the  right    flank  of    the 
Greeks.      Having  ascended  the  height  in  their  rear,  the  Ce- 
phalonians,    who  had  acted  nobly,   were   overpowered  and 
driven  back  on  the  regiment  of  Tarella  ;   when  the  Philhel- 
lenes also,  unable  to  resist  the  torrent,  were   in   their  turn 
forced  to  give  way,  and  abandoned  the  position.     The  ground 
was  immediately  covered  by  the  whole  of  the  Turkish  infan- 
try, when  a  desperate  conflict  ensued  ;  once  broken,  it  was 
impossible  with   such  a  disparity  of  numbers,   to  rally  the 
troops,  so  that  those  who  attempted  to  escape  could  only  do 
so  over  the  dead  bodies  of  the  enemy.     Many  of  the  officers 
and  men  performed  prodigies  of  valour ;  amongst  others, 
the  names  of  Dania,  Tarella,   Chauvassin,  Heusmaun,  and 
Migniac,  were  more  particularly  distinguished.     The   latter 
is  said  to  have  laid  ten  men  at  his  feet,  before  he  fell  :  the 
brave  Colonel  Tarella  and  Dania  were  also  among  the  kill- 
ed, as  were  many  others  whose  names  deserve  a  lasting  re* 
cord  for  their  heroism  on  this  occasion.     General  Norman, 
who  commanded,  was  amongst  the  wounded,  and  escaped 
with  difficulty.     Having  at  length  succeeded  in  gaining  that- 
part  of  the  mountain,  which  was  inaccessible  to  the  enemy's 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  251 

cavalry,  those  who  escaped  the  carnage  returned  to  the 
small  village  of  Langado.  Mavrocordato,  who  was  some 
leagues  from  the  scene  of  action,  did  not  hear  of  the  enemy's 
advance,  until  within  a  few  hours  of  the  attack  ;  and  owing 
to  the  messenger  having  arrived  in  the  night,  some  time  was 
necessarily  required  to  put  the  few  men  he  had  with  him  in 
motion.  Setting  out  at  day-break,  he  had  not  marched 
far  before  another  express  apprised  him  of  the  disastrous 
result  of  the  battle  ;  upon  which,  there  was  no  alternative 
but  to  return  and  form  a  junction  with  the  remains  of  the 
army  collected  at  Langado.  On  mustering  their  forces, 
it  was  found  that  the  loss  in  killed  did  not  exceed  two  hun- 
dred, of  whom  nearly  one  fourth  were  officers.*  This  loss 
fell  infinitely  short  of  what  was  anticipated,  for  besides  the 
great  disparity  as  to  numbers,  the  manner  in  which  they 
had  been  surrounded  on  every  side  seemed  to  render  the  re- 
treat quite  impossible.  From  Langado,  the  troops  proceed- 
ed to  Acracori,  having  left  parties  behind  to  watch  the  passes 
of  Macrinoros.  The  only  use  made  of  their  victory  by  the 
enemy,  was  to  occupy  Vonnizza  on  the  southern  shores  of  the 
gulph  of  Aria. 


'  *  These  foreigners,"  says  Mr.  Green,  "were  mostly  officers  who 
cams,  led  either  by  ambition  or  need,  to  seek  their  fortunes  ;  but 
they  were  very  soon  disappointed,  and  therefore  formed  themselves 
into  a  band  which  General  Norman  commanded.  They,  and  the 
Cephaloniots,  were  surrounded  by  the  Turks  on  all  sides :  the  pass, 
which  their  allies,  the  Greeks,  were  to  secure,  had  been  given  up, 
either  through  treachery  or  cowardice.  The  Albanians  crept  along 
the  heights,  and  picked  off  and  thinned  their  troops,  one  by  one. 
At  last  they  determined  to  cut  their  way  through  the  Turks;  but 
these  perceiving  their  intention,  opened,  and  allowed  them  to  pass, 
and  then  fired  t  upon  them  from  all  sides.  The  Europeans  placed 
themselves  in  parties,  back  to  back,  and  retreated,  while  the  Turks 
pressed  them  hard.  A  French  officer,  who  was  one  of  the  few  who 
■escaped,  told  me  that  he  was  thus  situated.  A  friend  of  his  was 
opposed  to  a  Turk  who  was  a  standard-bearer  ;  he  seized  the  standard, 
and  succeeded  in  cutting  down  the  Turk,  but  was  instantly  assailed 
by  the  whole  number  who  surrounded  them.  The  Frenchman  and 
another,  in  the  mean  time  were  retreating,  when  both  fell  into  a  deep 
ditch,  in  which,  fortunately,  there  was  much  brushwood.  The 
Turks,  in  the  interim,  had  regained  their  standard,  but  not  finding 
the  Frenchman,  left  the  spot.  The  two  in  the  ditch,  on  looking  up, 
saw  most  of  their  friends  slaughtered,  and  the  Turks  busy  in  chop- 
ping off  heads  and  ears  ;  they  therefore  very  wisely  kept  close,  and 
only  stirred  when  it  was  dark.  Norman  died  of  his  wounds;  and 
a  whole  packet  of  military  ribbons  and  crosses  fell  into  the  hands  of  the* 
TurW-— Sketches,  p.  110. 


252  HISTORY  OF  THE 

The  advance  to  Vonnizza  was  merely  preparatory  to  an 
expedition  which  Reschid  Pacha,  who  had  recently  arrived 
with  four  thousand  Asiatics,  intended  to  command  in  per- 
son, for  the  purpose  of  putting  down  the  insurrection  in 
Acarnania  ;  the  jealousies  which  had  arisen  between  this 
chief  and  Omer  Vrioni  were,  however,  favourable  to  the 
Greeks,  and  gave  them  time  to  recover  from  the  effects  of 
the  disaster  at  Peta.  With  respect  to  the  Albanians,  they 
wished  for  nothing  so  much  as  delay,  and  as  it  was  well 
known  that  they  merely  served  the  Porte  as  mercenaries, 
without  feeling  any  interest  in  the  success  of  the  war,  there 
is  little  doubt  but  these  bands  would  have  been  as  content  to 
receive  a  bribe  from  one  party  as  the  other. 

But  notwithstanding  the  inactivity  of  the  enemy,  the  situa- 
tion of  the  Greeks  had  now  become  extremely  embarrass- 
ing :  the  recent  check,  in  which  their  best  troops  had  been 
beaten,  created  such  a  panic  among  the  inhabitants,  that 
several  thousand  sought  refuge  in  the  mountains  ;  while  the 
more  helpless  portion  of  the  community  fled  to  the  desert 
islands  of  Calamos.  The  alarm  was  not  a  little  increased 
by  the  arrival  of  the  Capitan  Pacha,  with  a  formidable  fleet, 
at  Patras.  It  was  truly  fortunate,  therefore,  that  Reschid 
Pacha  did  not  act  with  more  energy,  as  a  well  combined 
movement  might  have  enabled  him  to  complete  what  had 
been  commenced  at  Arta,  to  overrun  the  province  with  the 
utmost  facility.  To  crown  these  causes  of  terror,  it  was 
reported  that  the  army  of  Machmout  Pacha  had  succeeded 
in  destroying  the  government  in  the  Morea,  and  reconquer- 
ed the  whole  country.  What  with  the  loss  at  Peta,  and  the 
panic  that  followed,  the  utmost  force  now  united  to  resist 
the  threatened  dangers  did  not  exceed  a  thousand  men, 
while  that  of  the  enemy,  which  had  passed  on  to  Vonnizza, 
was  more  than  four  thousand.  The  Greeks,  however,  took 
post  at  Catouna,  in  order  to  guard  the  passes  leading  into 
the  plains  of  Acarnania. 

It  was  while  matters  were  in  this  state  of  doubt  and  alarm 
that  the  system  of  neutrality,  established  by  the  late  Lord 
High  Commissioner  of  the  Ionian  islands,  was  manifested 
in  a  manner  which  requires  to  be  placed  on  record.  As 
those  who  took  refuge  in  Calamos  consisted  almost  exclu- 
sively of  old  men,  women,  and  children,  it  was  not  likely 
that  their  presence  on  a  desolate  rock,  which  had  never  been 
thought  of  sufficient  importance  to  require  even  a  military 
tfost  before  the  present  contest,  could  tend  in  any  way, 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  253 

to  violate  the  neutrality ;  while  the  wretched  condition  of 
the  fugitives,  without  food  or  raiment,  was  such  as  to  excite 
pity  and  commiseration  in  the  most  obdurate  heart.  An  of- 
ficer was,  however,  despatched  to  drive  the  wretched  beings, 
who  thus  sought  an  asylum  from  British  clemency,  away,  and 
tfeey  were  accordingly  forced  to  retrace  their  steps  into 
Acarnania,  without  house  or  home,  or  the  means  of  subsis- 
tence ;  for  every  thing  had  been  destroyed  or  plundered  by 
the  Turks  previous  to  their  flight :  indeed,  many  of  the  fu- 
gitives, among  whom  were  the  most  beautiful  women  of  Ar- 
ta  and  Ioannina,  had  been  unable  to  bring  off  their  children. 
When  it  is  added,  that  on  leaving  Calamos,  these  unhappy 
victims  considered  the  whole  country  as  being  in  full  pos- 
session of  the  infidels,  and  that  consequently  certain  death 
awaited  their  return,  some  notion  may  be  formed  of  their 
situation  at  this  crisis. 

Whatever  may  have  been  the  motive  that  dictated  an  act 
upon  which  it  would  be  superfluous  to  make  any  comment,  it 
had  the  effect  of  rousing  the  Acarnanians  to  a  keener  sense 
of  their  danger,  and  owing  to  the  fears  awakened  for  the 
safety  of  their  families,  numbers  of  the  peasantry  who  had 
concealed  themselves  in  the  mountains,  now  flocked  to  Ca- 
touna,  where  the  Greek  force  was  soon  doubled.  Mavro- 
cordato,  who  had  established  his  head  quarters  at  Vracori, 
in  order  to  keep  up  the  communication  with  Missolonghi  and 
the  Morea,  as  well  as  to  watch  the  motions  of  the  Turkish 
fleet,  gave  the  command  of  this  small  corps  to  a  chief  named 
Varnachiotti,  a  man  whom  the  wealth  and  influence  he  pos- 
sessed in  the  province,  rendered  it  necessary  to  conciliate, 
but  who,  like  the  infamous  Gogo,  was  also  destined  ere 
long  to  betray  his  country,  and  pass  over  to  the  enemy. 
There  was  both  in  the  present  conduct  and  former  history  oi 
this  traitor,  great  reason  to  suspect  his  fidelity,  for  during 
the  frequent  skirmishes,  which  took  place  at  Catouna,  he 
never  encouraged  his  troops  to  follow  up  the  advantages 
they  had  gained.  On  the  other  hand,  it  was  well  known 
that  he  had  been  the  warm  friend  of  Omer  Vrioni  before 
the  war.  His  indulgent  treatment  of  all  those  Turks  who 
fell  into  the  hands  of  the  Greeks,  proved  that  he  was  look- 
ing forward  to  some  secret  plan  of  negotiation.  Such, 
however,  was  the  great  influence  of  his  family  and  connec- 
tions, that  Mavrocordato  had  no  alternative  in  giving  to  him 
the  command.     The  suspicions  entertained  with  regard  to 


204  HISTORY  OF  THE  J 

Varnachiotti,  were  in  a  great  degree  confirmed  on  the  inter- 
ception of  some  letters  addressed  to  him  by  Chourschid 
Pacha.  These  began  by  proposing  an  exchange  of  prison- 
ers, and  concluded  with  offers  of  pardon  to  all  the  Greeks, 
if  they  would  submit  and  return  to  their  homes.  This  only 
served  to  irritate  the  minor  chiefs,  who  went  to  Varnachiot- 
ti's  quarters,  and  insisted  on  his  proclaiming,  that  any  one 
who  should  propose  an  accommodation  with  the  infidels, 
should  be  that  instant  put  to  death. 

1822.  It  was  at  this  period  that  the  Capitan  Pacha's 
fleet,  consisting  of  seventy  sail,  of  which  five  were  of  the 
line,  appeared  in  the  waters  of  Patras,  and  even  summoned 
the  Greeks  in  Acarnania  to  lay  down  their  arms,  but  being 
suddenly  called  away  to  co-operate  with  Machmout,  and  to 
relieve  Napoli  di  Romania,  it  did  not  wait  to  know  the  re- 
sult.* 


*  On  reaching  the  gulf  of  Argos,  the  Capitan  Pacha  met  the  Greek 
fleet  under  Miaouli.  Bearing  down  on  the  Greeks,  who  had  not  more 
than  sixty  of  their  light  and  badly  armed  vessels,  Miaouli  formed  in 
line  of  battle  between  Spezzia  and  the  main,  determined  to  await  the 
enemy.  When  the  Turkish  ships  approached  within  a  short  distance 
of  the  island,  a  fire-ship  was  directed  to  stand  towards  them ;  she  did 
so,  and  was  soon  locked  in  with  an  Algerine  frigate.  On  perceiving 
this  the  Turks  immediately  hauled  off,  and  made  all  sail,  as  if  pursued 
by  a  fleet  treble  their  number.  Returning  three  days  after,  they  stood 
into  the  gulf,  as  before,  and  were  narrowly  watched  by  the  Greeks, 
who  had  maintained  their  position  at  the  entrance.  The  latter  made 
all  sail  after  the  enemy,  and  had  already  sent  several  fire  vessels  in  ad- 
vance.      x 

This  demonstration  had  the  desired  effect,  as  the  Capitan  Pacha 
made  a  signal,  which  was  followed  by  the  fleets  tacking  about,  and 
steering  to  the  eastward  with  all  sail,  nor  was  he  heard  of  again  till  his 
arrival  at  Tenedos.  Having  anchored  at  this  island,  a'  violent  storm 
came  on,  and  drove  a  frigate  and  several  smaller  vessels  on  the  rocks, 
where  they  were  totally  lost. — This  was  not  the  only  disaster  that 
awaited  the  infidel  fleet.  A  division  of  Ipsariots,  who  had  heard  of  the 
Capitan  Pacha's  approach,  sailed  directly,  and  taking  advantage  of  the 
confusion  into  which  he  had  been  thrown  by  the  late  storm,  sent  in  a 
fire-ship  under  the  celebrated  Canari,  who  had  been  so  fortunate  at 
Scio.  The  attempt  was  equally  successful :  fastening  his  grappling 
irons  to  the  hull  and  rigging  of  a  large  seventy-four  gun  ship,  it  was  in 
vain  that  the  crew  attempted  to  disengage  her,  and  after  burning  to  the 
water's  edge  she  blew  up  with  a  tremendous  explosion.  More  panic- 
struck  than  ever,  the  remainder  of  the  fleet  cut  their  cables,  and  with  tho 
Capitan  Pacha  at  their  head,  sought  shelter  within  the  Dardanelles,  to 
the  very  entrance  of  which  they  were  pursued  by  the  Ipsariots. — Thus 
ended  the  naval  exploits  of  the  Turks  in  1322. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  255 

The  failure  of  the  expedition  under  Kiriakoufi,  who  fell 
in  the  conflict  which  followed  his  disembarkation  at  Splanza, 
a  small  village  north  of  Prevesa,*  and  the  disappointment  of 
Marco  Bozzaris,  added  to  the  aspect  of  affairs  in  the  Morea, 
having  deprived  the  Souliotes  of  all  hope  of  aid  from  their 
countrymen  of  the  south,  they  were  induced  to  accept  the 
terms  proposed  to  them,  through  the  mediation  of  the  British, 
at  Prevesa,  Mr.  Meyer,  who  guaranteed  their  safe  transport 
to  the  Ionian  islands,  with  their  baggage  and  arms.  The 
firmness  displayed  by  those  who  were  entrusted  with  the  de- 
fence of  Kiapha  was  truly  admirable,  and  fully  justifies  the 
praises  which  have  been  bestowed  on  a  people  who  seem  as  if 
they  had  been  destined  to  transmit  the  virtues  of  ancient  re- 
publics down  to  modern  times. 

The  fall  of  Souli  placed  so  many  troops  at  the  disposal  of 
Omer  Vrioni,  who  now  assumed  the  chief  command  in  Acar- 
nania,  that  he  prepared  to  advance  with  an  overwhelming 
force  :  and  strong  detachments  had  actually  arrived  in  the 
immediate  vicinity  of  the  defiles  early  in  October.  The  only 
chance  now  left  to  the  Hellenists,  of  maintaining  their  ground, 
and  preventing  the  whole  province  from  being  occupied 
by  the  enemy,  was  derived  from  the  hope,  that  when  the 
rainy  season  should  commence,  and  there  were  no  longer 
any  means  of  procuring  supplies,  the  Turks  would  retreat, 
and  thus  afford  time  for  re-organizing  the  troops  who  had 
been  dispersed  subsequently  to  the  disaster  at  Peta. 

Though  pressed  in  the  most  urgent  manner  to  attack  the 
enemy  before  he  received  any  more  reinforcements,  Varna- 
chiotti  always  contrived  to  defer  it  on  some  pretext  or  other  : 
yet,  the  situation  of  the  Greeks  became  every  day  more  cri- 
tical, and  apprehensions  were  even  entertained  that  the 
troops  would  disperse,  if  offensive  operations  were  deferred 
much  longer.  These  fears  were  fully  realized  about  the 
middle  of  September,  by  the  open  defection  of  the  traitor,  who, 

*  On  their  being  landed  at  Splanza,  a  few  days  after  embarking 
at  Chiarenza,  the  Mainotes  were  preparing  to  commence  their  march 
towards  Kiapha,  when  a  corps  of  two  thousand  Turks  attacked  them 
from  the  neighbouring  heights.  They  defended  themselves  with  great 
gallantry,  and  forced  The  infidels  to  retire  with  considerable  loss.  Nor 
would  they  have  thought  of  re-embarking,  but  for  the  death  of  their 
Jeader  Kiriakouli.  This  brave  man  fell  just  as  he  had  shot  Kiagah  Bey, 
the  same  who  had  been  defeated  at  Doliana,  by  Nikitas,  during  the  cam- 
paign of  1821.  The  body  of  the  Greek  chief  was  born  offby  his  sol- 
diers, and  conveyed  for  sepulture  to  Missolonghi. 


256  HISTORY  OP  THE 

not  content  with  his  own  treason,  induced  the  districts  of 
Valtos  and  Xeromeros  to  submit  to  the  enemy.  On  hearing 
this  piece  of  intelligence,  the  Prince  immediately  united  all 
the  men  he  could  collect,  sent  off  expresses  to  the  different 
chiefs  upon  whom  he  knew  dependence  could  be  placed, 
and  took  such  other  measures  as  were  likely  to  restore  some 
degree  of  order.  Quitting  the  town  himself,  at  10  o'clock 
on  the  night  of  the  19th,  he  halted  on  the  road,  in  order  to 
rally  some  peasants  who  were  flying  in  a  state  of  panic,  and 
continuing  his  way  on  the  following  days,  the  Prince  reached 
Yracori  on  the  24th.  His  presence  here  had  a  great  effect 
in  restoring  confidence  among  the  people  :  several  captains, 
followed  by  numbers  of  the  armed  peasantry,  came  in,  and 
thus  reinforced,  the  divisions  marched  on  to  Calavi,  near 
Angelo  Castro.  This  was  the  general  rendezvous  assigned 
for  re-organizing  the  troops,  and  concerting  a  plan  of  future 
operations.  Two  thousand  men  having  been  collected,  they 
were  posted  in  such  a  way,  as  to  stop  the  advance  of  the  ene~ 
my  on  the  side  of  Haspi,  and  Makada.  The  Prince  him- 
self took  post  with  only  a  hundred  men  at  the  entrance  of  the 
mountains,  and  caused  entrenchments  to  be  thrown  up. — 
From  hence  other  messengers  were  sent  to  every  part  of 
the  surrounding  country,  calling  on  the  people  to  join  the 
Patriot  forces  in  repelling  the  enemy.  A  courier  was  also 
despatched  to  the  Morea  and  naval  islands,  apprising  them 
of  what  had  occurred,  and  demanding  succours  ;  there  were, 
however,  but  slender  hopes  of  relief  from  any  quarter.  Re- 
duced to  nearly  one  third,  by  the  desertions  which  followed 
Varnachiotti's  treason,  it  was  impossible  to  maintain  their 
ground  at  Coutouna  ;  the  Greeks  therefore  stationed  there, 
Segan  their  march  towards  Anatolica,  where  Mavrocordato 
had  established  his  head  quarters.  After  sustaining  several 
partial  attacks  on  their  route,  which  lay  along  the  borders  of  I 
Lake  Ozeres,  they  were  forced  to  abandon  the  plains  on  the 
right  bank  of  the  Acheron,  determined,  if  possible,  to  defend 
the  passage  of  that  river  below  Angelo  Castro,  where  it  was 
not  fordable. 

Mavrocordato  had  not  been  many  days  in  his  new  position, 
before  the  enemy's  army,  which  was  increased  to  nearly  thir- 
teen thousand  men,  mostly  Albanians,  under  Omer  Vrioni 
in  person,  had  passed  the  defiles  of  Xeromeros,  guided  by 
Tarnachiotti ;  it  was  supplied  with  a"  good  park  of  artillery, 
and  a  large  corps  of  cavalry  ;  and  immediately  advanced 
fo  Vracori.     Both  this  place  and  the  surrounding  villages 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  257 

were  set  on  fire  by  the  Greeks,  to  prevent  their  affording  any 
shelter  to  the  enemy.  Marco  Bozzaris,  who  had  been  unable 
to  fulfil  his  generous  intention  of  relieving  Kiapha,  occupied 
the  defile  of  Dougri,  while  the  troops  posted  at  Calavia 
and  Angelo  Castro  were  obliged  to  fall  back  towards  Ana- 
tolico.  There  were,  however,  several  hundred  families, 
who  determined  rather  to  seek  a  refuge  on  the  numerous 
islets  scattered  over  the  lakes  in  the  neighbourhood,  than  to 
quit  the  place  of  their  birth.  The  Prince,  whose  left  flank 
was  threatened,  also  found  it  necessary  to  abandon  the  posi- 
tion he  had  fortified,  as  its  defence  was  no  longer  of  impor- 
tance :  he  therefore  proceeded  along  the  borders  of  the 
Lake  Soudi  to  Dervekista,  where  a  junction  was  formed 
with  Bozzaris. 

The  sudden  abandonment  of  this  position  on  the  Ache- 
ron, by  the  party  stationed  to  guard  that  pass  under  Macri, 
changed  the  situation  of  the  Greeks  :  this  retreat  was  caused 
by  a  false  alarm,  stating  that  a  body  of  Turkish  cavalry  haa 
Crossed  the  river  near  Stamma.  This  circumstance,  which 
was  fortunately  unobserved  by  the  enemy,  rendered  it  neces- 
sary for  Mavrocordato  to  withdraw  in  all  haste  to  the  defile 
of  Kerasova,  where  he  vainly  essayed  to  make  a  second 
stand,  as  it  was  now  ascertained,  beyond  a  doubt,  that  the 
Turks  were  really  advancing  on  every  side,  and  would  soon 
he  on  the  plains  round  Anatolico. 

Xeromeros,  Valtos,  and  Vracori,  were  now  overrun,  and 
there  was  but  too  much  reason  to  fear,  that  others  had  fol- 
lowed the  example  of  Varnachiotti,  by  joining  the  enemy, 
who  had  by  this  time  advanced  to  the  heights  of  Stamma, 
about  five  miles  from  Anatolico,  and  from  which  he  could  at 
any  time  descend  on  the  plain  to  the  very  walls  of  Misso- 
longhi.  The  loss  of  this  place  would  have  put  the  whole  of 
Western  Greece  into  the  hands  of  the  Turks,  who  might 
have  then  poured  any  number  of  troops  into  the  Morea. 

The  conduct  of  Prince  Mavrocordato,  on  this  occasion, 
Was  marked  by  a  degree  of  firmness  and  resolution,  which 
has  since  placed  him  deservedly  high  in  the  estimation  of 
the  Greek  people.  It  is  indeed  but  a  common  act  of  justice 
to  add,  that  the  fate  of  Greece  hung  on  the  determination  he 
now  formed.  Fortunately  for  the  cause,  he  adopted  the 
only  plan  which  could  afford  a  reasonable  chance  of  saving 
the  Morea. 

Having  put  the  remnant  of  his  forces  in  motion,  Mavro- 
cordato set  out  from  Anatolico,  as  if  he  intended  to  retreat 

23 


258  HISTORY  OF  THE 

towards  Salona,  but  turning  suddenly  round,  lie  returned  by 
a  flank  march  on  the  village  of  Therasova,  and  entered  Mis- 
solonghi  on  the  17th  of  October.  The  difficulties,  which 
now  presented  themselves,  were,  however,  far  greater  than 
any  hitherto  experienced. 

1822.  The  population  of  this  place,  which  had  not  ex- 
ceeded two  thousand,  before  the  revolution,  was  now  re- 
duced to  a  few  families  who  possessed  no  means  of  escaping; 
all  those  in  better  circumstances,  having  fled  to  the  Morea 
and  Ionian  islands,  on  the  enemy's  approach.  The  town  of 
Missolonghi  is  built  on  a  perfect  flat,  and  though  its  walls 
are  washed  by  an  arm  of  the  sea,  the  water  is  so  shallow, 
as  not  to  admit  the  approach  of  any  vessels  larger  than  fish- 
ing boats,  nearer  than  four  or  five  miles.  Its  fortifications 
consisted  of  nothing  more  than  a  low  wall  without  bastions, 
and  surrounded  by  a  ditch  seven  feet  wide,  by  four  in  depth, 
and  filled  up  with  rubbish  in  many  places.  The  parapet, 
which  did  not  rise  more  than  three  feet  above  the  counter- 
scarp, was  formed  of  loose  stones,  very  much  out  of  repair, 
and  broken  down  in  a  number  of  places.  Although  the  de- 
fence of  this  extensive  line  would  require  above  three 
thousand  men,  the  whole  number  of  combatants  whom  the 
Prince  had  now  with  him,  including  those  found  in  the  town, 
did  not  amount  to  five  hundred.  The  only  cannon  to  be 
found  within  the  walls,  were  four  old  ship  guns,  and  a  dis- 
mounted thirty-six  pounder.  As  to  ammunition,  there  was 
not  sufficient  for  a  month's  siege,  and  with  the  exception  of 
maize,  every  kind  of  provisions  was  extremely  scarce.  It 
was  in  a  place  thus  destitute  and  exposed,  that  Mavrocordato 
and  his  followers  formed  the  resolution  of  making  a  stand 
against  an  army  of  fourteen  thousand  men.  For  this  pur- 
pose not  a  moment  was  lost  in  repairing  the  wall  and  clear- 
ing the  ditch;  a  work  in  which,  even  the  women  were  em- 
ployed ;  the  guns  being  placed  in  the  most  commanding 
points,  all  the  houses  built  near  the  parapet  were  pierced 
with  loop-holes,  from  which  a  fire  of  musketry  could  be 
kept  up.  In  order  to  deceive  the  enemy  as  to  their  num- 
bers, a  quantity  of  bayonets  found  in  the  town,  being  made 
bright,  were  attached  to  poles,  and  arranged  round  the  walls. 
When  the  president  quitted  Anatolico,  it  was  agreed  that 
Marco  Bozzaris  should  occupy  the  passes  through  which  the 
enemy  would  be  likely  to  advance,  between  that  place  and 
the  sea.  The  temporary  occupation  of  this  point  enabled 
the  Greeks  to  drive  a  quantity  of  cattle  into  Missolonghi. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  259 

They  were,  however,  obliged  to  retire  in  two  days,  upon 
which  Bozzaris,  followed  by  a  small  detachment  of  Souliotes, 
succeeded  in  reaching  the  town,  all  the  rest  having  dispersed 
among  the  mountains.  A  large  division  of  the  Turkish  ar- 
my appeared  before  the  walls  two  days  after,  and  imme- 
diately commenced  a  cannonade  and  fire  of  musketry,  which 
continued  with  little  intermission  until  the  next  day,  when  it 
was  only  suspended,  to  propose  a  capitulation.*  Profiting 
by  the  stupidity  of  the  enemy,  in  not  attempting  an  attack, 
which  must  have  ended  in  the  total  destruction  of  the 
Greeks,  Mavrocordato,  whose  only  chance  of  safety  depend- 
ed on  gaining  time  till  succours  were  sent,  replied  in  such  a 
way  as  to  make  Omer  Vrioni  imagine  that  his  proposal 
would  be  accepted.  Though  these  negotiations  were  fre- 
quently interrupted  by  the  renewal  of  the  enemy's  fire,  they 
enabled  the  Greeks  to  make  considerable  progress  in  their 
preparations  for  defence  :  such,  however,  was  the  total  in- 
adequacy of  means  and  resources,  that  there  seemed  to  be  no 
hope  of  escape.  Matters  went  on  in  this  state  of  painful 
suspense  until  the  morning  of  the  9th  of  November,  when 
the  Turkish  brig  and  schooner,  which  had  been  sent  to  block- 
ade the  place,  by  Isouf  Pacha,  were  observed  to  steer  to- 
wards Patras  ;  but  the  former  being  unable  to  reach  the 
road-stead,  owing  to  a  strong  southerly  wind,  bore  up  and 
stood  for  Ithica,  chased  by  six  vessels,  on  board  of  which 
the  Creek  flag  was  seen  flying.  The  ships  were  followed 
by  the  eager  eyes  of  the  Prince  and  his  brave  followers,  until 
night  closed  in,  and  they  were  once  more  left  to  ruminate  on 
the  perils  of  their  situation.  Although  the  appearance  of 
this  small  squadron  filled  every  breast  with  hope,  yet  a  vigo- 
rous attack  during  the  night  might  enable  the  infidels  to 
render  all  opposition  fruitless  :  as  it  fortunately  happened, 
no  attempt  was  made,  and  their  joy  maybe  readily  conceived 
on  the  return  of  day-light,  to  perceive  the  whole  of  the  Greek 
squadron  anchored  as  near  the  town  as  it  could  be  approach- 
ed. Having  chased  the  Turkish  brig  until  she  was  run  on 
the  rocks  of  Ithica  by  her  crew,  the  Greek  commodore  came 
to  announce  that  a  body  of  Peloponnesians  were  ready  for 
embarkation  at  Chiarenza  and  Katakolo,  destined  for  the  re- 


*  One  of  the  articles  contained  in  this  proposal  required  that  Mavro- 
cordato and  about  twenty  others,  whose  names  were  mentioned,  should 
be  given  up,  as  a  preliminary  to  any  negotiation  in  favour  of  the  gar- 
rison. 


260  HISTORY  OF  THE 

lief  of  Missolonghi.  A  part  of  the  ships  was  despatched  on 
the  following  day  for  these  most  acceptable  auxiliaries,  and 
the  remainder  was  joined  by  four  Ipsariot  vessels,  thus  form- 
ing a  naval  force,  which  was  of  itself  calculated  greatly  to 
diminish  the  hopes  of  the  enemy.  The  long-wished-for  suc- 
cours arrived  on  the  14th  ;  they  consisted  of  twelve  hun- 
dred men,  headed  by  Mavromichalis,  who  was  accompanied 
by  Andreas  Lundo,  of  Vostizza,  and  Deligianapulo,  both  dis- 
tinguished Maniote  chiefs.  These  troops,  having  formed 
part  of  the  army  which  had  partaken  in  the  victories  gained 
on  the  plain  of  Argos  and  before  Napoli  di  Romania,  were 
flushed  with  the  recollection  of  their  recent  successes,  and 
could  not  brook  the  thought  of  remaining  shut  up  within  the 
walls  of  Missolonghi.  A  sortie  was  accordingly  made  on  the 
27th  of  November,  in  which  a  hundred  and  ten  Turks  were 
left  dead  on  the  plain,  while  the  loss  of  the  Greeks  did  not 
amount  to  more  than  twenty  in  killed  and  wounded. 

Such  were  the  cruelties  and  excesses  which  followed  the 
arrival  of  the  infidel  army  in  Arcanania  and  Etolia,  that  no 
sooner  had  the  peasantry  recovered  from  their  consternation, 
than  all  those  who  had  been  able  to  retain  their  arms,  rose, 
and  greatly  harassed  the  Turks  by  interrupting  their  commu- 
nications, and  preventing  the  arrival  of  any  supplies. 

In  order  to  second  these  efforts  of  the  people,  it  was  de- 
termined that  a  part  of  the  troops,  sent  from  the  Morea? 
should  embark,  and  landing  at  Dragomeste,  co-operate  with 
the  inhabitants  of  Valtos  and  Xeromeros,  for  the  purpose  of 
re-occupying  the  defiles,  and  thus  effectually  cut  off  the  ene- 
my's communication  with  Arta  and  Vonizza.  The  com- 
mand of  this  expedition  was  assumed  by  Mavromichalis,  who 
sailed  for  his  destination  on  the  24th  of  December,  1822. 
His  departure  reduced  the  garrison  so  much,  that  Omer 
Vrioni,  who  had  remained  for  two  months  without  attempt- 
ing an  assault,  now  determined  to  take  advantage  of  this  cir- 
cumstance. Knowing  also  that  Christmas  day  was  generally 
passed  by  the  Greeks  in  the  performance  of  religious  rites, 
which  would  give  them  full  occupation,  he  had  an  additional 
motive  for  carrying  his  design  into  execution  at  once. 

Aware,  from  the  movements  of  the  Turkish  camp,  that 
something  was  in  agitation,  Mavrocordato,  Bozzaris,  and  the 
other  chiefs,  held  a  council  of  war,  at  which  it  was  decided, 
that  every  body  should  be  on  the  alert  during  the  night,  and, 
contrary  to  the  usual  custom,  the  church  bells  were  not  to 
be  rung,  lest  the  noise  might  prevent  a  knowledge  of  what 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  2jG1 

passed  close  to  the  walls.  Both  Mavrocordato  and  the  other 
leaders  continued  to  visit  all  the  posts,  so  as  to  prevent 
surprise,  and  to  give  the  necessary  directions  in  case  of  an 
attack. 

The  plan  of  the  Turks  was  to  send  eight  hundred  picked 
men,  with  scaling  ladders,  to  the  weakest  point ;  these  were 
to  be  followed  by  two  thousand  more,  intended  to  draw  oft' 
the  attention  of  the  Greeks,  and  induce  them  to  quit  their 
posts,  while  the  first  party  entered  the  town.  Other  divi- 
sions of  the  enemy  were  to  advance  simultaneously  on  every 
side.  The  signal  for  commencing  the  attack  was  made  at 
five  in  the  morning  of  the  25th,  by  firing  a  gun.  A  tremen- 
dous cannonade  began  along  the  whole  Turkish  line,  and  was 
as  briskly  answered  by  the  Greeks.  The  escalading  party 
contrived  to  approach  within  a  few  yards  of  the  wall  unper- 
ceived,  and  had  even  fixed  some  ladders,  which  enabled  a 
few  of  the  Turks  to  pass  the  parapet ;  these  were,  however, 
instantly  cut  down  ;  two  standard  bearers,  who  succeeded  in 
planting  the  crescent  on  the  walls,  shared  the  same  fate  ;  all, 
in  fact,  who  attempted  to  mount  the  wall,  were  precipitated 
into  the  ditch ;  and  as  the  Greeks  felt  that  their  existence 
depended  on  the  issue  of  this  struggle,  they  vied  with  each 
other  in  acts  of  valour  and  boldness.  Though  short,  the 
conflict  which  followed  was  both  desperate  and  sanguinary, 
for  when  day-light  broke,  the  whole  of  the  glacies  were  seen 
covered  with  the  dead.  Though  the  Turks  now  perceived 
that  they  had  nothing  to  hope  from  prolonging  the  contest, 
numbers  continued  to  advance,  for  the  purpose  of  carrying 
off  their  dead  companions,  not  one  of  whom  was  suffered  to 
escape.  The  infidels  lost  above  twelve  hundred  men,  and 
nine  stands  of  colours,  in  this  affair  ;  while,  incredible  as  it 
may  appear,  the  utmost  loss  of  the  Greeks  was  only  six  kill- 
ed, and  about  thirty  wounded.  Such  was  the  result  of  an  at- 
tack, upon  the  success  of  which  the  Turkish  chief  calculated 
so  fully,  that  he  assured  those  around  him,  it  was  his  in- 
tention to  dine  at  Missolonghi  on  the  great  anniversary  of 
the  Christians.  The  immediate  effect  of  this  signal  discom- 
fiture, was  that  of  making  the  rising  general  throughout  the 
neighbouring  provinces  :  those  who  had  entertained  any 
dread  of  the  enemy  before,  were  now  quite  disengaged  from 
their  fears,  and  bands  were  found  in  all  directions  to  cut  oft' 
their  retreat,  whenever  they  attempted  to  re-cross  the  moun- 
tains. The  only  fear  entertained  by  Mavrocordato  was., 
lest  the  Turks  should  fly  before  the  arming  of  the  peasantry, 

23* 


262  HISTORY  OF  THE 

had  been  Completed.  On  the  other  hand  it  required  all  the 
efforts  of  the  chiefs  to  prevent  their  men  from  sallying  forth 
at  once,  and  grappling  with  the  whole  of  the  infidel  army  on 
the  plain. 

Omer  Vrioni  having  sent  Varnachiotti  to  Xeromeros,  in 
order  to  procure  provisions  and  forage,  received  a  letter  on 
the  31st,  from  the  traitor,  informing  him  that  Rongo,  whom 
Omer  had  sent  into  V  altos  for  the  same  object,  had  abandon- 
ed the  cause  he  had  feigned  to  espouse,  the  more  effectually 
to  deceive  the  enemy ;  and  placing  himself  at  the  head  of 
three  thousand  men,  was  marching  to  cut  off  Omer's  retreat 
by  Langoda  ;  that  the  people  of  Xeromeros  had  flew  to  arms 
in  spite  of  all  his  influence,  and  that  Mavromichalis,  at  the 
head  of  fifteen  hundred  men,  had  just  driven  the  Turks  from 
Dragomeste,  and  was  advancing  to  occupy  the  defiles  by 
which  the  Pacha  could  alone  effect  his  retreat  to  Vonizza.* 
The  Turks,  whose  characteristic  is  fear,  were  so  panic-struck 
by  this  intelligence,  that  it  had  not  reached  the  camp  two 
hours  before  their  retreat  commenced,  with  the  greatest  dis- 
order. This  was  so  sudden  and  precipitate,  that  they  left 
the  whole  of  their  artillery,  consisting  of  eight  fine  pieces  of 
brass  cannon,  with  a  complete  field  train  and  tumbrils  ;  two 

*  "  It  appears,"  says  Mr.  Green,  "  that  Omer  Vrioni  decided  on  mak- 
ing an  assault  on  the  town,  as  the  only  chance  left  of  gaining  posses- 
sion of  it,  owing  to  the  succours  received  by  the  Greeks,  the  want  of 
provisions  in  the  Ottoman  camp,  and  the  loss  of  manv  hundred  men  by 
sickness  Having  consulted  with  the  other  commanders,  Omer  fixed 
on  the  6th  instant  for  a  general  assault  on  the  place,  knowing  that  it 
was  the  day  of  the  celebration  of  Christmas,  according  to  the  ritual  of 
the  Greek  Church.  Every  thing  being  prepared,  the  signal  for  the  at- 
tac  was  given  before  day  break  on  the  6th  ;  the  advance  posts  reached 
the  walls  anperceived,  and  under  cover  of  a  heavy  fire  from  the  whole 
Turkish  line,  attempted  to  scale  the  walls.  It  seems  that  Mavrocor- 
dato  was  aware  of  the  intended  attack,  and  had  made  excellent  ar- 
rangements to  repel  it ;  the  garrison  was  ready  on  the  first  alarm,  and 
flew  to  their  posts.  Suffice  it  to  say,  that  the  Greeks  behaved  with 
such  courage,  and  the  Albanians  were  so  little  versed  in  military  tac- 
tics, that  the  latter  were  completely  repulsed  by  the  besieged,  in  the 
space  of  two  hours,  with  the  loss  of  upwards  of  three  hundred  and  fifty 
men  killed,  besides  many  wounded.  It  is  asserted  that  the  Greeks  did 
not  lose  seventy  men  in  this  affair,  which  indubitably  reflects  the  high- 
est honour  on  Mavrocordato,  Marco  Bozzaris,  and  the  other  chiefs.  A 
few' days  after  his  defeat,  Omer  Pacha  commenced  a  precipitate  retreat, 
abandoning  his  guns,  tents,  and  baggage,  which  have  fallen  into  the 
hands  of  the  Greeks,  who,  as  soon  as  they  discovered  the  retreat  of  the 
Ottomans,  sent  out  part  of  the  garrison  to  harass  them." — Sketches, 
p.  126, 127. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  263 

howitzers  ;  ammunition  and  camp  equipage,  together  with  a 
large  quantity  of  provisions  and  all  the  baggage.  To  in- 
crease their  embarrassment,  the  infidels  were  scarcely  in 
motion,  when  a  detachment  of  five  hundred  men  sallied  from 
the  town,  and  overtaking  their  rear  guard  at  Kerasova,  kill- 
ed a  great  number.  On  reaching  the  Acheron,  its  waters 
were  so  swollen  by  the  continued  rains,  that  the  enemy 
could  not  pass,  so  that  they  now  found  themselves  enclosed 
on  every  side,  and  without  provisions.  It  was  while  the  in- 
fidels were  in  this  situation,  and  meditating  the  means  of 
escape,  that  a  large  division  of  the  Greeks,  under  Marco 
Bozzaris  appeared  marching  towards  them.  Such  was  the 
effect  of  this  movement,  that  the  Turks,  more  panic-struck 
than  ever,  determined  to  attempt  the  passage  of  the  river 
rather  than  risk  a  battle.  They  accordingly  plunged  into  the 
stream,  and  several  hundreds  were  drowned  in  crossing,  while 
those  who  did  not  adopt  this  perilous  mode  of  saving  them- 
selves, were  under  the  necessity  of  surrendering  as  prisoners 
to  the  Souliote  Chief. 

Having  gained  the  right  bank  of  the  Acheron,  the  Turkish 
hordes  had  fresh  enemies  to  contend  with  at  every  step,  in 
the  armed  peasantry  of  Xeromeros,  Valos,  and  the  other  dis- 
tricts through  which  their  line  of  retreat  lay;  so,  that,  of  the 
large  force  brought  into  Acarnania  only  three  months  before, 
not  more  than  half  the  number  escaped;  nor  did  the  fugi- 
tives stop,  before  they  reached  Arta  and  Anarcori  beyond  the 
passes  of  Macronorus.  With  respect  to  Mavrocordato, 
wl.  jse  firmness  and  perseverance,  during  this  most  arduous 
period,  are  above  all  praise,  he  was  now  enabled  to  realize 
his  favourite  plan  of  civil  organization.  A  local  junta  being 
formed  at  Missolonghi,  measures  were  immediately  adopted 
for  carrying  the  law  of  Epidaurus  into  effect  throughout  Acar- 
nania and  Etolia.  Arrangements  were  also  made  for  re- 
organizing the  military  system  of  the  provinces.  The  im- 
portance of  Missolonghi  being  now  more  apparent  than  ever, 
it  was  determined  that  a  moment  should  not  be  lost  in  re- 
modelling its  dilapidated  fortifications  ;  the  completion  of 
this  task  was  considered  so  urgent,  that  in  addition  to  the 
regular  working  parties,  the  inhabitants,  of  whom  considera- 
ble numbers  returned  after  the  retreat  of  the  enemy,  were 
called  upon  to  assist  in  throwing  up  the  new  works.  This 
call  being  readily  obeyed,  they  proceeded  with  such  alacrity 
and  spirit,  that  in  less  than  three  months,  Missolonghi  was 
placed  m  a  state  ef  perfect  security  from  all  future  attacks  ; 


£64  HISTORY  OF  THE 

these  important  objects  accomplished,  the  President  re- 
embarked  with  all  the  troops  that  were  not  required  for  the 
defence  of  the  town,  and  crossed  over  to  the  Peloponnesus, 
where  he  arrived  in  the  early  part  of  April,  after  an  absence 
of  ten  months."* 


CHAPTER  XIX. 

National  Congress  assembled  at  Astros. — Proceedings  which 
took  place  there. — Proclamation  to  the  people. —  The  Seat 
of  Government  is  transferred  to  Tripolizza. — Preparation 
for  opening  the  Campaign. — Movements  of  the  Turks. — 
Operations  \n  Livadia. — Retreat  of  Isouf  Pacha. —  The 
Campaign  is  opened  at  Acarnania. — Advance  of  Mustapha 
Pacha. — Defection  of  the  Albanians  at  Prevesa. — Marco 
Bozzaris  marches  to  Carpensia. — Arrival  of  the  Turkish 
Army. — It  is  attacked  in  the  night  by  the  Greeks. — Hero- 
ism and  death  of  Marco  Bozzaris. — Constantine  Bozzaris 
is  named  to  the  command. — Proceedings  of  the  Capitan 
Pacha. — Execution  of  six  prisoners. — Operations  in  Can- 
dia. — Capture  of  Thisamos  and  Selinon. — Gallantry  of 
the  Greek  squadron  under  Macromure. —  The  Turkish  feet 
returns  to  the  Dardanelles. — Re-capture  of  Corinth. — 
Brave  defence  of  Anatolico. — Difficulties  among  the  heads 
of  Government. — Conduct  of  Metaxa. — Executive  dismiss- 
ed.— Sketches  of  some  of  the  Chiefs. — Arrival  of  Lord 
Byron  and  Col.  Stanhope. — Arrival  of  the  loan. — Mutiny 
of  the  Suliotes. — Mavrocordato. — Difficulty  of  obtaining 
the  loan. — Death  of  Captain  Sass. — Col.  Stanhope  estab- 
lishes two  newspapers. — Anti-Patriots. —  Ulysses  seizes  the 
Government  money. 

According  to  the  law  of  Epidaurus,  the  election  for  the 
ineyo  second  period  should  have  been  completed  by  the 
first  of  January,  1823,  but  this  was  impossible,  owing 
to  the  proximity  of  the  seat  of  war  and  long  continuance  of 
the  campaign.  A  circular  had,  however,  been  sent  forth  by 
the  executive  immediately  after  the  fall  of  Napoli  di  Roma- 
nia, directing  that  the  new  elections  should  commence  forth- 
with, prescribing  the  mode  of  carrying  them  on,  so  as  to  pre- 

*  Blaquiere,  p.  229—254. 


GREEK  REVOLUTIONS  265 

vent  improper  returns  ;  and  pointing  out  the  necessity  of  se- 
lecting only  such  men  as  had  given  unequivocal  proofs  of 
patriotism  and  public  virtue.  The  members  were  invited  to 
join  the  executive  at  a  small  town  called  Astros,  situated  in 
one  of  the  numerous  vallies  that  border  the  gulf  of  Argos  ; 
as  the  position  of  this  place  afforded  an  easy  communication 
with  the  islands,  as  well  as  the  Morea  and  other  points  of  the 
confederation.  The  members  of  the  government,  who  had 
passed  some  weeks  at  Castries,  on  the  coast  opposite  Hydra, 
proceeded  to  Astros  early  in  March,  but  more  than  a  month 
elapsed  before  the  whole  of  the  deputies  and  military  chiefs 
had  arrived.  So  great  was  the  anxiety  of  the  people  to  par- 
ticipate in  the  deliberations,  that  in  addition  to  the  prescribed 
number  of  representatives,  not  less  than  fifty  delegates  were 
sent  from  different  places,  with  petitions  praying  for  permis- 
sion to  be  present  in  the  national  congress.  Besides  the  sol- 
diery, there  was  a  large  concourse  of  visitors  drawn  to  the 
spot,  from  motives  of  curiosity,  and  the  interest  so  universal- 
ly taken  in  the  issue  of  the  proceedings. 

In  order  to  secure  the  concurrence  of  all  parties,  and  give 
greater  unity  to  the  political  system,  one  of  the  first  propo- 
sals made  by  Prince  Mavrocordato,  on  his  arrival  at  Misso- 
longhi,  was  that  of  transferring  the  powers  confided  to  the 
three  local  Juntas  of  Epirus,  Livadia  and  Peloponnesus,  to 
the  central  government.  The  meetings  commenced  on  the 
10th  of  April,  and  were  held  in  a  garden  under  the  shade  01 
orange  trees.  While  the  deputies  and  delegates,  amounting 
to  nearly  three  hundred,  were  occupied  in  the  debates,  which 
began  soon  after  sunrise,  the  citizens  and  soldiers  were  min- 
gled promiscuously  outside,  where,  being  shaded  from  the 
heat  of  the  sun  by  a  grove  of  olive  trees,  they  also  discussed 
every  point  connected  with  the  public  interests,  with  as  much 
zeal  as  their  representatives,  and  waited  the  termination  of 
each  sitting  with  the  greatest  anxiety.  The  temper  and  spi- 
rit which  prevailed  during  the  meetings,  will  be  best  appre- 
ciated by  a  short  summary  of  what  took  place. 

At  a  preparatory  meeting  of  the  10th,  the  following  oath 
was  administered  to  each  member:  "  I  swear  in  the  name  of 
God  and  my  country,  to  act  with  a  pure  and  unshaken  patri- 
otism ;  to  promote  a  sincere  union,  and  abjure  every  thought 
of  personal  interest  in  all  the  discussions  which  shall  take 
place  in  the  second  national  Congress."  The  Congress  then 
proceeded  to  nominate  a  President  for  the  second  period,  in 
the  person  of  Mavromichalis,  after  which,  commissions  were 


266  HISTORY  OF  THE 

formed  to  revise  those  points  in  the  constitution  that  had 
been  found  most  susceptible  of  improvement,  as  well  as  to 
inquire  into  the  state  of  the  confederation  generally.  After 
having  heard  reports  on  the  various  subjects  of  religion,  pub- 
lic justice,  finance,  the  military  force,  and  civil  administra- 
tion, the  assembly  came  to  the  following  resolution  relative 
to  the  modification  suggested  by  the  commission  appointed 
to  inquire  into  the  political  code.  "  The  second  Constituent 
Assembly  of  Greece,  after  having  introduced  those  changes 
and  improvements  into  the  constitution,  rendered  necessary 
by  experience,  and  the  interests  of  the  nation,  decrees,  first  : 
that  the  political  code  of  Greece,  which  shall  be  henceforth 
called  the  Law  of  Epidaurus,  be  entrusted  to  the  fidelity  of 
the  legislative  body,  executive  government,  and  judicial  au- 
thorities ;  it  is  also  consigned  to  the  safeguard  of  the  peo- 
ple, and  to  the  patriotism  of  all  the  Greeks.  Secondly  :  that 
the  executive  cannot  enact  laws,  or  make  innovations  on  the 
said  law  of  Epidaurus,  under  any  circumstances  whatever. 
Thirdly :  that  the  constitutions  thus  revised  and  ratified  by 
the  universal  consent,  shall  be  immediately  promulgated 
throughout  the  confederation.  Fourthly  :  that  the  original 
document,  signed  by  all  the  members  and  delegates  compo- 
sing the  present  assembly,  shall  be  deposited  in  the  archives 
of  the  legislative  body." 

The  above  important  point  being  settled,  on  the  25th,  a 
number  of  minor  details  next  occupied  the  Congress.  An 
article  of  the  constitution,  which  provided  for  the  sale  of 
national  property,  was  suspended,  in  order  that  the  possession 
of  these  immense  domains,  formerly  held  by  the  infidels, 
might  facilitate  the  financial  operations  of  the  government 
abroad,  and  prevent  the  loss  which  could  not  fail  to  attend 
their  being  disposed  of  under  existing  circumstances.  >The 
executive  was,  however,  empowered  to  dispose  of  all  perish- 
able materials,  such  as  houses,  mills,  shops,  caravansaries, 
mosques,  baths,  and  oil  presses.  Thanks  were  also  decreed 
to  the  ship  owners  of  Hydra,  Spezzia,  and  Ipsaria,  for  their 
naval  exertions  during  the  war.  Towards  the  close  of  the 
meetings,  discussions  took  place,  and  regulations  were  made 
relative  to  the  best  mode  of  meeting  the  current  expenses  of 
the  ensuing  year,  and  the  executive  recommended  to  adopt 
such  steps  for  replenishing  the  treasury,  as  were  allowed  by 
the  constitution.  The  project  of  the  law  for  the  establish- 
ment of  provincial  governors  and  local  magistracy,  was  next 
submitted  to  Congress,  and  confirmed.    It  being  impossible  to 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  267 

determine  on  a  criminal  code  without  farther  inquiry  and  ex- 
amination, the  executive  was  empowered  to  make  selection? 
from  the  code  Napoleon,  and  to  organize  the  tribunals  pro 
tempore. 

lfioQ  The  labours  of  Congress  closed  on  the  30th  of  April. 
'  when  it  was  decreed  that  unless  circumstances  ren- 
dered it  necessary,  the  assemblage  of  a  third  National  Con- 
gress should  be  deferred  for  two  years  ;  and  that  in  order  to 
prevent  the  people  from  being  too  much  hurried  in  the 
choice  of  their  representatives,  the  executive  should  give 
three  months'  notice  of  the  convocation.  The  seat  of  go- 
vernment being  established  at  Tripolizza,  ad  interim,  it  mere- 
ly remained  for  the  Congress  to  state  the  result  of  its  pro- 
ceedings, and  this  was  done  in  the  following  address  to  the 
people. 

"  The  national  war  of  the  Greeks  for  the  assertion  and 
maintenance  of  their  independence,  continues  for  the  third 
year ;  during  this  period,  the  tyrant  has  not  been  able  to 
succeed  against  us,  either  by  land  or  sea,  whereas  thousands 
of  the  enemy  have  fallen  victims  to  the  temerity  of  their 
leaders.  Fortresses  have  been  reduced,  new  acquisitions  of 
territory  made,  whilst  the  thunder  of  our  arms  has  resounded 
fo  the  very  walls  of  Byzantium. 

"  It  was  at  Epidaurus  that  Greece  had  the  happiness  of 
first  manifesting  its  will  as  an  Independent  state,  establishing 
a  national  government,  and  instituting  its  fundamental  laws. 
After  a  lapse  of  sixteen  months,  the  second  assembly  of  the 
people  has  been  convoked  at  Astros  ;  this,  after  having  ex- 
amined the  political  code  conformably  to  the  wishes  of  the 
nation,  has  decreed  various  ameliorations  required  by  the 
common  interest.  The  state  of  finances,  public  accounts, 
and  national  resources,  have  also  been  carefully  discussed, 
and  the  necessary  measures  adopted  for  maintaining  a  force, 
both  naval  and  military,  which  shall  set  all  the  future  threats 
of  the  enemy  at  defiance.  Agreeably  to  the  law  happily 
instituted  at  Epidaurus,  it  is  hereby  decreed,  that  the  second 
period  of  the  provisional  government  shall  henceforth  com- 
mence, and  be  left  to  perform  the  great  duties  committed 
to  its  vigilance  and  patriotism.  Previous  to  its  separation, 
it  remains  for  the  National  Congress  to  proclaim,  in  the 
name  of  the  Greek  people,  and  in  the  presence  of  God 
and  man,  the  political  existence  of  the  Hellenists  and  their 
Independence,  for  the  acquirement  of  which,  the  nation  ha^ 
shed  torrents  of  blood,  with  the  unalterable  resolution  of 


208  HISTORY  OF  THE 

every  individual  of  the  confederation,  either  to  maintain  the 
freedom  they  have  conquered;  or  descend  to  the  tomb  with 
arms  in  their  hands,  as  becomes  men  resolved  to  combat  for 
the  rights  of  nature,  and  the  holy  religion  they  profess. 
Deprived  of  their  liberties  and  property,  exposed  to  unheard- 
of  cruelties,  by  those  who  have  ever  been  strangers  to  jus- 
tice and  humanity,  the  natives  of  an  heroic  soil,  always  keep- 
ing in  mind  the  glory  of  their  ancestors,  feel  that,  in  shaking 
off  the  yoke  of  barbarism,  and  liberating  their  country,  they 
have  only  performed  a  sacred  duty,  called  for  no  less  by  the 
Obligations  of  religion,  than  the  progress  of  civilization. 

"  It  has  been  among  the  objects  of  the  present  Congress, 
elected  by  the  free  and  unbiassed  choice  of  the  people, 
to  declare  to  the  whole  universe — 1st.  The  justice  of  the 
war  in  which  they  are  engaged  for  the  preservation  of  the 
national  Independence.  2dly.  The  anxious  desire  of  the 
Greek  people  to  regain  the  knowledge  they  had  lost  by  cen- 
turies of  oppression;  and  to  be  numbered  among  the 
enlightened  nations  of  Europe,  to  which  they  still  look  for 
sympathy  and  support.  3dly.  To  thank  in  the  name  of  the 
whole  nation,  the  military  and  naval  forces  which  have,  dur- 
ing the  two  last  campaigns,  so  bravely  fought  the  battles  of 
their  country,  destroying  above  fifty  thousand  of  the  enemy. 
4thly.  To  express  its  thanks  to  the  provisional  government, 
as  well  as  the  local  juntas,  more  especially  the  Senate  of  the 
Peloponnesus  and  Areopagus  of  Western  Greece,  for  the 
zealous  and  disinterested  manner  in  which  they  have  per- 
formed their  arduous  duties. 

"  In  thus  closing  its  labours,  the  National  Congress  im- 
plores the  Omnipotent  Father  of  all,  to  extend  his  Al- 
mighty protection  to  the  people  of  Greece,  and  crown  their 
erfforts  with  success !" 

When  it  is  considered  that  this  was  only  the  second  time 
of  a  general  assembly  of  the  Greeks,  since  the  Achaian 
league,  which  enabled  their  ancestors  to  resist  the  whole 
power  of  Rome,  nothing  would  have  been  more  natural  than 
to  expect  a  great  degree  of  jealousy  among  chiefs,  whose  re- 
cent triumphs  had  given  them  such  claims  to  pre-eminence, 
or  of  confusion  in  the  proceedings  of  men  so  unaccustomed 
to  the  business  of  legislation.  Yet,  with  the  exception  of  a 
temporary  misunderstanding  between  the  generals  and  legis- 
lative body,  relative  to  the  propriety  of  alienating  national 
domains  at  once,  or  waiting  till  the  conclusion  of  the  war,  it 
would  be  difficult  to  conceive  a  scene  of  greater  harmony. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  263 

The  promulgation  of  the  address  was  followed  by  the  im- 
mediate transfer  of  the  executive  and  legislative  body  to 
Tripolizza,  where  immediate  steps  were  taken  for  opening 
the  third  campaign.  As,  however,  the  enemy  had  been  so 
effectually  crippled  during  the  preceding  year,  some  weeks 
elapsed  before  any  movement  was  attempted  by  the  Turks, 
who  thus  offered  time  for  the  provisional  government  to  or- 
ganize the  best  mode  of  prosecuting  the  war.  As  the  inva- 
sion of  the  Morea  and  the  operations  in  Arcania  had  ren- 
dered it  impossible  for  the  people  to  cultivate  their  grounds, 
little  could  be  expected  from  the  ensuing  harvest  :  an  ar- 
rangement was  however  made,  by  which  the  national  pro- 
perty and  forthcoming  crops,  estimated  at  twelve  millions  of 
Turkish  piastres  by  the  finance  commission,  were  farmed  out 
for  about  a  third  of  that  sum,  and  this,  together  with  a  few 
millions,  furnished  by  the  zeal  of  patriotic  individuals,  was 
all  Greece  had  with  which  to  enter  the  field  a  third  time 
against  the  whole  military  and  naval  power  of  the  Ottomans. 
Although  so  inactive  during  the  early  part  of  the  summer, 
the  enemy  was  by  no  means  idle  afterwards.  A  fleet  consist- 
ing of  seventeen  frigates  and  above  sixty  smaller  vessels  of 
war  and  transports,  filled  with  troops,  ammunition  and  pro- 
visions, was  despatched  for  the  purpose  of  supplying  the  for- 
tresses still  held  in  IN'egropont,  Candia,and  the  Morea.  Ow- 
ing to  the  impossibility  of  preparing  the  Greeks  ships  in  time, 
this  was  effected  without  opposition  at  Carystus,  Canea,  Co- 
ron,  Modon  and  Patras,  where  the  Capitan  Pacha  arrived 
about  the  middle  of  June.* 
ft  „  -  Witn  respect  to  the  plan  of  operation  projected  by 
the  enemy  on  shore,  it  was  infinitely  better  than  that 
of  last  year  ;  while  the  forces  destined  to  carry  it  into  effect 
were  far  superior  both  as  to  numbers  and  leaders.     An  army 

*  The  following  letter  from  Mr.  Green,  contains  some  important  and 
interesting  information.  It  seems  from  this,  that  to  the  end  of  the 
campaign  of  1823,  the  Turkish  combined  fleet  literally  did  nothing. — It 
appears  also  that  the  Albanians,  though  soldiers  by  trade,  could  not  be 
brought,  in  this  instance  at  least,  to  fight  against  the  Greeks. 

Zante,  23d  August,  1823. 

"  The  Turkish  fleet,  consisting  of  forty-six  sail,  under  the  com- 
mand of  Mahomet  Isref,  Capoudan  Pacha,  passed  Zante  on  the  18th 
June,  on  its  way  to  Patras,  where  it  arrived  two  days  after.  When 
off  Missolonghi  several  boats  were  found  trafficking  with  the  Greeks, 
and  consequently  were  seized  by  the  Turkish  Commander ;  however,  on 

24 


270  HISTORY  OF  THE 

of  twenty-five  thousand  men  having  been  assembled  at  La- 
rissa  early  in  June,  it  was  formed  into  two  divisions,  intend- 
ed to  act  at  separate  points  :  one  of  these,  under  Isouf  Pa- 

my  agent  requesting  their  liberation,  his  demand  was  complied  with  in 
the  most  courteous  manner.  The  Capoudan  Pacha  immediately  insti- 
tuted a  strict  blockade  of  Missolonghi,  and  issued  a  manifesto  respect- 
ing the  same,  which  was  forthwith  acknowledged  by  the  Ionian  Go- 
vernment. The  blockade  has  been  kept  up  with  tolerable  strictness, 
but  nevertheless  several  boats  have  contrived  to  elude  the  vigilance  of 
the  Turkish  cruizers,  and  have  landed  their  cargoes  of  provisions  at  the 
small  islands  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Missolonghi. 

A3  I  deemed  it  advisable  to  be  present  at  Patras  during  such  an  inter- 
esting period,  I  proceeded  there  the  first  week  in  last  month,  returned 
here  on  the  20th,  and  performed  my  quarantine  of  fifteen  days  in  the 
wretched  Lazaretto  of  this  place. 

I  was  well  received  by  the  Ottoman  naval  commander-in-chief, 
who  treated  me  in  the  handsomest  and  most  courteous  manner. — 
His  Highness  paid  the  greatest  attention  to  various  representations 
which  it  was  my  duty  to  make,  respecting  some  Ionian  boats  and 
cargoes  detained  by  him,  for  breach  of  blockade  :  these  he  released 
at  my  request,  as  also  two  Cephaloniot  subjects  who  had  been  made 
prisoners  by  him  in  Negropont,  having  been  taken  in  arms  with  the 
insurgents. 

The  Capoudan  Pacha  appeared  to  me  to  be  a  quiet  shrewd  man, 
not  at  all  sanguinary,  but  rather  endeavouring  to  accomplish  his 
designs  by  conciliatory  measures  than  by  force  of  arms.  He  has 
the  reputation  of  possessing  some  general  knowledge  of  seamanship, 
although  as  an  European  he  would  be  justly  considered  very  deficient 
in  that  science.  In  several  interviews  I  had  with  him,  he  was  very 
inquisitive  concerning  our  naval  affairs  :  among  other  subjects  he  asked 
me  if  it  was  still  the  custom  in  the  British  navy  to  punish  seamen  by 
flogging  them  on  their  naked  backs,  as  he  recollected  was  the  case  when 
ite  was  in  Egypt,  co-operating  with  Lord  Nelson. 

About  the  middle  of  July,  the  Turkish  fleet  was  joined  by  the  Alge- 
rine  and  Tunisian  squadrons,  and  the  combined  force  then  amounted 
to  sixty  ships  of  war,  and  a  few  transports.  The  generality  of  the 
vessels  are  in  good  order  and  condition  ;  I  was  particularly  struck  with 
the  appearance  of  the  frigate  bearing  the  Capoudan  Pacha's  flag  ;  she  is 
a  handsome  new  vessel,  built  at  Constantinople,  mounts  fifty-two  ldng 
guns,  kept  particularly  clean,  and  as  far  as  I  could  observe,  on  deck  and 
below,  greater  discipline  was  enforced  than  could  have  been  expected. 
Up  to  the  present  time  this  large  fleet  has  remained  quite  inactive  ;  in- 
deed, the  only  occupation  of  the  Capoudan  Pacha  appears  to  have  been 
the  granting  of  licences  to  a  number  of  Austrian,  Ionian,  and  Maltese 
vessels,  to  proceed  up  the  Gulph  of  Corinth,  for  the  avowed  purpose  of 
buying  currants  at  Vostizza  from  the  Greek  proprietors.  Of  course,  it 
is  stipulated,  that  on  the  return  of  these  vessels  with  their  cargoes, 
the  purchasers  shall  pay  a  certain  sum  by  way  of  duty,  but,  in  fact,  as  a 
bribe  for  obtaining  leave  to  traffic  with  Greek  blockaded  ports,  and  to 
•Which  places  they  also  convey  supplies  of  provisions  and  ammunition, 
concealed  under  the  ballast,  besides  large  sums  of  money  to  pay  for 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  271 

cha  of  Bercoffeeli,  marched  towards  Thermopylae,  while  the 
other  led  on  by  Mustapha  Pacha,  proceeded  to  the  pass  otr 
Neopatra  near  Zetouni.     The  Greeks  posted  here,  being  too 


the  fruit  ;  thus  furnishing  to  the  Greeks  means  to  carry  on  the  war 
against  the  Ottomans. 

During  my  stay  at  Patras,  I  was  obliged  to  live  on  board  the  vessel, 
as  there  was  no  accommodation  on  shore  ;  I.  however,  paid  a  visit  to  an 
old  acquaintance,  Ali  Pacha,*  who  held  the  Pashalik  of  the  Morea,  on 
my  arrival  in  1818,  and  who  I  visited  at  Tripolizza  to  present  the  cus- 
tomary presents  on  my  nomination.  He  had  soon  afterwards  been 
raised  to  the  dignity  of  Grand  Vizier,  but  did  not  long  enjoy  that  post; 
was  disgraced  and  sent  into  banishment,  where  he  remained  until  or- 
dered to  join  the  army  which  occupied  Corinth,  in  1822.  Ali  recognized 
me  immediately,  appeared  much  pleased  with  my  visit,  and  made  many 
apologies  for  not  being  able  to  treat  me  as  he  had  done  on  our  first  ac- 
quaintance ;  in  truth  his  condition  was  much  changed,  and  his  spirits 
were  evidently  dejected  ;  he  was  without  money,  and  consequently  had 
few  attendants :  he  received,  with  evident  satisfaction,  a  supply  which 
had  been  sent  him  through  me.  by  his  family  at  Constantinople,  though 
it  amounted  only  to  about  300/.  sterling. 

After  my  visit,  I  traversed  the  ruins  of  the  once  beautifully  situated 
and  populous  town  of  Patras  ;  of  four  thousand  houses,  only  ten  or 
twelve  remained,  and  those  under  the  walls  of  the  fortress.  The  rest 
of  the  town  was  so  completely  destroyed,  that  I  was  unable  to  find  the 
site  of  my  own  house  until  it  was  pointed  out  to  me,  and  I  then  only  re- 
cognized it  by  the  pedestal  of  my  flag-staff,  which  yet  remained,  and  the 
stocks  of  two  favourite  orange  trees,  which,  though  burned  close  to  the 
ground,  were  beginning  to  shoot  out  in  fresh  vigour  through  the  sur- 
rounding ashes. 

When  I  took  leave  of  the  Capoudan  Pacha,  he  presented  me  with  a 
handsome  cashmere  shawl,  in  return  for  which,  I  sent  him  from  hence 
one  of  Dollond's  silver  tubed  telescopes. 

Soon  after  I  quitted  Patras,  the  Turkish  Admiral  received  a  visit  from 
the  British  naval  commander-in-chief,  Sir  Graham  Moore,  accompa- 
nied by  Sir  Frederick  Adam,  acting  Lord  High  Commissioner.  The 
ostensible  object  of  their  visit  was  to  represent  to  the  Capoudan  Pacha, 
that  several  irregularities  had  been  committed  by  the  Turkish  vessels 
under  his  orders,  towards  Ionian  boats.  Our  naval  and  military  com- 
manders-in-chief were  received  by  the  Turkish  High  Admiral  with  eve- 
ry mark  of  respect,  and  with  the  honours  due  to  their  rank  :  their  re- 
presentations were  attended  to,  and  they  departed  apparently  satisfied 
with  the  result  of  their  conference.  The  British  squadron  consisted  of 
five  vessels  ;  the  Rochfort,  eighty -gun  ship,  carried  the  admiral's  flag  : 
the  appearance  of  the  squadron,  but  more  particularly  their  manoeu- 
vres, excited  the  admiration  of  the  Turks.  Two  days  after  the  de- 
parture of  the  English  squadron,  the  Capoudan  Pacha  sent  to  Zante 

*  This  is  not  the  Ali  Pacha  of  Ioannina,  who,  the  reader  will  remem- 
ber, came  to  a  tragical  death  the  year  before  this  was  written 

t 


272  HISTORY  OF  THE 

weak  to  attempt  making  any  resistance,  withdrew,  so  that 
the  enemy  was  enabled  to  advance  into  Livadia  unopposed, 
and  encamped  at  Nevropolis  on  the  20th  of  June.  Still  un- 
able to  cope  with  the  Turkish  division,  the  Greeks  contented 
themselves  with  occupying  the  passes  through  which  this 
force  had  entered  the  province. 

In  the  meanwhile,  Isouf  continued  to  occupy  and  lay 
waste  the  whole  country  round  Parnassus  and  Livadia,  mur- 
dering all  the  inhabitants  who  had  not  escaped  to  the  moun- 
tains or  marshes  near  the  lake  Copaes  :  he  also  attacked  a 
small  corps  which  had  thrown  up  entrenchments  on  the  high 
road  between  Rachova  and  Delphi,  but  was  repulsed  with 
considerable  loss  :  returning  a  few  days  after,  the  enemy 
was  more  successful,  and  having  turned  to  the  right  of  the 
Greeks,  advanced  to  both  the  above  named  places,  to  which 
he  set  fire,  after  plundering  whatever  had  been  left  by  the 
fugitive  peasantry. 

Odysseus,  who  had  been  waiting  at  Athens  until  the  con- 
tingent despatched  from  Tripolizza  under  Nikitas  passed  the 
Isthmus  of  Corinth,  set  out  on  the  28th  of  June :  leaving 
orders  that  all  the  forces  collected  in  Attica  and  Bceotia 
should  follow,  he  proceeded  to  Megara  with  five  hundred 
men,  and  embarking  there,  sailed  up  the  gulph  and  joined 
Nikitas  at  Dobrena.  The  two  chiefs  lost  no  time  in  advan- 
cing towards  the  enemy,  and  soon  reached  the  heights  in 


handsome  presents  of  sabres,  shawls,  &c.  for  the  Admiral,  General,  and 
other  officers  who  had  paid  him  a  visit. 

Isouf  Pacha  has  just  arrived  at  the  Morea  Castle  from  Prevesa,  with 
a  few  attendants,  onboard  a  Turkish  vessel.  It  appears  he  had  collected 
together  a  body  of  10,000  Albanians,  and  formed  his  camp  near  Arta. — 
After  having  advanced  his  men  two  months'  pav,  and  prepared  every 
thing,  the  Pacha  set  out  on  his  march  towards  Missolonghi,  which 
place  he  intended  to  invest,  but  had  scarcely  quitted  the  environs  of  Vo- 
nizza,  when  the  troops  simultaneously  mutinied,  pillaged  the  baggage, 
and  dispersed.  Isouf  Pacha,  and  his  immediate  attendants,  with  difficulty 
reached  Prevesa.  Thus  terminated  the  exertions  of  an  able  commander, 
who  quitted  his  post  to  raise  an  army  at  his  own  private  expense,  with 
which  he  hoped  to  gain  possession  of  Missolonghi,  a  town  that  from  its 
position  had  for  so  long  a  time  materially  annoyed  Turkish  operations  in 
the  Gulf  of  Lepanto.  There  can  be  little  doubt  that  this  defection  was 
caused  by  the  intrigues  of  Omer  Vrioni,  who  himself  having  failed  in 
the  attempt  to  reduce  Missolonghi,  was  jealous  of  the  talents  of  Isou? 
Pacha,  who,  he  had  reason  to  fear,  might  be  more  successful." 

*  Green's  Sketches,  p.  151—156. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  273 

•Sight  of  Isouf 's  camp.  A  system  of  guerilla  warfare  was 
now  commenced,  and  the  Turks  were  so  harrassed,  that 
they  soon  retreated  in  the  greatest  disorder,  pursued  by  the 
Greeks,  who  killed  numbers,  and  took  a  large  quantity  of 
their  baggage. 

The  second  division,  under  Mustapha,  waited  on  the  plain 
of  Thebes  for  the  result  of  Isouf 's  operations,  in  order  to  ad- 
vance towards  the  gulf  of  Lepanto,  but  the  retreat  of  his 
coadjutor  having  enabled  the  Greek  chiefs  to  alter  their  plans, 
Odysseus  pushed  on  to  attack  this  division,  which  he  forced 
to  take  refuge  in  Negropont,  leaving  behind  most  of  its  bag- 
gage and  military  stores.  The  Turks  had  scarcely  reached 
Carystus,  when  Odysseus  appeared  before  it,  and  established 
a  rigorous  blockade.  After  these  successes,  which  removed 
all  apprehension  of  any  new  attack  on  the  side  of  Corinth, 
Nikitas  proceeded  to  Salona  to  co-operate  with  the  inhabi- 
tants in  the  preparations  making  for  the  defence  of  that  place 
and  its  neighbourhood. 

The  management  of  the  war  in  Arcania  being  confided 
to  Mustapha,  Pacha  of  Scutari,  with  Isouf,  the  Pacha  of 
Serres,  as  his  second  in  command,  they  found  such  difficulty 
in  organizing  a  sufficient  force,  that  the  whole  of  June  and 
July  was  passed  in  preparing  a  corps  of  eight  thousand 
men  at  Prevesa.  Isouf  had  taken  up  a  position  at  Ponda,  a 
village  close  to  the  ancient  Actium,  there  to  await  the  Pacha 
of  Scutari.  The  latter  was  advancing  with  his  own  troops, 
and  a  large  contingent  furnished  by  the  Pacha  of  Thessaly. 
Marco  Bozzaris  was  at  Katochi,  between  Missolonghi  and 
Vonizza,  with  Joncas  of  Agrapha,*  to  whom  he  had  been 
reconciled  after  a  long  enmity.  Their  utmost  force  did  not 
exceed  twelve  hundred  men,  but  with  these  it  was  decided 
they  should  continue  closely  to  watch  the  motions  of  the  ene- 
my. While,  however,  Mustapha  was  on  his  march  from 
Agrapha  to  Vracori,  fully  expecting  to  be  joined  there  by 
the  troops  at  Prevesa,  the  Albanians,  who  formed  the  flow- 
er of  Isouf's  army,  no  sooner  received  the  allowances 
usually  made  before  entering  the  field,  than  they  mutinied, 
threatened  the  life  of  their  commander,  and  after  com- 
mitting numerous  excesses,  withdrew  to  their  respec- 
tive homes.      Even  Isouf's   tent  was  not  spared  on   this 

*  Joncas  was  highly  distinguished  before  the  war,  as  Protopalicaron, 
or  second  in  authority  to  the  famous  Klepthis  Katsandoni,  who  fre- 
quently defeated  the  armies,  and  ultimately  succeeded  in  setting  the 
whole  power  of  Ali  Pacha  at  defiance. 

24* 


274  HISTORY  OF  THE 

occasion,  while  he  himself  only  escaped  by  embarking  anfl 
flying  to  Patras  with  a  few  of  his  attendants.  The  cause 
of  this  mutiny  and  desertion  was  afterwards  traced  to  Omer 
Vrioni,  who  had  become  jealous  of  Isouf 's  military  fame, 
and  determined  to  strip  him  of  all  means  of  co-operating  with 
Mustapha  in  the  present  campaign.  He  accordingly  succeed- 
ed in  persuading  the  Albanians  to  join  his  own  standard,  and 
took  post  at  Lepanore,  to  the  right  of  the  Acheron,  with  four 
thousand  men.  On  reaching  Patras,  Isouf  Pacha  sent  a  body 
of  troops  to  be  landed  at  Crionero,  not  far  from  the  position 
of  Marco  Bozzaris,  with  orders  to  attack  the  Greeks  in  flank. 
Apprised  of  their  landing,  the  Souliote  chief  fell  on  the 
Turks,  and  having  either  killed  or  taken  prisoners  more 
than  two  thirds  of  the  whole  number,  the  rest  were  glad  to 
escape  to  their  boats. 

Hearing  thata  division  of  two  thousand  men  was  advancing 
on  the  side  of  Valtos,  Bozzaris  sent  a  detachment  in  that  di- 
rection to  prevent  their  approach,  while  he  himself  deter- 
mined to  dispute  the  entrance  of  Mustapha  Pacha  into  Arca- 
nania.  To  effect  this  important  object,  it  became  necessary 
to  undertake  one  of  those  extraordinary  forced  marches, 
which  have  so  frequently  secured  victory  to  the  Greeks  dur- 
ing the  present  contest.  It  was  this  alone  which  enabled 
him  to  reach  Carpenisa  in  time  to  prevent  the  consequences 
that  must  have  followed  a  sudden  invasion  by  Mustapha. 
The  enemy's  army  reached  the  frontier  of  Arcanania  on  the 
19th  of  August,  and  encamped  on  an  extensive  plain  near 
the  above  place  :  it  amounted  to  fourteen  thousand  men, 
while  the  Greeks  could  with  difficulty  collect  two  thousand. 
Undaunted  by  such  fearful  odds,  Bozzaris,  whose  previous 
gallantry  had  awakened  the  most  flattering  hopes  of  his  fu- 
ture heroism,  wa.s  now  destined  to  exceed  the  most  sanguine 
anticipations  of  his  friends  and  admirers.  A  general  coun- 
cil of  the  chiefs  and  soldiery  being  summoned,  Marco 
pointed  out  the  impossibility  of  making  a  regular  attack  on 
the  enemy,  while  on  the  other  hand,  their  country  and  its 
cause  were  irretrievably  lost,  if  they  did  not  take  advantage 
of  the  night,  and  endeavour  by  an  act  of  boldness,  required 
by  the  interests  of  their  country,  to  prevent  the  Turks  from 
entering  the  plains  round  Missolonghi.  This  opinion  being 
acquiesced  in  by  all  present,  he  addressed  his  companions  a 
second  time,  and  having  drawn  a  flattering  picture  of  the  glory 
which  awaited  those  who  took  part  in  the  intended  attack, 
as  well  as  the  service  they  were  about  to  render  Greece, 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  275 

the  hero  called  upon  those  who  were  ready  to  die  for  their 
country  to  stand  forward.  The  call  was  answered  by  four 
hundred  men,  chiefly  Souliotes,  who  according  to  the  ancient 
practice  of  Souli,  when  they  are  determined  to  conquer  or 
die,  threw  away  their  scabbards,  and  embraced  each  other. 
Having  selected  three  hundred  to  act  immediately  about  his 
own  person,  Bozzaris  directed  that  the  remainder  of  the 
troops  should  be  formed  into  there  divisions,  for  the  purpose 
of  assailing  the  enemy's  camp  at  different  points,  while  he 
penetrated  to  the  centre  with  his  own  chosen  band. 
1ft9o  Every  thing  being  prepared  by  midnight/ on  the 
19th  July,  the  last  words  of  Bozzaris,  on  assigning 
to  each  chief  and  soldier  the  part  he  had  to  perform,  were, 
"  If  you  lose  sight  of  me  during  the  combat,  come  and 
seek  me  in  the  Pacha's  tent."  He  then  set  forward  closely 
followed  by  the  sacred  battalion,  while  the  three  Stratarchs, 
or  minor  chiefs,  destined  to  make  their  attack  at  separate 
points,  also  proceeded  to  their  stations.  In  order  that  this 
should  be  simultaneous,  it  was  agreed  that  not  a  shot  was  to 
be  fired,  or  a  sword  drawn,  until  they  heard  a  bugle  sound- 
ed. Bozzaris  was  enabled  to  advance  by  addressing  the 
Turkish  sentinels  in  the  Albanese  language,  and  telling 
them  he  came  with  reinforcements  from  Omer  Vrioni.  On 
reaching  the  centre  he  sounded  the  bugle,  upon  which  the 
attack  commenced  on  every  side.  The  enemy,  either  un- 
prepared or  panic  struck,  fled  in  all  directions,  while  those 
who  resisted,  frequently  mistook  their  comrades  for  enemies, 
perishing  by  each  other's  hands.  While  dealing  death 
around,  and  encouraging  his  companions  to  profit  by  so  fa- 
vourable a  movement,  the  voice  of  Bozzaris  was  recognized, 
and  just  as  he  had  ordered  the  chief  Pacha  to  be  seized,  a 
ball  struck  him  in  the  loins  :  though  the  wound  was  danger- 
ous, he  concealed  it,  and  continued  to  animate  the  men, 
until  wounded  a  second  time  in  the  head,  when  he  fell,  and 
was  borne  from  the  field  by  a  party  of  soldiers.  Notwith- 
standing this  disaster,  the  struggle  was  maintained  with  the 
utmost  spirit  till  day-light,  at  which  time  the  Greeks  saw 
themselves  undisputed  masters  of  the  field  ;  those  of  the 
enemy  who  did  not  perish,  having  abandoned  their  camp, 
leaving  the  ground  covered  with  the  dead,  eighteen  stand- 
ards, a  quantity  of  baggage  and  ammunition,  together  with 
a  number  of  horses,  and  several  thousand  head  of  oxen. 
While  the  loss  of  the  infidel  army  could  not  be  less  than 
three  thousand  men,  that  of  the  Christians  was  only  thirty 


276  HISTORY  OF  THE 

killed,  and  seventy  wounded;  of  these,  about  half  were 
Souliotes.  Brilliant  as  this  triumph  must  be  regarded, 
it  was  the  most  dearly  bought  of  all  those  acquired  by  re- 
generated Greece.  Though  unblessed  with  the  advantages 
which  science  and  education  bestow,  Marco  Bozzaris  was 
endowed  with  all  those  manly  virtues  and  that  simplicity 
of  character,  which  are  only  to  be  found  in  the  heroes  of 
Plutarch.  His  conduct  from  early  life,  whether  in  his  capa- 
city of  citizen,  patriot,  or  soldier,  had  excited  the  hopes,  and 
Won  the  admiration  of  the  whole  Gre^k  people.  Surely  the 
last  act  of  his  life  will  bear  an  advantageous  comparison  with 
the  most  envied  moment  in  that  of  Leonidas,  or  the  hero  of 
Mantinea!  Greece  will  long  have  to  deplore  this  irrepara- 
ble loss.  Yet  it  would  have  been  impossible  to  die  a  more 
glorious  death ;  and,  however  slender  the  hopes  of  repla- 
cing such  a  man  may  be,  the  event  cannot  fail  to  exercise  a 
most  salutary  effect  on  those  who  are  left  to  sustain  the  con- 
test; while,  if  antiquity  could  boast  a  name,  which  has 
served  as  a  never  fading  illustration  to  poets,  orators,  and 
historians,  modern  Greece  may  safely  put  forth  that  of 
Marco  Bozzaris,  as  being  scarcely  less  entitled  to  the  palm 
0f  immortality.* 

On  discovering  their  loss,  the  eyes  of  the  Greek  chiefs 
and  soldiers  were  immediately  turned  on  Constantine,  the 
liero's  elder  brother,  who  was  named  his  successor  with  ac- 


s  Those  qualities  which  had  raised  Marco  Bozzaris  so  high  in  the 
Estimation  of  his  countryman,  and  which  would  have  perhaps  led 
tt>  his  being  one  day  the  first  in  rank  as  he  was  in  virtue,  have  been 
Retailed  in  a  spirited  sketch  of  the  hero's  life,  which  has  appeared  in 
the  New  Monthly  Magazine.  Nor  is  it  possible  to  peruse  the  account 
there  given,  without  fancying  that  we  are  reading  the  life  of  a  Greek 
Captain  in  the  days  of  Pericles  or  Phocion. 

The  last  moment  of  the  Souliote  chief  must  have  been  greatly 
embittered  by  the  recollection  that  his  wife  and  children  were  to  be 
teft  completely  unprovided  for.  I  saw  Madam  Bozzaris  and  her  two 
fine  boys  at  Ancona,  when  on  my  way  to  Greece  last  year  ;  she  is  a  very 
interesting  young  woman,  and  was  then  far  advanced  in  pregnancy. 
Nothing  could  be  more  destitute  than  her  situation  after  the  death  of 
iier  husband,  and  were  it  not  for  the  pious  and  benevolent  Metropolitan 
Ignatius,  there  is  reason  to  fear  that  the  widow  of  a  man  whose  memory 
may  be  one  day  hailed  with  scarcely  less  veneration  than  that  of 
Timoleon  or  Leonidas,  would  have  been  reduced  to  the  lowest  stage  of 
poverty  and  want.  It  is  scarcely  necessary  to  add,  that  the  provisional 
government  has  not  as  yet  possessed  any  means  whatever  of  providing 
'Jot  a  family  which  has  such  irresistible  claims  on  the  sympathy  of  afi 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  277 

clamation.  When  he  had  paid  the  last  sad  duties  to  the 
manes  of  his  departed  relative,  a  party  of  Souliotes  were  sent 
to  convey  the  body  to  Missolonghi  for  sepulture,  while  the 
remainder  of  the  troops,  headed  by  their  new  leader,  took 
up  a  position,  whence  they  could  watch  the  future  movements 
of  the  enemy,  and  prevent  his  advancing. 

It  has  been  already  stated,  that  the  Capitan  Pacha's  fleet 
had  arrived  in  the  waters  of  Patras,  about  the  middle  of 
June.  Although  the  professed  object  of  his  visit  was  to  co- 
operate with  the  military  leaders  on  shore,  the  latter  derived 
very  little  benefit  from  his  appearance.  One  of  the  first 
acts  of  the  Pacha  was  that  of  declaring  Missolonghi  and 
every  other  port  possessed  by  the  Greeks,  in  a  state  of  rigo- 
rous blockade,  although  he  had  neither  the  courage  nor  en- 
ergy to  enforce  it.  A  number  of  vessels  under  the  Ionian 
flag  were  seized  at  the  same  time,  while  several  light  ships 
had  orders  to  cruise  about  the  islands,  to  examine  all  the 
vessels  they  should  meet.  Such  was  the  effect  of  this  mea- 
sure, that  the  whole  of  the  islanders  who  had  any  commer- 
cial concerns,  regarded  themselves  in  a  state  bordering  on 
close  blockade,  for  being  aware  of  the  excesses  in  which 
Turkish  sailors  indulged,  and  that  the  mere  fact  of  being 
visited  by  an  infidel  cruiser,  subjected  them  to  a  long  qua- 
rantine, none  of  the  lonians  would  venture  to  sail ;  so  that 
their  commerce  was  completely  interrupted  for  several 
weeks.  The  little  respect  shown  to  the  British  flag  by  the 
barbarians  was  also  most  strikingly  exemplified  in  the  mur- 
der of  six  passengers,  taken  in  a  boat  belonging  to  Corfu, 
and  which  sailed  from  that  island  soon  after  the  arrival  of  the 
Turkish  fleet  at  Patras.  This  vessel  was  boarded  off  the 
island  of  Paxos,  and  though  her  papers  were  perfectly  re- 
gular, she  was  taken  into  Prevesa,  when  the  passengers  were 
brought  before  Isouf  Pacha,  then  waiting  for  the  contin- 
gents from  Albania,  and  after  a  short  examination  he  order- 
ed them  to  be  hung  up  within  a  (e\v  hundred  yards  of  the 
English  Consul's  door.  The  motive  of  this  outrage,  as  well 
as  the  steps  taken  to  prevent  and  resent  it,  are  still  unknown 
both  to  the  Greeks  and  lonians, 

Notwithstanding  the  difficulties  which  opposed  the  sailing 
of  the  Greek  fleet,  until  so  late  a  period  of  the  season,  Em- 
manuel Tombasi,  the  Hydriot  admiral,  was  supplied  with  a 
body  of  fifteen  hundred  men,  and  a  small  squadron,  with 
which  he  proceeded  to  Candia  early  in  June,  having  been 


278  HISTORY  OF  THE 

previously  named  Harmostis,*  or  Captain  General  of  all 
Crete.  Landing  near  Kisamos  on  the  6th,  he  ordered  the 
ships  to  blockade  the  port,  while  he  should  attack  the  town 
by  land.  A  proposal  was,  however,  first  made  to  the  Turk- 
ish garrison  to  capitulate,  and  they  agreed  to  accept  it ; 
but  on  hearing  that  the  Capitan  Pacha  was  at  sea,  they 
retracted,  and  broke  off  the  parleys  which  had  commenced. 
Being  soon  after  attacked  from  two  batteries,  which  were 
mounted  under  the  direction  of  Mr.  Hastings,  who  accom- 
panied the  Captain  General  as  head  of  the  artillery,  the 
Turks  were  glad  to  renew  the  negotiation,  and  terms  having 
been  mutually  agreed  on,  they  embarked  in  their  own  ships 
next  day  for  Canea,  leaving  the  town  without  a  single  in- 
habitant, thus  greatly  diminishing  the  risk  which  the  Greeks 
Would  have  otherwise  incurred,  of  contracting  the  plague. 

Four  Beys  were,  however,  retained  as  hostages  for  the 
fulfilment  of  the  terms,  which  provided,  that  all  the  Greeks 
retained  in  slavery  in  other  parts  of  the  island,  should  be 
givni  up  :  when  the  governor  of  Canea  heard  of  the  condi- 
tion, he  peremptorily  refused  to  ratify  it ;  adding,  that  the 
Greeks  were  at  perfect  liberty  to  do  as  they  pleased  with 
men  who  did  not  know  how  to  defend  the  post  which  had 
been  confided  to  their  charge. 

After  the  fall  of  Kisamos,  Tombasi  marched  on  to  the  dis- 
trict of  Selinon,  in  the  chief  town  of  which  the  Turks  had 
shut  themselves  up,  after  being  repulsed  on  all  sides  by  the 
armed  peasantry.  Besides  its  high  walls  and  bastions,  this 
place  is  surrounded  by  thick  groves  of  olive  and  plane  trees, 
which  render  the  approach  extremely  difficult.  The  Cap- 
tain General  having  proposed  terms  similar  to  those  granted 
at  Kisamos,  they  were  rejected,  upon  which  batteries  were 
immediately  opened  on  the  place  :  these  had  not  played  long, 
when  the  Turks  fled  towards  Canea,  and  were  pursued  to 
the  very  walls  by  the  detachment  of  Greeks,  who  slew  num- 
bers. Master  of  these  two  points,  Tombasi  was  enabled  to 
open  a  communication  with  the  various  other  districts  which 
had  been  conducting  the  war  before  his  arrival,  and  although 
it  was  out  of  his  power  to  furnish  them  with  those  supplies, 
of  which  they  stood  so  much  in  need ;  yet  the  presence  of 
such  a  force  as  he  brought  with  him,  as  well  as  the  recent 
check  experienced  by  the  enemy,  gave  a  fresh  impulse  to  the 

•  This  was  the  title  given  by  the  ancient  Spartans  to  tire  governors 
who  were  entrusted  with  full  powers. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  279 

Exertions  of  those  brave  islanders,  who  had  by  their  own 
gallantry  sustained  a  most  unequal  contest  with  the  Turks 
for  above  two  years  ;  and  succeeded,  without  any  assistance 
whatever,  in  driving  them  into  the  fortresses.  It  is  true^ 
the  Candiotes  did  not  achieve  their  victories  without  great 
sacrifices,  as  it  is  calculated  that  above  twenty  thousand  of 
both  sexes  have  perished  in  this  beautiful  and  prolific  Island, 
since  the  insurrection  broke  out. 

While  the  Captain  General  was  organizing  a  plan  of  still 
more  active  operations  on  shore,  his  small  squadron,  under 
the  gallant  Hydriot  Captain,  Macromure,  greatly  distinguish^ 
ed  itself  before  Retimo  and  Canea,  in  preventing  the  entry 
of  several  Turkish  vessels  that  attempted  to  throw  supplies- 
into  those  two  places. 

With  respect  to  the  Capitan  Pacha,  his  naval  efforts  were 
confined  to  the  declaration  of  blockade  already  noticed, 
while  a  few  Greek  gun-boats,  stationed  at  the  first  named 
place,  were  more  than  sufficient  to  set  the  whole  of  his  vi- 
gilance and  power  at  defiance.  There  was,  in  fact,  scarcely 
a  single  instance  of  any  vessels,  carrying  supplies  to  the 
Greeks,  being  intercepted  ;  whereas  several  under  the  Aus- 
trian flag  fell  into  the  hands  of  the  Christians.  Having  re- 
mained in  a  state  of  the  greatest  inactivity  for  above  three 
months,  during  which  time  nearly  a  third  of  his  crews  were 
carried  off  by  an  epidemic  fever,  the  Turkish  admiral  sailed 
at  length,  and  made  the  best  of  his  way  towards  the  Archi- 
pelago. A  Greek  squadron,  which  left  Hydra  early  in  Sep- 
tember,  met  the  infidel  fleet  off  Mytilene,  and  sent  some  fire- 
ships  in  among  them,  but  without  effect,  the  wind  being  so, 
high,  that  the  Turkish  vessels  had  time  to  escape.  So  far* 
however,  from  having  sustained  a  defeat,  as  stated  by  the 
enemies  of  the  Greek  cause,  a  division  of  Turkish  ships  was, 
attacked  soon  after  in  the  gulph  of  Volos,  and  several  of 
them  were  taken  or  destroyed.  As  to  the  Capitan  Pacha, 
he  did  not,  as  usual,  attempt  to  visit  any  of  the  islands,  but 
hastened  back  to  the  Dardanelles  with  all  possible  speed. 

The  campaign  of  1823  was  signalized  by  two  events  no 
less  advantageous  to  the  Greek  cause,  than  they  were  ho- 
,  nourable  to  the  Greek  chararter — the  re-occupation  of  Co- 
|  rinth,  and  defence  of  Anatolico.  Though  frequently  reduced 
|  to  great  distress  for  provisions,  yet,  such  was  the  importance 
attached  to  the  possession  of  Corinth  by  the  Turks,  that  they 
I  obstinately  rejected  every  overture   to  surrender,  until  the 


280  HISTORY  OF  THE 

latter  end  of  October,  when  there  being  no  longer  any  hope 
of  receiving  the  assistance  promised  by  the  Capitan  Pacha, 
who  had  thrown  a  trifling  supply  into  the  place  on  the  arri- 
val of  the  fleet,  proposals  were  made  to  Staico  of  Argos,  who 
had  maintained  the  blockade  ever  since  he  had  left  the  as- 
sault of  the  Palamida,  at  Napoli  di  Romania.  This  brave 
man  immediately  repaired  to  the  seat  of  government,  then 
at  Napoli,  to  communicate  the  circumstance,  and  to  know 
its  pleasure  :  the  result  was,  that  he  received  full  powers  to 
treat  with  the  garrison,  and  he  returned  for  this  purpose ; 
but  Colocotroni,  and  one  or  two  other  chiefs,  happening  to 
hear  of  the  intended  negotiation,  repaired  to  the  spot,  with 
a  view,  it  is  said,  of  participating  in  the  spoils.  No  sooner, 
however,  did  the  Turks  hear  of  this,  than  a  flag  of  truce  was 
instantly  sent  to  inform  Staico,  that  they  would  only  open  the 
gates  to  himself  and  Giorgaki  Kizzo  :  as  it  was  in  vain  to 
think  of  reducing  the  Acropolis  by  force,  there  was  now  no 
alternative  but  that  of  acceding  to  their  wishes  ;  a  messen- 
ger was  therefore  dispatched  for  the  Souliote  Chief,*  who 

*  Giorgaki  is  brother  to  Vasilica,  the  favourite  wife  of  AH  Pacha,  and 
who  was  sent  to  Constantinople  after  the  tyrant's  fall.  Though  dis- 
tinguished for  his  modesty  in  private  life,  and  undaunted  bravery  in  the 
field,  as  well  as  the  purest  patriotism,  the  circumstance  of  his  sister's 
marriage  had  placed  Giorgaki  near  the  person  of  AH,  who  always  treat- 
ed him  with  the  greatest  kindness,  and  made  him  the  depository  of  all 
his  secrets.  It  was  not,  however,  until  the  death  of  AH,  that  Giorgaki 
took  an  active  part  in  the  war  of  regeneration ;  when  this  event  oc- 
curred, he  repaired  to  the  Morea,  with  a  chosen  party  of  followers,  and 
has  not  been  less  actively  than  usefully  employed  ever  since.  Having 
accompanied  Theriacouli  in  the  hope  of  being  able  to  enter  Kiapha,  he 
greatly  distinguished  himself  in  the  action  at  Splanza,  and  was  one  of 
those  who  bore  off  the  body  of  the  Spartan  chief. 

I  had  frequent  opportunities  of  seeing  Giorgaki  while  at  Tripolizza, 
and  was  much  struck  by  his  modest  demeanour  and  singularly  fine  coun- 
tenances-full of  placidity  and  virtue.  He  suffered  the  greatest  uneasi- 
ness on  his  sister's  account,  and  I  was  more  than  once  consulted  as  to 
the  best  means  of  extricating  that  beautiful  woman  from  the  hands  of  the 
infidels.  As  it  occurred  to  me  that  a  joint  application  from  the  Lord  High 
Commissioner  of  the  Ionian  Islands,  and  our  ambassador  at  Constantino- 
ple, would  have  the  desired  effect,  I  recommended  his  addressing  him- 
self to  those  two  quarters.  All  I  could  do,  as  a  mere  traveller,  was  to 
mention  the  circumstance  to  Captain  Hamilton,  of  the  Cambrian,  and 
I  did  so,  on  meeting  that  gallant  officer  at  Napoli  di  Romania.  As  the 
family  of  Vasilica  is  one  of  the  most  powerful  in  Epirus,  both  on  the 
side  of  her  late  husband  and  the  Souliotes,  I  trust  this  matter  has  al- 
ready attracted  the  attention  of  those  in  whose  power  it  is  to  obtain  her 
liberation.    It  should  be  added,  that  there  are  about  fifteen  other  in- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  281 

arrived  soon  after,  and  entered  the  Acropolis  of  Corinth,  on 
condition  that  the  Turks  might  be  permitted  to  depart.  This 
being  accorded,  they  were  embarked  on  board  some  Aus- 
trian vessels,  and  conveyed  to  Asia  Minor.  Disappointed  in 
(heir  hopes,  and  stung  with  mortification  at  the  mean  opi- 
nion of  their  character,  implied  by  the  resolution  of  the  infi- 
dels, Colocotroni  and  his  friends  were  obliged  to  retrace 
their  steps  to  Tripolizza,  which  they  entered  amidst  the 
scoffs  of  the  multitude  and  ridicule  of  their  own  soldiers. 

Anatolico  is  a  small  town  built  on  a  neck  of  land,  about 
three  leagues  from  Missolonghi,  at  the  eastern  extremity  of 
the  gulph  which  bears  its  name  ;  and  having  nothing  for  its 
defence  but  an  old  dilapidated  wall  and  ditch  filled  up  in 
several  places.  Of  about  fifteen  hundred  inhabitants  resi- 
ding here,  not  more  than  three  hundred  were  armed,  when 
the  town  was  closely  invested  by  the  Pacha  of  Scutari  early 
in  October,  having  previously  received  large  reinforcements 
and  been  joined  from  Lepanou  by  Omer  Vrioni.  As  the  ul- 
terior object  of  the  enemy  was  to  besiege  Missolonghi,  Con- 
stantine  Bozzaris,  unable  to  cope  with  such  a  force  as  that  now 
brought  forward,  quitted  his  post  at  the  bridge  of  Kerasova 
and  retired  to  the  former  place  to  prepare  for  the  Pacha's 
reception,  whenever  he  should  advance.  The  discomfiture 
before  Anatolico  was,  however,  scarcely  less  complete  than 
that  experienced  at  Missolonghi  the  preceding  year. 

Having  established  several  batteries  composed  of  mortars 
and  eighteen  pounders,  the  Turks  continued  to  fire  shells 
and  shot  into  the  place  for  above  three  weeks,  during  which 
they  frequently  summoned  the  inhabitants  to  surrender,  but 
were  invariably  answered  by  a  brisk  cannonade,  from  the 
few  guns  which  had  been  mounted  in  great  haste,  when  the 
enemy  appeared,  and  discharges  of  musketry.  Warned  by 
the  result  of  the  attempt  to  assault  Missolonghi,  the  experi- 
ment was  not  repeated,  and  having  expended  the  whole  of 
their  shot  and  shells,  as  well  as  exhausted  their  stock  of  pro- 
visions, the  Turks  retreated  in  their  usual  disorder  on  the 
19th  of  November,  leaving  behind  a  number  of  guns,  and  a 
considerable  quantity  of  baggage.     The  loss  of  the  infidels, 

dividual  retained  by  the  Porte,  whose  enlargement  would  add  greatly 
to  our  popularity  in  Albania,  without  doing  the  smallest  injury  to  the 
Turkish  interests  there.  To  return  to  Giorgaki,  I  should  add,  that  he  is 
the  warm  friend  and  admirer  of  Prince  Mavrocordato,  and  was  one  of 
the  three  stratarGfcs  who  immortalized  themselves  with  Marco  Bozzari* 
at  Carpenisa. 

25 


282  HISTORY  OF  THE 

in  the  various  sorties  made  from  the  town,  was  above  fou? 
hundred,  while  the  Greeks  had  only  about  fifty  killed  and 
wounded,  although  the  number  of  shot  and  shells  thrown 
into  the  town  was  estimated  at  no  less  than  2,600  :  as  the 
Turks  were  also  frequently  harassed  in  the  rear,  by  parties 
from  the  mountains,  or  who  sallied  forth  from  Missolonghi, 
the  number  of  their  killed  is  probably  underrated.  It  should 
be  added,  that  an  epidemic  fever  carried  off  above  twelve 
hundred  of  the  Pacha's  army  between  the  period  of  his  de- 
feat at  Carpenisa  and  that  of  his  retreat.  The  reason  for 
attacking  Anatolico  was,  that  its  possession  would  have  ena- 
bled the  Turks  to  assail  Missolonghi  by  sea.  Three  gon 
boats  had  even  been  prepared  by  the  Pacha,  but  when  com- 
pleted, he  could  not  prevail  on  any  person  to  embark  in  them, 
and  they  were  accordingly  burnt  by  his  own  orders.  No- 
thing could  exceed  the  cool  and  determined  bravery  of  the 
defenders  of  Anatolico,  of  whom  a  hundred  and  fifty  swore  a 
solemn  oath  to  each  other  before  the  attack  commenced,  that 
they  would  bury  themselves  under  its  ruins,  rather  than  sur- 
render.* 

*  During  this  siege  a  singular  and  fortunate  circumstance  happened, 
which  is  mentioned  by  several  writers,  and  is  thus  related  by  Mr.  Bla- 
quiere.  "  Nothing,  says  he,  but  a  thorough  conviction,  that  the  fact  I 
am  about  to  relate  actually  occurred,  and  my  having  ascertained  its  ex- 
act truth  from  eye  witnesses,  would  have  induced  me  to  notice 
such  an  incident  at  a  time  when  there  are  so  many  attempts  to  impose 
on  public  credulity. 

"  Being  aware  that  there  was  neither  water  nor  cisterns  in  the 
town,  one  of  the  first  measures  of  the  Turks  was  to  possess  them- 
selves of  the  fountain  on  Terra  Firma,  at  a  distance  of  nearly  two 
miles,  where  the  inhabitants  had  always  drawn  their  supplies  ;  so 
that  the  blockade  had  not  continued  many  days,  before  those  who 
remained  were  in  the  greatest  distress,  and  would  have  been  forced 
to  surrender,  had  not  a  small  supply  been  occasionally  sent  from 
Missolonghi  during  the  night.  But  every  further  hope  was  destroyed 
by  the  enemy  placing  a  strong  post  and  battery  close  to  the  narrow 
channel  through  which  the  boats  had  to  pass,  so  that  the  garrison 
looked  forward  to  their  immediate  destruction  as  inevitable,  for  the 
town  was  hemmed  in  on  every  side,  and  had  been  without  any  com- 
munication with  Missolonghi  for  several  days,  when  a  shell  from  a 
ten  inch  mortar,  entering  the  front  of  St.  Michael's  church,  and 
penetrating  the  flagged  pavement,  lighted  on  a  source  of  excellent 
water  !  What  adds  to  the  singularity  of  the  circumstance  is,  that  a 
few  women  and  children  who  continued  in  the  town  (for  the  greater 
part  had  been  sent  hither)  took  up  their  abode  in  the  church,  as  the 
most  secure  asylum,  and  were  in  it  when  the  shell  entered,  without 
receiving  the  least  injury.  With  respect  to  the  water  thus  miracu- 
lously discovered,  it  was  not  only  most  abundant,  but  fully  equal  in 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  28$ 

Such  was  the  end  of  the  third  campaign  ;  and  such  the 
fate  of  the  formidable  armies  collected  by  the  Pacha's  of 
Scutari  and  Thessaly.  Each  of  the  four  divisions  which  en- 
tered Livadia  and  Epirus  was  defeated  and  dispersed  in  lit- 
tle more  than  four  months  after  it  took  the  field,  by  a  few 
detached  corps  :  and  unaided  Greece  was  once  more  saved 
from  the  horrors  to  which  she  would  have  been  exposed  had 
the  enemy  triumphed.  For  it  is  well  known,  that  the  Turk- 
ish leaders  had  orders  to  carry  fire  and  sword  before  them, 
so  that  the  Greeks  were  fully  aware  that  in  this,  as  every 
former  campaign,  they  had  no  alternative  between  victory 
and  extermination.* 

,ft2o  The  success  of  the  Greeks  during  the  campaign  of 
1822,  and  1823,  was  such  as  not  only  to  give  the 
friends  of  that  afflicted  country  considerable  confidence  in 
the  new  government,  but  also  some  reason  to  hope  that 
this  struggle  for  liberty  would  soon  end  in  triumph  and 
independence.  But  towards  the  close  of  this  year  difficul- 
ties sprung  up  from  a  source  hardly  to  be  expected.  This 
was  no  less  than  a  disagreement  among  the  heads  of  the 
Government,  which  ended  in  the  deposition  of  some  of 
its  members,  producing  want  of  concert,  confusion,  and 
anarchy. 

We  have  already  hinted  at  the  disaffection  of  Colocotroni. 
At  the  Congress  of  Astros,  Mavromicalis  was  made  Presi- 
dent of  the  Executive  Council,  instead  of  Mavrocordato, 
and  Colocotroni,  Vice-President  of  the  same  body  in  place  of 
Canacaris. 

This  body  now  having  at  once  the  civil  and  military  powers 
in  their  hands,  they  soon  reduced  the  Senate  to  total  imbecili- 
ty. The  Senate  indeed,  attempted  to  preserve  its  authori- 
ty, and  was  engaged  during  the  remainder  of  the  year  in 
checking  the  abuses  of  the  military  government.  But  such 
was  the  violence  with  which  the  two  parties  carried  on  their 
enmity  towards  each  other,  that  the  two  former  presidents, 
Conduriotti  and  Mavrocordato  were  obliged  to  flee  to  Hydra, 
while  the  Senate,  supported  by  the  Islands,  came  to  open 
rupture  with  the  Executive. 

Juality  to  that  of  the  fountain  of  which  the  enemy  had  taken  possession, 
t  is  needless  to  say  that  this  fortunate  coincidence  was  regarded  as  a 
miracle  in  every  sense  cf  the  word  ;  that  it  saved  Anatolico  there  is  no 
doubt." — Blaquiere's  Second  Visit^.  44. 
*  Blaquiere,  p.  255-282. 


284  HISTORY  OF  THE 

The  immediate  occasion  of  this  disagreement  is  stated  to 
have  been  as  follows.  The  seat  of  government  had  been 
removed  from  Astros  to  Tripolizza,  and  from  the  latter 
place  to  Napoli.  The  law  had  made  it  necessary  that  at 
least  three  members  of  the  Executive  Council  should  reside 
at  the  seat  of  government,  that  number  being  required  to 
form  a  quorum  for  business.  This  Council,  consisting  of 
five  members,  two  of  which,  Colocotroni  and  Mavromicalis 
being  with  the  army,  there  remained  Count  Metaxa,  and  two 
others  for  the  transaction  of  affairs.  The  Count,  without 
leave  or  notice,  withdrew  himself  from  the  seat  of  govern- 
ment, thus  leaving  the  Executive  in  a  state  of  political  in- 
competency. For  this  act  he  was  prosecuted,  judged,  and 
dismissed  from  his  office,*  John  Coletti  being  nominated  to 
fill  his  place.  The  minister  of  finance  was  also  tried  and 
dismissed  for  having,  without  authority,  established  a  salt 
monopoly.  Four  representatives,  in  like  manner,  were  turn- 
ed out  of  their  places  for  not  attending  to  certain  duties  when 
called  on  to  do  so. 

The  Executive,  irritated  by  these  vigorous  acts  of  justice, 
sent  Nikitas  and  young  Colocotroni  to  Argos,  where  the 
Congress  was  sitting,  with  two  hundred  men,  to  ask  an  expla- 
nation of  such  conduct.  On  their  arrival,  they  proceeded  to 
the  house  of  Assembly,  and  found  that  the  members  had 
iust  terminated  their  sitting.  The  Senate,  however,  was  in 
session,  and  thither  they  found  admittance,  soon  filling  the 
house  with  armed  soldiers.  Nikitas,  in  an  attitude  of  defi- 
ance, questioned  this  body  as  to  their  conduct  in  removing 
Count  Metaxa,  and  the  minister  of  finance,  from  office. — 
They,  in  reply,  accused  the  Count  of  neglect  of  duty,  and 
the  minister  of  establishing  the  salt  monopoly  without  or- 
ders. Nikitas  then  threatened  to  make  law  with  his  sword, 
and  declared  he  would  establish  a  military  government.  Af- 
ter much  angry  debate,  it  was  agreed  that  the  house  should 
meet  in  the  afternoon  to  consider  what  course  should  be 
taken.  Meanwhile  the  soldiers  were  ordered  to  seize  on  the 
archives  of  the  legislature,  which  was  accordingly  done. — 
The  members  hearing  of  this  outrage,  ordered  the  Capitani, 
who  were  at  the  head  of  the  police  to  recover  these  records, 
which  order  was  put  into  execution  with  admirable  courage 

*  Stanhope's  Letters,  p.  43, 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  285 

and  address.*  The  Capitani,  it  is  said,  contrived  to  intoxicate 
Nikitas'  principal  officers  in  the  evening,  and  then  wrested 
from  them  the  archives  of  the  houses. 

After  this  affair  the  legislative  hody  transferred  their  sit- 
tings to  Crandidi,  a  place  situated  at  the  extremity  of  the 
Argolic  Peninsula,  near  Spezzia.  Here  the  Executive 
issued  two  proclamations  ;  the  first  containing  a  defence  of 
their  conduct,  but  expressing  no  regret  for  what  had  happen- 
ed, and  the  second  called  on  the  representatives  of  the  nation 
to  send  deputies  -to  confer  with  them  and  to  settle  their 
difficulties. 

The  legislative  body  finding  however  that  the  disorders 
went  on  increasing,  oanie  to  the  determination  of  effecting 
an  entire  change  in  the  Executive. 

Colocotroni,  Col.  Stanhope  states,  had  already  tendered 
his  resignation ;  Metaxa,  as  we  have  seen,  was  dismissed, 
and  the  other  three  members  were  tried  and  judged  singly 
and  dismissed,  according  to  the  language  of  the  Consti- 
tution. 

Having  thus  dissolved  the  old  Executive,  the  house  pro- 
ceeded to  the  nomination  of  the  new,  when  the  following 
persons  were  chosen  and  inducted  into  office.  As  presi- 
dent Conduriotti,  of  Hydra  ;  and  as  members,  Coletti,  a  phy- 
sician, Botesi,  a  Spezziot  admiral,  and  Nicolo  Londos  of 
Patras,  a  fifth  not  being  chosen.  The  following  are  the 
charges  of  which  the  members  of  the  late  Executive  were 
found  guilty,  by  a  commission  of  nine  members  of  the  legis- 
lative body.  1st.  For  having  misapplied  the  funds  of  the 
land  and  sea  forces.  2d.  For  having  allowed  two  members 
to  carry  on  the  functions  of  the  Executive.  3d.  For  promo- 
ting officers  contrary  to  law.  4th.  For  having  sold  the  can- 
non taken  at  Napoli,  without  consulting  the  representatives. 
5th.  For  uniting  the  cantons  of  St.  Pierre  and  Prastas,  with- 
out consulting  the  legislative  body.  6th.  For  selling  Turkish 
slaves  contrary  to  law.  7th.  For  having  proclaimed  the  sale 
of  the  national  property  without  the  consent  of  the  legisla- 
tive body.  Sth.  For  allowing  the  finance  minister  to  estab- 
lish a  monopoly  of  salt.  9th.  For  sending  M.  Metaxa,  a 
member  of  the  Executive,  to  Carilis,  and  leaving  the  su- 
preme body  of  the  state  with  only  two  persons,  and  from 
that  period  having  avoided  all  correspondence  with  the  legis- 
lative body,    10th.  For  having  allowed  M.  Metaxa  to  act 

*  Stanhope's  Letters. 
25* 


286  HISTORY  OP  THE 

as  a  member  of  the  Executive,  after  he  had  been  sentenced 
to  dismissal  by  the  commission  of  the  legislative  body. 
11th.  For  not  having  acknowledged  M.  Coletti  as  a  member 
of  the  Executive,  after  he  had  been  chosen  by  the  legislative 
body.  12th.  For  having  allowed  an  armed  body  to  depart 
from  Napoli,  and  to  act  against  the  legislative  body  at  Argos, 

These  charges,  and  the  dismissal  of  the  members  of  the 
late  Executive,  were  published  in  a  proclamation  issued  by 
the  presidents  of  the  new  Executive  and  legislative  bodies.* 

Of  the  characters  and  qualifications  of  the  members  of 
the  new  Executive,  we  can  give  only  a  few  short  notices, 
gleaned  from  various  sources. 

Of  the  President,  Conduriotti,  Count  Pecchio  says,  he  was 
neatly  habited  in  the  costume  of  his  island  (Hydra)  sitting 
on  a  sofa  a  la  Turque,  counting  the  beads  of  a  Compolojo. 
As  he  speaks  no  foreign  language,  our  conversations,  when- 
ever we  met,  were  short  and  unimportant.  The  Condu- 
riotti family  is  certainly  the  richest  in  Hydra.  His  property 
is  said  to  amount  to  a  million.  At  the  commencement  of  the 
revolution,  this  family  contributed  very  important  sums  of 
money  for  the  support  of  the  navy ;  and  this  sacrifice,  with 
the  reputation  of  being  an  excellent  citizen,  raised  him  to 
the  first  rank  in  the  government.  From  that  time,  however, 
his  fame  has  been  on  the  decline.  He  was  formerly  esteem- 
ed a  man  of  firmness,  but  experience  has  proved  him  obsti- 
nate rather  than  firm.  His  integrity  is  without  blemish,  bu$ 
he  is  accused  of  partiality  towards  his  own  friends,  and  the 
Hydriots  his  countrymen. 

Botasi,  Botazi,  or  Boutasi,  as  he  is  called  by  different  wri- 
ters, the  Vice  President,  is  described  by  Mr.  Emerson,  to 
be  an  honest  Spezziot,  not  overstocked  with  intelligence,  but 
bearing  a  high  character  for  honour  and  principle. 

Andrea  Metaxa  is  a  Cephalonian,  who  gained  a  consider- 
able reputation  as  a  soldier  in  consequence  of  his  brave  de- 
fence of  Antolico.  At  the  beginning  of  the  revolution  he 
passed  over  into  the  Morea,  joined  the  insurgents,  and  was 
ultimately  outlawed  by  the  Ionian  government.  Col.  Stan- 
hope says  he  is  a  sly  politician,  who  raised  himself  and  injur- 
ed his  country  by  his  cunning.  Cristides,  the  fifth  member 
who  was  chosen  after  the  others,  was  acting  Secretary  when 
Mr.  Humphreys  was  at  Napoli,  who  describes  him  as  an  ac- 
tive intriguing  man. 
/ 

*  Stanhope's  Letters.    Letter  3$, 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  2S7 

"Ofthe  members  ofthe  executive,"  Mr.  Emerson  says,"  that 
John  Colletti,  a  physician  by  profession,  and  as  such,  former- 
ly in  the  pay  of  Ali  Pacha,  is  by  far  the  most  clever  and  in- 
telligent. Of  his  sterling  patriotism,  however,  there  are  few 
in  the  Morea,  or  even  among  his  own  countrymen,  who  are 
not  rather  sceptical.  The  exactions  which  have  been  car- 
ried on  in  Roumelia  by  his  agents,  and  with  his  approbation, 
have  rendered  him  odious  to  the  people  whom  he  represents  ; 
and  his  intriguing  spirit,  forbidding  countenance,  and  repul- 
sive manners,  have  gained  him,  both  with  the  Moreotes,  and 
with  foreigners,  a  character  for  cunning,  avarice,  and  dan- 
gerous ambition.  Nevertheless,  his  acknowledged  talents 
have  given  him  such  an  ascendancy  with  the  president,  and 
with  the  executive  body,  that  he  may  be  considered  as  the 
spring  of  its  movements."* 

The  ex-president,  Colocotroni,  was  visited  by  Mr.  Wad- 
dington,  who  gives  the  following  description  of  what  he  saw  : 

"  I  have  presented  nvyself  three  or  four  times  at  the  le- 
vees of  Colocotroni,  and  have  received  from  him  repeated 
assurances  of  his  peculiar  respect  for  the  English  nation, 
and  his  attachment  to  its  individual  members  ;  and,  in  fact, 
he  immediately  provided  me  with  an  excellent  lodging, 
which  I  could  not  otherwise  have  procured.  These  profes- 
sions amuse  me  the  more,  as  the  old  hypocrite  is  notorious- 
ly anti-Anglican,  and  is  continually  and  publicly  accusing 
the  British  government  of  designs  to  occupy  and  enslave 
the  Morea.  His  manners,  however,  to  do  him  justice,  are 
utterly  devoid  of  urbanity,  and,  like  his  countenance  and 
dress,  are  precisely  those  which  be-t  become  a  distinguished 
captain  of  banditti.  His  court  seems  to  consist  of  about  fif- 
teen capitani,  who  seat  themselves  on  the  sofa  which  lines 
three  sides  of  his  spacious  hall  ;  from  the  walls  are  suspend- 
ed Turkish  muskets,  curiously  inlaid,  with  many  valuable 
pistols  and  sabres.  His  capitani  are  as  filthy  a  crew  as  I 
ever  beheld,  and  for  the  most  part,  ill-looking  and  very  mean- 
ly attired;  but  the  most  miserably  starving  wretch  that  I 
fcave  observed  among  them  is  a  papas,  or  priest,  bonneted 
and  bearded,  but  still  military.  Their  usual  covering  for 
the  head  is  nothing  more  than  the  red  cap  of  the  country  ; 
but  there  are  generally  two  or  three  of  the  party  who  think 
proper,  from  whatsoever  feeling  of  vanity,  to  burden  them- 
selves with  extremely  large  and  shapeless  turbans.  Colo- 
icotroni  takes  little  notice  of  any  of  them,  and  seldom  rises  at 

*  Emerson's  Journal; 


288  HISTORY  OF  THE 

their  entrance.  The  fourth  side  of  the  room  was  occupied 
by  a  number  of  soldiers,  who  remain  standing.  Upon  some 
Occasion,  Colocotroni  thought  proper  to  command  them  to 
retire ;  they  obeyed  reluctantly  and  slowly,  and  in  a  very 
few  minutes  returned  in  parties  of  two  or  three,  and  re-occu- 
pied their  station.  Count  Pecchio  adds  his  testimony  of  the 
savage  appearance  of  the  same  personage,  after  his  exile  to 
Hydra.  He  says,  *  when  I  beheld  Colocotroni  sitting  amidst 
ten  of  his  companions,  prisoners  of  state,  and  treated  with 
respect  by  his  guards,  I  called  to  mind  the  picture  that  Tasso 
draws  of  Satan  in  the  council  of  the  devils.  His  neglected 
grey  hairs  fell  upon  his  broad  shoulders,  and  mingled  with 
his  rough  beard,  which,  since  his  imprisonment,  he  has  al- 
lowed to  grow  as  a  mark  of  grief  and  revenge.  His  form  is 
rugged  and  vigorous,  his  eyes  full  of  fire,  and  his  martial  and 
savage  figure  resembled  one  of  the  sharp  grey  rocks  which 
are  scattered  throughout  the  Archipelago.'  "* 

Petro  Bey,  (Mavromicalis)  is  a  fat,  dull,  well-looking  per- 
sonage, who  is  -ddicted  to  no  particular  class  of  political 
©pinions,  and  appears  peculiarly  unenlightened  by  any  sort 
©f  foreign  information  ;  he  is  understood  to  have  made  great 
progress,  (for  an  oriental,)  in  the  science  of  gastronomy  ;  and 
is  believed  to  be  willing  to  embrace  any  form  of  government 
which  will  leave  him  riches,  and  give  him  peace,  abundance, 
and  security. 

Near  the'  close  of  the  year  1823,  the  Rt.  Hon.  Col.  Stan- 
hope, a  young  Englishman,  of  ability,  arrived  at  Missolonghi, 
as  agent  for  the  Greek  committee  of  London,  and  on  the  5th 
©f  January,  1824,  Lord  Ryron  arrived  at  the  same  place. 

His  Lordship's  arrival  had  been  long  and  anxiously  expect- 
ed, and  he  was  received  with  military  honours,  and  the  ac- 
clamations of  the  people.  Mavrocordato  had  previously  ar- 
rived from  Hydra,  being  appointed  by  the  legislative  body  to 
(he  government  of  western  Greece.  He  proceeded  to  sum- 
mon a  congress  at  Missolonghi,  consisting  of  primates  and 
^captains  of  the  province,  at  which  several  wise  and  salutary 
angulations  were  adopted. 

A  surly  misunderstanding  still  existed  between  the  execu- 
tive and  legislative  bodies.  The  latter  is  accused  of  not 
liaving  fulfilled  their  engagements,  particularly  in  regard  to 
the  fitting  out  of  sixty  ships,  and  the  employment  of  12,00ft 
sailors,  f 

The  Greeks  and  Turks  continued  to  engage  each  other  at 

*  Count  Pecchie's  Journal.  t  Stanhope's  Letter,  1% 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  289 

sea  as  opportunity  offered.  On  the  10th  of  December,  a 
Turkish  oris?  was  pursued  by  a  number  of  Greek  vessels,  and 
after  a  gallant  defence,  was  driven  on  shore  near  Ithica, 
when  the  Greeks  proceeded  to  rifle  her.  The  Turks  were 
pursued,  and  some  of  them  killed,  while  others  escaped. 
This  vessel  had  on  board  250,000  piastres  for  the  payment 
of  the  Turkish  troops  at  Patras,  all  of  which  fell  into  the 
hands  of  the  Greeks.* 

*  According  to  Mr.  Green,  the  wounded  Turks  found  on  board  this 
vessel  were  put  to  death  in  the  most  wanton  and  brutal  manner,  and 
those  who  landed  were  pursued  and  killed  without  mercy.  "  Captain 
Knox,  says  he,  the  resident,  assisted  by  the  military,  succeeded  in  sav- 
ing numbers  of  the  Turks,  and  on  his  approach  the  Greek  assassins 
hastily  re-embarked.  The  survivors  have  been  treated  with  the 
greatest  kindness  by  the  local  government." 

It  appears  that  the  government  of  the  Ionian  Isles,  or  some  of  its 
members,  considered  their  neutrality  violated,  since  the  above  action 
took  place  on  their  waters,  and  in  consequence  the  following  proclama- 
tion was  issued  : 

Corfu.  20th  December,  1823. 

"  Whereas,  on  the  10th  and  12th  instant,  one  of  the  most  flagrant 
violations  of  territory  took  place  in  the  islands  of  Santa  Maura  and 
Ithica,  on  the  part  of  some  Greek  armed  vessels,  which  were  under  the 
command  of  a  person  styling  himself  Prince  Mavrocordato,  and  that  in 
opposition  to  every  recognized  principle  of  neutrality  and  the  rights  (A 
nations  ;  his  Excellency,  the  Lord  Hisrh  Commissioner  of  his  Britannic 
Majesty,  finds  himself,  with  profound  regret,  compelled  to  order  that 
the  two  above  named  islands  be  immediately  placed,  as  regards  the 
other  Ionian  Islands,  in  a  quarantine  of  thirty  days.  The  Inspector-Ge- 
neral of  the  Health  Department  at  Corfu,  is  charged  to  transmit  imme- 
diately the  necessnr'.  orders  to  this  effect. 

His  Excellency  feels  the  deepest  affliction  for  the  inconveniences  and 
losses  which  must  necessarily  result  from  a  similar  measure;  and  that 
which  renders  it  so  much  more  dreadful  is,  that  an  attempt  to  compro- 
mise and  insult  the  Ionian  Government,  placed  under  the  exclusive  pro- 
tection of  his  Britannic  Majesty,  was  least  to  be  expected  from  men  who 
declare  themselves  fighting1  for  their  own  liberty,  and  who  would  thus 
render  this  government,  if  the  act  had  been  passed  over  in  silence,  ac- 
cessory to  those  terrible  misfortunes  and  odious  atrocities,  which  on 
this,  and  many  other  occasions,  have  marked  the  conduct  of  the  parties 
engaged  in  the  present  warfare. 

By  order  of  his  Excellency, 

(Signed)  Frederick  Hankky.  ' 

After  the  extracts  we  have  before  made  from  Mr.  Consul  Green's 
book,  we  shall  leave  to  our  readers  to  inquire,  what  would  have  been 
the  language  of  that  gentleman,  had  the  Turks,  under  the  same  cir- 
cumstances, taken  a  Greek  vessel,  and,  as  he  terms  it,  assassinated  the 
crew.  The  Turks  crave  the  signal  for  a  war  of  extermination,  not  by 
putting  to  death  soldiers  taken  in  arms  against  them,  but  by  the  de- 
liberate murder  of  the  dignitaries  of  the  Greek  church  at  Constantino- 
ple. It  is  not  in  the  nature  of  the  most  civilized  men  to  bear  sucli  in- 
juricfs  without  retaliation. 


2&0  HISTORY  OF  THE 

1  Lord  Byron,  it  appears,  during  his  passage  from  Cepha- 
Ionia,  very  narrowly  escaped  falling  into  the  hands  of  the 
Turks.  The  vessel  which  carried  his  Lordship  was  found 
Carly  in  the  morning  of  the  30th  December,  to  be  surround- 
ed by  a  Turkish  squadron,  which  had  unexpectedly  come  out 
Of  the  Gulph  of  Lepanto.  His  vessel  was  hailed,  and  order- 
ed to  send  her  boat  on  board  the  Turkish  commander,  but 
\>y  superior  sailing  she  finally  escaped. 

At  the  meeting  of  the  Congress  before  mentioned,  Mavro- 
Cordato,  the  President,  opened  the  session  by  a  spirited 
Speech.  "  He  said  he  had  heard  with  delight,  on  his  arrival 
here,  that  the  patriot  warriors  of  Western  Greece  had  driven 
the  enemy  from  their  soil,  and  had  thereby  saved  Missolonghi 
and  Peloponnesus  from  pest,  death,  and  ruin.  With  no  less 
delight  did  he  see  these  persons  assembled  to  deliberate  on 
the  state  of  Greece.  He  could  not  but  anticipate  their  un- 
dertakings, in  civil  as  in  military  affairs,  would  be  attended 
With  advantage.  With  respect  to  union  of  sentiments,  it  was 
pot  to  be  met  with  in  private,  or  in  public  assemblies  :  but 
When  the  end  was  good,  the  collision  of  sentiment  tended  to 
enlighten  men,  and  to  promote  the  common  interest.  Pas- 
sion and  civil  discord  were  alone  the  sources  of  mischief. 
For  a  proof  of  this  it  was  not  necessary  to  cite  history — the 
facts  were  before  their  eyes  ;  and  from  their  past  sufferings 
they  should  learn  to  be  wiser  for  the  future.  Greece,  in- 
deed, had  nothing  to  fear  from  the  enemy.  She  had  con- 
founded the  Turk  even  when  disunited.  But  united,  she 
had  pushed  her  advantages  still  further — had  saved  her  soil 
from  desolation,  and  her  resources  from  ruin.  The  prince 
thought  not  with  those  who  traced  discord  and  disunion  to 
poverty.  On  the  contrary,  he  considered  that  Greece  did 
possess  resources  equal  to  the  drain  occasioned  by  the  war, 
jf  well  husbanded.  But  if  she  did  not  possess  sufficient 
wealth,  was  it  by  disunion  that  wealth  was  to  be  obtained  1 
Surely  not.  For  who  would  lend  when  he  knows  not  to 
whom  he  lends,  and  whom  to  look  to  for  his  capital  ?  He  then 
observed,  that  the  illustrious  person  [Lord  Byron]  whom  the 
people  had  brought  to  Missolonghi,  by  their  repeated  calls, 
could  be  of  no  use  to  them,  unless  they  acted  with  union  and 
friendship.  All  good  depended  on  themselves.  With 
union  they  required  no  individual  aid  ;  without  it  no  aid  could 
be  effectual.  There  was,  said  he,  a  report  abroad,  which 
he  must  repel  as  a  calumny.  It  had  been  rumoured,  that 
Western  Greece  wished  to  separate  her  interests  from  those 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  291 

of  the  Morea.  It  was  not  so  :  but  if  the  latter  possessed  re* 
sources  beyond  her  wants,  it  was  but  just  that  she  should 
contribute  to  a  war  carried  on  for  the  defence  of  our  out- 
works. If,  as  has  been  asserted,  the  revenue  of  the  Moreit 
had  been  squandered  and  pillaged,  the  people  had  a  right  to 
demand  redress  from  the  government,  or  rather,  they  should 
give  the  government  the  force  necessary  to  effect  the  object. ,? 
Prince  Mavrocordato  then  recommended  the  meeting  to  ap- 
point a  Secretary,  and  two  or  three  members  from  each  can- 
ton to  form  committees,  to  make  reports  for  the  acceptance, 
correction,  or  rejection  of  the  general  assembly.  With  re- 
spect to  his  own  sentiments,  they  should  be  publicly  can- 
vassed. He  then  again  recommended  friendship  and  union, 
which  could  alone  save  the  commonwealth,  and  concluded 
by  moving  the  following  questions  :  "  1st.  What  are  the 
means  to  check  mal-administration  in  the  cantons — to  prevent 
the  fields  from  being  wasted,  and  to  secure  to  the  husbandman, 
the  fruits  of  his  labour  1  2d.  What  force  should  be  main- 
tained, and  how  should  the  money  and  rations  be  furnished  ? 
3d.  How  should  our  military  measures  be  conducted  so  as 
to  promote  the  general  good  ?  4th.  How  regulate  the  dues 
of  the  Capitani,  so  as  to  prevent  misunderstanding  amongst 
them  ?  5th.  Wliat  means  should  be  employed  to  effect  a 
general  union,  and  give  force  to  the  government  V9  All  pre- 
sent were  quiet,  and  conducted  themselves  admirably.* 

Great  expectations  were  entertained  that  the  influence 
of  Lord  Byron  would  not  only  effect  a  reconciliation  be- 
tween the  contending  parties  which  divided  the  forces  and 
distracted  the  councils  of  Greece,  but  that  his  talents  and  his 
name  would  give  vigour  and  success  to  the  operations  of  the 
war.  He  professed  himself  of  no  party,  recommended  con- 
ciliation and  union,  and  soon  after  his  arrival  took  into  his 
pay  500  Suliots.  These  he  intended  to  discipline  in  the  Eu- 
ropean tactics,  and  began  by  placing  himself  at  their  head,  as 
military  chief. 

In  addition  to  the  Suliots,  the  government  placed  under 
his  command  3000  troops,  which  were  designed  to  act 
against  Lepanto,  which  was  then  in  the  hands  of  the  Turks. 
It  was  however  afterwards  reported  to  his  Lordship  that  this 
expedition  must  fail  for  the  present,  in  consequence  of  want 

*  Stanhope,  Letter  21. 


292  HISTORY  OP  THE 

of  funds,  and  the  munitions  of  war.*  Meanwhile  the  Su- 
Hots  became  turbulent  in  consequence  of  the  inability  of 
government  to  pay  them  their  arrears,  and  Lord  Byron,  in 
consequence  of  provocation,  and  over-excitement  from  wit- 
nessing such  conduct,  was  seized  with  an  alarming  fit.f-— 
One  of  the  Suliots,  in  an  affray,  shot  an  officer,  Captain  Sass, 
and  killed  him  on  the  spot.  Indeed  the  conduct  of  these 
semi-barbarians  was  such  as  to  disappoint  all  expectations  of 
their  being  of  use  to  the  army.  Lord  Byron,  in  order  to 
surmount  the  difficulties  concerning  pay,  advanced  from  his 
own  funds  the  sums  they  required  ;  but  afterwards,  when, 
preparations  were  completed  for  marching  against  Lepanto, 
these  men  very  coolly  refused  to  advance  towards  that 
place,  saying  "they  were  not  used  to  fight  against,  stone  walls." 
Arta  was  then  proposed,  as  a  fit  place  for  the  exercise  of 
their  arms,  but  neither  place  was  molested,  and  the  prepara- 
tions were  relinquished.  While  these  things  were  trans- 
acting, Col.  Stanhope  was  carrying  on  his  plan  of  regenera- 
ting Greece  by  means  of  newspapers  and  posts,  with  great 
zeal.  His  exertions,  and  subscriptions  for  the  support  of  a 
Corps  of  artillery,  also  deserve  the  highest  encomiums.  His 
jproposal  to  establish  schools  in  different  parts  of  Greece  for. 
the  education  of  youth  ;  his  plan  of  a  hospital,  and  dispensa- 
ry for  the  sick  and  wounded  ;  and  his  exertions  and  advice 
in  favor  of  a  reconciliation  and  union  among  the  chiefs,  were 
all  objects  worthy  a  generous  man  and  a  vigorous  mind. 

*  In  order  to  show  what  amount  of  military  stores  were  available 
41  that  time  at  Missolonghi,  we  extract  the  following  report  of  the 
committee  of  war,  convened  by  Lord  Byron  for  the  purpose  of  ascer- 
taining whether  there  was  a  sufficiency  to  warrant  the  besieging  oi 
Le  panto. 
f    This  Committee  reported  as  follows  : — 

There  are  45  cannons,  viz  :  one  of  48,  one  of  36,  two  of  22,  fdur 
<5f  18,  of  which  three  are  howitzers,  one  of  16,  four  of  12,  five  of  9, 
two  of  7,  fifteen  of  6,  and  nine  of  4 ;  also  one  mortar  of  40  lb.  calibre. 

There  are  200  balls  of  48  lbs.,  one  hundred  of  36,  one  hundred  and  fifty 
of  22,  three  hundred  of  18,  fifty  of  16,  and  eighty  of  12.  Of  canister 
shot  there  are  about  3300  lbs. ;  one  hundred  howitzer  balls  of  18,  and 
about  twenty  shells  of  40  lbs. 

Powder,  about  6600  lbs.,  musket  balls,  22  cases  and  3000  cartridges. 
Read,  4500  lbs. 

Working  Tools,  about  30,  viz  :  10  hatchets  and  10  wheel  barrows,— 
gadders  none,  nor  any  thing  but  green  wood  to  make  them  of. 

Gun  Carriages,  all  require  repair. 

On  this  report,  the  committee  were  of  opinion  that  the  articles  spe* 
eined  were  not  sufficient  to  warrant  the  siege  of  Lepanto. 

|  Stanhope,  Letter  39. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  29a 

Col.  Stanhope,  after  many  difficulties,  and  considerable 
delay,  finally  established  two  newspapers,  viz.  :  the  "  Hel- 
lenic Chronicle,"  at  Missolonghi,  and  the  "  Athens  Free 
Press,"  at  Athens.  A  laboratory  for  the  manufacture  of 
warlike  articles  was  also  established  at  Missolonghi,  partly 
through  his  influence.* 

From  the  beginning  of  the  revolution,  the  poverty  of  the 
government  was  the  greatest  obstacle  to  its  progress.  To 
remedy  this  great  evil,  a  proposition  had  been  made  to  the 
London  capitalists  by  the  provisional  government  of  Greece, 
and  a  loan  had  been  negociated,  by  subscription,  to  the 
amount  of  800,000/.  sterling,  to  be  paid  by  instalments. — 
The  first  instalment,  amounting  to  40,000/.  in  sovereigns  and 
dollars,  arrived  at  Zante,  under  the  charge  of  Edward  Bla- 
quiere,  Esq.  in  the  month  of  April,  1824.  The  loan  was 
consigned  to  Mr.  Samuel  Barff,  a  highly  respectable  Eng- 
lish merchant,  of  Zante,  and  M.  Logotheti,  a  native  of  the- 
island,  and  to  be  retained  by  them  until  they  should  receive 
an  order  for  its  delivery  from  the  commissioners  who  were 
appointed  for  its  application.  These  commissioners  were 
Lord  Byron,  Lazzaro  Conduriotti  of  Hydra,  and  Mr.  Gordon 
of  England.     Col.   Stanhope  was  authorized  to  act  in  the 

*  This  establishment,  of  such  invaluable  consequence  to  Greece, 
where  nothing  of  the  kind  before  existed,  was  sent  from  the  Greek 
Committee  of  London.  On  its  arrival  the  following  communication  was 
made  to  the  Greek  government  through  Mavrocordato. 

To  Prince  Mavrocordato. 

Missolonghi,  5th  Feb.  1824. 
Prince, — We  have  the  honour  to  inform  you  that  the  Greek  Com- 
mittee of  England  has  sent  out  to  Greece  a  complete  laboratory 
establishment,  which  is  now  fixed  at  Missolonghi.  The  committee,  in 
this  as  in  all  its  measures,  are  anxious  to  promote  the  knowledge  and 
freedom  of  Greece.  The  laboratory  establishment  is  capable  of 
manufacturing  all  the  materials  of  war,  either  in  naval  or  military 
departments.  The  artisans  can  construct  vessels  of  all  descriptions ; 
they  can  found  cannons,  mortars,  and  howitzers;  also  shot  shells, 
and  spherical  case  shot;  they  can  make  carriages  of  all  kinds;  like- 
wise gun  powder,  Congreve  rockets,  and  all  sorts  of  inflammable  fires' 
the  fire-master  undertakes  to  give  instructions  in  the  practice  of 
artillery,  in  projecting  shells  and  rockets,  and  in  the  whole  art  of 
manufacturing  the  materials  for  war.  In  a  word,  this  laboratory  may 
be  considered  not  only  as  a  useful  source  of  supplying  warlike  stores, 
but  as  a  model  and  a  school. 

Your  Excellency's  most  devoted  servants, 

(Signed)  NOEL  BYRON, 

LEICESTER  STANHOPE. 
[Stanhope.  Letter  35.] 
26 


294  HISTORY  OF  THE 

place  of  Mr.  Gordon,  until  the  latter  gentlemen  should  arrive 
in  Greece.  A  few  days  before  the  arrival  of  Mr.  Blaquiere 
with  the  loan,  Lord  Byron  died.*  This  was  a  most  disas- 
trous event  to  the  welfare  of  Greece,  and  the  progress  of  the 
revolution;  for  besides  destroying  at  once  the  expectations 
which  his  exertions  in  the  cause  of  Greece  had  raised,  his 
death  invalidated  the  commission  for  the  application  of  the 
loan,  and  thus  prevented  the  delivery  of  the  money.  It  ap- 
pears that  the  Greek  Committee  of  London,  in  the  appoint- 
ment of  commissioners  to  appropriate  the  funds,  had  made 
no  provision  in  case  of  the  death  or  disability  of  one  of  the 
individuals,  that  another  should  take  his  place.  On  the 
death  of  Lord  Byron,  therefore,  the  commission  was  dis- 
solved, and  Messrs.  Barffand  Logotheti  could  not  deliver  the 
'money  without  violating  their  instructions  from  the  London 
capitalists.  As  if  a  fatality  attended  this  whole  transaction, 
a  proclamation  issued  by  the  Provisional  Government,  in 
which  Zante  and  Cerigo  were  inadvertently  mentioned  as 
the  depots  for  the  future  instalments  of  the  loan,  had  the 
effect  of  eliciting  a  counter  proclamation  from  the  Ionian 
government,  by  which  it  was  declared,  that  the  transfer  of  the 
money  sent  to  Zante  for  the  Greeks,  would  be  considered  as 
a  breach  of  neutrality,  and  would  expose  the  offenders  to  all 
the  pains  and  penalties  denounced  by  the  edict  promulgated 
by  Sir  Thomas  Maitland  in  1822.  Thus  was  the  loan,  on 
which  the  fate  of  Greece  seemed  nearly  to  depend,  locked 
up  within  sight  of  her  mutinous  soldiery,  and  insolvent  go- 
vernment, at  the  very  moment  when  its  delivery  would  have 
done  the  most  good,  and  its  delay  the  most  injury  to  the 
cause  of  Greece.  At  that  very  moment  a  formidable  expe- 
dition was  preparing  at  Alexandria  against  Greece.  The 
Turkish  fleet  was  actually  at  sea,  and  an  army  of  60,000  men 
were  marching  towards  Solona,  destined  to  cross  over  to  the 
Morea  to  co-operate  with  the  Egyptian  troops.  The  con- 
tractors who  had  engaged  to  supply  rations  for  the  troops 
at  Missolonghi,  now  refused  to  fulfil  their  engagements,  not 
knowing  when,  or  if /ever  they  should  be  paid  ;  while  the  Su- 
liots  became  so  ungovernable  as  to  keep  the  town  in  a  state 
of  anxiety  and  alarm,  and  rendered  Mavrocordato's  condition 
not  only  extremely  embarrassing,  but  even  attended  with 
personal  hazard,  "f 

*  The  particulars  of  his  Lordship's  sickness  and  death  will  be  found 
in  the  Appendix. 
^  |  The.  Suliots,  it  will  be  remembered,  were  the  most  heroic  antt 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  205- 

Colocotroni  and  the  military  party  had  always  been  averse 
(o  the  loan,  pretending  to  consider  it  as  an  equivalent  for  the 
sale  of  the  Morea.  They  had  sent  an  emissary  named  Peru- 
ca,  to  England,  for  the  express  purpose  of  dissuading  the 
British  capitalists  from  lending  their  money  to  the  Greeks. 
This  man  proceeded  as  far  as  Corfu  for  the  purpose  of  ob- 
taining a  passage  to  England,  but  owing  to  some  circum- 
stances connected  with  his  character,  the  authority  of  that 
island  would  not  suffer  him  to  land,  and  thus  the  mission  en- 
tirely failed.  On  the  arrival  of  the  money  at  Zante,  another 
attempt  was  made  by  the  anti-patriots  to  prevent  its  delivery, 
on  the  ground  that  the  military  party  might  yet  prevail,  in 
which  case  the  present  government  would  be  replaced  by  a 
new  order  of  things,  in  which  event  the  new  government 
could  not  be  holden  to  repay.  At  the  same  time  a  report 
was  spread  that  the  money  was  to  be  sent  back  to  England. 
The  fact  was,  that  the  anti-patriots  saw  that  they  were  mined 
If  they  could  not  prevent,  in  some  way  or  other,  the  money 
from  going  into  the  hands  of  the  Government,  since  such  an 
accession  to  their  power,  would  at  once  give  them  an  entire 
ascendancy. 


unconquerable  of  all  the  mountain  clans,  and  yet  by  treachery,  and 
numbers,  their  cities  were  taken,  and  their  country  destroyed  ;  the 
few  that  escaped  being  obliged  to  seek  refuge  wherever  it  was  to 
be  found.  They  were  indeed  a  nation  without  a  country.  They 
had  suffered  the  greatest  hardships  and  privations,  and  their  women 
and  children,  at  the  time  of  which  we  are  speaking,  were  without 
homes,  and  probably  without  food.  They  had  strong  claims  on  the 
government,  and  their  disappointment  in  not  receiving  their  pay  af- 
ter having  waited  for  many  months,  had  made  them  restive  and  fe- 
rocious. Col.  Stanhope  impressed  the  necessity  of  allotting  them  a 
district  of  country  on  the  government,  long  before,  and  Bozzaris, 
one  of  their  leaders,  told  Mr.  Blaquiere,  that  all  they  required  was 
an  asylum  for  their  families,  and  the  means  of  existence.  At  length, 
when  Mr.  Blaquiere  advanced  10,000  dollars  on  his  own  responsibility, 
towards  their  payment,  this  trifling  sum  not  only  enabled  Mavrocor- 
dato  to  put  the  Suliots  in  motion,  but  to  strengthen  several  important 
points  on  the  northern  frontier. 

*  The  greatest  apprehensions  were  entertained  in  consequence  of 
the  delay  of  the  loan.  Col.  Stanhope  writes  to  Mr.  Bowring,  (Let- 
ter C3)  "  The  legislative  and  executive  bodies,  indeed  all  the  people, 
think  that  the  loan  will  save  Greece,  if  it  arrives  in  time.  Every 
preparatory  measure  has  been  taken  towards  the  proper  disposal  of 
the  money.  The  only  danger  is,  that  it  should  fall  into  the  hands  of 
a  few  individuals,  and  be  appropriated  to  their  particular  interests  " 
Mr.  Blaquiere  writes,  "  I  am  in  a  state  of  infinite  perplexity.  Such 
ft  the  state  of  that  place,  (Missolonghi)  and  the  position  of  poor  Mav- 


30G  HISTORY  OF  THE 

At  length  instructions  were  received  from  England  to 
place  the  money,  without  conditions,  at  the  disposal  of  the 
Greek  government.  But  it  was  now  too  late  to  remedy  many 
of  the  disastrous  effects  of  delay,  and  the  want  of  precaution 
in  delivering  the  money  became  a  fresh  source  of  calamity. 
The  first  supply  arrived  at  Napoli  in  July,  and  90,000  dol- 
lars were  paid  over  to  the  fleet,  the  remainder  being  distri- 
buted to  the  army.  Each  one  obtained  as  much  as  he  could, 
some  got  little  or  nothing,  and  few  were  satisfied.  Among 
others,  Ulysses,  not  finding  his  demand  complied  with,  made 
a  seizure  of  what  government  money  he  could  find,  dis- 
banded his  troops,  and  retired  to  mount  Parnassus. 


CHAP.  XX. 


Campaign  of  1824. — Loss  of  Ipsara,  and  barbarities  com- 
mitted there. — Italian  and  Maltese  Sailors  assist  the  Turks. — 
Greeks  stimulated  to  action  in  consequence  of  the  toss  of 
Ipsara. — Triumph  of  the  Turks  of  short  duration. — Jit- 
tempt  of  the  Turks  on  Samos. — Loss  of  a  Turkish  fri- 
gate.— Turks  confounded  by  the  boldness  and  skill  of  the 
Greeks. — Capitan Pacharetreats. —  Western  Greece. — Mili- 
tary operations  there. — The  Campaign  on  the  whole  suc- 
cessful to  the  Greeks. — Dissentions  in  the  JVIorea. — The 
Porte  prepares  for  the  next  campaign. — Operations  at  Can- 
dia. — Favourable  aspect  of  Greece. — End  of  the  Civil  Dis- 
cords. 

IR24       ^HE  camPaign  °f  1824  was  opened  on  the  part  of 
the  Turks  by  the  destruction  of  Ipsara.     The  ac- 
count of  this  awful  tragedy  we  extract  from  Mr.  Blaquiere, 
our  principal  guide  in  the  History  of  the  Revolution. 

On  the  arrival  of  Mr.  Blaquiere  at  Napoli  di  Romania  on 
the  8th  of  July,  he  found  the  whole  of  the  Legislative  As- 
sembly convened  there,  for  the  purpose  of  conferring  with 
the  Executive  relative  to  the  frightful  catastrophe  of  Ipsara, 
from  which  ill-fated  Island,  two  deputies  had  that  morning 
arrived,  who  confirmed  the  news  before  received,  of  its  de- 
struction, and  demanded  immediate  succour. 

racordato,  that  he  writes,  to  say  his  life  will  be  endangered  if  money  be 
not  instantly  sent  over  to  pay  the  troops,  especially  the  Suhots,  who 
have  become  quite  ungovernable." 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  297 

It  is  almost  needless  to  say  that  the  above  disastrous  news 
spread  general  consternation,  approaching  to  panic,  among 
the  members  of  the  government  and  legislative  body  ;  its  ef- 
fect was  not  less  acute  when  circulated  among  the  people. 
If  ever  the  patriots  entertained  a  doubt  of  the  final  success 
of  their  cause,  it  was  probably  at  this  moment.  As  if,  how- 
ever, that  Providence,  which  had  enabled  Greece  to  triumph 
over  so  many  difficulties,  was  still  watching  over  her,  the  in- 
telligence from  Ipsasa  was  accompanied  by  the  announce- 
ment of  two  other  events,  which  could  not  fail  to  afford  in- 
finite consolation  to  all  parties.  These  were  the  sailing  of 
the  fleet  from  Hydra,  and  arrival  at  Zante  of  a  person  sent 
out  from  England,  with  instructions  to  BarfT  and  Logotheti, 
to  deliver  up  the  money  deposited  in  their  hands. 

The  great  obstacle  to  the  departure  of  the  Greek  fleet  has 
always  arisen  from  the  inability  of  government  to  make  the 
usual  advances  of  pay  to  the  seamen  for  the  support  of  their 
families  while  absent.  The  capitalists  of  Hydra,  and  its 
sister  island  Spezzia,  had  made  such  frequent  sacrifices  in 
this  way,  that  they  were  no  longer  able  to  continue  them, 
and  it  is  probable  that  the  arrival  of  the  money  at  Zante  may 
have  rendered  them  somewhat  less  inclined  to  do  so.  Thus 
it  was,  that  although  fifty  ships  were  ready  for  sea  soon  after 
my  arrival  in  the  Ionian  Islands,  the  necessary  funds 
could  not  be  procured  to  meet  the  demands  of  their  crews. — 
No  sooner,  however,  had  the  catastrophe  of  Ipsara  been 
made  known,  than  the  whole  population  of  Hydra  assembled 
at  the  port,  and  proceeding  in  a  body  to  the  convent  where 
the  local  government  meets,  vehemently  insisted  on  the  pri- 
mates, and  other  rich  men  of  the  island,  coming  forward,  and 
that,  by  way  of  example,  they  had  already  made  a  beginning 
among  themselves.  This  appeal  was  irresistible,  the  funds 
were  instantly  forthcoming  ;  and  from  this  moment  up  to  the 
period  of  my  quitting  Napoli  di  Romania,  the  Greek  seamen 
appear  to  have  been  animated  by  a  degree  of  energy  and 
spirit  altogether  unknown  during  any  previous  year  of  the 
war. 

Having  stated  the  object  of  our  visit  to  the  government,  and 
received  its  thanks  for  the  interest  we  took  in  the  Greek 
cause,  Lord  Charles*  and  myself  returned  to  the  apart- 
ments which  had  been  kindly  prepared  for  us  by  M.  Coletti. 

*  Lord  Charles  Murray,  a  young  English  nobleman  accompanied 
Mr .  Blaquiere  on  this  occasion. 

26* 


298  HISTORY  OF  THE 

The  first  object  of  our  solicitude  was  to  ascertain  all  the 
particulars  we  could  of  the  attack  of  Ipsara.  As  these  I  am 
about  to  relate,  were  communicated  by  deputies,  who  had 
witnessed  the  event,  they  are  probably  the  most  authentic 
yet  recorded  relative  to  that  direful  tragedy. 

It  having  been  fully  proved  by  the  experience  of  the  pre- 
ceding campaigns,  that  nothing  but  the  destruction  of 
the  naval  power  of  Greece  could  ever  enable  the  Porte 
to  regain  any  part  of  its  former  ascendency,  the  whole 
of  its  attention  was  directed  to  this  point,  so  that,  as  stated 
in  the  letters  I  received  from  Prince  Mavrocordato  while  at 
Zante,  an  attack  on  the  naval  islands  was  to  form  the  prima- 
ry object  of  the  campaign  *  For  this  purpose,  a  large  na- 
val and  military  force  had  begun  to  collect  at  Mytilene 
early  in  April.  Owing,  however,  to  the  slowness  of  their 
operations,  the  Turkish  armament  did  not  complete  its  pre- 
parations before  the  latter  end  of  May.  The  activity  and 
boldness  displayed  by  the  Ipsariots  during  the  contest,  no 
less  then  their  vicinity  to  the  Dardanelles,  made  them  singu- 
larly obnoxious  to  the  Porte  ;  nor  would  it  have  been  pru- 
dent to  leave  such  a  formidable  source  of  annoyance  in  the 
rear  during  the  projected  naval  campaign.  It  was  therefore 
determined  that  this  island  should  be  the  first  point  of  at- 
tack. Of  all  the  naval  islands,  the  military  organization  of 
Ipsara  made  it  least  vulnerable  to  the  enemy.  Besides  the 
whole  male  population  capable  of  bearing  arms,  amounting 
to  nearly  two  thousand  five  hundred  men,  there  was  a  corps 
of  Albanian  Greeks,  and  about  fifteen  hundred  of  the  fugi- 
tives from  Scio,  formed  into  companies.  Batteries  had 
been  constructed  on  every  point  of  the  island  at  which  a 
landing  was  thought  possible,  and  as  very  early  information 
reached  the  local  authorities,  of  the  intended  attack,  every 
means  within  theijLreach  were  adopted  to  repel  the  assail- 


*  Previous  to  the  grand  attack  on  Ipsara,  a  smaller  armament  had 
been  sent  against  those  islands  which,  without  being  formidable,  had 
been  distinguished  for  their  hostility  to  the  Ottomans.  At  Scopolo, 
near  the  Gulph  of  Volos,  the  enemy  was  repulsed  with  great  loss,  and 
after  several  attempts  to  land.  The  infidels  were,  however,  more  fortu- 
nate at  Cassos,  a  small  island  near  the  east  end  of  Candia,  which,  like 
Ipsara,  had  acquired  considerable  wealth  by  the  enterprising  industry 
of  its  inhabitants.  Here  the  Turks  succeeded  in  effecting  a  landing  ; 
and  though  subsequently  forced  to  retreat,  they  were  enabled  to  carry 
off  a  large  quantity  of  booty,  and  destroy  several  of  the  vessels  which  lay 
in  the^iarhour. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  299 

aftts.  The  whole  of  the  ships  being  recalled,  their  rudders 
were  taken  away,  and  a  few  Sciots  placed  on  board  to  take 
care  of  them,  in  order  that  the  seamen  might  be  able  to  de- 
vote their  exclusive  energies  to  the  defence  of  their  native 
island.  Besides  the  batteries,  which  were  provided  with 
ammunition  and  well  manned,  Cotta,  a  chief  of  Olympus, 
was  posted  at  the  most  accessible  point,  though  one  at  which 
it  was  not  expected  that  any  attempt  would  be  made  to 
land. 

Aware  that  nothing  but  an  overwhelming  force  could 
make  any  impression  on  the  island,  the  Capitan  Pacha's 
preparations  were  of  the  most  formidable  description.  The 
Turkish  fleet  was  descried  from  the  heights  on  the  1st  of 
June,  in  the  forenoon  :  on  approaching  somewhat  nearer,  it 
was  found  to  consist  of  two  ships  of  the  line,  eight  frigates, 
four  corvettes,  forty  brigs,  and  nearly  200  smaller  vessels  fit- 
ted up  as  gun  boats,  and  with  mortars,  a  species  of  force 
which  the  enemy  are  said  to  have  adopted  at  the  suggestion 
of  some  of  their  friends  comprising  the  foreign  legations  at 
Constantinople. 

The  whole  of  the  ships  and  vessels  were  filled  with 
troops,  and  it  had  indeed  been  communicated  by  a  Greek 
resident  at  Mytilene,  that  not  less  than  24,000  picked  men 
were  embarked  in  the  expedition. 

The  firing  from  the  enemy  commenced  on  the  northern 
side  of  the  island,  at  four  in  the  afternoon,  and  was  returned 
with  considerable  effect  from  the  batteries  ;  it  ceased  on  the 
part  of  the  Turks  about  eight  o'clock,  after  which  they 
seemed  to  be  retiring ;  this  did  not,  however,  prevent  the 
islanders  from  taking  every  precaution,  and  increasing  the 
means  of  defence  ;  the  posts  were  visited,  and  all  the  lead- 
ers enjoined  to  be  vigilant.  It  was  while  the  inhabitants, 
placed  for  the  defence  of  the  town,  fancied  the  enemy  had 
in  reality  withdrawm,  that  numbers  of  the  troops  stationed 
in  the  remote  points,  came  rushing  in,  early  the  following 
morning,  and  stated,  that  owing  to  the  treachery  of  Cotta, 
the  Turks  had  effected  a  landing  in  the  night,  and  having  di- 
vided into  three  columns,  one  of  these  was  at  that  moment 
approaching  the  town.  It  appeared,  on  further  inquiry, 
that  the  enemy  contrived  to  disembark  wTith  such  silence, 
that  a  large  body  of  troops  posted  on  a  height  not  far  from 
the  spot,  knew  nothing  of  the  circumstance  until  day-light,. 
When,  to  their  utter  astonishment,  they  beheld  the  Turks 
cfrawn  tip    in  great  numbers  on  (be   neighbouring   hills. 


300  HISTORY  OF  THE 

While  one  of  the  divisions  marched  towards  the  town,  the 
other  two  advanced  to  attack  the  batteries,  and  from  taking 
them  in  the  rear,  they  found  very  little  difficulty  in  carrying 
them,  and  putting  the  Greeks  to  the  sword.  Those  destined 
to  attack  the  town  did  not  reach  it  before  noon  ;  on  enter- 
ing, they  began  to  cut  down  all  who  came  in  their  way,  so 
that  neither  men,  women,  or  children  were  spared  at  the 
first  onset.  There  has  been  no  exaggeration  in  the  state- 
ment, that  numbers  of  the  Ipsariot  mothers,  rather  than  fall 
into  the  hands  of  the  barbarians,  rushed  to  the  nearest 
rocks,  and  dashing  their  infants  into  the  surge  below,  plunged 
after  them,  and  thus  ended  their  own  sufferings,  as  well  as 
those  of  their  offspring.* 

After  a  contest  of  some  hours,  in  which  the  Ipsariots,  see- 
ing their  wives  and  children  perishing  without  any  hope  of 
saving  them,  they  at  length  determined  to  try  and  gain  their 
ships.  Accordingly,  a  part  of  the  inhabitants  rushed  to- 
wards the  port,  while  the  rest,  together  with  a  body  of  500 
Albanians,  shut  themselves  up  in  fort  St.  Nicholas,  which 
formed  the  principal  defence  of  the  town.  What  was  the 
surprise  and  horror  of  the  former,  on  perceiving  that  those 
who  were  left  in  charge  of  the  ships,  panic-struck  by  what 
they  saw  passing  on  shore,  had  cut  the  cables  and  suffered 
the  vessels  to  drift  before  the  wind  out  to  sea,  without  sails 
or  rudders.  It  may  be  readily  imagined  how  much  this  ad- 
ded to  the  confusion.  There  was  not,  however,  a  moment 
to  be  lost,  and  as  it  was  out  of  the  question  to  attempt  saving 
all  the  fugitives,  those  who  succeeded  in  reaching  the  port, 
rushed  into  the  first  boats  they  could  find,  while  hun- 
dreds of  the  women  and  children  were  seen  stretching  out 
their  hands,  vainly  calling  upon  their  husbands  and  fathers 
for  succour.  Many  plunged  into  the  waves  and  were  drown- 
ed in  attempting  to  reach  the  boats  as  they  left  the  harbour. 
As  a  portion  of  the  enemy's  fleet  were  outside,  it  intercept- 
ed and  took  several  of  the  vessels  which  had  no  means  of 
getting  away.  There  were,  however,  several  instances  in 
which  the  Greeks  determined  rather  to  perish  even  after 
they  had  effected  their  escape  from  the  Island,  than  surren- 
der to  the  Turks.     The  captain  of  a  brig  which  came  to 

•  Among  the  many  proofs  of  heroism  displayed  by  the  women,  my 
Informants  related  that  one,  who  had  been  married  only  a  few  months, 
seeing  her  husband  engaged  with  two  or  three  Turkish  soldiers,  rushed 
fn  between  them,  and  fell  with  the  object  of  her  affections,  covered 
with  wounds. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  301 

Napoli  di  Romania  a  few  days  after  our  arrival,  had  laid  a 
train  for  blowing  her  up,  and  when  approached  by  the  Capi- 
tan  Pacha's  ship  and  two  frigates,  he  actually  set  fire  to  it. 
On  seeing  the  fire  ascend,  and  part  of  the  vessel's  rigging 
in  a  blaze,  the  Turkish  ships  retreated  in  all  haste,  thus  ena- 
bling the  Greeks  to  extinguish  the  fire  and  make  their  es- 
cape. Another  vessel,  having  only  five  men  on  board,  hailed 
two  of  the-  enemy's  frigates,  which  came  up  with  an  evident 
intention  to  board,  and  vociferated,  that  if  they  came  a  yard 
nearer,  they  would  set  fire  to  the  powder  magazine :  this 
menace  had  the  desired  effect,  and  they  were  allowed  to  pro- 
ceed. 

While  this  scene  was  passing  at  the  fort,  another  still 
more  harrowing  was  preparing  in  fort  St.  Nicholas.  Those 
who  took  refuge  there  were  pursued  by  a  part  of  the  Turks, 
while  the  remainder  were  occupied  in  cutting  down  the  in- 
habitants who  fled  towards  the  ships,  and  in  plundering  the 
houses.  On  entering  the  fort,  the  Greeks  had  barricaded  the 
gates,  and  commenced  a  fire  on  the  infidels,  which  obliged 
them  to  retreat  with  the  loss  of  half  their  number. 

After  having  satiated  themselves  with  the  blood  of  more 
than  two  thousand  victims,  night  came  on,  and  suspended 
the  carnage.  The  Turks,  who  had  been  sent  to  attack  the 
coast  batteries,  and  two  of  which  were  blown  up  by  the 
Greeks  rather  than  surrender,  having  concentrated  them- 
selves in  the  town,  the  Capitan  Pacha  sent  a  peremptory  or- 
der on  shore,  that  the  whole  of  the  troops  should  be  employ- 
ed in  reducing  fort  St.  Nicholas.  Accordingly  they  advan- 
ced while  it  was  yet  dark,  preparatory  to  a  general  assault. 
The  attack  commenced  at  day-break,  and  gave  rise  to  prodi- 
gies of  valour  on  the  part  of  the  Christians.  Perceiving, 
however,  that  it  was  in  vain  to  contend  against  such  num- 
bers, they  formed  the  desperate  and  heroic  resolution  of  bu- 
rying themselves  in  the  ruins  of  the  fort.  Pursuant  to  this 
determination,  those  who  remained  placed  themselves  close 
to  the  gate,  having  previously  ranged  the  women  and  children 
in  the  rear  ;  a  soldier  being  placed  at  the  powder  magazine 
with  a  lighted  match,  the  gates  were  thrown  open,  upon 
which  about  two  thousand  of  the  enemy  rushed  in  ;  when 
the  fort  was  so  full  that  not  a  man  more  could  enter,  the 
signal  was  given,  and  in  another  instant  every  soul  within 
its  walls  were  buried  in  the  ruins,  or  blown  into  the  air  by 
the  explosion. 


3Q2  HISTORY  OP  THE 

Such  was  the  fate  of  Ipsara,  which  may  be  fairly  attributed 
to  the  delay  in  the  sailing  of  the  fleet ;  for  had  it  been  possi- 
ble to  effect  this  in  time,  there  is  no  doubt  whatever  but  the 
enemy  would  have  abandoned  his  project,  or  been  foiled  in 
the  attempt.  How  prophetically  Prince  Mavrocordato  an- 
ticipated some  such  disaster,  will  be  seen  from  the  extracts 
of  his  letters  to  myself  while  at  Zante. 

The  loss  sustained  on  this  occasion  was  immense  and  irre- 
parable. Upon  a  moderate  computation,  four  thousand 
Christians,  of  every  age  and  sex,  perished.  When  to  this  is 
added  the  loss  of  all  property,  personal  and  public,  and  about 
a  hundred  vessels  of  different  sizes,  some  notion  may  be 
formed  of  the  catastrophe  of  Ipsara.  During  the  first  mo- 
ments of  dismay,  the  fugitives  sought  shelter  in  any  of  the 
neighbouring  islands  they  could  reach,  but  it  was  afterwards 
thought  advisable  to  establish  themselves  at  Napoli  di  Mal- 
Vasia,  on  the  coast  of  Maina,  until  the  period  arrived  either 
for  their  returning  to  the  place  of  ^heir  birth,  or  being  settled 
in  some  other  point  of  the  confederation. 

A  fever  with  which  I  was  attacked  on  the  day  after  my 
arrival  at  the  seat  of  government,  having  confined  me  to  my 
bed  for  nearly  a  fortnight,  I  was  prevented  from  following  the 
progress  of  events  so  exactly  as  I  could  wish.  When  ena- 
bled to  return  to  the  consideration  of  passing  events,  I  un- 
derstood that  the  division  of  the  fleet,  which  sailed  from  Hy- 
dra under  the  brave  Miaulis,  on  the  4th  of  July,  could  not, 
owing  to  contrary  winds,  approach  Ipsara  before  the  8th. 
Impelled  by  a  spirit  of  vengeance,  hitherto  unknown  to  them, 
the  Greek  seamen  eagerly  rushed  into  the  boats,  and  landed 
while  the  fleet  hovered  off  the  port  to  intercept  all  the  ene- 
my's vessels  that  should  attempt  to  escape.  The  only  object 
©f  the  Turks  being  that  of  removing  every  possibility  of 
Ipsara  ever  holding  up  its  head  again,  they  were  busily  em- 
ployed in  taking  away  the  cannon  and  plundering  property, 
of  which  a  considerable  portion,  together  with  the  women 
and  children  they  had  reserved  for  slavery,  had  been  already 
sent  to  Scio  and  Mytilene.  On  hearing  that  the  Greeks 
bad  landed,  the  Turks  immediately  rushed  towards  the  port, 
and  put  to  sea.  They  were  pursued  by  the  fleet,  and  num- 
bers either  run  down  or  captured.*     Those  who  could  not 

*  It  was  known  that  there  was  a  great  number  of  Italian  and 
Maltese  seamen  serving  on  board  the  Turkish  fleet  and  flotilla  ',  of 
these,  not  more  than  foaxteen  fell  into  the  hands  of  the  Greeks.    I 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  303 

get  out  of  the  harbour,  were  taken  possession  of,  and  con- 
ducted with  the  spoils  that  had  been  embarked,  to  Hydra  and 
Spezzia.  The  most  horrid  spectacle  that  can  be  imagined 
presented  itself  to  the  Greeks  who  landed  ;  they  found  the 
town  still  smoking,  and  the  streets  full  of  dead  bodies,  of 
both  sexes  and  all  ages.  The  putrefaction  which  had  al- 
ready commenced,  rendered  it  impossible  for  either  party  to 
remain,  so  that  they  were  forced  to  retire,  leaving  the  island 
completely  deserted,  except  by  a  single  detachment  of  the 
enemy,  who  had  shut  themselves  up  in  one  of  the  few  houses' 
that  remained  standing,  and  whom  the  Greeks  could  not  at- 
tack, in  consequence  of  their  having  a  number  of  women  and 
children  in  their  possession. 

As  a  compensation  for  the  disasters  which  attended  the 
commencement  of  the  naval  campaign,  many  of  the  patriots 
assured  me,  that  however  calamitous  they  might  be  regarded* 
more  particularly  that  of  Ipsara,  something  of  the  kind  had 
become  necessary  to  rouse  the  people  from  an  apathy  into 
which  their  previous  successes  had  thrown  them.  Be  this 
as  it  may,  there  is  no  doubt  that  although  the  consternation 
caused  by  the  news  from  Ipsara,  became  very  general,  and 
continued  for  a  considerable  time,  the  event  had  really  the 
effect  of  stimulating  all  the  energies  of  the  nation,  and  in* 
spiring  a  spirit  of  vengeance,  which  is  not  only  excusable 
but  salutary,  when  a  people  are  struggling  for  existence.* 

The  triumph  of  the  Turks,  however,  was  of  short  dura- 
tion. No  sooner  had  tidings  of  this  catastrophe  reached 
Hydra,  than  the  Greek  fleet,  commanded  by  Miaulis,  which, 
had  been  lying  there  in  inaction,  for  want  of  funds  for  the 
payment  of  the  sailors,  animated  with  a  desire  of  vengeance* 
immediately  set  sail  for  Ipsara.  The  Turkish  admiral  had 
withdrawn  his  armament  before  they  could  reach  the  island, 
leaving  nothing  but  about  twenty  galleys  in  the  harbour, 
and  a  garrison  of  1,500  men.  Of  these,  only  between  2 
and  300  escaped.  Seven  of  the  galleys  succeeded  in  eluding 
pursuit  ;  the  remainder  were  taken  or  destroyed.  The 
Greeks  then  brought  away  the  cannon  left  in  the  fortresses^ 
together  with  some  Ipsariot  fugitives  who  had  concealed 
themselves  in  the  hills  ;  and  the  island  has  ever  since  re- 
need  hardly  say  they  did  not  escape  the  indignation  of  the  Chris- 
tians ;  indeed,  many  of  the  Greek  sailors  who  were  in  the  action,  as- 
sured me  they  felt  infinitely  more  enraged  against  the  Franks  than  the 
Turks. 

*  Blaqnier's  Second  Visit,  p.  75— &6. 


304  HISTORY  OF  THE 

mained  desolate.  AH  its  citizens  who  have  escaped  slaugh* 
ter  or  slavery,  have  been  indebted  for  an  asylum  to  the  hos- 
pitality of  their  countrymen.  The  greater  part  established 
themselves  at  Napoli  di  Malvasia,  on  the  coast  of  Maina. 

The  next  attempt  of  the  Capitan  Pacha  was  upon  Samos. 
For  this  purpose,  a  large  body  of  Asiatic  troops  was  collect- 
ed at  Scala  Nova.  The  Samians,  aware  of  the  enemy's  de- 
signs, sent  their  families  to  the  mountains,  and  prepared  to 
defend  the  passes,  in  case  the  Turks  should  effect  a  landing, 
while  a  division  of  the  Greek  fleet,  under  George  Sakturi  of 
Hydra,  disputed  the  passage  of  the  straits.  On  the  17th  of 
August,  in  a  fourth  attempt  of  the  Turkish  fleet  to  run 
across,  the  brave  Ipsariot,  Canaris,  attached  his  fire-vessel 
to  a  forty-gun  frigate  under  sail  ;  the  fire  very  speedily 
reaching  the  magazine,  the  greater  part  of  those  on  board 
were  destroyed,  as  well  as  several  transports  to  which  the 
fire  communicated.  At  the  same  time,  other  fireships  burned 
a  Tunisine  brig  of  war  and  a  large  Tripolitan  corvette.  On 
the  21st  of  August,  another  fleet  of  transports,  employed  in 
conveying  troops  to  the  northern  side  of  Samos,  were  inter- 
cepted and  dispersed,  a  part  being  taken  and  destroyed. 
On  the  following  day  the  Turkish  fleet  again  attempted  the 
passage  from  Cape  Trogilium  to  the  opposite  shore  ;  but 
such  was  now  the  dread  inspired  by  the  Greek  fire-ships,  that 
the  approach  of  only  two  or  three  of  them  was  sufficient  to 
drive  back  the  Ottoman  men  of  war  to  the  Asiatic  coast.  The 
troops  assembled  on  the  shore  of  Mycale,  in  readiness  to 
embark,  on  witnessing  this  last  disgrace  of  their  navy,  re- 
turned to  their  camp  at  Scala  Nova  ;  and  it  was  not  long 
before  the  greater  part  of  the  land  forces  which  had  been  col- 
lected there,  dispersed  and  withdrew  into  the  interior. 

"  The  Capitan  Pacha,  feeling  the  necessity  of  giving  up 
the  attempt  upon  Samos  for  the  present,  proceeded  to  effect 
a  junction  with  the  Egyptian  expedition  at  Cos  and  Halicar- 
nassus.  Sakturi  in  like  manner  united  his  force  with  that  of 
the  naval  chief  Miaulis,  at  Patmos,  after  which  the  Greeks 
proceeded  to  observe  the  Mussulman  armament.  On  the 
5th  of  September,  a  small  division  of  Greek  vessels  with 
two  fire-ships  approached  the  Turkish  fleet,  when  the  latter 
got  under  weigh  ;  the  Greek  fleet  then  joined  their  comrades, 
and  an  action  taking  place,  the  Turks  lost  some  men,  and 
two  fire-ships  of  their  opponents  exploded  without  having 
done  any  damage  to  the  enemy.  The  Greeks  then  retired 
to   Panormus,  (the  port  of  the  ancient  Branchidae,  in  the 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  305 

district  of  Miletus,)  now  called  le'ronda.  It  was  the  object  of 
the  Capitan  Pacha  to  return  with  the  united  fleet  to  Samos, 
On  the  8th  and  9th  of  September,  the  Turkish  vessels  at- 
tempted in  vain  to  effect  a  passage  through  the  channel  be- 
tween Calymna  and  the  coast  of  Caria,  the  wind  not  being 
favourable,  and  the  Greeks  advancing  to  meet  them.  On 
the  10th,  they  were  still  more  unfortunate.  Early  in  the 
morning,  they  had  advanced  with  a  favourable  breeze  against 
the  enemy,  who  was  becalmed  near  Calymna  ;  and  the  near- 
est of  the  Greek  vessels,  exposed  to  the  heavy  fire  of  the 
Turkish  ships,  were  in  danger  of  being  destroyed,  or  at  least 
of  being  cut  off  from  the  rest  of  the  fleet,  when  a  breeze 
arising,  the  Greek  ships  were  enabled  to  act  more  in  concert. 
Such  a  desultory  combat  as  the  great  inferiority  of  the  Greek 
vessels  will  alone  admit  off,  was  kept  up  until  the  middle 
of  the  day,  when  two  fire-ships  were  attached  to  a  large 
Egyptian  brig  of  war,  and  not  long  afterwards,  two  others  to 
the  frigate  which  commanded  the  Tunisine  division.  So 
confounded  were  the  Turks  with  the  boldness  and  the  skill  of 
their  opponents,  in  thus  attacking  them  with  their  small  ves- 
sels, in  the  open  sea  and  under  sail,  that  not  even  the  Greek 
ships  accompanying  the  incendiary  vessels  suffered  much 
from  the  Turkish  fire.  The  Ottoman  fleet  returned  in  con- 
fusion to  the  anchorage  near  Budrum,  (Halicarnassus,)  and 
the  burning  ships,  drifting  ashore,  were  entirely  consumed. — 
Many  of  the  seamen  were  drowned  or  slain  in  endeavouring 
to  escape  from  the  flames,  but  the  Tunisine  commander  was 
taken,  and  remained  a  prisoner  with  the  Greeks. 

"  After  this  defeat,  the  principal  object  of  the  Capitan  Pa- 
cha seems  to  have  been,  that  of  effecting  a  safe  retreat  to  the 
!  )ardanelles.  Some  ships  of  war  having  been  left  for  the 
protection  of  the  transports  which  had  been  sent  to  the  up- 
per part  of  the  Gulf  of  Cos,  to  land  the  Egyptian  troops,  the 
remainder,  as  soon  as  the  calms  (which  usually  prevail  for 
some  weeks  after  the  cessation  of  the  Etesian  winds)  had 
given  place  to  the  equinoctial  gales,  took  advantage  of  a 
southerly  breeze,  and  after  meeting  with  some  interruption 
and  loss  near  Icaria,  reached  Mytilene. 

"  On  the  7th  of  October,  the  Turkish  admiral,  having  left 
Ibrahim  Pacha  in  the  command  of  the  naval  forces,  re-enter- 
ed the  Dardanelles.  About  the  middle  of  the  same  month, 
Ibrahim,  after  some  unsuccessful  encounters  with  the  Greeks 
near  Chios  and  Mytilene,  returned  to  the  Egyptian  arma- 
ment in  the  Gulf  of  Cos  ;  and  in  the  month  of  November  his 

27 


306  HISTORY  OF  THE 

ships  sustained  considerable  damage  from  the  enemy  on  the 
northern  coast  of  Candia."* 

In  Western  Greece,  military  operations  were  almost  sus- 
pended during  the  whole  year.  Mavrocordato,  indeed,  took 
post  at  the  head  of  about  3000  men,  on  the  heights  of  Lugo- 
vitza,  near  the  western  bank  of  the  Achelous,  where  they  re- 
mained for  three  months ;  while  Omer  Pacha  remained  at 
Kervasara  at  the  south-eastern  extremity  of  the  Ambracic 
Gulf;  but  neither  party  was  able  or  disposed  to  bring  his 
troops  to  act.f 

In  Eastern  Greece,  an  attempt  was  made  by  the  Seraskier, 
Dervish  Pacha,  to  penetrate  from  Thessaly  to  the  Corinthi- 
an Gulf,  by  the  route  which  leads  from  Zeitouni  to  Salona. 
In  the  month  of  July,  he  succeeded  in  passing  through  the 
defiles  ;  but  at  Ampliani,  about  eight  miles  from  Salona,  he 
was  attacked  and  defeated  by  the  Greeks  under  Panouria  ; 
and  after  suffering  some  further  loss  in  his  retreat,  he  resu- 
med his  positions  in  Doris  and  Thessaly,  without  having  effect- 
ed the  smallest  advantage.  J  In  concert  with  this  operation, 
an  attempt  to  recover  Athens  was  made  by  Omer  Pacha  of 
Egripo  ;  but  he  was  met  at  Marathon  in  the  middle  of  July 
by  the  Greeks  under  Goura,  from  whom  he  received  such  a 
check  as,  combined  with  the  ill  success  of  the  Seraskier's  ex- 
pedition, sufficed  to  confine  him  to  Bosotia,  and  he  ultimately 
withdrew  behind  the  walls  of  Egripo. 

In  the  Morea  an  attack  was  made,  in  the  early  part  of  the 
year,  on  Modon  ;  but  this  with  occasional  skirmishes  with  the 
garrison  of  Patras,  comprised  the  whole  exertions  on  either 
side.  Coron  and  Lepanto  remained  in  the  undisturbed  pos- 
session of  the  Turks. 

Upon  the  whole,  the  campaign  of  1824  was  one  of  the  most 
inglorious  and  unprofitable  to  the  Ottomans  of  any  that  had 
hitherto  taken  place,  and  at  no  period  had  the  prospects  of 
the  Greeks  assumed  a  brighter  appearance,  than  towards  the 


*  Leake's  Outline,  pp.  152 — 155. 

t  A  detachment  of  cavalry  surprised  the  town  of  Vrachova,  and  took 
or  killed  about  300  of  the  inhabitants.  The  town,  however,  had  been 
before  nearly  destroyed,  and  with  this  exploit  Omer  Vrioni  was  satis- 
fied.— Humphreys,  p.  264. 

J  Captain  Humphreys  states,  that  the  Turks  on  this  occasion  lost 
about  200  men ;  the  Greeks  four  or  five.  "  This  was  the  most  im- 
portant engagement  that  took  place  by  land  during  the  whole  cam- 
paign, and  constituted  the  operations  of  the  Turkish  army  of  above 
20,000  men,  opposed  to  4000."— Humphreys,  p.  368. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  307 

close  of  this  year.  The  arrival  of  the  loan  and  the  submis- 
sion of  the  military  party  had  given  new  strength  and  ap- 
parent stability  to  the  civil  government;  while,  as  to  the  most 
important  of  all  its  foreign  relations,  the  Ionian  Government, 
with  whom  there  had  arisen  a  serious  misunderstanding,  was 
now  on  terms  of  friendly  neutrality,  and  the  Lord  High  Com- 
missioner had  actually  deigned  to  set  his  foot  in  Greece.* — 
But  unhappily,  the  renewal  of  those  dissensions  in  the  Mo- 
rea,  which  it  was  fondly  hoped  that  the  loan  would  heal,  or 
enable  the  Government  to  terminate,  not  only  prevented  the 
prosecution  of  the  winter  campaign,  but  placed  the  cause  in 
the  greatest  jeopardy. 

During  the  winter,  these  differences  rose  to  an  alarming 
height.  Several  instances  of  partiality  shown  by  the  Go- 
vernment to  the  Roumeliots,  had  tended  to  irritate  the  More- 
ote  chieftains,  who  were  moreover  jealous  of  not  sharing  in 
the  increasing  power  of  the  Government.  At  length,  as  lit- 
tle conciliation  was  employed,  the  dispute  produced  an  in- 
surrection on  the  part  of  the  Moreotes,  at  the  head  of  which 
was  Colocotroni  and  his  sons,  Niketas,  his  nephew,  Demetri- 

*  u  An  order  had  been  issued  by  the  British  Government,  towards 
the  close  of  1822,  directing  its  officers  in  the  Mediterranean  to  respect 
the  right  of  the  Greeks  to  blockade  such  ports  of  Greece  as  remained  in 
possession  of  the  Turks.  This  was  a  most  important  point  gained,  be- 
ing a  first  step  toward  the  recognition  of  their  Independence.  It  was, 
however,  notorious,  that  among  the  transports  hired  at  Alexandria  and 
Constantinople,  a  great  number  were  under  the  English  and  the  Aus- 
trian flags.  Irritated  at  these  proceedings,  and  alarmed  at  the  formi- 
dable preparations  which  were  being  made  in  both  Turkey  and  Egypt, 
the  executive  council  issued  on  the  8th  of  June,  1824,  from  Lerna,  an 
edict  authorizing  their  cruizers  to  attack,  burn,  and  sink,  all  European 
vessels  which  they  should  find  so  employed.  This  infraction  of  inter- 
national law,  immediately  called  forth  strong  remonstrances  from  Sir 
Frederick  Adam ;  but  these  not  being  attended  to,  on  the  6th  of  Sep- 
tember, he  issued  a  proclamation,  notifying,  that  till  the  Greek  mani- 
festo should  be  fully  and  authentically  recalled,  the  British  Admiral  in 
the  Mediterranean  had  been  directed  to  seize  and  detain  all  armed  ves- 
sels acknowledging  the  authority  of  the  Provisional  Government  oi 
Greece.  On  the  27th  of  August,  the  Government  had  already  revoked 
their  edict  so  far  as  regarded  all  neutral  ships  that  had  not  Turkish 
troops  on  board;  but  this  not  being  satisfactory,  Sir  Frederick  Adam, 
two  days  after  the  issuing  of  his  proclamation,  embarked  for  Napoli, 
where  he  was  received  with  the  highest  honours,  and  all  differences 
were  immediately  adjusted  by  a  new  decree  limiting  the  order  to  neu- 
trals found  in  the  enemy's  fleet.  On  the  17th  of  November,  a  pro- 
clamation from  the  Ionian  Government  enjoined  all  vessels  bearing  the 
8eptin6ular  flag,  to  respect  the  blockade  of  the  Gulf  of  Corinth  main- 
tained bv  the  Greeks.'' — Modern  7'ravtller. 


308  HISTORY  OF  THE 

us  and  Nicolas  Deliyauni,  General  Sessini,  Andrea  Zaiini, 
Andrea  Londos,  and  Giovanni  and  Panagiola  Notapopuolo. 
The  Government  immediately  called  in  the  aid  of  the  Rou- 
meliots,  two  of  whom,  General  Izonga  and  Goura,  aided  by 
the  counsels  of  John  Coletti,  took  the  command  of  their  for- 
ces. The  Moreotes  carried  on  the  civil  war  with  considerable 
spirit  for  some  time,  and  proceeded  so  far  as  to  attempt  the 
capture  of  Napoli  di  Romania  ;  but  at  length,  after  some  de- 
lay and  bloodshed,  the  insurgents  were  dispersed,  and  the 
rebellion  was  pretty  well  quelled  by  the  end  of  December. 
The  evil  effects,  however,  of  this  civil  contest  were  long  felt, 
and  one  most  disastrous  consequence  was,  that  it  prevented 
the  reduction  of  Patras,  which  might  easily  have  been  taken 
during  the  winter.  Owing  to  the  delay  thus  occasioned,  it 
was  the  middle  of  January  before  a  few  vessels  sailed  up  the 
Gulf  of  Corinth,  and,  aided  by  some  land  forces,  recommen- 
ced the  blockade  ;  while  an  active  pursuit  was  set  on  foot 
after  the  fugitive  leaders  in  the  late  insurrection,  who  had 
taken  refuge  in  the  different  holds  of  the  Morea. 

In  the  meantime,  the  Porte  was  very  differently  occupied. 
The  Pacha  of  Egypt,  prompted  apparently  by  a  Mussulman 
feeling,  and  by  the  hope  at  least  of  adding  Candia  and  the 
Morea  to  his  dominions,  had  entered  cordially  into  the  war, 
and  his  wealth  enabled  him  to  take  upon  himself  the  chief  pe- 
cuniary burthen.  Unhappily  for  the  Greek  cause,  the  assist- 
ance of  the  Egyptian  troops  had  enabled  the  Turks  in  Can- 
dia to  produce  a  temporary  suppression  of  the  insurrection  in 
that  important  island  ;  and  the  great  facility  of  communica- 
tion which  was  thus  established  between  Egypt  and  the  Mo- 
rea, enabled  Ibrahim  Pacha,  the  step-son  and  lieutenant  of 
Mahommed  Ali,  to  begin  the  campaign  of  1825  without  wait- 
ing for  the  return  of  spring.  His  fleet  having  wintered  at 
Suda  in  Candia,  set  sail  on  the  23d  of  December  for  Rhodes, 
where  he  took  on  board  5000  disciplined  troops  :  with  these 
he  returned  to  Candia,  to  complete  his  armament,  which  de- 
tained him  till  the  middle  of  February.  At  the  same  time, 
transports  were  being  fitted  out  at  Constantinople,  for  the 
purpose  of  relieving  Modon  and  Patras.  Omer  Vrioni  had 
been  removed  to  Salonica,  and  the  pashaliks  of  Ioannina  and 
Delvino  had  been  bestowed  on  the  Roumeli  Valisee,  to  which 
was  to  be  added  Karl-ili,  in  the  event  of  his  subduing  it.  He 
immediately  began  to  form  his  camp  at  Larissa,  intending, 
when  his  arrangements  should  be  complete,  to  pass  over  to 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  309 

his  new  pachalik,  and  with  reinforcements  levied  in  his  pro- 
gress, to  descend  on  Missolonghi. 

Affairs  however  wore  a  favourable  aspect  in  Greece  up  to 
the  commencement  of  February.  The  last  remnant  of  the 
rebellion  had  been  quelled.  A  few  of  the  leaders  had  taken 
refuge  in  Kafamos,an  island  appropriated  by  the  Ionian  Go- 
vernment to  the  reception  of  Grecian  fugitives.  The  remain- 
der has  surrendered  to  the  Government,  and  it  having  been 
determined  to  remove  them  to  Hydra,  the  same  vessel  which 
brought  Conduriotti  from  that  island  to  resume  his  functions 
at  Napoli  as  President  of  -the  Executive,  returned  with  the 
chiefs  of  the  rebellion  on  board.  On  the  17th  of  December, 
Colocotroni  and  his  companions  embarked,  and  in  a  few  days 
were  landed  at  the  place  of  their  destination — the  monastery 
of  St  Nicholas,  on  the  craggy  summit  of  one  of  the  wildest 
hills  of  Hydra.* 


CHAP.  XXL 

Beginning  of  the  fifth  Campaign. — Fair  prospects  for 
Greece. — Preparations  of  the  Enemy. — Egyptian  squa- 
dron anchors  off  J\lodon. — Ibrahim  Pacha  receives  a  rein- 
forcement from  Candia,  and  places  his  Camp  before  Nava- 
rino. — Assault  on  the   Town. — Attack   and  defeat  of  the 

,  Greeks. — Taking  of  the  Island  of  Sphacteria,  and  death 
of  Santa  Rosa. — Capitulation  of  Old  JYavarino. — De- 
struction of  25  of  the  Enemy's  Vessels  at  Modon. — More- 
otes  demand  the  liberation  of  Colocotroni ;  his  liberation. — 
He  assembles  8,000  Troops  at  Tripolizza. — Destruction  of 
the  Turkish  Ships  at  Cavo  Doro. — Siege  of  Missolonghi 
by  the  Enemy. — Disasters  in  the  Morea. — Tripolizza 
bmrned. — Pappa  Flessa. — Success  of  the  Greeks  near  Ar- 
gos. — Distress  and  perplexity  at  JYapoli  di  Romania. — 
General  Rouche  and  De  Rigvy,  their  proposition  to  place 
the  Duke  of  Orleans  on  the  Throne  of  Greece. — Proposition 
of  Russia  to  form  Greece  into  Principalities. — Death  and 
character  of  Ulysses. — Rage  and  disappointment  of  Ibra- 
him Pacha. — End  of  the  Campaign  of  1825. 

1825.  The  situation   of  Greece  at  the  end  of  1824,  and 
at  the    commencement    of    1825,   was  such  as  to    leave 

*  Modern  Traveller,  Part  II.  p.  208—215 

27* 


310  HISTORY  OF  THE 

grounds  for  the  highest  expectation  from  the  result  of  the 
ensuing  campaign.  Mr.  Emerson,  who  was  on  the  spot, 
writes  as  follows  on  the  prospect  of  that  period  : 

"  The  prospects  of  this  moment  were,"  says  he,  "  perhaps, 
the  most  brilliant  since  the  commencement  of  the  revolution. 
The  liberators  were   now  in  full  possession  of  the  Morea, 
with  the  exception  of  Patras,  and  the  unimportant  fortresses 
of  Modon  and  Coron.     Almost  all  Western   Greece  was  in 
the  hands  of  the  Government.     The  country  was  just  freed 
from  a  rebellion,  which  had  exposed  the  principles  of  three 
of  the  chieftains  who  were  disaffected,  and  enabled  the  Go- 
vernment to  remove  them  from  their  councils  and  measures  ; 
a  fourth  portion  of  the  Loan  was  at  that  time  arrived,  and  a 
fifth  expected  :  whilst,  about  the  same  time,  a  second  Loan 
!iad  been  effected  in  England,  so  that  the  funds  of  the  Go- 
vernment were  now  replenished  with  ample  means  for  a  long 
campaign.     Thirty  ships  composed  the  blockading  squadron 
before  Patras,  aided  by  a  large  body  of  land  troops.     The 
garrison  within  was  already  reduced  to  straits  for  provision, 
as  appeared  by  some  letters  which  arrived  at  Zante  from  per- 
sons within  the  walls  ;  and  a  capitulation  was  expected  in  a 
very  short  time.     Constant  communications  being  maintain- 
ed between   Missolonghi  and  Larissa,   and  the    activity  of 
Koumeli  Valisi's  movements  being  ascertained,  it  was  deter- 
mined to  prepare  in  time  to  oppose   him  ;  and   for  this  pur- 
pose, Nota  Bozzaris,  together  with  Generals  Suka  and  Mi- 
lios,  set  forward  with  a  sufficient  body  of  troops  to   occupy 
the  pass  of  Macrinoro,  the  ancient  Olympus,  through  which 
it  was  necessary  he  should   pass.     Thus  prepared  at  every 
point,  the  spirits  of  the  soldiers  were  raised  to  the  highest 
pitch  of  enthusiasm  ;  and  it  seemed  that  Greece  wanted  but 
one  step  more  to  defeat  her  northern  invaders,   deliver  the 
Peloponnesus,  and  complete  the  work  of  freedom. 

"  It  was,  however,  towards  the  end  of  the  same  month, 
that  the  first  disastrous  stroke  occurred.  Frequent  letters 
from  Crete  had  informed  the  Government  of  the  return  of 
Ibrahim  Pacha  from  Rhodes,  and  of  the  vigour  with  which 
he  was  hastening  the  completion  of  his  preparations.  The 
progress  of  the  blockade  at  Patras  was  now  observed  with 
double  interest,  as  its  fall  was  daily  expected,  and  as  there 
was  no  other  probable  means  of  checking  the  armament  of 
the  Egyptians,  than  by  withdrawing  the  squadron  which  was 
cruising  before  the  fortress.  This,  being  a  desperate  re- 
source, was  of  course  deferred  to  the  last  moment :  till  at 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  311 

length,  advices  arrived  of  the  immediate  departure  of  the  ex- 
pedition from  Candia ;  further  delay  was  impossible ;  and 
just  at  a  moment  when  the  garrison  was  ripe  for  surrender, 
the  squadron  sailed,  unfortunately  too  late.  Such  was  the 
deficiency  of  communication  across  the  Morea,  that  almost 
on  the  same  day  that  the  fleet  sailed  from  Patras  (24th  Feb.) 
the  Egyptian  squadron  of  four  corvettes  and  numerous  brigs 
and  transports,  in  all  thirty  sail,  anchored  off  Modon,  and 
disembarked  6000  soldiers,  infantry  and  cavalry,  well  disci- 
plined, and  commanded  chiefly  by  European  officers.  The 
troops  immediately  encamped  around  Modon,  whilst  the 
ships  returned  without  delay  to  Suda  in  Candia.  A  few  days 
after,  Ibrahim  Pacha,  at  the  head  of  800  men,  advanced  to 
the  summit  of  the  range  of  hills  which  rise  at  the  back  of  Na- 
varino.  The  inhabitants  were  instantly  struck  with  terror, 
and  flew  to  arms,  while  700  Roumeliots,  under  the  command 
of  General  Giavella,  poured  immediately  into  the  fortress. 
The  Pacha's  object,  however,  appeared  to  be  merely  to  take 
a  survey  of  the  situation  of  the  fortress  ;  he  remained  quietly 
at  his  station  for  some  hours,  and  then  returned  to  his  en- 
campment. It  was  now  clear  that  Navarino  and  the  adjacent 
country  was  to  be  the  immediate  seat  of  war  ;  the  attempt 
on  Patras  was  consequently  totally  abandoned,  and  the 
troops  drawn  off  to  be  marched  further  south. 

"  Both  parties,  however,  remained  quiet  till  the  20th  of 
March,  when  Ibrahim  Pacha,  having  received  a  second  re- 
inforcement from  Candia,  (his  ships  having  evaded  the  Greek 
squadron,)  took  up  his  position,  and  placed  his  camp,  with 
14,000  soldiers,  before  Navarino.  The  capture  of  this  town 
was  a  considerable  object  to  the  Turks,  not  only  from  its  po- 
sition, but  from  the  circumstance  of  its  being  the  best,  or 
one  of  the  best  protected  port^-  in  the  Morea.  The  harbour, 
which  is  of  considerable  c  mensions,  is  protected  by  the 
island  of  Sphacteria  at  its  entrance,  which  is  so  narrow,  thai 
whoever  has  possession  of  the  island  can  prevent  all  ingress 
-  <r  egress  from  the  town  by  sea. 

"  The  situation  of  Navarino  perfectly  agrees  with  Thucy- 
dides'  description  of  Pylos  ;  from  some  remains  of  antiquity 
m  the  neighbourhood,  there  canbe  little  doubt  of  its  identity; 
in  fact,  a  village  about  half  a  mile  distant,  built  immediately 
at  the  foot  of  the  cliff,  on  which  stands  the  fortress  called 
Oid  Navarino,  still  bears  the  name  of  Pylos.  New  Navari- 
no, or  Neo-Castro,  as  the  Greeks  more  usually  call  it,  for- 


312  HISTORY  OF  THE 

merly  contained  600  Turks  and  about  130  Greeks  ;  the  former 
of  whom  were  remarkable  for  their  villany,  the  latter,  like  all 
the  Messenians,  for  their  sloth  and  effeminacy.  It  now  con- 
tained nearly  200  inhabitants  and  a  small  garrison,  having 
fallen  into  the  hands  of  the  Greeks  during  the  early  stages 
of  the  revolution.  The  fortifications,  like  all  the  others  in 
the  Morea,  where  the  work  of  the  Venetians,  and  though  not 
peculiarly  strong,  were  in  a  pretty  fair  state  of  repair.  E  very- 
precaution  was  now  taken  by  the  Greeks.  A  garrison 
amounting  to  2000  soldiers,  principally  under  the  command 
of  Hadji  Christo,  and  Joannes  Mavromichali,  son  to  Petro 
Bey  of  Maina,  were  thrown  into  the  fortress  ;  a  small  corps 
of  artillery,  amounting  to  fifty  or  sixty  men,  were  sent  off 
with  all  haste  from  Napoli  ;  and  the  command  of  the  fortifi- 
cations was  given  to  Major  Collegno,  who  lost  no  time  in  as- 
suming his  post.  Provisions  were  sent  in  from  all  parts  of 
the  Morea,  sufficient  for  a  long  siege.  Large  bodies  of 
Roumeliots,  under  command  of  their  respective  generals 
Giavella,  Karatazzo,  Constantine  Bozzaris,  brother  to  the 
hero  Marco,  and  General  Karaiskaki,  took  positions  in  the 
rear  of  the  enemy.  Conduriotti  and  Prince  Mavrocordato 
prepared  to  set  out  from  Napoli  with  fresh  troops;  and  though 
affairs  were  threatening,  there  existed  the  strongest  hopes, 
from  the  spirit  of  the  soldiery  and  the  state  of  the  fortress, 
that  they  would  be  able  to  make  an  effective  stand  against  all 
assaults." 

The  army  of  Ibrahim  Pacha  consisted  of  about  10,000  in- 
fantry, 2000  Albanians,  and  an  adequate  proportion  of  caval- 
ry and  artillery.  On  the  28th  of  March,  he  made  an  assault 
on  the  town,  but  was  opposed  by  the  united  force  of  the 
Roumeliot  general,  Karatazzo,  and  Joannes  Mavromichali. 
The  loss  on  both  sides  was  nearly  equal :  that  of  the  Greeks 
is  stated  at  150  men,  including  their  brave  young  leader,  Jo- 
annes, who  received  a  wound  in  his  arm,  which,  being  unskil- 
fully dressed,  terminated  in  a  mortification.  The  Greeks 
succeeded,  however,  in  taking  from  the  enemy  upwards  of  a 
hundred  English  muskets  and  bayonets,  which  were  immedi- 
ately forwarded  to  Tripolizza.  A  system  of  petty  skirmish- 
ing was  kept  up  during  the  ensuing  three  weeks  without  any 
important  result.  In  the  mean  time,  Austrian,  Ionian,  and 
even  English  ships,  laden  with  Turkish  grain  and  provisions, 
were  daily  arriving  at  Napoli,  as  prizes  taken  by  the  Greek  crui- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  313 

zers  :*  and  on  the  13th  of  April,  three  Austrian  vessels,  laden 
with  provisions  for  the  enemy,  who  was  reported  to  be  al- 
ready in  possession  of  Navarino,  appeared  at  the  entrance  of 
the  harbour.  The  Greek  commandant,  suspecting  their  in- 
tention, hoisted  the  red  flag  on  the  fortress  :  and  the  three 
ressels,  entering  in  full  confidence,  were  declared  lawful 
prizes,  and  their  cargoes  were  applied  to  the  supply  of  the 
garrison. 

At  length,  on  the  19th  of  April,  Ibrahim  Pacha  attacked, 
in  their  position,  the  whole  force  of  the  Greeks,  amounting 
lo  about  6000  men,  and  completely  defeated  them.  The 
particulars  of  this  important  action  are  thus  given  by  Mr. 
Emerson,  on  the  authority  of  letters  from  Navarino,  trans- 
mitted to  the  Government  at  Napoli. 

"  The  positions  in  the  rear  of  the  enemy  had  been  all  oc- 
cupied, with  an  intention  of  cutting  off  their  communication 
with  Modon,  and  were  now  extended  almost  in  a  circle.  The 
left  extremity  was  intrusted  to  Hadji  Christo,  Hadji  Stephano, 
and  Constantine  Bozzaris  ;  the  right  was  commanded  by  the 
Roumeliot  generals,  Giavella  and  Karatazzo  ;  whilst  the  cen- 
tre was  occupied  by  a  body  of  Moreotes,  under  General 
Skurtza,  a  Hydriote,  whom  Conduriotti's  interest  had  invest- 
ed with  a  high  command,  together  with  a  few  other  capitani. 
On  the  evening  of  the  18th  instant,  intimation  of  the  intended 
attack  in  the  morning  had  been  received  from  a  deserter, 
and  notice  in  consequence  sent  to  the  different  generals. 
The  commander?  of  the  positions  on  the  extremities  wTere 
fully  prepared ;  but  in  the  centre,  Skurtza  had  as  yet  neglected 
to  make  the  necessary  entrenchments  and  petty  lines,  behind 
which  alone  the  Greeks  are  capable  of  making  any  stand. 
He  accordingly  applied  for  additional  assistance,  and  early 
in  the  morning,  Bozzaris  set  out  to  his  position  with  a  chosen 
body  of  his  soldiers.  About  nine  o'clock  the  attack  of  the 
Egyptians  commenced  on  the  position  of  Hadji  Christo,  who 
sustained  the  onset  with  extreme  courage  :  at  the  same  time, 
another  party,  with  three  cannon  and  one  mortar,  commenced 
the  attack  on  the  right,  where  they  met  with  an  equally  brave 

*  Emerson,  p.  105.  These  vessels  had  invariably  regular  papers 
from  their  respective  consuls,  and  cleared  for  the  Ionian  Isles  :  but  in 
general,  the  confessions  of  the  captains,  or  some  other  circumstances, 
condemned  them.  Several,  however,  were  reclaimed,  and  though  no 
doubt  could  be  entertained  of  their  being  Turkish  property,  yet  as  their 
papers  were  correct,  the  Greeks  were  compelled  to  surrender  them. 


314  HISTORY  OF  THE 

resistance  from  Giavella  and  his  followers ;  whilst  a  third, 
supported  by  a  body  of  Mameluke  horse,  charged  on  the 
centre.  The  two  extremities  kept  their  position  with  asto- 
nishing bravery,  though  not  less  than  three  hundred  shot  and 
shells  fell  within  the  lines  of  Giavella.  In  the  centre,  how- 
ever, the  want  of  their  accustomed  tambours  soon  threw  the 
soldiers  of  Skurtza  into  confusion ;  and  after  a  short  stand, 
they  commenced  a  precipitate  retreat,  leaving  the  soldiers 
of  Bozzaris  to  oppose  the  enemy  alone.  These  were  soon 
cut  to  pieces  ;  and  it  was  with  extreme  difficulty,  that  himself 
and  twenty-seven  followers  escaped  with  life,  after  witness- 
ing the  fall  of  almost  all  the  chosen  soldiers  of  his  brother 
Marco,  who  had  died  in  his  defence.  Upwards  of  two  hun- 
dred Greeks  lost  their  lives  in  this  engagement.  Xidi  and 
Zapheiropuolo,  two  of  the  bravest  leaders,  were  made  prison- 
ers ;  and  four  other  distinguished  capitani  perished  in  the 
fray. 

"  The  day  following,  the  enemy,  elated  with  their  success, 
attempted  an  assault  on  the  walls  :  the  efforts  of  the  garrison, 
however,  assisted  by  a  band  of  Arcadians  in  the  rear  of  the 
enemy,  were  successful  in  driving  them  off  with  the  loss  of 
100  slain  and  20  prisoners  ;  whilst  the  Greeks  took  posses- 
sion of  their  newly-erected  battery,  but,  not  being  able  to 
carry  off  the  cannon,  contented  themselves  with  spiking  them 
all,  and  retired  again  within  the  walls." 

The  negligence  or  pusillanimity  of  the  Moreotes  under 
Skurtza,  to  which  Bozzaris  justly  attributed  the  defeat  of  his 
troops,  so  materially  widened  the  breach  between  the  Rou- 
meliots  and  the  Moreotes,  that  shortly  after,  hearing  that  the 
Turks  were  advancing  on  Missolonghi,  the  former  expressed 
their  determination  to  leave  the  defence  of  Navarino  to  the 
peninsular  troops,  and  return  to  defend  their  own  homes. 
Accordingly  on  the  30th  instant,  they  arrived  at  Lugos,  to 
the  number  of  3000,  under  their  respective  generals,  Giavel- 
la, Karaiskachi,  and  Bozzaris.  The  Moreotes,  roused  by 
this  defection,  now  took  arms  with  greater  spirit ;  and  the 
rebel  chiefs  Zaimi  and  Londo,  driven  from  Calamos  by  the 
English  resident,  returned  to  the  Morea,  having  submitted 
to  the  Government,  and  began  to  raise  troops  in  their  native 
districts  of  Kalavrita. 

In  the  meantime,  the  Roumeli  Valisee  had,  on  the  10th 
of  March,  reached  Ioannina  from  Larissa.  On  the  20th  he 
arrived  with  15,000  men  at  Arta ;  and  early  in  April,  he  suc- 
ceeded in  accomplishing  his  entrance  by  the  pass  of  Macri- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  315 

noro  into  the  plains  of  Western  Greece.  The  Roumeliots, 
under  Nota  Bozzaris  and  Izonga,  had  deserted  their  post,  and 
crossed  the  Achelous,  without  once  coming  in  contact  with 
the  enemy,  leaving  the  whole  country  north  of  that  river  open 
to  his  ravages,  while  the  inhabitants  of  the  villages  took  re- 
fuge under  British  protection  in  Calamos.  At  the  orders 
or  entreaties  of  the  Missolonghi  Government,  Generals 
Izonga  and  Makris  were  induced,  however,  to  recross  the 
Achelous,  and  attempt  to  seize  the  passes  of  Ligovitzi ;  but 
the  enemy  was  beforehand  with  them,  and  after  a  short  con- 
flict, they  were  obliged  to  retreat  with  all  expedition,  and 
prepare  for  the  defence  of  Anatolico,  and  Missolonghi. 

To  return  to  the  siege  of  Navarino.  The  object  of  Ibra- 
him Pacha  was  now  to  take  Sphacteria  ;  but  it  was  not  till 
the  arrival  of  his  ships  from  Suda  with  a  third  division  of  land 
forces,  that  he  deemed  it  expedient  to  make  the  attempt. 
On  the  24th  of  April,  a  large  division  of  the  Egyptian  army 
commenced  the  attack  on  the  fortress  of  Old  Navarino,  with 
a  view  to  cover  the  debarkation  of  troops  from  the  fleet.  The 
spirited  defence  made  by  the  garrison  under  Hadji  Christo 
and  the  Archbishop  of  Modon,  together  with  the  approach  of 
the  Greek  fleet,  defeated  the  plan.  In  the  evening,  after  a 
smart  action,  which  continued  all  day,  the  enemy  retired  to 
their  former  position  at  Petrochori,  while  the  fleet  fell  back 
in  the  direction  of  Modon.  The  Greek  squadron  kept  beat- 
ing off  the  town,  and  only  eight  ships,  including  that  of  the 
brave  Anastasius  Psamado,  remained  within  the  harbour. 

"  Early  on  the  next  morning,  the  Turkish  fleet  was  again 
observed  under  weigh  in  the  direction  of  the  fortress,  and, 
about  one  o'clock,  had  advanced  very  near  the  island,  while 
the  Hydriot  ships  under  Miaulis  were  becalmed  at  some  dis- 
tance from  the  shore.  The  island  contained  but  one  landing 
place,  on  the  western  side,  which  was  defended  by  a  small 
battery  of  three  guns,  and  a  garrison  of  200  soldiers,  under 
the  direction  of  a  brave  young  Hydriot,  Starvo  Sohini. 
and  General  Anagnostara.  For  the  purpose  of  working 
the  guns  more  effectually,  a  party  of  sailors,  headed  by 
Psamado,  were  landed  from  the  ships  in  the  bay  ;  and  Prince 
Mavrocordato  and  Count  Santa  Rosa,  a  Piedmontese  volun- 
teer, remained  on  the  island  to  direct  the  operations  of  the 
whole.  If  bravery  could  have  compensated  for  the  inequa- 
lity of  numbers,  the  Greeks  would  have  triumphed.  Fifty 
armed  boats  were  sent  off  from  the  Turkish  fleet,  contain- 
ing 1500  men,  on  whose  approach  the  little  garrison  open-- 


316  HISTORY  OF  THE 

ed  their  fire,  and  for  some  time  maintained  their  position  no- 
bly; but  at  length,  surrounded  from  behind,  cut  off  from 
relief  or  retreat,  they  were  overpowered  by  numbers,  and, 
after  a  desperate  resistance,  were  to  a  man  cut  to  pieces, 
their  two  brave  leaders  being  among  the  last  that  fell.  The 
divisions  stationed  at  other  points  of  the  little  island  now  fled 
in  confusion,  and  all  the  Greek  vessels  in  the  harbour,  except 
Psamado's,  made  their  escape,  passing  unopposed  through 
the  division  of  the  enemy's  fleet  placed  at  the  mouth  of  the 
harbour  to  detain  them.  Mavrocordato  and  the  governor  of 
Neo-castro,  both  of  whom  were  in  the  island,  were  so 
fortunate  as  to  reach  the  remaining  ship  ;  but  when  the 
boats  reached  the  shore  a  second  time,  for  the  purpose  of 
bringing  off  others,  the  fugitives  that  eagerly  crowded  into 
them  were  too  many,  and  sunk  them.  A  few  moments  after, 
Psamado,  desperately  wounded,  with  a  few  followers,  gained 
the  beach,  and  was  seen  waving  his  cap  for  the  assistance 
his  countrymen  could  no  longer  render  him.  The  Turks 
soon  came  up,  and  he  fell,  with  his  handful  of  men,  under  a 
shower  of  bullets.  Not  a  Greek  was  now  left  alive  on  the  is- 
land, and  the  solitary  ship  of  Psamado  had  to  make  her  way 
out  through  the  fleet  of  the  enemy,  drawn  up  round  the  en- 
trance of  the  harbour.  During  four  hours  of  a  dead  calm, 
she  maintained  a  desperate  fight,  but  finally  fought  her  way 
with  great  gallantry  through  the  forty  sail  of  the  Egyptians, 
with  the  loss  of  two  men  killed  and  six  wounded.  Three 
hundred  and  fifty  soldiers  perished  in  the  island,  including 
the  unfortunate  Count  Santa  Rosa,  who  fought  in  the  ranks 
with  his  musket  and  ataghan,  and  General  Catzaro,  besides 
ninety  seamen  in  killed,  wounded,  and  missing ;  a  greater 
number  than  Hydra  had  lost  during  the  four  years  of  the 
war.* 


*  Amongst  the  number  of  those  who  that  day  fell  in  the  cause  of 
Greece,  says  Mr.  Emerson,  was  Count  Santa  Rosa.  Disappointed 
in  his  attempt  to  free  his  own  country  from  the  Austrian  Sultan, 
and  in  consequence  an  exile  from  his  home,  he  had  joined  the  cause  of 
Greece,  with  the  generous  intention  of  helping  her  to  the  ac- 
quirement of  those  blessings  which  his  native  country  had  failed  in 
attempting  to  regain.  His  superior  abilities  were,  however,  brought 
to  a  wrong  mart :  amongst  the  intriguing,  factious  members  of  the 
Greek  legislature,  he  found  it  impossible  to  serve  her  in  any  situa- 
tion becoming  his  rank  and  talents ;  and  at  length  adopted  the  re- 
solution of  joining  the  band  of  liberators  as  a  volunteer,  without  any 
regard  to  pecuniary  advantage  or  military  rank,  which,  in  fact,  his 
ignorance  of  the  language,  as  well  as  of  the  customs  of    the  coun- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  317 

The  following  detail  of  this  unfortunate  affair  was  drawn 
up  by  Grasset,  Private  Secretary  to  Mavrocordato. — It  is 
sufficiently  enthusiastic,  but  given  as  truth  by  Count  Pec- 
chio.  Grasset  was  present  on  the  occasion,  and  shared  in 
its  perils. 

"  Ibrahim  Pacha  says  he  had  perceived  the  impossibility 
of  gaining  possession  of  the  fortress  at  Navarino,  without 
first  making  himself  master  of  the  island  of  Sphacteria, 
which  forms  the  harbour,  and  from  which  he  could  easily 
bombard  the  fortress,  as  well  as  Old  Navarino,  situated  at 
the  extremity  of  the  ports.  The  arrival  of  the  fleet,  which 
he  had  been  long  expecting,  enabled  him  to  execute  the  pro- 
ject. 

The  President  of  the  executive  body,  who  command- 
ed the  expedition,  but  who,  from  indisposition,  had  retired  a 
short  distance  from  the  army,  being  informed  of  this  inten- 
tion of  the  Pacha,  resolved  to  send  his  excellency  Prince 
Mavrocordato  to  the  general  encampment  of  the  Greeks,  in 
order  to  induce  them  to  reinforce  the  positions  hereafter 
mentioned. 

His  Excellency  arrived  at  Old  Navarino  on  the  night  of 
the  24th  or  25th  of  April,  and  found  it  defended  by  100  men, 
under  the  command  of  General  Hadji  Christo  and  the 
Archbishop  of  Modon.  On  the  25th,  at  five  in  the  morn- 
ing, the  out  posts  pronounced  the  arrival  of  the  Egyptians, 
who  were  advancing  upon  the  tongue  of  land  which  separates 
the  harbour  from  the  lake. 

The  Cretans,  whom  the  Prince  had  brought  with   him, 

try,  rendered  him  unqualified  for  :  and  in  the  dress  of  a  common  sol- 
dier, with  his  ataghan  and  musket,  he  joined  the  camp  at  Navarino. — 
This  s'.ep  was  taken  against  the  urgent  advice  of  his  friends,  who 
represented  it  as  at  once  imprudent,  unbecoming,  and  attended  with 
no  important  advantages.  Hurried  on,  however,  by  his  own  feelings, 
he  followed  a  resolution  which  has  conducted  him  to  his  fate  ;  and 
whilst  we  disapprove  the  measure,  it  is  impossible  not  to  do  honour 
to  the  motives  which  prompted  it,  and  sincerely  to  lament  its  conse- 
quences. His  fate  and  his  fall  have,  however,  been  glorious,  and  for 
him  fortunate.  Separated,  to  all  appearance,  for  ever  from  his  family, 
a  ceaseless  anxiety  for  whom  was  the  canker  of  his  existence,  and  an 
exile  from  a  country  after  which  his  heart  yearned,  no  other  prospect 
was  before  him  than  years  of  sorrow  and  hopeless  regret.  He  has  fall- 
en on  the  field  of  fame  ;  and,  whilst  we  drop  a  tear  of  heartfelt  regret 
over  his  memory  as  a  friend,  we  must  still  rejoice,  that  as  a  patriot  his 
high-born  spirit  has  fled  beyond  the  reach  of  tyrants. — Picture  of  Greece, 
Vol.  1.  p.  102. 


318  HISTORY  OF  THE 


made  a  dash  upon  the  enemy,  and  compelled  him,  by  the  fire 
of  the  tirailleurs,  to  fall  back.  During  the  skirmish,  the  sight 
of  the  Greek  fleet,  with  the  wind  in  its  favour,  sailing  towards 
the  enemy's  fleet,  redoubled  the  courage  of  the  Greeks.  Still, 
the  Egyptians  did  not  retire  altogether,  but  kept  out  of  reach 
of  cannon  shot.  We  imagined  that  the  affair  was  at  an  end  ; 
but  at  mid-day  the  attack  again  began  on  the  side  of  Old  Na- 
varino.  It  was  soon  over;  and  we  perceived  that  the  intention 
of  the  enemy  was  only  to  reconnoitre  our  positions,  and  to 
seize  the  village  of  Petrochori,  standing  near  Old  Navarino, 
and  the  tongue  of  land,  preparatory  to  a  regular  attack  on 
the  old  city,  whilst  the  fleet  was  effecting  a  landing  on 
the  island.  The  Prince,  convinced  that  it  would  take 
place  the  following  day,  sent  the  same  night  some  troops 
over  to  the  island  to  strengthen  the  points  that  were  weak, 
and  in  the  morning  he  joined  them  himself.  The  number  of 
men  assigned  for  the  defence  of  this  position  did  not  amount 
to  500,  including  the  sailors  that  had  been  landed  from  the 
eight  Greek  ships  in  the  harbour  ;  and  this  number,  as  his 
Excellency  directly  perceived, was  insufficient  for  the  defence. 
But  what  was  to  be  done  1  Above  all,  it  was  essential  to 
endeavour  to  prevent  a  disembarkation,  which  the  enemy's 
fleet,  by  its  coasting  along  the  island,  satisfied  us  it  was 
about  to  attempt.  The  Prince  visited  all  the  positions, 
strengthened  the  weakest,  and  encouraged  the  men  to  do 
their  duty.  He  wished  to  form  a  corps  of  100  men,  to  move 
upon  the  point  where  the  enemy  should  attempt  their  land- 
ing ;  but  the  disorder  that  always  reigns  amongst  irregular 
troops,  prevented  it,  notwithstanding  its  obvious  importance. 
Three  batteries,  mounting  eight  cannons  and  a  mortar,  had 
been  raised  on  the  island,  but  they  were  of  no  great  utility. 

The  enemy's  fleet,  to  the  number  of  fifty-two-  sail,  were 
drawn  up  in  good  order  ;  the  brigs  in  advance,  and  covered 
by  the  frigates  and  corvettes  from  the  attacks  of  the  Greek 
fleet,  which  was,  unfortunately,  too  far  distant  to  give  them 
any  disturbance.  Whilst  the  Prince  wras  indefatigably  or- 
dering and  disposing  every  thing  for  the  best,  the  hostile  fleet 
approached,  surveyed  us,  and  then  fired  two  signal  guns. 
Instantly  the  attack  began  on  Old  Navarino,  and  at  the  same 
moment  the  enemy's  ships  commenced  their  fire  upon  the 
Island.  This  was  at  eleven  o'clock.  The  Prince  being 
dressed  in  the  European  costume,  was  distinguished  by  those 
Franks  who  had  once  served  under  his  orders,  and  who, 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  319 

basely  deserting  the  cross,  had  gone  over  to  the  Africans. 
The  cannon  were  immediately  directed  to  the  spot  where  the 
Prince  was  standing ;  fearing,  therefore,  for  his  life,  we  be- 
sought him  to  retire,  but  our  entreaties  were  unavailing. 

We  perceived  the  boats  filling  with  Arabs  to  the  sound  of 
drums.  They  were  ranged  around,  and  began  to  move  to 
the  intended  place  of  disembarkation.  A  brisk  fire  com- 
menced on  both  sides — besides  that  from  the  fleet.  The 
Arabs  were  at  first  repulsed,  and  seemed  about  to  retire,  but 
an  Egyptian  brig  compelled  them  to  return.  Half  an  hour 
passed  in  the  midst  of  a  thick  smoke,  which  prevented  our 
seeing  the  progress  of  the  disembarkation  ;  when  all  at  once 
the  cry  was  heard,  "  the  Egyptians  are  in  the  island  !"  The 
Prince,  and  those  around,  attempted  to  gain  a  height  in  the 
midst  of  a  shower  of  balls  ;  the  former  at  length,  exhausted 
with  fatigue,  exclaimed,  "  Help  me,  I  am  falling  !"  Instant- 
ly his  general,  the  faithful  Catzaro,  and  one  of  the  soldiers 
took  him  in  their  arms,  and  carried  him  to  the  height.  Here 
we  perceived  the  Greeks  taking  to  flight,  and  pursued  by  the 
Egyptians.  All  hopes  were  at  an  end.  The  Greek  ships  in 
the  harbour  had  already  put  to  sea,  with  the  exception  of  a 
single  one,  that  had  not  yet  cut  its  cable,  the  brig  of  Captain 
Anastasius  Psamado,  who  had  come  to  the  island  with  the 
Prince,  and  got  separated  in  the  confusion. 

We  hastened  down  to  the  sea,  when  a  boat  was  sent  to 
take  the  Prince  on  board.  The  sailors  asked  for  their  cap- 
tain, "  was  he  saved  V9  Alas  !  we  were  ignorant  of  his  fate. 
We  entered  the  boat  as  the  Egyptians  had  gained  the  heights, 
having  overwhelmed  the  unfortunate  Greeks,  and  pursued 
them  to  the  sea.  The  boat  was  sent  back  for  Captain  Psa- 
mado, whom  the  sailors  imagined  they  saw  on  the  shore. 
The  Greek  ships  that  had  first  set  sail,  taking  advantage  of 
a  brisk  wind,  were  already  out  of  sight.  Psamado's  brig 
alone  remained.  The  cables  were  ordered  to  be  cut.  The 
sailors  exclaimed,  "  Where  is  the  captain  VJ  The  boat  did 
not  come  back.  We  expected  the  delay  would  be  the  cause 
of  our  ruin.  The  sailors  would  wait  for  the  captain  :  at 
length  the  boat  returned,  but,  alas  !  without  him.  The  ca- 
bles were  then  cut,  and  we  set  sail ;  but  the  wind  began  to 
fall.  Dimitri  Sartouri,  the  commandant  of  the  fortress  of 
Navarino,  who  the  morning  before  had  come  to  the  island  to 
see  the  Prince,  had  been  pursued  to  the  shore  by  the  Arabs, 
when  he  plunged  into  the  sea  amidst  a  shower  of  balls,  and 
swam  to  the  vessel.     He  had  seen  Captain  Psamado  fall. — 


320  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Thus  perished  this  brave  man,  the  brother  in  arms  of  Miau- 
lis,  and  one  of  the  most  distinguished  captains  of  Greece. 
One  of  the  sailors,  in  despair  for  the  loss  of  his  captain,  was 
about  to  set  fire  to  the  magazine,  and  it  was  with  great  diffi- 
culty that  he  could  be  brought  to  reason.  We  prepared  for 
action ;  and  Sartouri  was  chosen  to  command  the  vessel. 
He  encouraged  the  sailors  by  his  composure,  and  resolved 
to  conquer  or  die.  It  was  determined  to  pass  through  the 
enemy's  fleet,  which  was  waiting  for  us  at  the  entrance  of  the 
harbour,  as  for  a  certain  prey.  The  batteries  erected  on 
the  island  in  front  of  Navarino  were  about  to  contribute  to 
our  destruction.  The  Arabs  turned  them  against  us.  But 
despair  gives  courage  ;  and  we  conceived  a  hope  that  it  was 
possible  to  escape.  At  length  we  quitted  the  harbour,  when 
five  vessels,  a  frigate,  a  corvette,  and  three  brigs,  surrounded 
us  and  began  firing.  Our  sailors,  with  determined  courage, 
returned  it  briskly  ;  and  the  «  enemy  perceiving  that  we  had 
the  advantage,  resolved  to  board  us.  The  sailors  immedi- 
ately left  the  guns,  and  took  to  their  small  arms  and  cutlass- 
es ;  but,  at  this  time,  hope  did  forsake  us,  and  we  were  just 
on  the  point  of  blowing  up  the  vessel.  The  Prince,  who 
had  evinced  the  same  sangfroid  as  on  the  island,  was  thrown 
down  by  a  ball,  and  was  waiting  his  death  with  composure, 
happy  in  the  thoughts  of  dying  in  the  service  of  his  country, 
and  with  no  other  regret,  on  quitting  this  vale  of  alarms,  than 
that  of  being  no  longer  able  to  serve  the  Greeks.  His  Ex- 
cellency, with  a  pistol  in  his  hand,  was  awaiting  the  moment 
of  boarding,  to  put  a  period  to  his  existence.  Tile  Africans  ! 
in  vain  did  you  flatter  yourselves  with  the  hopes  of  taking 
alive  the  best  of  the  Greeks.  The  sailors  went  below,  or  com- 
mended themselves  to  the  Holy  Virgin,  embraced  her  image, 
and  full  of  confidence  in  divine  mercy,  returned  to  the  fight 
with  the  most  undaunted  resolution.  The  wind  began  to 
blow,  but  a  further  swarm  of  vessels  commenced  a  fire  upon 
us.  Our  brig,  however,  made  way,  our  sailors  felt  their 
hopes  revive,  and  we  dared  entertain  the  belief  that  it  was 
possible  to  escape  death.  An  old  brig,  a  bad  sailer,  harrass- 
ed  us  considerably,  and  did  us  much  damage.  Our  sails 
were  shot  through  and  through,  and  our  masts  were  injured, 
as  well  as  our  rudder ;  but  the  cry  was  heard  that  Miaulis 
had  attacked  the  Egyptian  fleet,  upon  which  every  one  re- 
doubled his  exertions,  and  the  brig  that  annoyed  us,  man- 
ned, I  have  no  doubt,  with  Europeans,  sheered  off; — but  why 
should  I  add  more  ?    This  battle  will  hereafter  be  spoken  of, 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  321 

and  regarded  as  a  fable.  In  short,  after  having  sustained  an 
attack  from  thirty-four  ships  of  war,  comprising  frigates  and 
corvettes,  as  well  as  brigs,  after  having  caused  the  enemy 
considerable  loss,  and  after  having  continued  the  fight  for  six 
hours  without  hopes  of  success,  we  were  permitted  to  con- 
tinue pur  course  without  further  opposition  from  the  Egyp- 
tian vessels.  Thanks  to  the  God  oi  Battle  !  a  merchant  brig 
of  eighteen  guns  fought  a  whole  fleet  of  many  sail,  and  came 
off  conquerors.  0  ye  English  and  French  admirals  !  many 
traits  of  bravery,  almost  incredible,  have  been  recorded  of 
you  ;  but  what  will  the  world  at  large  say  of  the  battle  main- 
tained by  the  Mars  ?  Our  sailors,  urged  by  despair,  fought 
like  lions  ;  and  hardly  believing  their  success,  they  humbled 
themselves  before  the  God  of  Armies,  who  had  preserved 
them  from  apparently  inevitable  death.  Glory  to  the  Eter- 
nal !  The  first  and  most  illustrious  of  the  supporters  of  Greek 
liberty,  Prince  Mavrocordato,  has  not  fallen.  His  talents 
are  still  destined  to  save  his  country  :  and  it  was  not  written 
in  the  Book  of  Fate  that  one  of  the  greatest  ornaments  of 
this  world  should  be  carried  off  in  the  flower  of  his  age,  and 
in  the  midst  of  the  greatest  dangers.  His  Excellency  was 
perfectly  composed,  and  happy  to  die  for  his  country.  Al- 
ways kind  and  considerate,  he  was  grieved  to  see  us  involved 
in  his  misfortune,  and  appeared  to  reproach  us  for  having 
been  too  much  attached  to  him.  We  had  but  two  sailors 
killed,  and  seven  wounded.  Amongst  the  latter  was  Cap- 
tain Sartouri.  If  ever  a  man  performed  his  duty  on  the  day 
of  battle,  if  ever  a  man  covered  himself  with  glory,  it  cer- 
tainly was  the  brave  Dimitri  Sartouri. 

In  the  evening,  when  the  Egyptian  fleet  had  retired,  we 
perceived  two  of  their  vessels  on  fire :  but  could  not  con- 
ceive how  it  happened.  Though  we  were  successful  at 
sea,  our  loss  on  shore  was  considerable.  The  minister  at 
war,  Anagnostara  Papageorge,  the  brave  Colonel  Stauro, 
Shaini  of  Hydra,  General  Catzaro,  and  Zafiropulo,  a  member 
of  the  legislative  body,  who  had  come  oVer  with  the  Prince 
to  be  enabled  to  ransom  his  brother  Panajoti  Zafiropulo, 
made  prisoner  some  time  before,  and  two  other  chiefs,  per- 
ished in  the  battle.  We  had  also  to  deplore  the  death  of  a 
worthy  and  illustrious  Philhellene,  the  Count  of  Santa  Rosa, 
who  served  as  a  volunteer  in  the  Greek  army. 

Having  been  both  an  actor  and  an  eye  witness  throughout 
28* 


322  HISTORY  OF  THE 

these  transactions,  I  can  speak  with  confidence  on  the  accu- 
racy of  the  facts  I  have  stated."*! 

Two  days  after  the  capture  of  the  island,  the  garrison  of 
Old  Navarino,  who  were  now  shut  up  with  but  little  provi- 
sions, and  water  for  only  a  few  days,  capitulated  on  condi- 
tion of  laying  down  their  arms  and  retiring.  For  these  fa- 
vourable terms  they  were  unexpectedly  indebted  to  two  of 
the  French  officers  in  the  Pacha's  service ;  and  on  the  faith  of 
their  representations,  they  ventured  to  march  out,  about  a 
thousand  men  in  number,  under  the  command  of  General 
Luca  and  an  American  Philhellene  named  Jarvis.  Having 
surrendered  their  arms  at  the  feet  of  the  Pacha,  they  were 
escorted  for  a  few  miles  by  a  small  body  of  horse,  and  were 
then  permitted  to  depart  in  safety.  The  Turkish  ships, 
having  entered  the  harbour,  now  opened  a  fire  upon  Neo- 
castro,  about  fifty  pieces  of  cannon  being  placed  in  battery  on 
the  land  side  ;  but  not  till  the  23d  of  May,  after  a  week 
consumed  in  negotiation,  the  garrison  marched  out  on  the 
same  terms  as  those  of  Navarino,  and  were  embarked  in  Eu- 
ropean vessels  for  Calamata,  with  the  exception  of  Generals 
latracco  and  Giorgio  Mavromichali,  who  were  detained  pri- 
soners. By  the  fall  of  this  place,  Ibrahim  Pacha  became 
possessed  of  the  key  to  the  entire  western  coast  of  the  Morea, 
there  being  no  other  fortresses  to  oppose  his  progress,  and 
the  country  consists  of  open  plains,  affording  no  impediment 
to  the  operations  of  cavalry  ;  while  the  beautiful  harbour  gave 
the  enemy  a  secure  hold  to  winter  in. 

Shortly  after  the  fall  of  Navarino,  the  Egyptian  Pacha  sus- 
tained a  naval  loss,  which,  though  not  of  sufficient  magni- 
tude materially  to  affect  the  operations  of  the  Ottoman  fleet, 

*  Picture  of  Greece,  vol.  ii.  p.  115 — 122. 

f  Mr.  Emerson  was  at  Hydra  when  the  vessels  arrived  bringing  the 
melancholy  news  of  the  disaster  of  Sphacteria.  "  During  the  day," 
says  he,  "  several  vessels  had  arrived  from  the  fleet,  and  the  rocks  on 
the  beach  became  crowded  with  groups  of  females,  eagerly  watching 
its  approach.  As  the  vessels  came  slowly  into  the  harbour,  every  voice 
was  raised  in  anxious  inquiry  for  the  safety  of  their  brothers,  or  their 
relatives,  and  many  a  straining  eye  sunk  in  tears  and  despair,  as  each 
learned  the  sorrowful  intelligence  of  their  fate.  I  never  witnessed  a 
more  mournful  sight :  the  few,  but  burning,  heart-wrung  tears  of  the 
aged,  and  the  clamorous  grief  of  the  young  ;  the  bitter  resignation  with 
which  the  mother  and  the  widow  heard  the  confirmation  of  their  fears  ; 
and  the  agonies  of  disappointed  hope  in  the  daughters  and  sisters  of 
the  slain — each  spoke  the  anguish  of  the  occasion : — but  such  are  at- 
tendants of  war." 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  323 

served  to  revive  the  drooping  spirits  and  rekindle  the  almost 
extinguished  ardour  of  the  Moreotes. 

"  Immediately  after  the  loss  of  the  Island,  while  the  Greek 
fleet  continued  cruising  off  the  coast,  the  squadron  of  the 
Pacha  separated  into  two  divisions,  one  of  which  remained 
in  the  vicinity  and  harbour  of  Navarino  ;  whilst  the  other, 
consisting  of  two  frigates  and  four  corvettes,  with  numerous 
transports,  moved  down  to  Modon,  where,  on  the  12th  in- 
stant, they  were  followed  by  Miaulis,  with  four  fire-ships  and 
twenty-two  brigs.  In  the  evening  of  the  same  day,  a  most 
favourable  breeze  setting  in  from  the  south-east,  he  made  his 
signal  for  the  fire-ships  to  enter  the  harbour.  Besides  the 
Egyptian  squadron,  there  were  likewise  within  a  number  of 
other,  Austrian,  Ionian,  and  Sicilian  craft,  making  in  all  about 
thirty-five  or  forty  sail.  The  enemy,  on  the  advance  of  the 
fire-ships,  immediately  attempted  to  cut  their  cables  and  es- 
cape ;  but  the  same  steady  breeze  which  drove  on  the  brulots, 
and  blew  direct  into  the  harbour,  prevented  their  egress. 
The  consequence  was,  that  they  were  thrown  into  the  utmost 
confusion,  ran  foul  of  each  other,  and  finally  were  driven,  en 
masse,  beneath  the  walls  of  the  fortress  ;  where,  the  brulots 
still  advancing  upon  them,  the  whole  Egyptian  squadron, 
with  a  few  Austrian  and  other  ships,  in  all  twenty-five,  fell 
victims  to  the  flames.  Only  a  very  few  of  the  smaller  Euro- 
pean craft,  which  lay  further  out  from  the  town,  succeeded 
in  making  their  escape,  and  brought  the  particulars  of  the 
event  to  the  Pacha  of  Navarino.  In  the  meantime,  the  mis- 
siles caused  by  the  blowing  up  of  the  shipping  and  cannon, 
falling  within  the  walls,  set  fire  to  a  store-house  containing  a 
large  quantity  of  ammunition  and  provisions,  which  blew  up 
with  a  tremendous  explosion,  which  was  visible  for  several 
miles  from  sea.  Owing  to  the  panic  on  the  first  appearance 
of  the  Greeks,  not  the  slightest  opposition  was  made  by  the 
Egyptians  ;  and  after  destroying  the  squadron  of  the  enemy, 
the  brulottiers  succeeded  in  regaining  their  own  ships,  with- 
out the  loss  of  a  single  man." 

"  While  the  feelings  of  the  Moreotes  were  still  vibrating 
between  joy  and  despondency,  the  cry  for  Colocotroni  was 
again  loudly  raised.  Some  of  the  provinces  had  before  de- 
manded his  release,  and  he  had  himself  besought  the  Go- 
vernment to  allow  him  to  engage  the  enemy,  offering  his  two 
sons  as  hostages.     Two  members  of  the  Government  were 


324  HISTORY  OF  THE 

in  favour  of  his  release,  and  two  against  it  ;*  but,  on  the  ar- 
rival of  the  President,  it  was  referred  to  the  legislative  body, 
who  decided  tKe  point  in  his  favour,  and  a  deputation  proceed- 
ed to  Hydra  to  conduct  him  back  to  Napoli.f  He  arrived 
on  the  30th  of  May,  and  on  the  next  day,  his  reconcilia- 
tion to  the  Government  was  celebrated  with  all  due  ceremo- 
ny, amid  the  acclamations  of  the  populace.  A  general  am- 
nesty and  oblivion  were  mutually  agreed  to  and  ratified  in  the 
church  of  St.  George  ;  after  which  Signor  Tricoupi  delivered 
an  oration  to  the  people  and  the  soldiers  in  the  grand  square. 
Colocotroni  replied  without  premeditation  to  the  speech  ad- 
dressed to  him  by  one  of  the  legislative  body.  "  In  coming 
hither  from  Hydra,  I  have  cast  all  rancour  into  the  sea  ;  do 
you  so  likewise  ;  bury  in  that  gulph  all  your  hatreds  and  dis- 

*  Coletti,  Colocotroni's  principal  enemy,  was  one  of  those  who  op- 
posed his  release.  Conduriotti,  considering  Coletti  as  the  suborner  of 
the  Roumeliot  troops  who  had  abandoned  the  camp,  wished  him  to  be 
expelled ;  but  perceiving  that  he  should  soon  require  his  support  against 
Colocotroni,  he  gave  up  this  idea.  Mavrocordato,  however,  was  the 
most  obnoxious  to  the  Moreote  party . 

f  "  When  I  beheld  Colocotroni  sitting  amid  ten  of  his  companions, 
prisoners  of  state,  and  treated  with  respect  by  his  guards,  I  called  to  mind 
the  picture  that  Tasso  draws  of  Satan  in  the  council  of  devils.  His  ne- 
glected gray  hairs  fell  upon  his  broad  shoulders,  and  mingled  with  his 
rough  beard,  which,  since  his  imprisonment,  he  had  allowed  to  grow  as 
a  mark  of  grief  and  revenge.  His  form  is  rugged  and  vigorous,  his 
eyes  full  of  fire,  and  his  martial  and  savage  figure  resembled  one  of  the 
sharp  gray  rocks  that  are  scattered  throughout  the  Archipelago."  Such 
is  the  portrait  of  the  old  klepht  drawn  by  Count  Pecchio.  Mr.  Emer- 
son's description  is  not  less  picturesque,  though  he  gives  a  different  co- 
louring to  his  hair.  He  obtained  permission  to  visit  the  rebel  chiefs  at 
Hydra  a  short  time  before.  "  The  generality  of  them  exhibit  nothing  pe- 
culiar to  their  appearance,  being,  like  the  rest  of  their,  countrymen, 
wild,  savage-looking  soldiers,  clad  in  tarnished  embroidered  vests,  and 
dirty  juctanellas.  Colocotroni  was,  however,  easily  distinguished  from 
the  rest  by  his  particularly  savage  and  uncultivated  air.  His  person  is 
low,  but  built  like  a  Hercules,  and  his  short  bull-neck  is  surmounted  by 
a  head  rather  larger  than  proportion  warrants,  which,  with  its  shaggy 
eye-brows,  dark  mustachios,  unshorn  beard,  and  raven  hair  falling  in 
curls  over  his  shoulders,  formed  a  complete  study  for  a  painter.  He  had 
formerly  been  in  the  service  of  the  English  in  the  Ionian  Islands,  as  a 
serjeant  of  guards,  and  spoke  with  peculiar  pride  of  his  acquaintance 
with  several  British  officers.  He  was  in  high  spirits  at  the  prospect  of 
his  liberation. . .  .  During  my  visit,  he  spoke  of  his  enemies  in  the  Go- 
vernment with  moderation  and  no  appearance  of  rancour ;  he,  however, 
said  little  ;  but  on  the  name  of  Mavrocordato  or  Coletti  being  mention- 
ed, he  gathered  his  brow,  compressed  his  lips,  and  baring  his  huge  arm 
to  the  shoulder,  he  flung  it  from  him  with  desperate  determination." — 
Picture  of  Greece,  vol.  i.  pp.  164, 167;  vol.  ii.  p.  86. 


GREEK  REYOLUTION.  325 

sensions  :  that  shall  be  the  treasure  which  you  will  gain" — 
alluding  to  the  excavations  in  search  of  treasure  which  were 
then  being  made.  Proclamations  were  now  issued  by  the 
Government,  calling  the  inhabitants  of  the  Morea  to  arms  ; 
all  the  shops  of  Napoli  were  ordered  to  be  closed,  except  a 
sufficient  number  of  bakers  and  butchers,  and  the  whole  po- 
pulation was  to  join  the  standard  of  Colocotroni.  By  the 
10th  of  June,  he  had  assembled  about  8000  men  at  Tripolit- 
za.  Pappa  Flescia  had  already  marched  to  garrison  Arcadia, 
and  Petro  Bey  was  raising  his  followers  in  Maina. 

In  the  meantime,  Miaulis,  the  Hydriote  admiral,  had  deter- 
mined on  a  desperate  but  decisive  service  ;  this  was  no  other 
than  to  enter  the  harbour  of  Suda,  and  attempt  the  de- 
struction of  the  remainder  of  the  Egyptian  fleet.  He  was 
just  about  to  sail,  when  news  was  brought,  that  the  Turkish 
(  had  passed  the  Dardanelles,  and  was  at  that  time  within 
thirty  miles  of  Hydra.  Instantly  signals  were  fired,  and  in  a 
quarter  of  an  hour  every  anchor  was  weighed,  every  yard- 
arm  spread  with  canvas,  and  the  whole  fleet  steered  for  that 
island  to  protect  their  homes.  They  had  nearly  reached  it, 
when  a  caique  came  off  with  the  gratifying  intelligence  that, 
on  the  1st  of  June,  the  hostile  fleet  had  been  met  in  the 
channel  of  Cavo  Doro  by  the  fire-ships  of  the  second  Greek 
squadron  under  Saktouri,  when  a  line  of  battle-ship,  (the 
Capitan  Pacha's,  who  escaped  by  sailing  in  a  smaller  ship,)  a 
corvette,  and  a  frigate,  were  destroyed,  and  the  Capitan  Aga 
perished  in  the  flames.  Five  transports  also  were  taken,  la- 
den with  stores  and  ammunition,  which  were  safely  conveyed 
to  Spezzia.  The  remainder  of  the  fleet  dispersed  in  all  di- 
rections :  one  corvette  was  driven  to  Syra,  where  she  was 
burned  by  the  crew,  after  feigning  to  surrender,  but  150  of 
the  men  were  made  prisoners.  The  larger  body  succeeded 
in  reaching  Rhodes  ;  but  it  was  some  time  ere  they  could  be 
re-assembled.  This  brilliant  success,  besides  relieving  Hy- 
dra, had  a  powerful  effect  in  raising  the  spirits  of  the  Greeks. 
The  vessels  contained  a  large  proportion  of  the  stores  in- 
tended for  the  siege  of  Missolonghi." 

Miaulis  now  steering  southward,  was  joined  by  Saktouri's 
squadron,  making  their  united  force  amount  to  about  seven- 
ty sail ;  and  it  was  resolved  that  the  whole  fleet,  after  com- 
pleting their  provisioning  at  Milo,  should  proceed  to  Suda, 
where  the  Turkish  and  Egyptian  fleets  were  now  collected. 
It  was  not  before  the  evening  of  the  12th  that  they  reached 
the  harbour,  owing  in  part  to  stormy  weather,  and  partly  to 


326  HISTORY  OF  THE 

delays  arising  from  the  insubordination  of  the  seamen.  On 
the  14th,  a  light  breeze  springing  up,  enabled  them  to  attack 
a  division  of  the  Ottoman  fleet  in  the  outer  harbour  ;  and  at 
the  expense  of  three  fire-ships  and  ten  men  killed,  they  de- 
stroyed a  corvette  with  its  equipage.  They  were  prevent- 
ed from  further  success  chiefly  by  the  dropping  of  the  wind, 
and  by  the  unwonted  precaution  of  the  Turks,  who  in  conse- 
quence of  information  given  by  a  French  schooner,  had  sepa- 
rated into  four  divisions.  On  the  17th,  a  severe  gale  separa- 
ted the  Greek  fleet,  and  they  retired  to  Hydra,  leaving  the 
Turkish  admiral  to  proceed  unmolested  to  Navarino,  where 
he  landed  a  reinforcement  of  5000  men.  Thence  he  pursued 
his  course  with  seven  frigates  and  several  smaller  vessels  to 
Missolonghi,  where  he  arrived  on  the  10th  of  July. 

On  the  23d  of  May,  Mr.  Emerson  went  on  board  of  Mi- 
aulis'  ship,  where  he  remained  a  considerable  time,  and  con- 
sequently had  an  opportunity  of  becoming  acquainted  with 
that  celebrated  Admiral,  and  of  observing  the  state  of  naval 
tactics  among  the  Greeks.  We  copy  his  observations  on 
these  important  subjects. 

"Miaulis,"  says  he,  "is  a  man  of  from  fifty  to  sixty  years  old, 
his  figure  somewhat  clumsy,  but  with  a  countenance  pecu- 
liarly expressive  of  intelligence,  humanity,  and  good  nature. 
His  family  have  been  long  established  at  Hydra,  and  he  has 
himself  been  accustomed  to  the  sea  from  a  child.  Being 
intrusted  at  nineteen  by  his  father  with  the  management  of  a 
small  brig  which  traded  in  the  Archipelago,  his  successes  in 
trade  were  equal  to  any  of  his  countrymen,  and  about  fifteen 
years  ago  he  was  amongst  the  richest  of  the  islanders  ;  but 
the  unfortunate  loss  of  a  vessel  on  the  coast  of  Spain,  which, 
together  with  her  cargo,  was  his  own  property,  and  worth 
about  160,000  piastres,  reduced  his  circumstances  to  medi- 
ocrity. A  few  years  however  in  some  degree  recruited  his 
fortunes,  so  far  as,  at  the  opening  of  the  war,  to  enable  him 
to  contribute  three  brigs  to  the  navy  of  Greece.  He  had  at 
one  time  been  captured,  with  two  other  Spezziot  vessels,  by 
Lord  Nelson;  his  companions  after  a  strict  investigation,  still 
maintaining  that  their  cargo  was  not  French  property,  were 
condemned  :  whilst  his  frankness  in  admitting  the  justness 
of  the  capture,  notwithstanding  that  circumstance  evidently 
convicted  him,  induced  the  British  Admiral  to  give  him  his 
liberty.  I  never  met  with  any  man  of  more  unaffected  and 
friendly  manners.  He  seems  totally  above  any  vaunting  or 
affectation,  and  only  anxious  to  achieve  his  own  grand  object 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  327 

— the  liberation  of  his  country,  alike  unmoved  by  the  malice 
and  envy  of  his  enemies,  or  the  lavish  praise  of  his  country- 
unen.  The  bravery  of  his  associates  is  mingled  with  a  con- 
siderable portion  of  ambition  ;  but  with  him  there  seems  but 
one  unbiassed  spring,  of  steady  sterling  patriotism. 

The  number  of  vessels  at  present  employed  in  the  Greek 
fleet  does  not  exceed  sixty-five  ;  of  these  forty  are  Hydriots, 
sixteen  belong  to  Spezzia,  and  the  remainder  are  the  rem- 
nants of  the  Ipsariot  squadron.  The  number  of  brulots  is, 
of  course,  constantly  varying,  but  seldom  exceed  fifteen, 
and  is  frequently  so  low  as  one  or  two.  Of  the  vessels  of 
war,  about  six  or  seven  carry  three  masts,  and  are  of  three 
or  four  hundred  tons  burthen  ;  the  remainder  are  all  brigs 
and  single-masted  schooners,  of  from  one  hundred  to  two 
hundred  and  fifty  tons  ;  the  greatest  number  of  guns  carried 
by  any  vessel  is  eighteen,  and  these  are  almost  always  of 
different  calibre,  in  consequence  of  having  been  brought 
from  different  forts,  or  purchased  at  various  times.  The 
weightiest  are  a  few  eighteen  pounders  in  Miaulis  and  Soki- 
ni's  brigs ;  the  remainder,  in  general,  twelve  cannonades, 
or  a  few  long  guns  of  the  same  weight  of  metal.  The  en- 
tire Greek  fleet  is  as  yet  the  property  of  individuals  ;  and, 
though  the  sailors  are  paid  by  the  Government,  as  well  as  an 
allowance  made  for  the  disbursements  of  the  vessels,  the 
owners  are,  in  general,  subject  to  a  main  part  of  the  ex- 
penses of  those  vessels.  Conduriotti  and  his  brother  have 
furnished  ten,  Tombazi  three,  Miaulis  three.  The  rest  are, 
in  general,  fitted  out  by  individuals,  or  are  the  joint  property 
of  the  captain  and  his  family.  The  beauty  of  their  models, 
and  the  taste  displayed  in  the  cutting  of  their  sails,  have 
rendered  the  Hydriot  vessels  peculiar  favourites  with  fo- 
reign seamen  ;  and  it  is  remarkable,  that  this  symmetry  is 
merely  the  result  of  imitation ;  the  Hydriot  builders  con- 
structing their  vessels  solely  from  custom,  and  by  the  eye, 
having  no  regular  system  or  mathematical  guide  for  their  di- 
rection, and  this,  too,  with  most  imperfect  tools  ; — two  sheep 
skins,  for  instance,  worked  by  the  hands,  supplying  the  place 
of  bellows.  Seven  only  of  the  fleet  have  been  built  in 
Toulon  and  Leghorn,  and  the  other  ports  of  the  Mediterra- 
nean ;  and  these  are  more  remarkable  for  carrying  a  weighty 
cargo,  than  for  the  grace  of  their  models. 

The  number  of  seamen  employed  in  each  ship  varies  from 
100  to  60,  and  their  pay  from  70  to  40  piastres  a  month. 
Their  activity  and  alertness,  as  sailors,  are  already  well 


328  HISTORY  OF  THE 

known  ;  but,  from  the  narrow  circle  in  which  they  have  been 
accustomed  to  trade,  very  few  having  passed  the  Straits  of 
Gibraltar,  they  are  not  what  may  be  called  experienced  sea- 
men ;  and  the  number,  even  of  captains,  who  have  studied 
navigation,  is  so  small,  that  they  have  frequently  been  enu- 
merated to  me,  and  do  not,  I  think,  exceed  ten  or  a  dozen  ; 
the  necessity  of  this  branch  of  education,  being  obviated  by 
their  coast  voyages  and  short  seas. 

As  to  the  discipline  or  government  of  their  ships,  such  a 
thing  scarcely  exists.  There  is,  however,  a  kind  of  system 
which  is  observed  in  a  few  ships  ;  and  which,  it  is  under- 
stood, should  be  adopted  in  all.  Under  the  captain,  who 
has  of  course  the  internal  management  of  the  ship  entirely 
at  his  disposal,  and  is  subject  to  no  orders  save  the  admiral's, 
there  is  another  officer  to  whom  is  entrusted  the  navigation 
of  the  vessel ;  and  who,  in  some  degree,  answers  to  the  sail- 
ing-master in  our  navy.  Next  to  him  in  rank,  is  the  cap- 
tain's secretary ;  who,  besides  writing  his  dispatches,  keeps 
likewise  a  purser's  account ;  and  to  him  succeeds  the  steward, 
who  has  the  serving  out  of  the  ship's  provisions  to  each  mess ; 
and  as  a  remnant  of  Turkish  discipline,  the  cook  closes  the  list 
of  officers.  Petty  officers,  gunners,  or  captains  of  quarters, 
there  are  none  :  and^in,  fact,  as  I  have  said,  it  is  in  very  few 
ships  that  even  those  mentioned  above  exist ;  for,  even  here 
the  same  insubordination  and  want  of  union,  which  has  been 
so  widely  prejudicial  to  "the  best  interests  of  Greece,  reign 
as  universally  as  on  shore. 

The  principal  seat  of  discord  is  with  the  Spezziots,  who, 
jealcus  of  the  superior  power  and  means  which  have  qualified 
the  Hydriots  to  take  the  lead  in  the  affairs  of  Greece,  have 
never  ceased  to  express  their  discontent,  and  find  fault  with 
the  actions  of  these  fellows  ;  nor  ever  yet  consented  to  co- 
operate with  full  spirit  and  unanimity,  even  in  measures 
where  a  consolidation  of  forces  was  needful  to  ensure  suc- 
cess. With  their  own  admiral,  their  own  system  of  disci- 
pline, and  even  their  own  code  of  signals,  their  squadron 
always  sailing  in  a  body,  and  aloof  from  the  rest,  they  seem 
rather  an  appendage  than  a  part  of  the  fleet ;  and  have  never 
failed  to  disobey  any  orders,  or  rather,  refuse  any  requests 
of  the  Hydriot  commander,  which  have  not  coincided  with 
their  own  views  of  interests,  advantage,  or  convenience.  The 
unfortunate  Ipsariots,  on  the  contrary,  with  no  longer  any 
native  land  to  fight  for,  no  national  superiority  to  support, 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  329 

deprived  of  kindred  and  connection,  and,  in  fact,  isolated 
beings,  cast  upon  the  world  and  their  own  exertions,  with  no 
spot  of  earth  which  they  claim  as  their  own  ;  only  struggling 
to  liberate  a  land  where  they  can  again  place  the  remnants 
of  their  families  and  fortunes,  in  some  spot  which  they  may 
yet  be  able  to  call  by  the  endearing  name  of  home ;  aloof 
from  all  faction,  and  swayed  by  no  contending  interests — 
these  men  have  ever  displayed  the  most  undaunted  bravery, 
and  gladly  coalesced  in  every  measure  proposed  for  the  com- 
mon advantage  ;  and  consequently  uniting  themselves  with 
the  most  efficient  body,  the  Hydriots,  have,  in  common  with 
them,  shared  the  envy  and  ill-offices  of  their  countrymen  in 
Spezzia. 

An  unfortunate  spirit  of  jealousy  has  thus  had  influence 
enough  over  individuals  to  separate  the  feelings  of  the  navy 
in  general ;  and  private  motives  of  envy  and  ambition  have 
created  similar  factions  amongst  the  capitani  of  each  particu- 
lar island — places  of  favour,  interest,  ambition,  and  even 
pay,  giving  rise  to  constant  dissentions,  bickerings,  and  in- 
subordination. Amongst  the  commanders,  however,  the  most 
frequent  cause  of  disunion  is  vanity.  I  have  never  met  any- 
body of  men  so  greedy  of  applause  as  the  Hydriot  captains  ; 
and  the  prospect  of  being  the  subject  of  an  ode,  or  even  an 
elegy,  of  being  eulogized  in  the  Hydriot  Journal,  or  mention- 
ed in  English  newspapers,  would  be  sufficient  to  stimulate 
numbers  of  them  to  attempt  any  enterprise,  however  hazard- 
ous ;  consequently,  the  successes  or  advancement  of  one,  in 
proportion  as  it  casts  the  fame  of  his  fellows  into  the  shade, 
excites  a  spirit  of  envy  and  discontent ;  and  whilst  this  cre- 
ates one  faction  of  those  whose  minds  are  irritated  by  disap- 
pointed ambition,  a  worse  feeling  has  produced  a  second  and 
a  most  dishonourable  class. 

After  the  surprising  exploits  and  well-earned  fame  of  the 
Greek  fleet,  it  may  perhaps  appear  strange  to  assert,  that 
those  actions  have  been  accomplished  solely  by  the  brulot- 
tiers,  with  the  assistance  of  not  more  than  12  or  14  ships  out 
of  all  the  fleet ;  and  that  the  remaining  45  or  50  have  ren- 
dered no  other  service  to  the  cause  of  their  country,  than  by 
their  show  adding  to  the  apparent  force  of  her  navy,  and  tend- 
ing to  augment  the  terror  of  the  enemy  by  a  display  of  num- 
bers. Yet  such  is  actually  the  fact,  and  one  which  the  pow- 
erless arm  of  the  Government  has,  as  yet,  been  unable  to 
remedy.  This  circumstance  arises  from  the  ships  being  all 
private  property ;  and  whilst  the  (ew  brave  fellows,  whohesi- 

29 


330  HISTORY  OF  THE 

tate  at  nothing  to  accomplish  their  object,  boldly  face  the 
most  powerful  force  of  the  enemy ;  others,  less  ambitious  of 
honour,  and  more  wary,  content  themselves  with  hanging 
aloof,  and  discharging  a  few  harmless  cannon  beyond  the 
range  of  the  enemy's  shot ;  urging,  as  an  ostensible  reason, 
the  folly  of  risking  more  lives  than  are  necessary  for  the  pro- 
tection of  their  brulottiers ;  or,  if  more  closely  pushed, 
making  no  scruple  to  declare  that  they  did  not  wish  to  have 
their  own  small  ships  exposed  to  the  heavy  fire  of  the  Turk- 
ish frigates,  when  neither  their  own  means,  nor  the  allow- 
ance of  the  Government,  are  adequate  to  repair  the  damages 
they  might  sustain.  Thus  deprived  by  vanity  or  selfishness 
of  the  greater  bulk  of  his  fleet,  Miaulis,  with  about  a  dozen 
faithful  and  subordinate  followers,  to  aid  the  noble  fellows 
who  work  the  fire-ships,  and  who  have  never  yet  shrunk 
from  their  duty,  has  achieved  every  action  which  has  tended 
to  advance  the  liberty  of  Greece,  and  to  bring  its  struggle 
towards  a  conclusion. 

But  it  is  not  amongst  the  captains  alone  that  those  deplo- 
rable feelings  have  been  productive  of  unfortunate  results  : 
imitating  the  example  of  their  commanders,  and  well  aware 
of  the  inefficiency  of  the  Government  to  inflict  punishment 
for  disobedience,  the  crews  invariably  manifest  the  same 
spirit  of  turbulence  and  insubordination.  Proud  of  their 
newly  acquired  liberty,  and  impatient  of  any  restraint,  they 
will  not  listen  to  the  name  of  subjection,  or  obedience  to  or- 
ders ;  and  the  circumstance  of  every  crew  being  composed 
of  different  descendants  and  relatives  of  the  same  family  and 
name,  and  commanded  by  a  person  who  is  nearly  connected 
by  blood  or  marriage  with  almost  every  seamen  on  board, 
gives  the  captain  an  unwillingness  to  proceed  to  extremities, 
which  must  only  tend  to  irritate  the  feelings  of  his  family  ; 
and,  unsupported  by  the  measures  of  an  efficient  Govern- 
ment, be  finally  productive  of  no  other  consequences  than 
further  disobedience,  and  more  widely-spread  discontent. 
In  consequence  of  this,  it  is  not  the  will  of  the  admiral,  or 
the  wishes  of  the  captain,  but  the  consent  of  each  crew,  that 
must  be  obtained,  previous  to  entering  upon  any  important 
measure.  If  it  meets  their  views  of  advantage  or  expedien- 
cy, there  is  little  difficulty  in  its  completion  ;  otherwise,  there 
is  no  power  to  enforce  its  execution.  However,  as  all  par- 
ties are  well  aware  of  the  extent  of  their  respective  influence, 
open  quarrels  are  never  heard  of.  If  the  admiral's  orders 
are  agreeable  to  the  captain,  and  his  measures  appear  ad- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  331 

visable  to  the  crew,  all  goes  on  well ;  if  not,  and  it  should 
happen  that  the  demand  is  negatived,  the  affair  drops,  and 
some  new  movement  is  adopted,  without  dispute  or  useless 
recrimination. 

In  the  domestic  economy  of  each  ship  there  is  consequent- 
ly a  great  deal  of  confusion  and  irregularity.  No  man  on 
board  has  any  regular  quarters  or  post  assigned  him  ;  on  the 
issuing  of  an  order  from  the  captain  it  is  repeated  by  every 
mouth  from  end  to  end  of  the  ship,  and  all  crowd  with  ea- 
gerness to  be  the  first  to  perform  the  most  trifling  service. 
This  is  of  course  productive  of  extreme  bustle  and  confu- 
sion, especially  in  the  eyes  and  ears  of  a  stranger,  and  fre- 
quently occasioned  me  no  little  alarm  ;  as  from  the  shouts 
and  trampling  over  head  I  have  often  deemed  the  ship  in 
danger,  but  on  hurrying  upon  deck  found  it  was  merely  some 
trivial  duty,  about  which  all  were  contending,  such  as  setting 
a  studding-sail,  or  hoisting  up  the  jolly-boat. 

The  only  regular  duty  on  board  seems  to  be  the  discipline 
at  dinner  hour.  The  provisions  of  the  sailors  are  not  of  the 
best  description,  consisting  principally  of  salt  and  dried. fish, 
sardellas,  and  Newfoundland  cod  ;  but  to  make  amends  for 
this,  they  have  excellent  biscuit,  (sliced  bread,  leaven  baked, 
being  the  real  biscuit,)  and  the  best  Grecian  wine.  Mid- 
day and  sunset  are  the  hours  of  dinner  and  supper,  and  be- 
fore that  time  every  mess,  consisting  of  six  persons,  has  its 
little  table  prepared  between  two  of  the  guns.  As  soon  as 
the  signal  is  given,  each  table  is  served  by  the  steward  with 
its  allowance  of  fish,  bread,  oil,  wine,  and  vinegar,  the  eld- 
est man  of  the  mess  acting  as  dispenser,  the  youngest  boy 
as  cup-bearer.  During  the  dinner  hour  the  steward  conti- 
nues walking  round  from  mess  to  mess,  to  see  that  each  table 
has  its  regular  allowance  of  wine  and  bread,  and  during  the 
whole  ceremony  the  utmost  silence  and  decorum  is  preser- 
ved. The  tables  of  the  captains,  and  particularly  that  of 
the  admiral,  are,  however,  much  better  served,  as  at  even- 
Grecian  port  which  they  put  into,  the  inhabitants  vie  with 
each  other  who  shall  send  to  the  fleet  the  most  acceptable 
presents  of  fresh  provisions,  vegetables,  fruit,  wine,  cheese,, 
and  sweetmeats,  and  these,  together  with  the  stock  of  Euro- 
pean stores  and  French  wines,  render  their  living  rather 
luxurious."* 

*  Picture  of  Greece,  vol.  i.  p.  120—128. 


332  HISTORY  OF  THE 

But  to  return  again  to  our  main  subject.  The  siege  of 
Missolonghi  had  been  carried  on  by  the  Pacha  for  two 
months,  without  making  any  impression.  On  the  27th  of 
April,  the  first  division  of  5000  men  had  made  their  appear- 
ance, and  they  were  soon  followed  by  other  parties  ;  but  their 
whole  artillery  consisted  of  only  two  pieces  of  small  cannon , 
arid  they  were  already  in  want  of  provisions.  On  being  joined, 
however,  by  Isouf  Pacha,  of  Patras,  their  numbers  amounted 
to  14,000  men,  and  they  had  five  cannon  and  one  mortar  ; 
others  were  subsequently  obtained  from  Lepanto,  and  Pa- 
tras. Several  smart  skirmishes  took  place.  On  the  6  th  of 
May,  a  body  of  200  Roumeliots  attacked  the  enemy's  position 
at  the  village  of  Pappadia,  which  was  defended  by  2000  men, 
under  Banousa  Cebrano,  and  succeeded  in  dislodging  him, 
with  a  slight  loss  on  the  part  of  the  Greeks.  The  Turks  lost 
sixty  killed  and  a  number  of  prisoners.  They  then  took  up  a 
new  position,  and  were  again  obliged  to  retire  before  the 
Greeks  with  considerable  loss,  and  to  send  to  the  camp  for 
succours.  At  Anatolico,  similar  success  attended  the  efforts 
of  the  Greeks  in  repelling  an  assault.  On  the  10th  of  May, 
the  Turks,  having  completed  their  preparations  for  attack, 
commenced  throwing  bombs  and  shot  into  Missolonghi,which 
the  garrison  returned  with  equal  vigour.  A  constant  dis- 
charge of  shot  and  shells  was  now  kept  up  by  the  besiegers, 
who  gradually  advanced  their  lines  and  position  nearer  to  the 
walls  ;  but  very  little  mischief  was  done  by  the  artillery,  and 
the  spirit  of  the  garrison  and  inhabitants  remained  unbroken. 
Their  provisions  and  ammunition,  however,  became  nearly 
exhausted,  and  both  parties  were  looking  with  anxiety  for 
their  respective  fleets. 

On  the  arrival  of  the  Capitan  Pacha  in  July,  the  Seraskier 
was  enabled  to  press  the  siege  with  increased  vigour.  The 
boats  of  the  Ottoman  fleet  entered  the  lagoons,  and  the  non- 
arrival  of  the  Hydriote  squadron  rendered  the  situation  of  the 
besieged  very  critical.  The  garrison  of  Patras  were  able 
with  impunity  to  ravage  the  country  in  the  neighbourhood  of 
Clarenza  and  Gastouni ;  and  about  the  middle  of  July,  the 
latter  town  was  almost  totally  burned  by  a  party  of  Turkish 
cavalry.  Anatolico  surrendered  on  the  21st  of  July,  the  gar- 
rison of  300  men  being  make  prisoners  of  war  ;  and  on  the 
1st  of  August,  the  Turkish  commander,  apprehensive  of  the 
approach  of  the  Greek  fleet,  ordered  a  general  attack  upon 
Missolonghi.  The  works  on  the  land-side  were  assailed  in 
four  places,  while  thirty  boats  occupied  the  lake.     The  Ot- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  333 

tomans  were,  however,  every  where  repulsed,  with  the  loss 
of  part  of  their  artillery ;  and  two  days  after  (Aug.  3,)  the 
Greek  fleet,  consisting  of  about  twenty-five  brigs,  made  its 
appearance.  So  critical  was  the  moment  of  their  arrival, 
that  the  town  is  stated  to  have  been  on  the  point  of  capitu- 
lating, their  ammunition  and  provisions  being  exhausted,  and 
their  supply  of  water  being  cut  off,  when  a  dark  night  and  a 
favourable  wind  enabled  the  Greek  squadron  securely  to  pass 
the  Turkish  line,  and  to  take  up  a  position  between  them  and 
the  town.  On  the  4th  and  5th  of  the  month,  they  succeeded 
in  destroying  two  small  ships  of  war,  as  well  as  all  the  boats 
on  the  lagoon,  and  throwing  sufficient  stores  into  the  town. 
About  mid-day,  the  Turkish  fleet,  without  firing  a  shot,  with- 
drew, part  of  it  retiring  behind  the  castles  of  the  Gulf  of  Co- 
rinth, and  the  greater  part  making  sail  for  the  JEgian  sea,  in 
the  direction  of  Durazzo.  This  appears  to  have  been  a  feint, 
for  they  soon  afterwards  steered  southwards  for  Rhodes,  fol- 
lowed by  the  Greek  squadron. 

The  Seraskier  was  still  sufficiently  strong  to  maintain  his 
position  without  much  interruption  ;  and  he  continued  the 
siege,  though  with  scarcely  any  other  result  except  that  of 
loss  to  his  own  troops,  in  expectation  of  reinforcements  from 
the  Egyptian  fleet  fitting  out  at  Alexandria.  A  bold  but  un- 
successful attempt  had  been  made,  on  the  10th  of  August,  to 
destroy  this  fleet.  Three  fire-ships  succeeded  in  penetrating 
into  the  harbour  undiscovered,  but  a  sudden  change  of  wind 
defeated  the  project,  and  though  the  brulots  were  burned, 
they  did  no  mischief.  Had  this  attempt  succeeded,  it  would 
have  greatly  altered  the  aspect  of  affairs  ;  but  in  November, 
the  Turco-Egyptian  fleet  appeared  in  the  iEgian  sea. 

In  the  Morea,  the  campaign  had  proved  the  most  disas- 
trous that  the  Greeks  had  hitherto  experienced.  After  the 
surrender  of  Navarino  and  Neo-castro,  Ibrahim  Pacha  re- 
mained there  only  a  few  days,  for  the  purpose  of  directing 
the  repair  of  the  fortifications  and  the  erection  of  a  new  bat- 
tery on  the  island,  and  then  dividing  his  forces,  advanced  on 
Arcadia  and  Calamato.  The  latter  place,  which  possessed 
neither  forces  nor  defence,  he  gained  possession  of  after  a 
well-maintained  fight  with  a  body  of  Greeks.  But  at  Aghia, 
a  strong  position  on  the  mountain  which  overhangs  the  town 
of  Arcadia,  a  desperate  conflict  took  place  between  the  other 
detachment  of  Ibrahim's  army  and  the  Greeks  under  Pappa 
Flescia,  supported  by  a  few  German  officers.  That  valorous 
priest  had  taken  post  at  the  head  of  800  men,  but  150  only 

29* 


334  HISTORY  OF  THE 

remained  with  him,  the  others  having  fled ;  and  the  whole 
of  this  valiant  band  perished  sword  in  hand,  overpowered  by 
numbers.  Pappa  Flescia  fell,  after  performing  prodigies  of 
valour.*  Ibrahim  Pacha  admitted  a  loss,  on  his  part,  of  250 
men.  After  this  victory,  the  Egyptians,  in  advancing  on 
Arcadia,  received  a  check  from  General  Cohopulo,  and  fell 
back  several  miles  ;  and  on  crossing  the  mountain  called 
Makriplaghi,  which  separates  the  plain  of  Messenia  from  the 
valley  of  the  Upper  Alpheus,  he  sustained  the  loss  of  150 
men  from  the  troops  of  Colocotroni,  who  was  now  advancing 
to  occupy  the  passes  ;  but  at  length,  after  various  skirmishes, 
in  which  the  Greeks  were,  generally  worsted,  Ibrahim  Pacha 
succeeded  in  reaching  Leondari. 

It  was  now  in  vain  to  think  of  saving  Tripoli tza,  which 
contained  no  garrison  :  and  orders  were  therefore  sent  to  the 
inhabitants  to  burn  the  town.  Collecting  whatever  portion 
of  their  property  they  were  able  to  remove,  they  surrendered 
their  houses  and  their  standing  crops  to  the  flames,  and  re- 
treated towards  Argos  and  Napoli  di  Romania.  On  the  20th 
of  June,  the  Egyptians  entered  the  abandoned  and  half-de- 
molished capital ;  and  three  days  after,  hastening  to  profit  by 
his  advantage,  Ibrahim  Pacha  advanced  on  Napoli.  Coloco- 
troni, it  seems,  imagining  that  the  Pacha's  object  would  be 
to  open  a  communication  with  Patras,  had  drawn  off  all  his 
troops  to  occupy  the  passes  in  that  quarter,  thus  leaving  the 
route  to  Napoli  undefended.  When  news  arrived  of  his  ap- 
proach, Demetrius  Ipsilanti,  "  good  at  need,"  with  about 
250  men,  hastened  to  occupy  the  village  of  Mylos  (the 
Mills.)f 

*  Pappa  Flessa,  or  Flescia,  alias  Gregorius  Dikaios,  at  this  time  mi- 
nister of  the  interior,  was  one  of  the  most  zealous  apostles  of  the  revo- 
lution, to  which  cause,  however,  he  did  credit  only  by  his  bravery.  A 
priest  by  profession,  he  lived  surrounded  with  a  numerous  harem.  A 
patriot  par  excellence,  he  enriched  himself  amid  the  miseries  of  his  coun- 
try. It  is  some  proof  of  virtuous  feeling  in  the  Greeks,  that  though  his 
military  talents  and  courage,  and  his  valuable  services,  procured  him  offi- 
cial employment,  his  immoralities  gave  general  umbrage,  and  he  was 
contemned  by  all  parties.  Count  Pecchio  met  him  on  the  road  between 
Argos  and  Tripolitza,  preceded  by  his  harem  and  two  pipe-bearers,  in 
the  oriental  style,  and  with  all  the  pomp  of  a  Pacha.  He  was  hand- 
some, and  his  countenance  had  even  an  expression  of  majesty,  adapted 
to  command  the  homage  of  the  people ;  yet  he  was  far  from  popular. — 
See  Picture  of  Greece,  vol.  i.  p.  89 ;  vol.  ii.  p.  136. 

t  Modern  Traveller,  Part  ii.  pp.  219, 238.  i 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  335 

"  Early  on  Saturday  morning,  the  Egyptian  line  was  seen 
descending  the  hills  which  lead  to  the  rear  of  the  village. — 
About  eleven  o'clock  they  had  gained  the  plain  ;  but,  instead 
of  making  any  attempt  on  Mylos,  they  seemed  to  be  only  in- 
tent on  pursuing  their  course  towards  Argos,  and,  for  this 
purpose  passed  down  a  narrow  plain  lying  between  the  vil- 
lage and  the  surrounding  hills.  Just,  however,  as  the  rear 
of  their  line  had  passed  Mylos,  a  volley  of  musketry  was  dis- 
charged by  the  Greeks,  a  ball  from  which  wounded  Colonel 
Seve,  a  French  renegade,  who,  under  the  name  of  Soliman 
Bey,  has  long  been  the  chief  military  assistant  ofthe  Pacha, 
and  the  agent  for  the  organization  of  the  Egyptian  troops. — 
Immediately  the  line  halted,  and,  after  some  little  delay,  the 
main  body  passed  on  towards  Argos,  whilst  about  2000  of  the 
rear-guard  remained  behind,  and  advanced  to  the  attack  oi" 
the  village. 

"  Fortunately,  the  nature  of  the  ground  was  such  as  to 
render  the  assistance  of  the  cavalry  impossible.  They  were 
obliged,  after  some  useless  manoeuvres  in  front  of  the  Greek 
intrenchment,  to  retire  with  the  loss  of  a  few  men.  The 
main  body,  however,  charged  the  garrison  so  closely,  that, 
driven  from  every  post,  they  were  obliged  to  retire  behind  the 
fence  of  an  orchard  on  the  sea-shore,  where  they  had  a  de- 
fence of  three  tambours,  or  low  walls  between  them  and  the 
enemy.  The  two  first  of  these  were  quickly  forced,  and, 
driven  behind  the  third,  with  no  possibility  of  further  retreat, 
and  nearly  surrounded  by  the  overpowering  numbers  of  the 
enemy,  their  case  now  seemed  desperate.  The  Egyptians, 
at  length,  advanced  almost  close  to  the  third  wall.  '  Now, 
my  brothers,'  exclaimed  a  Greek  capitano, '  is  the  moment 
to  draw  our  swords.'  With  those  words,  he  flung  away  his 
musket,  and,  springing  over  the  fence,  followed  by  the  greater 
body  of  his  men,  attacked  the  enemy  with  his  ataghan.  A 
desperate  conflict  ensued  for  some  moments,  till  the  Egyp- 
tians, terrified  by  the  sudden  enthusiasm  of  their  foes,  at 
iength  gave  way,  and  commenced  retreating  towards  the 
plain,  whither  they  were  pursued,  for  some  distance,  by  the 
victorious  Greeks.*  Here  they  again  rallied,  and  formed  in 
order  :  but,  instead  of  again  renewing  the  attack,  they  left 
the  Greeks  in  possession  of  the  village,  and  continued  their 

*  It  appears  from  other  accounts,  that  several  misticos,  which  lay 
close  to  the  shore,  opened  a  destructive  fire  upon  the  Egyptians,  and 
f-oatributed  not  a  little  to  their  defeat. 


336  HISTORY  OF  THE 

march  to  rejoin  their  comrades,  who  about  mid-day  encamp- 
ed within  three  or  four  miles  of  Argos. 

"  The  inhabitants  of  that  town,  on  the  »first  notice  of  the 
enemy's  approach,  had  fled  to  Napoli  di  Romania,  with  what 
little  of  their  property  they  were  able  to  carry  off,  leaving 
their  houses  and  homes  to  the  mercy  of  the  enemy.  On 
Sunday  morning,  the  flames,  which  were  clearly  visible  at 
Napoli  in  that  direction,  told  that  the  Pacha's  troops  were  in 
motion  :  they  had  advanced  to  the  town,  and,  finding  it  to- 
tally deserted,  set  fire  to  it  in  various  quarters,  and  reduced 
the  whole  to  ruins.  The  remainder  of  the  day,  all  was  quiet ; 
but  early  on  Monday  morning  a  party  of  cavalry  were  disco- 
vered on  their  march  towards  Napoli  di  Romania.  All  was 
instantly  in  bustle  and  confusion  on  their  approach  ;  however, 
as  they  proved  to  be  only  about  700  in  number,  the  panic 
soon  subsided;  and  a  party  of  mounted  Greeks,  about  eighty, 
who  sallied  out  to  meet  them,  succeeded  in  putting  them  to 
flight,  with  the  loss  of  one  man.  They  then  retired  towards 
their  encampment,  and  the  same  evening,  having  struck  his 
tents,  the  Pacha  set  out  on  his  return  towards  Tripolizza. 
Colocotroni,  who  had  been  advertised  of  his  march  towards 
Napoli,  had,  with  all  haste,  returned  from  Karitena,  to  occu- 
py the  Parthenian  passes  in  his  rear,  and  by  that  means  cut 
off  his  return  towards  Modon  ;  he  was  now  stationed  with  a 
large  body  of  troops  on  the  Bey's  Causeway,  where  the  slight- 
est opposition  must  have  proved  fatal  to  the  Pacha's  army. — 
Such,  however,  was  his  superior  knowledge  of  the  country 
and  the  movements  of  the  Greeks,  that  dividing  his  line  into 
two  columns,  he  passed  on  each  side  of  the  Moreotes, 
and  uniting  again  in  the  rear,  had  reached  Tripolizza  in 
safety  ere  Colocotroni  was  aware  of  his  departure  from  My- 
los.     Here  he  had  again  established  his  head  quarters."* 

Napoli  di  Romania  presented  at  this  moment  a  scene  of 
confusion,  perplexity,  and  disorder,  not  easily  to  be  describ- 
ed. Mr.  Emerson,  who  arrived  there  on  the  30th  of  June, 
when  the  consternation  was  at  its  height,  says,  that  nothing 
could  exceed  the  melancholy  and  filthy  scene.  "  On  every 
side,  around  the  walls,  were  pitched  the  tents  of  the  unfortu- 
nate refugees  from  Tripolizza  and  Argos,  who  had  not  been 
permitted  to  enter  the  city,  for  fear  of  increasing  the  contagi- 
ous fever ;  and  within  the  walls  the  streets  were  thronged  with 
soldiers,  who  had  assembled  from  all  quarters  for  the  defence 

*  Picture  of  Greece. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  337 

of  the  town,  or  their  own  protection.  Every  shop  was  clo- 
sed, and  it  was  with  difficulty  that  we  could  procure  a  few- 
biscuits,  some  olives,  and  a  little  cloying  sweet  wine  for  sup- 
per ;  the  peasantry  in  the  vicinity  having  all  fled  on  the  ap- 
pearance of  the  Egyptians,  and  no  longer  bringing  in  the  ne- 
cessary supplies  of  provisions  for  the  inhabitants  of  Napoli. 
All  the  houses  were  filled  with  soldiers ;  my  own  lodgings 
were  occupied  by  eighteen.  The  streets  were  every  where 
in  confusion  with  the  quarrels  of  the  new  comers  and  the  in- 
habitants, and  the  utmost  efforts  of  the  regular  corps  were 
scarcely  sufficient  to  keep  down  the  turbulence  of  the  undis- 
ciplined soldiery.  During  the  night  the  whole  body  conti- 
nued under  arms,  in  the  public  square,  awaiting  every  moment 
a  general  insurrection,  threatened  by  the  irregular  troops,  to 
plunder  the  town  and  make  up  their  deficiency  of  pay. — 
This,  however,  did  not  occur ;  and  after  a  sleepless  night  of 
alarm  and  anxiety,  morning  broke,  and  found  all  in  a  state 
of  comparative  quiet.  Every  Greek  whom  I  met,  appeared 
at  the  acme  of  perplexity  ;  and  their  gratitude  for  their  pre- 
sent escape  was  almost  overcome  by  their  anxiety  for  future 
events. 

"  The  Government  seemed  paralized  at  the  successes  of 
the  enemy,  and  at  thus  seeing  a  formerly  despised  foe  ad- 
vance openly  beneath  their  very  walls,  and  again  return  un- 
molested through  the  heart  of  their  country.  Neither  were 
their  hopes  by  any  means  raised  on  the  receipt  of  a  letter 
from  Colcfccotroni,  who  was  in  the  vicinity  of  Tripolizza,  in 
which  he  loudly  complained  of  the  conduct  of  his  troops,  of 
their  pusillanimity  in  formerly  retreating,  and  leaving  every 
pass  undisputed  to  the  enemy  ;  adding,  that  now,  though  his 
numbers  were  by  no  means  deficient,  and  a  spirited  attack 
on  Tripolizza  might  be  attended  with  glorious  results,  he 
found  it  impossible  to  induce  a  single  soldier  to  follow  him." 

But  they  had  still  another  source  of  perplexity  in  those  in- 
ternal factions  and  foreign  intrigues  to  which  the  failure  of  the 
cause  has  hitherto  been  chiefly  attributable.  About  this 
time,  a  French  faction  started  up,  headed  by  a  General 
Roche,  who  had  in  April  arrived  at  Napoli,  furnished  with 
credentials  from  the  Greek  Committee  at  Paris.  This  gen- 
tleman professed  himself  a  warm  and  disinterested  Philhel- 
lenist,  whose  sole  object  was  to  obtain  a  thorough  knowledge 
of  the  state  of  the  country  for  the  information  of  his  col- 
leagues, and  he  soon  insinuated  himself  into  the  good  gra- 
ces of  the  Executive.     A  short  time  only  had  elapsed  be- 


338  HISTORY  OF  THE 

fore  he  began  to  develope  further  views  by  reprobating  the 
idea  of  a  republican  Government,  and  declaring  his  opinion 
to  be  in  favour  of  a  monarchy  :  he  even  went  so  far  as  to 
propose  as  sovereign  the  second  son  of  the  Duke  of  Orleans. 
This  was  merely  thrown  out,  however,  in  conversation,  till 
after  the  fall  of  Navarino,  when  he  openly  offered  his  plan  to 
Government,  promising  in  case  it  should  be  accepted,  the 
aid  of  twelve  thousand  disciplined  French  troops.  Although 
he  met  with  no  encouragement,  the  intrigues  of  the  General 
and  the  French  Commodore  De  Rigney,  still  continued,  and 
every  new  disaster  gave  a  fresh  opening  to  their  efforts  ; 
its  expediency  was  urged  in  the  public  cafes,  and  a  party 
was  even  formed  in  its  favour  among  the  members  of  Go- 
vernment. Mavrocordato,  Tricoupi,  and  the  Hydriote 
party,  however,  strongly  opposed  it,  declaring  that,  were  the 
protection  or  interference  of  any  foreign  power  found  re- 
quisite, that  of  Great  Britain  would  be  the  most  efficient.  In 
fact,  while  Capt.  Hamilton* "  was  at  Napoli,  a  deputation 
from  the  Islands  had  solicited  him  to  take  them  under  British 
protection, — a  request  with  which  he,  of  course,  explained 
to  them  that  he  had  not  authority  to  comply.  The  clamours 
and  complaints  of  the  French  and  English  parties  becoming 
daily  more  annoying,  Mavrocordato  repaired  to  Hydra,  to 
unite  with  the  primates  in  urging  the  fleet  again  to  put  to  sea, 
in  order,  by  some  favourable  diversion,  to  allay  the  tumult 
of  faction ;  but  the  sailors  taking  advantage  of  the  alarming- 
crisis,  refused  to  embark  unless  their  pay  (already  amounting 
to  six  or  seven  dollars  a  month)  were  doubled,  and  two 
months  paid  in  advance.  This  conduct  was  the  more  dis- 
graceful, as  their  wages  had  always  been  regularly  paid,  even 
when  the  pay  of  the  army  had  been  allowed  to  run  in  ar- 
rears. On  the  20th  of  July,  another  instalment  of  the  loan 
fortunately  arrived  to  rekindle  the  patriotism  of  the  Hydriote 
seamen ;  and  they  consented  to  sail  in  pursuit  of  the  Capi- 
tan  Pacha's  fleet,  which  had  been  suffered,  as  already  men- 
tioned, to  proceed  to  Missolonghi. 

*  This  distinguished  officer  has  the  rare  good  fortune  of  being 
nearly  as  much  respected  by  the  Turks  as  by  the  Greeks ;  and  the 
influence  of  his  name  in  the  Levant  is  as  great  as  that  of  Sir  Sidney 
Smith  oace  was  in  Syria,  or  that  of  Nelson  all  over  the  Mediterra- 
nean. By  the  Greeks,  the  Chaplain  to  H.  M.  ship  Cambrian  as- 
sures us,  "  Captain  Hamilton  is  regarded  as  a  sort  of  guardian  angel, 
whose  benevolence  is  as  unbounded  as  his  power ;  yet,  he  has  never 
once  favoured  them  at  the  expense  of  justice,  or  when  it  interfered 
with  the  course  of  duty."—  Swan's  Journal,  vol.  ii.  p.  155. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  339 

Whether  it  was  owing  to  the  loan  or  to  the  exigencies  of 
the  country,  does  not  appear,  but  towards  the  end  of  July 
the  French  faction  was  so  fast  giving  way,  and  the  majority 
of  the  populace,  as  well  as  of  the  Government,  so  strongly 
and  openly  declared  themselves  in  favour  of  British  protec- 
tion, that  General  Roche  drew  up  a  protest  against  their  de- 
cision, in  which,  strange  to  say,  he  was  joined  by  a  young 
American  officer  of  the  name  of  Washington,  who  had  ar- 
rived in  Greece  in  June,  furnished  with  credentials  from  the 
American  Greek  Committee  at  Boston.  In  this  imbecile  docu- 
ment, the  French  Realist  and  the  American  Republican, 
united  by  a  common  hatred  of  England,  affect  to  consider 
the  wish  for  British  interference  as  an  insult  to  their  respect- 
ive nations.  The  paper  was  of  course  treated  by  all  parties 
with  merited  contempt ;  and  Mr.  Washington,  the  soi-disant 
Representative  of  America,  shortly  afterwards  left  Greece, 
under  rather  awkward  circumstances.*  In  the  meantime, 
it  was  determined  at  Hydra,  that  fresh  deputies  should  be 
sent  to  London,  while  Signor  Tricoupi  was  to  proceed  to 
Corfu,  to  consult  the  Lord  High  Commissioner  of  the  Ionian 
Isles.  Accordingly,  the  eldest  son  of  Miaulis,  and  one  of 
the  Hydriote  primates,  embarked  for  England  at  the  end  of 

*  Emerson,  pp.  201,  2.  In  the  reply  of  the  Greek  Government,  it  is 
remarked,  that  "  Mr.  Washington  is  not  the  deputy  of  any  committee  ; 
he  is  nothing  more  than  a  private  gentleman."  Thus,  he  would  seem 
to  have  been  a  mere  adventurer.  They  go  on  to  say,  that  the  document 
by  which  they  place  their  national  independence  under  the  protection 
of  his  Britannic  Majesty,  is  not  the  act  of  a  few  individuals,  but  of  all 
'the  deputies,  primates,  the  army,  and  the  navy  of  Greece;  that  they 
complain  of  no  government,  but  that  they  do  complain  of  certain  agents 
of  some  European  powers,  who,  in  disregard  of  the  neutrality  proclaim- 
ed on  the  part  of  tjieir  governments  at  the  congress  of  Verona  and  at 
Laybach,  have  pursued  a  conduct  hostile  to  the  dearest  interests  of 
Greece,  and  have  endeavoured  to  change  the  form  of  their  government ; 
"  Nobody  knows  this  better  than  General  Roche." — Swan,  vol.  ii.  p.  1G0. 
Ridiculous  and  arrogant  as  appears  the  conduct  of  these  foreigners,  it 
is  but  just  to  add,  that  they  have  not  gone  much  farther  than  certain 
English  Philhellenists,  respecting  whom  Prince  Mavrocordato  is  com- 
pelfed  to  say,  in  a  letter  to  Mr.  Blaquiere : — "  The  conduct  on  the  part 
of  these  gentlemen  is  well  worthy  of  the  liberty  of  which  they  wish  to 
boast.  Can  there  be  a  more  cruel  despotism,  than  that  of  a  foreigner, 
who,  without  any  right,  wishes  to  command,  without  paying  the  least 
regard  to  the  existing  laws  ?  Does  the  first  comer  think  that  he  can 
tread  us  under  his  feet,  or  are  we  thought  capable  of  being  led  by  the 
nose  by  the  first  intriguer  ?" — Blaquiere 's  second  Visit,  p.  84. 


340  HISTORY  OF  THE 

August,  and  General  Roche  soon  after  left  Greece  for  his 
own  country.* 

The  Russian  party  appears  to  have  now  become  quite  ex- 
tinct. Its  death-blow  was  a  semi-official  note,  put  forth  in 
the  preceding  year  by  the  Russian  cabinet,  in  which  the  idea 
was  thrown  out  of  forming  Greece  into  principalities,  on  the 
same  plan  as  the  Dacian  provinces ;  one  principality  to  con- 
sist of  Eastern  Greece,  (Thessaly,  Bceotia,  and  Attica  ;)  a  se- 
cond of  Western  Greece,  (Epirus  and  Acarnania,)  from  the 
Austrian  boundary  to  the  Gulf  of  Corinth  ;  the  third  of  the 
Morea  and  Candia  ;  and  the  islands  to  remain  under  a  mu- 
nicipal government  nearly  in  their  former  state.  This  mid- 
dle course,  it  seems  to  have  been  thought,  afforded  the  best 
basis  for  a  treaty  of  peace  between  the  belligerent  parties, 
under  the  mediation  of  the  Emperor.  To  the  Greeks,  how-  . 
ever,  the  proposal  appeared  both  insidious  and  degrading ; 
and  it  had  been  the  occasion  of  a  spirited  letter  addressed  by 
M.  Rodios,  secretary  of  the  Greek  Executive,  to  the  British 
Government,  bearing  date  August  12,  1824,  but  which  did 
not  reach  this  country  till  the  following  November.  The 
letter  contains  the  following  remarkable  declaration  :  "  The 
Greek  nation,  as  well  as  its  Government,  whose  organ  I  have 
the  honour  to  be,  in  offering  their  homage  to  his  Britannic 
Majesty  through  your  Excellency,  solemnly  declare,  that 
they  prefer  a  glorious  death  to  the  disgraceful  lot  intended  to 
be  imposed  upon  them."  Mr.  Canning's  reply  (dated  Dec.  1, 
1824,)  assured  the  Greek  Government,  that  Great  Britain 
would  "  take  no  part  in  any  attempt  to  impose  upon  Greece 
by  force  a  plan  for  the  re-establishment  of  peace  contrary  to 
its  wishes  ;"  and  that  it  might  depend  on  our  continuing  to 
observe  a  strict  neutrality ;  but  this  was  all,  it  was  added, 
that  could  reasonably  be  required  of  the  British  ministers. "f 
It  was  at  least  all  that,  under  existing  circumstances,  the 
unhappy  Greeks  were  warranted  to  expect,  or  that  the  poli- 
cy of  England  enabled  it  to  concede.  The  object  of  the 
deputation  sent  to  England  in   1825,   was,    therefore,    to 

*  Modem  Traveller,  Part  II. 

t "  Connected  as  we  are  with  the  Porte,"  Mr.  Canning  goes  onto 
say,  "  by  the  existing  friendly  relations,  and  by  ancient  treaties  which 
the  Porte  has  not  violated,  it  can  certainly  not  be  expected  that  England 
should  commence  hostilities  which  that  power  has  not  provoked,  and  take 
part  in  a  contest  which  is  not  ours."  Both  the  Letter  of  M.  Rodios  and 
Mr.  Canning's  Reply,  will  be  found  in  the  Annual  Register  for  1835,  pp. 
56*— 60*. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  341 

consult  the  friends  of  the  cause  in  England  on  the  most  ex- 
peditious and  advantageous  means  of  terminating  the  war, 
and  to  obtain  the  succour  and  support  of  certain  well-known 
individuals,  rather  than  to  make  a  renewed  application  to  the 
British  Government.* 

1 82  *5  *^0  avo^  an  unnecessary  interruption  of  our  narrative . 
the  state  of  affairs  in  Eastern  Greece  during  the  year 
1825  has  not  been  distinctly  adverted  to,  as  they  had  little  in- 
fluence on  the  course  of  events;  but  the  death  of  Ulysses, 
which  took  place  in  June,  and  the  circumstances  which  led 
to  it,  are  of  too  interesting  a  nature  to  be  passed  over.  This 
distinguished  capitanos,  the  son  of  a  Thessalian  klepht,  but 
a  native  of  Ithaca,  had  been  brought  up  by  Ali  Pacha  of 
loannina  ;  a  bad  school,  in  which  he  is  said  to  have  learned 
how  to  play  the  tyrant.  He  was  among  the  first  to  join  the 
insurgents  ;  and  from  his  favourite  haunts  among  the  caves 
of  Parnassus,  he  harassed  the  Turkish  armies  by  cutting  oft* 
their  supplies. |  In  September,  1822,  at  the  head  of  about 
•200  palikars,  he  presented  himself  to  the  Athenians,  who, 
"  thinking  that  they  had  an  entire  right  to  dispose  as  they 
liked  of  their  own  citadel,  re-conquered  by  their  own  exer- 
tions, resigned  it,  together  with  themselves  and  their  pro- 
perty, to  the  ambiguous  protection  of  Ulysses."  The  Go- 
vernment had  the  prudence  immediately  to  confirm  their 
choice,  and  appointed  him  captain-general  of  Eastern 
Greece. J  The  whole  power,  civil  and  military,  legislative 
and  executive,  was  thus  placed  in  his  hands,  and  he  is  said 
not  greatly  to  have  abused  it.  In  imitation  of  his  old  master, 
he  established  an  excellent  police  ,*  and  the  Athenians  were 
at  least  the  gainers  by  the  change  which  gave  them  a  Greek, 
instead  of  a  Turkish  master. 

Such  was  the  man  whom  Col.  Stanhope,  mistaking  the 
crafty  robber  for  a  philanthropic  liberal, — the  despot  for  a 
republican,  was  anxious  to  see   placed  at  the  head  of  the 

*  The  assistance  of  Lord  Cochrane  was  more  especially  pressed  by 
young  Miaulis. 

t  Hence  his  heroic  cognomen,  Ulysses. 

i  Waddington,  p.  76.  Demetrius  Ipsilanti  and  Niketas  had  been 
commissioned  by  the  Executive  to  take  possession  of  Athens  ;  but 
they  found  themselves  possessed  of  only  a  nominal  authority.  Ulys- 
ses had  been  captain  of  Livadia,  and  he  had  acquired  popularity  by  his 
military  exploits. 

30 


342  .      HISTORY  OF  THE 

Greek  nation,  and  to  whose  malignant  hatred  of  Mavroeor- 
dato  he  so  imprudently  lent  himself.*  Considering  the  Pre- 
sident   as  the   greatest  obstacle  to  his  ambitious  designs, 

*  See  Stanhope's  Greece,  pp.  125,  134,  197.  "  1  have  been  con- 
stantly with  Ulysses.  He  has  a  very  strong  mind,  a  good  heart,  and 
is  brave  as  his  sword  ;  he  governs  with  a  strong  arm,  and  is  the 
only  man  in  Greece  that  can  preserve  order.  He  is  for  a  strong 
government,  for  constitutional  rights,  and  for  vigorous  efforts  against 
the  enemy.".  .  .  "The  chief  Ulysses  has  been  a  mountain  robber — 
has  refused  to  give  up  Athens  to  a  weak  government,  and  has  late- 
ly sympathised  with  the  people,  and  taken  the  liberal  course  in 
politics.  He  is  a  brave  soldier,  has  great  power,  and  promotes  pub- 
lic liberty.  Just  such  a  man  Greece  requires.  .  .  He  is  shrewd  and 
ambitious,  and  has  played  the  tyrant,  but  is  now  persuaded  that  the 
road  to  fame  and  wealth,  is  by  pursuing  good  government.  He 
therefore  follows  this  course,  and  supports  the  people  and  the  re- 
public. Negris,  who  once  signed  his  sentence  of  death,  is  now  (May, 
1824)  his  minister."  "  The  fact  is,"  remarks  Mr.  Waddington,  in 
commenting  upon  these  panegyrical  expressions,  "  that  Ulysses,  to 
gain  any  end,  will  profess  any  principles  ;  and  as  the  Colonel  was 
believed  to  be  the  dispenser  of  the  good  things  collected  at  Misso- 
longhi,  and  to  possess  influence  over  the  future  distribution  of  the 
loan,  he  was  obviously  a  person  to  be  gained.  Behold,  then, the  robber, 
Ulysses,  the  descendant  from  a  race  of  robbers,  the  favourite  pupil  of 
Ali  Pacha,  the  soldier  whose  only  law  through  life  had  been  his  sword, 
suddenly  transformed  into  a  liberal, philanthropic  republican !  It  is  true, 
indeed,  that  in  1821  Ulysses  signed  his  name  to  a  constitution  dictated  at 
Salona  by  Theodore  Negris,  in  which  there  is  one  article  expressly  spe- 
cifying a  wish  for  a.  foreign  constitutional  monarch  ;  but  circumstances, 
I  suppose,  and  principles,  are  now  changed.  However,  it  is  not  at  last 
impossible,  that  Ulysses  may  be  sincere  in  his  desire  that  Greece  should 
be  left  to  govern  herself.  The  little  kingdom  of  Eastern  Hellas  suits 
him  very  well  ;  and  in  the  probable  anarchy  of  the  '  Hellenic  Republic,' 
he  may  foresee  the  means  of  securing  that  independence  which,  in  fact 
he  possesses  at  present.  The  Central  Government,  probably  dreading 
some  such  intention  on  his  part,  are  now  elevating  Goura  in  opposition 
to  his  master.  Their  hopes  indeed,  of  establishing  any  degree  of  legal 
authority  in  that  province,  rest  a  good  deal  on  thedisunion  of  these  two 
chiefs." — Waddington,  p.  82.  Colonel  Stanhope  writes  to  Mavrocor- 
dato,  on  one  occasion  :  "  Among  these  bad  men,  the  most  odious  and 
black-hearted  are  those  who  are  intriguing  in  the  dark  to  saddle  on 
the  Greek  people  a  foreign  king.''  Whether  the  Colonel  meant  to 
pun  on  the  Prince's  name,  or  not,  we  learn  from  Mr.  Blaquiere,  that  he 
meant  Mavrocordato  to  take  it  to  himself;  for  he  had  accused  him  of  in- 
triguing in  concert  with  the  metropolitan  Ignatius  for  that  purpose. — 
This  cool  insult,  the  Prince  rebuts  with  equal  dignity  and  temper.  "  I 
have  nothing  to  appropriate  to  myself  of  all  that  he  writes.  If  he  is  at- 
tached to  our  constitution,  I  think  that  he  whose  boast  it  is  to  have  con- 
tributed to  its  formation  ought  to  be  much  more  so  than  any  other.  I 
know  (and  have  even  aD  the  documents  in  my  hand)  that  M.  Negris  ad- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  343 

Ulysses,  in  common  with  Colocotroni,  always  singled  him 
out  as  the  especial  object  of  his  jealousy  and  hatred,  never 
speaking  of  him  without  contempt;  and  in  their  English 
friends,  they  found  persons  too  willing  to  assist  in  propa- 
gating their  calumnies  both  in  Greece  and  in  England. — 
The  breach  which  might  possibly  have  been  healed  between 
the  contending  parties,  was  thus  irremediably  widened.  The 
fall  of  Mavrocordato  was  the  favourite  object  of  the  military 
party  ;  and  on  their  accession  to  power,  it  has  been  seen  he 
was  compelled  to  take  refuge  in  Hydra.  Ulysses  is  repre- 
sented as  having,  in  1824,  offered  to  mediate  between  the 
Colocotroni  party  and  the  Constitutional  Government  at  Ar- 
gos ;  and  the  surrender  of  Napoli  is  ascribed  by  Capt.  Hum- 
phreys to  his  interference.*  It  seems  to  have  been  his  ob- 
ject at  that  time,  to  secure  his  share  of  the  loan,  his  soldiers 
being,  according  to  his  own  account,  in  long  arrears  of  pay. 
By  Conduriotti,  then  President,  he  was  well  received ;  but 
by  the  other  members  of  the  Government,  he  was  viewed 
with  a  distrust  which  was  not  lessened  by  his  requiring  a 
body-guard  of  ten  followers.     This  was  very  properly  ob- 

dressed,  more  than  eighteen  months  ago,  circulars  in  favour  of  a  mo- 
narchical government,  of  which  the  ex-king  of  Westphalia,  Jerome,  was 
to  be  the  head ;  and  I  also  know  that  I  was  the  first  to  combat  his" 
opinion.  Can  this  M.  Negris  be  the  bad  man  of  Col.  Stanhope  ?  I  know 
positively  also,  that  under  the  shadow  of  the  constitution,  several  cap- 
tains do  that  which  the  greatest  despots  in  the  world  would  not,  per- 
haps, do ;  that  they  break  legs  and  arms,  and  leave  in  this  state  of  dread- 
ful torture,  innocent  men  to  perish  ;  that  they  kill,  that  they  hang,  that 
they  destroy  men  without  previous  trial ;  that  they  revolt ;  that  they 
even  betray  their  country.  Can  these  be  the  Colonel's  good  men? 
These  latter  I  have  always  opposed,  even  at  the  peril  of  my  life." — 
Bluquicre's  Second  Visit,  p.  83.  That  this  is  no  libel  on  Ulysses,  may 
be  inferred  from  Mr.  Waddington's  brief  description.  "  Ulysses  is  in 
no  respect  distinguished  from  his  meanest  soldier,  otherwise  than  by 
the  symmetry  of  his  form,  and  the  expressive  animation  of  a  countenance 
which,  though  handsome,  is  far  from  prepossessing;  for  an  habitual 
frown,  and  a  keen  and  restless  eye,  betoken  cruelty,  suspiciousness,  and 
inconstancy;  and  those  who  have  derived  their  opinion  of  his  character 
from  the  observation  of  his  exterior,  and  the  rumour  of  his  most  notori- 
ous actions,  pronounce  him  to  be  violent,  avaricious,  vindictive,  distrust- 
ful, inexorable.  Those,  on  the  other  hand,  who  believe  themselves  to 
have  penetrated  more  deeply  into  his  feelings  and  principles,  consider 
him  to  be  under  the  exclusive  guidance  of  policy  and  interest.'' 

*  Humphreys,  p.  322.  This  gentleman  represents  Coletti  to  have- 
been  the  implacable  enemy  of  his  friend  Ulysses,  who  is  stated  to  have 
been  nevertheless  at  this  time  determined  to  support  the  Government. 


344  HISTORY  OF  THE 

jected  to,  but  no  open  rupture  took  place.  There  was  even 
a  talk  of  nominating  him  to  the  command  of  the  forces  op- 
posed to  Dervish  Pacha ;  but  this  nomination  being  delayed, 
and  his  demands  refused,  he  took  offence,  and,  accompanied 
by  the  Englishman  Trelawney,  who  had  married  his  sister, 
and  by  General  Karaiskaki,  quitted  Napoii  in  disgust.* — 
Soon  after,  learning  that  Goura,  formerly  his  lieutenant,  ha<] 
been  nominated  to  replace  him  in  the  command  of  Athens, 
he  disbanded  his  soldiers,  and  retired  to  his  fortified  cave  at 
Parnassus.  This  strong  hold  he  had  lately  prepared,  in  case 
of  being  reduced  to  extremities.  It  was  a  natural  excava- 
tion, capable  of  accommodating  2000  persons,  and  contain- 
ing a  spring  of  fresh  water.  It  could  be  reached  only  by 
ascending  a  perpendicular  cliff  a  hundred  feet  in  height, 
which  was  accomplished  by  means  of  three  ladders,  succes- 
sively drawn  up  after  passing  them ;  a  number  of  descent? 
and  windings  then  conducted  from  the  small  platform  to  the 
interior.  Here  Ulysses  had  placed  a  few  pieces  of  cannon, 
a  supply  of  small  arms,  and  ammunition  and  provisions  suffi- 
cient for  a  ten  years'  siege  ;  and  hither  he  removed  his  fami- 
ly and  his  treasures,  determining  to  separate  himself  entirely 
from  the  Greeks  and  their  cause,  and  to  make  his  own  terms 
with  their  enemies.  The  sequel,  we  give  in  the  words  of 
Mr.  Emerson  :f 

"  The  Pacha  of  Negropont  had  been  one  of  his  early 
friends,  and  he  now  renewed  the  acquaintance  for  the  pur- 
pose of  answering  his  own  views :  what  those  were  have 
never  been  understood  clearly ;  but  his  means  of  accomplish- 
ing them  were,  at  least,  extremely  liable  to  suspicion.  Fre- 
quent letters,  and,  at  length,  frequent  conferences,  of  all 
which  the  Government  had  due  notice,  passed  between  him 
and  the  Pacha.  The  object  of  Ulysses  is  stated  to  have 
been  the  possession  of  Negropont ;  it  is  at  least  evident,  as 
well  from  his  former  conduct,  as  from  his  treating  with  an  in- 

*  Humphreys,  pp.  260 — 262.  Capt.  Humphreys  states,  that  Ulysses 
was  offered  a  command  at  Hydra,  and  refused  it,  as  placing  him  too  much 
in  the  power  or  at  the  disposal  of  the  Government.  The  distrust  was 
therefore  mutual.  Previously  to  his  leaving  Napoii,  he  is  said  to  have 
been  shot  at  when  sitting  at  a  window  in  the  house  of  Niketas.  This 
circumstance,  if  authenticated,  would  amply  justify  his  "  disgust,"  but 
it  requires  to  be  substantiated.  Negris,  whom  he  left  behind  at  Napoii , 
died  there  after  a  short  illness. 

f  Modern  Traveller. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  345 

lerior,  that  he  had  no  intention  of  attaching  himself  to  the 
party  of  the  Sultan.  Be  it  as  it  may,  he  was  now  declared 
a  traitor  by  the  Government.  Unable,  or  perhaps  too  haugh- 
ty to  give  an  explanation  of  his  motives  to  his  personal  ene- 
mies, he  prepared  to  meet  force  by  force.  Goura,  his  own 
captain,  and  a  wretch  who  had  owed  his  fortune  to  Ulysses, 
was  placed  at  the  head  of  the  forces  in  Attica,  to  blockade 
the  cave,  and  reduce  him  to  allegiance.  Ulysses  immedi- 
ately assembled  his  followers,  but  never  on  any  occasion 
accepted  of  the  assistance  of  the  Turks.  Some  slight  skir- 
mishes had  already  taken  place  ;  but  as  the  soldiers  of  Ulys- 
ses were  daily  deserting,  as  well  from  an  unwillingness  to 
tight  against  their  countrymen  and  government,  as  from  be- 
ing allured  by  the  threats  and  promises  of  Goura,  he  was 
beginning  to  feel  himself  somewhat  straitened  ;  and  gradu- 
ally retreating  towards  the  country  north  of  Eubcpa,  he  con- 
tinued to  hold  out  against  his  pursuers,  whilst  the  cave  was 
left  in  charge  of  his  family  and  a  proper  garrison." 

u  This  was  in  March,  1825.  Towards  the  close  of  April, 
deserted  by  his  followers,  Ulysses  had  retreated,  with  a  very 
few  attendants,  to  a  monastery  in  the  vicinity  of  Talanda, 
which  Goura  proceeded  to  blockade.  Suddenly,  it  is  said, 
on  condition  of  being  brought  to  trial,  he  came  unattended, 
and  surrendered  himself  to  Goura,  by  whom  he  was  sent  pri- 
soner to  the  Acropolis  at  Athens,  the  scene  of  his  former 
power.  Here  he  was  confined  in  the  lofty  Venetian  tower, 
where  he  lay,  till  the  5th  of  June,  when  his  death  took  place 
under  somewhat  mysterious  circumstances.  The  story  cir- 
culated was,  that  in  attempting  to  make  his  escape,  the  rope 
by  which  he  was  lowering  himself  broke,  and  he  was  dashed 
to  pieces  on  the  pavement  at  the  base  of  the  tower.  Mr. 
Emerson  inclines  to  believe  that  he  was  secretly  put  to  death 
by  order  of  the  Government,  but  he  gives  no  valid  reason 
for  fastening  so  black  a  charge  on  the  Executive.  If  he  fell 
by  unfair  means,  the  character  of  Goura  would  not  be 
wronged  by  the  supposition  that  his  jealousy  and  his  fears 
might  conspire  to  prompt  him  to  an  act  by  which  he  would 
get  rid  of  the  man  he  had  treated  with  such  ingratitude  and 
baseness.  And  Mr.  Swan  states,  that  it  was  reported  to 
be  the  case  ;  that  Goura  let  down  the  rope  before  the  win- 
dow of  his  prison,  and  that  Ulysses  supposing  it  to  have  been 
furnished  by  his  friends  without,  fell  into  the  snare.* 

•  The  official  account,  which  is  perfectly  distinct  and  consistent, 
30* 


346  APPENDIX. 

fi9fl  In  the  mean  time,  the  cave  of  Ulysses  in  mount  Parnas* 
sus,  which  was  left  under  command  of  Trelawney,  was 
closely  blockaded,  and  every  attempt  was  made  to  gain 
possession.  Ulysses  had  been  himself  escorted  to  the  spot, 
and  forced  to  sign  a  summons  to  Trelawney  to  surrender, 
which  was  not  complied  with.*  Among  the  inmates  of  the 
cavern  was  a  Captain  Fenton,  a  native  of  Scotland',  who  had 
arrived  a  mere  adventurer  in  Greece  the  preceding  winter, 
and  during  his  intercourse  with  the  European  residents  in 
the  Morea,  had  proved  himself  to  be  divested  of  every 
principle  or  fueling  of  a  gentleman.  He  had  even  stooped 
so  low,  Mr.  Emerson  states,  as  to  orTer  his  services  to  a 
person  in  power  as  the  assassin  of  Ulysses,  for  the  remune- 
ration of  a  few  dollars.  This  proposal,  so  far  from  being- 
accepted,  led  to  his  being  ordered  to  leave  Napoli,j*on  which 

is  given  by  Mr.  Swan  (vol.  ii.  p.  95,)  together  with  the  affidavit  oi 
the  physician.  Mr.  Emerson  supposes  the  story  to  have  been 
"  feigned  by  the  government,  to  cover  their  own  imbecility,  in  not, 
daring  openly  to  condemn  or  bring  to  trial  a  man  whom  they  still 
dreaded,  and  of  whose  guilt  they  were  unable  to  produce  convicting 
proofs."  What  other  proofs  could  be  requisite  than  his  having  ad- 
vanced on  Athens,  at  the  head  of  a  body  of  Turkish  cavalry,  and 
openly  warred  against  the  Government ? — See  Humphrey's  Journal ', 
p.  292. 

*  Trelawney,  Capt.  Humphreys  says,  "  had  greatly  determined  Ulys- 
ses to  leave  the  Turks,  and  proposed  to  him  to  quit  Greece  entirely  for 
a  time,  and  go  to  America  ;  he  could  not,  therefore,  in  honour,  betray  the 
trust  reposed  in  him." 

|  Mr.  Emerson  does  not  name  the  person  ;  he  asserts,  however, 
"  that  the  proposal  was  accepted,  but  a  disagreement  in  the  terms,  or 
some  other  circumstance,  had  prevented  its  execution."  From  whom 
did  he  learn  this  ?  From  Fenton  or  from  Jarvis  ? — Capt.  Humphreys' 
attempts  to  fasten  the  atrocious  calumny  on  Mavrocordato.  "-Whoe* 
ver,"  he  says,  "  first  made  this  infamous  proposal,  an  argument  used  by 
Mavrocordato,  was,  that  Trelawney,  as  a  native  of  Great  Britain,  being 
in  the  service  of  the  Greeks,  was  out  of  the  pale  of  his  country's  laws  ; 
and  an  American  of  the  name  of  Jarvis,  now  a  Greek  lieutenant-ge- 
neral, was  Mavrocordato's  agent  in  the  affair,  and  negotiated  between 
them."  This  Jarvis  (or  Gervase,)  who  is  the  same  that  headed  the  gar- 
rison at  Neo-castro,  has  admitted  that  he  was  the  person  who  intro- 
duced Fenton  to  the  Prince,  but  states,  that  "  he  discontinued  his  ac- 
quaintance on  Fenton's  intimating  a  design  to  murder  his  friend,  the  man 
upon  whom  he  was  dependant,  and  with  whom  he  lived  on  the  strictest 
terms  of  intimacy."  ;i  He  regrets,''  adds  Mr.  Swan, "  as  well  he  may, 
having  had  the  least  acquaintance  with  him." — Journal,  vol.  ii.  p.  102.— 
,  Here  is  not  a  word  of  any  proposal  made  to  Mavrocordato  ;  nor  is 
it  credible  that  Fenton  should  have  been  expelled  from  Napoli  by 
the  Government,  if  such  a  proposal  had  been  for  a  moment  listened 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  347 

he  determined  on  joining  the  party  of  the  man  he  had 
offered  to  assassinate,  and  to  whom  his  quarrel  with  the  Go- 
vernment was  a  sufficient  recommendation.  He  was  accord- 
ingly received  among  the  inmates  of  the  cave,  where  he  re- 
mained after  the  surrender  of  Ulysses,  as  the  dependant 
rather  than  the  companion  of  Trelawney  ;  till  on  the  death 
of  the  chieftain,  he  formed  the  atrocious  resolution  of  ma- 
king himself  master  of  the  cave  and  its  contents,  which,  by 
previous  contract,  were  now  the  property  of  his  benefactor. 
A  (c\v  days  before  he  made  the  attempt,  the  cave  was  visit- 
ed by  a  young  English  gentleman  named  Whitcombe,  whom 
Fenton  succeeded  in  persuading  to  become  his  accomplice. 
The  plan  was,  that  they  should  fire  at  a  target,  while  their 
host  and  benefactor  stood  umpire  ;  and  while  Trelawney, 
unsuspectingly  advanced  to  examine  the  first  shots,  the  con- 
spirators both  made  the  attempt  at  the  same  moment.  Fen- 
ton's  pistol  missed  fire ;  but  Whitcombe's  took  effect  with 
two  balls,  and  Trelawney  fell,  desperately,  though  not  fatally 
wounded.  His  attendants,  rushing  forward,  poinarded  Fen- 
ton on  the  spot,  while  his  confederate  was  secured  in  irons. 
Trelawney's  recovery  was  long  doubtful,  but  at  length  he 
was  able  to  leave  the  cave,  together  with  his  wife,  Goura 
having  consented  to  grant  them  an  escort,  and  in  September, 
they  embarked  for  the  Ionian  Isles.  Before  his  departure, 
he  generously  gave  Whitcombe  his  liberty,  letting  him  loose 
again  on  society,  in  consideration  of  his  youth  (scarcely 
nineteen)  and  the  respectability  of  his  family.*  The  cave 
remained  in  possession  of  the  widow  of  Ulysses  and  her  ad- 
herents.    We  now  resume  the  events  of  the  war. 

to.  Whitcombe,  however,  in  an  intercepted  letter  to  this  same  Capt. 
Humphreys,  after  accusing  him  of  deserting  one  whom  he  called  his 
friend,  charges  him  in  the  plainest  terms  with  being  himself  accessory 
to  the  intended  murder  of  Trelawney.  Possibly,  he  had  been  told  this 
by  Fenton,  who  perhaps  told  Humphreys  that  h6  was  engaged  by  Mav- 
rocordato. Humphreys,  however,  by  his  own  confession,  knew,  while 
he  was  with  Ulysses,  that  Fenton  was  carrying  on  the  intrigue, — ';  un- 
der the  pretence  to  us,"  he  says,  "  whether  true  or  false,  of  entrapping 
Mavrocordato."  This  privity  must  certainly  tend  to  vitiate  his  evi- 
dence. Yet,  before  he  left  Greece,  he  had  the  temerity  to  write  a  vi- 
rulent letter  to  Mavrocordato,  accusing  him  of  keeping  in  pay  assassins. 
— Humphreys,  p.  330.     Swan,  vol.  ii.  p.  100. 

*  Mr.  Whitcombe  has  returned  to  Hydra,  very  little  sensible,  as  if, 
seems,  of  the  heinousnessof  his  conduct.  He  is  said  to  be  an  extreme- 
ly weak  young  fellow,  full  of  daring  and  romance,  and  desirous  of  aping 
the  extravagant  conduct  of  Hope's  Anastasius. — Swant  vol.  ii.  p.  187. 


34$  HISTORY  OF  THE 


The  military  events  in  Eastern  Greece  were  of  slight  im 
portance,  the  Seraskier  having  found  it  necessary  to  recall 
into  Thessaly  the  troops  that  had  entered  Boeotia,  for  the 
purpose  of  supporting  the  operation  of  the  Pacha  of  Egripo. 
in  order  to  direct  all  his  means  to  the  protection  of  his  posi- 
tion before  Missolonghi. 

To  return  to  the  Morea.  Having  failed  in  surprising  Na- 
poli,  the  object  next  in  importance,  to  which  Ibrahim  Pacha 
turned  his  attention,  was  to  open  a  passage  to  Patras ;  but 
the  mountainous  districts  of  Arcadia  and  Achaia,  which  in- 
tervene between  that  city  and  the  plains  of  Mantinea  and  Ar- 
gos,  are  exactly  suited  to  such  troops  as  the  Armatoli,  and 
Demetrius  Ipsiianti  was  able  effectually  to  bar  his  further 
progress  in  that  direction.  On  the  10th  of  August,  an  en- 
gagement took  place  between  a  body  of  Egyptian  troops  ad- 
vancing from  Megalopolis  and  the  Greeks  posted  near  Phiga- 
Jia,  in  which  the  former  were  repulsed  with  the  loss  of  250 
killed  and  thirty  prisoners,  among  whom  was  Deri  Bey,  their 
captain,  who  died  of  his  wounds  ;  the  Greeks,  firing  from  be- 
hind their  tambours,  had  only  three  killed  and  five  wounded. 
In  a  subsequent  engagement,  Ibrahim  Pacha  is  stated  to  have 
been  defeated  in  person,  by  the  united  forces  of  Ipsiianti, 
Colocotroni,  and  Coliopulo ;  his  Moorish  regulars  having  fled 
before  the  well-aimed  fire  of  the  Greeks,  threw  the  whole 
army  into  disorder,  and  300  were  left  dead  on  the  field.  At 
length,  Tripolizza  became  an  insecure  position,  and  after 
the  retreat  of  the  Ottoman  fleet  from  before  Missolonghi, 
Ibrahim  Pacha  retreated  with  all  his  forces  to  Calamata. 
there  to  await  reinforcements  and  supplies.  Symptoms  of 
the  plague  at  Modon  prevented  his  retiring  on  that  place. 

By  a  show  of  clemency  at  the  qpening  of  the  campaign, 
and  the  merciful  observance  of  his  treaties  at  Navarino  and 
Neo-castro,  Ibrahim  had  expected  to  carry  all  before  him. 
Proclamations  of  mercy  and  conciliation  were  made  in  his 
march  to  Tripolizza,  at  every  village ;  but  the  inhabitants,  too 
well  instructed  by  experience,  invariably  fled  to  the  moun- 
tains at  his  approach. 

Disappointment  and  rage  now  led  him  to  throw  off  the 
mask.  Every  deserted  village  was  reduced  to  ashes  as  he 
passed,  every  unfortunate  straggler  that  fell  into  his  hands 
was  unrelentingly  butchered  :  and  he  openly  declared  that 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  349 

he  would  burn  and  lay  waste  the  whole  Morea.*  "  Thus," 
remarks  Colonel  Leake,  "  was  annihilated  in  a  few  weeks, 
that  slight  improvement  which  had  been  produced  by  a  three 
year's  exemption  from  the  blighting  presence  of  the  Mussul- 
mans ;  during  which  an  increase  of  inhabitants,  seeking  re- 
fuge from  other  parts  of  Greece,  together  with  the  confi- 
dence inspired  by  a  government  which,  however  imperfect, 

*  The  Rev.  Mr.  Swan  in  September  (1825,)  accompanied  Captain 
Hamilton  in  a  visit  to  Ibrahim  Pacha,  at  Mistra,  for  the  purpose  of 
negotiating  a  change  of  prisoners.  His  person  is  thus  described  :  "  The 
Pacha  is  a  stout,  broad,  brown  faced,  vulgar-looking  man,  thirty-five  or 
forty  years  of  age,  strongly  marked  with  the  small-pox;  his  counte- 
nance possesses  little  to  engage,  but,  when  he  speaks,  which  he  does 
with  considerable  ease  and  fluency,  it  becomes  animated  and  rather 
striking.  He  frequently  accompanies  his  words  with  a  long  drawling 
cry,  which  to  European  ears  sounds  ridiculously  enough.  His  manner 
carries  with  it  a  sort  of  decision  which  is  the  common  appendage  of 
despotism.  Deprived  of  this,  he  would  resemble  an  uneducated,  hard- 
favoured  seaman  of  our  own  country.  He  was  plainly  clothed  for  a 
Turk ;  and  his  camp  establishment  altogether,  had  none  of  that 
parade  and  luxury  which  we  are  accustomed  to  attach  to  eastern  war- 
fare." The  Pacha  professed  his  high  regard  for  the  English  nation, 
and  was  at  once  most  polite,  wily,  and  evasive.  "  Speaking  of  the 
Morea,"  continues  Mr  Swan,  "  although  he  regretted  the  necessity 
of  his  present  proceedings,  yet  it  was  his  intention  to  pursue  them  to 
the  utmost.  He  would  burn  and  destroy  the  whole  Morea  ;  so  that 
it  should  neither  be  profitable  to  the  Greeks,  nor  to  him,  nor  to  any 
one.  What  would  these  infatuated  men,  the  dupes  of  their  own  imbe- 
cile government,  do  for  provisions  in  the  winter  ?  He  knew  that  his 
own  soldiers  would  alsc  suffer — that  they  too  must  perish.  But  his 
father  Mehemet  Ali  was  training  forty  thousand  men,  and  he  was  in 
daily  expectation  of  a  reinforcement  of  twelve  thousand.  If  these  were 
cut  off,  he  would  have  more,  and  he  would  persevere  till  the  Greeks 
returned  to  their  former  state.  One  of  the  castles  on  the  plain,  he  said, 
had  just  been  carried  by  assault,  and  the  garrison  all  put  to  the  sword  ; 
the  other  was  expected  to  fall  immediately.  He  repeated, '  I  will  not. 
cease  till  the  Morea  be  a  ruin.'  The  Sultan  has  already  conferred  upon 
him  the  title  and  insignia  of  a  Pacha  of  this  unhappy  land  ;  and,  said  his 
highness,  '  If  the  good  people  of  England,  who  are  so  fond  of  sending 
money  to  the  Greeks,  would  send  it  directly  to  me,  it  would  save  them 
considerable  trouble  :  eventually,  it  all  comes  to  iny  treasury.'  "  Sulie- 
man  Bey  is  thus  described  :  "  He  looks  exactly  like  an  ostler  turned 
bandit :  a  striking  vulgar  face,  marked  with  the  small-pox,  (as  if  in 
sympathy  with  his  master !)  is  set  off  by  small  light-blue  eyes,  light 
hair,  and  a  flat  nose.  This  person  was  raised  from  the  ranks  by  Bona- 
parte, and  became  aid-de-camp  to  General  Ney,  for  attempting  to 
effect  whose  escape  he  was  outlawed  He  then  served  in  the  corps  of 
the  Mamelukes,  which  he  organized  ;  and,  finally,  abandoning  his  reli- 
gion for  the  polluted  and  degrading  faith  of  the  Crescent,  he  became  Sulie 
man  Bey,  the  associate,  friend,  and  general  of  Ibrahim  Pacha. "- 
Swan's  Journal,  vol.  ii.  pp.  237,  246. 


350  HISTORY  OF  THE 

had  been  sufficiently  composed  of  right  materials  to  produce 
some  beneficial  reforms,  promised  in  a  short  time  to  effect  a 
favourable  change  in  the  whole  peninsula.  Schools  of  mu- 
tual instruction  and  other  places  of  education  had  been  es- 
tablished in  several  towns  ;  and  no  sooner  had  the  govern- 
ment obtained  the  power  of  taking  the  collection  of  the  reve- 
nue out  of  the  hands  of  the  old  primates  and  captains  of 
Armatoli,  than  the  national  domains,  formed  of  the  confisca- 
ted Turkish  property,  were  let  for  double  the  sum  that  had 
been  given  for  them  the  preceding  year."* 

From  September  to  November,  Ibrahim  Pacha  remained 
quite  inactive,  but  continued  his  station  at  Modon.  On  the 
10th  of  November  the  long  expected  fleet  from  Alexandria 
reached  Modon  and  Navarino  in  safety,  and  began  immedi- 
ately to  disembark  troops,  stores,  ammunition,  and  provisions. 
This  formidable  armament  was  composed  of  the  Egyptian 
and  Turkish  fleets  combined,  and  consisted  of  one  hundred 
and  thirty  sail  of  vessels,  of  which  ninety  hoisted  pendants. 
In  this  number  are  included  ten  fire-ships  and  one  steam  ves- 
sel ;  the  rest  were  transports,  among  which  were  a  few  Eu- 
ropean vessels.  The  steam  vessel  was  purchased  by  the 
Viceroy  of  Egypt,  and  was  formerly  the  London  Engineer, 
Margate  Packet.  This  is  the  fifth  time,  remarks  Mr.  Green, 
that  the  Egyptian  fleet  has  safely  disembarked  troops  in  the 
Morea,  since  February  of  this  year. 

After  the  landing  was  effected  at  Modon  and  Navarino,  the 
Capudan  Pacha,  commander  of  the  Turkish  fleet,  proceeded 
with  60  sail  of  vessels  to  Patras,  where  he  was  joined  by  the 
Egyptian  squadron  towards  the  end  of  November.  Here  the 
remainder  of  the  troops  and  stores  were  landed.  The  whole 
number  of  troops  brought  by  the  Egyptian  fleet  was  12,000 
infantry,  and  about  1200  cavalry,  chiefly  disciplined  Arabs. 

On  the  22d  instant  the  Greek  fleet  was  seen  steering  to- 
wards Patras,  and  on  the  25th,  the  Turkish  squadron  stood 
out  of  the  Gulf  of  Lepanto,  and  attacked  the  Greeks.  But  it 
being  almost  an  entire  calm,  little  damage  was  done  on  either 
side.  On  the  27th  another  partial  engagement  took  place, 
but  the  Turks  being  largely  reinforced,  the  Greeks  thought 
it  most  prudent  to  retire. 

Meanwhile,  Ibrahim  Pacha  having  completed  his  arrange- 
ments at  Navarino,  set  out  from  that  place  with  4000  men, 
and  arrived  in  the  vicinity  of  Gastouni  on  the  27th,  having 

*  Modern  Traveller,  Part  ii.  p.  228—256 


f   * 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  351 

burned  the  villages,  killed  the  inhabitants,  and  devastated  thr 
country  through  which  he  passed.  About  the  same  time 
Isouf  Pacha  arrived  in  the  neighbourhood  of  the  same  place 
from  Patras,  having  under  his  command  a  body  of  cavalry. 
The  town  being  unfortified,  could  offer  no  resistance,  and  was 
accordingly  taken  possession  of  by  the  Turks  and  Arabs. 
Most  of  the  inhabitants  had  made  their  escape  when  these 
infidels  arrived,  but  such  as  were  found  were  as  usual  cut  in 
pieces. 

The  garrison  at  Missolonghi  continued  to  hold  out  at  this 
time,  although  the  place  was  nearly  untenable  from  the  depth 
of  mud  and  filth.  It  was  still  invested  by  the  forces  of  the 
Seraskier,  but  they  had  of  late  made  no  assault,  owing  pro- 
bably to  the  heroic  defence  which  had  been  made  on  former 
occasions. 

The  Greek  squadron,  after  the  partial  engagement  men- 
tioned above,  having  received  neither  reinforcements,  nor 
supplies,  returned  to  the  Archipelago  in  the  beginning  of 
December.  Meanwhile,  the  Turkish  vessels  were  constant- 
ly cruising  between  Zante  and  Missolonghi,  keeping  a  strict 
blockade  on  the  latter  place. 

The  division  under  Ibrahim  Pacha  proceeded  from  Gas- 
touni  to  Patras,  from  which  place  he  sent  the  Lalliots,  who 
were  without  a  home,  to  Gastouni,  which  town  they  now  oc- 
cupy as  their  own.  Ibrahim,  it  was  understood,  at  this  time, 
had  the  most  positive  orders  to  proceed  against  Missolonghi, 
and  as  a  preparatory  measure  had  transported  his  army  to 
Crio  Nero,  a  plain  situated  between  two  mountains  about 
twelve  miles  from  the  former  place.  Here  he  formed  his 
camp,  and  landed  guns  and  ammunition,  and  provisions  for 
the  intended  siege.  The  Seraskier  still  maintained  his  posi- 
tion before  Missolonghi,  with  only  3000  men,  his  Albanians 
having  most  of  them  deserted  him.* 

Great  preparations  were  made,  particularly  on  the  side  of 
the  Turks,  for  the  next  campaign.  The  army  of  disciplined 
Arabs,  while  they  are  expected  to  give  great  efficiency  to  the 
Turkish  forces,  are  calculated,  by  their  hardihood,  courage, 
and  cruelty,  to  intimidate  the  Greeks.  By  sea,  it  is  certain 
that  the  infidels  have  not  yet  obtained  any  signal  advantage 
over  the  Greeks — and  by  land,  it  is  also  true  that  at  the  time 
of  which  we  are  writing  the  Greek  troops  are  fully  equal, 
man  to  man,  to  their  enemies. 

*  Green's  Sketches,  pp.  126—133. 


352  HISTORY  OF  THE 


CHAP.  XXII. 

Commerce  of  Greece,  and  its  productions — The  Morea,  its 
currants,  figs,  wine,  silk-worms  and  forests — Population  of 
Greece — Character  of  its  inhabitants — Albanians,  their 
bravery — Messenians,  their  debasement,  sloth  and  indolence. 
Lalliois  and  Mainotes — The  latter,  descendants  of  the  Spar- 
tans— Anecdote  of  two  Mainotes — Their  want  of  faith. — 
Hydriots  and  Spezziots,  their  character  and  superstition — 
Roumeliotes — -Albanian  dress — Names  of  the  Greeks — La- 
dies ;  their  costume,  appearance,  manners  and  treatment — 
Religion — Greek  priests,  many  of  them  became  Military 
Chiefs — Greeks  want  a  reform  in  their  servants  of  religion. 
Lent,  the  manner  in  which  it  is  kept — Education  ;  Common 
Schools — Greek  Literature — Periodical  Papers — Army, 
how  furnished  and  equipped — Mode  of  warfare — Want  of 
a  competent  military  Commander — Ultimate  success  of  the 
Revolution — Fleet,  and  fire-ships —  Want  of  reform  in  the 
Navy. 

The  following  observations  on  the  commerce,  situation  and 
1825  population  of  Greece,  together  with  remarks  on  the 
manners  and  customs  of  her  inhabitants,  was  written 
by  Mr.  Emerson  towards  the  close  of  the  fifth  campaign,  in 
which  order  of  time,  they  are  here  inserted.  The  thread  of 
history  will  again  be  assumed  at  the  commencement  of  the 
sixth  campaign. 

"With  respect  to  the  commerce  of  Greece,"  says  Mr. 
Emerson,  "  its  exports,  and  foreign  trade,  little  can  be  stated 
at  present;  the  extreme  confusion  attendant  on  so  general  an 
overthrow  of  the  lately  existing  Government  having,  in  fact, 
almost  totally  suspended  it.  The  destruction  of  agricultural 
industry  has  put  an  end  to  the  former  exportation  of  grain, 
and  the  repeated  levies  for  the  army  necessarily  curtail  the 
number  of  artizans  employed  in  the  cultivation  and  care  of 
silkworms  and  cotton.  Taking  each  portion  individually, 
indeed,  Greece  can  never  be  said  to  have  possessed  any  ex- 
tensive commerce,  north  of  the  Isthmus ;  the  inhabitants  be- 
ing of  too  martial  a  cast  to  attend  much  to  agriculture  or  in- 
dustry. The  exports  of  Livadia  and  Western  Greece  were 
consequently  only  a  few  raw  hides,  wool,  cotton  goods,  and 
a  small  quantity  of  corn  ;  whilst  in  Attica  the  pastoral  traffic 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  353 

only  consisted  in  wine,  oil,  and  honey.  But  since  the  open- 
ing of  the  insurrection,  the  distinguished  share  which  Misso- 
longhi  has  taken  in  the  revolution,  has  completely  destroyed 
what  little  share  of  commerce  Livadia  possessed  ;  whilst  in 
Attica  the  convulsions  of  war  have  so  much  engaged  the  at- 
tention of  the  peasantry,  that  little  more  wine  is  manufactured 
than  is  sufficient  for  the  consumption  of  Athens  and  the  ad- 
joining districts.  Its  olive-groves  and  vineyards  have  been 
injured  by  the  frequent  incursions  of  the  enemy,  so  as  to  cur- 
tail the  quantity  of  oil,  and  the  honey,  being  no  longer  brought 
down  from  Hymettus  by  the  Calogeis,  the  exports  of  the  Pi- 
raeus consists  almost  solely  of  the  fruit  and  vegetables  which 
are  shipped  for  Hydra,  Spezzia,and  the  neighbouring  districts 
of  the  Morea.  In  point  of  commerce,  however,  the  Pelo- 
ponnesus has  always  taken  the  lead  of  the  northern  provinces, 
perhaps  from  the  greater  number  of  commodious  harbours 
which  lie  around  its  coasts.  The  more  peaceable  character 
of  its  inhabitants  has  likewise  given  them  a  stronger  bias  for 
industry  and  agriculture  ;  and  the  various  productions  which 
constitute  the  riches  of  Northern  Greece,  have  found  an 
equally  congenial  soil  in  the  Morea ;  though  here  too,  the 
influence  of  war  has  driven  off  the  peaceful  followers  of  com- 
merce, and  her  operations  are  for  the  moment  suspended. 
ilt  may,  perhaps,  be  interesting  to  know  the  particular  pro- 
duce of  the  Peninsula,  which  will,  I  trust,  one  day,  be  more 
i  fully,  and  more  advantageously  cultivated  than  heretofore. 

The  wheat  of  the  Morea  has  long  been  highly  prized  in  the 
I  adjoining  islands,  and  its  culture  in  consequence  is  propor- 
tionally extensive.     Its  barley,  however,  is  not  so  much  es- 
teemed, and  its  growth  of  Indian  corn  has  never  been  ex- 
ported.    The  Peninsula  is  by  no  means  a  country  for  wine, 
'the  greater  portion  of  its  consumption  being  imported  from 
I  the  Archipelago  ;  two  species,  however,  are  admired  by  the 
Greeks, — the  wine  of  Mistra,  and  that  of  Saint  George,  in 
Corinth,  though  both  are  of  only  a  light  body,  and  possess  a 
|  disagreeable  flavour,  from  the  turpentine  with  which  they 
I  are  purified.    The  grapes  are  neither  large  nor  finely  flavour- 
(ed  ;  the  best  being  produced  at  Gastouni ;  one  species,  how- 
lever,  the  "  raisin  de  Corinthe,"  is  extensively  cultivated  of 
late,  along  the  shores  of  the  gulfs  of  Lepanto  and  Salamis ; 
!  where  it  has  usurped  the  fields  formerly  employed  in  the 
raising  of  tobacco.     Of  its  dried  fruit,  immense  quantities 
were  formerly  exported  under  the  name  of  Zante  currants  ; 
and  a  remnant  of  this  may  be  said  to  be  the  only  trade  at  pre- 

31 


354  HISTORY  OF  THE 

sent  remaining  in  Greece.  At  the  time  I  left  Zante,  an  En- 
glish vessel,  the  Levant  Star,  of  Liverpool,  was  loading  cur- 
rants at  Vostizza,  where  agents  are  annually  sent  from  the 
Ionian  Islands  to  purchase  the  fruit  from  the  Greeks,  it  being 
delivered  to  foreign  vessels  with  no  other  restriction  than  a 
small  tribute  paid  by  each  ship  which  enters  the  Gulf  to  the 
Pacha  of  Patras. 

Other  fruits  are  likewise  produced  in  abundance  ;  lemons, 
though  not  large,  nor  peculiarly  line ;  oranges,  the  best  of 
which  are  found  at  Calamata ;  peaches,  pomegranates,  apri- 
cots, almonds,  and  a  variety  of  shell-fruit.  The  figs,  es- 
pecially those  of  Maina,  are  remarkable  for  their  sweetness, 
owing  to  the  attention  paid  here,  as  well  as  throughout  the 
Archipelago  in  general,  to  the  process  of  caprification. — 
Household  vegetables  are  produced  in  abundance ;  the 
markets  of  Napoli  di  Romania,  being  plentifully  supplied 
with  cucumbers,  pommes  d? amour,  spinnage,  asparagus,  and 
every  other  species  in  the  season.  Olives  are  found  in  the 
greatest  abundance  in  every  district,  but  especially  in  Maina 
and  Argolis ;  and  though  very  little  care  is  taken  of  them, 
the  quantity  of  oil  produced  was  formerly  immense.  Almost 
every  quarter,  even  the  wildest  and  most  uncultivated,  is 
covered  with  beds  of  thyme,  fennel,  and  mint,  so  that  mate- 
rials for  honey  are  exhaustless.  Neither  in  quantity  or  quali- 
ty, however,  is  it  so  good  as  that  of  Attica ;  in  fact,  the 
honey  of  the  Morea  is  medicinal  in  its  properties,  and  re- 
quires to  be  used  with  caution.  Of  the  wax,  large  quantities 
are  still  exported  from  Napoli  di  Romania  to  Syra,  but  al- 
ways in  an  unbleached  state.  Manna,  likewise,  and  indigo, 
were  formerly  cultivated  ;  but  they  are  now  neglected,  as 
well  as  the  gathering  of  galls,  which  used  to  be  found  in 
astonishing  perfection  in  every  forest.  The  tending  of  silk- 
worms, though  practised  extensively,  was  not  attended  with 
the  usual  success.  A  mortality  being  incident  to  the  worms 
during  the  spring,  the  Greeks,  instead  of  ascertaining  a  reme- 
dy for  it,  attributed  it  to  witchcraft,  and  left  it  to  take  its 
course  ;  so  that  the  produce  of  100  lbs.  of  cocoons,  seldom 
averaged  more  than  8  lbs.  of  silk.  Cotton  was  never  grown 
in  large  quantities,  but  its  quality  was  remarkably  white  and 
delicate  ;  and  the  culture  of  flax  was  but  little  known.  The 
immense  flocks  of  Argolis,  Messenia,  and  the  valleys  of  Ar- 
cadia, furnish  a  proportionate  quantity  of  wool ;  the  expor- 
tation of  which  to  the  Ionian  Islands,  together  with  the  sheep 
themselves,  and  a  little  wine,  constitutes  the  only  remaining 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  355 

remnant  of  the  once  extensive  trade  of  Pyrgos.  The  forests 
of  the  Morea  are,  in  some  districts,  extremely  extensive,  es- 
pecially on  the  coast  of  Ellis,  and  the  western  shores  of  the 
Morea ;  which  have  long  furnished  oak  and  pines  for  the 
construction  of  the  Hydriote  vessels,  and  large  quantities  of 
vallonia  for  exportation  to  Zante  and  Malta. 

Such  is  the  chief  part  of  the  produce  of  this  rich  and  ro- 
mantic country,  which  even  during  the  most  prosperous  days 
of  fallen  Greece,  during  the  reign  of  the  Venetians,  was  not 
by  any  means  cultivated  to  its  full  extent ;  and  which,  even 
in  the  later  days  of  her  slavery,  has  proved  mines  of  wealth 
to  her  Ottoman  lords.  If,  in  addition  to  these,  we  add,  that 
neither  her  mines  nor  minerals  have  ever  yet  been  even  at- 
tempted to  be  explored,  though  every  rock  and  mountain- 
stream  bears  ample  testimony  to  their  presence,  and  that  her 
climate  is  one  of  the  purest  in  Europe,  there  is,  surely,  no 
spot,  that  at  present,  holds  out  greater  inducements  for  enter- 
prise or  commercial  speculation.  In  fact,  several  English 
merchants  have  already  determined  on  opening  houses  of 
trade  in  the  Morea,  as  soon  as  the  cessation  of  the  war,  and 
the  establishment  of  the  Government,  give  a  security  to  com- 
merce. Patras,  from  its  vicinity  to  the  Ionian  Islands,  and 
Livadia,  as  well  as  to  the  currant  district,  holds  out  numer- 
ous inducements  to  European  settlers.  Navarino,  from  its 
superior  harbour,  is  talked  of,  as  the  future  residence  of  the 
enterprising  Hydriots.  Napoli  di  Romania,  as  the  seat  of 
government,  will  always  attract  a  share  of  foreign  notice, 
and  the  Piraeus  is  to  be  assigned  to  the  ill-fated  Ipsariots, 
where  the  management  of  the  commerce  and  exports  of  At- 
tica may  again  enrich  them.  So  that,  should  the  war  ter^ 
minate  favourably;  which  there  is  yet  reason  to  hope,  in  spite 
of  the  misfortunes  of  the  present  campaign,  there  is  every 
prospect  of  wealth  keeping  pace  with  the  progress  of  liberty 
and  intellectual  improvement,  and  of  Greece  again  resuming 
her  seat  amongst  the  nations  of  Europe,  their  peer  in  internal 
resources,  freedom  and  refinement. 

Of  the  exact  amount  of  the  population,  no  accurate  state- 
ment has  ever,  I  believe,  been  made.  It  has  been  estimated 
at  different  times,  from  2,000,000  to  3,000,000  ;  but  whe- 
ther this  be  corrector  whether  it  do  not  include  the  supposed 
Greek  population  in  the  Crimea,  Palestine,  Russia,  and  other 
parts  of  Europe,  I  cannot  tell.  Of  the  national  character 
so  much  has  already  been  written,  that  little  remains  to  be 
told.     The  general  impression  is  undoubtedly  bad,  and  seems 


356  HISTORY  OF  THE 

to  be  countenanced  by  the  circumstance  of  their  most  violent 
detractors  being  those  who  have  lived  longest  in  close  con- 
nection with  them  in  Greece,  the  Ionian  Republic,  and 
Smyrna.  For  my  part,  I  speak  as  I  have  found  them  ;  dur- 
ing my  residence  amongst  them,  I  never  met  with  an  insult 
or  an  injury  from  a  Greek.  I  have  travelled'  unmolested,, 
through  the  wildest  parts  of  their  country,  without  a  guard  ; 
and  with  a  quantity  of  luggage,  which  in  Southern  Italy,  or 
even  in  more  civilized  states,  could  scarcely  have  escaped 
pillage.  I  have  never  asked  a  favour  of  a  Greek  that  has  not 
been  obligingly  granted  :  in  numerous  instances  I  have  met 
with  extreme  civility,  kindness,  and  hospitality.  Others,  it  is 
true,  may  have  been  less  fortunate  ;  but  when  they  state  the 
Greeks  to  be  constitutionally  unmindful  of  kindnesses,  I  ask 
for  what  have  they  been  taught  to  be  grateful  ?  If  they  are 
eager  for  gain,  it  is  a  necessary  attendant  on  poverty  ;  if  they 
are  cunning,  their  duplicity  must  be  the  offspring  of  a  long 
slavery,  under  which  every  pretext  was  necessary  for  the  pro- 
tection of  their  property  from  the  ravages  of  their  despots  ;  ii 
they  are  depraved  and  savage,  it  is  the  effect  of  a  barbarous 
education;  if  cruel  and  ferocious  in  their  warfare,  it  is  only 
against  their  enemies  and  tyrants,  and  merely  the  natural 
yearnings  of  the  heart  after  vengeance,  for  a  series  of  crimes, 
Injuries,  and  oppressions.  Let  us  only  calmly  contemplate 
for  a  moment,  the  long  course  of  slavery  from  which  they  are 
just  emerging ;  where  under  the  most  galling  despotism,  their 
lives  and  properties  seemed  but  held  in  tenure  for  their  ty- 
rants, before  whose  nod  every  virtue  was  made  to  bend  ;  and 
where  their  families  and  children  seem  merely  born  as  sub- 
jects for  the  lust  of  their  barbarous  masters.  Let  us  com- 
pare all  that  has  been  urged  to  the  disadvantages  of  the  mi- 
serable Greeks,  with  the  causes  that  have  produced  their 
degradation  ;  and  the  result  must  be,  not  hatred  and  abuse, 
but  pity,  mingled  with  astonishment  that  they  are  not  a  thou- 
sand-fold more  perverted  than  we  find  them.  Far,  however, 
from  coinciding  with  this  sweeping  condemnation  of  the  race,' 
en  masse,  I  will  maintain  that,  on  the  examination  of  the  traits 
of  character  peculiar  to  each  district,  we  shall  find  the  seeds 
of  numerous  virtues,  however  slightly  developed,  still  discern- 
able  under  the  mass  of  vices  ;  and  which,  when  properly  cul- 
tivated, under  an  equitable  government,  cannot  fail  to  raise 
the  Greeks  high  in  the  scale  of  nations. 

By  their  Southern  neighbours,  the  Albanians  have  long 
ceased  to  be  considered  either  Mussulmans  or  Greeks  :  their 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  357 

mission  to  Mahomet  the  Second,  and  subsequent  embracing 
of  Islamism,  would  naturally  stamp  them  the  former,  whilst 
their  country  and  warlike  habits  bear  no  resemblance  to  the 
luxurious,  sedentary  habits  of  the  Turk.  They  may,  in  fact, 
be  considered  as  the  connecting  link  of  the  two  religions, 
embued  with  all  the  treachery  and  duplicity  of  the  follow- 
ers of  Mahomet,  but  still  retaining  the  spirit  of  hospitality, 
bravery,  and  minor  virtues  of  the  Greeks.  To  those  succeed 
the  Roumeliots,  the  inhabitants  of  what  is  now  termed  East- 
ern and  Western  Greece,  comprising  Attica,  Livadia,  and 
the  territory  South  of  Epirus  and  Thessaly  :  still  mindful  of 
their  contests  for  freedom  and  religion,  under  their  immortal 
Scanderbeg,  they  cling  closely  to  that  faith  for  which  their 
fathers  bled.  And,  though  subject  to  the  galling  yoke  of  the 
Ottoman,  they  have  still  enjoyed  a  comparative  freedom, 
amidst  their  rocks  and  mountains  ;  nor  have  they  ever  sub- 
mitted to  enslave  their  souls,  by  a  base  concession  to  his  creed. 
Brave,  open-hearted,  and  sincere,  their  valour  is  the  slighest 
recommendation ;  and  the  traveller  who  has  claimed  their 
hospitality,  or  the  wretch  who  has  thrown  himself  on  their 
protection,  has  ever  met  with  succour  and  security  beneath 
the  arm  of  the  Roumeliot  Klefti. 

In  the  Morea,  a  closer  connection  with  the  Turks,  and  va- 
rious minor  causes,  have  produced  a  character  less  amiable 
and  exalted.  The  greater  weight  of  their  chains  has  ren^ 
dered  them  crouching  and  servile  ;  and  no  where  are  the 
traces  of  slavery  more  visible,  or  more  disgusting,  than  in  the 
cringing,  treacherous,  low-spirited  Moreot ;  who  is,  never- 
theless, not  totally  divested  of  affection,  gratitude,  and  a  hos- 
pitable wish  to  share  his  mat  and  humble  meal  with  the 
stranger.  In  the  Messenians,  or  natives  of  the  South-west- 
ern coast,  the  traits  of  debasement  are  peculiarly  percepti- 
ble. It  would  appear  that,  from  the  earliest  period,  these 
unfortunate  people  had  been  doomed  to  be  the  scape-goats 
of  the  Peloponnesus,  formerly  ravaged  by  the  Lacedaemoni- 
ans. They  have,  in  later  times,  fled  to  the  mountains  of 
Sparta,  for  protection  from  the  Turks.  Slothful  and  indolent 
by  nature,  they  treat  their  wives  with  a  want  of  feeling  un- 
equalled in  Greece  :  and  whilst  the  sluggish  master  squats 
at  his  ease,  to  smoke  his  pipe  and  sip  his  coffee,  the  unfortu- 
nate females  perform  all  the  drudgery  of  agriculture,  and 
all  the  weightier  domestic  duties.  Two  singular  excep- 
tions are,  however,  to  be  found  in  the  Morea  ;  the  inhabi- 
tants of  the  district  of  Lalla,  in  Elis,  and   those  of  Maina, 

31* 


358  HISTORY  OF  THE 

in  the  South-eastern  promontory.  The  former  are  a  colony 
of  the  Schypetan,  or  bandit  of  peasantry,  of  Albania  ;  who, 
for  many  ages,  have  been  settled  in  this  spot,  and,  during  the 
reign  of  the  Venetians,  rendered  them  important  service 
against  the  Turks  :  but  in  general  were  as  prejudicial  to  the 
Greeks  as  the  Mussulmans.  After  the  failure  of  the  Rus- 
sian expedition  in  1770,  they  were  joined  by  a  fresh  party  of 
their  countrymen,  who  had  likewise  abjured  Mahomedan- 
ism  ;  and,  though  they  turned  their  attention,  in  some  de- 
gree to  agriculture,  were  principally  maintained  by  their 
ravages  on  the  properties  and  crops  of  their  neighbours ; 
with  whom,  they  never  mingled,  either  in  marriage,  or  even 
common  interest.  Thus,  to  the  present  hour,  they  have 
lived  a  pure  Albanian  colony  in  the  very  heart  of  the  Morea  ; 
retaining  all  the  ferocity  and  predatory  habits  of  their  fore- 
fathers, and  a  valour,  which  has  been  often  conspicuously 
proved  in  the  scenes  of  the  present  revolution. 

Of  the  Mainotes,  the  descendants  of  the  ancient  Spartans, 
much  has  been  written,  and  yet  but  little  is  known  ;  the  diffi- 
culty of  penetrating  into  a  country  inhabited  by  a  bandit 
peasantry,  pirates  by  profession,  has  opposed  an  insuperable 
bar  to  the  investigation  of  the  travellers.  Those,  however, 
who  have  succeeded  in  becoming  acquainted  with  their  ha- 
bits, represent  them  as  possessed  of  the  common  virtue  of 
barbarians — hospitality,  and  an  unconquered  bravery  ;  but 
disgraced  by  numerous  vices,  and  all,  without  exception, 
robbers  by  sea  or  land.  The  portrait  drawn  of  them  by 
Mons.  Poqueville,  represents  them  in  the  very  worst  point 
of  view  ;  not  even  giving  them  full  credit  for  their  courage  : 
but  it  is  most  likely  overcharged,  and  more  the  estimate  of  re- 
ports than  the  fruits  of  experience.  Of  their  piracies,  and  the 
bravery  displayed  in  the  pursuits  of  plunder,  every  one  has 
heard ;  but  in  this,  their  duplicity  equalled  their  courage. 
All  were  engaged  alike,  in  every  expedition ;  even  the  wo 
men  bore  their  share  of  the  toil,  and  every  boat  received  the 
benediction,  or  was  honoured  by  the  presence  of  a  priest. 
Yet,  even  here,  their  faith  was  not  honourably  preserv- 
ed ;*  and,  it    was    no  unusual  thing   to  force  the  absolu- 

*  Of  their  internal  disputes,  the  following  story  is  still  related  in 
the  islands. — Two  Mainotes,  who  had  long  shared,  in  common,  the 
produce  of  their  plunderings,  chanced  at  length  to  quarrel  about 
the  division  of  the  booty  of  a  Venetian  brig.  Burning  with  resent- 
ment, both  dreamed  but  of  mutual  vengeance  ;  and  one,  (Theodore) 
seizing  on  the  wife  of  his  companion,  (Anapleottis,)  carried  her  on 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  359 


tion  of  their  priests,  after  sacking  and  dividing  the  plunder 
of  their  monasteries.  The  piracies  of  the  Mainotes  have 
not,  however,  always  passed  with  impunity ;  and  the  events 
of  the  two  expeditions  of  the  celebrated  Hassan  Pacha  against 
them,  in  1779  and  the  subsequent  year,  are  well  known. 
Even  his  conquests,  however,  though  aided  by  internal 
treachery,  did  not  extend  over  the  entire  district  of  Maina  : 
and  its  inhabitants,  to  this  day,  are  fond  of  boasting  that  their 
territory  has  never  fallen  beneath  the  arms  of  any  conqueror. 
Among  the  higher  orders  of  Hydriots  and  Spezziots,  I 
have  always  found  much  to  admire  and  esteem ;  but  of  the 
lower  classes  I  have  formed  by  no  means  so  favourable 
an  opinion.  The  other  inhabitants  of  the  Archipelago  present 
different  traits  of  character  in  almost  every  island,  as  they 
have  come  more  or  less  in  contact  with  the  Turks  or  Euro- 
peans ;  but  in  general  they  present  the  same  peculiarities 
which  every  where  form  the  leading  features  of  the  Greek 
character — lightness,  versatility,  great  natural  talent,  many 
virtues,  and  all  the  numerous  vices  inseparably  attendant  on 
despotism  and  oppression.  Like  the  inhabitants  of  other 
mountainous  countries,  they  are  strongly  imbued  with  su- 
perstition, which  the  lapse  of  time  seems  rather  to  have  aug- 
mented than  diminished :  they  believe  in  the  appearance  of 
disembodied  spirits,  the  influence  of  good  and  evil  genii, 
the  protection  of  saints,  the  existence  of  sacrifices,  the 
power  of  sorcery,  and  the  predictions  of  dreams.  Every  dis- 
ease in  their  opinion  has  its  origin  in  some  incantation  or 
malign  influence,  and  consequently,  its  corresponding  charm 


board  a  Maltese  corsair,  stationed  in  the  bay,  for  the  purpose  of  selling 
her,  to  make  up  his  defective  share  of  the  plunder.  The  Maltese,  after 
long  intreaty  on  the  part  of  the  Greek,  refused  to  purchase  her  at  so 
high  a  price ;  as,  he  said,  that  he  had  just  procured  another  at  a  much 
cheaper  rate  ;  whom,  at  the  request  of  Theodore,  he  produced  for  his 
inspection.  She  was  brought  forward,  and,  to  the  confusion  of  the  Mai- 
note,  proved  to  be  his  own  wife,  his  accomplice  having  anticipated  him, 
and  disposed  of  his  spouse  two  hours  before.  He,  however,  concealed 
his  chagrin,  and  gave  Anapleottis'  wife  for  the  proffered  price  of  the 
Maltese,  and  returned  on  shore ;  where  he  met  his  quondam  ally,  ap- 
prised him  of  his  loss,  and  thirsting  for  vengeance.  The  worthy  friends 
were  not  long,  however,  in  coming  to  an  understanding.  Without 
arousing  suspicion,  they  went  together  on  board  the  Maltese,  and,  with- 
out much  ceremony,  forced  him  to  restore  the  wives  of  both.  This 
complied  with,  and,  satisfied  with  their  mutual  revenge,  which  had 
proved  a  mutual  gain,  they  again  returned ;  and  as  firmly  united  as, 
ever,  continued,  in  common  their  former  desperate  calling. 


360  HISTORY  OF  THE 

and  efficacious  ceremony ;  though  in  the  meantime,  of  the 
usual  deference  paid  to  physicians  throughout  the  East,  the 
Greeks  are  by  no  means  deficient.     A  few  of  them,  natives 
of  the  country,  have  received  their  education  in  France  and 
Italy ;  but  far  the  greater  number  are  practitioners  from  ex- 
perience.    One  of  the  latter,  a  Cretan,  who  resided  in  high 
estimation  at  Hydra,  being  asked  where  he  had  studied,  re- 
plied, that  in  fact  he  had  always  been  too  poor  to  study  ;  that 
what  he  knew,  he  had  acquired  by  practice,  and  that,  by  the 
help  of  the  Virgin,  he  was  in  general  pretty  fortunate  in  his 
cases.      In  the  dress,   manners,   and   conversation  of   the 
Greeks,  perhaps  the  strongest  feature  is  ostentation  and  a 
pride  of  their  descent.     Lord  Byron  instances  the  boatmen 
at  Salamis,  who  spoke  of  "  our  fleet  being  anchored  in  the 
gulf,"  in  pointing  out  the  scene  of  the  Persian  overthrow. 
I  have  frequently  been  reminded  by  Mainotes  and  M esseni- 
ans,  that  they  were  the  children  of  Leonidas  and  Nestor ;  and 
the  sister  of  a  schoolmaster  at  Hydra,  who  had  lost  her  hus- 
band in  the  present  war,  in  speaking  of  his  birth-place  being 
in  Macedonia,  could  not  refrain  from  mentioning  that  she 
was  a  countrywoman  of  Alexander.     The  appearance  of  the 
male  portion  of  the  population  is  interesting  and  striking,  but 
varies  in  the  different  districts.     The  Roumeliots  are  tall, 
athletic,  and  well-formed,  with  rather  a  Roman  cast  of  coun- 
tenance ;  the  Moreotes,  low,  clumsy,  and  ill-proportioned ; 
the  Hydriots  in  general  inherit  the  characteristic  of  their 
forefathers  ;  and  the  islanders  are  always  smart,  active,  and 
lightly  formed :  all  have  sparkling  eyes;  remarkably  white 
teeth,  and  jetty  black  and  curling  hair.     In  the  islands  their 
dress  is  in  general  either  the  Frank  or  Hydriot ;  and  on  the 
continent  it  is  always,  with  little  variation,  the  Albanian.    A 
red  cloth  scalpae  or  skullcap,  ornamented  with  a  blue  tassel, 
and  sometimes  girt  with  a  turban,  forms  their  head-dress, 
-from  under  which  their  long  hair  falls  over  their  neck  and 
shoulders ;  a  vest  and  jacket  of  cloth  or  velvet,  richly  em- 
broidered, and  cut  so  as  to  leave  the  neck  bare ;  a  white  kilt 
or  juctanella,  reaching  to  the  knee,  beneath  which  they  wear 
a  pair  of  cotton  trowsers,  of  the  same  fashion  and  materials 
as  the  jacket ;  shoes  of  red  leather,  and  a  belt  containing  a 
pair  of  superbly  embossed  pistols,  and  an  ataghan  (a  crooked 
weapon,  serving  at  once  for  a  sabre  and  dagger,)  completes 
the  costume :  over  this  they  throw  the  white,  shaggy  capote  of 
the  Albanians,  which  likewise  serves  them  for  a  bed  during 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  361 

the  night.  The  strictness  of  the  Turkish  law  forbade  the 
Greeks  to  wear  gold  or  gaudy  colours  in  their  dress ;  and 
this  long  fast  from  finery  must  needs  account  for  the  extra- 
ordinary richness  of  their  present  costume ;  on  which  the 
lacing  and  ornaments,  in  many  instances,  like  Peter's  coat, 
concealed  the  colour  of  the  cloth.  A  dress  of  the  first  quali- 
ty, without  the  arms,  cannot  cost  less  than  2,500  piastres  :* 
and,  with  all  its  costly  appurtenances,  frequently  doubles  that 
sum.  The  expense  to  which  they  go  in  the  purchasing  ot" 
pistols  and  ataghans,  is  at  once  ridiculous  and  hurtful ;  the 
sight  of  a  richly  dressed  Greek  being  necessarily  a  strong 
stimulus  to  the  courage  of  an  impoverished  Mussulman.  All 
this  profusion,  too,  is  practised  whilst  the  Greeks  are  ex- 
claiming against  their  poverty,  and  complaining  that  they 
have  not  means  to  prosecute  the  war ;  and  yet  the  worst 
armed  soldiers  must  pay,  at  least,  two  or  three  hundred  pias- 
tres for  his  outfit;  and  the  more  extravagant,  at  least,  as  many 
thousands, — not  for  the  excellence  of  the  pistol,  but  the  rich- 
ness of  its  handle.  The  names  of  the  Greeks  are  various, 
according  to  the  taste  or  superstition  of  their  parents :  the 
greater  part  bear  those  of  their  most  distinguished  ancestors ; 
Epaminondas,  Leonidas,  Themistocles,  Pelopidas,  Achilles. 
and  one  member  of  the  legislative  body  is  called  Lycurgus. 
Those  which  are  peculiarly  modern  Greek,  are  retained  most 
commonly,  as  Constantine,  Spiridon,  Anastatius,  Demetrius, 
Anagnosti,  &c.  The  names  of  the  most  popular  saints  have 
been  conferred  upon  many ;  and,  by  a  curious  coincidence, 
I  had  two  Moreotes  in  my  service  at  Napoli  di  Romania 
called  Christo  and  Salvatore. 

In  the  beauty  of  the  Grecian  females,  I  must  confess  thai 
I  have  been  disappointed ;  they  have  beautiful  black  hair, 
sparkling  eyes,  and  ivory  teeth,  but  they  seem  to  have  lost 
the  graceful  cast  of  countenance  which  we  denominate  Gre- 
cian ;  and  their  figures  are  peculiarly  clumsy,  occasioned  by 
their  sedentary  habits  and  slight  attention  to  dress  :  a  deli- 
cate and  even  sickly  air,  and  an  inanimate  expression,  seem 
their  most  striking  characteristics  ;  these,  however,  differ  in 
various  districts.  The  Moreote  ladies  are  far  inferior  in  per- 
sonal attractions  to  the  Roumeliots ;  who  again  yield  the  palm 
to  the  Hydriots  and  Spezziots  :  these  are  in  turn  excelled  by 
the  Sciots  ;  and  the  Smyrniots,  by  their  more  civilized  man- 
ners and  graceful  dress,  are  much  more  beautiful  than  all  the 

*  A  piastre  is  about  10  cents,  or  rather  more. 


362  HISTORY  OF  THE 

others.  Their  costume  varies  in  point  of  richness  and  fashion 
in  every  island,  but  is  always  tastelessly  large,  and  by  no 
means  calculated  to  display  a  good  figure.  With  the  excep- 
tion of  Hydra  and  the  Ionian  Isles,  their  husbands  have  no- 
thing swerved  from  the  barbarous  customs  of  the  Turks  in 
the  treatment  of  their  women.  Secluded  in  their  own  apart- 
ments, occupied  in  embroidery,  or  other  mechanical  employ- 
ment, they  are  never  allowed  to  cross  their  thresholds  except 
on  festivals,  or  some  other  particular  occasion;  and  even  then 
as  if  it  were  by  stealth,  and  closely  veiled.  Under  these  cir- 
cumstances, however,  the  buoyancy  and  lightness  of  their 
spirits  are  displayed  to  peculiar  advantage  ;  continually  gay 
and  never  repining,  their  days  pass  in  a  round  of  trifles ; 
singing,  music,  and  a  few  amusements,  in  which  the  male 
part  of  the  family  have  no  share,  serving  to  while  away  the 
tedious  hours  of  their  monotonous  existence.  Like  the  men, 
they  are  strongly  influenced  by  superstition,  and  no  under- 
taking, either  before  or  after  marriage,  is  entered  on  without 
consulting  a  charm  or  a  fortune-teller.  Dreams  and  their  in- 
terpretations are  rigidly  attended  to,  and  faithfully  followed. 
For  the  purpose  of  ascertaining  the  quality  of  their  future 
husbands,  the  young  girls  are  accustomed  to  perform  nume- 
rous ceremonies  ;  one  is  to  eat,  just  before  retiring  to  rest,  a 
supper  composed  of  certain  herbs,  collected  at  a  particular 
season,  and  under  the  direction  of  a  skilful  diviner ;  then,  on 
laying  down,  to  attach  to  their  necks  a  bag  containing  three 
flowers,  a  white,  a  red,  and  a  yellow.  In  the  morning,  which 
ever  of  these  flowers  is  first  drawn  from  the  bag,  denominates 
the  age  of  the  destined  husband.  If  white,  he  is  of  course 
young ;  if  red,  middle-aged ;  and  if  yellow,  old ;  whilst  at  the 
same  time  the  dreams  procured  by  the  herbs,  declared  whether 
their  days,  during  marriage,  shall  be  happy  or  the  reverse. 
In  both  sexes,  the  total  want  of  personal  cleanliness  is  pecu- 
liarly remarkable  ;  a  clean  shirt  on  a  Greek,  being  only  to  be 
met  with  on  a  festival ;  and  his  junctanella,  instead  of  being 
the  "  snowy  camise"  of  Childe  Harold,  is  in  general  any  thing 
but  snowy.  Of  the  ladies,  too,  a  French  traveller  has  re- 
marked, with  some  justice,  that  their  linen,  which  is  so  fre- 
quently sprinkled  with  otto  of  rose,  and  other  costly  per- 
fumes, would  be  much  more  benefitted  by  an  aspersion  of 
clean  water.  Vermin,  of  the  most  nauseous  description,  are 
found  in  myriads  on  their  persons,  especially  on  those  of  the 
soldiers ;  and  make  but  a  sorry  figure  amongst  the  embroidery 
of  their  laced  jackets. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  363 

The  degraded  state  into  which  we  find    religion  sunk 
amongst  the  Greeks,  is  solely  attributable  to  the  infamous 
conduct  and  characters  of  the  priesthood  ;  for  the  population, 
though  they  but  too  closely  imitate  the  practice  of  their  pas- 
tors, still  retain  their  veneration  for  their  creed  untainted. — 
Before  the  revolution,  the  Morea  alone  contained  upwards  of 
two  thousand  pappas,  under   the  government  of  four  arch- 
bishops and  bishops,  whose  annual  support  amounted  to  one 
million  of  piastres.     This  number,  however,  was   composed 
of  the  lowest  dregs  of  Greece,  little  preparatory  study  being 
required,  and  a  few  piastres  sufficient  to  pay  the  fees  for  ad- 
mission into  holy  orders  :  their  characters   are  degraded  by 
every  vice  ;  and  the  laws  of  the  church  permitting   them  to 
hold  secular  employments,  besides  their  tithes,  they  are  occu- 
pied in  the  exercise  of  various  trades  and  handicrafts,  through- 
out the  country.     Still,  however,  a  lingering  veneration   for 
their  holy  calling  has  given  them  a  hold  on  the  minds  of  the 
Greeks  ;  indeed  so  much  so,  that  on  many  movements  of  na- 
tional importance,   they  have  been  the  principal  means  of 
awakening  the  spirit  of  the  nation  ;  as  well  on  the  occasion  of 
the  insurrection  in  1770,  as  in  the  present  revolution,  where 
in  many  instances  they  have  embraced  active  military  employ- 
ments.    In  Ali  Pacha's  war  against  Mustapha,  Pacha  of  Del- 
vino,  they  took  an  active  part  in  inducing  and  assisting  the 
Greeks  to  drag  the  tyrant's  cannon  and  mortars  to  the  fron- 
tiers of  the  devoted  Pachalic.     The  late  minister  of  the  inte- 
rior, at  Napoli  di  Romania,  Gregorius  Flescia,  obtained  his 
office,  after  gallantly  distinguishing  himself  in  the  field.     The 
present  Eparch  of  Spezzia  is  a  priest ;  the  archbishop  of  Mo- 
don  has  taken  a  decided  lead  in  many  important  actions  ;  an 
Archimandryte  of  Cyprus  at  this  moment  commands  a  large 
body  of  men  in  the  army  of  Colocotroni :  and  numbers  of  pap- 
pas are  to  be  found  in  the  ranks,  and  minor  commands  of  the 
troops  ;  others,  however,  have  chosen  a  less  manly   line  of 
deviation  ;  and  numbers  are  to  be  found  among  the   baker*, 
tailors,  tradesmen,  and  cofTee-house  keepers  of  Napoli  di  Ro- 
mania.    Still,  however,  a  few  have  not  so  far  degraded  their 
character  as  to  become  a  stain  on  the  profession,   and  these 
are  of  course  rewarded  by  the  esteem  and  reverence  of  their 
flocks.     During  the  present  war  several  have  suffered  death 
under  the  most  exquisite  tortures,   rather   than   disclose   the 
spot  where  the   property  of  their  churches  had  been  placed 
for  security  ;  and,  in  fact,  so  well  aware   are   the   Turks  of 
their  influence  in  keeping  alive  the  enthusiasm  of  the  sol- 


364  HISTORY  OF  THE 

diery,that  wherever  a  priest  is  made  prisoner,  he  is  sure  to  be 
put  to  death  with  greater  refinements  of  cruelty  than  his  com- 
panions. The  Greeks,  perfectly  convinced  of  the  fallen  state 
of  their  church,  are  anxious  for  a  reform  among  its  servants; 
with  whom,  though  they  are  thoroughly  disgusted,  they  still 
retain  a  high  veneration  for  the  rules  and  tenets  of  their  faith. 
For  this  reason  the  exhorbitant  exactions  of  the  priests  are 
always  complied  with,  because  demanded  in  the  name,  and 
for  the  service  of  the  church  ;  and  the  fasts  ordained  by  its 
orders,  are  observed  with  the  utmost  rigour.  Frequently,  in 
crossing  the  Morea,  when  we  have  offered  a  share  of  our 
provisions  to  our  hungry  conductors,  no  intreaties  could  pre- 
vail on  them  to  partake  with  us.  During  those  frequent 
Lents,  the  food  is  of  the  lowest  description,  bread,  olives,  and 
snails  ;  fish  being  too  dear  or  too  difficult  to  procure  for  the 
lower  orders  to  purchase  in  the  interior  :  dispensations,  how- 
ever, are  to  be  purchased,  but  at  such  a  high  rate  as  to  place 
them  out  of  the  reach  of  the  inferior  ranks.  Among  all 
classes  the  most  happy  ignorance  of  the  tenets  of  their  creed 
prevails  ;  and  though  some  tracts  and  testaments  lately  dis- 
tributed among  them,  were  eagerly  perused,  it  was  more  as 
a  matter  of  curious  novelty  than  of  eternal  interest. 

Education  is,  as  may  be  supposed,  at  a  very  low  ebb  ;  the 
number  of  the  lower  orders  who  can  read,  being  very  small 
indeed  :  schools,  it  is  true,  are  established  in  many  of  the 
villages,  but  their  system  is  not  much  to  be  approved,  though 
somewhat  approaching  to  that  of  mutual  instruction.  All  the 
scholars,  as  they  come  in,  seat  themselves  on  the  floor,  leav- 
ing their  shoes  outside  the  door,  and  commence  reading 
aloud  at  the  same  moment  from  different  books ;  whilst  one 
placed  in  the  centre  to  observe  their  eyes  and  tongues,  applies 
a  cane  to  the  soles  of  their  feet,  as  often  as  either  are  un- 
employed. In  the  meantime,  the  office  of  the  master,  who 
occupies  one  corner  of  the  room,  is  merely  to  see  that  the  noise 
is  sustained  loudly,  and  without  intermission  ;  to  second  the 
duties  of  the  monitor,  and  to  keep  the  attention  of  a  few  ad- 
vanced pupils  steady,  whilst  performing  their  office,  in  in- 
structing the  beginners  in  the  alphabet.  As  to  the  language 
of  the  modern  Greeks,  it  has  certainly  suffered  considerable 
alterations  ;  but  principally  in  the  accents,  and  the  pronun- 
ciation of  the  diphthongs  and  consonants,  as  well  as  by  a  slight 
admission  of  the  Turkish  and  Italian  words:  nevertheless,  one 
who  is  acquainted  with  the  ancient  Greek,  will  find  no  diffi- 
culty, after  a  slight  attention  to  the  modern  pronunciation,  in 
speaking  the  language  with  fluency  in  a  few  months. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  365 

Modern  Greek  literature  is  neither  extensive  nor  interest- 
ing, but  after  the  specimens  and  details  already  given  by 
Lord  Byron  and  Captain  Leake,  it  would  be  needless  to  dwell 
on  it  here.  Their  prose  consists  of  a  vast  quantity  of  theolo- 
gy, a  few  works  on  geography,  grammar,  rhetoric,  and  phi- 
lology, and  a  number  of  late  translations  from  European  au- 
thors in  various  departments  ;  their  poetry  is  neither  spirited 
nor  musical,  consisting  of  some  translations  of  Homer,  a  few 
dramatic  pieces,  and  some  satires.  Their  songs  are  of  two 
kinds,  kleftic  and  erotic ;  of  the  former,  the  most  admired 
are  those  of  Riga,  and  a  few  Cretan  Ballads  ;  and  of  the 
erotic,  or  amatory,  the  most  popular  are  the  songs  of  Chris- 
topuolo,  who  has  been  denominated  the  modern  Anacreon  ; 
but  his  lines,  though  extremely  pretty  in  their  measures,  are, 
in  general,  almost  untranslateable,  as  containing  little  point 
or  striking  ideas. 

As  to  the  periodical  press,  three  Journals  are  at  present 
published  in  Greece  ;  one  at  Missolonghi,  another  at  Athens, 
and  a  third  at  Hydra  ;  but  though  of  growing  and  important 
advantages,  their  usefulness  is  at  the  present  moment  neces- 
sarily curtailed  ;  the  details  of  the  war  occupying  the  greater 
portion  of  their  pages  :  and  even  these,  owing  to  the  total 
want  of  active  communication  from  different  quarters  of  the 
country,  are  seldom  either  collected  or  disseminated  by  the 
press,  till  already  circulated  by  verbal  report.  The  estab- 
lishment of  a  post,  and  the  extensive  influence  of  schools  and 
education,  must  first  be  accomplished,  before  the  blessings  of 
the  press  can  be  fully  felt ;  at  present,  the  greater  portion  of 
the  impressions  of  the  "  Hydriot  Journal,"  are  circulated  in 
the  Ionian  Islands  and  Europe  ;  verv  few  of  the  number  of 
this,  or  the  other  journals,  being  read  in  the  country.  Active 
measures  must  also  be  taken  by  the  friends  of  a  free  press,  to 
ensure  its  liberty  ;  even  in  Greece,  at  this  moment,  its  privi- 
leges are  infringed.  The  editor  of  the  "  Athenian  Gazette" 
has  been  already  cautioned  by  the  Government,  for  the  free- 
dom of  his  censure  in  some  articles  :  and  the  editor  of 
the  "  Hydriot  Friend  of  the  Law,"  is  at  present  obliged 
to  read  over,  and  submit  to  the  corrections  of  Lazzaro  Con- 
duriotti,  the  president  of  the  Hydriot  senate,  every  number 
previous  to  its  being  put  to  press.  Fortunately,  however,  the 
editor  is  fully  apprized  of  the  extent  of  the  president's  erudi- 
tion, and  when  desirous  to  introduce  a  few  sentiments  more 
liberal  than  usual,  has  only  to  insert  a  number  of  Hellenic 
words;  rather  than  betray  his  ignorance  of  which,  Lazzaro 
32 


366  HISTORY  OF  THE 

allows  the  article  to  pass.  As  to  the  Grecian  army,  the  habits 
of  the  body  who  compose  it,  and  the  system  by  which  it  is 
regulated,  are  equally  singular.  Its  commanders  or  capitani 
are  such  landholders,  or  others,  as  possess  a  sufficient  sum  to 
maintain  from  10  to  150  soldiers,  and  adequate  interest  to 
procure  a  commission  for  embodying  them.  These  leaders, 
however,  are  in  general  the  most  despicable  and  the  worst 
enemies  of  their  country ;  making  their  rank  and  interest 
merely  the  instruments  of  their  avarice.  The  number  of 
troops  in  the  Morea,  for  whom  the  Government  issue  pay  and 
rations,  is  stated  to  be,  in  general,  about  25,000  ;  but  I  do 
not  believe,  from  all  that  I  can  learn,  that  in  any  instance 
they  have  equalled  the  half  of  that  number  ;  the  capitani 
making  their  returns  to  the  extent  of  their  credit,  and  in 
general  pocketing  one  half  of  the  demanded  sum.  So  that  a 
man  who  claims  pay  for  150  soldiers,  cannot  perhaps  bring 
eighty  into  the  field.  Of  this  system  of  fraud  the  Govern- 
ment are  well  aware  ;  but,  in  the  present  state  of  affairs,  they 
are  so  much  in  the  power  of  the  capitani,  that  no  compulsive 
measures  dare  be  taken  to  produce  a  reform.  Each  soldier, 
or  palikari,  on  joining  his  capitan,is  expected  to  come  furnish- 
ed with  his  arms  and  capote  :  the  former  usually  consist  of  a 
pair  of  pistols,  an  ataghan,  a  tophaic,  or  long  gun,  and  some- 
times a  sabre.  They  are,  however,  bound  by  no  laws  or  mili- 
tary regulations,  and  merely  follow  or  obey  a  leader,  as  long 
as  well  paid  or  comfortable  in  his  service ;  he  having  no  pow- 
er to  enforce  obedience  during  his  almost  nominal  command, 
or  to  compel  his  soldiers,  beyond  the  limit,  of  their  pleasure, 
to  remain  under  his  orders.  It  is  no  unusual  thing  for  the 
company  of  a  capitan  to  assemble  round  his  quarters,  for  the 
purpose  of  tumultuously  demanding,  and  enforcing  by  the 
bastinado,  an  increase  or  arrears  of  pay  ;  or,  on  the  eve  of  an 
important  movement,  to  find  that  his  soldiers  have  gone  off 
during  the  night,  to  attend  to  the  safety  of  their  families,  or 
the  celebration  of  a  festival.  As  to  their  conduct  in  the  field, 
they  will  never  oppose  an  enemy,  unless  obliged  by  necessity, 
without  the  shelter  of  their  tambours  or  low  trenches  ;  or 
without  crouching  behind  a  rock,  from  whence  they  can  have 
protected  aim  at  their  foe.  The  Turks  too,  have  something 
of  the  same  system  in  their  irregular  warfare ;  and  before 
the  introductton  of  regular  troops  into  the  Morea,  a  battle 
must  have  presented  a  novel  spectacle,  where  not  a  soul  of 
either  army  was  distinctly  visible.  Thus,  screened  behind  a 
Stone,  they  lie  in  wait  to  catch  the  first  moment  when  an 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  367 

enemy  shall  expose  himself,  or  placing  their  scalpae,  or  skull- 
cap, on  an  adjoining  rock  to  decoy  the  Turk,  take  an  advan- 
tageous aim  at  him  whilst  he  is  wasting  his  powder  on  the 
empty  head-dress  of  his  enemy.  When  the  Greek  has  thus 
thinned  all  within  his  range,  and  wishes  to  change  his  posi- 
tion, he  watches  for  the  favourable  movement,  when,  snatching 
up  his  gun,  he  nimbly  skips  to  the  adjoining  rock,  flashing 
his  shining  ataghan  before  him  in  the  sun-beams,  to  dazzle 
the  aim  of  his  surrounding  enemies  ;  and  here  crouching  on 
the  ground  and  placing  his  cap  as  usual,  he  recommences  his 
operations.  Amongst  the  Turks  who  resided  in  the  Morea, 
all  were  not  so  desperately  bad  as  are  supposed,  and  some 
f^ew  have  even  gained  the  affections  of  the  Greeks.  It  not 
unfrequently  occurs  that  two  old  neighbours  meet  in  one  of 
those  singular  encounters,  when,  rising  from  their  screens, 
they  hold  a  parley  on  their  own  affairs  :  and  again  part  to  re- 
sume, at  their  posts,  their  mutual  slaughter  of  their  friend's 
companions.  Such  scenes  serve  to  keep  in  countenance 
Homer's  description  of  the  dialogues  of  his  contending  heroes; 
but,  in  fact,  instances  of  ancient  manners  are  to  be  met  with 
every  hour,  and  at  every  step  something  occurs  to  remind  us 
that  we  are  in  Greece.  The  language,  the  customs,  the  ver- 
satility, the  turbulence,  the  superstition,  are  all  the  same  as  in 
the  days  of  Demosthenes.  Even  the  dress  seems  to  have 
undergone  scarcely  any  alteration  ;  they  have  still  the  long 
flowing  hair ;  the  junctanella,  the  machaira  or  short  knife, 
and  the  embroidered  greaves.  But,  in  fact,  as  a  comparison, 
I  know  none  more  lively  or  more  true  than  the  picture  drawn 
by  Mr.  Hope  ;  and  I  may  be  pardoned  for  summing  up  this 
hasty  sketch  with  an  extract  from  the  well-known,  and  equal- 
ly admired  **  Anastasius." 

"  Manoyeni  looked  thoughtful.  After  a  little  pause,  '  You 
mistake,  Anastasius,'  replied  he,  '  in  thinking  the  Greek  of 
Constantinople  different  from  the  Greek  of  Chios :  our  nation 
is  every  where  the  same  ;  the  same  at  Petersburgh  as  at 
Cairo  ;  the  same  now  as  it  was  20  centuries  ago.'  I  stared 
in  my  turn.  '  What  I  say,'  continued  my  master,  *  is  per- 
fectly true.  The  complexion  of  the  modern  Greek  may  re- 
ceive a  different  cast  from  different  surrounding  objects  ;  the 
core  still  is  the  same  as  in  the  days  of  Pericles.  Credulity, 
versatility,  and  thirst  of  distinctions,  from  the  earliest  period 
formed,  and  still  form,  and  ever  will  continue  to  form,  the  basis 
of  the  Greek  character ;  and  the  dissimilarity  in  the  external 
appearance  of  the  nation  arises,  not  from  any  radical  change 


368  HISTORY  OF  THE 

in  its  temper  and  disposition,  but  only  in  the  incidental  varia- 
tion in  the  means  through  which  the  same  propensities  are  to 
be  gratified.  The  ancient  Greeks  worshipped  an  hundred 
gods ;  the  modern  Greeks  adore  as  many  saints.  The  an- 
cient Greeks  believed  in  oracles  and  prodigies,  in  incantations 
and  spells ;  the  modern  Greeks  have  faith  in  amulets  and 
divinations.  The  ancient  Greeks  brought  rich  offerings  and 
gifts  to  the  shrines  of  their  deities,  for  the  purpose  of  obtain- 
ing success  in  war,  and  pre-eminence  in  peace  ;  the  modern 
Greeks  hangup  dirty  rags  round  the  sanctuaries  of  their  saints, 
to  shake  off  an  ague,  or  propitiate  a  mistress.  The  former 
were  staunch  patriots  at  home,  and  subtle  courtiers  in  Per- 
sia; the  latter  defy  the  Turks  in  Maina,  and  fawn  upon 
them  in  the  Fanar.  Besides,  was  not  every  commonwealth 
of  ancient  Greece  as  much  a  prey  to  cabals  and  factions  as 
every  community  of  modern  Greece?  Does  not  every  modern 
Greek  preserve  the  same  desire  for  supremacy,  the  same 
readiness  to  undermine,  by  every  means,  fair  or  foul,  his 
competitors,  which  was  displayed  by  his  ancestors  1  Do  not 
the  Turks  of  the  present  day  resemble  the  Romans  of  past 
ages  in  their  respect  for  the  ingenuity,  and,  at  the  same  time, 
in  their  contempt  for  the  character,  of  their  Greek  subjects  ? 
And  does  the  Greek  of  the  Fanar  show  the  least  inferiority  to 
the  Greek  of  the  Piraeus  in  quickness  of  perception,  in  fluency 
of  tongue,  and  in  fondness  for  quibbles,  for  disputation,  and 
for  sophistry  ?  Believe  me,  the  very  difference  between  the 
Greeks  of  times  past,  and  the  present  day,  arises  from  their 
thorough  resemblance,  and  from  that  pliability  of  temper  and 
of  faculties  in  both,  which  has  ever  made  them  receive,  with 
equal  readiness,  the  impression  of  every  mould,  and  the  im- 
pulse of  every  agent.  When  patriotism,  public  spirit,  and 
pre-eminence  in  arts,  science,  literature,  and  warfare,  were 
the  road  to  distinction,  the  Greeks  shone  the  first  of  patriots, 
of  heroes,  of  painters,  of  poets,  and  of  philosophers ;  now  tha  t 
craft  and  subtil ty,  adulation  and  intrigue,  are  the  only  path 
to  greatness,  these  same  Greeks  are — what  you  see  them.' " 
Perhaps  the  most  singular  feature  in  the  Greek  revolution 
k,  that  during  the  five  years  which  it  has  now  been  proceed- 
ing, it  has  produced  no  one  man  of  sufficient  talent  to  take 
either  a  civil  or  a  military  lead  in  its  affairs.  In  consequence 
of  this,  the  councils  of  its  armies  and  its  legislature  are  com- 
posed of  men  of  mediocre  talent,  and  are  filled  with  intrigue, 
with  faction,  and  disunion  ;  whence,  of  course,  the  most  dis- 
astrous consequences  have  ensued.     To  go  no  farther  back 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  369 

than  the  present  year,  those  quarrels,  and  their  results,  have 
been  the  cause  that  the  fortress  of  Patras  is  still  in  the  hands 
of  the  enemy.  The  necessity  of  retaining  all  their  forces  for 
its  reduction,  in  the  beginning  of  the  campaign,  after  the 
rebellion  of  the  Moreots  had  prevented  its  capture  during  the 
winter,  was  the  cause  of  the  absence  of  the  fleet,  at  the  mo- 
ment when  the  Egyptians  made  their  unmolested  debarkations 
at  Navarino.  Late  in  the  summer,  the  discussion  of  the  Rou- 
meliots  and  Moreots  occasioned  the  departure  of  the  former 
from  Navarino,  at  a  moment  when  their  presence  was  of  ma- 
terial service  in  crippling  the  attempts  of  the  enemy  on  the 
fortress ;  and  was,  doubtless,  instrumental  in  hastening  its 
fall.'  Add  to  this,  the  lives  lost  and  the  resources  expended 
in  quelling  the  insurrection  in  the  winter,  the  confusion  and 
disunion  occasioned  by  the  late  factions  of  the  French  party 
in  the  Government,  and  the  spirit  of  animosity  which  such 
scenes  must  ever  foment, — and  we  have  imagined  but  a  part 
of  its  effects  during  one  year. 

In  this  scene  of  envious  emulation,  every  one  endeavouring 
to  curtail  the  usefulness  of  his  fellows,  and  raise  himself  to 
the  head  of  the  legislature,  the  eagerness  with  which  the 
members  of  the  Government  have  sought  after  popularity, 
has  necessarily  obliged  them  to  compromise  their  own  impor- 
tance ;  and  thus,  what  each  has  gained  by  intrigues  with  the 
populace,  all  have  lost  in  dignity  and  in  the  respect  of  the 
nation.  The  failings  of  the  characters  of  each  have  been 
mutually  displayed  by  his  rival ;  and  the  people,  thus  taught 
to  despise  their  leaders,  neither  respect  their  persons,  nor 
make  themselves  submissive  to  their  orders.  Hence,  with 
no  command  over  the  capitani,  or  tie  on  the  allegiance  or  af- 
fections of  the  soldiery,  their  efforts  and  orders  have  been  all 
unavailing  to  amass  an  army,  or  induce  them  to  remain  by 
their  respective  leaders,  in  any  attempt  to  thwart  the  late 
alarming  progress  of  the  triumphing  enemy.  Slaves,  in  spite 
of  the  decree  of  Epidaurus  for  their  abolition,  are  still  openly 
kept,  and  even  offered  for  sale  at  Napoli  di  Romania  and 
Hydra,  where  the  consequence  of  this  contempt  of  law  has 
lately  been  the  destruction  of  Kreisi's  vessel,  crew,  and  fa- 
mily, and  the  subsequent  disgraceful  massacre  on  the  Island. 
But  these,  though  prominent,  are  not  solitary  instances : 
every  day  is  productive  of  some  glaring  and  important  in- 
fringement of  order  or  contempt  for  the  imbecile  govern- 
ment, on  the  part  of  the  navy,  the  army,  or  the  populace,  to 
^restrain  or  prevent  which  the  nominal  power  of  the  Govern- 

32* 


$70  HISTORY  OF  THE 

ment  is  unavailing.  Occupied  in  these  internal  broils,  the 
affairs  of  the  nation  are  but  partially  attended  to,  and  the 
greatest  indolence  or  apathy  in  their  councils  is  evinced  by 
innumerable  acts  of  omission  and  neglect.  Though  perfectly 
impressed  with  the  importance  of  a  post  or  method  of  com- 
munication across  the  country,  the  facility  and  means  of  ac- 
complishing which  were  so  clearly  pointed  out  by  Colonel 
Stanhope,  it  has  never  yet  been  put  in  execution,  though  fre- 
quently talked  of;  and  the  only  existing  means  of  forwarding 
despatches  is  by  couriers,  whose  progress  through  the  moun- 
tains is  at  once  irregular  and  extremely  tedious.  Letters 
from  Missolonghi  seldom  arrive  in  less  than  nine  or  ten 
days  ;  from  Navarino  in  four  or  five  ;  and  of  the  destruction 
of  the  Turkish  vessels  at  Modon,  though  one  of  the  most  im- 
portant occurrences  in  this  campaign,  no  official  news  reach- 
ed Napoli  di  Romania  for  eight  days.  Another  reprehensible 
particular,  is  their  remissness  in  garrisoning  or  provisioning 
even  their  most  important  positions  and  fortresses  ;  witness 
the  fall  of  the  Island  of  Sphacteria  and  Navarino,  and  the 
narrow  escape  of  Missolonghi.  Napoli  di  Romania  is  said  to 
be  provisioned  at  present,  but  neither  Corinth  nor  Monemva- 
sia  are  in  any  situation  for  defence,  though  the  latter  has  been 
«o  recently  threatened  by  the  approach  of  the  Pacha.      ■ 

Their  promises  are  never  observed  with  that  rigid  faith 
which  should  exist  in  their  performance  ;  in  consequence  of 
which,  their  officers  and  servants  are  eternally  murmuring 
against  breaches  of  contract,  and  the  dishonouring  of  their 
drafts  and  promises  for  pay  and  service-money.  But  here, 
as  in  every  thing  else,  the  effects  of  their  follies  recoil  on 
their  own  heads ;  and  their  faithless  detention  of  the  late 
Pacha  of  Napoli  di  Romania  was  a  fair  precedent  to  Ibra- 
him Pacha  for  retaining  as  prisoners  Iatracco  and  the  other 
commanders  of  Navarino,  in  defiance  of  his  treaty  to  the  con- 
trary at  the  time  of  its  capitulation.  Thus,  factious  and  dis- 
contented amongst  themselves,  and  despised  and  disregarded 
by  those  placed  under  their  command,  their  administration 
has  been,  during  the  last  year,  a  scene  of  anarchy  and  imbe- 
cility ;  and  in  consequence  a  curse,  instead  of  a  benefit,  to 
their  struggling  country. 

Of  the  ultimate  success  of  the  Greek  Revolution,  be  it 
soon  or  late,  I  see  no  reason  to  doubt.  In  fact,  such  is  the 
inherent  and  implacable  hatred  which  subsists  between  the 
Greeks  and  their  enemies,  that  it  is  an  utter  impossibility  that 
they  should  ever  again  coalesce  with  their  oppressors ;  and 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  371 

the  mountains  of  the  Morea  afford  passes  and  defences  for 
the  population,  which,  when  driven  to  extremity,  they  can 
maintain  against  any  force.  But,  for  its  immediate  accom- 
plishment, many  things  are  yet  wanting,  and  many  and  impor- 
tant alterations  in  their  affairs  must  yet  be  made.  Of  these, 
the  first  must  be,  the  dismissal  of  the  factious  and  intriguing 
horde  who  at  present  form  the  executive  body,  and  fill  many 
of  the  confidential  situations  under  them  ;  a  perfect  consoli- 
dation of  interest  under  a  new  Government,  to  form  which,  a 
(e\v  men  of  principle,  activity,  and  patriotism,  are  still  to  be 
found  in  Greece  ;  and  the  acquisition  of  a  man  of  acknow- 
ledged talent,  and  unshaken  integrity,  to  take  the  direction 
of  their  military  operations,  whose  abilities  and  character 
must  give  him  a  natural  command  over  the  inferior  leaders  : 
whilst  the  payment  of  the  troops  being  taken  from  the  infa- 
mous capitani,  and  placed  under  his  direction,  will  at  once 
secure  the  interest  and  affection  of  the  army,  and  confirm  his 
tie  upon  their  exertions  and  allegiance.  Such  a  man  by  his 
successes,  and  importance  in  the  field,  must  hold  a  check  over 
the  disunion  or  clashing  interests  of  the  civil  Government : 
whilst  he  cannot  fail,  by  securing  the  affections  of  the  soldiery, 
to  keep  the  turbulence  of  the  capitani  in  proper  subjection. 
Where,  and  on  what  terms,  to  find  such  a  man,  the  Governr 
ment  are  well  aware;  and,  perhaps,  there  is  no  more  con- 
vincing proof  of  their  inclination  to  self-aggrandizement,  than 
that  they  have  never  taken  any  steps  to  secure  his  services. 

Unless  by  this  or  an  equivalent  measure,  and  the  immediate 
overthrow  of  the  present  system  of  anarchy  and  insubordi- 
nation, there  exists  no  power  in  Greece  to  remedy  the  abuses 
and  deficiencies  which  at  present  disgrace  their  naval  and 
land  forces,  which  are  gradually  increasing,  and  which  are 
daily  productive  of  more  alarming  consequences.  The  ad- 
vances which  their  enemies  are  making  in  improvement,  are 
constantly  warning  them  of  the  immediate  expediency  of 
such  measures.  The  state  to  which  their  army  is  reduced  is 
such,  that  without  an  instant  reform  it  must  prove  destruc- 
tive to  the  hopes  of  the  approaching  campaign  ;  their  panic, 
if  it  were  not  deplorable,  is  truly  ridiculous.  A  capitano,  in 
speaking  lately  to  a  gentleman  at  Napoli  di  Romania,  of  the 
state  of  depression  under  which  the  soldiery  at  present  labour, 
observed,  that  for  his  part  he  was  not  astonished  at  it. — 
"  These  Arabs,"  said  he,  "  make  war  in  a  manner  which 
no  one  has  seen  before ;  they  advance  in  regular  squares, 
and,  standing  upright,  as  if  a  bullet  could  not  harm  them, 


372  HISTORY  OF  THE 

they  then  rush  upon  the  Greeks  with  bayonets  stuck  on  their 
Tophaics,  so  long,  (stretching  out  his  arms  to  th«  full  ex- 
tent;) and  what  soldiers  in  the  world  could  be  supposed  to 
endure  that  ]'?  Such  speeches,  whilst  they  show  the  igno- 
rance of  the  nature  of  discipline  which  reigns  amongst  the 
troops,  at  the  same  time  manifest  an  incipient  conviction  of 
their  importance.  Since  the  commencement  of  the  misfor- 
tunes of  this  campaign,  the  ranks  of  the  regular  troops  are 
fast  filling  up,  whereas  only  a  chance  addition  or  two  were 
dropping  in  at  the  beginning  of  the  year.  The  corps  at  Na- 
poli  now  amount  to  1200,  and  are  rapidly  increasing:  in  fact, 
the  unbecoming  and  inefficient  conduct  of  the  late  colonel, 
Rhodios,  was  by  no  means  calculated  to  give  the  soldiers  a 
fair  idea  of  military  discipline,  or  induce  them  to  join  the 
ranks  with  spirit.  Under  M.  Favier's  management,  how- 
ever, things  have  taken  a  different  turn.  The  same  men  who 
were  formerly  quarrelsome,  ill-disciplined,  dirty,  and  despised, 
now  have  their  appointments  and  uniform  (blue  and  white) 
always  perfectly  clean,  and  their  arms  in  capital  order :  their 
discipline  likewise  is  extremely  good,  and  their  behaviour 
on  all  occasions  orderly  and  becoming.  This  improvement 
is  working  a  rapid  alteration  in  the  feelings  of  the  guerillas, 
and  there  is  no  doubt,  that  the  approaching  winter  may  make 
a  vast  change  in  the  members  of  the  one,  and  the  habits  of 
the  other  body.  Much,  indeed,  remains  to  be  done  ;  and  un- 
fortunately, its  agents,  the  present  Government,  ar^e  but  badly 
fitted  for  the  task. 

From  the  few  remarks  which  I  have  been  enabled  to  make 
on  the  fleet,  it  is  evident  that  here  likewise,  immediate  re- 
formation is  loudly  called  for.  The  hopes  of  Greece  may  be 
said  to  rest  principally  on  her  naval  force.  Their  successes 
hitherto  have  been  brilliant,  but  they  have  been  achieved 
almost  solely  by  a  means  which  must  eventually  prove  ineffi- 
cient ; — I  mean  the  fire-ships,  whose  repeated  failures,  this 
year,  prove  their  efficacy  to  be  on  the  decline.  In  fact,  bad 
as  the  Turks  are  as  seamen,  they  must  at  length  come  to 
some  means  of  frustrating  their  attacks,  at  least  in  part :  and, 
what  is  rather  alarming,  every  attempt  made  by  them  against 
the  Egyptians  by  sea  has  this  year  failed :  they  have  not 
been  able  to  prevent  one  debarkation  of  troops,  nor  intercept 
one  expedition  ;  though,  in  the  attempt,  numerous  fire-ships 
have  been  ineffectually  burned.  It  needs  no  demonstration 
to  show,  that  with  only  their  small  brigs  and  shipping  they 
are  an  undermatch  for  their  enemies ;  they  must,  therefore^ 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  373 

quickly  think  of  putting  themselves  on  a  par  with  them  in 
the  size  and  efficiency  of  their  vessels.  The  fitting  out  of 
frigates  has  long  been  talked  of,  but  none  have  as  yet  arrived. 
If  they  can  once  bring  into  action  two  or  three  frigates,  with 
the  assistance  of  a  steam-boat  to  work  the  brulots  during  a 
calm,  there  cannot  remain  a  possibility  of  the  enemy  any 
longer  keeping  the  sea  against  them.  But  before  even  these 
can  render  efficient  service,  those  unbounded  licenses  grant- 
ed by  the  captains,  and  abused  by  their  sailors,  which  now 
render  most  of  the  ships  scenes  of  uproar  and  disgust,  must 
be  totally  done  away  with  :  such  a  system  could  never  exist 
among  the  immense  crews  of  frigates.  The  same  contempt 
of  rule,  so  reprehensible  in  the  seamen,  must  meet  an  equal 
check  in  their  commanders,  -and  the  dissensions  of  different 
Islands  must  be  swallowed  up  in  a  spirit  of  general  interest 
and  mutual  co-operation.  The  abuse  of  their  right  of  search, 
of  which  every  merchant  vessel  in  the  Levant  so  loudly  com- 
plains, must  be  vigorously  punished,  and  a  portion  of  the  ship- 
ping ought  to  be  detained  for  the  suppression  of  that  system 
of  piracy,  which  is  at  present  so  alarmingly  gaining  head 
among  the  Islands,  and  in  the  vicinity  of  Hydra  ;  for  unless 
this  be  attended  to,  it  cannot  be  supposed  that  foreign  powers 
will  long  tamely  submit  to  those  insults  and  aggressions  on 
their  flags.  A  greater  spirit  of  activity  must  be  diffused  into 
their  exertions,  and  a  more  regular  system  of  provisioning 
and  storing  their  ships. 

During  the  short  time  which  I  remained  on  board  Miaulis' 
brig,  which  was  not  quite  four  weeks,  the  fleet  retired  three 
times  for  provisions,  once  to  Mylo,  and  twice  to  Vathico, 
north  of  Cythera.     Though  extremely  active  sailors,  acci- 
I  dents  are  constantly  occurring,   either  from  carelessness,  or 
I  from  an  empty  spirit  of  vanity  and  display  ;  thus,  by  his  sail- 
I  ors  allowing  Canaris's  fire-ship  to  run  foul  of  Miaulis'  brig, 
his  vessel  was  lost,  and  his  exertions  subsequently  rendered 
unavailing  to  the  Greeks  during  all  this  year.     Pepino's  bru- 
lot   was  almost  irreparably  damaged  by  the  same  means  : 
and,  in  daily  occurrences  of  the  like  kind,  the  ships  are  re- 
ceiving frequent  injuries.     Their  incautious  manner  of  keep- 
ing their  gunpowder  is  another  alarming  defect ;  the  maga- 
,  zine  is  the  lazaretto  under  the  cabin,  to  which  every  sailor 
has  access,  and  which  is  no  otherwise  protected  than  by  a 
trap-door,  in  which  the  captain  and  his  friends  sit  smoking 
almost  constantly,  when  a  spark  from  their  pipes,  falling 
through  the  chink,  must  inevitably  blow  up  the  ship.     Many 


374  HISTORY  OF  THE 

have  been  killed,  and  numbers  wounded,  by  the  explosion  of 
ignorantly  loaded  cannon.  In  such  a  state  of  affairs,  and 
without  material  improvements,  it  would  be  madness  to  con- 
fide a  frigate  to  the  care  of  a  captain  and  a  crew,  in  propor- 
tion to  whose  numbers  she  must  be  more  exposed  to  injury  or 
destruction,  from  carelessness,  confusion,  or  ignorance.  I 
have  not  here  mentioned  any  thing  of  the  deplorable  state  of 
the  administration  of  justice  ;  it,  however,  presents  the  same 
tincture  of  corruption,  neglect,  and  confusion,  with  every 
other  department.  In  fact,  at  this  moment,  Greece  seems  to 
have  reached  an  acme  of  disorder  and  weakness,  beneath 
which  she  is  already  beginning  to  sink  ;  and,  without  a  se- 
ries of  reforms  and  improvements,  of  which  this  is  but  a  spe- 
cimen, she  can  proceed  no  farther  towards  her  liberation. 
Fortunately  the  means  of  doing  so,  if  proper  steps  be  taken, 
are  still  in  her  own  power.  In  the  hands  of  such  a  body  of 
men  as  her  present  governors,  it  cannot  well  be  expected  that 
her  funds  have  been  managed  either  advantageously  or  hon- 
ourably ;  in  fact,  the  first  emotion  of  any  one  coming  to 
Greece  and  knowing  the  amount  of  the  sums  she  has  received, 
must  be  that  of  surprise  as  to  what  can  have  become  of  it,  or 
how  it  has  been  expended ;  the  army  constantly  murmuring 
for  arrears  of  pay  :  the  fleet  refusing  to  put  to  sea  without 
higher  wages ;  the  population  pictures  of  poverty  and  wretch- 
edness ;  not  a  fortification  that  is  not  half  in  ruins ;  not  a  bat- 
tery built,*  and  not  a  cannon  mounted  by  the  Government ; 
in  fact,  no  one  trace  of  so  many  thousands  having  done  any 
visible  good !  Let  her  now,  however,  without,  delay,  adopt 
reasonable  measures  for  her  amelioration,  reform  her  legisla- 
ture, correct  the  abuses  of  her  navy  and  army  4  and,  with  the 
means  placed  in  her  hands,  under  the  guidance  of  talented 
and  faithful  counsellors,  she  cannot  fail,  even  without  foreign 
interference,  to  realize  the  hopes  of  her  most  enthusiastic 
well-wishers,  "f 

*  At  Athens  some  alterations  have  been  made  in  the  Acropolis,  but 
their  whole  expense  could  not  exceed  100?. 
j  Picture  of  Greece,  p.  211—246. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  375 


CHAP.  XXII. 

Campaign  of  1826. — Preparations  to  invest  Missolonghi. — 
Transportation  of  the  munitions  of  tear  from  Crio  Nero. — 
Erection  of  batteries  before  Missolonghi. — Arabs. — Bom- 
bardment of  the  Town. — Expedition  of  the  Turks  against 
Vasiladi. — Attempt  against  Monasteri. — Prosecution  of 
the  Siege. — Capt.  Abbot  offers  terms  to  the  besieged,  in  the 
name  of  the  Turks. — These  terms  refused. — Arrival  of  Sir 
Frederick  Adam. — Great  suffering  of  the  Garrison. —  Wo- 
men and  Children  die  of  hunger. — The  people  go  to  the 
Church  and  receive  absolution. — Attempt  to  escape  by  fight. 
— Dreadful  carnage  attending  it. — Turkish  account  of  the 
taking  of  Missolonghi. — Mr.  Green' 's  account  of  the  same. — 
Mr.  JWyer's  Letter. — Col.  Favier's  expedition  to  Negroponf. 
— Meeting  of  the  third  Congress  at  Epidaurus. — Declara- 
tion of  the  Representatives. — Return  of  the  Turkish  fleet  to 
the  Dardanelles. — Condition  of  Athens. — That  City  taken 
by  the  Turks. — The  Citadel  remaining  in  the  hands  of  the, 
Greeks. —  The  Capitan  Pacha  embarks  his  troops,  and  sails 
up  the  Archipelago. — The  Viceroy  of  Egypt  lands  another 
army  of  Arabs  at  Modon. — Greek  Funds. 

,o9fi  During  the  months  of  January  and  February  of 
this  year,  the  infidel  army  made  preparations  to 
invest  Missolonghi.  The  Egyptian  troops,  assisted  by  the 
Albanians,  had  been  employed  in  forming  batteries,  trans- 
porting shot  and  shells  from  the  Turkish  camp  at  Crio  Nero, 
and  in  cutting  fascines  and  brushwood  to  fill  the  ditches. 
For  this  laborious  service  the  Arabs  proved  themselves  to 
be  far  superior  to  the  Albanians.  The  former  were  so  hardy, 
as  to  continue  up  to  the  middle  in  water  the  whole  day,  during 
the  winter,  without  suffering  from  such  hardships.  Most  of  the 
shot  and  shells  were  transported  from  the  Turkish  camp  to 
Missolonghi,  a  distance  of  three  leagues,  or  four  hours,  on 
the  heads  of  the  Arabs,  which  alone  seemed  sufficient  to 
have  killed  more  hardy  looking  men.*     Up  to  the  middle  of 

"  The  following  description  of  these  barbarians  is  extracted  from 
Green's  Sketches,  who  was  an  eye  witness  to  what  he  writes. 

"  Each  regiment,"  says  he,  "  consisted  originally  of  4000  Arabs, 
clothed  in  a  uniform  composed  of  a  red  cloth  jacket,  trowsers,  and 
skull-cap,  and  armed  with  a  musket,  bayonet,  and  cartouche-box 


376  HISTORY  OF  THE 

February  the  Turkish  army  were  busy  in  forming  batteries, 
and  cutting  fascines.  The  batteries,  when  finished,  mount- 
ed twenty  heavy  guns,  eighteen  and  thirty-two  pounders,  and 
a  number  of  mortars,  and  howitzers.  These  works  were  so 
near  the  town,  that  if  the  cannon  were  pointed  towards  it, 
their  shot  could  hardly  avoid  taking  effect  in  one  part  or 
another. 

The  officers  are  Asiatic,  and  other  Turks,  but  the  sergeants,  corpo- 
rals, and  drummers,  are  Arabs.  In  appearance  they  are  certainly 
the  most  despicable  troops  imaginable,  there  being  scarcely  a  fine- 
looking  man  amongst  them  ;  added  to  which,  they  have  almost  uni- 
versally suffered  from  the  ophthalmia,  and  have  either  lost  an  eye. 
squint  very  much,  or  are  short-sighted.  Since  their  arrival  in  the 
Morea  the  uniform  of  many  has  given  place  to  all  kinds  of  grotesque 
clothing,  acquired  by  pillage,  such  as  women's  petticoats,  Albanian 
kilts,  &c.  They  make  up,  however,  for  their  appearance  by  their  i 
behaviour,  being  exceedingly  obedient,  and  apt  at  learning  military 
evolutions,  the  old  regiments  going  through  the  exercise  very  well  ; 
added  to  which,  they  never  by  any  chance  complain,  and  stand  fa- 
tigue remarkably  well.  Indeed,  from  the  time  of  their  landing  in 
the  Morea,  their  privations  have  been  very  great,  continually  march- 
ing and  counter-marching  over  mountains,  and  fording  rivers. — 
At  Patras  the  tents  were  not  pitched,  the  men  were  exposed  day 
and  night  to  the  weather,  and  to  protect  themselves  from  its  incle- 
mency, dug  holes  in  the  ground,  into  which  they  thrust  their  heads, 
leaving  the  rest  of  their  bodies  exposed.  They  are  constantly  drill- 
ed, and  sometimes  are  exercised  six  or  seven  times  a-day.  When 
off  duty,  one  of  their  occupations  is  the  cleaning  of  their  muskets, 
which  they  keep  remarkably  bright  and  in  good  order.  There  are 
no  regular  cavalry  attached  to  Ibrahim  Pacha's  army,  but  all  the  of- 
ficers, medical  staff,  and  commissariat  department,  are  mounted, 
besides  the  baggage  horses  and  mules.  Of  the  European  officers,  of 
whom  so  much  has  been  said,  there  are  few  of  any  consequence  with 
Ibrahim.  Of  the  French,  the  generality  are  surgeons,  young  stu- 
dents from  the  hospitals :  Colonel  Seves,  known  as  Solimon  Bey,  is 
now  at  Tripolizza,  and  has  not  been  here.  The  Italians  are  chiefly 
Instructori,  or  Drill  officers,  but  they  have  merely  the  name,  at 
least  while  they  remained  here  ;  it  is  said  however,  that  they  were 
of  use  in  Egypt.  The  number  of  Europeans  now  here  and  at  Mis- 
solonghi  with  the  army  does  not  exceed  thirty  ;  and  I  am  informed 
that  there  are  not  more  than  double  that  number  altogether  in  the 
Morea.  Ibrahim  Pacha  is  said  to  pay  little  attention  to  them,  and 
in  no  instance  I  believe  followed  their  advice,  not  even  of  his  chief 
engineer,  Lieutenant-Colonel  Romey,  a  Neapolitan.  Their  pay 
varies  from  seven  hundred  to  two  thousand  piastres  a  month,  with 
rations  for  a  horse  and  servant,  which  undoubtedly  is  their  chief  in- 
ducement to  enter  the  service  of  the  Pacha  of  Egypt.  Some  of 
these  same  Europeans  in  the  first  instance  joined  the  Greeks,  but 
getting  no  pay,  and  receiving  ill-treatment  and  abuse,  quitted  their 
service  in  disgust.  Since  they  have  joined  the  Egyptians  they  have 
been  regularly  paid,  and  never  go  into  battle.''— [Sketches,  p.  239.] 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  377 

Every  thing  being  finished,  the  bombardment  began  about 
the  middle  of  February,  and  continued  three  days  and  nights 
without  intermission,  and  afterwards  for  fifteen  days  at  in- 
tervals. By  this  tremendous  cannonade,  with  such  heavy 
ordnance,  those  parts  of  the  town  which  had  escaped  pre- 
vious attacks,  were  nearly  battered  down,  but  the  garrison 
were  still  by  no  means  disposed  to  listen  to  any  terms  their 
enemies  chose  to  offer,  though  in  great  want  of  provisions, 
which  the  Turkish  blockade  had  prevented  their  receiving. 
On  the  6th  of  March,  several  flat  bottomed  boats,  which 
had  been  fitted  out  at  Patras,  left  that  place  to  attack  the 
island  of  Vasiladi,  situated  at  the  entrance  of  the  shallows 
before  Missolonghi,  and  about  two  miles  distant  from  that 
town.  This  expedition  was  commanded  by  Husseim  Bey, 
Ibrahim's  brother-in-law,  chief  officer  and  commander  of 
the  Condian  and  Albanian  forces.  Vasiladi  is  a  small,  bar- 
ren island,  defended  by  a  fort  which  was  garrisoned  by  a 
i  few  Greeks,  and  made  but  a  feeble  resistance.  A  few  days 
after  this,  Antolico,  a  small  town  situated  on  a  rocky  island 
near  Missolonghi,  surrendered  to  the  Turks  after  firing  a  few 
shot.  The  inhabitants,  about  3000  in  number,  were  suffered 
to  depart,  and  retire  to  Arta,  taking  with  them  their  per- 
sonal property,  and  such  effects  as  they  could  carry.  After 
these  reverses,  the  Greeks  were  so  fortunate,  on  the  next  oc- 
casion which  offered,  as  to  gain  a  signal  triumph  over  their 
enemies.  The  Turks  mad*-  an  attack  on  a  small  island  call- 
ed Monasteri,  situated  about  half  a  mile  from  Missolonghi. — 
This  island  possessed  a  small  fortified  tower,  which  was  gar- 
risoned by  75  Greeks.  The  approach  was  very  difficult,  the 
Turks  being  obliged  to  wade  up  to  the  middle  in  water  before 
they  could  arrive  at  the  island.  When  they  reached  the  vi- 
cinity of  the  tower  they  found  no  entrance,  and  here  were 
exposed  to  the  direct  fire  of  the  whole  garrison.  This  small 
number  of  Greeks  who  thus  opposed  a  whole  Turkish  ar- 
my, and  defied  its  power,  scarcely  suffered  any  loss,  while 
this  very  circumstance  irritated  the  infidel  commanders,  anil 
was  the  cause  of  great  obstinacy,  which  ended  in  the  de- 
struction of  an  immense  number  of  their  men.  It  is  report- 
ed that  no  less  than  1500  Turks  and  Arabs  perished  on  this 
occasion,  and  among  them  Husseim  Bey,  without  exception 
ihe  best  officer  in  Ibrahim's  army.* 

*  Green's  Sketches,  p.  138—143. 
33 


378  HISTORY  OF  THE 

From  this  time  the  6iege  was  prosecuted  with  vigours- 
Various  incidents  are  related,  which  would  deserve   to  be 
here  recorded,  if  we  could  place  sufficient  confidence  in  the 
authenticity  of  the  various  narratives.     The  besieged  defend- 
ed themselves  with  the  most  heroic  bravery,  suffering  in  the 
meantime  most  severely  from  want  of  provisions  and  from  a 
scarcity  of  the  munitions  of  war.     It  was  confidently  stated 
on  the  authority  of  letters  from  Constantinople,  that  in  con- 
sequence of  the  representations  of  the  foreign  Ambassadors, 
the  Porte  was  induced  to  send  negotiators  to  the  head  quar- 
ters of  Ibrahim  Pacha,  with  authority  to  treat  with  the  Greek 
chiefs  for  a  cessation  of  hostilities.     Other  accounts  stated 
that  this  measure   had  been  taken  in  consequence  of  the  re- 
presentations of  Ibrahim  and  his  father.     It  was  affirmed  that 
the  proposition  which  was   to  be  made   to  the  Greek  chiefs 
was,  that  Ibrahim  should  remain  in  the  military  government 
of  Greece  with  the  command  of  the  fortresses,  but  that  each 
place  should  have  a  Lieutenant  Governor,  chosen  by  the 
Greeks  from  among  themselves.     It  was  stated  that  Husseim 
Bey,  formerly  inspector  of  the  arsenal,  and   Nedib  Effendi, 
agent  to  the  viceroy  of  Egypt,  were  charged  with  this  mission. 
Whether  any  such  proposition  was   ever  meditated  by  the 
Turkish  government  is  matter  of  doubt ;  it  is  very  certain  that 
it  produced  no  useful  result.     The  two  agents  above  named 
arrived  at  the  head  quarters  of  Ibrahim,  but  the  object  of  their 
mission  remains  involved  in  doubt.     There  was   no  suspen- 
sion of  hostilities,  but,  on  the  contrary,  a  more  vigorous  pro- 
secution of  the  siege.     Several  vessels  laden  with   supplies 
for   the  place   were  captured  by   the   Turkish  fleet.     The 
Turks  succeeded  in  getting  possession  of  a  battery,  but  it  was 
attacked  with  great  bravery   by  the  Greeks,  and  retaken  at 
the  point  of  the  bayonet.     About  the  first  of  January  a  squa- 
dron of  about  fifty  Hydriote  and  Spezziote  vessels,  under  Mi- 
aulis  and  Saktouris,  sailed  for  Missolonghi  for  the  purpose 
of  throwing  supplies  into  the  city.     This  expedition  was  par- 
tially successful,   though  the  relief  afforded  was   inadequate 
to  the  wants  of  the  place.     There  appear  to  have  been  some 
skirmishes  between  the  hostile  fleets,  but  amidst  the  contra- 
dictory accounts,  it  is  difficult  to  determine  which  party  gain- 
ed the  greatest  advantage. 

On  the  27th  of  January,  Captain  Abbot,  of  the  British  cor- 

*  See  Boston  edition  of  the  Modern  Traveller,  p.  482,  and  onwards. 


• 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  379 

vette  Rose,  anchored  off  Vasiladi,  and  proposed  a  confer- 
ence with  the  authorities  of  Missolonghi  on  matters  of  im- 
portance. Persons  were  appointed  to  meet  him.  He  ex- 
plained the  purpose  of  their  meeting,  by  presenting  the  fol- 
lowing note  : — 

{<  In  the  Waters  of  Missolonghi,  from  on  board  his  Britannic  Majesty's 
corvette  Rose,  Jan.  27. 

"  Gentlemen — The  Capitan  Pacha  has  requested  me  to  in- 
form the  Greek  authorities  of  Missolonghi,  that  in  the  space 
of  eight  days  from  this,  all  the  preparations  will  be  ready  to 
give  the  assault  to  that  place  ;  but  as  the  Capitan  Pacha  de- 
sires to  avoid  the  effusion  of  blood,  which  must  be  the  con- 
sequence of  the  town's  being  taken  by  assault,  he  wishes 
therefore  to  know  if  the  garrison  of  Missolonghi  will  capitu- 
late, and,  in  that  case,  on  what  conditions. 

"  The  answer  given  me  by  you,  I  will  send  to  the  Capitan 
Pacha;  but  I  think  it  my  duty  clearly  to  inform  the  Greek  au- 
thorities of  Missolonghi,  that.  I  am  not  authorized  to  be  the 
guarantee  of  the  conditions  which  may  be  entered  into,  nor 
will  I  give  my  opinion  on  the  expediency  of  accepting  or  re- 
fusing the  above  proposition  of  the  Capitan  Pacha. 

"  I  have  the  honour  to  be,  gentlemen,  your  most  obedient 
servant,  C.  ABBOTT,  Commander. 

"  To  the  Greek  authorities  of  Missolonghi." 

The  Greek  envoys  on  receiving  this  letter,  returned  to  the 
city  greatly  disappointed  and  displeased,  and  immediately 
sent  the  following  answer  : — 


o 


•'  Sir — We  have  the  honour  to  reply  to  your  letter  of  the 
27th  inst.  in  which  you  lay  before  us  the  proposition  which 
you  were  charged  by  the  Capitan  Pacha  to  communicate  to 
us.  And  this  is  our  answer  to  that  proposition  which  has 
for  its  object  a  conclusion  of  a  peace  between  us. 

u.  The  Capitan  Pacha  is  well  aware  that  the  Greeks  have 
suffered  unheard  of  misfortunes,  shed  streams  of  blood,  and 
seen  their  towns  made  deserts  ;  and  for  all  this  nothing  can 
compensate,  nothing  can  indemnify  them,  but  liberty  and  in- 
dependence. And  as  for  the  attack  with  which  he  threat- 
ens this  fortress  in  eight  days'  time,  we  are  ready  for  it,  and 
we  trust  with  the  help  of  God,  that  we  shall  be  able  to  op- 
pose it,  as  we  did  that  of  Redschid  Pacha  last  July.  The 
Capitan  Pacha  is  also  aware  that  we  have  a  Government,  In 
compliance  with  whose  decree  we  are  bound  to  fight  and  die. 


380  HISTORY  OF  THE 

To  that  Government  let  him,  therefore,  address  himself,  and 
negotiate  peace  or  war. 

"  We  have  the  honour  to  subscribe  ourselves  with  respect 
(for  the  Provisional  Commissioners  of  the  affairs  of  Western 
Greece,  and  for  all  the  Military  and  Civil  Chiefs,) 

"  D.  THEMELIS, 

M  In  absence  of  the  Secretary  General. 
i  "  N.  PAPADOPOULOS. 

Missolonghi,  loth  (27th)  Jan.  1826. 
"  To  Capt.  Abott,  Commander  of  the  English  corvette  Rose." 

The  editor  of  the  Greek  Chronicle,  which  was  still  print- 
ed in  Missolonghi,  expressed  great  indignation,  that  an  En- 
glish officer  should  be  instrumental  in  making  this  proposal. 
A  similar  one  had  been  made  in  July  preceding,  from  the 
Capitan  Pacha,  through  the  commander  of  an  Austrian  fri- 
gate, "  but  that,"  remarked  the  Greek  editor,"  did  not  aston- 
ish us,  for  we  knew  that  Capt.  Bouratovitch  was  an  Austrian. 
But  we  were  overcome  with  grief,  and  wept  on  reflecting 
that  an  Englishman  could  offer  himself  as  an  agent  to  the 
Capitan  Pacha,  and  present  with  his  own  signature,  such 
propositions  to  the  Greeks." 

The  assault  threatened  in  the  foregoing  letter,  if  made,  did 
not  prove  successful.  The  possession  of  Vasilidi  enabled 
the  Turkish  commander  to  cutoff  more  successfully  the  sup- 
plies which  the  Greeks  were  constantly  attempting  to  throw 
into  the  place,  and  of  which  the  inhabitants  were  in  great 
want.  The  garrison,  however,  persisted  in  refusing  to  listen 
to  any  proposals  of  surrender.  On  the  17th  of  March,  Sir 
Frederick  Adam,  Lord  High  Commissioner  of  the  Ionian 
Islands,  proceeded  in  the  Naiad,  Capt.  Spencer,  to  the  camp 
before  Missolonghi,  and  had  a  conference  of  two  hours  with 
Ibrahim  Pacha  in  his  tent,  in  the  presence  of  the  Seraskier 
and  the  two  commissioners  from  the  Porte.  In  this  confer- 
ence he  solicited  Ibrahim  to  permit  the  women,  children,  and 
old  men,  to  leave  Missolonghi  unmolested.  Ibrahim  declared 
himself  ready  to  do  this  if  the  place  would  surrender,  and  the 
garrison  lay  down  their  arms,  in  which  case  they  should  be 
permitted  to  retire  unhurt,  as  well  as  the  garrison  of  Anatoli- 
co.  The  proposal  was  rejected  by  the  besieged,  on  which 
Gen.  Adam  re-embarked  and  left  Missolonghi  to  its  fate. — 
This  transaction  is  related  on  the  authority  of  the  Austrian 
Observer.  Sir  Frederick  Adam  was  shortly  afterwards  in 
Paris,  where  he  spoke  with  enthusiasm  of  the  brave  defence 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  381 

of  Missolonghi,  and  expressed  strong  hopes  that  the  garrison 
would  hold  out  to  the  end. 

Besides  the  extreme  difficulty  of  conveying  provisions  to 
the  relief  of  the  besieged,  the  Greeks  suffered  severely  from 
the  distressing  scarcity  of  provisions  in  the  country.  So  large 
a  portion  of  the  country  had  been  devastated  by  the  enemy, 
and  so  many  people  were  compelled  to  rely  for  subsistence 
on  the  charity  of  those  among  whom  they  took  refuge,  that 
the  soil  did  not  afford  adequate  means  of  subsistence.*  This 
state  of  things  being  made  known  to  some  of  the  active  friends 
of  Greece  in  Europe,  funds  were  immediately  raised  for  pro- 
curing supplies.  Mr.  Eynard  of  Geneva,  who  had  before 
contributed  personally  50,000  francs  in  aid  of  the  Greek 
cause,  made  a  further  liberal  contribution  ;  the  Greek  Com- 
mittee of  Paris,  on  his  representation,  voted  60,000,  and  that 
of  Amsterdam  added  30,000.  Vessels  wrere  sent  successively 
from  ports  on  the  Adriatic,  with  provisious  for  the  relief  of 
Alissolonghi,  and  of  the  Greeks  generally.  Repeated  at- 
tempts were  made  from  Zante  to  introduce  these  supplies  in- 
solonghi,  some  of  which  were  successful,  and  others 
foiled.     An  agent  of  the  Paris  Committee,  in  writing  from 

*  The  following  letter  from  an  European  paper  affords  one  of  the  many 
evidences  of  the  extreme  privations  of  the  Greeks,  in  consequence  of 
the  ravaging  of  the  country  by  the  enemy. 

"  LEGHORN,  April  12. 
"  A  vessel  from  the  Levant  reports  having  seen,  on  the  islands 
De  la  Sapience,  or  the  Strophades,  more  than  twenty  thousand  wo- 
men, children,  and  old  men,  all  escaped  from  the  Peloponnesus.  These 
unfortunate  people,  who  fled  in  the  month  of  December  last,  when  Ibra- 
him Pacha  crossed  Tryphylia  and  Elis  to  go  towards  Patras,  have  pass- 
ed the  winter  living  upon  grains  and  other  articles  of  food  that  they 
brought  with  them.  These  resources  are  exhausted  ;  since  the  month 
of  March,  they  have  lived  upon  roots  and  boiled  leaves,  which  they 
sometimes  mix  with  a  handful  of  meal.  This  unhealthy  and  scanty 
nourishment  has  produced  among  them  disorders  which  have  destroyed 
more  than  five  thousand  ;  for,  at  first,  there  were  more  than  twenty-five 
thousand  refugees.  A  dreadful  typhus  also  threatens  to  carry  off  the 
remains  of  this  wretched  people.  Recommend  to  the  public  charity 
these  poor  Christians,  who  have  crowded  about  a  cross,  to  which  they 
have  attached  their  supreme  and  last  hope.  There  are  some  thousand 
others  who  have  retired  to  the  island  of  Prodano.  Take  pity  on  their 
miseries.  To  give  them  any  efficacious  assistance  in  provisions,  and  to 
know  how  they  should  be  distributed,  communications  must  be  address- 
ed to  Count  Mercati,  at  Zante,  who  will  afford  the  means  necessary  to 
their  arriving  at  the  proposed  destination." 

Boston  Daily  AdvtrUstr.  June  16., 
33* 


382  HISTORY  OF  THE 

Zante,  April  4,  said,  "  Every  day  I  succeeded  in  throwing 
provisions  into  Missolonghi.  There  are  many  difficulties, 
but  the  zeal  of  our  seamen  know  how  to  surmount  them. 
All  our  news  is  favourable."  Another  letter  from  the  same 
agent,  April  6,  said,  "  Up  to  the  present  time  every  thing  is 
in/ favour  of  the  besieged;  Ibrahim  attacks  every  day  with 
perseverance,  and  every  day  is  beaten.  His  loss  must  be 
more  than  8000  men.  His  camp  has  been  burnt,  and  his 
men  are  discouraged.  At  this  moment  a  strong  cannonade 
is  heard,  but  we  feel  no  uneasiness.  The  garrison  is  all  re- 
mounted, and  has  received  provisions." 

These  hopes  were  too  confident.  It  was  not  in  the  power 
of  the  friends  of  Greece  much  longer  to  convey  to  the 
heroic  defenders  of  Missolonghi  the  means  of  subsistence. 
The  Greek  fleet  under  Miaulis,  however,  made  one  further 
attempt  to  afford  supplies.  It  sailed  from  Hydra  in  April, 
and  on  the  12th  arrived  in  sight  of  Missolonghi.  On  the 
15th  an  engagement  took  place,  in  which  the  Greek  fleet 
gained  some  advantages,  but  not  of  so  decisive  a  character 
as  to  enable  them  to  throw  provisions  into  the  city.  Ibrahim 
from  this  time  directed  all  his  attention  to  prevent  the  intro- 
duction of  supplies,  by  means  of  small  vessels  from  Zante, 
and  on  the  following  day  flat-bottomed  boats  and  rafts,  armed 
with  heavy  artillery,  were  stationed  in  such  manner  as  to  cut 
off  all  communication.  The  besieged,  who  had  for  a  long 
time  been  sustained  by  the  scanty  supplies  daily  received 
from  Petala  and  Porto  Soro,  were  now  reduced  to  the  most 
deplorable  situation.  On  the  17th  and  18th,  several  women, 
children,  and  old  men,  died  of  hunger.  On  the  four  succeed- 
ing days  the  horror  of  their  situation  increased  every  hour. 
No  one,  however,  thought  of  surrendering,  but  mines  were 
prepared,  in  various  parts  of  he  city,  as  the  engines  of  self- 
destruction.  On  the  21st  and  22d  Miaulis  again  attacked 
the  Turkish  fleet.  But  what  could  his  squadron  of  little  ves- 
sels do,  against  six  ships  of  the  line,  eight  or  ten  frigates,  and 
ninety  other  vessels  ?  All  their  efforts  were  fruitless,  and  not 
a  single  vessel  laden  with  provisions  could  enter  the  town. 
With  the  failure  of  these  attempts,  the  besieged  saw  their  last 
hopes  vanish.  On  the  22d  they  went  to  the  church,  where 
they  received  absolution,  which  was  granted  to  them  by  Jo- 
seph, Bishop  of  Rogous,  amidst  the  tears  of  the  women  and 
children.  At  ten  in  the  morning  this  ceremony  was  finished. 
They  shared  what  remained  of  the  boiled  roots,  fish,  and 
food  in  the  city,  and  each  held  himself  ready  to  go  forward 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  383 

and  die.  A  few  minutes  after  midnight,  about  two  thousand 
men,  accompanied  by  a  number  of  women,  and  several  chil- 
dren, who  had  previously  resolved  on  making  a  sortie,  ad- 
vanced in  silence  towards  the  batteries  of  the  enemy.  They 
did  not  find  them  off  their  guard,  but  were  met  with  deter- 
mined bravery,  and  a  dreadful  carnage  ensued.  Of  the 
Greeks,  who  fell  with  impetuosity  upon  the  Turkish  lines, 
about  500  lost  their  lives  on  the  spot,  and  the  rest  of  the 
party  escaped  to  the  mountains.  Of  those  who  remained  in 
the  city,  consisting  principally  of  the  infirm,  and  of  women 
and  children,  to  the  number  of  more  than  1000,  some  blew 
themselves  up  by  the  mines  placed  for  the  purpose,  some 
drowned  themselves,  many  were  slaughtered  by  the  enemy, 
who  at  break  of  day  entered  the  city,  and  130  who  shut  them- 
selves up  in  a  strong  house,  defended  themselves  through  the 
whole  of  the  next  day,  making  a  great  carnage  of  the  attack- 
ing Egyptians,  and  at  length,  when  exhausted  by  fatigue  and 
want  of  food,  blew  themselves  up,  at  the  moment  when  they 
ivere  about  to  fall  into  the  power  of  the  enemy.  About  a 
hundred  and  fifty  men,  and  three  thousand  women  and  chil- 
dren, were  returned  as  prisoners.  These  were  mostly  car- 
ried to  Prevesa  and  Arta,  where  they  were  sold,  at  a  low 
price,  like  cattle.  The  loss  of  the  Turks  was  severe,  but  the 
number  has  not  been  ascertained.  Among  the  killed  was 
Husseim  Bey,*  one  of  the  most  efficient  of  Ibrahim's  officers. 
The  Greeks  who  escaped  in  the  sortie,  retired  by  the  way  of 
the  Isthmus  of  Corinth,  and  finally  reached  Napoli,  worn 
down  with  fatigue,  robbed  of  their  homes  and  their  families, 
and  destitute  of  every  thing.f 

*  This  officer,  according  to  Mr.  Green,  was  killed  some  time  before, 
as  has  been  already  stated. 

fThis  narrative  is  extracted  from  a  great  variety  of  accounts,  which 
differ  from  each  other  considerably  in  many  of  the  details  of  this  disas- 
trous event.  Some  of  them  represent  the  carnage  of  that  awful  nighf. 
a3  still  more  dreadful  than  is  here  related.  The  account  published  in 
the  Oriental  Spectator,  says,  that  the  old  men,  the  wounded,  and  the 
women  and  children,  who  remained  in  the  city,  had  retired  to  avast 
building,  where,  seeing  themselves  surrounded  by  their  conquerors, 
they  set  fire  to  a  mine  which  had  been  dug  under  them,  and  they  were 
no  more.  Another  account,  as  it  differs  still  more  from  those  which  we 
have  followed  in  the  text,  we  here  subjoin.  It  was  published  at  Malta. 
a3  translated  from  an  account  written  by  an  officer  in  the  suite  of  one  oV 
the  Turkish  commanders,  dated  April  23. 

"  Yesterday,  Saturday,  the  22d  April,  about  six  o'clock  in  the  even- 
ing, Caraiscachi  having  reached  the  tops  of  the  mountains  Carasora, 


384  HISTORY  OF  THE 

In  addition  to  the  above  particulars,  which  are  extracted 
from  the  Boston  edition  of  the  "  Modern  Traveller,"  we 
here  give  Mr.  Green's  account  of  this  awful  tragedy,  which 
he  collected  on  the  spot. 

"  The  garrison  of  Missolonghi,  reduced  to  a  state  of 
starvation,  and  perceiving  that  their  hopes  of  receiving  as- 

with  about  five  hundred  of  his  men,  they  fired  a  volley,  as  a  signal  to  the 
rebels  of  Missolonghi  of  having  come  to  their  assistance.  The  garrison 
of  Missolonghi  having  decided  to  retire  from  that  place,  they  made  the 
necessary  preparations,  and  hoped  to  succeed  without  being  perceived 
by  our  troops;  and  about  three  hours  after  dark,  they  directed  the  two 
chieftains,  Macri  and  Becacello,  to  make  a  sortie  with  eight  hundred 
men,  and  to  attempt  to  gain  possession  of  one  of  our  batteries,  situated 
on  the  sea-shore  leading  towards  the  Convent,  which  was  manned  by 
the  Arabs.  They  did  this  in  the  view,  that  after  having  taken  posses- 
sion of  the  battery,  they  might  open  the  way  to  the  remainder  of  the 
garrison  and  their  families,  and  escape  unperceived.  More  than  a 
thousand  women  and  children,  who  were  unwilling  longer  to  remain  in 
the  town,  followed  these  two  chieftains,  armed  and  dressed  as  males, 
with  the  hope  of  being  able  to  make  good  their  flight.  Having  reached 
the  battery,  they  were  notable  to  stand  against  the  continued  fire  of  the 
Arabs,  and  attempted  by  flight  to  reach  the  mountains  without  being 
discovered  by  our  commanders;  but  in  this  they  were  disappointed,  for 
Rumley  Valesy,  and  his  brother  Morea  Valesy,  Pacha,  had  taken  every 
precaution  when  they  saw  the  flashes  of  the  musketry  discharged  by 
the  men  under  Caraiscachi,  feeling  convinced  from  the  reports  of  the 
prisoners  respecting  the  want  of  provisions  in  the  town,  that  a  flight 
would  be  attempted,  and  had  not  failed  to  reinforce  our  troops  at  the 
different  forts,  and  to  line  all  the  country  at  the  foot  of  the  mountains 
with  regular  and  irregular  troops,  infantry  and  cavalry. 

"  The  above  mentioned  chieftains  in  their  flight  to  the  mountains 
were  thus  met  by  our  troops,  and  in  the  hopes  of  relieving  themselves 
of  their  superfluous  loads,  and  escape,  they  put  to  death  eight  hundred 
women  and  children,  (as  unable  to  keep  company  with  them,)  and  fled 
up  the  mountains,  crying  out  to  each  other  to  save  themselves  as  well 
as  they  could. 

"  The  remainder  of  the  Greeks,  who  waited  in  Missolonghi  until  the 
Capture  of  our  battery,  observed  that  their  two  chieftains  had  taken 
flight,  and  got  so  alarmed  and  confused  that  they  abandoned  their  posts. 
Four  hundred  of  them  shut  themselves  up  in  the  wind-mill,  and  above 
five  hundred  others  took  refuge  in  their  different  batteries  on  the  shore ; 
the  rest  dispersed  themselves  in  parties  of  tens  and  twenties,  and  were 
all  put  to  death  by  the  continued  firing  which  was  kept  up. 

"  Our  troops  observing  the  confusion  of  the  rebels,  rushed  in,  part  by 
sea,  and  part  by  land,  and  took  possession  of  the  fortifications,  and,  as 
a  signal  of  their  success,  set  fire  to  them  in  different  places.  At  this 
time,  many  women  and  children,  who  were  without  protection,  in  order 
to  escape  being  taken  by  our  people  who  were  coming  up  to  them;  ran 
to  the  ditches  and  drowned  themselves. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  385 

sistancc  by  the  means  of  the  Greek  fleet  were  not  realized, 
at  last  determined  to  abandon  the  place,  and  if  possible,  to 
escape  through  the  Turkish  camp.  Unfortunately  for  them, 
however,  Ibrahim  Pacha  was  advised  of  all  their  proceedings 
and  intentions,  by  deserters  from  the  town  ;  and  in  conse- 
quence, the  most  effectual  means  were  taken  to  prevent  a 
surprise.  On  Friday,  the  21st  April,  Ibrahim  Pacha  offered 
a  capitulation  to  the  Greeks,  on  condition  of  laying  down 
their  arms :  which  was  refused  in  consequence  of  the  ob- 
stinacy of  the  Souliots.  It  is  stated  that  the  understanding, 
on  the  part  of  the  Greeks,  was,  that  an  armed  force  should 
appear  on  the  heights  in  the  rear  of  the  Turkish  camp,  and, 
on  their  giving  a  signal,  the  sortie  was  to  be  made.  This,  in 
fact,  took  place,  although  the  Greeks  never  came  down  from 
the  mountains  to  the  assistance  of  the  garrison  ;  indeed,  it 
is  asserted  by  some,  that  it  was  a  party  of  Ibrahim's  troops, 
who  appeared  on  the  mountains,  and  by  giving  the  concerted 
signal,  deceived  the  besieged.  Be  this  as  it  may,  the  sortie 
was  made  about  nine  o'clock  on  Saturday  night,  22d  ultimo, 
in  great  confusion,  the  women  and  children  being  in  ad- 
vance, in  consequence  of  which  great  numbers  of  them 
were  killed  by  the  fire  of  the  besiegers  as  well  as  by  their 
falling  into  the  ditches  :  the  others  continued  to  advance  ; 
but  being   opposed  on  every  side  by  the  Turks,  a  dreadful 

"  Our  troops  having  received  orders  to  subdue  the  town  that 
night,  and  to  put  to  the  sword  all  they  might  meet  with,  rushed  into 
the  town  of  Missolonghi,  and  either  took  prisoners  or  destroyed  all 
whom  they  found.  Many  women  and  children  were  taken  prison- 
ers. The  500  Greeks  who  were  above  mentioned  as  having  shut, 
themselves  up  in  the  batteries  on  the  shore,  were  then  attacked,  and 
after  considerable  firing,  in  the  space  of  two  hours  were  all  de- 
stroyed. 

"  After  this  none  were  left,  except  the  300  who  were  shut  up  in  tho 
wind-mill.  These  were  then  assaulted  by  our  people,  and  the  rebels 
(most  of  them  officers)  observing  their  imminent  danger,  set  fire  to 
their  gunpowder  and  blew  themselves  up. 

"  The  destruction  of  the  rebels  has  been  unexampled — their  numbers 

killed  in  the  town  are  reckoned  at -       2100 

Killed  at  the  foot  of  the  mountain, -    500 

Taken  alive  in  different  parts,  (men,) 150 

Women  killed, 1300 

Women  and  children  drowned,    -  ...  .    800 

Women  and  children  taken  prisoners,         -  ...        3400 

Total,  8250 
Sec  Boston  Daily  Advertiser,  Aug.  15, 1826, 


386  HISTORY  OF  THE 

massacre  ensued.  I  have  been  assured  by  persons  who  were* 
present,  and  by  others  who  visited  the  camp  soon  after  the 
catastrophe,  that  the  plain  between  Missolonghi  and  the 
mountains  was  covered  with  dead  bodies.  On  these  occa- 
sions it  is  impossible  to  ascertain  accurately  the  number  of 
those  who  fell,  and  therefore  no  reliance  ought  to  be  placed 
on  the  reports  which  have  been  circulated  on  the  subject. — 
It  is  stated,  and  I  believe  correctly,  that  the  principal  part  of 
the  Souliots  (who  formed  the  chief  defence  of  Missolonghi) 
escaped  to  the  mountains  ;  and,  some  days  afterwards,  seve- 
ral of  the  Greeks  who  escaped  at  the  same  time,  came  into 
Lepanto,  and  surrendered  to  the  Turks,  as  they  had  wan- 
dered about  the  neighbourhood  without  being  able  to  procure 
the  means  of  subsistence.  Above  three  thousand  pair  of 
ears  were  cut  off  from  the  dead  bodies,  and  sent  to  Con- 
stantinople ;  while  about  five  thousand  women  and  children 
were  made  slaves.  Among  the  dead  bodies  those  of  Papa- 
diamandopulo,  Eparch  of  Missolonghi  (formerly  Primate  of 
Patras,)  and  Meyer,  Editor  of  the  Greek  Chronicle,  were 
recognized.  The  loss  of  the  Turks  was  trifling,  as  the 
Greeks  scarcely  offered  any  resistance,  seeming  only  desi- 
rous of  effecting  their  escape.  Ibrahim  Pacha  gave  up  the 
town  to  be  sacked  by  his  Arab  troops  ;  and,  upon  the  Alba- 
nians attempting  to  participate  in  the  spoils,  they  were  pre- 
vented doing  so  by  the  Arabs,  who  actually  formed,  and 
fired  on  the  Albanians,  by  which  about  a  hundred  and  fifty 
of  the  latter  are  said  to  have  been  killed,  when  the  others 
desisted  from  their  purpose,  and  were  only  permitted  to  en- 
ter the  place  three  days  afterwards.  The  truth  is,  that  from 
the  commencement  of  the  Egyptian  army's  appearance  be- 
fore Missolonghi,  the  greatest  jealousy  existed  between  the 
Albanians  serving  the  Seraskier,  and  the  Arabs,  which  led 
to  endless  disputes;  and,  in  consequence,  the  Egyptian 
camp  was  formed  at  the  distance  of  about  a  mile  from  that 
of  the  Albanians.  The  latter  were  not  permitted  to  take 
any  part  in  the  operations  of  the  siege  ;  but  were  employed 
at  the  out-posts.  Ibrahim  Pacha  had  reason  to  believe,  from 
the  general  conduct  of  the  Albanians,  as  well  as  from  se- 
cret information,  that  some  of  their  chiefs  favoured  the 
Greeks  in  Missolonghi ;  and,  after  the  fall  of  that  place,  such 
proved  to  be  the  case,  as  letters  were  found  from  Albanian 
Chiefs,  addressed  to  some  of  the  besieged,  informing  them 
of  Ibrahim's  operations.  When  it  is  recollected  that  the  for- 
mer assaults  on  Missolonghi  were  made  by  Albanian  mer- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  387 

<!cnaries,  under  the  command  of  these  same  chiefs,  the  prin- 
cipal cause  of  their  failure  has  thus  become  sufficiently 
evident. 

"  Missolonghi  having  been  completely  sacked  by  the 
Arabs,  orders  were  given  to  collect  the  bodies  of  the  slain, 
and  which  having  been  placed  in  heaps,  were  burnt,  in  order 
to  prevent  infection. 

"  Upon  taking  a  review  of  the  various  attacks  made  upon 
Missolonghi  by  the  Turks,  and  the  brave  defences  of  its  gar- 
rison, it  is  impossible  not  to  render  a  tribute  of  admiration  to 
the  memory  of  those  who,  compelled  by  famine  to  abandon 
its  walls,  have  perished  in  the  attempt.  That  such  a  dread- 
ful catastrophe  might  have  been  avoided  there  can  be  no 
doubt,  as  Ibrahim  Pacha  offered  the  garrison  and  inhabitants 
a  capitulation  on  the  same  terms  as  he  granted  at  Anatolico, 
which  they  knew  he  had  fulfilled  ;  and  therefore,  under  the 
circumstances  of  the  case,  might  have  been  honourably  agreed 
to  by  them. 

"  Being  naturally  anxious  to  visit  a  place  which  had  made 
so  many  brave  defences,  and  had  cost  the  Turks  so  much,  t 
proceeded  to  Missolonghi  a  few  days  since.  I  must  confess 
that  its  appearance  caused  me  much  surprise :  its  fortifica* 
tions  are  scarcely  worthy  the  name,  and  of  fifteen  guns  mount- 
ed on  the  bastions,  consisting  of  three  to  twelve-pounders, 
the  greater  part  were  unfit  for  service.  There  can  be  no 
doubt  that  the  natural  position  of  Missolonghi,  it  being  built 
in  a  marsh  below  the  level  of  the  sea,  was  its  greatest  securi* 
ty,  and  formed  its  real  defence  ;  but  I  certainly  am  of  opinion 
that  the  Turks  might  have  taken  the  place  by  storm  any 
night,  without  losing  half  the  number  of  men  they  did  at 
Monasteri.  The  Greeks  succeeded  by  boasting  in  frighten- 
ing the  Turks  into  a  belief  that  the  place  was  impregnable. 
The  effect  of  the  cannonading  from  the  Turkish  batteries 
was  not  what  might  have  been  expected ;  and  there  really 
was  no  practicable  breach  made,  although  the  wall  might 
have  been  easily  escaladed.  The  shells,  however,  caused 
great  devastation,  as  with  the  exception  of  about  twenty 
houses,  all  was  a  heap  of  ruins.  The  house  which  had  been 
inhabited  by  Lord  Byron  escaped  unhurt.  An  Albanian 
offered  to  point  out  to  me  the  tomb  of  Marco  Bozzaris  ;  and, 
upon  reaching  the  spot,  I  was  shocked  to  find  that  the  grave 
of  this  brave  chief  had  not  been  respected  by  his  enemies, 
who  had  dug  up  his  remains,  as  well  as  those  of  General 
Normann,  in  the  expectation  that  they  had  been  buried  with 


388  HISTORY  OF  THE 

their  arms.  The  skeleton  of  Marco  Bozzaris  lay  exposed 
to  view  ;  the  skull  was  separated  from  the  body,  and  my  first 
wish  was  to  rescue  at  least  the  former  from  further  sacrilege  ; 
but,  as  I  could  not  conceal  it  on  my  person,  and  did  not  deem 
it  prudent  to  carry  it  through  the  Turkish  camp  exposed  to 
view,  I  was  reluctantly  compelled  to  abandon  my  design, 
and  merely  preserved  some  of  the  teeth. 

"  I  then  proceeded  to  the  Egyptian  camp  outside  the 
walls,  and  had  an  interview  with  Ibrahim  Pacha.  He  is  of 
middling  stature,  rather  fat,  marked  with  the  small  pox,  has 
a  reddish  beard,  and  is  on  the  whole  not  a  good-looking  man  : 
he  evidently  has  an  excellent  opinion  of  himself,  the  natural 
consequence  of  being  surrounded  by  flatterers  and  slaves. 
He  is,  however,  an  active  man  compared  with  other  Turks, 
and  certainly  manages,  one  way  or  other,  to  carry  his  plans 
into  effect.  While  marching  from  place  to  place  in  the  Mo- 
rea,  his  manner  of  living  was  not  at  all  splendid  or  luxurious  ; 
but  at  Missolonghi  he  lived  in  great  state.  His  tent  was  a 
most  magnificent  one,  and  combined  elegance  with  comfort. 
It  covered  a  large  extent  of  ground,  and  was  divided  into 
several  apartments.  The  outside  was  composed  of  green 
canvas,  rendered  impervious  to  the  weather  by  a  second 
covering;  the  outside  was  completely  lined  with  pieces  of 
different  coloured  silk.  The  tents  of  the  officers  were  green; 
those  of  the  men  white.  A  tent  allotted  to  every  twelve 
men,  and  these  were  placed  in  regular  rows.  Ovens  were 
built  outside  of  each  tent,  which  served  for  cooking  the  rations 
and  baking  the  bread. 

"  Thus*  terminated  this  memorable  siege,  after  a  resolute 
and  persevering  defence,  which  has  few  parallels  in  history. 
The  steadiness  with  which  the  garrison  and  inhabitants  re- 
sisted all  attempts  to  induce  them  to  make  a  voluntary  surren- 
der, may  be  considered  an  additional  proof  to  the  many  which 
the  war  has  afforded,  that  the  Greeks,  although  they  may  be 
in  time  exterminated  by  a  vastly  superior  power,  cannot  be 
brought  to  submission  under  the  most  appalling  circumstances 
to  the  Ottoman  yoke.  Of  the  sufferings  endured  by  the  in- 
habitants of  this  rich  and  populous  city,  the  world  knows  lit- 
tle, as  no  satisfactory  account  of  the  incidents  of  the  siege 
has  been  published.  The  following  letter  from  M  .  Meyer, 
a  Swiss,  as  one  of  the  persons  who  perished  in  the  last  de- 
fence of  Missolonghi,  written  a  few  days  before  his  death , 
will  serve  to  show  the  spirit  which  animated  the  inhabitants. 
*  Boston  edition  of  the  Modern  Traveller. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  389 

11  The  labours  which  we  have  undergone,  and  a  wound 
which  I  have  received  in  the  shoulder,  while  I  am  in  expec- 
tation of  one  which  will  be  my  passport  to  eternity,  have  pre- 
vented me  till  now  from  bidding  you  my  last  adieu.  We  are  re- 
duced to  feed  upon  the  most  disgusting  animals — we  are  suf- 
fering horribly  with  hunger  and  thirst.  Sickness  adds  much  to 
the  calamities  which  overwhelm  us.  Seventeen  hundred  and 
forty  of  our  brothers  are  dead.  More  than  a  hundred  thou- 
sand bombs  and  balls,  thrown  by  the  enemy,  have  destroyed 
our  bastions  and  our  houses.  We  have  been  terribly  distress- 
ed by  the  cold,  for  we  have  suffered  great  want  of  wood. — 
Notwithstanding  so  many  privations,  it  is  a  great  and  noble 
spectacle  to  witness  the  ardour  and  devotedness  of  the  gar- 
rison. A  few  days  more,  and  these  brave  men  will  be  an- 
gelic spirits,  who  will  accuse  before  God  the  indifference  of 
Christendom  for  a  cause  which  is  that  of  religion.  All  the 
Albanians  who  had  deserted  from  the  standard  of  Reschid 
Pacha,  have  now  rallied  under  that  of  Ibrahim.  In  the 
name  of  all  our  brave  men,  among  whom  are  Notha  Bozzaris; 
Tzavellas,  Papadia-Mautopolas,  and  myself,  whom  the  gov- 
ernment has  appointed  general  to  a  body  of  its  troops,  I  an- 
nounce to  you  the  resolution  sworn  to  before  heaven,  to  de- 
fend foot  by  foot  the  land  of  Missolonghi,  and  to  bury  our- 
selves, without  listening  to  any  capitulation,  under  the  ruins 
of  this  city.  We  are  drawing  near  our  final  hour.  History 
will  render  us  justice — posterity  will  weep  over  our  misfoi* 
tunes.  I  am  proud  to  think  that  the  blood  of  a  Swiss,  of  a 
child  of  William  Tell,  is  about  to  mingle  with  that  of  the  he- 
roes of  Greece.  May  the  relation  of  the  siege  of  Missolon- 
ghi, which  I  have  written,  survive  me.  I  have  made  several 
copies  of  it.  Cause  this  letter,  dear  S***,  to  be  inserted  in 
some  journal." 

In  the  mean  time,  the  inhabitants  of  some  other  parts  oi 
Greece  were  not  idle  spectators  of  these  events,  though 
their  efforts  were  in  a  great  degree  paralyzed  by  a  want  of 
harmony,  and  by  a  dreadful  scarcity  of  provisions.  Coloco- 
troni  made  an  attempt  to  get  possession  of  Tripolizza,  by  a 
coup  de  main,  but  he  did  not  succeed,  and  he  retreated  and 
established  his  head  quarters,  with  about  2000  men,  at  Ar- 
gos. 

Col.  Favier,  having  formed  a  little  army  of  2000  regular 
troops,  cavalry,  artillery  and  infantry,  attempted  an  expedi- 
tion into  Negropont.  He  marched  his  troops  to  Rapht, 
where  they  embarked,  and  shortly  after  landed  at  Stura,  in 

34 


390  HISTORY  OF  THE 


the  island  of  Eubcea,  in  front  of  Marathon.  He  then  march- 
ed immediately  upon  Carysto,  where  there  was  a  Turkish 
garrison.  He  took  possession  of  the  town,  and  ordered  aw 
assault  on  the  garrison,  which  was  in  part  successful,  but  the 
Turks  having  manned  a  heavy  battery,  turned  it  with  effect 
upon  the  Greeks  and  obliged  them  to  retire.  The  Turk? 
soon  received  a  reinforcement  of  1500  men,  commanded  by 
Omer  Pacha,  Governor  of  Negropont,  and  Favier,  after  se 
veral  engagements  in  which  he  lost  a  number  of  his  officers, 
and  after  exhausting  his  ammunition,  and  provisions,  was 
obliged  to  send  for  assistance.  A  number  of  vessels,  with 
irregular  troops  under  Grissotti  and  Varse,  were  sent  to  his 
aid,  and  he  again  advanced  on  Carysto.  But  it  was  at  length 
resolved  to  retreat,  and  the  troops  were  re-embarked,  the 
cavalry  and  artillery  for  Marathon  and  Athens,  and  the  in- 
fantry for  the  island  of  Andros.  The  cavalry  in  this  expedi- 
tion were  commanded  by  Renard  de  St.  Jean  d'Angely. — 
D'Angely  found  no  other  opportunity  of  signalizing  himself, 
and  in  the  following  August  he  returned  to  Paris,  accompa- 
nied by  a  son  of  Petro  Bey,  a  Maniote  chief. 

On  the  18th  of  April,  the  representatives  of  the  several 
Greek  provinces  met  at  Epidaurus,  forming  what  was  called 
the  third  National  Assembly.  They  had  been  but  a  few 
days  in  session  when  they  received  the  news  of  the  capture  of 
Missolonghi,  and  of  the  preparations  of  the  enemy  for  further 
enterprises.  With  the  hope  of  calling  into  action  the  ener- 
gies of  the  people  with  the  greatest  promptitude  and  efficacy, 
they  resolved  to  concentrate  all  the  powers  of  government 
in  a  commission,  consisting  of  the  following  persons  :  Petro 
Mavromichalis,  Andreas  Zaimi,  A.  Delijannis,.  G.  Sesseni, 
Spiridion  Tricoupis,  Andreas  Jacos,  Johannes  Vlachos,  D. 
Tzamados,  A.  H.  Anargynos,  A.  Monarchides,  and  E.  De- 
metriacopulos.  Zaimi  was  appointed  President.  The  dura- 
tion of  this  commission  was  limited  to  the  end  of  the  follow- 
ing September,  when  the  representatives  of  the  people  were 
to  meet  again.  Having  published  this  arrangement,  in  an 
address  to  the  Greek  nation,  in  which  they  call  upon  them 
to  obey  the  government  thus  established,  and  unite  their 
efforts  in  accomplishing  the  great  end  of  their  struggle,  they 
dissolved  the  assembly,  after  publishing  also  the  following 
declaration :  ( 

"  The  Representatives  of  the  different  provinces  of  Greece, 
assembled  at  Epidaurus,  and  legally  and  regularly  convened 
in  the  third  National  Assembly,  having  adopted  plans  tending 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  391 

to  promote  the  interest  of  the  people,  and  unanimously  de- 
cided upon  that  which  present  circumstances  demand,  and 
upon  the  necessary  mode  of  carrying  their  decisions  into 
execution,  previous  to  the  prorogation  of  their  labours,  as 
ordained  by  the  decree  No.  4,  offer  in  the  first  place  to  the 
throne  of  the  Most  High,  humbly  and  submissively,  the  tri- 
bute of  the  most  sincere  and  heartfelt  thanks  of  the  Greek 
nation,  which  devoutly  trusts  in  Him,  and  which,  although 
he  in  his  wisdom  has  submitted  it  to  bitter  trials,  he  has  not 
for  a  moment  forsaken,  during  the  course  of  its  long  and  ar- 
duous struggle  ;  but  has  looked  down  upon  it  from  on  high, 
and  evinced  to  it  his  divine  power,  and  the  glory  of  his  sacred 
name. 

"  Having,  from  the  depths  of  their  hearts,  performed  the 
duty  of  testifying  their  gratitude  towards  the  Omnipotent 
Providence,  they  proclaim,  in  the  name  of  the  Greek  nation, 
its  unanimous  and  undivided  determination  to  live  and  die 
amidst  all  the  chances  of  war,  in  firm  adherence  to  the  holy 
precepts  of  the  Christian  religion,  in  defence  of  their  country, 
and  that  they  will  unceasingly  struggle  to  deliver  Greece, 
which  a  long  despotism  has  polluted  and  enslaved,  and  which 
barbarism  has  profaned. 

"  The  Greek  nation  hopes  that  its  heroic  devotion  and  its 
brilliant  deeds,  in  the  midst  of  most  depressing  trials,  which 
have  proved  to  the  potentates  of  Christendom,  that  which  at 
the  beginning  of  their  contest,  they  by  discourse  and  invoca- 
tions never  failed  to  express,  namely — thzi  the  Creek  nation 
did  not  take  up  arms  to  establish  its  political  existence  on 
revolutionary  principles,  which  monarchical  Europe  cannot 
admit  of,  or  to  appropriate  to  itself  a  foreign  country,  or  to 
subject  other  nations  ;  but  to  deliver  itself  from  that  which  is 
by  some  wrongly  denominated  Turkish  legitimacy,  which  the 
Greek  nation  never  acknowledged,  and  which  the  Porte  itself 
never  imagined  that  it  possessed.  The  Greek  nation  did  not 
arm  itself  to  violate  its  oaths,  or  to  transgress  its  duty  and 
obligations,  for  it  never  swore  fealty  to  the  Sultan  as  his  cap- 
tive slave,  nor  did  the  Sultan  ever  exact  as  a  master  those 
oaths  by  force  or  violence  :  nor  do  the  Hellenians  fight  to 
subvert  those  institutions  which  have  social  order  for  their 
basis  ;  for  it  is  notorious  that  they  had  no  institutions  or  laws 
but  the  word  of  the  Sultan.  The  Greek  nation,  in  taking  up 
and  retaining  their  arms,  sought,  and  still  seek,  the  glory  of 
the  Christian  name,  which  was,  together  with  its  clergy,  per- 
secuted and  condemned.     It  seeks  the  perfect  independence 


392  HISTORY  OF  THE 

of  the  land  of  its  ancestors,  of  which  violence  and  force  alone 
deprived  it.  It  seeks  freedom  and  a  political  existence,  of 
which  it  has  been  despoiled  ;  in  a  word,  it  wishes  to  avoid 
subjection  to  any  nation  whatever. 

"  These  are  the  objects  for  which  the  Greek  nation  com- 
bats ;  for  these  alone  it  sees,  placidly  and  without  yielding, 
its  cities  and  its  villages  deluged  with  blood,  its  country  made 
a  desert,  thousands  of  its  members  dragged  to  slaughter, 
thousands  into  slavery  and  debasement;  for  these,  alone, 
with  a  firm  determination,  it  has  dared  to  prefer  the  loss  of 
its  most  valuable  relations,  to  a  relapse  into  the  power  of  the 
Turkish  tyranny. 

"  The  representatives  of  the  Greek  nation  consider  it 
iheir  duty  to  proclaim  these  things  openly  to  those  who  are 
attached  to  the  name  of  Christ,  and  whose  hearts  beat  re- 
sponsive to  the  generous  sentiments  and  the  unchangeable 
resolution  of  the  Greek  people.  They  entertain  a  fervent 
hope  that  the  monarchs  of  Europe,  who  exercise  dominion 
under  Christ,  convinced  of  the  equity  and  justice  of  their 
contest,  will,  in  this  appalling  hour,  cast  an  eye  of  pity  on 
an  unfortunate  nation,  whose  sufferings  arise  from  its  pro- 
fessing and  maintaining  a  similar  creed  as  themselves. 

"  The  representatives  of  Greece  proclaim  aloud  the  above 
in  the  face  of  God  and  man,  and  in  relinquishing  their  labour 
as  members  of  the  national  assembly,  until  next  September, 
they  offer  up  their  supplication  with  confident  hopes  and 
humble  prayers  to  the  throne  of  the  Almighty,  and  solicit  his 
omnipotent  benevolence  to  look  with  an  eye  of  mercy  on  the 
dangers  of  his  creatures,  and  to  shed  the  rich  effusions  of  his 
clemency  on  the  Greek  nation,  which  considers  Him  as  its 
only  hope,  its  sole  refuge,  and  last  resource. 

"  The  President  of  the  Assembly, 
\       (L.  S.)  "  PANUTZOS  NOTARAS'. 

"  The  Secretary  General, 
"  A.  PAPADOPULOS. 

"  Given  at  Epidaurus,  April  16th,  (28th)." 

Soon  after  the  destruction  of  Missolonghi,  the  fleet  of  the 
Oapitan  Pacha  returned  to  the  Dardanelles,  where  it  remain- 
ed inactive  for  more  than  two  months.  Ibrahim  returned 
with  the  greater  part  of  his  troops  to  Patras,  and  a  long  pe- 
riod elapsed  before  he  attempted  any  further  movement.  In- 
deed he  accomplished  nothing  of  any  importance  during  the 
whole  summer,  and  the  succeeding  winter.  He  marched  a 
part  of  his  troops  upon  Calavrita  andTripolizza,and  part  upon 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  393 

Modon.  His  efforts  appear  to  have  been  paralyzed  by  the 
losses  sustained  by  him,  by  the  plague  which  prevailed  in 
several  of  the  garrisons,  particularly  at  Modon,  and  the  want 
of  provisions,  for  which  he  was  entirely  dependent  on  sup- 
plies from  Egypt.  He  was  also  himself  dangerously  ill,  for 
twenty  days,  at  Modon,  in  July.  So  remarkable  was  his  in- 
activity, that  it  was  suspected  to  arise  from  indisposition  on  the 
part  of  his  father  the  viceroy,  to  a  further  prosecution  of  the 
war.  This  supposition  however  has  not  yet  been  proved  by 
any  satisfactory  evidence.  On  the  contrary,  considerable 
efforts  seem  to  have  been  made  to  send  supplies  and  rein- 
forcements. In  July,  32  transports,  escorted  by  8  ships  of 
war,  arrived  at  Modon  with  provisions,  and  4000  Arab  troops, 
and  immediately  after,  preparations  were  made  for  still  fur- 
ther reinforcements. 

'  Reschid  Pacha  was  succeeded  in  the  command  by  Cutay 
Pacha,  as  Seraskier  of  Roumelia.  He  advanced  into  Liva- 
dia,  and  after  a  good  deal  of  delay  took  possession  of  The- 
bes. At  length,  with  a  large  army  of  Turks  and  Albanians, 
and  in  conjunction  with  the  army  of  the  Pacha  of  Negropont, 
he  marched  into  Attica.  An  attack  upon  Athens  had  been 
long  expected,  and  many  of  the  inhabitants  retired  to  the 
neighbouring  islands.  In  the  beginning  of  August  the  Turk- 
ish army,  in  three  bodies,  nearly  surrounded  the  city,  and  es- 
tablished their  advanced  posts  within  gun-shot  of  the  walls. 
They  occupied  themselves  in  erecting  batteries  on  the  back 
of  the  Pnyx,  where  they  mounted  three  48  lb.  cannon,  with 
several  of  smaller  dimensions,  to  bombard  the  city  and  the 
Acropolis.  The  Greeks  however  kept  post  on  the  hill  of  the 
museum,  under  the  protection  of  the  cannon  of  the  Acropo- 
lis; and  a  strong  garrison,  with  several  Greek  captains,  en- 
tered that  fortress.  Among  the  captains  was  Mastro  Casta, 
a  very  skilful  miner. 

The  Greek  captains  before  this  time  had  been  making  pre- 
parations to  march  against  the  Seraskier,  and  for  that  pur- 
pose had  assembled  a  large  number  of  troops  at  Salamis. 
While  the  Turks  were  erecting  their  batteries,  Karaiskak-i 
with  a  thousand  men,  went  from  Salamis  to  Eleusis,  where  he 
maintained  himself  against  the  repeated  attacks  of  the  light 
troops  despatched  against  him  from  the  Ottoman  camp. — 
Archondopolo,  with  several  hundred  men,  landed  near  Me- 
gara,  and  threw  himself  into  the  mountains  of  the  isthmus. 
The  captains  who  remained  were  joined  at  Salamis  on  the 
10th  by  the  Ionian  phalanx  of  four  hundred  men,  commanded 

34* 


394  HISTORY  OF  THE 

by  Omarphopolo.  This  corps  was  formed  two  months  be- 
fore, and  consisted  of  the  Greeks  of  Asia  Minor  and  the  Ar- 
chipelago, who  were  in  the  Morea.  It  was  governed  by  a 
council  of  fifteen  members,  and  a  commander  of  their  own 
choice,  and  had  a  common  treasury,  with  a  fund  for  the  sup- 
port of  the  widows  and  orphans  of  the  members  who  should  fall 
in  the  service.  On  the  same  day,  also,  Col.  Favier  arrived 
with  1500  Tacticos  as  they  were  called,  from  Methana,  where 
he  had  been  encamped.  On  the  11th  of  August  all  these 
forces  sailed  for  the  Pireus,  where  they  landed  without  oppo- 
sition. From  there  they  advanced  across  the  wood  of  Olives 
which  covers  the  plain,  directing  their  course  towards  the 
camp  which  was  established  near  the  academy.  In  the  mean 
time,  Karaiskaki  advanced  by  the  Eleusis  road.  The  whole 
of  this  day  was  employed  in  making  these  movements,  and 
preparing  for  the  battle  of  the  succeeding  day. 

At  day  break  on  the  12th,  Favier  marched  with  his  corps 
on  the  left,  while  Karaiskaki  advanced  in  good  order  on  the 
right.  The  Roumeliotes  formed  the  centre,  and  the  Ionian 
phalanx  was  destined  to  form  a  reserve,  and  to  sustain  the 
first  of  the  three  bodies  that  might  fall  back.  At  the  same 
moment  Goura,  who  was  acquainted  with  these  arrangements, 
made  a  sortie  from  the  Acropolis,  and  attacked  the  battery 
of  the  Pnyx  with  great  spirit.  But  it  was  defended  by  the 
Turks  with  great  obstinacy,  and  they  retained  possession  of 
it.  Goura,  prest  by  superior  numbers,  after  having  lost 
several  men,  was  obliged  to  retire  into  the  fortress.  The 
battle  was  kept  up  with  fury  on  both  sides,  for  several  hours, 
and  with  balanced  success.  Towards  the  middle  of  the  day, 
Favier's  corps,  sustained  by  the  Roumeliotes,  succeeded  in 
taking  possession  of  a  mound,  which  was  for  a  long  time  dis- 
puted, with  a  piece  of  cannon  and  two  standards.  The  ad- 
vantage of  the  day  remained  with  the  Greeks,  who,  however, 
found  themselves  reduced  to  a  single  piece  of  cannon,  out 
of  four  which  they  had  during  the  battle,  the  other  three 
having  burst.  The  next  day,  when  the  combat  was  about  to 
be  renewed  with  increased  fury,  Omer  Pacha  arrived  with 
two  thousand  cavalry,  and  immediately  began  the  charge. 
Favier  ordered  his  troops  to  form  a  hollow  square.  ■  They 
began  to  execute  this  manoeuvre,  but  the  charge  was  made 
with  such  impetuosity  that  the  Tacticoes,  affrighted  at  the 
mass  that  seemed  about  to  crush  them,  had  no  time  to  form, 
and  their  ranks  were  broken.  Favier  made  vain  efforts  to 
rally  them,  and  was  bravely  supported  by  the  Philhellenians, 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  395 

who  sustained  the  shock,  but  were  almost  all  wounded, 
The  Roumeliotes  also  made  a  brave  effort  to  sustain  the 
battle,  but  an  impulse  had  been  given  which  it  was  impossi- 
ble to  resist,  and  the  disorder  became  general.  The  Turkish 
infantry  fell  upon  Karaiskaki,  who  was  obliged  to  retreat 
precipitately.  The  Turks  took  possession  of  the  place  where 
the  Greeks  had  deposited  the  wounded  of  the  day  before, 
and  they  were  all  put  to  the  sword.  This  battle  was  fought 
with  more  steady  and  persevering  bravery  on  both  sides  than 
almost  any  since  the  commencement  of  the  war.  The  Greeks 
were  greatly  outnumbered  by  the  enemy,  particularly  in  ar- 
tillery and  cavalry.  They  had  about  6000  infantry,  and  only 
50  cavalry.  The  Turks  immediately  became  undisputed 
masters  of  the  city  and  the  plain  of  Athens.  The  citadel 
remained  in  the  possession  of  Goura. 

The  Turkish  fleet  remained  in  port  at  the  Dardanelles 
until  about  the  middle  of  July,  when  it  sailed,  to  the 
number  of  sixty  vessels,  with  a  body  of  troops  on  board. — 
Troops  were  also  assembled  on  the  Asiatic  coast,  subject  to 
the  orders  of  the  Capitan  Pacha,  and  it  was  supposed  that 
an  attack  was  to  be  made  on  some  one  of  the  Grecian  islands. 
His  movements,  however,  were  so  indecisive  that  it  has  not 
been  ascertained  to  this  day  what  was  bis  plan  of  campaign. 
It  is  probable  that  an  attack  upon  Samos  was  meditated.  On 
the  8th  of  August  he  landed  a  part  of  his  troops  at  Saiagik, 
and  sailed  for  Mytilene,  where  he  remained  with  his  fleet 
until  the  19th.  On  the  21st  the  fleet  was  seen  under  sail 
towards  the  channel  of  Scio,  and  on  the  25th  directing  its 
course  towards  Samos.  Its  movements  were  watched  by 
Santouris,  who  kept  the  sea  with  a  fleet  of  53  vessels  ;  Miau- 
)is  in  the  mean  time  was  occupied  in  transporting  a  body  of 
Roumeliot  troops  from  Napoli  to  Hydra,  which  was  supposed 
to  be  in  danger  of  invasion.  On  the  26th  the  Capitan 
Pacha  took  on  board  his  fleet  7000  troops  at  Saiagik,  and 
sailed  towards  Samos,  but  soon  after  finding  that  sickness 
prevailed  to  a  great  degree  among  the  troops,  he  landed  them 
at  Scio,  and  proceeded  with  his  fleet  again  to  Mytilene, 
where  he  remained  the  greater  part  of  the  time  at  anchor 
until  November,  when  he  returned  with  his  whole  squadron 
to  Constantinople.  The  Turkish  and  Grecian  fleets  were 
often  near  each  other,  and  there  are  accounts  of  some  con- 
flicts between  them,  but  they  are  not  of  a  sufficiently  authen- 
tic character  to  enable  us  to  rely  with  much  confidence  on 


396  HISTORY  OF  THE 

the  details.     The  Turkish  fleet  sustained  some  losses  from 
storms  and  accidents. 

In  August,  the  viceroy  of  Egypt  began  to  prepare  another 
grand  expedition,  to  reinforce  his  son  Ibrahim.  To  supply 
the  losses  in  the  Morea,  constant  recruits  were  necessary. 
These  were  obtained  from  his  Arabian  subjects,  with  little 
uther  cost  than  that  of  arming,  training,  and  affording  them 
subsistence.  For  the  purpose  of  forming  these  recruits,  and 
instructing  them  in  the  European  tactics,  for  the  subjugation 
of  the  Christian  inhabitants  of  Greece,  Mehemet  Ali  kept  in 
pay  a  large  number  of  European  officers,  principally  French- 
men. At  the  head  of  these  officers  was  General  Boyer,  who 
had  attained  some  distinction  in  the  service  of  Napoleon. 
Before  this  expedition  was  ready  to  sail,  Boyer,  and  most  of 
the  other  foreign  officers,  quitted  the  service  of  the  viceroy 
and  returned  to  France.  After  many  unexpected  delays,  a 
squadron  of  70  vessels  sailed  on  the  17th  of  November,  from 
Alexandria,  and  on  the  1st  of  the  following  month  landed 
7000  troops  at  Modon,  of  whom  600  were  cavalry.  This 
reinforcement  made  more  than  50,000  men  transported  from 
Egypt  to  the  Morea,  none  of  whom  have  returned,  and  two 
thirds  of  whom  probably  have  already  found  a  grave  in 
Greece. 

Although  Ibrahim  had  effected  nothing  of  importance  since 
the  capture  of  Missolonghi,  he  did  not  remain  entirely  inac- 
tive. He  made  many  marches  with  a  portion  of  his  troops, 
and  found  some  employment  in  repelling  the  various  attacks 
upon  him  by  Golocotroni  and  other  Grecian  chiefs.  In 
August  he  marched  into  Laconia,  and  after  taking  posses- 
sion of  Mistra,  which  is  near  the  ruins  of  Sparta,  he  entered 
the  territory  of  Mania,  where  he  took  possession  of  a  num- 
ber of  villages.  He  here  was  engaged  in  several  conflicts, 
but  whether  of  a  very  serious  nature  it  is  difficult  to  deter 
mine.  According  to  the  Oriental  Spectator,  he  burnt  Mara- 
thonisi,  and  entered  Scutari  and  several  other  towns.  He 
afterwards  returned  to  Tripolizza,  where,  with  the  remnant 
©f  his  army,  he  remained  for  a  long  time  in  a  state  of  inac- 
tivity. 

In  the  year  1825  an  arrangement  was  made  by  the  Greek 
deputies  in  London,  who  had  the  appropriation  of  the  funds 
arising  from  the  Greek  loan,  for  the  building  and  equipment 
of  a  number  of  steam  vessels  in  England,  and  of  two  large 
frigates  in  the  United  States,  to  be  placed  under  the  com- 
mand of  Lord  Cochrane,  who  stipulated  to  enter  the  Greek; 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  337 

service.  By  various  unfortunate  accidents,  and  the  gross 
misconduct  and  bad  faith  of  some  of  the  agents  to  whom  the 
execution  of  these  arrangements  was  entrusted,  the  equip- 
ment of  the  vessels  was  delayed  far  beyond  all  expectation, 
and  the  despatch  of  a  part  of  them  was  entirely  defeated. 
Lord  Cochrane,  and  the  important  reinforcement  of  these 
powerful  vessels,  were  impatiently  expected  in  Greece,  even 
before  the  fall  of  Missolonghi.  At  length,  on  the  4th  of  Sep- 
tember, 1826,  the  Steam  Boat  Perseverance,  a  fine  vessel 
with  an  engine  of  80  horse  power,  with  a  powerful  armament 
often  sixty-eight  pound  cannon,  and  commanded  by  Captain 
Hastings,  arrived  at  Napoli.  Her  arrival  was  hailed  with 
great  joy,  as  affording  the  promise  of  further  efficient  suc- 
cours of  a  like  kind.  On  the  6th  December,  the  Hellas, 
a  fine  ship  of  64  guns,  built  at  New-York,  arrived  at  Napoli, 
after  a  passage  of  53  days,  commanded  by  Capt.  Gregory,  of 
the  United  States,  under  the  direction  of  Contastavlos  the 
Greek  agent,  and  navigated  by  a  crew  of  American  sailors. 
She  was  filled  with  munitions  of  war,  much  more  than  were 
necessary  for  her  own  armament,  and  was  in  every  respect 
ready  for  immediate  service.  From  Napoli  she  sailed  to  Hy- 
dra, where  her  American  crew  was  discharged,  and  she  was 
placed  under  the  command  of  Admiral  Miaulis,  who  soon 
sailed  with  her  to  Egina,  where  the  commission  of  Govern- 
ment was  then  stationed.  Little  was  effected  by  either  of 
these  vessels,  for  a  considerable  length  of  time,  in  conse- 
quence of  the  state  of  distraction  in  which  the  Government 
and  chiefs  of  the  country  were  now  involved,  and  which  pa- 
ralyzed all  military  efforts.  The  Perseverance,  however, 
joined  the  fleet  of  Miaulis,  and  proceeded  to  the  defence  of 
Samos,  where,  if  the  expected  attack  had  been  made,  she 
would  probably  have  rendered  efficient  service.  She  after- 
wards made  a  short  cruise,  without  falling  in  with  the  enemy, 
and  returned  to  Syra  on  the  15th  of  December. 

The  decree  of  the  National  Assembly  of  Greece,  by  which 
an  administrative  commission  was  established,  invested  with 
all  the  powers  of  Government,  limited  the  duration  of  that 
commission  to  the  end  of  September,  when  it  was  ordered 
that  the  representatives  of  the  people  should  resume  their 
deliberations,  and  fix  on  a  settled  form  of  government.  The 
same  decree  of  the  assembly  named  another  commission 
consisting  of  members  of  that  body,  to  call  together  the  As- 
sembly at  the  appointed  time,  but  it  does  not  appear  that 


398  HISTORY  OF  THE 

any  express  authority  was  given  them  to  fix  the  place  of 
meeting. 

The  Administration  of  the  provisional  commission  does  not 
appear  to  have  been  successful.  No  one  respected  their 
authority,  and  they  were  destitute  of  power  to  enforce  their 
decrees.  The  military  chiefs  paid  little  respect  to  the  civil 
authority,  and  preserved  little  subordination  among  them- 
selves. To  this  cause  may  be  attributed  in  a  great  degree 
the  want  of  efficiency,  concert,  and  consequently  success  in 
most  of  the  military  movements  of  the  campaign.  Napoli, 
for  some  portion  of  the  year  at  least,  was  in  a  state  of  anar- 
chy, while  it  was  crowded  with  fugitives  from  the  seat  of 
war,  destitute  of  resources,  and  wasting  with  famine  and  dis- 
ease. The  spirit  of  insubordination  extended  to  Hydra, 
where  the  primates  of  the  Island  lost  their  control  over  the 
populace,  and  for  a  time  the  greatest  disorders  prevailed.- — 
Piracy  also  increased  to  an  alarming  extent,  and  the  govern- 
ment was  unable  to  prevent  many  of  the  vessels  of  war  from 
preying  on  the  merchant  vessels  of  other  nations.  Loud 
complaints  arose  from  all  the  maritime  nations  of  Europe,  and 
the  Greek  Government  acknowledging  their  inability  to 
suppress  these  piracies,  the  English,  French,  and  Austrian 
squadrons  in  the  Archipelago,  turned  their  arms  against  the 
Greek  vessels,  guilty  or  suspected  of  piracy,  and  destroyed  a 
large  number  of  them.  Such  were  the  miseries  arising  from 
the  want  of  a  stable  and  efficient  government.* 

*  The  following  letter  from  Constantine  Jerostacha  to  Mr.  Eynard, 
will  show  what  apologies  the  Greeks  make  for  these  excesses  ot  their 
countrymen. 

"  The  Greeks  are  on  all  sides  accused  of  piracy.  The  govern- 
ment has  done  every  thing  in  its  power  to  prevent  it,  and  has  even 
punished  some  fathers  of  families  whom  wretchedness  had  reduced 
to  the  necessity  of  becoming  pirates  But  what  can  be  answered  to 
a  whole  population  who  cry  for  bread  that  cannot  be  given  them  P 
If  you  knew  the  wretchedness  of  the  people  of  Samos,  Scio  and  Ip« 
sara,  you  would  shudder  with  horror  and  compassion.  Are  these 
unfortunate  people  so  guilty  in  endeavouring  to  escape  from  being 
starved  to  death  ?  And  if  they  be  guilty  in  the  eyes  of  the  govern- 
ments of  Europe,  are  not  the  latter  a  thousand  times  more  guilty  in 
the  eyes  of  God,  for  suffering  a  whole  nation  of  christians  to  perish  ? 
Until  the  Greeks  be  massacred  or  succoured,  or  conquerors,  it  will 
be  impossible  to  prevent  piracy,  for  the  J  first  law  of  nature  is  to  ex- 
ist, and  the  Greeks,  abandoned  to  their  own  means,  can  only  exist 
by  the  aid  of  the  beneficent,  or  by  taking  food  where  they  can  find 
it.  They  have  no  other  resource  than  death  or  independence ;  for 
to  return  under  Turkish  or  Egyptian  dominion  is  death.    They  know 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  39S 

At  the  end  of  September  the  representatives  of  the  seve- 
ral provinces  began  to  assemble  for  the  purpose  of  re-open- 
ing the  National  Assembly.  An  unexpected  difficulty  arose 
respecting  the  place  of  meeting.  The  commission  of  go- 
vernment proposed  that  the  assembly  should  meet  at  the  town 
of  Egina,  while  Colocotroni  insisted  that  it  should  be  held  at 
Castri,  the  ancient  Hermione,  opposite  to  Hydra,  the  place 
of  his  residence,  where  he  had  established  his  head-quarters* 
He  was  supported  in  this  demand  by  Conduriotti,  the  late 
President,  and  others  of  his  party.  Mavrocordato,  for  the 
purpose  of  reconciling  the  difference,  proposed  the  island  of 
Poros,  an  intermediate  point.  But  the  proposition  was  not 
acceded  to.  The  difficulty  of  settling  this  preliminary  ques- 
tion, and  the  influence  that  was  apprehended,  from  the  pre- 
sence of  the  army  at  one  place,  and  of  the  navy  at  another, 
prevented  any  meeting,  and  an  efficient  organization  of  the 
government.  About  sixty  members  assembled  at  Egina, 
but  the  number  was  not  sufficient  to  form  a  quorum  of  the 
assembly. 

In  November,  Coletti,  a  chief  of  considerable  talents  and 
of  great  popularity  among  the  Roumeliots,  undertook  an  ex- 
pedition to  Euboea,  hoping  to  find  the  Turks  off  their  guard- 
He  landed  and  made  an  attack  upon  the  enemy,  whom  he 
found  perfectly  prepared  to  receive  him.  The  battle  ended 
by  his  being  driven  back  on  board  his  ships,  and  he  returned 
without  having  accomplished  the  object  of  his  enterprise.  In 
the  meantime  the  siege  of  Athens  was  going  on,  apd  was 
prosecuted  with  considerable  vigour  by  Cutay  Pacha.  Goura, 
who  commanded  the  garrison,  was  wounded  by  the  bursting 
of  a  bomb,  and  was  afterwards  killed,  being  shot,  it  was  said, 
with  a  musket,  by  one  of  his  own  men.  In  consequence  of 
this  disaster,  it  became  necessary  to  reinforce  the  garrison, 
and  Col.  Favier  offered  his  services  for  the  enterprise.  On 
the  11th  of  December,  at  the  head  of  400  men,  he  entered 
the  citadel  without  opposition,  but  the  besiegers  afterwards 


they  have  no  quarter  to  hope  for  on  that  side,  and  that  treaties  will  ever 
he  contemned  by  the  followers  of  Mahomet.  Let  not  then  the  powers 
complain  of  the  piracy  of  famishing  nations,  or  let  them  charge  it  upon 
themselves  alone.  All  our  vices  and  defects  come  from  the  Turks  and 
the  christians;  the  former  for  having  treated  us  as  slaves  for  three  cen- 
turies, and  the  latter  for  having  rivetted  our  fetters  by  favouring  the 
Turks.  If  christian  powers  will  not  succour  us,  let  them  at  least  open- 
ly aid  the  Turco-Egyptians,  and  our  agony  will  be  shorter.' 


400  HISTORY  OF  THE 

increased  their  vigilance,  and  by  a  strict  blockade,  rendered 
communication  from  without  with  the  besieged  extremely 
perilous.  The  Greek  Government  made  all  possible  efforts 
for  the  relief  of  the  place,  but  the  preparations  for  an  attack 
were  not  completed  until  the  10th  of  February.  Favier  in 
the  meantime  made  two  sorties,  in  one  of  which  he  lost  eight 
Philhellenians.  At  length  a  considerable  force  was  assem- 
bled, and  a  joint  attack  upon  the  besiegers  was  agreed  upon. 
In  assembling  this  force,  material  pecuniary  aid  was  afforded 
by  Col.  Gordon.  General  Karaiskaki  had  been  occupied  in 
cutting  off  the  supplies  of  the  besieging  army  at  a  distance, 
and  following  the  movements  of  Omer  Pacha,  whom  he  at- 
tacked, and  after  killing  800  of  his  men,  succeeded  in  shut- 
ting him  up  in  close  quarters  at  Distomo.  Among  the  of- 
ficers whose  skilful  co-operation  was  relied  upon  in  the  con- 
duct of  this  expedition,  was  Col.  Burbaki.  He  was  a  Cepha- 
Ionian  by  birth.  He  sprung  from  one  of  the  first  families  of 
that  island,  and  had  lately  returned  to  his  native  country,  to 
take  a  part  in  the  struggle  for  its  independence,  after  an  ab- 
sence of  many  years.  He  entered  when  quite  young  into 
the  military  service  of  France.  He  became  at  22  years  oi 
age  a  chief  of  a  battalion,  and  at  26  a  Lieut.  Col.  He  dis- 
tinguished himself  in  Spain,  by  defeating  with  500  French 
troops  the  Empicanado,  who  was  at  the  head  of  5000  men, 
and  by  his  conduct  on  this  occasion,  attracted  the  favourable 
notice  of  Napoleon.  After  the  peace  in  Europe  he  lived  for 
a  long  time  in  retirement,  until  at  length  the  sufferings  of  his 
country  called  so  loudly  for  the  aid  of  all  her  sons,  that  he 
resolved  to  go  to  her  relief.  This  expedition  afforded  him 
the  first  opportunity  of  taking  an  active  part.  The  steam- 
boat Perseverance,  commanded  by  Capt.  Hastings,  also  co- 
operated in  the  enterprise,  by  an  attack  on  the  port  of  the 
Pireus.  A  large  body  of  troops  took  possession  of  Phalerum, 
one  of  the  ancient  parts  of  Athens,  and  Vasso  with  2  or  3000 
men  took  post  at  Lepsini,  the  ancient  Eleusis.  On  the  15th, 
the  steam-boat  made  an  attack  upon  the  Pireus,  which  was 
occupied  by  a  body  of  Turks  and  Albanians.  She  succeed- 
ed in  demolishing  a  part  of  the  works  occupied  by  the  Alba- 
nians, but  was  at  length  so  much  injured  by  the  cannon  from 
the  Monastery,  that  she  was  obliged  to  retire.  The  troops 
of  Vasso,  with  Burbaki,  and  a  number  of  Philhellenians,  ad- 
vanced into  the  plain  of  Athens  ;  but  in  consequence  of  some 
want  of  co-operation  on  the  part  of  the  troops  stationed  at 
Phalerum,  they  were  assailed  by  the  whole  force  of  the  ene- 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  401 

ray's  cavalry,  and  were  compelled  to  retreat.  Burbaki,  un- 
fortunately, was  mortally  wounded,  and,  with  two  French 
officers  and  a  German  surgeon,  fell  into  the  hands  of  the 
Turks.  The  contest  was  kept  up  for  several  succeeding-  days 
near  Phalerum,  but  without  any  decided  success.  Favier, 
however,  continued  to  keep  possession  of  the  citadel,  the 
Turks  confidently  anticipating  its  surrender  from  a  want  of 
provisions.  In  February  he  was  seriously  ill,  but  before  the 
end  of  the  month  he  was  so  far  recovered  as  to  attempt  a  sor- 
tie. About  this  time  the  widow  of  Goura  died.  She  was 
said  to  be  a  woman  of  remarkable  beauty,  as  well  as  of  great 
spirit.  After  the  death  of  her  husband  she  kept  in  pay  a 
body  of  palarkli,  under  her  own  direction.  Various  accounts 
have  been  given  of  the  manner  of  her  death,  one  of  which  is 
that  she  was  crushed  by  the  fall  of  a  part  of  the  temple  of 
Eryctheum,  one  of  the  columns  which  supported  it  being- 
struck  by  a  chance  shot  from  the  enemy's  battery.  Accord- 
ing to  another  account,  which  seems  less  probable,  she  joined 
at  the  head  of  her  troops  in  a  sally  which  was  made  from  the 
citadel,  and  was  killed  by  the  enemy,  though  her  party  suc- 
ceeded in  the  object  of  their  enterprise,  and  returned  laden 
with  provisions,  and  bearing  with  them  the  dead  body  of  this 
heroic  woman.  The  Turkish  troops  appear  to  have  been 
withdrawn  from  the  Pireus,  soon  after  the  late  attack,  and 
it  was  occupied  by  the  Greeks.  Karaiskaki,  after  having 
entirely  defeated  Omer  Pacha,  and  taken  all  his  baggage  and 
artillery,  advanced  again  into  Attica,  and  on  the  17th  01 
March  the  attack  upon  the  enemy  was  renewed,  when  some 
advantage  was  gained,  and  again  in  April,  with  still  more  de- 
cided" success.  The  accounts  of  these  operations,  yet  re- 
ceived, are  extremely  defective  and  uncertain. 

About  the  middle  of  March,  Gen.  Church,  a  distinguished 
English  officer,  arrived  at  Castri,  accompanied  by  Captain 
Payne,  as  aid-de-camp,  and  offered  his  services  to  the  Greek 
Government.  About  the  same  time  Lord  Cochrane,  who 
had  been  long  and  anxiously  expected  in  Greece,  arrived  with 
an  armed  schooner  and  a  brig  of  22  guns,  and  was  received 
with  great  enthusiasm  by  the  whole  population.  He  applied 
himself  first  to  composing  the  jealousies,  and  effecting  a  re- 
conciliation between  the  opposing  members  of  the  Govern- 
ment. A  compromise  was  soon  effected,  by  wliich  the  Na- 
tional Assembly  met  at  Damala,  an  intermediate  point  be- 
tween those  which  had  been  proposed  by  the  several  parties. 
They  proceeded  to  appoint  Lord  Cochrane  to  the  chief  com- 


402  HISTORY  OF  THE 

mand  of  the  whole  naval  force  of  the  country,  and  General 
Church  to  the  command  of  the  army.  On  the  annunciation 
of  this  appointment,  Admiral  Miaulis  addressed  to  the  Go- 
vernment a  communication,  which,  while  it  shows  the  utmost 
confidence  in  the  new  commander,  gives  proof  also  of  great 
modesty,  magnanimity,  and  disinterestedness  on  his  own 
part.* 

(The  foregoing  Chapter  is  extracted,  with  little  alteration, 
from  the  Boston  edition  of  the  Modern  Traveller,  p.  48 1~- 
502.) 

*"For  these  seven  years,"  says  Admiral  Miaulis,-"  I  have  combat  - 
ted  without  any  interruption,  along  with  my  brethren,  and  with  all  my 
force,  against  the  enemy  of  our  country.  Neither  the  consciousness  of 
my  incapacity,  nor  the  greatness  of  the  burden  imposed  on  me  by  the 
country,  have  been  able  to  terrify  or  make  me  hesitate.  I  consider  it 
as  the  first  duty  of  a  citizen,  to  do  the  utmost  for  the  salvation  of  his 
country ;  and  I  have  always  endeavoured  to  fulfil  this  duty.  If  I  have 
not  always  succeeded,  it  has  not  been  for  want  of  good  will. 

"  As  well  as  all  the  nation,  I  have  long  founded  my  hopes  on  the  ar- 
rival of  the  great  man,  whose  preceding  splendid  deeds  promise  our 
country  a  happy  issue  out  of  the  long  and  arduous  struggle  which  it 
maintains.  This  man  has  arrived,  and  I  congratulate  the  government 
and  the  whole  nation  on  it. 

"  The  Greek  marine  justly  expect  every  thing  from  such  a  leader ; 
and  I  am  the  first  to  declare  myself  ready  again  to  combat,  and  with  all 
my  might,  under  his  command.  This  task  will  doubtless  be  difficult 
for  me,  on  account  of  my  age  and  my  want  of  experience,  yet  my  heart 
is  contented ;  for  it  has  never  desired  any  thing  but  the  happiness  of  the 
country.  Begging  the  Supreme  Government  not  to  doubt  the  sinceri- 
ty of  my  sentiments,  I  remain,  with  the  most  profound  respect,  the 
very  obedient  patriot,  ANDREW  MIAULIS.5' 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  403 


CHAP.  XXV. 


LtOrd  Cochrane  takes  command  of  the  frigate  Hellas*— -Expe- 
dition to  Athens,  and  defeat  there — Lord  Cochrane  sails 
for  Pair  as — takes  a  Turkish  frigate — Inactivity  of  Ibra- 
him— Manifesto  of  the  Porte — Observations  on  the  mani- 
festo— Treaty  for  the  pacification  of  Greece — Note  of  the 
Ambassadors  to  the  Porte  to  the  Reis  Effendi — French 
fleet  at  Navarino — Allied  fleet — Defeat  of  the  Arabs- 
Battle  of  Navarino — Proclamation  of  the  Allies  to  th& 
Greek  people — Count  Capo  d'lstrias — Sketch  of  his  life— 
Chosen  President  of  Greece — Donations  to  the  Greeks. 

1827  ^N  tne  arr*va*  °f  Lord  Cochrane  at  Greece,  he  took 
command  of  the  new  American  frigate  Hellas  of  64 
guns,  and  an  expedition  was  soon  projected  for  the  relief  of 
the  Acropolis  of  Athens,  which  as  we  have  stated,  was  still 
occupied  by  Greeks.  In  addition  to  the  Hellas,  a  number  of 
Greek  ships  were  equipped  for  this  purpose,  and  a  considera- 
ble army  was  raised  in  the  vicinity  of  Athens,  and  placed 
under  the  command  of  General  Church,  destined  to  assist  in 
the  reduction  of  that  important  fortress.  On  the  arrival  of 
these  forces,  terms  of  capitulation  were  offered  to  a  fort  near 
the  Pireus,  and  accepted  ;  but  unfortunately,  the  cruelties  of 
the  Arabs  and  Egyptians,  had  so  raised  the  indignation  of  the 
Greeks,  that  no  sooner  had  the  garrison  surrendered,  than 
they  were  put  to  the  sword,  to  the  number  of  300.*  Lord 
Cochrane  witnessed  this  faithless  act,  but  had  no  power  to 
restrain  the  infuriated  Greeks.  He  therefore  thought  it  ex- 
pedient to  publish  an  address  to  the  Greek  marine,  disclaim- 
ing all  participation  in  this  outrage. 

Soon  after  this  occurrence,  the  combined  Greek  forces  un- 
der Church  and  Cochrane,  made  a  general  attack  on  the 
Ottoman  army  besieging  Athens ;  but  after  a  hard  fought 
and  doubtful  contest,  in  which  both  parties  suffered  great 
losses,  the  Greek  army  was  forced  to  yield  to  the  power  of 
numbers,  and  the  Turks  were  completely  victorious.  Lord 
Cochrane  and  General  Church,  it  appears,  escaped  with 
difficulty,  and  as  it  were,  by  chance.  The  number  of  the 
ccmibined  army  killed,  was  700,  while  240,  including  many 

•  Green's  Sketches,  p.  245. 


104  HISTORY  OF  THE 

European  officers,  were  taken  prisoners.  Kiutacki,  the 
Turkish  commander,  supposing  that  Cochrane  and  Church 
were  among  his  European  prisoners,  had  them,  to  the  num- 
ber of  eighteen,  brought  before  him,  closely  examined,  and 
then  put  to  death  in  his  presence.  The  Greek  prisoners  to 
the  number  of  222  were  then  all  massacred.* 

The  expedition  for  the  relief  of  Athens,  says  Mr.  Eynard, 
has  exhausted  a  great  part  of  the  funds  remitted  by  European 
benificence,  and  has  once  more  disorganized  the  Greeks. 

After  this  misfortune,  Lord  Cochrane  sailed  for  Patras 
with  the  Hellas  and  steam  vessel,  and  while  off  Cape  Papa, 
had  an  action  with  two  Turkish  corvettes,  which  lasted  se- 
veral hours,  but  from  some  cause,  not  stated,  he  was  again  un- 
successful, as  both  these  vessels  escaped,  and  reached  Alex- 
andria in  safety. |  After  these  failures,  Lord  Cochrane  ap- 
pears to  have  returned  to  Napoli,  and  being  joined  by  about 
twenty  Greek  vessels,  decided  on  attempting  the  destruction 
of  the  Viceroy's  fleet,  then  fitting  outat  Alexandria.  Thither 
the  expedition  sailed,  and  having  arrived  off  the  port,  on  the 
I6th  of  June,  hoisted  Austrian  colours  ;  but  since  the  former 
similar  attempt  made  by  the  Greeks,  the  Viceroy  had  adopt- 
ed strict  precautions,  and  constantly  kept  a  vessel  of  war 
cruising  outside  the  harbour.  The  Egyptian  cruiser  recog- 
nized the  Greek  vessels  at  once,  and  giving  the  alarm  by 
firing  guns,  attempted  to  make  the  port :  failing  in  doing  so, 
she  was  run  on  shore.  A  fire-ship  was  sent  to  burn  her,  with- 
out success  :  a  second  succeeded,  and  she  was  destroyed. — 
By  this  time  the  alarm  on  shore  had  become  general.  Me- 
hemet  Ali  immediately  proceeded  to  the  harbour,  and  by  his 
presence  and  exertions  got  twenty-four  vessels  out  to  sea, 
which  was  the  exact  number  of  the  Greek  force.  These, 
however,  did  not  remain  to  fight,  and  were  chased  by  the 
Egyptian  fleet  as  far  as  Rhodes,  when  the  pursuit  was  aban- 
doned, the  latter  returning  to  Alexandria,  after  being  joined 
by  the  two  corvettes  attacked  by  Lord  Cochrane  off  Cape 
Papa.  These  repeated  failures,  although  no  doubt  princi- 
pally caused  by  Lord  Cochrane's  having  Greeks  under  his 
orders,  and  brave  and  determined  enemies  to  deal  with,  ap- 
pear to  have  made  the  Greeks  dissatisfied  with  their  two 
English  Commanders-in-Chief,  and  (as  it  is  said)  Miaulis 
quitted  the  Hellas,  and  again  assumed  the  command  of  his 

*  See  the  Report  of  Mr.  Eynard,  agent  for  the  Greeks,  in  London* 
f  Green,  p.  2o6 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  4B5 

-own  brig.  On  the  2d  of  August  the  Greek  frigate  and  a 
brig  appeared  off  Zante,  steering  for  the  Bay  of  Patras, 
where  two  Turkish  vessels,  a  corvette,  and  schooner,  then 
lay.  During  that  day  a  heavy  firing  was  heard,  and  the  next 
day  the  frigate  was  seen  towing  the  corvette,  which  she  had 
captured,  and  it  is  believed  the  schooner  also.  "  The  Ionians," 
says  Mr.  Green,  "  are  described  as  having  given  way  to  the 
most  extravagant  joy  on  occasion  of  this  first  success  of  Lord 
Cochrane,  although  the  great  disparity  in  size  and  weight  of 
metal,  could  hardly  leave  a  doubt  of  the  result."* 

It  appears  that  after  the  destruction  of  Missolonghi,  the 
Turkish  army  retired  to  the  Morea,  for  a  long  time  satisfied 
with  this  achievement.  More  than  eighteen  months  after  that 
period,  Ibrahim  remained  inactive,  and  contented  himself 
with  only  keeping  possession  of  the  conquests  he  had  already 
made.  During  this  period  several  of  the  Capitani  seeing 
their  country  devastated,  and  their  women  and  children  de- 
stroyed without  mercy,  submitted  to  the  Turkish  power,  and 
received  letters  of  pardon  from  the  Pacha.  The  Greek 
districts  of  Gastouni,  Patras,  and  Vostizza,  also  returned  to 
their  former  allegiance  to  the  Porte. | 

At  this  period  the  Turks  became  the  entire  masters  of  At- 
tica, and  all  northern  Greece,  while  Ibrahim  marched  un- 
controlled over  every  part  of  the  Morea.  Missolonghi, 
Modon,  Tripolizza,  Malvasia,  Salona  and  Athens,  have  been 
successfully  reconquered  by  the  infidels  ;  and  of  all  the  fruits 
which  the  Greeks  acquired  by  the  battles  and  victories  of 
their  six  years  war,  nothing  remains  but  Napoli  and  the  cas- 
tle of  Corinth.  They  had  not  elsewhere  in  continental 
Greece  a  foot  of  land  which  they  could  caW  their  own.  What 
is  still  worse,  they  had  lost  the  confidence  which  insures  vic- 
tory ;  and  their  enemies  had  gained  the  complete  ascendency. 
The  main  cause  of  this  change  may  be  looked  for  in  the  cir- 
cumstances of  the  belligerents  ;  the  Turks  have  improved 
their  mode  of  warfare  by  the  introduction  of  European 
officers  and  western  tactics,  while  the  Greeks,  though  im- 
ploring; aid  from  the  powers  of  Europe,  and  glad  of  the  as- 
;ice   of  foreign  military  men,   are  still  generally  averse 


*  It  was  afterwards  ascertained  by  a  letter  from  Dr.  Howe,  a  well 
Rnown  American  Philhellene,  that  those  Turkish  vessels  were  a  fri- 
gate of  !J(i  guns,  and  a  galliot.  The  frigate  surrendered  in  ten  minutes} 
&rd  was  much  cut  in  pieces. 

f  GTreen's  Sketches,  p.  258. 

35* 


406  HISTORY  OF  THE 

to  military  reforms,  and  choose  to  continue  in  their  former 
barbarous  mode  of  warfare.* 

It  was  only  after  having  seen  Greece  struggle  for  six  years 
with  her  barbarous  enemies,  that  the  great  powers  of  Europe 
offered  to  interfere.  Articles  for  the  pacification  of  Greece 
were  signed  by  accredited  plenipotentiaries  of  Great  Britain, 
France,  and  Russia,  at  London,  on  the  6th  of  July,  1827. 

Rut  a  considerable  time  before  the  arrival  of  these  articles 
at  Constantinople,  a  manifesto  was  issued  by  the  Ottoman 
Porte,  on  the  subject  of  the  Greeks,  a  copy  of  which  was 
sent  to  the  French,  English,  Russian,  Austrian,  and  Prus- 
sian Ministers,  then  resident  there.  This  was  done  on  the 
9th  and  10th  of  June,  1827.  This  manifesto,  setting  forth 
the  grounds  on  which  the  Porte  claims  a  right  to  reduce 
Greece  to  submission,  is  too  important  a  state  paper  to  be 
omitted  in  this  place.  As  the  reader  will  observe,  it  is  drawn 
with  considerable  diplomatic  skill,  and  contains  the  most 
plausible  arguments  in  favour  of  the  rights  claimed  by  the 
Porte.     It  is  as  follows  : 

"  To  every  man  endowed  with  intelligence  and  penetra- 
tion, it  is  clear  and  evident  that,  conformable  to  the  de- 
crees of  Divine  Providence,  the  flourishing  condition  of 
this  world  is  owing  to  the  union  of  the  human  species  in 
the  social  state  ;  and  that,  as  on  account  of  their  diversity 
of  manners,  and  character,  this  union  could  only  be  ac- 
complished by  the  subjection  of  different  nations.  Almighty 
wisdom,  in  dividing  the  universe  into  different  countries, 
has  assigned  to  each  a  sovereign,  in  whose  hands  the  reins 
of  absolute  authority  over  the  nations  subject  to  his  domin- 
ion are  placed,  and  that  it  is  in  this  wise  manner  the  Creator 
has  established  and  regulated  the  order  of  the  universe. 

"  If  on  the  one  hand,  the  consistency  and  duration  of  sucli 
a  state  of  things  principally  depend  on  monarchs  and  sove- 
reigns, respectively  abstaining  from  every  kind  of  interfe- 
rence in  each  other's  internal  and  private  affairs,  it  is,  on  the 
other  hand,  not  less  evident  that  the  essential  object  of  trea- 
ties between  empires  is  to  guard  against  the  infringement  of  a 
system  of  order  so  admirable,  and  thus  to  establish  the  secu- 
rity of  people  and  kingdoms.  In  this  way  each  independent 
power,  besides  the  obligations  which  its  treaties  and  foreign 
relations  impose,  possess  also  institutions  and  relations  which 
coijcern  only  itself  and  its  internal  state,  which  are  the  off- 

s  Edinburgh  Scotchman. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  407 

spring  of  its  legislation  and  form  of  government.  It  belongs 
then,  to  itself  alone  to  judge  of  what  befits  itself,  and  to 
bring  itself  therewith  exclusively.  Moreover,  it  is  matter 
of  public  notoriety,  that  all  the  affairs  of  the  Sublime  Ottoman 
Porte  are  founded  on  its  sacred  legislation,  and  that  all  its  re- 
gulations, national  and  political,  are  strictly  connected  with 
the  precepts  of  religion. 

"  Now  the  Greeks,  who  form  part  of  the  nations  inhabiting 
the  countries  conquered  ages  ago  by  the  Ottoman  arms,  and 
who,  from  generation  to  generation, have  been  tributary  sub- 
jects to  the  Sublime  Porte,  have,  like  the  other  nations  that 
since  the  origin  of  Islamism  remained  faithfully  in  sub- 
mission, always  enjoyed  perfect  repose  and  tranquility  under 
the  aegis  of  our  legislation.  It  is  notorious  that  these  Greeks 
have  been  treated  like  Mussulmen  in  every  respect,  and  as 
to  every  thing  which  regards  their  property,  the  mainte- 
nance of  their  personal  security,  and  the  defence  of  their  hon- 
our ;  that  they  have  been,  particularly  under  the  glorious 
reign  of  the  present  sovereign,  loaded  with  benefits  far  ex- 
ceeding those  which  their  ancestors  enjoyed  ;  but  it  is  pre- 
cisely this  great  degree  of  favor,  this  height  of  comfort  and 
tranquility,  that  has  been  the  cause  of  the  revolt,  excited  by* 
malignant  men  incapable  of  appreciating  the  value  of  sugIi 
marks  of  benevolence.  Yielding  to  the  delusions  of  a  heated 
imagination,  they  have  dared  to  raise  the  standard  of  revolt, 
not  only  sgainst  their  benefactor  and  legitimate  sovereign,  but 
also  against  all  the  Mussulman  people,  by  committing  the 
most  horrible  excesses,  sacrificing  to  their  vengeance  women 
and  innocent  children  with  unexampled  atrocity. 

"  As  each  power  has  its  own  particular  penal  code  and 
political  ordinances,  the  tenor  whereof  forms  the  basis  for  its 
acts  of  sovereignty,  so  the  Sublime  Porte,  in  every  thing  rela- 
ting to  its  sovereignty,  rests  exclusively  upon  its  holy  legisla- 
tion, according  to  which  the  rebels  shall  be  treated.  But  in 
afflicting  necessary  punishment  on  some  with  the  sole  view  of 
amending  them,  the  Porte  has  never  refused  to  pardon  those 
who  implore  its  mercy,  and  to  replace  them  as  before  under 
the  aegis  of  its  protection.  In  the  same  manner  the  Sublime 
Porte,  always  resolved  to  conform  to  the  ordinances  of  its 
sacred  law,  notwithstanding  the  attention  devoted  to  its  do- 
mestic affairs,  has  never  neglected  to  cultivate  the  relations 
of  good  understanding  with  friendly  powers.  The  Sublime 
Porte  has  always  been  ready  to  comply  with  whatever  trea- 
ties and  the  duties  of  friendship  prescribe.     Its  most  sincere 


ibQ  HISTORY  OF  THE 

jarayers  are  offered  up  for  that  peace  and  general  tranquility, 
which  with  the  aid  of  the  Most  High,  will  be  re-established 
in  the  same  manner  as  the  Sublime  Porte  has  always  extended 
its  conquests — namely,  by  separating  its  faithful  subjects 
from  the  refractory  and  malevolent,  and  by  terminating  the 
existing  troubles  by  its  own  resources,  without  giving  occa- 
sion to  discussions  with  the  powers  who  are  its  friends,  or  to 
any  demands  on  their  part. 

, "  All  the  efforts  of  the  Sublime  Porte  have  but  one  object, 
which  is  the  desire  of  the  establishment  of  general  tranquili- 
ty, while  foreign  interference  can  only  tend  to  a  prolongation 
of  the  rebellion.  The  firm  and  constant  attention  of  the 
Sublime  Porte  to  attend  to  its  principal  interests  which  spring 
from  its  sacred  law,  merits  their  approbation  and  respect, 
while  any  foreign  interference  must  be  liable  to  blame  and  ani- 
madversion. Now  it  is  clear  and  evident  that  by  adhering  to 
this  principle,  every  thing  might  have  terminated  long  since, 
but  for  the  ill-founded  propositions  which  have  been  advanced 
concerning  the  conformity  of  religion,  and  the  fatal  influence 
Which  this  state  of  things  has  perhaps  exercised  throughout 
Europe,  and  the  injury  to  which  maritime  commerce  may 
have  been  exposed.  At  the  same  time  the  hopes  of  the  ma- 
levolent have  been  constantly  encouraged  by  the  improper 
Conduct  of  giving  them  assistance  of  every  kind,  which,  at 
any  time  ought  to  have  been  reproved,  conformably  to  the 
law  of  nations.  It  is,  besides,  to  be  observed,  that  the  rela- 
tions and  treaties  subsisting  between  the  Sublime  Porte,  and 
the  powers  in  friendship  with  it,  have  been  entered  into  with 
{he  monarch  and  ministers  of  these  powers  only  ;  and  con- 
sidering the  obligation  of  every  independent  powTer  to  govern 
its  subjects  itself,  the  Sublime  Porte  has  not  failed  to  address 
to  some  friendly  courts,  complaints  respecting  the  succours 
afforded  the  insurgents.  The  only  answer  made  to  these  re- 
presentations has  been,  to  give  the  machinations  tending  to 
Subvert  the  laws  and  treaties  the  signification  of  liberty  ;  and 
to  interpret  proceedings  contrary  to  existing  engagements  by 
the  expression  of  neutrality  ;  alleging  the  insufficiency  of 
*means  to  restrain  the  people. 

"  Setting  aside  the  want  of  reciprocal  security,  which 
must  finally  result  from  such  a  state  of  things,  to  the  subjects; 
Of  the  respective  powers,  the  Sublime  Porte  cannot  allow 
-such  transgressions  to  pass  silently.  Accordingly  the  Porte 
Jtas  never  omitted  to  reply  to  the  different  pretensions  ad- 
*Y2tmre:d,  by  appealing  to  the  justice  and  the  equity  of  the 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  409 

powers  who  are  its  friends,  by  often  reiterating  complaints 
respecting  the  assistance  afforded  to  the  insurgents,  and  by 
giving  the  necessary  answers  in  the  course  of  communications 
with  its  friends.  In  fine,  a  mediation  has  not  at  last  been 
proposed.  The  fax  however  is,  that  an  answer  restricted  to 
one  single  object,  can  neither  be  changed  by  the  process  of 
time,  nor  by  the  innovation  of  expressions.  The  reply 
which  the  Sublime  Porte  gave  at  the  beginning  will  always 
be  the  same  ;  namely,  that  which  it  has  reiterated  in  the  face 
of  the  whole  world,  and  which  is  in  the  last  result  its  senti- 
ment on  the  position  of  affairs. 

"  Those  who  are  informed  of  the  circumstances  and  the 
details  of  events,  are  not  ignorant,  that  at  the  commence- 
ment of  the  insurrection,  some  ministers  of  friendly  courts, 
resident  at  the  Sublime  Porte,  offered  effective  assistance  in 
punishing  the  rebels.  As,  however,  this  offer  related  to  an 
affair  which  came  exclusively  within  the  resort  of  the  Sub- 
lime Porte,  in  pursuance  of  important  considerations,  both 
with  regard  to  the  present  and  future,  the  Porte  confined  it- 
self in  replying,  that,  though  such  an  offer  had  for  its  object 
to  give  aid  to  the  Ottoman  government,  it  would  never  per- 
mit foreign  interference.  What  is  more,  when  an  ambassa- 
dor of  a  friendly  power,  at  the  period  of  his  journey  to  the 
Congress  of  Verona,  entered  into  explanations  in  conferences 
with  the  Ottoman  ministers  on  the  proposed  mediation,  the 
Sublime  Porte  declared  in  the  most  unequivocal  manner,  that 
such  a  proposition  could  not  be  listened  to,  reiterating  every 
time  that  the  subject  was  resumed,  the  assurance  that  politi- 
cal, national,  and  religious  considerations,  rendered  such  re- 
fusal indispensable. 

"  In  yielding  to  this  reasoning,  and  in  admitting  more  than 
once  that  right  was  on  the  side  of  the  Porte,  the  before  men- 
tioned ambassador,  on  his  return  from  Verona  to  Constanti- 
nople, again  clearly  and  officially  declared  in  several  confer- 
ences, by  order  of  his  court,  and  in  the  name  of  other  powers, 
that  the  Greek  question  was  recognized  as  belonging  to  the 
internal  affairs  of  the  Sublime  Porte ;  that  as  such  it  ought 
to  be  brought  to  a  termination  by  the  Porte  itself;  that  no 
other  power  was  to  interfere  in  the  sequel ;  and  that  if  ever 
any  one  were  to  interfere,  all  the  others  would  act  according- 
ly to  the  principle  of  the  law  of  nations. 

"  The  agents  of  one  of  the  great,  powers  which  has  re- 
cently consolidated  its  relations  of  friendship  and  good  un- 
derstanding with  the  Sublime  Porte,  also  officially  and  ex* 


410  HISTORY  OF  THE 

plicitly  declared,  in  their  conferences  with  the  Ottoman 
agents,  that  there  should  be  no  interference  on  this  subject. 
That  declaration  having  served  as  the  basis  for  the  result  of 
those  conferences,  there  cannot  now  be  any  question  respect- 
ing this  affair,  which  the  Sublime  Porte  is  entitled  to  consider 
as  completely  and  radically  adjusted.  Nevertheless,  the 
Porte  still  considers  itself  authorized  to  add  the  following 
observations  in  support  of  its  antecedent  assertions. 

"  The  measures  which  the  Sublime  Porte  has  adopted 
from  the  commencement,  and  which  it  still  pursues  against 
the  Greek  insurgents,  ought  not  to  make  the  war  be  consider- 
ed a  war  of  religion.  For  those  measures  do  not  extend  to 
all  the  people  in  general ;  for  they  have  for  their  sole  object 
to  repress  the  revolt,  and  to  punish  those  subjects  of  the  Porte, 
who,  acting  as  true  chiefs  of  brigands,  have  committed  atro- 
cities equally  serious  and  reprehensible.  The  Sublime  Porte 
has  never  refused  pardon  to  those  who  submit.  The  gates 
of  clemency  and  mercy  have  always  been  open.  This  the 
Sublime  Porte  has  proved  by  facts,  and  still  proves  it,  by 
granting  protection  to  tnose  who  return  to  their  duty. 

"  The  real  cause  of  the  continuance  of  this  revolt  is  to  be 
found  in  the  different  propositions  made  to  the  Sublime  Porte. 
The  injury  arising  from  the  war  too,  has  only  been  felt  by 
the  Porte ;  for  it  is  known  to  all  the  world  that  European 
navigation  has  never  been  interrupted  by  this  state  of  things, 
which,  far  from  prejudicing  European  merchants,  has  afford- 
ed them  considerable  advantages. 

"  Moreover,  the  troubles  of  the  revolt  exist  only  in  one 
single  country  of  the  Ottoman  empire,  and  among  the  parti- 
sans of  malevolence  ;  for,  thanks  be  to  God,  the  other  pro- 
vinces of  this  vast  empire  have  no  way  suffered,  and  with  all 
their  inhabitants  enjoy  the  most  perfect  repose.  It  is  not 
easy,  therefore,  to  understand  how  these  troubles  are  to  be 
Communicated  to  other  European  countries  ;  suppose,  how- 
ever, that  this  were  the  case,  as  each  power  is  paramount 
within  itself,  it  ought  to  know  such  of  its  subjects  on  its  own 
territory  as  manifest  seditious  dispositions,  and  it  ought  to 
punish  them  according  to  its  own  laws,  and  in  pursuance  of 
the  duties  inherent  in  its  own  sovereignty.  It  may  be  su- 
perfluous to  add,  that  the  Sublime  Porte  will  never  interfere 
in  such  transactions. 

"  Considering  the  points  above  set  forth  with  reference  tc 
Justice  and  equity,  every  one  must  be  easily  convinced  that 
there  remains  no  ground  for  discussion  upon  these  affairs. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  411 

"  However,  though  it  is  fit  that  all  ulterior  interference 
should  cease,  an  offer  of  a  mediation  has  been  in  the  last  re- 
sult made. 

"  Now,  in  political  language,  it  is  understood  by  this  ex* 
pression,  that  if  there  arise  differences  or  hostilities  be-' 
tween  two  independent  nations,  a  reconciliation  may  be 
brought  about  by  the  interference  of  a  third  friendly  power  : 
it  is  the  same  in  respect  to  armistices  and  treaties  of  peace, 
which  cannot  be  concluded  but  between  recognized  powers. 
But  the  Sublime  Porte  being  engaged  in  punishing  in  its  own 
territory,  and  in  conformity  with  its  sacred  law,  such  of  its 
turbulent  subjects  as  have  revolted,  how  can  this  cause  ever 
be  made  applicable  to  its  situation  ?  And  must  not  the  Otto- 
man government  attribute  to  those  who  advance  such  pro- 
positions, views  tending  to  give  consequence  to  a  troop  of 
brigands  ?  A  Greek  government  is  spoken  of  which  is  to  be 
recognized  in  case  the  Sublime  Porte  does  not  consent  to 
some  arrangement ;  and  it  has  been  proposed  to  conclude  a 
treaty  with  the  rebels.  Has  not  the  Sublime  Porte  reason  to 
be  struck  with  astonishment  at  hearing  such  language,  from 
friendly  powers,  for  history  presents  no  example  of  a  con- 
duct in  all  respects  so  opposed  to  the  principles  and  duties 
of  government  ? 

"  The  Sublime  Porte,  therefore,  can  never  listen  to  such. 
propositions — to  propositions  which  it  will  neither  hear  nor 
understand,  so  long  as  the  country  inhabited  by  the  Greeks- 
forms  a  part  of  the  Ottoman  dominions,  and  they  are  tribu- 
tary subjects  of  the  Porte,  which  never  will  renounce  its 
rights.  If  with  the  aid  of  the  Almighty,  the  Sublime  Porte 
resume  full  possession  of  that  country,  it  will  then  always  act 
as  well  for  the  present  as  for  the  future,  in  conformity  with 
ordinances  which  its  holy  law  prescribes  with  respect  to  its 
subjects. 

"  The  Sublime  Porte  then,  finding  that  in  respect  to  this 
affair,  it  is  impossible  for  it  to  listen  to  any  thing,  except  to 
the  precepts  of  its  religion  and  the  code  of  its  legislation, 
considers  itself  justified  in  declaring  that  from  religious,  po- 
litical, administrative  and  national  considerations,  it  cannot 
give  the  slightest  countenance  to  the  propositions  which 
have  been  framed  and  finally  brought  forward.  Always  pre- 
pared to  comply  with  the  duties  imposed  by  the  treaties  con- 
cluded with  the  friendly  powers  who  now  render  this  cate- 
gorical reply  necessary,  the  Sublime  Porte  hereby  declares, 
far  the  last  time,  that  every  thing  which  has  been  stated 


412  HISTORY  OF  THE 

above,  entirely  accords  with  the  sovereign  intentions  of  his 
highness,  of  his  ministers,  and  of  all  the  Mussulman  people. 

"  In  the  hope  that  this  faithful  exposition  will  suffice  to 
convince  its  equitable  friends  of  the  justice  of  its  causes 
the  Sublime  Porte  embraces  this  opportunity  for  reiterating 
the  assurances  of  its  high  consideration. 

"  Health  and  peace  to  him  that  followeth  the  path  of  rec- 
titude." 

In  this  manifesto  it  is  obvious  that  the  Sublime  Porte  lays 
down  propositions  as  truths  which  are  not  so — assumes  prin- 
ciples not  recognized  by  other  nations — and  proposes  a  line 
of  conduct  for  the  regulation  of  its  own  affairs  which  it 
every  day  violates. 

In  the  first  place,  the  Almighty  has  not  divided  the  uni- 
verse into  countries,  and  assigned  to  each  a  sovereign,  with 
absolute  authority.  The  fact  of  such  a  division  holds  true, 
only  with  regard  to  the  Sublime  Porte,  and  some  other  of  the 
eastern  nations. 

Second.  If  the  fact  be  so,  that  the  affairs  of  the  Porte 
are  founded  on  sacred  legislation,  and  that  its  political  regu- 
lations are  connected  with  the  precepts  of  religion,  then 
these  precepts  are  founded  on  a  basis  so  narrow  as  to  forbid 
the  participation  of  other  nations  in  their  advantages,  or 
the  professors  of  this  religion  are  too  faithless  to  be  bound 
for  a  moment  by  its  most  holy  obligations.  In  proof  of  this, 
it  may  be  said  with  truth,  that  ever  since  the  foundation  of  the 
Ottoman  Empire,  the  most  sacred  treaties  have  been  viola- 
ted, with  the  knowledge  and  participation  of  the  divan,  when- 
ever such  violation  was  thought  to  be  for  the  interest  of  the 
Sublime  Porte.  Witness  the  taking  of  Cypress  from  the 
Venetians  in  1566.  The  taking  of  Candia  from  the  same 
Republic  in  1669.  The  treachery  employed  against  the 
Knights  of  Rhodes  in  1481. — The  conduct  of  Solyman  at 
the  siege  of  Belgrade  in  1425. — The  destruction  of  the 
Christians  in  the  Island  of  Scio  in  1564,  as  a  religious  obla- 
tion by  the  Sultan  for  the  sin  of  wine  drinking. — The  massa- 
cre of  1500  defenceless  people  at  Nicosia  in  1570,  after  the 
most  solemn  promises  that  their  lives  should  be  spared. 
The  cold-blooded  torture  to  which  the  noble  and  patriotic 
Bragadin  was  put,  at  Famagusta,  and  the  murder  of  his  at- 
tendants, after  an  oath  "  by  the  head  of  Mahomet"  that  their 
lives  and  property  should  be  held  sacred,  &c.  Witness  also 
the  want  of  faith  the  Divan  has  always  shown  to  Rus- 
sia, Hungary,  Germany,  and  in  fact  to  all  christian  nations. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  413 

It  is  not  true  that  the  Greeks  have  been  treated  like  Mus- 
sulmans ;  their  property  and  honour  respected,  and  that  they 
have  always  enjoyed  repose. 

The  Greeks  and  Turks,  with  the  exception  of  some  clans 
of  Albanians,  who  professed  both  religions,  never  have 
amalgamated  in  any  respect.  In  Greece  they  have  ever 
been  treated  as  an  inferior  race  of  beings,  and  on  every  oc- 
casion have  been  insulted  and  deprived  of  the  common 
rights  of  citizens.  In  Constantinople  they  have  been  allowed 
a  partition  of  the  city,  where  they  are  still  tolerated  as  crea- 
tures of  convenience,  because  they  practice  handicraft  arts, 
which  the  want  of  ingenuity  and  industry  in  the  Turks 
would  never  permit  them  to  learn.  The  terms  on  which  the 
Turks  hold  the  Greeks,  have  more  than  once  been  disclosed 
in  Divan,  where  an  indiscriminate  slaughter  of  them  has  been 
prevented  only  by  the  consideration  that  by  their  destruction 
their  tribute  money  would  be  lost. 

It  is  not  true,  that  at  the  Congress  of  Verona  the  powers, 
there  assembled,  clearly  and  officially  declared,  "  that  the 
Greek  question  was  recognized  as  belonging  exclusively  to 
the  Sublime  Porte,  and  that  it  ought  to  be  brought  to  a  ter- 
mination by  the  Porte  itself." 

The  truth  is,  that  something  was  secretly  done  on  that  oc- 
casion in  favour  of  that  suffering  nation.  But  the  treaty  of 
London  which  was  signed  before  the  delivery  of  this  mani- 
festo to  the  ministers  at  the  Porte  was  known,  is  in  itself  the 
strongest  possible  proof  that  there  was  no  such  understand- 
ing at  the  Congress  of  Verona  as  is  here  stated.  Had  the 
Sublime  Porte  waited  until  the  arrival  of  the  articles  for  the 
pacification  of  Greece,  signed  by  the  plenipotentiaries  of 
England,  France  and  Russia,  the  world  never  would  have 
been  informed  that  the  affairs  of  Greece  had  been  radically 
adjusted  at  the  Congress  of  Verona. 

Lastly,  neither  is  it  true,  that  the  injury  arising  from  this 
war  is  felt  only  by  the  Porte,  and  that  European  commerce 
has  not  on  that  account  been  interrupted.  On  the  contrary, 
it  is  well  known  to  the  commercial  world,  that  the  trade  of 
the  Levant  has  been  greatly  interrupted  by  the  anarchy  and 
piracies  which  this  war  has  produced  among  the  islands  of 
the  Archipelago.  The  mediation  of  the  three  great  powers 
has,  indeed,  been  in  part  founded  on  this  very  circumstance. 
It  appears  that  the  Turkish  manifesto  had  not  reached 
London  when  the  articles  for  the  pacification  of  Greece  were 
signed,  though  written  nearly  a  month  before  that  time. 

36 


414  HISTORY  OF  THE 

These  articles  appear  to  have  been  founded  on  the  sole 
desire  of  saving  the  further  effusion  of  blood  in  Greece,  and 
of  protecting  that  devoted  land  in  future,  from  that  cruel  ty- 
ranny undeV  which  it  had  groaned  and  bled  so  long. 

TREATY  FOR  THE  SETTLEMENT  OF  GREECE. 

In  the  name  of  the  Most  Holy  and  Undivided  Trinity : — 

His  Majesty  the  King  of  the  United  Kingdom  of  Great 
Britain  and  Ireland,  His  Majesty  the  King  of  France  and  Na- 
varre, and  His  Majesty  the  Emperor  of  all  the  Russias,  pene- 
trated with  the  necessity  of  putting  an  end  to  the  sanguina- 
ry contest  which,  by  delivering  up  the  Greek  Provinces  and 
the  isles  of  the  Archipelago  to  all  the  disorders  of  anarchy, 
produces  daily  fresh  impediments  to  the  commerce  of  the 
European  States,  and  gives  occasion  to  piracies,  which  not 
only  expose  the  subjects  of  the  high  contracting  parties  to 
considerable  losses,  but  besides,  render  necessary  burden- 
some measures  of  protection  and  repression  ;  His  Majesty 
the  King  of  the  United  Kingdom  of  Great  Britain  and  Ire- 
land, and  his  Majesty  the  King  of  France  and  Navarre,  hav- 
ing besides  received,  on  the  part  of  the  Greeks,  a  pressing 
request  to  interpose  their  mediation  with  the  Ottoman  Porte, 
and  being,  as  well  as  his  Majesty  the  Emperor  of  all  the 
Russias,  animated  by  the  desire  of  stopping  the  effusion  of 
blood,  and  of  arresting  the  evils  of  all  kinds  which  might 
arise  from  the  continuance  of  such  a  state  of  things,  have  re- 
solved to  unite  their  efforts,  and  to  regulate  the  operations 
thereof  by  a  formal  treaty,  with  the  view  of  re-establishing 
peace  between  the  contending  parties,  by  means  of  an  ar- 
rangement, which  is  called  for  as  much  by  humanity  as  by 
the  interest  of  the  repose  of  Europe. 

Wherefore  they  have  nominated  their  plenipotentiaries  to 
discuss,  agree  upon,  and  sign  the  said  treaty,  viz. 

His  Majesty  the  King  of  the  United  Kingdom  of  Great 
Britain  and  Ireland,  the  Right  Honourable  William  Viscount 
Dudley,  Peer  of  the  United  Kingdom  of  Great  Britain  and 
Ireland,  Councillor  of  His  Britannic  Majesty  in  his  Privy 
Council,  and  his  Principal  Secretary  of  State  for  the  Depart- 
ment of  Foreign  Affairs : 

His  Majesty  the  King  of  France  and  Navarre,  the  Prince 
Jules  Count  de  Polignac,  Peer  of  France,  Knight  of  the  Or* 
derS  of  his  Most  Christian  Majesty,   Major-General  of  his 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  415 

Armies,  Grand  Cross  of  the  Order  of  St.  Maurice  of  Sar- 
dinia, &c.  &c.  and  his  Ambassador  to  his  Britannic  Majesty ; 

And  his  Majesty  the  Emperor  of  all  the  Russias,  Christo- 
pher, Prince  de  Lieven,  General  of  Infantry  of  the  Armies  of 
his  Imperial  Majesty,  his  Aid-de-Camp  General,  Knight  of 
the  Orders  of  Russia,  of  those  of  the  Black  Eagle  and  of  the 
Red  Eagle  of  Prussia,  of  that  of  the  Guelphs  of  Hanover, 
Commander  of  the  Grand  Cross  of  the  Order  of  the  Sword, 
and  of  the  Order  of  St.  John  of  Jerusalem,  his  Ambassador 
Extraordinary  and  Plenipotentiary  to  his  Britannic  Majesty  : 

Who,  after  having  communicated  their  full  powers,  and 
found  the  same  in  good  and  due  form,  agreed  upon  the  fol- 
lowing articles : 

"  Art.  1.  The  contracting  powers  will  offer  to  the  Otto- 
man Porte  their  mediation,  with  the  view  of  bringing  about 
a  reconciliation  between  it  and  the  Greeks. 

"  This  offer  of  mediation  shall  be  made  to  this  power  im- 
mediately after  the  ratification  of  the  treaty,  by  means  of  a 
collective  declaration,  signed  by  the  plenipotentiaries  of  the 
Allied  Courts  at  Constantinople ;  and  there  shall  be  made, 
at  the  same  time,  to  the  two  contending  parties,  a  demand  of 
an  immediate  armistice  between  them,  as  a  preliminary  con- 
dition, indispensable  to  the  opening  of  any  negotiation. 

"  Art.  2.  The  arrangement  to  be  proposed  to  the  Otto- 
man Porte  shall  rest  on  the  following  basis  :  the  Greeks  shall 
hold  of  the  Sultan,  as  of  a  superior  Lord  (Suzerain);  and,  in 
consequence  of  this  superiority,  they  shall  pay  to  the  Otto- 
man empire  an  annual  tribute  (relief,)  the  amount  of  which 
shall  be  fixed,  once  for  all,  by  a  common  agreement.  They 
shall  be  governed  by  the  authorities  whom  they  shall  them- 
selves choose  and  nominate,  but  in  the  nomination  of  whom 
the  Porte  shall  have  a  determinate  voice. 

"  To  bring  about  a  complete  separation  between  the  indi- 
viduals of  the  two  nations,  and  to  prevent  the  collisions  which 
ire  the  inevitable  consequence  of  so  long  a  struggle,  the 
Greeks  shall  enter  upon  possession  of  the  Turkish  property 
utuated  either  on  the  continent  or  in  the  isles  of  Greece,  on 
;he  condition  of  indemnifying  the  former  proprietors,  either 
)y  the  payment  of  an  annual  sum,  to  be  added  to  the  tribute 
?vhich  is  to  be  paid  to  the  Porte,  or  by  some  other  transaction 
>f  the  same  nature. 

"  Art.  3.  The  details  of  this  arrangement,  as  well  as  the 
imits  of  the  territory  on  the  continent,  and  the  designation 
>f  the  islands  of  the  Archipelago  to  which  it  shall  be  appli- 


416  HISTORY  OF  THE 

cable,  shall  be  settled  in  a  subsequent  negotiation  between 
the  high  powers  and  the  two  contending  parties. 

"  Art.  4.  The  contracting  powers  engage  to  follow  up  the 
salutary  work  of  the  pacification  of  Greece  on  the  basis  laid 
down  in  the  preceding  articles,  and  to  furnish,  without  the 
least  delay,  their  representatives  at  Constantinople  with  all 
the  instructions  which  are  necessary  for  the  execution  of  the 
treaty  now  signed. 

"  Art.  5.  The  contracting  powers  will  not  seek  in  these 
arrangements  any  augmentation  of  territory,  any  exclusive 
influence,  any  commercial  advantage  for  their  subjects,  which 
the  subjects  of  any  other  nation  may  not  equally  obtain. 

"  Art.  6.  The  arrangements  of  reconciliation  and  peace, 
which  shall  be  definitively  agreed  upon  between  the  contend- 
ing parties,  shall  be  guaranteed  by  such  of  the  signing  powers 
as  shall  judge  it  useful  or  possible  to  contract  the  obligation. 
The  mode  of  the  effects  of  this  guarantee  shall  become  the 
object  of  subsequent  stipulations  between  the  high  powers. 

"  Art.  7.  The  present  treaty  shall  be  ratified,  and  the 
ratification  shall  be  exchanged  in  two  months,  or  sooner  it 
possible. 

"  In  faith  whereof,  the  respective  Plenipotentiaries  have 
signed,  and  sealed  it  with  their  arms. 

w  Done  at  London,  July  6,  1827.  "  Dudley. 

"  POLIGNAC. 
"  LlEVEN." 

Additional  and  Secret  Article. 

In  case  that  the  Ottoman  Porte  does  not  accept,  within  the 
space  of  one  month,  the  mediation  which  shall  be  proposed, 
the  high  contracting  parties  agree  upon  the  following  mea- 
sures : — 

"  1.  It  shall  be  declared  by  their  representatives  at  Con- 
stantinople to  the  Porte,  that  the  inconveniences  and  evils 
pointed  out  in  the  public  treaty  as  inseparable  from  the  state 
of  things  subsisting  in  the  East  for  the  last  six  years,  and  as 
the  termination  of  which,  through  the  means  at  the  disposal 
of  the  Sublime  Porte,  appears  still  remote,  impose  upon  the 
high  contracting  parties  the  necessity  of  taking  immediate 
^measures  for  an  approximation  with  the  Greeks. 

"  It  is  to  be  understood  that  this  approximation  shall  be 
brought  about  by  establishing  commerce  with  the  Greeks,  by 
sending  to  them  for  that  purpose,  and  receiving  from  them 
consular  agents,  so  long  as  there  shall  exist  among  them  au-, 
thorities  capable  of  maintaining  such  relations. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  417 

M  2.  If,  within  the  said  term  of  one  month,  the  Porte  do 
not  accept  the  armistice  proposed  in  the  first  article  of  the 
public  treaty,  or  if  the  Greeks  refuse  to  execute  it,  the  high 
contracting  powers  shall  declare  to  that  one  of  the  two  con- 
tending parties  which  shall  wish  to  continue  hostilities,  or  to 
both,  if  such  become  necessary,  that  the  said  high  contract- 
ing powers  intend  to  exert  all  the  means  which  circumstances 
may  suggest  to  their  prudence,  to  obtain  the  immediate  effect 
of  the  armistice,  the  execution  of  which  they  desire,  by  pre- 
venting, in  as  far  as  may  be  in  their  power,  all  collision  be- 
tween the  contending  parties;  and,  in  fact,  immediately  after 
the  aforesaid  declaration,  the  high  contracting  powers  will 
conjointly  employ  all  their  means  in  the  accomplishment  of 
the  object  thereof,  without,  however,  taking  any  part  in  the 
hostilities  between  the  two  contending  parties. 

"  In  consequence,  the  high  contracting  powers  will  imme- 
diately after  the  signature  of  the  present  additional  and  secret 
article,  transmit  eventual  instructions,  conformable  to  the 
provisions  above  set  forth,  to  the  admirals  commanding  their 
squadrons  in  the  seas  of  the  Levant. 

"  3.  Finally,  if,  contrary  to  all  expectations,  these  mea- 
sures do  not  yet  suffice  to  induce  the  adoption  by  the  Otto- 
man Porte  of  the  propositions  made  by  the  high  contracting 
parties,  or  ify  on  the  other  hand,  the  Greeks  renounce  the 
conditions  stipulated  in  their  favour  in  the  treaty  of  this  day, 
the  high  contracting  powers  will,  nevertheless,  continue  to 
prosecute  the  work  of  pacification  on  the  basis  agreed  upon 
between  them  ;  and,  in  consequence,  they  authorize  from  this 
time  forward  their  representatives  in  London  to  discuss  and 
determine  the  ulterior  measures  to  which  it  may  become 
necessary  to  resort. 

"  The  present  additional  and  secret  article  shall  have  the 
same  force  and  value  as  if  it  had  been  inserted,  word  for  word, 
in  the  treaty  of  this  day.  It  shall  be  ratified,  and  the  ratifi- 
cation thereof  shall  be  exchanged,  at  the  same  time  as  those 
of  the  said  treaty. 

"  In  faith  whereof,  the  respective  Plenipotentiaries  have 
signed  it,  and  have  thereto  affixed  the  seals  of  their  arms. 

"  Done  at  London,  this  6th  of  July,  in  the  year  of  Grace 
1*827. 

"  Dudley. 
"  Polignac. 

"  LlEVEV," 

-36* 


418  HISTORY  OF  THE 

It  is  stated  in  the  London  Courier  of  the  12th  of  July,  that 
should  the  Porte  refuse  to  accept  the  armistice  which  was 
to  be  in  the  first  instance  proposed,  or  should  the  Greeks  ob- 
ject to  it,  it  is  to  be  announced  to  that  one  of  the  contending 
parties,  who  shall  wish  to  continue  hostilities,  or  to  both  if 
necessary,  that  the  allies  intend  to  use  all  the  means  which 
circumstances  may  place  at  their  command,  to  obtain  the 
effect  of  the  proposed  armistice,  by  preventing  as  far  as  may 
be  in  their  power,  all  collision  between  the  belligerents, 
without,  however,  taking  any  part  in  their  hostilities,  by 
siding  with,  or  against  the  other.  Thus  if  need  be,  to  employ 
an  efficient  intervention  against  the  Turks  and  the  Greeks,  if 
both  are  obstinately  bent  on  war. 

The  treaty  of  the  6th  of  July  being  ratified  at  the  courts 
of  the  several  contracting  powers,  their  ambassadors  residing 
at  Constantinople  received  instructions  to  treat  further  with 
the  Ottoman  government  on  the  same  subject ;  and  accord- 
ingly, on  the  16th  of  August  following,  a  joint  note  was  sent 
to  the  Reis  Effendi,  from  the  representatives  of  France,  En- 
gland, and  Russia,  couched  in  the  spirit  of  the  original  treaty 
between  those  powers. 

"  To  his  Excellency  the  Reis  Effendi : 

"  The  undersigned  are  charged  by  their  respective  govern- 
ments to  make  to  his  Excellency  the  Reis  Effendi  the  follow- 
ing declaration : 

"  During  six  years  the  great  powers  of  Europe  have  been 
engaged  in  endeavours  to  induce  the  Sublime  Porte  to  enter 
into  a  pacification  with  Greece,  but  these  endeavours  have 
been  constantly  unavailing,  and  thus  a  war  of  extermination 
has  been  prolonged  between  it  and  the  Greeks,  the  results  of 
which  have  been,  on  the  one  hand  calamitous,  the  contem- 
plation of  which  is  dreadful  for  humanity  ;  and  on  the  other 
hand,  severe  and  intolerable  losses  to  the  commerce  of  all 
nations,  while  at  the  same  time  it  has  not  been  possible  t$ 
admit  that  the  fate  of  Greece  has  been  at  all  within  the  con-r 
trol  of  the  Ottoman  power. 

"  The  European  powers  have  consequently  redoubled 
their  zeal,  and  renewed  the  instances  which  they  before 
made,  to  determine  the  Porte,  with  the  aid  of  their  media* 
tion,  to  put  an  end  to  a  struggle,  that  it  was  essential  to  its 
own  interest  should  be  no  longer  kept  up.  The  European 
powers  have  the  more  flattered  themselves  in  the  hope  of 
arriving  at  so  happy  a  conclusion,  as  the  Greeks  themselves 
have  in  the  interval  shown  a  desire  to  avail  themselves  of 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  41$ 

their  mediation  ;  but  the  Sublime  Porte  has  hitherto  refused 
to  listen  to  counsels  dictated  by  sentiments  of  benevo- 
lence and  friendship.  In  this  state  of  affairs,  the  courts  of 
France,  England,  and  Russia  have  considered  it  their  duty 
to  define,  by  a  special  treaty,  the  line  of  conduct  they  are  re- 
solved to  observe,  in  order  to  arrive  at  the  object  towards 
which  the  wishes  and  interests  of  all  Christian  powers  tend. 

"  In  execution  of  one  of  the  clauses  of  this  treaty,  the  un- 
dersigned have  been  charged  to  declare  to  the  government 
of  the  Sublime  Porte,  that  they  now  in  a  formal  manner  offer 
their  mediation  between  it  and  the  Greeks,  to  put  an  end  to 
the  war,  and  to  regulate,  by  a  friendly  negotiation,  the  rela- 
tions which  are  to  exist  between  them  in  future. 

"  That  further,  and  to  the  end  that  the  success  of  this  me- 
diation may  be  facilitated,  they  propose  to  the  government 
of  the  Sublime  Porte  an  armistice  for  suspending  all  acts  of 
hostility  against  the  Greeks,  to  whom  a  similar  proposition 
is  this  moment  addressed.  Finally,  they  expect  that  at  the 
end  of  fifteen  days  the  Divan  will  clearly  make  known  its  de- 
termination. 

"  The  undersigned  flatter  themselves  that  it  will  be  con- 
formable to  the  wish  of  the  allied  courts  ;  but  it  is  their  duty 
not  to  conceal  from  the  Reis  Effendi  that  a  new  refusal,  an 
evasion,  or  insufficient  answer,  even  a  total  silence  on  the 
part  of  his  government,  will  place  the  allied  courts  under 
the  necessity  of  recurring  to  such  measures  as  they  shall 
judge  most  efficacious  for  putting  an  end  to  a  state  of  things, 
which  is  become  incompatible  even  with  the  true  interests  of 
the  Sublime  Porte,  with  the  security  of  commerce  in  gene- 
ral, and  with  the  tranquillity  of  Europe. 

(Signed)  C.  GUILLEMINOT, 

S.  CANNING, 
RIBEAUPIERRE. 
"  August  16th,  1827." 

The  time  allowed  for  a  reply  to  this  note  having  expired 
on  the  30th  ult.,  the  drogomans  of  the  three  embassies 
were  sent  to  the  Reis  Effendi  to  receive  his  answer.  This: 
personage,  instead  of  writing,  sent  them  back  to  their  mas- 
ters with  a  verbal  answer.  "  The  Porte  refuses  in  the  most 
decided  terms  to  admit  the  interference  of  foreign  powers  in 
the  affair  of  the  Greek  contest,"  referring  at  the  same  time  t© 
the  manifesto  lately  issued  by  the  Turkish  government,  as 
their  deliberate  and  firm  determination  on  the  subject.  On 
■lift  following  day  the  Ambassadors  had  another  conference, 


420  HISTORY  OF  THE 

and  in  the  afternoon  of  the  same  day  the  drogomans  wer<? 
again  sent  to  the  Reis  Effendi  with  another  note.  The  con- 
tents of  this,  it  is  understood,  were  yet  more  forcible  than 
the  preceding  one,  and  that  it  distinctly  announced  to  the 
Turkish  minister,  that  the  objects  of  the  treaty  must  be  ob- 
tained, whether  with  the  concurrence  of  the  Porte  or  without 
it,  and  that  the  measure  determined  on  for  that  end  would 
be  carried  into  execution.  The  Reis  Effendi  is  said  to  have 
replied  very  pointedly,  and  to  have  repeated  more  firmly 
than  before,  the  determination  of  the  Porte  to  abide  by  its 
first  decision.  The  drogomans,  it  is  added,  were  even  de- 
sired to  take  back  their  note,  but  they  declined  doing  this, 
and  left  it  in  the  apartment  of  the  Reis  Effendi.  This  se- 
cond note,  it  is  understood,  did  not  contain  any  stipulation 
for  a  further  period  for  consideration  of  the  subject,  such  be- 
ing concluded  as  no  longer  of  any  use. 

It  appears,  however,  that  the  ambassadors  did  continue  to 
treat  with  the  Porte  on  the  subject  of  the  Greeks,  long  after 
this  period.  Meantime,  the  French,  English,  and  Russian 
ships  began  to  concentrate  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Navarino, 
either  for  the  purpose  of  effecting  an  armistice  de  facto,  or 
with  the  intention  of  intercepting  the  Egyptian  fleet. 

While  these  formidable  preparations  were  making  abroad, 
the  Greeks  continued  to  defend  themselves,  or  attack  their 
enemies  at  home. 

In  August,  Ibrahim  Pacha  assembled  his  forces  for  the 
purpose  of  attacking  the  Acropolis  of  Corinth,  still  in  the 
hands  of  the  Greeks.  The  Greeks  getting  information  of 
this  intention,  met  him  with  a  sufficient  army  at  Vostizza, 
When  an  action  ensued,  which  ended  in  the  retreat  of  the 
Turks  with  considerable  loss.  In  another  instance  the 
Greeks,  who  occupied  the  convent  of  Megaspileon,  beat  and. 
repulsed  1500  Arabs  under  Ibrahim,  leaving  400  of  the  bar- 
barians dead  on  the  field  of  battle. 

The  decision  of  the  Porte  in  respect  to  Greece,  it  seems, 
Was  not  to  be  changed  under  any  considerations.  On  the 
25th  of  September,  Admirals  Codrington  and  De  Rigny,  com- 
manders of  the  English  and  French  fleets  lying  off  Navarino, 
had  an  interview  with  Ibrahim  Pacha,  during  which  they  in- 
formed him  that  they  had  orders  to  establish  an  armistice  de 
facto,  between  the  Turks  and  Greeks.  Ibrahim,  on  hrs 
Bart,  declared  that  he  had  orders  to  attack  the  Island  of  Hy- 
dra without  delay,  and  that  since  his  force  was  stronger  than 
any  which  the  Greeks  could  bring  to  oppose  him,  it  was  no! 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  421 

to  be  supposed  that  he  could  consistently  let  slip  this  oppor- 
tunity to  strike  an  effectual  blow.  He  however  concluded 
that  as  his  situation  was  such  as  his  instructions  did  not  pro- 
vide for,  he  would  send  couriers  to  Constantinople  and 
Egypt  for  fresh  instructions,  and  that  till  their  return  his  fleet 
should  not  leave  Navarino. 

At  this  period  a  proclamation  was  issued  by  the  Greek 
Government,  on  the  subject  of  the  convention  of  France,  En- 
gland and  Russia,  and  in  which  this  circumstance  was 
welcomed,  as  the  harbinger  of  peace  and  happiness  to  the 
country.  The  Greeks  were  at  the  same  time  reminded  that 
much  depended  on  the  manner  in  which  they  conducted 
themselves  at  this  momentous  period.  At  this  time  the  seat 
of  government  was  removed  from  Napoli  to  Egina,  in  order 
that  their  deliberations  might  be  carried  on  with  greater 
freedom,  and  without  disturbance  ;  there  being  at  the  former 
place  considerable  discord  and  excitement. 

Ibrahim  Pacha,  notwithstanding  the  positive  engagement 
he  had  entered  into  with  the  English  and  French  Admirals 
uot  to  remove  his  fleet  from  Navarino,  until  the  return  of  his 
couriers  from  Constantinople  and  Egypt,  did  not  hesitate  on 
the  next  day  to  weigh  anchor  with  a  view  of  quitting  the 
place.  This  appears  by  the  following  oflicial  document, 
signed  by  the  three  Admirals.  "  The  Admirals  command- 
ing the  squadrons  of  the  three  powers  which  signed  the  trea- 
ty of  London,  having  met  before  Navarino,  for  the  purpose 
of  concerting  the  means  of  effecting  the  object  specified 
in  the  said  treaty,  viz.  an  armistice  de  facto  between  the 
Turks  and  the  Greeks,  have  set  forth  in  the  present  protocol 
the  result  of  this  conference. 

"  Considering  that  after  the  provisional  suspension  of  hos- 
tilities, to  which  Ibrahim  Pacha  consented  in  his  conference 
of  the  25th  of  September  last,  with  the  English  and  French 
Admirals,  acting  likewise  in  the  name  of  the  Russian  Ad- 
miral, the  said  Pacha  did,  the  very  next  day,  violate  his  en- 
gagement by  causing  his  fleet  to  come  out,  with  a  view  to  its 
proceeding  to  another  point  in  the  Morea. 

"  Considering  that  since  the  return  of  that  fleet  to  Nava- 
rino, in  consequence  of  a  -  second  requisition  addressed  to 
Ibrahim,  by  Admiral  Codrington,  who  had  met  him  near  Pa- 
tras,  the  troops  of  this  Pacha  have  not  ceased  carrying  on 
a  species  of  warfare  more  destructive  and  exterminating 
than  before,  putting  women    and   children  to  the  sword. 


422  HISTORY  OP  THE 

burning  the  habitations,  tearing  up  trees  by  the  roots,  in  or- 
(Ltr  to  complete  the  devastation  of  the  country. 

"  Considering  that,  with  a  view  of  putting  a  stop  to  the 
atrocities,  which  exceed  all  that  has  hitherto  taken  place, 
the  means  of  persuasion  and  conciliation,  the  representa- 
tions made  to  the  Turkish  Chiefs,  and  the  advice  given  to 
Mehemet  Ali  and  his  son,  have  been  treated  as  a  mockery, 
whilst  they  might  with  one  word  have  suspended  the  course 
of  so  many  barbarities. 

"  Considering  that  there  only  remains  to  the  commanders 
of  the  allied  squadrons  the  choice  between  three  modes  of 
fulfilling  the  intentions  of  their  respective  courts,  namely : — 

"  1st.  That  of  continuing  throughout  the  whole  winter,  a 
blockade,  difficult,  expensive,  or  perhaps  useless,  since  a 
storm  may  disperse  the  squadrons,  and  afford  to  Ibrahim  the 
facility  of  conveying  his  destroying  army  to  different  points  of 
the  Morea,  and  islands. 

"  2dly.  The  uniting  the  allied  squadron  in  Navarino  it- 
self, and  securing,  by  this  permanent  presence,  the  inaction 
of  the  Ottoman  fleets;  but  which  mode  alone  leads  to  no 
termination,  since  the  Porte  persists  in  not  changing  its 
system. 

"  3dly.  The  proceeding  to  take  a  position  with  the  squa- 
drons in  Navarino,  in  order  to  renew  to  Ibrahim  propositions 
which,  entering  into  the  spirit  of  the  treaty,  were  evidently 
to  the  advantage  of  the  Porte  itself. 

"  After  having  taken  these  three  modes  into  consideration, 
we  have  unanimously  agreed  that  this  third  mode  may,  with- 
out effusion  of  blood,  and  without  hostilities,  but  simply 
by  the  imposing  presence  of  the  squadrons,  produce  a  deter- 
mination leading  to  the  third  object." 

Signed  October  18,  1827. 

With  a  view  of  carrying  into  effect  the  above  humane  ob- 
ject, and  of  preventing  the  further  shedding  of  innocent 
blood,  by  intimidating  Ibrahim,  the  fleet  was  moored  in  the 
harbour  of  Navarino.  The  barbarian  now  seeing  that  he 
could  do  nothing  at  sea  without  at  once  coming  to  blows, 
determined  to  wreak  his  vengeance  on  every  Greek  in  his 
power,  and  in  defiance  of  the  armistice,  and  the  most  solemn 
promises,  continued  to  destroy  vineyards,  burn  houses,  and 
massacre  women  and  children,  wherever  he  went. 

It  was  under  these  circumstances  that  the  battle  of  Nava- 
rino was  fought.  The  description  of  this  battle  we  give  in 
the  words  of  the  official  account  from  Admiral  Codringtoh 
to  his  government. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  423 

*  Ilia  Majesty's  ahip  Asia,  in  the  port  of  Navarino,  October  21, 1827. 

"Sir: — I  have  the  honour  of  informing  his  royal  highness, 
the  Lord  High  Admiral,  that  my  colleagues,  Count  Heyden 
and  Chevalier  de  Rigny,  having  agreed  with  me  that  wfc 
should  come  into  this  port,  in  order  to  induce  Ibrahim  Pa» 
cha  to  discontinue  the  brutal  war  of  extermination,  which  he 
has  been  carrying  on  since  his  return  here  from  his  failure 
in  the  gulf  of  Patras  ;  the  combined  squadrons  passed  the 
batteries,  in  order  to  take  up  their  anchorage,  at  about  twe 
o'clock  yesterday  afternoon. 

The  Turkish  ships  were  moored  in  the  form  of  a  crescent) 
With  springs  on  their  cables,  the  larger  ones  presenting  their 
broadsides  towards  the  centre,  the  smaller  ones  in  succession 
within  them,  filling  up  the  intervals. 

The  combined  fleet  was  formed  in  the  order  of  sailing  i* 
two  columns,  the  British  and  French  forming  the  weather  or 
starboard  line,  and  the  Russian  the  lee  line. 

The  Asia  led  in,  followed  by  the  Genoa  and  Albian,  anfl 
anchorod  close  alongside  a  ship  of  the  line,  bearing  the  flag 
of  Capitana  Bey,  another  ship  of  the  line,  and  a  large  double 
banked  frigate,  each  thus  having  their  proper  opponent  to 
the  front  line  of  the  Turkish  fleet. 

The  four  ships  to  the  windward  part  of  the  Egyptian  sqaa* 
dron,  were  allotted  to  the  squadron  of  Rear  Admiral  de  Rig* 
ny  ;  and  those  to  leeward,  in  the  bight  of  the  crescent  were 
to  mark  the  sections  of  the  whole  Russian  squadron  ;  the- 
ships  of  their  line  closing  those  of  the  English  line,  and  be- 
ing followed  up  by  their  own  frigates.  The  French  frigate 
Armide,  was  directed  to  place  herself  alongside  the  outer- 
most frigate  on  the  left  hand  entering  the  harbour  ;  and  the 
Cambrian,  Glasgow  and  Talbot,  next  to  her,  and  abreast  o£ 
the  Asia,  Genoa  and  Albion  ;  the  Dartmouth  and  the  Mus- 
quito,  the  Rose,  the  Brisk,  and  the  Philomel,  were  to  look 
after  the  six  fire  vessels  at  the  entrance  of  the  harbour.  I 
gave  orders  that  no  gun  should  be  fired,  unless  guns  were 
first  fired  by  the  Turks ;  and  those  orders  were  strictly  observ- 
ed. The  three  English  ships  were  accordingly  permit- 
ted to  pass  the  batteries  to  moor,  as  they  did  with  great  ra- 
pidity, without  any  act  of  open  hostilities,  although  there 
was  evident  preparation  for  it  on  board  all  the  Turkish 
ships  ;  but  upon  the  Dartmouth  sending  a  boat  to  one  of  the 
fire  vessels,  Lieut.  G.  W.  H.  Fitzroy,  and  several  of  her  crew, 
were  shot  with  musketry.  This  produced  a  defensive  fire  of 
misketry  from  the  Dartmouth  and  La  Syrene,  bearing  the 


424  HISTORY  OF  THE 

flag  of  Rear  Admiral  de  Rigny.  That  was  succeeded  by  a 
cannon  shot  at  the  rear  admiral  from  one  of  the  Turkish 
ships,  which,  of  course,  brought  on  a  return,  and  thus,  very 
shortly  afterwards,  the  battle  became  general.  The  Asia, 
although  placed  alongside  of  the  ship  of  the  Capitana  Bey, 
was  even  nearer  to  that  of  Moharem  Bey,  the  commander  of 
the  Egyptian  ships ;  and  since  his  ship  did  not  fire  at  the 
Asia,  although  the  action  was  begun  to  windward,  neither 
did  the  Asia  fire  at  her.  The  latter  indeed  sent  a  message 
"  that  he  would  not  fire  at  all,"  and  therefore  no  hostility 
took  place  between  our  two  ships,  for  some  time  after  the 
Asia  had  returned  the  fire  of  the  Capitana  Bey. 

In  the  meantime,  however,  our  excellent  pilot,  Mr.  Peter 
Mitchell,  who  went  to  interpret  to  Moharem  my  desire  to 
avoid  bloodshed,  was  killed  by  his  people  incur  boat  along- 
side. Whether  with  or  without  his  order  I  know  not ;  but 
his  ship  soon  afterwards  fired  into  the  Asia,  and  was  conse- 
quently effectually  destroyed  by  the  Asia's  fire,  sharing  the 
same  fate  as  his  brother  admiral  on  the  starboard  side,  and 
falling  to  leeward  a  mere  wreck.  These  ships  being  out  of 
the  way,  the  Asia  being  exposed  to  a  raking  fire  from  vessels 
in  the  second  and  third  line,  which  carried  away  her  mizzen 
mast  by  the  board,  disabled  some  of  her  guns,  and  killed  and 
wounded  several  of  the  crew.  The  narration  of  the  pro- 
ceedings of  the  Asia  would  probably  be  equally  applicable 
to  most  of  the  other  vessels  of  the  other  fleet.  The  manner  in 
which  the  Genoa  and  Albion  took  their  stations  was  beauti- 
ful, and  the  conduct  of  my  brother  admirals,  Count  Heyden, 
and  the  chevalier  de  Rigny,  throughout,  was  admirable  and 
highly  exemplary. 

Capt.  Fellowes  executed  the  part  allotted  to  him  perfect- 
ly, and  with  the  able  assistance  of  his  little,  but  brave  de- 
tachment, saved  the  Syrene  from  being  burnt  by  the  fire  ves- 
sels. And  the  Cambrian,  Glasgow,  and  Talbot,  followiug 
the  fine  example  of  Captian  Hugon,  of  the  Armide,  who 
was  opposed  to  the  leading  frigate  of  the  line,  effectually  de- 
stroyed their  opponents,  and  also  silenced  the  batteries. — 
This  bloody  and  destructive  battle  was  continued,  with  una- 
bated fury,  for  four  hours,  and  the  scene  of  wreck  and  de- 
vastation which  presented  itself  at  its  termination,  was  such 
as  has  been  seldom  witnessed.  As  each  ship  of  our  oppo- 
nents became  effectually  disabled,  such  of  her  crew  as  could 
escape  from  her,  endeavoured  to  set  her  on  fire,  and  it  is 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  425 

wonderful  how  we  avoided  the  effects  of  their  successive  and 
awful  explosions. 

It  is  impossible  for  me  to  say  too  much  for  the  able  and 
zealous  assistance  which  I  derived  from  Capt.  Curzon 
throughout  this  long  and  arduous  contest:  nor  can  I  say 
more  than  it  deserves  for  the  conduct  of  commander  Baynes, 
and  the  officers  and  crew  of  the  Asia,  for  the  perfection 
with  which  the  fire  of  their  guns  was  directed  ;  each  vessel 
in  turn,  to  which  her  broadside  was  presented,  became  a 
complete  wreck.  His  Royal  Highness  will  be  aware,  that 
so  complete  a  victory  by  a  few,  however  perfect,  against  an 
excessive  number,  however  individually  inferior,  cannot  be 
acquired  but  at  a  considerable  sacrifice  of  life  ;  accordingly 
I  have  to  lament  the  loss  of  Captain  Bathurst,  of  the  Genoa, 
whose  example  on  this  occasion  is  well  worthy  the  imitation 
of  his  survivors.  Captain  Bell,  commanding  the  royal  ma- 
rines of  the  Asia,  an  excellent  officer,  was  killed  early  in 
the  action,  in  die  steady  performance  of  his  duty ;  and  I 
have  to  mourn  trie  death  of  Mr.  William  Smith,  the  master, 
admired  for  the  zeal  and  ability  with  which  he  executed  his 
duty,  and  beloved  by  all  for  his  private  qualities  as  a  man. 
Mr.  Henry  S.  Dyer,  my  secretary,  having  received  a  severe 
contusion  from  a  splinter,  I  am  deprived  temporarily  of  his 
valuable  assistance  in  collecting  and  keeping  up  the  general 
returns,  and  communications  of  the  squadrons  ;  I  shall  there- 
fore retain  in  my  office  Mr.  E.  J.  T.  White,  his  first  clerk, 
whom  I  have  nominated  to  succeed  the  purser  of  the  Brisk: 
I  feel  much  personal  obligation  to  the  honourable  Lieut.  Col: 
Craddock,  for  his  readiness,  during  the  heat  of  the  battle* 
in  carrying  my  orders  and  messages  to  the  different  quarters*, 
after  my  aides-de-camp  were  disabled  ;  but  I  will  beg  permis- 
sion to  refer  his  Royal  Highness  for  further  particulars  of 
this  sort,  to  the  details  of  the  killed  and  wounded,  a  subject 
which  it  is  painful  for  me  to  dwell  upon.  When  I  contem- 
plate, as  I  do  with  extreme  sorrow,  the  extent  of  our  loss,  I 
console  myself  with  the  reflection,  that  the  measure  whicli 
produced  the  battle  was  absolutely  necessary  for  obtaining 
the  results  contemplated  by  the  treaty,  and  that  it  was 
brought  on  entirely  by  our  opponents. 

When  I  found  that  the  boasted  Ottoman  word  of  honour 
was  made  a  sacrifice  to  wanton,  savage  devastation,  and  that 
a  base  advantage  was  taken  of  our  reliance  upon  Ibrahim's 
good  faith,  I  felt  a  desire  to  punish  the  offenders.  But  it 
was  my  duty  to  refrain,  and  refrain  I  did  ;  and  I  can  assure 
37 


426  HISTORY  OF  THE 

your  Royal  Highness,  that  I  would  still  have  avoided  this  dis- 
astrous extremity,  if  other  means  had  been  open  to  me. 

The  Asia,  Genoa,  and  Albion,  have  each  suffered  so  much, 
that  it  is  my  intention  to  send  them  to  England,  as  soon  as 
they  shall  have  received  the  necessary  repairs  for  the 
voyage.  The  Talbot,  being  closely  engaged  with  a  double 
banked  frigate,  has  also  suffered  considerably,  as  well  as 
others  of  the  smaller  vessels  ;  but  I  hope  their  defects  are 
not  more  than  can  be  made  good  at  Malta.  The  loss  of  men 
in  the  Turko-Egyptian  ships  must  have  been  immense,  as  his 
Royal  Highness  will  see  by  the  accompanying  list,  obtained 
from  the  Secretary  of  the  Capitana  Bey,  which  includes  two 
out  of  the  three  ships  to  which  the  English  division  was  op- 
posed. Captain  Curzon  having  preferred  continuing  to  as- 
sist me  in  the  Asia,  I  have  given  the  charge  of  my  despatches 
to  commander  Lord  Yiscount  Ingestre,  who  besides  having 
a  brilliant  share  in  the  action,  is  well  competent  to  give  his 
Royal  Highness,  the  lord  high  admiral,  any  further  particu- 
lars he  may  require. 

I  enclose,  for  his  Royal  Highness's  further  information,  a 
letter  from  Captain  Hamilton,  descriptive  of  the  proceedings 
of  Ibrahim  Pacha,  and  the  misery  of  the  country  which  he 
has  devastated — a  protocol  of  the  conference  which  I  had 
with  my  colleagues,  and  the  plan  and  order  for  entering  the 
port,  which  I  gave  out  in  consequence.  I  have  the  honour 
to  be,  &c. 

(Signed)  E.  CODRINGTON,  Vice  Admiral" 

FRENCH  OFFICIAL  ACCOUNT. 

Paris,  November  8. 

u  We  have  received  the  following  news  from  our  squadron 
in  the  Archipelago,  dated  October  22. 

On  the  20th,  at  noon,  the  wind  being  favourable,  signals 
were  made  to  prepare  for  action ;  every  one  took  his  post, 
the  English  Admiral's  ship,  the  Asia,  leading,  followed  by 
the  Albion  and  the  Genoa ;  the  Syrene  frigate  bearing  the 
flag  of  Admiral  de  Rigny,  the  Scipio,  the  Trident,  and  the 
Breslau ;  then  the  Russian  Admiral  count  Heyden,  followed 
by  three  ships  of  the  line  and  four  frigates. 

The  Turks  had  formed  a  crescent  on  the  contour  of  the 
bay,  in  a  triple  line,  making  a  total  of  three  ships  of  the  line, 
a  razee,  sixteen  frigates,  twenty-seven  large  corvettes,  and  as 
many  brigs. 

The  principal  force  was  assembled  towards  the  right  on 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  42* 

entering,  and  composed  of  four  large  frigates,  two  ships  of 
the  line,  a  large  frigate,  a  ship  of  the  line,  three  ships  of  va- 
rious sizes  finishing  the  line,  and  strengthened  in  the  second 
line  by  corvettes  and  brigs. 

Six  fire-ships  were  placed  at  the  extremities  of  the  cres- 
cent, to  be  able  to  fall  upon  the  combined  squadrons,  if  an 
engagement  should  take  place,  and  to  the  windward  of  which 
they  were  naturally  placed. 

The  English  frigate  Dartmouth,  Capt.  Fellowcs,  had  been 
sent  to  Navarino  two  tfays  before,  with  a  letter  to  Ibrahim 
from  the  three  Admirals  ;  but  this  letter  had  been  sent  back 
without  answer,  under  the  pretence  that  Ibrahim  was  not 
present. 

At  two  o'clock  the  Asia  entered  the  port,  and  had  passed 
the  batteries  at  half  past  two  ;  it  anchored  alongside  the 
Turkish  Admiral,  and  was  followed  by  the  other  English 
ships. 

The  Syrene  followed,  and  at  25  minutes  past  two  Captain 
Robert  anchored  at  within  pistol  shot  of  the  first  frigate  ot 
the  Turkish  line  ;  at  this  moment  a  boat  belonging  to  the 
Dartmouth,  came  near  one  of  the  fire-ships,  near  which  that 
frigate  had  cast  anchor  a  few  moments  before,  when  a  musket 
shot  from  this  fire-ship  killed  the  English  officer  who  com- 
manded the  boat.  The  Syrene  was  then  so  near  the  fire-ship, 
that  it  might  have  sunk  it,  if  it  could  have  been  done  without 
endangering  the  English  boat :  the  Dartmouth  then  opened 
a  fire  of  musketry  at  the  fire-ship,  in  order  to  cover  its  boat. 
Almost  at  the  same  moment  the  Syrene  was  yard-arm  and 
yard-arm  with  the  Egyptian  double-banked  frigate.  The 
Esnina,  Admiral  de  Rigny,  hailed  it  with  the  speaking  trum- 
pet, saying,  that  if  it  did  not  fire,  he  would  not  lire  at  it ;  at 
the  same  instant  two  cannon  shots  were  fired  from  one  of  the 
vessels  which  were  astern  of  the  Syrene,  on  board  of  which 
a  man  was  killed  ;  the  other  appeared  to  be  directed  against 
the  Dartmouth.     The  battle  now  began. 

It  is  to  be  observed,  that  almost  at  the  same  time  that  this 
was  passing  at  the  entrance,  Admiral  Codrington  sent  a  boat 
towards  the  vessel  bearing  the  Admiral's  flag,  and  that  the 
English  pilot  was  killed  by  a  musket  shot  on  board  the  boat 
with  the  flag  of  truce. 

The  battle  soon  became  general ;  the  Russian  vessels 
had  to  support  the  fire  of  the  forts,  which  only  began  to  fire 
upon  the  fifth  vessel,  which  was  the  Trident.  At  five 
o'clock  in  the  afternoon,  the  first  line  of  the  Turks  was  de» 


428  HISTORY  OF  THE 

stroyed — the  ships  of  the  line  and  cut  down  frigates  sunk,  or 
burned  ;  the  remainder  ran  upon  the  coast,  where  the  enemy 
themselves  set  fire  to  them. 

Of  this  formidable  armament,  there  remains  afloat  only 
about  20  corvettes  and  brigs,  and  even  these  are  abandoned. 

Thus  has  been  fulfilled  the  threat  held  out  to  Ibrahim,  that 
if  a  cannon  was  fired  upon  the  allied  flags,  the  fate  of  the 
whole  fleet  would  be  at  stake. 

Ibrahim  was  not  present :  for  this  fortnight  past  he  has 
been  laying  waste  the  Morea,  rooting  up  the  olives,  vines, 
fig-trees,  &c. 

In  this  unforeseen  engagement,  there  were  of  course  some 
vessels,  which,  by  their  position,  have  suffered  more  than 
the  others  ;  what  is  certain,  is,  that  in  each  squadron  all  have 
rivalled  each  other  in  doing  their  duty. 

His  Majesty's  brig  the  Armide,  which,  at  the  beginning  of 
the  action  was  placed  with  the  English  frigate  Talbot,  at  the 
left  extremity  of  the  crescent,  was  exposed,  with  its  brave 
comrade,  to  the  fire  of  five  Turkish  frigates,  till  the  arrival 
of  the  Russian  frigates.  Capt.  Hugon  has  received  unani- 
mous felicitations  for  the  boldness  of  his  manoeuvres,  and  the 
gallantry  with  which  he  fought  the  vessels  opposed  to  him. 
The  Scipio,  Capt.  Milires,  whose  bowsprit  was  entangled 
with  a  fire-ship  that  was  in  flames,  had  to  extinguish  the  fire 
on  board  four  times  without  ceasing  to  fight,  firing  at  the 
same  time  to  the  right  and  left  on  the  enemy's  line,  and  on 
the  forts. 

In  consequence  of  the  position  taken  by  Capt.  Maurice, 
of  the  Trident,  Admiral  de  Rigny  received  the  most  com- 
plete assistance  from  that  vessel. 

Captain  la  Bretonniere,  of  the  Breslau,  fought  first  under 
sail,  and  then  at  anchor,  going  wherever  his  presence  might 
be  useful.  The  Russian  Admiral  has  returned  special  thanks 
to  Admiral  de  Rigny  for  the  assistance  which  he  received 
from  the  Breslau,  at  the  moment  when  the  Azof  suffered  se- 
verely from  the  cross  fire  of  the  enemy. 

The  Alcyone  and  the  Daphne,  schooners,  bravely  partici- 
pated in  the  attack  upon  the  first  fire-ships,  made  by  the 
English  brigs  and  corvettes. 

In  a  word,  whatever  opposed  the  allied  vessels  was  speedily 
overcome,  notwithstanding  the  desperate  bravery  shown  by 
some  Turkish  vessels. 

Admiral  de  Rigny  has  felt  himself  bound  to  return  particle 
iar  thanks  to  Captain  Fellowes,  of  his  Britannic  Majesty's 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  429 

frigate  the  Dartmouth,  which  was  appointed  to  watch  the 
fire-ships,  for  the  timely  succour  he  afforded  him  when  one 
of  the  fire-ships,  in  flames,  was  on  the  point  of  falling  on  the 
Syrene. 

Our  squadron  had  43  killed,  and  114  wounded.  Captain 
de  la  Breton niere  was  slightly  wounded.  Our  squadron 
has  suffered  great  damage.  Two  of  our  ships  of  the  line  are 
obliged  to  return  to  Toulon  to  repair  their  masts.  The  Sy- 
rene  in  particular  has  sustained  great  injury  ;  its  main  and 
mizen-masts  are  shot  away  ;  the  two  lower  yards  and  main- 
top yard  are  shot  away,  and  it  has  six  shots  between  wind 
and  water. 

The  Trident  is  going  to  Smyrna  to  meet  the  Junon,  the 
Pomone,  and  the  other  light  vessels,  to  supply  the  wants  of 
the  moment,  and  to  expect  new  directions. 

The  English  corvette  Rose,  has  gone  to  Smyrna,  whence 
couriers  Avill  be  despatched  to  Constantinople  to  announce 
this  important  event.  Captain  Reverseaux,  of  the  Pomone, 
had  instructions  to  protect  the  French  subjects. 

Chevalier  de  Rigny  speaks  in  high  terms  of  the  cordiality 
and  efficacious  co-operation  of  the  Admirals,  his  colleagues. 

Some  days  before  the  battle,  Admiral  de  Rigny  had  inti- 
mated to  the  French,  who  were  employed  on  board  Ibra- 
him's fleet,  that  the  mode  of  warfare  recently  adopted  by 
the  Turks,  and  the  violation  of  his  word  by  Ibrahim,  autho- 
rized him  to  call  upon  them  to  quit  that  service.  Only  one 
of  them  did  not  consider  the  occasion  sufficiently  urgent  to 
obey  this  summons.     It  is  not  known  whether  he  persevered* 

Our  crews  have  justified  the  confidence  of  the  king  ;  in 
each  vessel,  the  cry  of  "  vive  le  roi"  spontaneously  accom- 
panied the  first  broadside. 

This  squadron  had  before  it,  for  some  hours,  a  dreadful 
scene.  Conceive  about  fifty  ships  of  war,  of  all  rates,  firing 
in  a  narrow  basin,  in  a  triple  line  ;  the  burning  of  some,  and 
the  explosions  which  ensued. 

When  the  first  frigate,  yard-arm  to  yard-arm  with  our  ves- 
sels, took  fire  and  blew  up,  the  Syrene  was  so  near  astern, 
that  its  mizen-mast  fell  on  that  frigate,  which  was  soon  fol- 
lowed by  the  main-mast." 

The  great  disparity  in  respect  to  the  numbers  opposed 
to  each  other  at  the  battle  of  Navarino,  constituted  the 
victorv  amons  tlie  most  brilliant  which  any  navy  can  claftn* 

37* 


430  HISTORY  OF  THE 

According  to  the  statements  made  by  the  Secretary  of  the 
Gapitani  Bey,  the  Turkish  force  amounted  to  as  follows  : — 

Three  Turkish  line  of  battle  ships,  viz  :  1  Turkish  Admi- 
ral, 84  guns,  850  men,  of  whom  650  were  killed — 1  do.  84 
guns,  850  men — 1  do.  76  guns,  850  men,  400  killed. 

Four  Egyptian  double  banked  frigates,  64  guns  each,  from 
450  to  500  men  each. 

Fifteen  Turkish  frigates,  each  48  guns,  and  from  450  to 
500  men  each. 

Eighteen  Turkish  corvettes, — eight  Egyptian  do. — from 
18  to  24  guns,  and  200  men  each. 

Four  Turkish,  and  eight  Egyptian  do. — 19  guns,  and  from 
130  to  150  men  each. 

Five  Egyptian  fire  vessels. 
The  forces  of  the  Allies  were  as  follows : — 

English,  3  line,     4  frigates,  4  sloops. — Total  11 
French,    3    do.      4     do.        2     do.  9 

Russian,  4    do.      4     do.        0     do.  8 

28 

According  to  Monsieur  Bompard,  a  French  officer,  who 
was  in  the  service  of  Ibrahim  at  the  time  of  the  battle,  the 
number  of  Turkish  vessels  of  different  sizes  at  the  battle  of 
Navarino,  was  81. 

In  addition  to  the  above  official  statements,  several  inter- 
esting, and  well  authenticated  circumstances  are  now  to  be 
related  concerning  the  battle  of  Navarino. 

After  the  battle,  the  allied  admirals  sent  to  the  Turkish 
commanders  a  joint  note,  stating  that  the  squadrons  of  the 
allied  powers  did  not  enter  Navarino  with  a  hostile  intention, 
but  only  to  renew  to  the  commanders  of  the  Turkish  fleet 
propositions  which  were  to  the  advantage  of  the  Grand 
Seignor  himself,  and  that  it  was  not  their  intention  to  destroy 
what  ships  of  the  Ottoman  navy  may  yet  remain,  now  that 
so  signal  a  vengeance  had  been  taken  for  the  first  cannon 
which  had  been  ventured  to  be  fired  on  the  allied  flags. 

"  We  send,  therefore,  one  of  the  Turkish  captains,  fallen 
into  our  hands  as  a  prisoner,  to  make  known  to  Ibrahim  Pa- 
cha, Mauharem  Bey,  Tahir  Pacha,  and  Gapitani  Bey,  as  well 
as  to  all  the  other  Turkish  chiefs,  that  if  a  single  musket 
Or  cannon  shot  be  again  fired  on  a  ship  or  boat  of  the  allied 
powers,  we  shall  immediately  destroy  all  the  remaining  ves- 
sels as  well  as  the  forts  of  Navarino,  and  that  we  shall  con- 
sider such  a  new  act  of  hostility  as  a  formal  declaration  of  the 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  431 

Porte  against  the  three  Allied  powers,  and  which  the  Grand 
Seignor  and  his  Pachas  must  suffer  the  terrible  consequences. 

"  But  if  the  Turkish  chiefs,  acknowledging  the  aggression 
they  have  committed  by  commencing  the  firing,  abstain 
from  any  act  of  hostility,  we  shall  resume  those  terms  of 
good  understanding  which  they  have  themselves  interrupted. 
In  this  case  they  will  have  the  white  flag  hoisted  on  all  the 
forts  before  the  end  of  this  day.  We  demand  a  categorical 
answer,  without  evasion,  before  sunset." 

Information  was  subsequently  received  through  the  French 
papers  that  Ibrahim  hoisted  the  white  flag  on  all  his  fortresses 
before  sunset,  agreeably  to  the  above  injunction.  It  is  said 
also,  that  Ibrahim  was  not  present  at  the  battle  of  Navarino, 
having  been  at  that  time  engaged  in  the  interior  of  the  Morea, 
pursuing  the  Christians  in  the  mountains  of  Messina,  attend- 
ing to  the  execution  of  some  priests,  whom  he  had  crucified 
on  olive  trees,  and  destroying  the  poor  peasantry,  devastating 
the  country,  &,c. 

It  appears  that  Ibrahim  has  constantly  taken  delight  in 
murder,  devastation,  and  cruelty.  In  a  letter  from  Corfu,  it  is 
stated,  that  the  threat  made  by  the  Porte  on  receipt  of  the 
treaty  of  the  6th  of  July,  that  every  armed  interference  in 
the  affairs  of  Greece  would  fail  in  its  object,  and  lead  to  a 
greater  effusion  of  blood,  appears  to  be  really  carrying  into 
effect.  After  the  failure  of  his  attempt  to  leave  the  port  of 
Navarino,  Ibrahim  marched  against  Maina,and  committed  on 
the  way  the  most  frightful  devastations.  Fifteen  thousand 
infantry,  and  eight  hundred  cavalry,  scoured  the  peninsula, 
with  cries  of  "  down  with  the  infidels." 

On  being  informed  of  the  destruction  of  his  fleet,  Ibrahim, 
as  appears  by  a  letter  from  Ancona,  immediately  fell  back 
upon  Coron,  and  put  to  the  sword,  or  torture,  all  the  Greek 
prisoners,  men,  women  and  children,  which  had  fallen  into 
his  hands  during  the  previous  fifteen  months.  According  to 
his  previous  custom,  the  Ministers  of  religion  were  either 
crucified  or  roasted  by  slow  fires.  The  details  of  these 
enormities,  no  person  could  read  without  shuddering  with 
horror.     They  are  too  shocking  for  description. 

The  following  communication  from  the  three  allied  com- 
manders to  the  Greek  Government,  shews  that  the  cessation 
of  hostilities  was  not  intended  to  be  confined  to  the  Turks 
alone,  but  that  the  armistice  de  facto  was  to  apply  to  the 
Gteeks  as  welj  as  their  enemies*     It  is  dated  October  25. 


432  filSTORY  OF  THE 

u  We  learn,  with  lively  feelings  of  indignation,  that,  while  the 
ships  of  the  allied  powers  have  destroyed  the  Turkish  fleet, 
which  had  refused  submitting  to  the  armistice  de  facto,  the 
Greek  cruisers  continue  to  infest  the  seas ;  and  that  the 
prize  court,  the  only  tribunal  recognized  by  the  Greek  code, 
seeks  by  legal  forms  to  justify  their  excesses.  ' 

"  Your  provisional  government  appear  to  think,  that  the 
chiefs  of  the  allied  squadrons  are  not  agreed  on  the  measures 
to  be  adopted  for  putting  a  stop  to  this  system  of  lawless  plun- 
der. It  deceives  itself.  We  here  declare  to  you  with  one 
Voice,  that  we  will  not  suffer  your  seeking,  under  false  pre- 
texts, to  enlarge  the  theatre  of  war;  that  is  to  say,  the  circle 
of  piracies. 

"  We  will  not  suffer  any  expedition,  any  cruise,  any  block- 
ade, to  be  made  by  the  Greeks  beyond  the  limits  of  from 
Valo  to  Lepanto,  including  Salamina,  Egina,  Hydra,  and 
Spezzia. 

"  We  will  not  suffer  the  Greeks  to  incite  insurrection  at 
Scio,  or  in  Albania,  thereby  exposing  the  population  to  be 
massacred  by  the  Turks  in  retaliation. 

"  We  will  consider  as  void,  papers  given  to  cruizers  found 
beyond  the  prescribed  limits  ;  and  ships  of  war  of  the  allied 
powers  will  have  orders  to  arrest  them  wherever  they  may  be 
found. 

"  There  remains  for  you,  no  pretext.  The  armistice  by 
sea  exists  on  the  part  of  the  Turks,  de  facto.  Their  fleet 
exists  no  more.  Take  care  of*  yours — for  we  will  also  destroy 
it,  need  be,  to  put  a  stop  to  a  system  of  robbery  on  the  high 
seas,  which  would  end  in  your  exclusion  from  the  law  of  na- 
tions. 

"  As  the  present  provisional  government  is  as  weak  as  it 
is  immoral,  we  address  these  final  and  irrevocable  resolutions 
to  the  legislative  body. 

"  With  respect  to  the  prize  court  which  it  has  instituted, 
We  declare  it  incompetent  to  judge  any  of  our  vessels  without 
our  concurrence. 

"  We  have  the  honour  to  be,  &c." 

The  accounts  which  have  reached  this  country  of  the  state 
•of  Greece  since  the  battle  of  Navarino,  have  been  merely 
jtems,  or  particulars,  principally  concerning  the  deplorable 
Condition  of  the  inhabitants  of  that  country.  We  have  there- 
fore at  the  present  time  no  information  by  which  a  detail  of 
of  the  movements  of  the  belligerent  parties  can  be  given.  It 
dftes  not  appear  that  Lord  Cochrane,  after  the  battle  of  Nava* 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  433 

vino,  undertook  or  achieved  any  thing  of  much  importance. 
General  Church,  in  the  course  of  the  summer,  divided  the 
Greek  army  into  small  corps,  under  the  form  of  the  Spanish 
guerillas,  and  thus  occupied  the  defiles  of  Thermopylae,  and 
the  mountains  of  Phocis,  in  order  to  prevent  the  transporta- 
tion of  provisions  to  the  Turks.  Colocotroni  at  the  same 
time  occupied  a  military  line  from  Argos  to  Corinth,  in  order 
to  prevent  as  much  as  possible  the  communication  of  the 
Turks  with  each  other. 

The  Acropolis  of  Athens  surrendered  to  the  Turks  about 
mid-summer,  the  Greeks  it  appears  bejng  no  longer  able  to 
hold  out  against  numbers  and  famine.  This  surrender,  how- 
ever, was  the  cause  of  much  difficulty,  confusion,  and  bick- 
ering among  the  Greek  populace.  General  Church,  it  ap- 
pears, did  not  escape,  in  the  outcry,  for  having  given  orders 
for  its  surrender,  under  certain  circumstances,  before  he  left 
Athens. 

The  French  colonel  Favier,  who  has  heretofore  been  so 
honourably  mentioned,  suffered  the  vilest  accusations,  for 
having  consented  to  the  capitulation.  The  Greek  captains 
who  were  with  him  in  the  Acropolis,  signed  an  accusation 
against  him,  which  they  delivered  to  the  government. 

The  Count  Capo  d'Istrias,  has  repeatedly  been  named  in 
the  beginning  of  this  volume,  but  during  the  protracted 
struggle  for  freedom  which  his  country  has  undergone,  his 
name  does  not  appear  among  the  combatants.  In  1827  he 
was  called  by  the  authorities  of  his  country  to  assume  the 
high  responsibility  of  becoming  President  of  Greece.  This 
appointment  it  appears  was  made  and  forwarded  to  him  while 
in  Russia.  The  Count,  though  absent,  has  not  been  unmind- 
ful of  the  interests  and  welfare  of  his  bleeding  country,  but 
has  assisted  her  by  his  counsels,  and  the  exercise  of  his  influ- 
ence abroad,  in  the  procuring  of  funds  for  the  maintenance 
of  the  war.  The  following  notice  of  this  distinguished  man, 
is  extracted  from  Niles'  Register,  for  January,  1828,  but  on 
what  authority  is  not  mentioned. 

"  This  nobleman,  who  has  lately  been  elected  President 
of  Greece,  was  born  at  Corfu,  in  the  year  1776 — a  glorious 
year  for  the  cause  of  freedom.  His  family  had,  from  the 
year  1300,  held  an  honourable  place  in  the  first  class  of  citi- 
zens of  the  Seven  Ionian  Isles.  He  studied  in  the  univer- 
sities of  Italy,  and  returned  to  his  country  in  1798,  at  the. 
moment  when  the  overthrow  of  the  republic  of  Venice  intro- 
duced into  the  Ionian  Islands  the  democratic  power  of  France. 


W  HISTORY  OF  THE 

He  found  his  father  a  prisoner,  and  threatened  by  the  French 
Commissary  with  banishment,  on  account,  as  it  was  said,  of 
his  political  opinions.  Count  Capo  d'Istria  exerted  himself 
with  zeal  and  activity  for  the  relief  of  his  father,  and  had  the 
good  fortune  to  succeed.  After  the  French  had  surrendered 
the  island  to  the  combined  Russian  and  Ottoman  fleets,  and 
they  had  been  formed  into  a  republic  under  the  joint  pro- 
tection of  Russia  and  England,  the  Count,  though  still  young, 
was  employed  in  1800  to  organize  the  islands  of  Cephalonia, 
Ithica  and  St.  Maura.  This  was  the  commencement  of  his 
political  career.  In  1802  he  was  appointed  Secretary  of 
State  for  the  home  department  of  the  republic,  and  after- 
wards for  foreign  affairs,  for  the  marine  and  for  commerce. 
One  of  the  most  prominent  acts  of  his  administration  was  the 
establishment  of  moral  schools,  which  had  not  before  existed 
in  the  islands. 

"  In  1807,  the  isle  of  St.  Maura  was  threatened  by  Ali  Pa- 
cha. The  Ionian  Government  invested  Count  Capo  d'Istria 
with  the  powers  of  Commissioner  extraordinary  on  the  fron- 
tiers, and  placed  under  his  orders  all  the  militia  in  the  ser- 
vice of  the  Allied  Courts  in  the  Seven  Islands.  In  this  cam- 
paign, under  the  cannon  of  Ali  Pacha,  Capo  d'Istria  became 
first  known  to  the  Greek  captains,  Colocotroni,  Bozzaris, 
Karaiskaki,  and  other  chiefs  ;  and  at  this  epoch,  his  personal 
relations  with  the  warlike  part  of  Greece  commenced.  In 
July,  1808,  he  was  invited  to  repair  to  St.  Petersburgh  to 
be  employed  in  the  foreign  department.  Hither  he  went  in 
1809,  and  remained  there  until  1812.  He  was  then  em- 
ployed in  the  suite  of  the  Russian  embassy  at  Vienna,  whence 
he  was  summoned  to  discharge  the  functious  of  chief  of  the 
diplomatic  department  at  the  head  of  the  Russian  army  of 
the  Danube,  and  afterwards  with  the  grand  army.  He  con- 
tinued with  the  army  during  the  campaigns  of  1813,  1814, 
and  1815,  and  took  an  active  part  in  the  most  important  nego- 
tiations of  this  memorable  epoch.  In  November,  1813,  the 
Emperor  Alexander  sent  him  to  Switzerland.  The  result  of 
this  mission  was,  that  Switzerland  made  common  cause  with 
the  allied  powers  against  Buonaparte ;  and  the  system  of 
Helvetic  confederation's  it  now  exists,  was  in  part  his  work, 
in  concurrence  with  the  ministers  of  the  other  allied  courts, 
and  of  the  22  Cantons.  Switzerland  still  feels  for  him  a 
grateful  affection.  At  the  Congress  of  Vienna,  during  the 
Conference  at  Paris  in  1815,  and  at  Aix-la-Chapelle,  Count 
Capo  d'Istria,  possessing  all  the  confidence  of  Alexander, 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  435 

was  chosen  to  carry  on  the  principal  negotiations  with  the 
allied  powers — negotiations  which  included  those,  the  re- 
sult of  which  was,  the  placing  the  Ionian  Islands  under  the 
exclusive  protection  of  Great  Britain. 

"  From  1816  to  1822,  he  exercised  the  functions  of  Se- 
cretary of  State  for  foreign  affairs  in  the  Cabinet  of  the  Em- 
peror Alexander.  In  1822,  when  the  court  of  Russia  adopt- 
ed the  Austrian  system  with  regard  to  the  affairs  of  the  Le- 
vant and  Greece,  Count  Capo  resigned  his  office  and  returned 
to  Switzerland,  carrying  with  him  marks  of  the  unaltered 
kindness  of  the  Emperor  Alexander,  and  of  the  attachment 
of  the  most  distinguished  persons  of  Russia.  In  the  begin- 
ning of  the  year  1826,  he  came  to  Paris,  and  it  was  then  sup- 
posed that  he  then  intended  to  return  to  Russia.  He  did 
not  take  the  journey,  however,  until  the  month  of  May, 
1827,  and  it  was  on  his  arrival  in  Russia,  that  he  received 
the  news  of  the  choice  which  called  him  to  the  government 
of  the  affairs  of  Greece.  After  a  residence  of  two  months  in 
Russia,  he  retraced  his  steps,  and  was  in  France  at  the  last  ad- 
vices, having  brought  a  decree  whereby  the  Emperor  Nicho- 
las gives  him  a  complete  discharge  from  his  service  in  terms 
which  at  once  demonstrates  the  personal  sentiments  enter- 
tained by  his  sovereign  towards  him,  and  the  character  ot 
the  recollections  he  has  left  behind  him  in  Russia." 

Perhaps  no  circumstance,  short  of  the  actual  and  acknow- 
1  edged  independence  of  Greece,  could  be  of  higher  consequence 
to  that  country,  than  the  appointment  of  Capo  d'Istrias  to  be 
at  the  head  of  the  government.  Men  of  discernment,  who 
have  witnessed  the  distracted  state  of  that  country,  and  have 
been  acquainted  with  the  heads  of  the  departments  of  go- 
vernment there,  have  lamented  that  a  second  Washington 
could  not  be  placed  over  the  councils  of  Greece.  The  for- 
mer Presidents,  though  men  of  talent,  and  some  of  them  of 
integrity,  did  not  combine  diplomatic  experience  and  skill, 
with  a  mature  knowledge  of  the  European  art  of  war.  The 
state  of  Greece,  both  moral  and  political,  requires  for  its 
President  a  man  of  the  highest  attainments  in  the  art  of  go- 
vernment, combined  with  invincible  firmness  of  character,  and 
the  greatest  resources  of  mind.  Count  Capo  d'Istria  ap- 
pears to  be  the  only  Greek,  now  living,  who,  at  the  head  of 
affairs,  could  undertake  the  emancipation  of  his  country  with 
equal  hopes  of  success. 

On  his  appointment  to  his  present  situation,  he  addressed 


436  HISTORY  OF  THE 

the  following  letter  to  the  heads  of  government,  and  to  the 
Greek  nation.     It  is  dated  London,  August  28. 

"  At  the  moment  of  quitting  the  Russian  capital,  I  have 
received,  through  my  brother,  the  messages  which  your  ex- 
cellency did  me  the  honour  to  address  to  me,  conjointly  with- 
the  representatives  of  the  nation,  to  communicate  to  me  two 
decrees,  one  of  which  places  me  at  the  head  of  the  Greek 
government,  and  the  other  invests  me  with  the  power  to  ne- 
gotiate a  loan.  Ever  since  the  month  of  May,  and  since  my 
arrival  at  St.  Petersburg,  the  public  prints  and  private  letters 
made  me  acquainted  with  the  proof  of  confidence  so  flattering 
and  so  solemn,  which  the  Greek  nation  had  just  given  in  my 
favour.  I  will  not  express  to  your  excellency  and  your  noble 
Colleagues,  either  the  sentiments  which  the  decrees  now  be- 
fore me  inspire,  or  the  prayers  which  I  offer  to  the  Almighty 
that  he  may  bestow  upon  you,  gentlemen,  and  upon  me, 
Strength  to  attain  the  object  of  the  long  and  bloody  sacrifices 
to  which  the  Greek  people  have  submitted,  and  to  which  it 
Still  submits  in  the  hope  of  a  final  restoration.  For  the  pre- 
sent, I  shall  confine  myself  to  giving  you  an  account,  in  a  few 
Words,  of  what  I  have  succeeded  in  doing  up  to  this  time,  and 
giving  you  the  assurance  of  my  entire  devotion  to  the  cause 
for  the  future. 

"  On  learning  of  the  catastrophe  of  Athens,  of  the  pecunia- 
ry embarrassment  of  the  provisional  Greek  government,  and 
of  the  sad  necessity  which  forced  it  to  contract  a  loan  in  the 
Ionian  Islands,  which  could  only  have  sufficed  for  a  few  days, 
I  sent  to  my  brother,  as  my  only  answer,  the  remnant  of  my 
moderate  fortune.  I  instructed  him  to  take  a  portion  of  that 
loan,  if  it  had  been  negotiated,  or  to  deposite  in  the  hands  of 
the  provisional  government  the  sum  of  two  thousand  pounds 
sterling,  which  I  have  placed  at  his  disposal.  At  the  same  time, 
I  proceeded  to  call  on  the  Greeks,  who  possessed  wealth  in 
foreign  lands,  to  follow  this  example,  and  to  afford  you  some 
assistance.  These  measures  have  had  some  success,  and  the 
provisional  government,  in  consequence,  is  in  a  condition  to 
meet  its  most  urgent  wants,  for  the  moment.  I  say  for  the 
moment ;  for  I  flatter  myself  that  by  the  aid  of  God  and  your 
wisdom,  the  Greek  nation  will  shortly  receive  more  important 
succour. 

"  In  the  present  state  of  things,  this  assistance,  in  order  to 
be  effective,  ought  to  have  a  double  object.  It  ought  to  draw 
Greece  from  its  isolation,  and  put  it  in  contact  with  the  great 
European  powers.     It  ought  to  procure  for  it  the  means  oT 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  437 

existence,  and  of  defending  itself,  till  its  government  can  in- 
troduce something  like  order  into  the  external  concerns  of 
the  nation,  and  put  it  in  a  situation  to  provide  for  itself.  It 
is  with  these  two  great  interests  that  I  am  now  exclusively  oc- 
cupied, and  with  which  I  will  still  occupy  myself  when  on 
my  way  to  you  I  pass  through  Paris.  Should  heaven  con- 
tinue to  bless  my  efforts,  as  it  has  blessed  them  up  to  this  day, 
I  dare  indulge  the  hope,  that  it  will  be  merit  to  offer  you 
some  consolation,  and  that  the  Greek  nation  will  not  refuse  to 
me  the  powers  which  I  ask,  to  regulate,  in  the  legal  exercise 
of  the  honourable  functions  which  it  offers  me,  all  the  neces- 
sary arrangements  with  the  courts  which  interest  themselves 
in  its  behalf. 

"  I  will  not  lose  a  moment,  for  time  passes  from  day  to  day, 
to  decide  for  Greece  the  question  of  life  or  death.  Doubtless, 
the  event  is  in  the  hands  of  God  ;  but  let  us  not  dissemble, 
that  much  depends  on  you,  gentlemen,  to  render  it  propitious. 
Be  assured,  such  it  will  prove,  if,  faithful  to  the  immutable 
principles  of  our  holy  religion,  you  labour  unanimously,  and 
with  good  faith,  for  our  common  safety,  some  in  carrying 
arms,  not  only  with  devotion  and  courage,  but  with  a  perfect 
subordination  to  the  orders  of  your  chiefs  ;  others  in  admin- 
istering the  affairs  of  the  country,  for,  and  not  for  or  against 
particular  individuals  or  particular  interests. 

"  I  pause  here,  and  I  resign,  gentlemen,  to  your  wisdom 
and  your  patriotism,  the  care  of  weighing  the  immense  re- 
sponsibility which  falls  on  your  heads.  I  shall  have  the  ho- 
nour to  share  it  with  you  ;  but  I  hesitate  not  to  repeat  here, 
that  I  cannot  share  it  with  you,  till  after  you  shall  have  heard 
me  ;  and  that  I  myself  shall  have  obtained  from  you  all  the 
confidence  which  I  wish  to  inspire. 

"  Receive,  &c. 

(Signed)  «  CAPO  D'ISTRIA.7'     I 

By  accounts  from  Greece,  in  February,  1828,  it  appeared 
that  the  Count  had  already  effected  an  almost  entire  change 
in  the  military  aspect  of  the  troops  under  his  charge.  It  ap- 
pears, states  this  account,  that  Count  Capo  d'Istria  was  en- 
gaged about  that  time  in  an  important  military  operation, 
which  would  require  the  whole  military  and  naval  force  of 
Greece,  and  that  orders  had  been  sent  to  all  the  military  com- 
manders to  act  for  the  execution  of  a  common  plan.  A 
corps  of  4,000  infantry  near  Froezene  had  assembled,  an- 
other corps  of  1,800  near  IVapoli  was  to  assemble,  and  a  third, 

38 


438  HISTORY  OF  THE 

consisting  of  troops  of  all  descriptions,  was  to  occupy  a  place 
near  Corinth.  All  these  were  employed  in  preparations  for 
active  service.  Similar  orders  are  said  to  have  been  sent  to 
General  Church,  who  was  then  at  a  position  near  Dragomes- 
tre.  Count  Capo  embarked  in  February  for  Porous,  taking 
with  him  all  the  Greek,  as  well  as  foreign  ships  which  were 
in  the  harbour  of  Egina.  A  new  life,  says  the  account,  ap- 
pears to  animate  the  whole  population  of  Greece,  and  the 
dangerous  spirit  of  insubordination  appears  to  have  left  the 
troops,  since  the  President  takes  care  that  they  receive  their 
pay  punctually,  and  even  distributes  presents  on  every  occa- 
sion, when  they  perform  any  thing  remarkable.  Among  the 
Arabs  and  Turks,  on  the  contrary,  all  discipline  has  vanish- 
ed, to  which  the  battle  of  Navarino,  and  the  distress  which 
the  troops  suffer,  have  contributed.  Whole  bands  of  Turk- 
is  marauders  are  said  now  to  be  met  with  in  the  Morea,  who 
traverse  the  country  in  search  of  plunder,  under  leaders  of 
their  own  choosing.  The  Turkish  fortresses  are  likewise 
said  to  be  in  a  suffering  condition  for  want  of  provisions.  It 
is  therefore  believed,  that  Ibrahim  will  soon  be  obliged  to 
leave  the  Morea,  to  save  himself,  or  at  least  his  military  re- 
putation. 

We  have  here  only  to  add  some  account  of  the  donations 
sent  from  this  country  to  Greece.  In  the  spring  of  1827. 
five  large  vessels,  loaded  with  provisions  and  clothing  for 
the  relief  of  the  destitute  and  naked  Greeks,  sailed  from  this 
country.  This  large  amount,  valued  at  about  100,000  dol- 
lars, consisted  entirely  of  the  voluntary  contributions  of  be- 
nevolent individuals,  and  charitable  societies,  chiefly  in  the 
northern  states.  Two  of  these  vessels  sailed  from  New- 
York,  two  from  Philadelphia,  and  one  from  Boston.  Intelli- 
gent agents  from  this  country  proceeded  with  these  supplies 
to  whom  were  entrusted  the  pleasant  duty  of  a  gratuitous  dis- 
tribution of  them,  in  such  a  manner,  as  would  best  serve  the 
cause  of  humanity. 

In  1828,  the  value  of  the  supplies,  received  by  the  Greek 
Committee  of  New-York,  up  to  the  time  of  the  sailing  of  the 
brig  Herald,  and  in  her  forwarded  to  Greece,  was  as  fol- 
lows :  The  amounts  are  in  money,  provisions,  and  clothing. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  439 

F'om  the  State  of  New- York,  $38,573  46 

Connecticut,  11,869  89 

Massachusetts,  3,152  54 

Maryland,  2,459  80 

Rhode  Island,  1,948  25 

New  Jersey,  1,217  17 

Vermont,  "  517  32 

Virginia,  75  00 

Ohio,  67  00 

Upper  Canada,  10  00 


Total  amount  received  by  the  >  p.Q  ^q  qj-# 

Committee  to  May  28,  1828,  f  ^  ^y  yo 

It  is  proper  to  remark,  before  closing  this  part  of  our 
volume,  that  the  following  pages  contain  matter  which  could 
not  have  been  incorporated  with  the  narrative  of  history  of 
the  revolution,  except  it  were  thrown  into  the  form  of 
notes,  and  for  which  purpose  most  of  the  extracts  are  quite 
too  long.  The  volume,  however,  would  have  been  incom- 
plete, without  the  miscellaneous  information  here  thrown 
together,  since  in  that  case  many  interesting  observations 
and  facts  would  have  been  suppressed. 


CHAP.  XXVI. 

Conduct  of  European  States  in  relation  to  Greece — Levant 
Merchants  and  Jews — Moral  condition  of  the  Greeks — . 
Calumnies  on  Greek  character — Domestic  manners  and 
women  of  Greece — State  of  religion  in  Greece — Priests, 

f  "  Having  essayed,  with  however  weak  a  pen,  to  trace  the 
rise  and  progress  of  the  Greek  revolution,  and  to  show  what 
the  energy  of  a  small  population,  totally  ignorant  of  the  mi- 
litary art,  undisciplined,  unaided,  and  without  a  regular  go- 

*  Niles'  Register,  for  June,  1828 

f  The  following  judicious  and  sensible  observations  on  the  situation 
and  affairs  of  Greece,  are  extracted  from  the  work  of  Edward  Bla- 
quiere,  Esq.,  author  of  two  volumes  on  the  present  revolution.  Mr. 
Blaquiere,  it  appears,  besides  his  recent  residence  there,  has  been  long  per- 
sonally acquainted  with  the  condition  of  that  country.  The  reader  will 
observe  that  these  remarks  were  written  before  the  powers  of  Europe 
took  any  active  part  in  the  present  struggle. 


440  HISTORY  OF  THE 

vernment,  has  been  able  to  achieve  over  a  power,  which, 
little  more  than  a  century  ago,  laid  siege  to  the  capital  of 
Austria,  a  no  less  interesting  field  of  examination  and  inqui- 
ry presents  itself  in  the  religious  and  moral  character  of  the 
Greek  people ;  their  means  of  consolidating  that  indepen- 
dence for  which  they  have  so  gloriously  struggled  ;  and 
above  all,  the  policy  of  the  European  cabinets  and  conduct 
of  the  Christian  world  generally  towards  a  people,  whose 
claims  to  sympathy  and  support  have  ever  been,  as  they  now 
are,  incontrovertible.  It  being  however  suggested,  that  my 
return  to  Greece  might  be  more  beneficial  to  the  sacred 
cause,  than  all  I  could  publish  on  the  subject,  I  most  willing- 
ly yield  to  the  opinion  of  my  friends,  and  shall  therefore  only 
offer  a  few  desultory  remarks,  where  I  would  fain  have  en- 
tered into  a  much  more  elaborate  detail. 

"  It  may  be  truly  said,  that  the  most  painful  task  which 
any  future  writer  will  have  to  perform,  belongs  to  the  histo- 
rian of  the  Greek  revolution.  Without  referring  to  what  has 
been  stated  in  the  early  part  of  these  pages,  to  prove  that  the 
insurrection  of  Greece  had  nothing  in  common  with  the 
causes  of  revolt  in  other  countries  of  Europe,  however  they 
may  have  been  oppressed,  and  that  it  was  consequently  an 
act  of  the  most  palpable  injustice  to  confound  it  with  them, 
the  number  of  eloquent  pens  which  have  proved  this  fact 
beyond  any  doubt,  renders  all  further  argument  unnecessary. 
And  yet,  how  will  the  future  historian  be  able  to  record,  that 
when  after  twenty  centuries  of  tyranny  and  oppression,  the 
descendants  of  Solon  and  Lycurgus,  of  Socrates  and  Plato, 
attempted  to  shake  off  a  yoke  the  most  barbarous  and  intole- 
rable ever  borne  by  man,  the  sovereigns  and,  ministers  of  ci- 
vilized Europe,  who  owed  all  they  knew  of  civilization,  arts 
or  literature,  to  the  genius  of  ancient  Greece,  not  only  brand- 
ed the  effort  with  the  epithet  of  revolution,  but  did  every 
thing  short  of  open  hostility,  to  prevent  its  success.  But 
the  task  of  the  historian  will  not  stop  here;  he  will  have  to 
record,  that  in  an  age  which  boasted  of  its  zeal  in  the  cause 
of  humanity  and  religion,  three  millions  of  Christians  were 
left  year  after  year,  at  the  mercy  of  the  whole  Ottoman  pow- 
er; and  that  while  the  nations  of  Europe  looked  on  the  un- 
equal struggle  unmoved,  thousands  of  their  brethren  were 
consigned  to  the  most  cruel  deaths,  while  nothing  but  the 
interposition  of  Providence  could  have  possibly  saved  the 
Greek  people  from  extermination. 

"As  if  it  had  not  been  enough,  during  this  period  of  trial 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  441 

and  of  suffering,  unexampled  in  history,  to  watch  the  pro- 
gress of  the  struggle  with  cold  and  callous  indifference,  and 
not  unfrequently  to  persecute  the  ill-fated  people  who  thus 
vsought  their  regeneration,  every  effort,  which  malignity 
could  invent  or  malice  dictate,  was  made  to  represent  them 
as  a  degenerate  race,  totally  unworthy  of  sympathy  or  free- 
dom. How  often  has  it  been  asserted,  that  the  struggle 
was  between  barbarians,  and  that  it  was  therefore  a  matter 
of  perfect  indifference  which  party  got  the  upper  hand. 
Would  it  be  possible  to  devise  a  more  bitter  satire  against 
Christianity  and  the  Christian  potentates,  than  the  virulent 
and  gratuitous  abuse  heaped  on  the  Greek  people,  by  writers 
who  either  sought  to  gratify  their  passions,  or  fancied  they 
were  meeting  the  wishes  of  a  patron  in  thus  vilifying  a  whole 
people.  Surely  a  moment's  reflection  must  have  convinced 
them,  that  to  have  left  the  Greek  people  so  long  at  the  mercy 
of  their  Mahometan  tyrants,  was  ,the  greatest  proof  they 
could  adduce  of  degeneracy  and  imbecility  on  the  part  o£ 
those  who  were  bound  by  every  tie  of  religion  and  duty  to 
■save  them ! 

"  Independently  of  those  causes  which  have  placed  the 
cabinets  of  Europe  in  such  open  enmity  to  Greece,  and  thus 
invited  falsehood  and  calumny  to  depreciate  claims  which 
they  were  determined  not  to  recognize,  the  Greeks  have 
found  virulent  detractors  in  two  classes,  whose  abuse  ought 
to  be  rather  considered  as  complimentary  to  their  character 
than  otherwise ;  since  it  has  arisen  from  that  grovelling  and 
sordid  spirit  of  trade,  which  cannot  brook  the  thought  of 
successful  competition,  conducted  by  superior  talent.  I  al- 
lude to  European  traders  who  have  formed  factories  at  Smyr- 
na, Constantinople,  and  other  parts  of  the  Mediterranean, 
and  to  the  whole  tribe  of  Jews. — And  I  am  justified  in  sta- 
ting, that  these  two  classes  have  gone  farther  in  their  calum- 
nies against  the  Greek  people,  than  even  their  task-masters 
the  Turks.  It  is  needless  to  say  more,  in  order  to  prove 
how  far  the  trading  spirit  can  vitiate  the  human  mind.  And 
yet,  after  all  that  has  been  said  to  depreciate  them,  it  is  a 
matter  of  incontrovertible  notoriety,  that  the  Greek  mer- 
chants who  have  settled  in  the  capitals  and  large  trading 
towns  of  the  continent,  are  remarkable  for  their  probity  and 
fair  dealing.  The  fact  of  tlieir  coming  in  contact  with  the 
Jews  and  factors  of  the  Levant,  in  the  intercourse  of  the 
latter  with  the  Mahometans,  is  of  itself,  more  than  sufficient 

38* 


442  HISTORY  OP  THE 

to  account  for  the  vindictive  spirit  with  which  they  are  pur- 
sued. How  can  it  therefore  be  matter  of  wonder,  that  while 
the  Jews  of  Constantinople,  Salonica,  and  Smyrna,  have 
seized  every  opportunity  o'f  co-operating  in  the  cruelties  of 
the  Turks,  the  Europeans  settled  in  these  places  have,  with- 
out any  exception  of  country,  been  the  carriers  and  most 
active  agents  of  the  Infidels  ever  since  the  war  commenced. 

"  Although  the  contest  has  been  marked  by  many  exces- 
ses, to  most  of  which  allusion  has  been  made  in  the  proper 
place,  yet  surely,  the  events  of  this  war  furnish  ample  proof 
that  the  Greeks  are  not  the  degenerate  people  which  their 
detractors  have  laboured  to  represent  them  !  Without  re- 
curring to  individual  acts  of  heroism  and  virtue,  of  which 
numerous  examples  might  be  cited,  their  constancy  and  re- 
signation under  unheard  of  privations  and  sufferings,  deserve 
the  highest  praise,  and  could  only  be  sustained  by  a  people 
far  above  the  ordinary  class. 

"  To  say  that  a  system  of  the  cruellest  slavery,  under 
rulers  the  most  vitiated  and  corrupt,  from  the  days  of  the 
lower  empire,  through  the  debauched  and  sanguinary  cata- 
logue of  the  Greek  Emperors,  down  to  the  worst  of  all  de- 
nominations of  that  of  the  Turks,  has  not  engendered  many 
very  formidable  vices,  would  be  to  assert  that  the  laws  of 
nature  and  experience  of  history  had  made  an  exception  in 
favour  of  the  Greeks,  and  excepted  them  from  effects  as  in- 
evitable as  they  are  irresistible.  What,  however,  would  the 
philanthropist  say,  and  how  ought  he  to  draw  his  conclusion  ? 
Surely  the  wonder  with  him  is,  not  so  much  that  the  Greeks 
have  contracted  some  vices,  as  that  they  have  any  thing  in 
the  shape  of  virtue  remaining ! 

"  But  after  all  these  unworthy  attempts  to  depreciate  and 
calumniate  a  people  who  have  been  so  long  the  sport  of  a 
cruel  tyranny,  what  will  the  impartial  and  liberal  minded  of 
Europe  say,  if,  on  any  future  occasion,  a  writer  should  prove 
by  argument  and  fact,  that  assuming  the  immense  superiority 
of  ancient  Greece  over  all  other  nations  to  be  a  matter  of 
course,  the  moral  and  physical  degradation  of  the  Greeks  is 
infinitely  less  than  that  of  any  other  people  of  Europe? 

"  Although  my  intercourse  with  this  people  did  not  date 
•from  my  late  visit  to  the  Morea,  I  am  far  from  thinking  my- 
self capable  of  doing  justice  to  a  subject  which  might  well 
occupy  the  attention  of  the  most  philosophic  observer,  as  it 
would  unquestionably  be  an  inquiry  of  the  deepest  interest, 
not  only  enabling  ns  to  estimate  the  manners  and  institutions 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  443 

of  ancient  times,  but  also  to  appreciate  their  effect  in  per- 
petuating the  moral  and  physical  attributes  of  a  people. 

"  Nor  is  it  my  intention  minutely  to  analyse  the  Greek 
character.  In  asserting  that  industry,  sobriety,  and  abstemi- 
ousness are  its  most  prominent  features,  surely  a  foundation 
is  laid  on  which  all  the  minor  virtues  may  be  raised.  To 
the  foregoing  traits,  which  are  proverbial  in  the  national 
character  of  the  Greeks,  may  be  added  their  exemplary  con- 
duct as  fathers,  husbands,  and  brothers  :  of  this,  the  present 
contest  has  afforded  such  proofs,  as  no  other  nation  ever  ex- 
hibited ;  and  such  indeed,  as  were  never  surpassed  in  the 
proudest  days  of  Grecian  or  Roman  history.  Circumscribed 
as  my  personal  observation  must  have  been  during  my  late 
visit,  I  was  frequently  astonished  at  the  readiness  with  which 
the  most  perfect  strangers  ministered  to  each  other's  neces- 
sities. But,  besides  the  numberless  proofs  of  generosity 
and  kindness  between  individuals,  the  conduct  of  thousands 
in  devoting  their  all  to  the  wants  of  the  state,  places  the 
Greek  character  in  a  still  more  exalted  point  of  view.  Many 
names  could  be  cited  of  persons,  who  had  realized  handsome 
fortunes  in  trade,  having  presented  the  whole  to  their  coun- 
try when  the  insurrection  broke  out,  merely  reserving  the 
bare  means  of  existence  for  themselves.  And  when  it  is 
considered  that  in  regard  to  worldly  advantages,  the  inhabit- 
ants of  the  naval  islands  were  sure  to  lose  by  the  contest, 
what  can  be  more  disinterested  or  praiseworthy,  than  the 
sacrifices  they  have  made  in  keeping  their  ships  at  sea  for 
three  successive  years,  without  having  as  yet  received  the 
smallest  remuneration  ?* 

*In  paying  this  tribute,  which  I  believe  to  be  fully  merited  by  the 
great  mass  of  the  Greek  people,  I  do  not  mean  to  deny  that  there  is 
much,  very  much  to  correct  in  the  national  character.  It  was  impossi- 
ble to  live  so  long  under  the  Turkish  yoke,  ana  be  so  completely  sub- 
jected to  the  caprice  of  their  savage  task-masters,  and  not  to  imbibe 
many  of  their  customs.  While  at  Tripolizza.  I  took  every  opportunity 
1  could  of  suggesting  that  the  most  strenuous  efforts  of  the  government 
and  leading  men,  should  be  directed  to  this  object.  The  reply  was  how- 
ever so  conclusive,  that  it  left  me  without  the  means  of  urging  any  far- 
ther objections.  u  We  lament  all  this,  aj  much  as  you  can,  and  are 
most  anxious  to  remove  every  thing  which  can  remipd  us  of  the  dread- 
ful state  from  which  we  have  emerged: — but  besides  the  fact  of  our 
having  no  present  means  of  adopting  European  customs,  the  whole  of 
our  attention  is  necessarily  absorbed  by  the  paramount  object  of  consoli- 
dating the  social  edifice."  I  found  an  able  and  eloquent  supporter  in 
Father  Thcodosius,  a  priest  of  considerable  learning,  who  never  entered 


444  HISTORY  OF  THE 

"  The  intellectual  qualities  of  the  Greeks  are  not  les9 
striking  and  conspicuous  than  those  which  I  have  mentioned, 
They  are  principally  displayed  in  their  aptitude  for  agricul- 
ture, commerce,  and  navigation,  and,  whenever  the  advanta- 
ges of  education  are  afforded,  in  acquiring  all  the  higher 
branches  of  knowledge.  The  peasantry  have  gone  farther 
in  the  art  of  civilization  than  any  other  people  of  Europe, 
considering  their  limited  means ;  and  whenever  they  happen 
to  be  employed  in  learning  the  imitative  arts,  their  progress 
seems  to  be  quite  intuitive.  It  cannot  be  too  often  repeated, 
as  illustrative  of  the  national  character  generally,  that  the 
Greek  peasant  and  soldier  will  undergo  fatigues  and  priva- 
tions, without  murmuring,  upon  such  scanty  means,  as  would 
exhaust  the  natives  of  any  other  country  in  Europe.* 


a  society,  in  which  he  found  his  countrymen  seated  cross-legged  and 
sipping  their  coffee  in  the  manner  of  the  Turks,  without  inveighing 
bitterly  against  so  barbarous  a  custom,  and  calling  on  his  countrymen 
to  recollect  that  they  had  sprung  from  the  great  masters  of  civilization, 
and  re-entered  the  great  European  family.  It  is  a  fact  worthy  of  re- 
mark, that  the  primates  are  more  prone  to  Turkish  customs  of  every 
kind,  than  any  other  class  of  Greeks. 

*  Such  is  the  tenacity  and  firmness  of  the  Greek  character,  that  there 
is  reason  to  believe  the  people  have  preserved  much  more  of  their  an- 
cient usages  and  manners  than  any  other  nation  in  the  world.  Many 
of  the  traits,  noticed  in  Barthelemy's  excellent  work,  are  hourly  witnes- 
sed by  travellers  in  the  present  day.  And  with  respect  to  the  physical 
conformation  of  the  Greeks,  it  has  been  preserved  to  a  surprising  degree 
of  exactness.  It  has  been  somewhere  observed  that  the  figure  and 
physiognomy  of  the  Greeks,  are  different  from  those  of  every  other 
people.  In  agreeing  with  this  assertion,  it  might  be  added,  that  nature 
seems  to  have  exhausted  all  her  power  in  the  human  figure,  as  it  is  to 
be  found  to  this  day,  among  all  classes  of  the  people.  iMo  wonder  that 
sculpture  should  have  made  so  great  a  progress,  and  attained  such  a 
degree  of  perfection,  when  the  models  were  abundant  and  beautiful. 
Those  who  have  compared  the  present  form  of  the  Greeks,  with  their 
master-pieces  in  sculpture,  cannot  deny  that  an  artist  of  the  present, 
dtiy  might  find  models  for  the  Apollo  Belvidere,  Meleager  and  Gladia- 
tor, in  almost  every  town  and  village  of  the  confederation.  Though, 
like  every  thing  else  which  gave  Greece  such  pre-eminence  over  the 
-ancient  world,  painting;  and  sculpture  be  now  lost,  it  is  only  necessary 
to  travel  through  the  Peloponnesus,  to  be  convinced  with  what  facility 
they  may  revive  in  a  country,  which  is  replete  with  the  most  sublime 
and  beautiful  scenes  of  nature  at  every  step. 

u  With  respect  *o  the  habits  of  the  lower  classes,  it  should  be  ob- 
served that,  as  in  ancient  times,  the  labours  of  the  field  are  indifferently 
partaken,  by  men  and  women.  The  lighter  portion,  such  as  reaping, 
weeding,  and  hoeing,  being  of  course  allotted  to  the  weaker  sex.  Un- 
provided with  manufactures,  the  resources  of  a  Greek  family,  whether 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  443 

"  Whenever  circumstances  admit  of  their  return,  Greece 
will  boast  a  very  brilliant  catalogue  of  men,  highly  distin- 


among  the  peasantry,  or  in  the  middling  walk  of  life,  up  f«  the  highest 
rank,  might  well  surprise  our  English  matrons.  In  the  lowest  class 
almost  every  cotta  e  is  furnished  with  its  loom,  oven,  and  mills,  while 
every  member  of  the  family  is  taught  the  use  of  the  distaff.  I  ought 
not  to  pass  by  this  class,  without  bearing  testimony  to  that  admirable 
constancy  with  which  they  have  borne  up  against  the  innumerable  evils 
of  their  situation,  preserving  all  the  pristine  virtues  of  hospitality,  and 
an  urbanity  of  manners  not  exceeded  by  any  otiier  people  of  Europe. 
If  they  are  superstitious,  the  fault  is  not  theirs,  but  that  of  teachers, 
who  have  in  Greece,  as  in  other  countries,  converted  religion  into  an 
instrument  of  worldly  profit  and  personal  ambition. 

Some  account  of  the  family,  with  which  I  resided  while  at  Tripolizza 
will  afford  a  fair  specimen  of  the  middling  class  of  society  in  Greece. 
It  consisted  of  the  proprietor  who  was  an  opulent  merchant  before  the 
contest  commenced,  and  is  still  engaged  in  trade;  his  wife  and  four 
children,  of  whom  three  were  daughters,  who  might,  in  other  days, 
have  served  as  models  to  Zeuxis  or  Praxiteles. — Each  of  the  latter  has 
h?r  regular  dutios  assigned  to  her.  either  in  the  kitchen,  at  the  loom, 
embroidering,  neodle-work,  or  the  washing  tub  !  It  is  easy  to  conceive 
how  an  English  mother  would  be  astonished  to  see  the  youngest  of 
these,  scarcely  yet  in  her  ninth  year,  a  perfect  sylph  in  form  and  agili- 
ty, occupied  in  all  the  business  of  house-keeping.  The  eldest,  who  was 
in  her  fourteenth  year,  had  been  betrothed  for  some  time,  and  has  pro- 
bably been  ere  now  led  to  the  hymeneal  altar.  Young  as  she  was  then, 
the  bridal  clothes  and  household  linen;  nearly  all  made  and  woven  by 
her  own  hands,  were  ready  ;  she  gave  me  specimens  of  her  weaving  irt 
silk,  that  would  not  disgrace  our  best  ar lizans  of  Spitalfields.  The  whole 
of  this  amiable  and  interesting  family,  whose  attentions  were  unceas- 
ing, vied  with  each  other  in  civilities  to  Luriottis,  who  also  resided  in 
the  same  house  as  myself. 

The  education  of  these  girls,  besides  a  thorough  knowledge  of  do- 
mestic concerns,  does  not  go  beyond  reading,  writing,  and  a  limited 
share  of  arithmetic:  and  I  could  perceive  from  their  natural  aptness,  as 
well  as  the  eagerness  with  which  they  sought  for  information  on  every 
point  connected  with  the  manners  and  usages  of  other  nations,  that 
they  were  capable  of  rapid  advancement  in  all  those  accomplishments 
which  give  our  women  the  superiority. 

What  the  venerable  and  virtuous  Bishop  of  Blois  calls  domesticity, 
and  has  made  the  subject  of  his  valuable  essay,  is  no  where  on  so  good 
a  footing  as  in  Greece.  The  practice  of  sending  their  children  out  to 
be  nursed,  is  scarcely  ever  resorted  to  by  Greek  mothers  ;  where  a 
weak  constitution,  or  other  causes,  renders  it  necessary  to  have  recourse 
to  a  nurse,  she  is  brought  into  the  house,  and  rarely  quits  it  till  death, 
or  ill  health,  compels  her  to  leave  it.  The  Greek  nurse,  becomes,  in. 
fact,  completely  identified  with  the  family,  and  what  is  more,  her  hus- 
band is  either  generally  employed  in  the  house,  or  at  all  events,  by  the 
master  of  the  family.  But  the  ties  between  the  master  and  servants 
do  not  stop  here.    The  children  of  the  nurse,  if  not  very  numerous,  ars 


446  HISTORY  OF  THE 

guished  in  all  the  walks  of  literature  and  science ;  and  it 
will  certainly  be  a  triumphant  day,  when  schools  and  col- 
leges begin  to  rear  their  heads  amidst  the  ignorance  and 
darkness  to  which  she  has  been  condemned  for  so  many 


"  With  respect  to  the  women  of  Greece ;  I  have  on  a  for- 
mer occasion  borne  testimony  to  their  excellent  qualities, 
and  I  will  challenge  any  other  nation,  to  furnish  a  more  en- 
gaging catalogue  of  domestic  virtues  than  is  to  be  found  in 
that  country  ;  nor  are  these  confined  to  a  particular  class  ; 
they  pervaded  the  whole  frame  of  society.  Although  it  is 
true  that  the  calumniators  of  the  Greeks  have  chiefly  con- 
fined their  strictures  to  those  who  come  in  contact  with  their 
mercantile  views,  it  is  yet  but  justice  to  repeat,  the  graces 
of  modesty,  gentleness  of  manner,  benevolence  and  resigna- 
tion under  the  severest  trials,  are  no  where  more  practised 
than  among  the  women  of  Greece. 

"  In  alluding  to  the  vices  of  the  Greek,  a  most  instruc- 
tive lesson  might  be  drawn  from  tracing  their  perfect  analogy 
to  the  system  of  government  under  which  they  have  groaned 
during  the  last  four  centuries.  When  the  wanton  cruelty  and 
habitual  extortion  of  their  Turkish  masters  are  considered, 
can  it  for  one  moment  be  a  matter  of  surprise,  if  the  Greeks 
are  suspicious,  vindictive,  jealous,  and  avaricious  ?  Was  not  the 

brought  up  in  the  house,  and  treated  with  almost  the  same  attention  as 
those  of  her  mistress. — The  servant  who  attended  us  at  Tripolizza  had 
been  twenty-one  years  in  the  family,  and  had  nursed  all  the  children, 
while  her  daughter  a  child  of  seven  years'  old,  was  on  a  perfect  equality 
with  the  rest. 

I  have  already  had  occasion  to  observe,  that  hundreds  of  Turkish 
children,  whose  parents  have  either  fled  or  perished  since  the  Revolu- 
tion, have  been  adopted  in  Greek  families  of  every  class.  The  gaiety 
and  cheerfulness  which  form  so  distinguished  a  feature  in  the  national 
character  of  Greece,  were  exemplified  in  the  amusements  of  this  fami- 
ly, where  the  song,  the  dance,  and  the  gambol  filled  up  almost  every 
moment  that  was  abstracted  from  the  more  solid  occupations  of  the 
domestic  circle.  I  regret  to  say  that  music  is  in  as  backward  9.  state 
in  Greece,  as  painting  and  sculpture. 

The  religious  duties  of  the  above  family  were  performed  in  the  house 
most  scrupulously,  twice  every  day  during  my  stay,  and  in  adding  that 
the  greatest  harmony  seemed  to  prevail,  it  is  equally  due  to  the  excel- 
lent Giorgio  Joannis  to  state,  that  in  the  whole  of  my  intercourse  with 
society,  I  never  met  a  family  possessing  more  apparent  goodness  of 
heart,  modesty,  and  propriety  of  conduct,  than  his  amiable  wife  and  fas- 
cinating daughters." 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  447 

whole  of  their  time  passed  in  devising  means  of  avoiding 
those  acts  of  violence  and  oppression,  which  were  invariably 
hatched  in  secret,  and  suddenly  inflicted.  Did  a  day  pass 
without  some  vexation,  calculated  to  awaken  vengeance; 
and  what  could  be  more  natural  than  to  contract  a  fondness 
for  that,  which  they  were  in  constant  fear  of  losing  through 
fraud  or  force  ? 

"  Candour  requires  it  to  be  acknowledged,  that  neither 
the  conduct  of  the  cabinets  towards  Greece,  since  her  resus- 
citation, nor  that  of  her  Christian  brethren  generally,  is  by 
any  means  calculated  to  render  them  less  suspicious ;  nor 
will  the  other  vices  with  which  they  are  charged,  be  ever 
removed,  until  institutions  and  a  system  of  general  education 
shall  have  obliterated  the  baleful  impressions  of  tyranny  and 
misrule. 

"  It  has  been  a  too  prevalent  custom  with  writers,  who 
have  written  in  favour  of  the  Greek  cause,  to  admit  the  de- 
generacy of  the  people,  and  argue  on  it,  as  if  all  that  had 
been  circulated  by  the  enemies  of  the  Greeks  were  perfectly 
true.  The  same  error  has  been  fallen  into,  with  regard  to 
the  Greek  church,  and  such  is  the  ignorance  on  the  subject 
in  England,  that  it  is  not  unusual  for  the  people  gravely  to 
ask  whether  the  Greeks  are  Christians  ?  I  have  endeavour- 
ed to  show  that  with  the  exception  of  their  cruelty  to  the 
Turks,  which  is  from  the  nature  of  things  ungovernable  and 
unconquerable,  there  is  as  much,  if  not  more  virtue  among 
•he  Greek  peasantry,  than  any  other  of  Europe.  It  is  pro- 
bable that  the  Greek  church  would  bear  a  comparison  with 
that  of  every  other  Christian  sect.  Like  all  others,  the 
heads  of  the  Greek  hierarchy  maintain  that  they  have  de- 
parted less  from  the  doctrines  and  rites  of  the  primitive 
cnurch,  than  any  other  class  of  Christians  whatever,  and  that 
the  superstitions  of  the  Greek  church  are  fewer.  That 
Christianity  has  suffered,  both  in  the  letter  and  practice,  in 
Greece,  as  well  as  other  places,  need  not  be  wondered  at, 
when  all  the  vicissitudes  to  which  it  has  been  exposed,  are 
taken  into  the  account.  It  is  greatly  to  the  credit  of  the. 
Greek  clergy,  that  with  the  exception  of  the  most  ignorant 
portion  of  the  caloyers,  or  itinerant  preachers,  they  are  sen- 
sible of  the  defects  which  time  has  produced  ;  and  that  they 
regard  the  political  regeneration  of  Greece,  as  the  certain 
prelude  to  a  reform  in  the  Greek  church.* 

* "  In  deducing  themselves  against  the  aspersions  which  are  con* 


448  HISTORY  OF  THE 

"  Upon  the  whole,  while  I  do  not  deny  that  many  of  the 
vices  inseparable  from  slavery,  may  be  laid  to  the  charge  of 
a  people,  which  has  not  only  been  exposed  to  the  most  de- 
grading domination  ever  experienced  by  any  nation,  but  has 
been  grossly  calumniated  by  those  co-religionists  who  had 
abandoned  them  to  their  fate ;  I  maintain  that  the  abuses  of 
united  government  and  religion  have  done  infinitely  less  to- 
wards debasing  the  Greek  character,  than  they  have  in  any 
country  in  Europe.* 


stantly  cast  on  their  superstition  and  form  of  worship,  the  Greeks  boast, 
and  justly  so,  that  the  absurd  dogma  of  purgatory  has  never  formed 
any  part  of  their  belief,  nor  has  their  ritual  been  disgraced  by  that  un- 
intelligible mixture  of  ethics  and  fanaticism  called  the  creed  of  Saint 
Athanasius,  which  continues  to  do  such  irreparable  injury  to  Pro- 
testantism. 

"  M.  de  Stourdza,  known  by  his  political  pamphlets  written  under  the 
auspices  of  the  Emperor  Alexander,  has  also  published  a  polemical  tract, 
in  which  he  vindicates  the  Greek  church,  and  endeavours  to  prove  that 
it  is  the  only  one  which  has  retained  the  letter  and  spirit  of  that  es- 
tablished by  Christ,  and  preached  by  his  disciples.  The  supremacy  of 
the  Pope,  and  mode  in  which  it  was  acquired,  are  ably  treated  by  the 
author. 

"  It  is  somewhat  ludicrous  to  hear  the  members  of  the  Greek  per- 
suasion called  schismatics  by  their  Catholic  rivals,  while  they  in  their 
turn  regard  Catholicism  as  a  complete  perversion  of  Christianity.  It  is 
worthy  of  remark  that  there  is  only  one  class  of  sectarians  in  the  Greek 
church :  this  forms  a  very  small  proportion  of  the  community,  and  is 
known  in  Greece  by  the  name  of  the  united:  it  merely  acknowledges 
the  papal  supremacy,  which  forms  the  only  difference  between  its  tenets 
and  those  of  the  Greek  church.  Among  the  projects  formed  at  Rome, 
since  the  insurrection  of  Greece  broke  out,  it  is  said  that  every  effort 
will  be  made  to  bring  the  schismatics  over  to  the  true  faith.  Whether 
it  arose  from  any  ulterior  views  of  this  sort,  or  the  characteristic  benevo- 
lence of  Pius  VII.  the  mild  and  humane  policy  adopted  by  that  Pontiff, 
towards  the  unfortunate  Greeks,  who  sought  a  refuge  at  Ancona,  during 
Ins  life  time,  forms  the  best  panegyric  of  the  late  Holy  Father.  Nor 
should  the  name  of  Monsignor  Benvenuti,  the  papal  delegate  at  Ancona, 
be  deprived  of  that  praise  which  is  so  justly  due  to  him,  for  the  readi- 
ness he  invariably  evinced,  in  carrying  the  wishes  of  his  master  into 
effect." 

*  It  is  truly  pleasing  to  be  enabled  to  give  the  opinion  formed  by  suck 
a  discriminating  writer,  as  Mr.  Gait,  in  contradiction  to  the  trite  calum- 
nies and  miserable  verbiage  of  Sir  William  Gell,  and  many  others, 
who  have  laboured  to  depreciate  the  Greek  character.  "  If  I  were 
galled  upon,"  says  Mr.  Gait,  in  his  letters  from  the  Levant,  "  to  give  a 
general  opinion  of  the  Greeks,  as  they  are  at  this  moment,  I  should 
find  myself  obliged  to  declare,  notwithstanding  my  partiality  for  my 
own  countrymen,  that  in  point  of  capacity,  they  are  the  first  people  I 
Have  had  an  opportunity  of  observing.    They  have  generally  raer%> 


GUEEK  REVOLUTION.  449 


CHAP.  XXVIII. 

Population  of  Greece  estimated. — Revenue  and  Resources. — 
Comparison  between  Monarchical  and  Federal  Government, 
as  applicable  to  Greece. — Foreign  Interference. — Internal 
Dissensions. — Consideration  of  the  idea  entertained  of  ac- 
commodation and  submission  to  the  Porte. — Results  to  be 
anticipated  from  the  establishment  of  a  powerful  Indepen- 
dent State  in  Greece. — Policy  of  Coiitineiital  Powers  and 
interest  of  England  in  such  establishment  considered. 

"  *  So  contradictory  are  the  accounts,  and  uncertain  the 
data  hitherto  supplied  with  regard  to  the  population  of  Greece, 
that  it  would  be  altogether  impossible  to  attempt  any  thing 
more  than  an  approximation  to  this  primary  source  of  national 
wealth  and  greatness.  If  an  estimate  was  difficult  before  the 
insurrection,  it  has  been  much  more  so  since,  owing  to  the 
fact  of  whole  communities  having  been  either  swept  away  by 

acuteness  and  talent  than  I  can  well  describe.  I  do  not  mean  informa- 
tion or  wisdom  :  but  only  this,  that  their  actions  are,  to  a  surprising 
degee  of  minuteness,  guided  by  judgment.  They  do  nothing  without 
having  reflected  on  the  consequences."  This  energetic  sketch  of  the 
Greeks  is  drawn  to  the  life.  But  I  cannot  deny  myself  the  pleasure  of 
following  it  up  with  a  few  lines  extracted  from  the  Scotsman,  a  paper 
which  has  been  highly  distinguished  for  the  strength  and  eloquence  of  its 
articles  on  the  Greek  cause.  After  inserting  the  above  remarks  of  Mr. 
Gait,  the  writer  observes,  "  Instead  of  raising  an  outcry  about  their 
degradation,  we  may  rather  wonder  that  the  national  genius  has  tri- 
umphed so  much  over  the  disadvantages  of  its  situation.  What  other 
people,  placed  under  the  barbarising  yoke  of  the  Turks,  has  retained 
or  acquired  the  tenth  part  of  their  activity,  intelligence  and  civiliza- 
tion ?  amidst  all  their  misfortunes,  they  have  never  forgotten  their 
country ;  and  humiliating  as  their  lot  has  been,  they  are  still  proud  of 
their  name  and  lineage.  Considering  the  Turks  as  intruders,  they 
have  never  renounced  the  hope  of  seeing  them  expelled,  nor  have  they 
relied  on  foreign  aid :  on  the  contrary,  sensible  that  knowledge  and 
union  are  the  sources  of  strength,  they  have  laboured  incessantly  to 
spread  the  means  of  information  ;  they  have  established  schools,  trans- 
lated French  and  English  works  into  Romaic,  and  by  drawing  the  atten- 
tion of  their  countrymen  to  their  ancient  history,  they  have  taught 
them  what  Greece  may  become  by  her  own  resources,  and  kindled  in 
them  an  emulation  of  the  spirit  of  their  ancestors.  While  we  speak  of 
their  protracted  slavery,  we  should  not  forget  its  cause.  Had  they 
yielded  up  their  faith  as  easily  as  the  clergy  of  England  did  in  the  reign 
•f  Queen  Elizabeth,  they  would  have  escaped  that  oppression  at  the 
*  Blaqtriere,  vol.  1.  p.  300. 

39 


450  HISTORY  OF  THE 

massacres,  or  forced  to  change  their  position,  and  seek  a  re- 
fuge in  foreign  countries.  The  number  of  Greeks  in  the 
Morea,  for  instance,  which  did  not  exceed  a  hundred  and 
lity  thousand  previous  to  the  war,  has  now  been  more  than 
doubled  by  the  arrivals  from  every  quarter  of  the  confedera- 
tion, notwithstanding  the  ravages  to  which  the  whole  of  Epi- 
rus,  Thessaly,  and  Macedonia,  has  been  subjected.  I  should, 
from  all  the  inquiries  I  have  been  enabled  to  make,  estimate 
the  number  of  Greeks  in  these  three  divisions  of  the  confede- 
ration at  a  million  of  souls.  Livadia,  Attica,  and  Negropont, 
are  said  by  well  informed  Greeks  to  contain  three  hundred 
thousand  souls,  thus  making  a  grand  total  for  continental 
Greece  of  one  million  six  hundred  thousand,  a  number  which 
I  feel  assured  Avill  be  found  under-rated  whenever  the  cen- 
sus contemplated  by  the  Provisional  Government  shall  be 
taken. 

With  respect  to  the  Islands  of  the  Archipelago,  those  gems 
of  the  Mediterranean,  so  sanctified  by  every  glorious  and  de- 
lightful recollection,  so  richly  endowed  with  all  that  consti- 
tutes strength  and  beauty,  there  is  less  difficulty  in  stating 
the  number  of  their  inhabitants,  since  no  material  change  has 
been  effected  in  their  numbers  by  the  war.  Candia  alone, 
unquestionably  the  most  prolific  and  beautiful  spot  on  earth 
for  its  extent,  contains  at  least  two  hundred  thousand  Greeks. 
The  population  of  the  other  Islands,  including  Cyprus, 
Rhodes  and  Mytilene,  three  points  of  infinite  wealth  and  im- 
portance, may  be  estimated  at  four  hundred  thousand  souls. 
If  to  the  foregoing  calculation  be  added  above  a  million  and 
a  half  scattered  about  in  the  principalities,  Asia  Minor, 
Thrace,  Bulgaria,  and  the  different  countries  of  Europe,  the 


hands  of  the  Turks,  and  that  abuse  at  the  hands  of  some  of  their  bro- 
ther Christians,  which  their  constancy  has  entailed  on  them. 

"  The  following  anecdote,  illustrative  of  the  veneration  in  which  the 
Greeks  held  the  immortal  bard  of  Scio,  is  extracted  from  an  account 
of  the  expedition  sent  into  the  Mediterranean  in  1789,  under  Orloff. 

"  Captain  Plagent,  who  commanded  one  of  the  ships  in  this  expedi- 
tion, going  on  shore  at  Naxos,  took  an  old  school  edition  of  the  Iliad, 
which  he  happened  to  have  on  board,  and  showed  it  to  some  of  the  na- 
tives, who  begged  it  of  him  with  the  most  earnest  importunity.  The 
Captain  complied  with  their  wishes  ;  and  on  going  on  shore  again  the 
next  day, he  saw  an  old  man  with  his  back  to  a  wall  reading  the  speech- 
es of  the  ancient  Greek  heroes  with  all  the  fury  of  declamation,  to  an 
audience  of  fourteen  or  fifteen  persons!"! 

t  Blaquiere,  vol.  1 .  p.  283— 29S. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  451 

whole  number  of  Greeks  may,  for  the  present  at  least,  be 
given  at  four  millions.  Of  the  Greeks  thus  dispersed,  it  is 
well  known  that  numbers  are  continually  flocking  to  the 
standard  of  independence,  and  that  such  is  the  anxiety  of 
these  people  to  re-establish  themselves,  that  there  is  every 
probability  of  those  who  are  now  retained  in  distant  points, 
gaining  the  confederation  as  soon  as  the  situation  of  affairs 
and  their  circumstances  will  admit.  Indeed  it  is  not  likely 
that  any  Greek  would  remain  under  the  sway  of  Turkey  or 
Russia,  while  freedom  and  regeneration  invited  their  return 
to  the  most  desirable  region  and  finest  climate  in  the  world. 
Should  the  people  of  Greece  secure  the  advantages  they 
have  gained,  it  is  surely  no  exaggeration  to  say,  that,  with  a 
population  at  once  so  ingenious  and  industrious,  a  climate 
unequalled,  and  a  soil  the  most  productive  that  could  be 
named,  their  prospect  of  wealth  and  prosperity  is  almost 
boundless.  In  whatever  direction  a  traveller  casts  his  eyes 
over  Greece,  he  may  truly  exclaim,  that  it  is  a  land  flowing 
with  milk  and  honey ;  unlike  the  staples  of  other  countries, 
those  of  Greece  are  such  as  can  never  be  depreciated. 
Cambrics,  sugar,  coffee,  cochineal,  and  indigo,  may  be  either 
dispensed  with,  or  be  so  plentiful  as  to  glut  the  market :  not 
so  with  the  corn,  wine,  and  oil ;  the  silks  and  wools  of 
Greece  :  these  will  find  a  sure  sale  while  civilization  and  its 
concomitants,  trade  and  population,  continue  to  advance.* 
However  invidious  it  may  be  thought  to  institute  a  compari- 


*  Nothing  but  the  immense  resources  of  Greece,  could  have  enabled 
her  to  carry  on  a  contest  by  sea  and  land  against  the  whole  power  of  the 
Porte,  supported,  as  it  has  been,  by  the  agents  of  foreign  powers,  and 
those  sordid  traders  of  Smyrna,  Constantinople,  and  Zante,  who  have 
been  the  suppliers  and  carriers  to  the  infidels  ever  since  the  commence- 
ment of  the  strag<_rl''-  ;  and,  when  it  is  considered  that  the  Greeks  have 
maintained  the  war  lor  nearly  three  years,  without  contracting  a  single 
debt  abroad,  or  having  recourse  to  a  foreign  loan,  our  wonder  must  be 
still  greater. 

If  any  tiling  were  wanting  to  prove  the  total  ignorance  in  which  the 
public  continues  with  regard  to  the  state  of  Greece  <renerally,  it  would 
be  found  in  the  depreciation  experienced  by  the  small  sum  of  800,000/. 
recently  negotiated  on  our  own  stock  exchange  by  my  excellent  friends 
Messrs.  Orlando  and  Luriottis ;  a  sum  which  the  smallest  island  in  the 
Archipelago  would  be  justified  in  borrowing,  and  fully  able  to  repay. 

It  is  confidently  asserted  that  the  depreciation  in  the  Greek  loan  has 
been  caused  by  the  insinuations  of  a  leading  Jew  capitalist ;  if  so,  no- 
thing can  be  so  unworthily  or  illiberal.  Surely  that  person  must  know 
that  of  all  the  countries  or  governments  who  have  borrowed  money  in 
London  within  the  last  ten  years,  not  excepting  those  for  whom  he  has 


452  HISTORY  OF  THE 

son  between  the  Greeks  and  those  nations  of  the  southern 
hemisphere,  who  have  shaken  off  a  yoke  scarcely  less  galling 
than  that  of  the  infidels,  the  immense  superiority  of  the  form- 
er, in  almost  every  quality  and  attribute  required  by  those 
who  would  enter  the  arduous  career  of  national  indepen- 
dence, must  strike  the  most  superficial  observer.  In  a  moral 
point  of  view,  tyranny,  though  it  may  have  trod  upon  the 
people  of  Greece,  and  made  them  suffer  every  species  of  vio- 
lence, it  neither  broke  their  spirit,  nor  made  them  forget 
their  glorious  ancestry ;  while  it  is  but  an  act  of  justice  to 
admit,  that  Christianity,  however  degenerate  in  their  hands, 
did  not  become  the  source  of  incalculable  crime  or  the  uni- 
versal sapper  of  morality  and  virtue.  Whether  I  look  to 
the  hardy  population  of  Greece,  fitted  alike  for  war  or  agri- 
culture ;  to  her  marine  of  several  thousand  ships,  and  above 
twenty  thousand  seamen,  the  most  expert  in  Europe,  or  to 
her  bays  and  harbours,  more  numerous  and  magnificent  than 
any  other  country  on  earth,  I  should  have  no  hesitation 
whatever  in  estimating  the  physical  strength  of  regenerated 
Greece  to  be  fully  equal  to  that  of  the  whole  South  Ameri- 
can continent. 

It  was  my  intention  to  have  entered  into  a  minute  exami- 
nation of  the  policy  adopted  by  the  members  of  the  Holy 
Alliance  and  our  own  ministers,  towards  Greece,  since  the 
commencement  of  her  eventful  struggle ;  but  as  this  would 
lead  into  details  for  which  there  is  neither  time  nor  space 
left  me  at  present,  it  must,  like  many  other  points,  be  re- 
served for  future  discussion. 

While  the  provisional  government  and  people  of  Greece 

himself  been  the  agent  and  contractor,  Greece  possesses  the  surest  and 
most  ample  means  of  repayment. 

Is  it  not  enough,  I  would  ask,  that  the  Jews  should  have  borne  so  con- 
spicuous a  part  in  the  massacres  of  Constantinople,  Smyrna,  and  Sa- 
lonica,  without  attempting  to  injure  the  fame  and  blast  the  hopes  of  the 
Greek  people  in  England?  And  what  construction  can  be  put  on  such 
conduct,  when  it  is  asserted  that  the  only  hope  the  Jews  have  of  being 
ever  re-established  on  the  soil  of  their  ancestors,  depends  on  the  con- 
solidation of  a  power  in  Greece  ?  Paradoxical  as  the  project  of  restor- 
ing the  race  of  Abraham  and  Isaac  may  appear,  it  has  been  entertained, 
and  propositions  on  the  subject  reached  the  provisional  government 
during  my  visit  to  the  Morea ;  not  with  any  view  of  their  being  carried 
into  immediate  erfect,  for  that  was  impossible,  but  as  a  matter  for  future 
consideration.  It  is  scarcely  necessary  to  add,  that  the  jealousy  and 
hatred  which  has  long  prevailed  between  the  two  sects,  and  which  the 
atrocious  conduct  of  the  Jewish  rabble  of  the  capital,  Macedon,  and 
Asia  Minor,  has  tended  to  increase  tenfold,  render  an  early  approxirna 
lion  quite  impracticable. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  453 

are  full  of  gratitude  towards  those  generous  spirits  of  Europe* 
who  have  come  forward  to  soothe  and  assist  them  in  this 
great  trial  of  suffering  and  of  sorrow,  they  know  how  to  dis- 
criminate between  the  cabinets,  allotting  to  each  that  share 
of  obloquy  which  has  fixe*]  an  indelible  stain  on  statesmen, 
who  could  have  so  far  misconceived  the  interests  of  Europe 
and  of  mankind,  as  to  endeavour  to  thwart  the  success  of  a 
design,  in  which  the  interposition  of  the  Divinity  is,  perhaps, 
more  self-evident  than  in  any  other  that  could  be  cited. 
Looking  too  at  the  political  system  adopted  since  the  fall  of 
Napoleon,  and  the  monstrous  doctrines  not  only  promulga- 
ted, but  put  into  practice,  from  the  partitions  and  spoliations 
decreed  at  Vienna  in  1818,  up  to  the  invasion  of  Naples  and 
subjugation  of  Spain  in  the  present  year,  well  may  the 
Greeks  look  forward  with  mingled  distrust  and  apprehen- 
sion, lest,  when  they  shall  have  fought  the  battle  and  gained 
the  victory,  others  may  come  in  and  enjoy  the  triumph. 

Although  I  cannot  believe  in  the  possibility  of  such  art 
event,  it  would  surely  be  a  more  scandalous  violation  of  jus- 
tice and  natural  right,  than  has  disgraced  the  annals  of  Eu- 
rope  since  the  partition  of  Poland,  were  any  of  the  great 
powers,  either  singly  or  together,  to  come  forward  in  the  pre- 
sent stage  of  the  Greek  contest,  and  dictate  a  form  of  govern- 
ment to  the  people  of  Greece  ;  much  less  to  name  a  person 
to  preside  over  their  destinies.  In  allusion  to  those  vague 
reports  which  are  seldom  without  some  foundation,  either  in 
the  never  ceasing  projects  of  those  who  make  a  trade  of  hu- 
man liberty,  or  among  the  statesmen  who  move  the  springs 
of  the  Holy  Alliance,  it  is,  at  least,  due  to  the  Greeks,  that 
careful  inquiry  should  be  made  as  to  the  genius  and  habits  of 
the  people,  as  well  as  their  general  interests  and  wishes,  be- 
fore any  attempt  be  made  to  introduce  the  monarchical  sys- 
tem among  them.  So  far  as  my  own  observation  and  inquiry 
have  extended,  I  should  not  hesitate  to  say,  that  any  depart- 
ure from  the  federative  system  of  Switzerland  will  be  attend- 
ed with  positive  injury  to  Greece,  and  will  totally  neutralize 
all  the  beneficial  effects  to  be  anticipated  from  her  regenera- 
tion. Though  it  may  be  safely  asserted  that  the  Greek  peo- 
ple possess  less  of  the  revolutionary  spirit,  attributed  to  them 
by  the  Emperor  Alexander  and  the  Congress  of  Verona,  than 
any  other  nation  of  Europe,  it  is  equally  true  that  there  are 
no  elements  in  Greece  for  establishing  a  monarchy.  To  say 
nothing  of  the  endless  expense  and  complicated  machinery 
of  such  a  government,  where  could  a  prince  sent  into  Greete 

39* 


454  HISTORY  OF  THE 

by  the  Holy  Alliance,  find  an  aristocracy  ?  With  the  excep- 
tion of  the  primates,  whose  character  has  been  drawn  in  a 
former  chapter,  the  most  perfect  equality  reigns  throughout 
all  classes,  though  this  never  degenerates  into  anarchy  or  a 
due  want  of  respect.  In  addition  to  what  has  been  said  of 
the  primates,  it  should  be  here  observed,  that  from  the  former 
connection  with  the  Turks,  and  their  ready  acquiescence  in 
carrying  the  system  of  tyranny  and  extortion  of  the  infidels 
into  effect,  they  are,  with  a  few  honourable  exceptions,  re- 
garded as  the  greatest  obstacles  to  the  happiness  of  Greece 
and  the  consolidation  of  the  government.  Supposing,  for  a 
moment,  that  the  great  powers  contemplate  placing  a  sove- 
reign over  the  Greek  people,  would  it  be  wise  or  politic  to 
confer  titles  and  distribute  ribbons  to  some  of  the  worst  men 
and  most  unpopular  individuals  in  the  country  ?  In  rejecting 
their  services,  on  the  other  hand,  he  would  create  such  a 
number  of  vindictive  and  powerful  enemies,  as  might  neutral- 
ize all  his  efforts  to  do  good,  if  it  did  not  endanger  his  power. 
For  these  men,  in  addition  to  their  being  deeply  versed  in 
the  low  intrigue  and  artful  chicane,  which  so  frequently  find 
their  way  into  courts,  and  compose  all  the  political  know- 
ledge of  the  men  to  whom  I  allude,  have  contrived  to  possess 
themselves  of  nearly  all  the  wealth  of  the  nation.  The  con- 
dition of  a  prince  who  should  come  to  Greece,  followed  by  a 
train  of  greedy  and  rapacious  dependants,  such  as  he  might 
so  easily  select  in  any  part  of  civilized  Europe,  maybe  readily 
conceived,  and  requires  no  comment. 

While  the  disjointed  and  isolated  nature  of  the  Greek 
provinces,  must  add  greatly  to  the  difficulties  of  establishing 
a  monarchy,  by  destroying  that  principle  of  unity  so  essential 
to  such  a  form  of  government,  this  circumstance  is  highly 
favourable  to  the  federate  system,  which  can  be  maintained 
at  a  comparatively  trifling  expense,  while  it  gives  that  digni- 
ty to  each  section  of  the  confederation,  without  which,  I 
really  believe  the  Greeks  would  never  appreciate  the  bless- 
ings of  independence  and  freedom.  In  closing  the  few  re- 
marks which  I  am  now  enabled  to  offer  on  the  above  impor- 
tant subject,  it  may  be  proper  to  add,  that  I  am  convinced  I 
have  expressed  the  universal  sense  of  the  Greek  people,  in 
recommending  a  federative  rather  than  a  monarchical  form 
of  government. 

Among  other  objections  urged  against  the  Greeks  being 
alile  to  constitute  themselves  into  a  nation,  it  has  been  said 
thai  there  is  not  a  sufficient  share  of  talent  amongst  their 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  455 

public  men  to  fill  the  offices,  or  wield  the  energies  of  a  regu- 
lar government;  that  they  are  distracted  among  themselves; 
that  nothing  but  foreign  interference  will  enable  them  to  ob- 
tain the  blessings  of  regular  government.  With  respect  to 
the  first  objection,  I  admit  that  it  would  be  exceedingly  diffi- 
cult, if  not  impossible,  to  find  the  train  of  placemen  included 
within  the  catalogue  of  ministers,  secretaries,  chamberlains, 
clerks,  and  that  interminable  list  of  employes  required  in  a 
monarchy;  but  let  the  federative  system,  the  best  and  cheap- 
est of  all  governments,  be  established,  and  Greece  will  be 
found  to  possess  a  far  greater  portion  of  really  learned  and 
well  educated  men,  than  the  whole  of  the  South  American 
republics  put  together.* 

The  dissensions  of  Greece  have  been  a  fertile  source  of 
delight  to  the  enemies  of  the  cause  without,  as,  it  must  be 
confessed,  they  are  one  of  its  most  corroding  gangrenes  with- 
in. But  setting  aside  those  innumerable  causes  of  disunion 
arising  from  the  late  system,  which  was  a  refinement  on  the 
maxim  of  divide  el  impera,  so  well  known  in  other  countries 
of  Europe,  a  system  which  laboured  to  place  every  family  in 
hostility  with  each  other,  and  would  not  allow  harmony  to  ex- 
ist, is  it  for  the  politicians  of  Europe,  where  faction  and  par- 
ty reign  triumphant,  to  reproach  a  people  with  their  divi- 
sions, who  have  thrown  off  a  yoke  like  that  of  Turkey,  and 
been  left  to  struggle  for  existence  during  three  years,  with- 
out aid  from  any  quarter  ?  While  those  dissensions  cannot 
be  too  deeply  implored,  it  is  of  importance  to  state,  that  they 


*  Although  general  politics  have  occupied  a  greater  share  of  atten- 
tion in  Greece  than  the  mere  abstract  branches  of  legislation,  still  have 
many  of  the  Greek  students  profited  largely  by  the  most  popular  and 
celebrated  writers  on  public  law  and  civil  rights.  The  favourite  au- 
thors are  Vattel,  Montesquieu.  Felangieri,  and  Bentham,  and  their 
works  are  to  be  found  in  several  collections.  Like  the  lamented  Lord 
Erskine,  whose  devotion  in  the  cause  of  Greece  shed  such  a  bright 
halo  round  the  last  days  of  that  great  and  good  man,  Mr.  Bentham 
has  given  up  all  the  energies  of  his  powerful  mind  to  the  subject;  and 
though  Greece  may  not  be  enabled  to  profit,  by  his  sublime  and  bene- 
volent labours  so  soon  as  the  friends  of  humanity  could  wish,  she  alrea- 
dy appreciates  their  value,  with  a  degree  of  gratitude  and  zeal  that 
does  her  public  men  and  citizens  the  very  highest  honour. 

Here  1  would  have  most  willingly  stopped  to  give  some  account  of 
those  men  in  Greece  whose  talents  and  virtues  deserve  to  be  better 
known  in  Europe  ;  but  want  of  time  obliges  me  to  defer  the  pleasure  L 
should  have  derived  from  the  performance  of  so  pleasing  a  duty,  till  a 
fulare  day,  which  is  not,  1  trust,  far  distant. 


456  HISTORY  OF  THE 

are  confined  to  a  very  limited  number  of  individuals,  while 
the  greatest  harmony  of  thought  and  action  has  invariably 
prevailed  between  the  people  and  their  Representatives. 
This  has  been  exemplified  in  so  many  instances,  that  it  is  a  just 
theme  of  surprise  and  admiration  with  those  who  have  watch- 
ed the  progress  of  the  struggle  on  the  spot.* 

The  extreme  poverty  of  the  government,  and  wealth  of 


*  Tt  is  a  most  remarkable  fact,  than  in  all  disputes  which  have  arisen 
between  the  leaders  in  Greece,  the  people  have  invariably  maintained 
the  strictest  neutrality,  never  taking  any  share  or  mixing  themselves  up 
with  either  party.  It  would,  in  truth,  be  impossible  to  witness  the 
celebrated,  but  not  always  infallible  maxim,  of  vox  j>opuli,vox  Dei,  more 
exactly  realized  than  in  the  undeviating  line  of  conduct  observed  by  a 
people  who  had  been  so  long  erased  from  the  list  of  nations. 

As  connected  in  this  subject,  the  circumstance  detailed  in  my  corres- 
pondence from  Tripolizza  is  conclusive,  and  deserves  to  be  repeated 
here.  Colocotroni,  whose  ridiculous  ambition  and  want  of  judgment, 
aided  by  the  intrigues  of  a  wretched  adventurer  called  Nigris,  who  ob- 
tained the  place  of  secretary  of  state  in  1822,  had  succeeded  in  forming 
a  small  party  against  the  executive  in  the  early  part  of  June,  retired  to 
a  neighbouring  village  with  the  soldiers  whom  he  had  in  his  immediate 
pay.  A  string  of  conditions  was  thence  sent  to  Government,  setting 
forth  the  only  terms  upon  which  the  refractory  chief  and  his  compa- 
nions would  continue  to  acknowledge  its  authority.  At  this  criti- 
cal juncture,  when,  as  in  other  cases,  the  executive  really  possess- 
ed no  means  of  making  itself  respected,  it  was  apprehended  by  many 
of  the  Greeks  themselves  that  a  counter  revolution  might  be  the  con- 
sequence of  Colocotroni's  folly.  But  what  was  The  fact  ?  The  execu- 
tive replied,  that  it  was  willing  to  submit  all  matters  at  issue  to  the 
representatives  of  the  people  assembled  in  the  legislative  body,  who 
Were  alone  competent  to  decide  between  the  parties.  Not  satisfied 
with  this  answer,  the  dissentients  sent  emissaries  in  various  directions 
to  apprise  the  local  authorities  that  the  functions  of  the  executive 
were  suspended  ;  and  calling  upon  them  to  wait  until  a  new  set  of 
members  should  assume  the  reins  of  government.  Every  one  of 
these,  without  a  single  exception,  was  not  only  treated  with  the  great- 
est contempt,  but  in  some  places  narrowly  escaped  being  stoned  to 
death  by  the  populace. — As  to  the  leader  of  this  cabal,  he  was,  in  less 
than  three  days  after  withdrawing  from  the  seat  of  Government,  left 
without  a  single  attendant,  and  quite  abandoned,  when  a  deputation 
of  citizens,  who  were  anxious  to  make  up  the  breach,  went  forth  and 
brought  him  back,  after  which  he  made  his  submission  before  the  ex- 
ecutive, and  entreated  they  would  employ  him  wherever  they  thought 
proper.  But  the  most  interesting  part  of  the  story  remains  to  be 
told  ;  happening  to  attend  the  deliberation  of  the  legislative  body  on 
(he  following  morning,  I  found  the  whole  of  the  court-yard,  up  to  the 
very  entrance  of  the  hall,  filled  witli  peasants,  and  from  the  hundred 
voices  which  were  raised  on  every  side,  I  concluded  that  some  new  tu- 
mult had  arisen :  what  was  my  surprise,  on  approaching  Orlando,  the 
President^  to  hear,  that  the  persons,  occapying  the  court-yard  aiid 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  457 

those  who  are  so  senseless  as  to  imagine  that  they  can  have 
any  interests  separate  from  their  rulers,  will  at  once  account 
for  the  dissensions  which  have  unhappily  taken  place.  Nor 
can  it  be  denied  that,  considering  the  ignorance  and  want  of 
principle  betrayed  by  those  captains  and  primates  of  the  Mo- 
rea,  who  have  been  the  sole  promoters  of  discord,  they  may 
still  continue  to  retard  the  great  work  of  social  and  political 
organization ;  but  it  will  be  a  satisfaction  to  the  friends  of 
Greece  to  know  that  these  men  are  not  only  very  few  in  num- 
ber, and  held  in  just  abhorrence  by  the  people,  but  so  close- 
ly watched,  that  the  time  is  not  far  distant  when  they  will  be 
called  upon  to  render  a  terrible  account  for  their  misdeeds 
and  perfidy. 

Had  it  not  been  for  the  new  aspect  assumed  by  the  affairs 
of  Greece,  and  those  daily  increasing  successes  which  leave 
the  conquest  of  their  independence  beyond  any  farther 
doubt,  I  should  have  felt  myself  called  upon  to  offer  a  few 
remarks  on  a  suggestion  that  was  put  forth  at  an  earlier  pe- 
riod of  the  contest,  but  which  is  now  happily  exploded.  I 
allude  to  the  possibility  of  an  accommodation  between  the 
Greeks  and  their  late  tyrants.  Monstrous  as  this  thought 
now  appears,  I  am  sure  it  was  brought  forward  with  the  best 
intentions,  and  in  the  hope  that  a  still  greater  catastrophe 
might  be  thereby  avoided.  Had  not  the  Greeks  settled  this 
point,  both  by  their  conduct  and  in  their  public  declarations, 
oft  repeated,  I  should  have  most  certainly  raised  my  feeble 
voice  against  an  act  that  would  have  covered  the  whole  of 
civilized  Europe  with  irretrievable  dishonour  and  obloquy. 
It  would  indeed  have  been  an  unexampled  perversion  of  jus- 
tice and  virtue,  if,  after  the  patriots  had  gained  their  virtual 
independence  by  the  sacrifice  of  a  hundred  thousand  of  their 
countrymen,  a  third  party,  and  that  composed  of  Christians, 
had  come  forward  and  said,  "  return  to  the  yoke,  and  we 
will  take  care  that  you  shall  be  treated  better  in  future.', 
As  well  might  the  lion  attempt  to  guarantee  the  lamb  from 
the  jaws  of  the  tiger,  as  all  the  powers  of  Europe  combined 
prevail  on  the  Mahometans  to  change  their  nature,  and 
abide  any  compact  which  they  had  previously  determined  to 
violate  in  all  its  parts.* 

stair-case,  were  inhabitants  of  the  adjacent  villages,  who  had  come  to 
complain  of  the   requisitions  made   by  Colocotroni  and  his  friends, 
against  the  whole  of  whom  they  loudly  invoked  all  the  vengeance  of 
the  laws ! 
*  In  order  to  prevent  misconception*  I  am  bound  to  request  that  fh«* 


458  HISTORY  OF  THE 

In  contemplating  the  probable  future  destinies  of  Greece, 
that  is  to  say,  should  she  be  permitted  to  march  onwards  to- 
wards the  goal  of  freedom  and  civilization  undisturbed,  a  vast 
and  highly  interesting  prospect  opens  to  view :  this  is  indeed 
so  extehsive  and  interwoven  with  all  the  great  interests  of  so- 
ciety, that  a  man  who  indulged  in  a  tenth  part  of  the  specu- 
lations to  which  a  consideration  of  the  subject  gives  rise, 
might  well  be  taken  for  a  visionary,  even  at  a  time  when  the 
most  wild  and  improbable  schemes  are  not  without  their  ad- 
mirers and  advocates. 

Confining  myself  to  the  obvious  and  inevitable  results  of 
a  Greek  empire,  founded  on  the  basis  of  rational  freedom  and 
social  order,  it  may  surely  be  hailed  as  the  natural  prelude 
to  spreading  the  seeds  of  knowledge  and  civilization  through- 
out the  fairest  portions  of  the  earth,  and  which,  though  so 
near  Europe,  have  not  advanced  a  single  step  in  either,  ever 
since  the  establishment  of  Mahometanism ;  a  religion  fra- 
med as  if  had  been  intended  to  brutalize  the  human  species, 
and  deprive  man  of  all  that  distinguishes  him  from  the  most 
abject  of  created  beings.  With  respect  to  the  effects  of 
the  Greek  revolution  in  promptly  extending  the  lights  of 
civilization  to  Asia  and  Africa,  I  feel  so  confident  on  the 
subject,  that  I  do  not  hesitate  to  prophecy  that  a  very  short 
period  must  elapse  before  it  seems  self  evident  to  the  most 
short-sighted  politician,  while  those  who  are  watching  the 
progress  of  events  in  the  Mediterranean,  already  perceive 
the  benign  effects  of  the  Greek  struggle.  Is  it  for  a  mo- 
ment to  be  imagined,  that  the  successive  defeats  of  those  ill- 
fated  hordes  whom  the  Porte  has  sacrificed  year  after  year 
in  this  war,  have  not  been  attributable  as  much  to  a  con- 
sciousness that  they  were  contending  against  justice  and 
virtue,  as  to  their  natural  incapacity  and  cowardice  ? — Though 
it  may  be  impossible  to  give  these  wretched  instruments  of 
tyranny  and  brute  force  credit  for  reflection  or  foresight, 
yet  are  there  good  grounds  for  believing,  that  even  the  Turk- 


above  observation  may  not  be  construed  into  any  disrespect  for  the 
opinions  of  those  who  once  thought  that  terms  could  be  made  between 
the  Greeks  and  their  tyrants ;  Mr.  C.  B.  Sheridan  was  one  of  those 
who  alluded  to  the  above  plan  in  his  able  and  elegant  pamphlet,  but 
has  not  hesitated  to  adopt  those  modifications  rendered  expedient  by 
subsequent  events.  I  may  be  here  permitted  to  congratulate  the 
country  on  possessing  a  young  man  who  seems  to  have  inherited  all 
those  qualities  of  the  head  and  heart  which  have  conferred  immortality 
on  his.  late  father. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  459 

ish  soldiery  has  began  to  think.  There  has  most  assuredly 
been  ample  cause  for  this  desideratum,  and  should  all  I  have 
heard  on  the  subject  be  true,  Europe  will  not  have  long  to 
await  the  consequence.  Hopeless  as  the  case  may  be,  who 
knows  but  that  the  miracle  of  witnessing  the  sanguinary  and 
destructive  doctrines  of  Mahomet  melt  away  before  the  light 
of  truth  and  reason,  will  yet  be  added  to  that  of  the  regene^ 
ration  of  Greece ;  and  surely  the  most  distant  probability 
of  such  a  triumph — a  triumph  to  which  all  other  triumphs 
would  be  insignificant,  ought  to  be  more  than  sufficient  to 
open  the  eyes  of  the  European  monarchs,  stimulating  them 
to  go  hand  in  hand  in  promoting,  instead  of  thwarting  that 
which  could  only  emanate  from  a  great  and  omnipotent  God, 
who,  whatever  sophists  may  say,  or  philosophers  dream,  is 
no/  indifferent  to  the  happiness  of  his  creatures  ! 

The  minor  interests  of  the  three  great  Powers  most  deep- 
ly interested  in  the  result  of  the  Greek  struggle,  though  tri- 
fling compared  with  the  foregoing  considerations,  are  still 
highly  important,  and  deserve  to  be  treated  with  great  deli- 
cacy, and  judgment,  to  prevent  a  collision,  not  less  fatal  to 
the  interests  of  humanity  than  subversive  of  the  peace  of  Eu- 
rope. As  to  the  Porte,  the  person  who  would  say  that  its 
power  is  anything  more  than  nominal,  might  well  be  accused 
of  something  beyond  a  wish  to  deceive.  It  is  equally  certain, 
that  after  having  been  tolerated  for  three  centuries  by  the 
mistaken  policy  or  imbecility  of  its  neighbours,  it  is  now  so- 
reduced  as  to  render  the  final  crumbling  of  the  crazy  and  un- 
natural edifice  neither  remote  nor  problematical.  The  great 
question  which  arises,  and  it  is  a  most  difficult  one,  wrho  is 
to  occupy  the  ground  ?  Aware  of  the  inconveniences  which 
would  necessarily  attend  too  great  an  extension  of  their  fron- 
tier line,  the  provisional  government,  as  well  as  the  best  poli- 
ticians in  Greece,  have  decided  that  the  Axius  or  Vandar, 
which  separates  Thessaly  from  Macedon,  is  their  best  and. 
safest  line  of  demarcation  in  the  north,  while  they  cannot 
leave  those  Islands  of  the  Archipelago  in  which  the  Greek 
population  predominates,  without  a  dereliction  of  religion 
and  duty.  Should  this  line  be  conceded,  as  there  is  no  doubt 
of  its  ultimate  conquest,  an  immense  and  fertile  territory  will 
still  remain  in  the  hands  of  the  Turks,  and  may  be  retained 
by  the  Porte  until  the  arrival  of  one  of  those  shocks,  which 
it  would  be  arguing  a  total  ignorance  of  probabilities  and 
natural  march  ot' human  events  not  to  anticipate. 

Takingit  for  granted,  that  Turkey  will  be  allowed  to  abide 


460  HISTORY  OF  THE  * 

those  chances  to  which  the  best  established  governments 
are  liable  ;  for  in  losing  Greece,  she  has  only  followed  the 
fate  of  England  and  France  with  regard  to  North  America 
and  St.  Domingo,  witfy  the  very  natural  difference  that  the 
Christian  powers  had  some  rights  over  colonies  of  their 
own  creation  ;  I  can  only  now  foresee  a  source  of  dispute 
in  the  arrangements  with  regard  to  the  principalities  on  the 
east,  and  of  Bosnia  and  Servia  on  the  north.  However  de- 
sirous the  friends  of  peace  and  freedom  may  be,  to  check 
the  growing  and  inevitable  power  of  Russia,  it  is  surely  most 
selfish  and  ungenerous,  to  prefer  seeing  the  Turkish  yoke 
prolonged  in  Moldavia  and  Wallachia,  rather  than  they 
should  pass  under  Russian  protection.  The  increase  of 
territory  which  these  two  provinces  would  give  tq  Russia, 
would  certainly  be  considerable,  but  a  variety  of  circum- 
stances  induce  me  to  believe  that  their  value  is  greatly  over- 
rated in  a  political  point  of  view,  and  that  they  would  not 
augment  that  power  in  any  material  degree,  at  the  least 
for  many  years :  and  time  to  consolidate  the  new  power  is 
required.  In  all  her  wars  with  the  Porte,  Russia  has  never 
experienced  the  smallest  difficulty  in  occupying  these  princi- 
palities, which  besides  having  no  strong  holds,  are  without 
ports,  the  grand  object  of  Russian  ambition.  That  the  de- 
plorable state  of  the  unfortunate  inhabitants  of  Moldavia 
and  Wallachia  calls  aloud  for  interference,  and  that  it  would 
be  an  act  of  the  greatest  cruelty  again  to  place  them  under  a 
power,  whose  system  of  rule  has  caused  all  their  miseries, 
will  scarcely  be  denied  by  those  who  most  dread  the  advance 
of  Russia  on  the  south.  Should  any  arrangement  take 
place,  by  which  those  provinces  were  enabled  to  approxi- 
mate towards  liberal  institutions,  even  under  the  auspices  of 
Russia,  every  excuse  for  keeping  up  the  present  contentious 
system  with  the  Porte  must  be  at  once  removed,  nor  would 
it  then  be  too  much  for  the  two  powers  most  interested,  to 
notify  the  cabinet  of  St.  Petersburgh,  that  the  passage  of  the 
Danube,  by  a  Russian  army,  would  be  considered  as  a  decla- 
ration of  war  against  them  both.  Those  who  are  acquaint- 
ed with  the  secrets  of  the  diplomatic  circles,  assert,  that 
Austria  has  said  to  Russia,  on  more  than  one  occasion,  "  If 
you  occupy  the  principalities  in  perpetuity,  I  will  incorpo- 
rate Bosnia  and  Servia."  This  species  of  argument  is  so 
consonant  with  the  system  of  policy  usually  pursued  by  the 
great  powers,  who  seem  only  intent  on  enlarging  their  terri- 
tory, without  any  regard  to  the  feelings  or  interests  of  those 


GEEEK  REVOLUTION.  461 

most  deeply  concerned,  that  there  is  probably  some  truth  in 
the  assertion.  Be  this  as  it  may ;  if  the  ambition  of  Aus- 
tria is  not  to  be  satisfied  in  any  other  way,  than  by  the  oc- 
cupation of  these  two  provinces,  it  would  be  infinitely  better 
to  admit  of  their  appropriation  by  that  power,  than  to  encou- 
rage the  pretensions  which  the  cabinet  of  Vienna  will  be  in- 
cessantly putting  forward  with  regard  to  the  affairs  of  Greece 
and  Turkey.  Humiliating  as  it  may  be  to  say,  in  speaking 
of  a  Christian  state,  that  it  is  almost  doubtful,  whether  the 
Bosnians  and  Servians  would  be  better  under  the  Turks  than 
under  the  Austrians,  for  they  are  now  in  the  enjoyment  of 
comparative  independence ;  still  it  may  be  safely  concluded* 
that  they  would  not  lose  by  the  change.  It  is  scarcely  ne- 
cessary to  add,  that  the  object  of  these  cursory  observations 
is  to  prove,  that  so  far  as  British  influence  and  policy  are 
concerned,  neither  Russia  nor  Austria  ought  to  interfere  un- 
necessarily, nor  exercise  too  great  a  preponderance  in  the 
affairs  of  Turkey ;  and  that  however  tamely  England  maj^ 
look  on  while  these  two  powers  are  coming  to  an  under- 
standing with  each  other  about  the  frontier  provinces,  which 
seem,  indeed,  to  be  for  ever  lost  to  the  Porte,  one  step  be- 
yond them  should  be  considered  as  an  act  of  open  hostility 
to  Great  Britain. 

Should  the  smallest  importance  be  attached  to  the  desultD- , 
jy  thoughts  thus  thrown  out,  it  is  scarcely  necessary  to  say, 
that  a  new  and  highly  interesting  field  is  open  to  British  poli- 
cy in  the  east  of  Europe.  Although  there  are  persons  who 
perceived  that  we  might  have  achieved  wonders  soon  after 
the  victories  in  Egypt,  capture  of  Malta,  and  more  especially, 
the  acquisition  of  the  Ionian  Islands,  individuals  who  must 
ever  deplore  the  manner  in  which  such  a  combination  of  ad- 
vantageous circumstances  has  been  neglected,  both  as  they 
regard  our  relations  with  the  Barbary  pirates,  and  other  states 
bordering  on  the  Mediterranean,  it  has  now  become  doubly 
incumbent  on  England  to  take  care  that  neither  her  power 
shall  be  sapped,  nor  her  popularity  totally  destroyed  in  this 
quarter ;  and  it  is  only  by  the  nomination  of  men  distinguish- 
ed for  their  talents,  humanity,  and  virtue,  that  this  object  can 
be  attained.  If  it  had  been  among  the  most  palpable  politi- 
cal errors  of  a  late  minister,  that  he  thought  it  of  very  little 
consequence  whether  we  were  beloved  or  hated  in  the  Ionian 
Islands,  his  successors  will  know  how  to  appreciate  a  policy, 
not  less  injurious  to  England,  than  derogatory  from  the  cha- 
racter of  a  wise  statesman ;  while  it  requires  but  a  very  small 

40 


468  HISTORY  OF  THE 

portion  of  sagacity  to  perceive  that  the  time  has  arrived, 
when  conciliation  and  atonement  are  alone  likely  to  regain 
the  good  opinion  and  confidence  of  a  people  whose  attach- 
ment has  become  of  infinite  importance  within  the  last  three 
years.* 

With  respect  to  the  part  we  have  to  act  towards  Greece 
and  Turkey,  it  is  at  once  the  most  difficult  and  enviable 
which  ever  fell  to  the  lot  of  England ;  and  one  in  which  a 


*  However  anxious  I  may  feel  to  avoid  every  thing  savouring  of  per- 
sonality in  these  pages,  there  are  cases  in  which  the  interests  of  my 
country,  no  less  than  those  of  truth,  require  a  departure  from  the  gene- 
ral rule ;  and  it  is  indeed  impossible  to  pass  over  the  conduct  of  the 
consuls  employed  by  the  Levant  Company  towards  the  Greeks,  without 
describing  it  as  most  disgraceful  to  England,  and  injurious  to  the  British 
character.  There  is  no  necessity  for  naming  the  individuals  comprised 
in  this  remark ;  they  are  too  well  known  to  require  any  further  expo- 
sure, and  too  deeply  marked  with  the  execration  of  a  whole  people  to 
render  any  additional  epithets  necessary. 

Without  now  entering  into  an  examination  of  the  total  inutility  of 
continuing  the  charter  of  a  company  of  traders  to  the  Levant,  or  expa- 
tiating on  the  positive  mischief  done  to  commerce  by  its  existence,  it  is 
chiefly  important  to  call  the  attention  of  Ministers  to  the  abuses  which 
are  practised  by  the  monstrous  privilege  of  covering  foreign  bottoms 
with  our  flag  in  the  Mediterranean,  and  allowing  consuls  intended  to 
represent  a  great  nation,  and  to  support  its  dignity,  to  enter  into  all  the 
'  grovelling  speculations  of  petty  traders.  It  is  a  fact  worthy  of  notice, 
Qiat  although  there  is  not  an  individual  in  the  foreign  office,  even  to  the 
lowest  clerk,  ignorant  of  the  glaring  defects  of  our  consular  system,  and 
that  although  the  evils  connected  with  it  have  been  accumulating  for 
these  twenty  years,  not  a  single  measure  should  have  been  adopted  in 
the  whole  of  that  long  space  to  remedy  the  inconveniences  so  often  and 
loudly  complained  of,  while  other  countries  have  made  such  immense 
strides  in  diplomacy  of  every  kind. 

The  striking  contrast  between  the  policy  of  Russia  towards  the  Ioni 
an  Islands,  and  that  adopted  by  England,  is  worthy  of  the  most  particu- 
lar attention  on  the  part  of  government.  As  if  they  had  only  waited 
for  an  opportunity  of  proving  their  anxiety  to  promote  the  happiness  of 
the  Greeks,  their  first  measure  was  the  establishment  of  a  septinsular 
republic.  This  of  itself,  unattended  by  any  advantages,  had  a  wonder- 
ful effect  in  securing  popularity.  But  the  Russians  did  more  :  they  set 
about  correcting  many  of  the  abuses,  and  u.ougli  the  state  of  Europe, 
as  well  as  the  exhausted  condition  of  the  Islands,  rendered  it  impossible 
to  make  any  very  rapid  advances  towards  improvement,  nothing  could 
be  more  conciliatory  than  the  general  tendency  of  their  system  of  go- 
vernment. The  similarity  of  religion,  and  frequent  intermarriages 
between  Russians  and  natives,  have  had  a  great  effect  in  perpetuating 
the  sentiments  which  still  prevail  in  favour  of  Russia. 

It  was  Russia  that  first  adopted  the  excellent  idea  of  organizing  the. 
Greeks  into  regular  regiments. 


GREEK  REVOLUTION.  463 

minister  might  immortalize  his  name.  Although  there  is  at 
this  period  of  the  contest  between  the  Christians  and  their 
infidel  oppressors,  no  merit  in  perceiving  that  we  are  bound 
by  every  tie,  human  and  divine,  to  espouse  the  cause  of  re- 
ligion and  humanity,  yet  is  there  a  noble  field  open  for  me- 
diation and  council,  environed  as  the  Porte  is  by  enemies 
who  only  seek  its  destruction :  there  is  no  power  to  which 
it  can  look  for  support  but  England ;  and  the  time  may  even 
arrive  when,  rather  than  see  it  crushed  by  a  third  party,  we 
should  become  its  allies,  as  on  former  occasions.  How  im- 
portant, therefore,  is  it,  that  we  should  prevent  the  prosecu- 
tion of  a  contest,  which,  if  continued  another  year  or  two, 
will  utterly  exhaust  the  power  of  Turkey,  and  place  it  at  the 
mercy  of  the  first  comer?  On  the  other  hand,  does  not  hu- 
manity and  policy  dictate,  that  a  Gtop  should  be  put  to  the 
effusion  of  human  blood  and  protraction  of  human  misery, 
which  cannot  be  of  any  earthly  use?  It  is  notorious,  that 
besides  the  loss  of  two  hundred  thousand  souls,  Turkey  has 
expended  more  money  in  prosecuting  the  war  in  Greece, 
than  she  ever  did  while  engaged  in  hostility  with  Russia 
herself. 

But  I  will  not  pursue  a  subject  which  must  be  so  obvious 
to  superficial  reasoners ;  and  in  concluding  these  remarks, 
I  have  merely  to  express  a  hope  that,  without  arrogating 
any  undue  influence  over  Greece,  or  showing  that  there  is 
the  smallest  tincture  of  selfishness  in  our  policy  towards  that 
country,  our  cabinet  may  know  how  to  convince  the  people, 
that,  if  it  be  the  interest  of  England  to  prevent  the  Porte 
from  too  sudden  a  dissolution,  it  is  infinitely  more  important 
for  her  glory  and  interests,  that  a  new  and  powerful  state 
should  be  established  in  the  east  of  Europe.* 

♦Blaquierc,  vol.  i.  p.  300 — 335. 


THE 

LAST  DAYS  OF  LORD  BYRON,* 

COMMUNICATED    FROM    ZANTE    TO    A    FRIEND    IN    ENGLAND. 


To  aid  thy  mind's  developement — to  watch 
Thy  dawn  of  little  joys, — to  sit  and  see 
Almost  thy  very  growth, — to  view  thee  catch 
Knowledge  of  objects, — wonders  yet  to  thee  1 
To  hold  thee  lightly  on  a  gentle  knee, 
And  print  on  thy  soft  cheek  a  parent's  kiss, — 
This,  it  should  seem,  was  not  reserved  for  me ; 

Yet  this  was  in  my  nature ! 

Childe  Harold's  Pilgrimage,  Canto  1IJ. 


Zante,  May  1 5th,  1824. 

As  the  hasty  lines  addressed  to  you  immediately  after 
my  arrival  here,  did  little  more  than  confirm  the  death  of 
Lord  Byron,  it  now  remains  for  me  to  communicate  such 
particulars  relative  to  that  melancholy  event,  as  may  tend  to 
satisfy  the  curiosity  of  our  friends  in  England,  while  they 
will  best  account  for  the  deep  regret  so  universally  express* 
ed  by  all  classes  of  the  Greeks,  at  having  been  so  premature- 
ly deprived  of  their  late  illustrious  benefactor  and  friend. 

You  are  already  aware  that  his  Lordship  arrived  in  Cephas 
Ionia  from  Leghorn,  in  the  early  part  of  August,  attended  by 
a  suite  of  six  or  seven  individuals,  and  in  an  English  vessel 
which  he  had  hired  for  the  express  purpose  of  conveying  him 
to  Greece.  It  was  however  arranged,  and  I  had,  indeed, 
strongly  recommended  it  in  my  letters  from  Tripolizza,  that 
he  should  touch  either  at  Zante  or  Cephalonia,  previously  to 
landing  on  the  continent.  Anxious  to  avoid  compromising 
the  authorities,  his  Lordship  determined  to  remain  on  board 

*No  apology  is  considered  necessary  for  the  republication  of  this  inj 
^resting  account  of  the  last  illness  and  death  of  Lord  Byron,  since,  by 
a  detail  of  his  conduct  and  actions  while  in  Greece,  it  becomes  intimate- 
ly connected  with  the  history  of  the  revolution  ;  and  besides,  it  has 
never,  it  is  believed,  been  published  in  this  country.  It  is  written  by 
Edward  Blaquiere,  Esq.  who  collected  his  information  on  the  spot,  d&d 
s£  thcieiflxe  from  the  best  authority. 

4G* 


466  APPENDIX. 

the  vessel  until  information  could  be  obtained  from  the  seat 
of  government,  to  which  Mr.  Hamilton  Browne,  who  had 
accompanied  him  from  Italy,  was  despatched  soon  after  his 
arrival.  There  being  no  tidings  from  this  gentleman  before 
the  expiration  of  the  charter  party,  his  Lordship  thought  it 
needless  to  renew  it,  as  he  could  always  procure  Ionian  ves- 
sels, and  therefore  at  length  determined  on  disembarking- 
Wishing,  however,  to  live  as  retired  as  possible,  he  proceed- 
ed to  the  small  village  of  Metaxata,  within  five  or  six  miles 
of  Argostoli.  Whilst  he  remained  in  this  retreat,  a  consider- 
able portion  of  his  time  was  occupied  in  reading ;  he  also 
rode  out  daily ;  and  though  he  could  only  be  prevailed  on  to 
dine  out  once,  those  who  came  to  visit  his  Lordship,  were 
received  with  the  greatest  kindness  and  hospitality.  Every 
account  I  have  heard,  agrees  in  stating,  that  all  who  approach- 
ed his  person  were  highly  delighted  with  the  affability  and 
good  humour  he  displayed  during  the  whole  period  of  his 
stay  in  the  island.  Nor  had  he  been  there  many  days,  be- 
fore several  indigent  Greek  families,  exiles  and  inhabitants, 
experienced  his  wonted  munificence. 

It  is  reported  that  one  of  his  visitors  at  Metaxata,  who  is 
in  communication  with  the  Societies  for  propagating  Chris- 
tian Knowledge,  availed  himself  of  the  occasion  to  instil  the 
importance  of  religious  meditation  and  scriptural  truth,  into 
the  mind  of  one  who  had  the  reputation  of  not  holding  either 
in  sufficient  reverence,  and  that  although  some  ludicrous 
scenes  occurred  in  the  course  of  their  interviews,  the  ad- 
monitory party  was  treated  with  the  utmost  kindness,  and 
full  credit  given  to  him  for  the  purity  of  his  intentions. 

On  hearing  of  Lord  Byron's  arrival,  which  he  had  indeed 
been  long  prepared  to  expect,  Prince  Mavrocordato,  who 
was  at  Hydra,  despatched  his  secretary  to  welcome  the  dis- 
tinguished visitor,  and  when  the  two  Greek  deputies  now  in 
England,  were  about  to  depart  on  their  mission,  they  were 
directed  to  call  at  Cephalonia,  with  a  letter  from  the  Execu- 
tive Government,  thanking  the  noble  Lord  for  his  generous 
devotedness  to  the  cause  of  Greece,  and  inviting  him  to  pass 
over  to  the  continent,  where  it  was  believed  his  presence 
would  be  the  best  guarantee  of  their  future  success.  Two 
vessels  of  war  were  at  the  same  time  tendered  for  the  pur- 
pose of  conveying  him  to  any  point  of  the  confederation 
at  which  he  might  think  proper  to  land. 

Messrs.  Barff  and  Hancock  of  Cephalonia  and  Zante,  hav-r 
ing  heard  of  the  cftgicatties  experienced  by  Lord  Byron  in 


APPENDIX.  467 

procuring  money  from  those  to  whom  he  had  brought  letters 
of  credit  from  Italy,  very  handsomely  offered  to  supply  him 
with  whatever  funds  he  might  require.  Every  impediment 
being  thus  removed,  two  Ionian  vessels  were  immediately 
hired,  and  having  directed  his  horses  and  effects  to  be  em- 
barked, his  Lordship  sailed  from  Argostoli  on  the  29th  of 
December,  anchoring  here  the  same  evening.  The  whole  of 
the  following  day  was  occupied  in  making  pecuniary  arrange- 
ments with  Mr.  Barf]',  and  after  receiving  a  quantity  of  specie 
on  board,  he  proceeded  towards  Missolonghi,  that  being  the 
point  of  Greece  most  exposed  to  danger,  and  destitute  of  sup- 
plies. In  this  short  passage,  two  accidents  occurred,  which 
might  have  been  attended  with  very  serious  consequences. 
Count  Gamba,  who  accompanied  his  Lordship  from  Leghorn, 
had  been  charged  with  the  vessel  in  which  the  horses,  and 
part  of  the  money,  were  embarked;  when  off  Chiarenza, 
a  point  lying  between  this  island  and  the  place  of  their  desti- 
nation, they  were  surprised  at  day-light,  on  finding  themselves 
under  the  bows  of  a  Turkish  frigate.  Owing,  however,  to  the 
activity  displayed  on  board  Lord  Byron's  vessel,  and  her  su- 
perior sailing,  she  escaped ;  while  the  second  was  fired  at, 
brought  to,  and  carried  into  Patras.  Gamba  and  his  com- 
panions being  taken  before  Isouf  Pacha,  fully  expected  to 
share  the  fate  of  the  unfortunate  men,  whom  that  sanguinary 
chief  sacrificed  last  year  at  Prevesa,  though  also  taken  under 
the  Ionian  flag ;  and  their  fears  would  most  probably  have 
been  realized,  had  it  not  been  for  the  presence  of  mind  dis- 
played by  the  Count.  Aware  that  nothing  but  stratagem 
and  effrontery  could  now  save  him,  he  no  sooner  saw  himself 
in  the  Pacha's  power,  than  assuming  an  air  of  hauteur  and 
indifference,  he  accused  the  captain  of  the  frigate  of  a  scan- 
dalous breach  of  neutrality,  in  firing  at  and  detaining  a  vessel 
under  English  colours ;  and  concluded  by  informing  Isouf, 
that  he  might  expect  the  vengeance  of  England  in  thus  in- 
terrupting a  British  Nobleman,  who  was  merely  on  his  travels, 
and  bound  to  Calamos.  Whether  the  infidel  chief  believed 
Gamba's  story,  or  that  he  did  not  like  to  proceed  to  extremi- 
ties, appears  uncertain.  Scarcely,  however,  had  the  Count 
Ceased,  and  orders  been  given  to  put  the  crew  in  irons,  than 
the  master  of  the  vessel,  advancing  towards  the  captain, 
quietly  demanded,  whether  he  had  forgotten  Spiro,  who  fif- 
teen years  before,  had  .saved  his  life  in  the  Black  Sea.  The 
Turk,  looking  steadfastly  at  him  for  a  lew  moments,  exclaim- 
ed, "  What!  can  it  be  Spiro?"  and,  springing  forward,  e»« 


468  APPENDIX. 

braced  his  former  deliverer  with  the  utmost  transport,  and- 
not  only  consented  to  the  vessel's  release,  but  treated  the 
whole  party  with  the  most  courteous  attention.  As  to  the 
Pacha,  he  not  only  provided  a  dinner,  but  invited  them  to 
take  a  day's  shooting  in  the  neighbourhood.  Gamba  gladly 
accepted  these  unexpected  hospitalities,  and,  sailing  the  next 
day,  passed  over  to  Missolonghi,  where,  to  his  great  surprise, 
Lord  Byron  had  not  yet  arrived. 

Owing  to  the  wind  becoming  contrary  soon  after  his  es- 
cape from  the  Turkish  frigate,  Lord  Byron's  vessel  took 
shelter  at  the  Scrofes,  a  cluster  of  rocks  within  a  few  miles 
of  Missolonghi ;  but  as  this  place  afforded  no  means  of  de- 
fence, in  the  event  of  an  attack,  it  Was  thought  advisable  to 
remove  to  Dragomeste,  where  every  preparation  was  made 
in  case  of  their  being  pursued  by  any  of  the  enemy's  cruisers. 

Having  remained  three  days  at  Dragomeste,  the  wind 
Came  round,  and  allowed  his  Lordship  once  more  to  set  sail. 
On  hearing  what  had  happened,  Prince  Mavrocordato  did 
not  lose  a  moment  in  despatching  a  gun-boat  to  accompany 
his  Lordship,  while  a  portion  of  the  Greek  squadron  stationed 
at  Missolonghi,  were  also  ordered  to  cruise  in  the  offing,  and 
prevent  the  Turkish  vessels  from  approaching  the  coast. 
On  coming  up  with  his  Lordship,  one  of  the  Greek  captains 
sent  a  boat  on  board,  inviting  him  to  make  the  remainder  oi 
the  passage  in  his  ship ;  this  offer  being  declined,  for  there 
Was  now  but  a  very  short  distance  to  proceed,  they  made 
sail  towards  Missolonghi.  As  if,  however,  the  whole  voyage 
Was  to  be  ominous  of  some  future  calamity,  the  vessel  had 
not  proceeded  many  miles  before  she  grounded  on  a  shoal 
near  the  Scrofes,  and  would  probably  have  remained  there, 
had  it  not  been  for  the  activity  of  Fletcher,  his  Lordship's 
Valet,  and  Batista,  the  courier,  both  whom  jumped  into  the 
water  and  pushed  the  vessel  off,  whilst  their  master  urged 
the  captain  and  crew  to  exert  themselves,  instead  of  invoking 
the  saints,  as  is  customary  with  Catholic  and  Greek  sailors 
On  such  occasions. 

The  wind  continuing  to  blow  directly  against  them,  the 
vessel  was  again  anchored  between  two  of  the  numerous 
islets  which  line  this  part  of  the  coast.  Several  gun-boats 
having  been  despatched  from  Missolonghi  to  accompany  his 
Lordship,  he  weighed  anchor  once  more,  but  was  under  the 
necessity  of  bringing  to  a  second  time,  nor  could  he  reach 
the  anchorage  before  the  following  day. 

The  reception  of  Lord  Byron  at  Missolojighi,  where  ht. 


APPENDIX.  469 

landed  on  the  5lh  of  January,  was  most  enthusiastic.  On  ap- 
proaching Vasiladi,  each  ship  of  the  squadron  that  lay  an- 
chored off  the  castle,  fired  a  salute  as  he  passed.  When  he 
landed,  Prince  Mavrocordato  and  all  the  authorities,  toge- 
ther with  the  whole  of  the  troops  and  population,  were  assem- 
bled on  the  beach  to  greet  his  arrival ;  while  proceeding  to 
the  house  that  had  been  prepared  for  him,  a  discharge  of 
twenty-one  guns  took  place  from  the  batteries,  whilst  the 
welcoming  huzzas  of  the  multitude  continued  long  after  he 
had  retired.  Nothing  could  exceed  the  eagerness  with 
which  his  presence  had  been  looked  for  at  Missolonghi ;  he 
could  not  have  arrived  more  opportunely,  and  it  must  be  con- 
fessed, that  his  subsequent  conduct  proved  that  the  inhabi- 
tants had  not  formed  an  incorrect  estimate  of  him  who  had 
so  lately  quitted  all  the  blandishments  of  Italy,  to  join  the 
standard  of  the  Cross  in  regenerated  Greece. 

The  very  first  day  of  his  Lordship's  arrival  was  signalized 
by  his  rescuing  a  Turk,  who  had  fallen  into  the  hands  of 
some  Greek  sailors.  The  individual  thus  saved,  having 
been  clothed  by  his  orders,  was  kept  in  the  house  until  an 
opportunity  occurred  of  sending  him  to  Patras.  His  Lord- 
ship had  not  been  many  days  at  Missolonghi,  before  he  had 
an  opportunity  of  shewing  his  sense  of  Isouf  Pacha's  modera- 
tion, in  releasing  Count  Gamba.  Hearing  that  there  were  four 
Turkish  prisoners  in  the  town,  he  requested  Prince  Mavro- 
cordato to  place  them  in  his  hands.  This  being  immediate- 
ly granted,  they  were,  on  the  next  day,  sent  to  Patras,  with 
the  following  letter. 

"Highness; 

"  A  vessel  in  which  a  friend  and  some  domestics  of  mine 
were  embarked,  was  detained  a  few  days  ago  and  released 
by  order  of  your  Highness  ;  I  have  now  to  thank  you,  not 
for  liberating  the  vessel,  which  as  carrying  a  neutral  flag,  and 
being  under  British  protection,  no  one  had  a  right  to  detain, 
but  for  having  treated  my  friends  with  so  much  kindness 
while  they  were  in  your  hands. 

"  In  the  hope  that  it  may  not  be  altogether  displeasing  to 
your  Highness,  I  have  requested  the  Governor  of  this  place 
to  release  four  Turkish  prisoners,  and  he  has  humanely  con* 
sented  to  do  so.  I  lose  no  time,  therefore,  in  sending  them 
back,  in  order  to  make  as  early  a  return  as  I  could,  fox 
your  courtesy  on  the  late  occasion.  These  prisoners  are 
derated  without  any  conditions ;  but  should  the  clrcum* 


470  APPENDIX. 

stance  find  a  place  in  your  recollection,  I  venture  to  beg  that 
vour  Highness  will  treat  such  Greeks  as  may  henceforth  fall 
into  your  hands,  with  humanity ;  more  especially  as  the  hor- 
rors of  war  are  sufficiently  great  in  themselves,  without  be- 
ing aggravated  by  wanton  cruelties  on  either  side. 
"  Missolonghi,  Jan.  23,  1824. 

Noel  Byron." 

The  above  act  was  followed  by  another,  not  less  entitled 
to  praise,  while  it  proves  how  anxious  his  Lordship  felt  to 
give  a  new  turn  to  the  system  of  warfare  hitherto  pursued. 
A  Greek  cruiser  having  captured  a  Turkish  boat  in  which 
there  were  a  number  of  passengers,  chiefly  women  and  chil- 
dren, these  being  also  placed  in  the  hands  of  Lord  Byron  at 
his  particular  request,  a  vessel  was  immediately  hired,  and 
the  whole  of  them  sent  to  Prevesa,  provided  with  every  re- 
quisite for  their  voyage.  The  letter  which  accompanied 
them  was  couched  in  a  similar  spirit  to  the  former  ;  it  was 
answered  by  the  English  consul,  Mr.  Meyer,  who  thanked  his 
Lordship  in  the  name  of  Beker  Aga,  the  Turkish  governor, 
and  concluded  by  an  assurance  that  he  would  take  care  equal 
attention  should  be  in  future  shown  to  the  Greeks  who  fell 
into  his  hands. 

The  first  great  proof  given  by  Lord  Byron,  that  his  visit 
to  Greece  was  not  one  of  mere  curiosity,  was  evinced  in  his 
advancing  thirty  thousand  dollars  to  the  provisional  Govern- 
ment. This  sum  was  appropriated  to  the  payment  of  the 
fleet,  and  in  obtaining  supplies  for  Missolonghi.  From  the 
distress  which  prevailed  at  this  moment,  the  above  supply 
was  of  infinite  service  to  the  cause.  The  enthusiasm  of  his 
Lordship  may  be  imagined,  from  the  following  short  sen- 
tence, with  which  he  concludes  a  letter  of  business  to  Mr. 
BarfFnot  many  days  after  his  landing. 

"  I  hope  things  here  will  go  well  some  time  or  other.  I 
will  stick  by  the  cause  as  long  as  a  cause  exists,  first  or  se- 
cond." 

It  had  previously  been  arranged,  that  Lord  Byron  should 
be  allowed  to  organize  a  corps,  of  which  the  command  was 
to  be  given  to  himself.  This  now  became  the  object  of  his 
most  ardent  solicitude.  Finding  that  the  Suliotes,  of 
whom  there  happened  to  be  a  large  body  in  the  town,  were 
anxious  to  acquire  a  knowledge  of  the  evolutions  of  Europe.* 
numbers  of  them  were  enrolled,  and  the  English  and  Ger* 
mm  volunteers  appointed  to  superintend  their  organization* 


APPENDIX.  471 

Both  these  operations  succeeded  with  such  rapidity,  that  a 
corps  of  five  hundred  men  were  clothed,  armed,  and  ready 
to  take  the  field,  before  his  Lordship  had  been  a  month  at 
Missolonghi. 

Mavrocordato  had  meditated  an  attack  on  the  fortress  of 
Lepanto,  and  as  the  military  stores,  sent  out  by  the  Greek 
Committee,  afforded  the  means  of  bringing  some  field  pieces 
against  the  walls,  it  was  settled  that  Lord  Byron  should  pro- 
ceed on  the  intended  service  at  the  head  of  his  brigade :  and 
from  the  preparation  that  had  been  made,  no  doubt  what- 
ever was  entertained  of  the  speedy  surrender  of  a  place,  that 
would  render  the  Greeks  masters  of  the  Gulf  of  Lepanto. 
In  order  to  facilitate  this  desirable  event,  a  negotiation  had 
been  secretly  entered  into,  with  the  Albanian  portion  of  the 
garrison,  who  consented  to  retire,  if  paid  their  arrears.  In- 
deed this  matter  was  quite  settled,  and  his  Lordship  on  the 
point  of  marching,  when  an  unexpected  accident  prevented 
the  execution  of  his  design.  One  of  the  Suliotes  having 
presented  himself  at  Lord  Byron's  door,  while  he  was  con- 
ferring on  some  matters  of  importance,  with  Prince  Ma- 
vrocordato, he  insisted  on  being  admitted,  and  being  opposed 
by  a  German  officer,  named  Sass,  who  was  in  waiting,  a  vio- 
lent altercation  ensued.  This  was  followed  by  a  personal 
contest,  in  which  the  German  lost  his  life.  As  may  well  be 
supposed,  an  incident  like  the  above,  unexampled  as  it  was 
during  the  whole  war,  created  a  general  ferment  throughout 
the  garrison.  The  first  movement  of  the  inhabitants  and 
foreigners,  was  to  insist  on  the  Suliote's  being  given  up  to 
justice.  The  demand  was  however  resisted  by  his  country- 
men, on  the  plea  that  their  companion  had  been  struck  in 
the  first  instance,  and  this  was  a  degradation  which  no  Suli- 
ote  ever  suffered  with  impunity. 

The  intention  of  proceeding  against  Lepanto,  being  thus 
suspended,  just  as  Lord  Byron's  enthusiasm  was  at  its  height ; 
and  when  he  had  fully  calculated  on  striking  a  blow,  which 
could  not  fail  to  be  of  infinite  importance  to  the  Greek  cause, 
no  wonder  that  such  an  unlooked  for  disappointment  should 
have  preyed  upon  his  spirits,  and  produced  a  degree  of  irri- 
tability, which,  if  it  was  not  the  direct  cause,  no  doubt  main- 
ly contributed  to  the  severe  fit  of  epilepsy  with  which  he  was 
attacked  on  the  night  of  the  15th  of  February,  while  conver- 
sing with  one  of  his  attendants,  and  when  he  was  apparently 
in  perfect  health.  After  having  remained  in  a  state  of  insen- 
sibility for  some  time,  he  gradually  revived,  upon  which  Dr. 


472  APPENDIX. 

Bruno,  an  Italian  medical  attendant,  who  accompanied  him 
from  Leghorn,  had  recourse  to  bleeding,  by  applying  a  num- 
ber of  leeches  to  the  veins  of  the  temples.  From  the  man- 
ner in  which  this  remedy  was  applied,  it  was  with  great  diffi- 
culty, and  only  by  the  application  of  powerful  styptics,  that 
the  flow  of  blood  could  be  stopped.*  A  person  who  was 
present  when  the  attack  commenced,  and  attended  while  the 
leeches  were  applied,  informs  me  that  eleven  hours  elapsed 
before  the  bleeding  entirely  ceased. 

No  account  of  his  Lordship's  illness  reached  this  place, 
(Zante,)  before  the  22d ;  it  was  then  announced  to  Mr.  Barff, 
by  his  secretary,  Zambelli,  who  merely  stated  that  his  Lord- 
ship had  experienced  a  severe  convulsive  attack,  on  the 
night  of  the  15th;  that  though  it  had  left  him  in  a  state  of 
excessive  debility,  nothing  serious  was  apprehended.  The 
paragraph  concluded  by  stating,  that  his  Lordship  had  taken 
a  long  excursion  on  the  water  that  very  day,  and  felt  much 
better.  There  being  some  delay  in  despatching  this  letter, 
the  third  page  contained  a  note  from  Lord  Byron  himself, 
from  which  the  following  is  an  extract : — 

"  I  am  a  good  deal  better,  though,  of  course,  weakly ;  the 
leeches  took  too  much  blood  from  my  temples  the  day  after, 
and  there  was  some  difficulty  in  stopping  it,  but  I  have  since 
been  up  daily,  and  out  in  boats  or  on  horseback ;  to-day  I 
have  taken  a  warm  bath,  and  live  as  temperately  as  well  can 
be,  without  any  liquid  but  water,  and  without  animal  food." 
His  Lordship  then  adds — "  Besides  the  four  Turks  sent  to 
Patras,  I  have  obtained  the  release  of  four-and- twenty  wo- 
men and  children,  and  sent  them  to  Prevesa,  that  the  English 
consul  general  may  consign  them  to  their  relatives.  I  did 
(his  at  their  own  desire."  After  recurring  to  some  other 
subjects,  the  letter  concludes  thus : — "  Matters  here  are  a 


*  The  following  humorous  account  of  his  Lordship's  illness,  by  him- 
self, has  been  shown  to  me  since  my  return  to  England  ;  it  is  an  extract 
from  a  letter  to  Mr.  Murray,  his  publisher;  "  On  Sunday,  (the  15th,  I 
believe,)  I  had  a  strong  and  sudden  convulsive  attack,  which  left  me 
speechless,  though  not  motionless,  for  some  strong  men  could  not  hold 
me ;  but  whether  it  was  epilepsy,  cachexy,  apoplexy,  or  what  other 
exy  or  epsy,  the  doctors  have  not  decided:  or  whether  it  was  spasmo- 
dic or  nervous,  &c.  but  it  was  very  unpleasant,  and  nearly  carried  me 
off,  and  all  that.  On  Monday  they  put  leeches  to  my  temples,  no  diffi- 
cult matter,  but  the  blood  could  not  be  stopped  till  eleven  at  night,  (they 
had  gone  too  near  the  temporal  artery,  for  my  temporal  safety,)  and 
neither  styptic  nor  caustic,  would  cauterize  the  orifice,  till  after  a  hun- 
dred attempts." 


APPENDIX.  413 

Kttle  embroiled  between  the  Souliotes,  foreigners,  &c.  but  I 
still  hope  better  things,  and  will  stand  by  the  cause  so  long 
as  my  health  and  circumstances  will  permit  me  to  be  sup- 
posed useful."  A  marginal  note  toZambelli's  letter  says, — 
"I  will  do  what  lean  in  this  affair,  and  have  a  promise  of  his 
life  from  Prince  M."  This  sentence  relates  to  a  criminal, 
who  had  been  condemned  to  death  by  the  tribunals  of  Misso- 
longhi,  but  in  whose  favour  intercession  was  made  from  this 
place.  The  next  letter  received  from  Zambelli,  contained 
the  following  short  allusion  to  the  state  of  his  Lordship's 
health : — "  I  am  obliged  to  support  the  government  here  at 
present  ;*  my  health  seems  improving,  from  riding  and  the 
warm  bath."  The  convalescence  proceeded  so  rapidly,  that 
his  Lordship  was  enabled  to  resume  his  usual  duties  by  the 
end  of  the  month ;  these  were  divided  between  the  organi- 
zation of  his  brigade,  and  aiding  Mavrocordato  to  heal  the 
dissensions  of  the  Morea. 

A  letter  to  Mr.  Barff,  dated  the  5th  of  March,  concerning 
the  Primate  of  Gastouni,  says : — "  If  Sessini  is  sincere,  he 
will  be  treated  with,  and  well  treated;  if  he  is  not,  the  sin 
and  the  shame  will  lie  at  his  own  door.  One  great  object  is, 
to  heal  these  internal  dissentions  for  the  future,  without  ex- 
acting a  too  rigorous  account  of  the  past.  The  Prince  Mav- 
rocordato is  of  the  same  opinion;  and  whoever  is  disposed 
to  act  fairly  will  be  fairly  dealt  with.  I  have  heard  a  good 
deal  of  Sessini,  but  not  a  deal  of  good.  However,  I  never 
judge  by  report,  particularly  in  a  revolution.  Personally,  I 
am  rather  obliged  to  him,  for  he  has  been  very  hospitable 
to  all  friends  of  mine  who  have  passed  through  his  district. 
You  may  therefore  answer  him,  that  any  overtures  for  the 
advantage  of  Greece,  and  its  internal  pacification,  will  be 
readily  and  sincerely  met  here.  I  hardly  think  he  would 
have  ventured  a  deceitful  proposition  to  me  through  you,  be- 
cause he  must  be  sure  that,  in  such  case,  it  would  be  event- 
ually exposed.  At  any  rate,  the  healing  of  these  dissentions 
is  so  important  a  point,  that  something  must  be  risked  to  ob- 
tain it." 

Notwithstanding  the  improvement  in  his  Lordship's  health, 
his  friends  here  felt  from  the  first,  that  he  ought  to  try- 
change  of  air  ;    and  a  letter,  strongly  urging  his  return  to 

*ln  allusion  to  his  having  lent  the  Creeks  30,000  dollars  on  his  ar- 
rival. 

41 


474  APPENDIX. 

Zante,  was  written  to  him  by  Mr.  Barff  early  in  March,  to 
which  the  following  reply  was  received  on  the  10th : — 

"  I  am  extremely  obliged  by  your  offer  of  your  country 
house,  (as  for  all  other  kindness,)  in  case  that  my  health 
should  require  any  removal  ;  but  I  cannot  quit  Greece  while 
there  is  any  chance  of  my  being  of  (even  supposed)  utility; 
there  is  a  stake  worth  millions  such  as  I  am,  and  while  I  can 
stand  at  all,  I  must  stand  by  the  cause.  While  I  say  this,  I 
am  aware  of  the  difficulties,  and  dissentions,  and  defects  of 
the  Greeks  themselves  ;  but  allowances  must  be  made  for 
them  by  all  reasonable  people." 

According  as  the  convalescence  of  his  Lordship  improved, 
his  letters  become  more  and  more  important;  that  of  the 
22d,  also  to  his  agent,  will  best  explain. the  nature  of  his  oc- 
cupations, as  well  as  the  admirable  zeal  with  which  he  pur- 
sued the  object  of  his  visit  to  Greece. 

"If  the  Greek  deputies  (as  seems  probable)  have  obtained 
their  loan,  the  sums  I  have  advanced  may  perhaps  be  repaid ; 
but  it  would  make  no  great  difference,  as  I  should  still  spend 
that  in  the  cause,  and  more  to  boot,  though  I  hope  to  better 
purpose  than  hitherto.  In  a  few  days  Prince  Mavrocordato 
and  myself,  with  a  considerable  escort,  intend  to  proceed  to 
Salona,  at  the  request  of  Ulysses,  and  the  chiefs  of  eastern 
Greece,  and  to  take  measures,  offensive  and  defensive,  for 
the  ensuing  campaign.  Mavrocrodato  is  almost  recalled  by 
the  new  Government  to  the  Morea,  (to  take  the  lead,  I  ra- 
ther think,)  and  they  have  written  to  propose  to  me,  to  go 
either  to  the  Morea  with  him,  or  to  take  the  general  direction 
of  affairs  in  this  quarter,  with  General  Londo,  and  any  other 
I  may  choose,  to  form  a  council.  Andreas  Londo  is  my  old 
friend  and  acquaintance,  since  we  were  lads  in  Greece  to- 
gether.* It  would  be  difficult  to  give  a  positive  answer,  till 
the  Salona  meeting  is  over;  but  I  am  willing  to  serve  them 
in  any  capacity  they  please,  either  commanding  or  command- 
ed ;  it  is  much  the  same  to  me,  as  long  as  I  can  be  of  any 
presumed  use  to  them.  Excuse  haste — it  is  late,  and  I  have 
been  several  hours  on  horseback  in  a  country  so  miry  after 
the  rains,  that  every  hundred  yards  brings  you  to  a  brook  or 
a  ditch,  of  whose  depth,  width,  colour,  and  contents,  both  my 
horses  and  their  riders  have  brought  away  many  tokens." 

The  only  allusion  to  public  matters,  contained  in  the  re- 

*  Lord  Byron,  as  we  have  already  stated,  made  the  tour  of  Greece 
with  Mr.  Hobhouse,  in  1810. 


APPENDIX.  475 

inainder  of  this  communication,  the  last  received  from  his 
Lordship,  is  as  follows  : 

"  There  is  a  dissension  amongst  the  Germans  about  the 
conduct  of  the  agents  of  their  committees,  and  an  examina- 
tion amongst  themselves  is  instituted.  What  the  result  may 
be,  cannot  be  anticipated.  The  English  are  all  very  amica- 
ble, as  far  as  I  know;  and  we  get  on  too  with  the  Greeks 
very  tolerably,  always  making  allowances  for  circumstances; 
and  we  have  no  quarrels  with  the  oilier  foreigners." 

It  was,  however,  while  his  Lordship  continued  to  be  the 
benefactor  of  all  around  him,  and  the  successful  mediator 
between  each,  party,  that  a  severe  cold,  with  which  he  was 
seized  on  the  9th  of  April,  after  being  exposed  to  a  heavy 
fall  of  rain,  and  unable  to  change  his  dress  for  some  hours, 
brmijfht  oil  an  inflammatory  fever,  which  was  destined  to 
deprive  Greece  of  her  most  valuable  friend,  and  England  of 
a  poet,  whom  posterity  will  probably  place  next  to  the  bard 
of  Stratford-upon-Avon,  in  all  that  constitutes  originality, 
strength,  and  pathos. 

Aware  or  the  intense  interest,  which  you  will  attach  to  the 
last  illness  of  such  a  man,  I  have  been  most  sedulous  in  my 
inquiries  among  those  who  either  attended  or  were  about 
his  person,  from  the  9th  up  to  the  period  of  his  dissolution. 
Having  more  particularly  addressed  myself  to  Fletcher,  his 
valet,  whose  constant  attendance  on  Lord  Byron  for  twenty 
years,  is  his  best  panegyric,  while  it  furnishes  the  surest 
guarantee  for  the  veracity  of  fris  statements,*  I  cannot  do 
better  than  transcribe  the  narrative  of  this  faithful  follower, 
who  mourns  the  loss  of  his  master  in  a  manner  the  most  af- 
fecting and  unsophisticated.  In  presenting  Fletchers  ac- 
count, it  may  be  proper  to  ad;'.,  (hat  with  the  exception  of  a 
few  i  erbal  alterations,  the  whole  of  the  facts  are  stated  as  I 
have  received  them. 

"  My  master  continued  his  usual  custom  of  riding  daily, 
when  the  weather  would  permit,  until  the  9th  of  April;  but 
on  that  ill-fated  da;  vesry  wet,  and  on  his  return 

home  his  Lordship  (hanged  the  whole  of  his  dress,  but  he 


*  It  has  afforded  me  the  utmost  pleasure  to  hear  from  Fletcher  him- 
self, that  the  executors  have  acted  very  liberally  towards  this  honest 
servant  of  Lord  Byrou.  Indeed,  the  mere  circumstance  of  his  having 
remained  so  many  years  about  the  person  of  his  Lordship,  is  highly 
creditable  to  himself,  while  it  would  be  scarcely  possible  to  give  a  more 
convincing  answer  to  many  of  those  calumnies  which  have  assailed  the 
memory  of  his  lamented  master. 


476  APPENDIX 

had  been  too  long  in  his  wet  clothes,  and  the  cold  of  which 
he  had  complained,  more  or  less,  ever  since  we  left  Cepha- 
Ionia,  made  this  attack  be  more  severely  felt.  Though  rather 
feverish  during  the  night,  he  slept  pretty  well,  but  complain- 
ed in  the  morning  of  a  pain  in  his  bones,  and  a  headache  : 
this  did  not,  however,  prevent  him  from  taking  a  ride  in  the 
afternoon,  which  I  grieve  to  say,  was  his  last.  On  his  re- 
turn, my  master  said,  that  the  saddle  was  not  perfectly  dry, 
from  being  so  wet  the  day  before,  and  observed,  that  he 
thought  it  had  made  him  worse.  His  Lordship  was  again 
\risited  by  the  same  slow  fever,  and  I  was  sorry  to  perceive, 
on  the  next  morning,  that  his  illness  appeared  to  be  increa- 
sing. He  was  very  low,  and  complained  of  not  having  had 
any  sleep  during  the  night.  His  appetite  was  also  quite 
gone.  I  prepared  a  little  arrow-root,  of  which  he  took  three 
or  four  spoonsfull,  saying  it  was  very  good,  but  could  take 
no  more.  It  was  not  till  the  third  day,  the  12th,  that  I  began 
to  be  alarmed  for  my  master.  In  all  his  former  colds  he 
slept  well,  and  was  never  affected  by  this  slow  fever.  I 
therefore  went  to  Dr.  Bruno  and  Mr.  Millingen,  the  two 
medical  attendants,  and  inquired  minutely  into  every  circum- 
stance connected  with  my  master's  present  illness ;  both  re- 
plied that  there  was  no  danger,  and  I  might  make  myself 
perfectly  easy  on  the  subject,  for  all  would  be  well  in  a  few 
days;  this  was  on  the  13th.  On  the  following  day  I  found 
my  master  in  such  a  state,  that  I  could  not  feel  happy  with- 
out entreating  that  he  would  send  to  Zante  for  Dr.  Thomas. 
After  expressing  my  fears  lest  his  Lordship  should  get  worse, 
he  desired  me  to  consult  the  doctors ;  on  doing  so,  they  as- 
sured me  it  was  unnecessary  to  call  in  any  additional  medi- 
cal advice.  Here  I  should  remark,  that  his  Lordship  re- 
peatedly said,  in  the  course  of  the  day,  he  was  afraid  the 
doctors  did  not  understand  his  disease  ;  to  which  I  answer- 
ed, '  then,  my  Lord,  have  other  advice  by  all  means.'  '  They 
tell  me,'  said  his  Lordship,  *  that  it  is  only  a  common  cold, 
which  you  know  I  have  had  a  thousand  times.'  '  I  am  sure, 
my  Lord,'  said  I,  '  that  you  never  had  one  of  so  serious  a  na- 
ture.' '  I  think  I  never  had,'  was  his  Lordship's  answer. 
I  repeated  my  supplication  that  Dr.  Thomas  should  be  sent 
for  on  the  15th,  and  was  again  assured  that  my  master  would 
be  better  in  two  or  three  days.  After  these  confident  as- 
surances, I  did  not  renew  my  entreaties  until  it  was  too  late. 
"  The  whole  nourishment  taken  by  my  master,  for  the  last 
eight  days,  consisted  of  a  small  quantity  of  broth,  at  two  or 


APPENDIX.  477 

three  different  times,  and  two  spoonsfull  of  arrow-root  on  the 
18th,  the  day  before  his  death. 

44  The  first  time  I  heard  of  there  being  any  intention  of 
bleeding  his  Lordship,  was  on  the  15th,  when  it  was  pro- 
posed by  Dr.  Bruno,  but  objected  to  at  first  by  my  master, 
who  asked  Mr.  Millingen  if  there  was  any  very  great  reason 
for  taking  blood  ;  the  latter  replied  that  it  might  be  of  ser- 
vice, but  added,  that  it  could  be  deferred  till  the  next  day  ; 
mid  accordingly  his  Lordship  was  bled  in  the  right  arm  on 
the  evening  of  the  16th.  I  observed  at  the  time,  that  his 
arm  had  a  most  kiflamed  appearance.  Dr.  Bruno  now  be- 
gan to  say,  he  had  frequently  urged  my  master  to  be  bled, 
but  that  he  always  refused.  A  long  dispute  now  arose  about 
the  time  that  had  been  lost,  and  the  necessity  of  sending  for 
medical  assistance  to  Zante ;  upon  which  I  was  informed 
that  it  would  be  of  no  use,  as  my  master  would  be  better,  or 
no  more,  before  the  arrival  of  Dr.  Thomas. 

"  His  Lordship  continued  to  get  worse,  but  Dr.  Bruno 
Baid,  he  thought  letting  blood  again  would  save  his  life,  and 
I  lost  no  time  in  telling  my  master  how  necessary  it  was  to 
comply  with  the  doctor's  wishes  ;  to  this  he  replied,  by  say- 
ing, he  feared  they  were  not  aware  of  his  disorder;  and  then, 
stretching  out  his  arm,  said,  'here,  take  my  arm,  and  do 
whatever  you  like.' 

"  His  Lordship  continued  to  get  weaker,  and  on  the  17th 
he  was  bled  twice ;  viz.  in  the  morning,  and  two  o'clock  in 
the  afternoon.  The  bleeding  at  both  times  was  followed  by 
fainting  fits,  and  he  would  have  fallen  down  more  than  once, 
had  I  not  caught  him  in  my  arms.  In  order  to  prevent  such 
an  accident,  I  took  care  not  to  let  him  stir  without  being  sup- 
ported. On  this  day  my  master  said  to  me  twice,  *I  cannot 
sleep,  and  you  well  know  I  have  not  been  able  to  sleep  for 
more  than  a  week  :'  he  added,  'I  am  not  afraid  of  dying; 
I  am  more  fit  to  die  than  many  think.'  I  do  not,  however, 
believe  that  his  Lordship  had  any  apprehension  of  his  fate 
till  the  day  after,  the  18th,  when  he  said,  'I  fear  you  and  Tita 
(the  courier)  will  be  ill  by  sitting  up  constantly,  night  and 
day.'  I  answered,  'we  shall  never  leave  your  Lordship  till 
you  are  better.'  On  the  18th,  he  addressed  me  frequently, 
and  seemed  to  be  rather  dissatisfied  with  his  medical  treat- 
ment. I  then  said,  '  Pray,  my  Lord,  allow  me  to  send  for 
Dr.    Thomas;'    to    which  he  answered,   'Do  so,   but  bcf 

41* 


478  APPENDIX, 

quick  ;*  I  am  only  sorry  I  did  not  let  you  send  for  him  be- 
fore, as  I  am  sure  they  have  mistaken  my  disease.'  I  did  not 
lose  a  moment  in  obeying  my  master's  orders,  or  informing 
Dr.  Bruno  and  Mr.  Millingen  of  it.  They  said  it  was  very 
right,  they  now  began  to  be  afraid  themselves.  On  returning 
to  my  master's  room,  his  first  words  were,  'Have  you  sent?' 
4 1  have,  my  Lord,'  was  my  answer  ;  upon  which  he  said, 
*  You  have  done  right,  for  I  should  like  to  know  what  is  the 
matter  with  me.'  Although  his  Lordship  did  not  appear  to 
think  his  dissolution  was  so  near,  I  could  perceive  he  was 
getting  weaker  every  hour.  His  Lordship  continued  the 
conversation  by  saying,  'I  now  begin  to  think  I  am  seriously 
ill ;  and  in  case  I  should  be  taken  away  suddenly  from  you, 
I  wish  to  give  you  several  directions,  which  I  hope  you  will 
be  particular  in  seeing  executed.'  I  answered,  I  would,  in 
case  such  an  event  came  to  pass,  but  expressed  a  hope  that 
he  would  live  many  years,  to  execute  them  much  better  him- 
self than  I  could.  To  this  my  master  replied,  'No,  it  is 
now  nearly  over  ;'  and  then  added,  '  I  must  tell  you  all  with- 
out losing  a  moment.'  I  then  said,  '  Shall  I  go,  my  Lord, 
and  fetch  pen,  ink,  and  paper  ?'  '  Oh !  my  God,  no ;  you 
will  lose  too  much  time,  and  I  have  it  not  to  spare,  for  my 
time  is  now  short:'  and  immediately  after,  'Now  pay  atten- 
tion.' His  Lordship  commenced  by  saying,  'You  will  be 
provided  for.'  I  begged  him,  however,  to  proceed  with 
things  of  more  consequence.  He  then  continued, — 'Oh  my 
poor  dear  child !  my  dear  Ada !  my  God,  could  I  but  have 
seen  her!  Give  her  my  blessing,  and  my  dear  sister  Augusta 
and  her  children;   and  you  will  go  to  Lady  Byron,  and 

say Tell  her  every  thing — you  are  friends  with   her  !' 

His  Lordship  appeared  to  be  greatly  affected  at  this  moment. 
Here  my  master's  voice  failed  him,  so  that  I  could  only  catch 
a  word  at  intervals,  but  he  continued  muttering  something 
very  seriously  for  some  time.  I  then  told  his  Lordship,  in  a 
state  of  the  greatest  perplexity,  that  I  had  not  understood  a 
word  of  what  he  had  said;  to  which  he  replied — 'Oh!  my 
God !  then  all  is  lost !  for  it  is  now  too  late.    Can  it  be  possi- 

*  There  is  little  doubt  but  that  the  presence  of  Dr.  Thomas  would 
have  been  of  infinite  use  in  the  early  stage  of  his  Lordship's  illness. 
Besides  his  long  experience  of  the  diseases  incident  to  the  Mediterrane- 
an, the  doctor  had  attended  Lord  Byron  some  years  at  Malta,  while  on 
his  way  to  Greece,  so  that  the  intimacy  then  formed  wo'ild  have  in- 
vspired  the  confidence  so  necessary  between  a  patient  and  his  medical 
adviser. 


APPENDIX.  479 

ble  you  have  not  understood  me?'     *  No,  my  Lord,'  said  I ; 

*  but  I  pray  you  to  try  and  inform  me  once  more.'  '  How  can 
I,'  rejoined  my  master,  '  it  is  now  too  late,  and  all  is  over  V 
I  said,  *  Not  our  will  but  God's  be  done.'     He  answered, 

•  Yes !  not  mine  be  done ;  but  I  will  try.'  His  Lordship 
did  indeed  make  several  efforts  to  speak,  but  could  only  re- 
peat two  or  three  words  at  a  time,  such  as,  '  My  wife  ! — my 
child !. — my  sister !  you  know  all,  you  must  say  all,  you 
know  my  wishes  !'     The  rest  was  quite  unintelligible. 

"  A  consultation  was  now  held,  (about  noon,)  when  it  was 
determined  to  administer  some  Peruvian  bark  and  wine. 
My  master  had  now  been  nine  days  without  any  sustenance 
whatever,  except  what  I  have  already  mentioned.  With 
the  exception  of  a  few  words,  which  can  only  interest  those 
to  whom  they  were  addressed,  it  was  impossible  to  under- 
stand any  thing  his  Lordship  said,  after  taking  the  bark. 
He  expressed  a  wish  to  sleep.  I  at  one  time  asked  whether 
I  should  call  Mr.  Parry ;  to  which  he  replied, — *  Yes,  you 
may  call  him.'  The  last  words  I  heard  my  master  utter 
were  at  six  o'clock  on  the  evening  of  the  18th,  when  he  said, 
'  I  must  sleep  now;'  upon  which  he  laid  down  never  to  rise 
again ;  for  he  did  not  move  hand  or  foot  during  the  follow- 
ing twenty-four  hours.  His  Lordship  appeared,  however,  to 
be  in  a  state  of  suffocation  at  intervals,  and  had  a  frequent 
rattling  in  the  throat.  On  these  occasions  I  called  Tita  to 
assist  me  in  raising  his  head,  and  I  thought  he  seemed  to  get 
quite  stiff.  The  rattling  and  choking  in  the  throat  took 
place  every  half  hour,  and  we  continued  to  raise  his  head 
whenever  the  fit  came  on,  till  six  o'clock  in  the  evening  ot 
the  19th,  when  I  saw  my  master  open  his  eyes,  and  then 
shut  them,  but  without  showing  any  symptom  of  pain,  or 
moving  hand  or  foot.  'Oh!  my  God!'  I  exclaimed,  '  I  fear 
his  Lordship  is  gone.'  The  doctors  then  felt  his  pulse,  and 
said,  '  You  are  too  right — he  is  gone!'  " 

Thus  terminated  the  life  of  Lord  Byron,  at  a  moment  the 
most  glorious  for  his  own  fame,  but  the  most  unfortunate  for 
Greece  ;  since  there  is  no  doubt,  but  had  he  lived,  many  ca- 
lamities would  have  been  avoided,  while  his  personal  credit 
and  guarantee  would  have  prevented  the  ruinous  delay  which 
has  taken  place  with  regard  to  transferring  the  loan. 

In  thus  devoting  his  life  and  fortune  to  the  cause  of  reli- 
gion* and  humanity,  when  he  might  have  continued  to  enjoy 
tUe  enthusiastic  praises  of  his  cotemporaries,  and  all  the 
*  We  would  rather  say  Greece  and  humanity. 


480  APPENDIX. 

fascinations  of  society;  his  Lordship  has  raised  the  best 
monument  to  his  own  fame,  and  furnished  the  most  con- 
clusive reply  to  calumny  and  detraction.  Nor  is  it  possible 
to  compare  the  beautiful  allusions  to  Greece  called  forth  by 
his  splendid  genius,  with  the  fact  of  his  becoming  a  martyr 
in  the  cause  of  her  regeneration,  without  sentiments  of  the 
most  heartfelt  admiration  and  sympathy. 

When  all  he  had  done  and  was  about  to  do  for  the  cause, 
is  considered,  no  wonder  that  Lord  Byron's  death  should 
iiave  produced  such  an  effect ;  it  was,  in  fact,  regarded  not 
only  as  a  national  calamity,  but  as  an  irreparable  loss  to  every 
individual  in  the  town,  and  the  English  volunteers  state  that 
hundreds  of  the  Greeks  were  seen  to  shed  tears  when  the 
event  was  announced.  With  respect  to  Prince  Mavrocor- 
dato,  to  whom  his  Lordship  had  rendered  the  most  important 
services,  both  as  a  personal  friend  and  in  his  capacity  of  Go- 
vernor General  of  Western  Greece,  it  is  unnecessary  to  say, 
that  he  could  not  have  received  a  severer  blow.  His  first 
measure  was  to  issue  the  following  decree. 

"  PROVISIONAL  GOVERNMENT  OF  WESTERN  GREECE. 

"  The  present  day  of  festivity  and  rejoicing  is  turned  int© 
one  of  sorrow  and  mourning. 

"  The  Lord  Noel  Byron  has  departed  this  life,  after  an 
illness  of  ten  days  :  his  death  being  caused  by  an  inflamma- 
tory fever.  Such  was  the  effect  of  his  Lordship's  illness  on 
the  public  mind,  that  all  classes  had  forgotten  their  usual 
recreations  of  Easter,  even  before  its  afflicting  end  was  ap- 
prehended. 

"  The  loss  of  this  illustrious  individual  is  undoubtedly  ta 
be  deplored  by  all  Greece,  but  it  must  be  more  especially  a 
subject  of  lamentation  at  Missolonghi,  where  his  generosity 
has  been  so  conspicuously  displayed,  and  of  which  he  had 
even  become  a  citizen,  with  the  ulterior  determination  of 
participating  in  all  the  dangers  of  the  war. 

"  All  are  acquainted  with  the  beneficent  acts  of  his  Lord- 
ship, and  none  can  cease  to  hail  his  name  as  that  of  a  real 
benefactor. 

"  Until,  therefore,  the  final  determination  of  the  National 
Oovernment  be  known,  and  by  virtue  of  the  powers  with 
which  it  has  been  pleased  to  invest  me,  I  hereby  decree  : — 

"  First.  To-morrow  morning  at  day -light,  thirty-seven 
asinnte  guns  will  be  fired  from  the  grand  battery,  being  the 


APPENDIX.  481 

number  which  corresponds  with  the  age  of  the  illustrious  de- 
ceased.' 

"  Second,  '  All  the  public  offices,  even  to  the  Tribunals, 
are  to  remain  closed  for  three  successive  days.' 

"Third,  'All  the  shops,  except  those  in  which  provisions 
or  medicines  are  sold,  will  also  be  shut ;  and  it  is  strictly 
enjoined,  that  every  species  of  public  amusement,  and  other 
demonstrations  of  festivity  at  Easter,  may  be  suspended.' 

"Fourth,  'A  general  mourning  will  be  observed  for  twen- 
ty-one days.' 

"Fifth,  'Prayers  and  a  funeral  service  are  to  be  offered 
up  in  all  the  churches.' 

"Given  at  Missolonghi  this  19th  day  of  April,  1834. 
(Signed)  "Mavrocordato. 

"Georgius  Priades,  Secretary." 

Whilst  Missolonghi  was  deploring  a  loss  which  all  those 
who  were  within  its  walls  felt  could  never  be  repaired,  the 
necessary  preparations  were  made  to  embalm  the  body,  and 
an  account  of  the  process  has  appeared  in  the  Greek  Tele- 
graph. The  most  remarkable  facts  stated  in  this  report,  re- 
lates to  the  quantity  of  brains,  which  are  described  as  being 
at  least  one  fourth  greater  than  those  of  ordinary  persons; 
they  were  saturated  with  blood.*  The  heart  was  also  very 
large,  but  its  fibres  were  extremely  relaxed,  so  that  it  must 
have  performed  its  functions  very  feebly.  The  liver  is  re- 
presented as  small.  In  other  respects,  the  body  was  found  to 
be  perfectly  sound  and  healthy.  Dr.  Bruno,  who  drew  up 
the  report,  concludes  by  stating,  that  had  his  illustrious  pa- 
tient consented  to  be  bled  when  first  attacked,  there  is  no 
doubt  but  he  would  be  still  alive;  arguing,  however,  from 
the  exhausted  state  in  whicli  he  found  the  vessels  of  the 
heart,  smallness  of  the  liver,  and  the  peculiar  structure  of 
the  cranium,  added  to  a  want  of  more  precaution  with  regard 
to  his  health,  not  to  mention  his  excessive  literary  occupa- 
tion, the  doctor  adds,  that  his  Lordship  could  only  have  sur- 
vived a  lew  years. 

There  being  no  possibility  of  procuring  sheet  lead  at  Mis- 
solonghi, the  body  was  placed  in  a  strong  tin  case,  and  ele- 
vated on  a  bier  covered  with  black  cloth.  The  arms  of  the 
Byron  family  were  represented  at  one  end  of  the  coffin,  while 

*  A  pretty  good  proof  that  he  did  not  die  with  too  much  bleeding. 


482  APPENDIX. 

the  sword  and  cap  which  his  Lordship  intended  to  wear  at 
the  siege  of  Lepanto,  were  placed  on  the  top. 

The  necessary  arrangements  being  made  for  conveying  the 
body  to  the  principal  church  in  the  town,  this  ceremony  was 
omitted  in  consequence  of  a  suggestion  that  the  rugged  state 
of  the  pavement  might  lead  to  some  accident  happening  to 
the  coffin;  it  was  therefore  determined  that  instead  of  the 
corpse,  every  object  would  be  answered  by  merely  conduct- 
ing the  heart  in  procession.  A  separate  case  having  been 
made  for  this,  it  was  accordingly  substituted  for  the  body. — 
The  procession  took  place  on  the  24th,  and  was  attended  by 
the  clergy,  civil  and  military  authorities,  as  well  as  the  whole 
population.  On  reaching  the  church,  the  case  was  placed  on 
an  elevated  pedestal  prepared  for  the  occasion,  upon  which  a 
solemn  service  was  performed  by  the  Bishop  of  Arta,  Porfi- 
rius ;  this  was  followed  by  the  chanting  of  a  requiem.  The 
mournful  ceremony  concluded  with  a  funeral  oration  from 
the  pen  of  my  friend  Spiridion  Tricoupi.  This  composition, 
so  creditable  to  the  talent  of  the  writer,  contains  a  very  elo- 
quent and  affecting  tribute  to  the  memory  of  his  Lordship. 

It  being  necessary  to  wait  for  the  vessels  sent  over  by  Mr. 
BarfF,  the  body  was  not  embarked  till  the  30th,  when  ano- 
ther procession  took  place.  The  cofiin  was  carried  down  to 
the  sea  side,  on  the  shoulders  of  four  military  chiefs,  and 
attended  in  the  same  order  as  before ;  minute  guns  continu- 
ed to  be  discharged  till  the  moment  of  embarkation;  these 
were  followed  by  a  salute  of  thirty-seven  cannon. 

The  vessel  which  bore  the  body,  appeared  off  Zante  about 
two  d'clock,  on  the  4th  instant,  and  was  recognized  at  a  con- 
siderable distance,  owing  to  her  colours  being  lowered.  She 
entered  the  Mole  towards  sunset.  The  corpse  was  accom- 
panied by  the  whole  of  his,  Lordship's  attendants,  who  con- 
veyed it  to  the  Lazaretto  on  the  following'  morning'. 

When  the  melancholy  event  .was  first  communicated  to 
Mr.  BarfF,  he  lost  no  time  in  dispatching  an  express  to  Lord 
Sidney  Osborne,  who  holds  a  high  official  situation  at  Corfu, 
and  is  said  to  be  a  distant  relation  of  Lord  Byron.  His 
Lordship  came  to  Zante  in  a  gun-boat  some  days  after,  in 
order,  it  is  said,  to  confer  with  the  Resident,  as  to  the  best 
mode  of  disposing  of  the  body,  for  there  had  been  an  inten- 
tion of  interring  it  in  that  island,  until  an  answer  could  be 
obtained  from  the  executors,  ascertaining  their  wishes  on 
the  subject. 

I  need  not  say  with  what  sort  of  feelings  the  notion  of  hesi- 


APPENDIX.  483 

tating  to  send  home  the  body  was  met  here ;  there  could 
indeed  be  but  one  opinion  on  the  subject ;  and  much  to  his 
credit,  the  Resident  no  sooner  heard  what  this  was,  than  he 
at  once  acquiesced.  Some  circumstances  have  been  also 
disclosed  by  Fletcher,  relative  to  conversations  held  with 
his  late  master,  that  left  no  doubt  as  to  the  course  most  pro- 
per to  be  pursued.  The  first  sentiment  expressed  by  those 
who  heard  of  the  above  intention,  was  that,  if  it  should  be 
thought  expedient  to  inter  the  remains  of  his  Lordship  in  a 
foreign  soil,  they  ought  to  be  transferred  once  more  to 
Greece.  In  this  case,  the  Parthenon  was  pointed  out  as  by 
far  the  most  eligible  spot  for  the  ashes  of  one,  who  died  while 
labouring  in  the  sublime  work  of  Grecian  regeneration. 
The  former  plan  has,  however,  been  fixed  upon,  as  more 
consonant  with  the  wishes  of  his  Lordship's  family,  and  the 
universal  feelings  in  England;  and  the  Florida  has,  in  con- 
sequence, been  taken  up  to  convey  the  body  home.  I  should 
inform  you,  that  the  whole  of  his  Lordship's  papers  found  at 
Missolonghi,  were  sealed  up  immediately  after  his  death ; 
some  others  left  in  the  hands  of  Mr.  Hancock,  of  Cephalo- 
nia,  have  been  forwarded  to  Mr.  Barff,  and  will  be  sent  home 
in  the  Florida." 


NO.  II. 
FUNERAL  ORATION  ON  LORD  NOEL  BYRON  * 

Composed  and  delivered  by  Mr.  Spiridion  Tricoupi,  of  Missolonghi. 
Printed  by  order  of  Government. 
Missolonghi ',  Wlh  Jprd,  Thursday  in  Easter  Week,  1324. 
"Unlooked  for  event!  deplorable  misfortune  !  but  a  short 
time  has  elapsed  since  the  people  of  this  deeply-suffering 
country  welcomed,  with  unfeigned  joy  and  open  arms,  this 
celebrated  individual  to  their  bosoms;  to-day,  overwhelmed 
with  grief  and  despair,  they  bathe  his  funeral  couch  witli 
tears  of  bitterness,  and  mourn  over   it  with  inconsolable  af- 
fliction.   On  Easter  Sunday  the  happy"  salutation  of  the  day, 
'Christ  is  risen,'!  remained  but  half  pronounced  on  the  lips 

*  This  tribute  to  the  memory  of  Lord  Byron,  is  interesting,  not  only 
as  shewing  how  his  death  alllicted  the  hearts,  and  disappointed  the  hopes 
of  the  Greeks  j  but  also  as  a  specimen  of  Grecian  eloquence  at  the 
present  day. 

|  When  persons  meet  on  Easter  Sunday,  the  salutation,  u  Christ  is 
risen."  is  made  among  all  who  profess  the  Greek  religion. 


4S4  .  APPENDIX. 

of  every  Greek;  and  as  they  met,  before  even  congratulating 
each  other  on  the  return  of  that  joyous  day,  the  universal  de- 
mand was,  'How  is  Lord  Byron?'  Thousands,  assembled 
in  the  spacious  plain  outside  of  the  city  tocommemorate  the 
sacred  day,  appeared  as  if  they  had  assembled  for  the  sole 
purpose  of  imploring  the  Saviour  of  the  world  to  restore 
health  to  him,  who  was  a  partaker  with  us  in  our  present 
struggle  for  the  deliverance  of  our  native  land. 

And  how  is  it  possible  that  any  heart  could  remain  unmo- 
ved, any  lip  closed,  upon  the  present  occasion  1  Was  ever 
Greece  in  greater  want  of  assistance  than  when  the  ever-to- 
be  lamented  Lord  Byron,  at  the  peril  of  his  life,  crossed  over 
to  Missolonghi?  Then,  and  ever  since  he  has  been  with  us, 
his  liberal  hand  has  been  opened  to  our  necessities— necessi- 
ties which  our  own  poverty  would  have  otherwise  rendered 
irremediable.  How  many  and  much  greater  benefits  did  we 
not  expect  from  him  ;  and  to-day,  alas  !  to-day,  the  unre- 
lenting grave  closes  over  him  and  our  hopes  ! 

Residing  out  of  Greece,  and  enjoying  all  the  pleasures  and 
luxuries  of  Europe,  he  might  have  contributed  materially  to 
the  success  of  our  cause,  without  coming  personally  amongst 
us ;  and  this  would  have  been  sufficient  for  us,  for  the  well- 
proved  ability  and  profound  judgment  of  our  Governor,  the 
President  of  the  Senate,  would  have  ensured  our  safety  with 
the  means  so  supplied.  But  if  this  was  sufficient  for  us,  it 
was  not  so  for  Lord  Byron.  Destined  by  nature  to  uphold  the 
rights  of  man  wherever  he  saw  them  trampled  upon  ;  born 
in  a  free  and  enlightened  country  ;  early  taught,  by  reading 
the  works  of  our  ancestors,  (which  indeed  teach  all  who  can 
read  them,)  not  only  what  man  is,  but  what  he  ought  to  be, 
and  what  he  may  be— he  saw  the  persecuted  and  enslaved 
Greek  determine  to  break  the  heavy  chains  with  which  he 
was  bound,  and  to  convert  the  iron  into  sharp-edged  swords, 
that  he  might  regain  by  force  what  force  had  torn  from  him ! 
His  Lordship  saw  this,  and  leaving  .all  the  pleasures  of  Eu- 
rope, he  came  to  share  our  sufferings  and  our  hardships ;  as- 
sisting us,  not  only  with  his  wealth,  of  which  he  was  profuse; 
not  only  with  his  judgment,  of  which  he  has  given  us  so 
manv  salutary  examples ;— but  with  his  sword,  which  he  was 
preparing  to  unsheathe  against  our  barbarous  and  tyrannical 
oppressors.  He  came,  in  a  word,  according  to  the  testimony 
of  those  who  were  intimate  with  him,  with  the  determination 
to  die  in  Greece  and  for  Greece !  How,  therefore,  can  we  do 
otherwise  than  lament,  with  heartfelt  sorrow,  the  loss  of  such 


APPENDIX.  4S5 

a  man !    How  can  we  do  otherwise  than  bewail  it  as  the  loss 
of  the  whole  Greek  nation. 

Thus  far,  ray  friends,  you  have  seen  him  liberal,  generous, 
courageous — a  true  Philhellenist ;  and  you  have  seen  him  as 
your  benefactor.  This  is,  indeed,  a  sufficient  cause  for  your 
fears,  but  it  is  not  sufficient  for  his  honour ;  it  is  not  suffi- 
cient for  the  greatness  of  the  undertaking  in  which  he  had 
engaged.  He,  whose  death  we  are  now  so  deeply  deploring, 
was  a  man,  who,  in  one  great  branch  of  literature,  gave  his 
name  to  the  age  in  which  we  live ;  the  vastness  of  his  genius, 
and  the  richness  of  his  fancy,  did  not  permit  him  to  follow 
the  splendid,  though  beaten  track  of  the  literary  fame  of  the 
ancients ;  he  chose  a  new  road — a  road  which  ancient  pre- 
judice had  endeavoured,  and  was  still  endeavouring,  to  shut 
against  the  learned  of  Europe :  but  as  long  as  his  writings 
live,  and  they  must  live  as  long  as  the  world  exists,  this  road 
will  remain  always  open ;  for  it  is,  as  well  as  the  other,  a  sure 
road  to  true  knowledge.  I  will  not  detain  you  at  the  present 
time,  by  expressing  all  the  respect  and  enthusiasm  with  which 
fhe  perusal  of  his  writings  has  always  inspired  me,  and  which 
indeed  I  feel  much  more  powerfully  now  than  at  any  other 
period.  The  learned  men  of  all  Europe  celebrate  him,  and 
have  celebrated  him ;  and  all  ages  will  celebrate  the  poet  of 
our  age,  for  he  was  born  for  all  Europe  and  for  all  ages. 

One  consideration  occurs  to  me,  as  striking  and  true  as  it 
is  applicable  to  the  present  state  of  our  country;  listen  to  if, 
my  friends,  with  attention,  that  you  may  make  it  your  own., 
and  that  it  may  become  a  generally  acknowledged  truth. 

There  have  been  many  great  and  splendid  nations  in  the 
world,  but  few  have  been  the  epochs  of  their  true  glory:  one 
phenomenon,  I  am  inclined  to  believe,  is  wanting  in  the  his- 
tory of  these  nations,  and  one,  the  possibility  of  the  appear- 
ance of  which  the  all-considering  mind  of  the  philosopher  has 
much  doubted.  Almost  all  the  nations  of  the  world  have  fall- 
en from  the  hands  of  one  master  into  those  of  another;  some 
have  been  benefitted,  others  have  been  injured  by  the  change ; 
but  the  eye  of  the  historian  has  not  yet  seen  a  nation  ensla- 
ved by  barbarians,  and  more  particularly  by  barbarians  rooted 
for  ages  in  their  soil — has  not  yet  seen,  I  say,  such  a  people 
throw  off  their  slavery  unassisted  and  alone.  This  is  the 
phenomenon;  and  now,  for  the  first  time  in  the  history  of  the 
world,  we  witness  it  in  Greece,  yes,  in  Greece  alone  !  The 
philosopher  beholds  it  from  afar,  and  his  doubts  are  dissipa- 
ted; the  historian  sees  it,  and  prepares  his  citation  of  it  as  a 


48G  APPENDIX. 

new  event  in  the  fortunes  of  nations ;  the  statesman  sees  it, 
and  becomes  more  observant  and  more  on  his  guard.  Such 
is  the  extraordinary  time  in  which  we  live.  My  friends,  the 
insurrection  of  Greece  is  not  an  epoch  of  our  nation  alone; 
it  is  an  epoch  of  all  nations  :  for,  as  I  before  observed,  it  is 
a  phenomenon  which  stands  alone  in  the  political  history  of 
nations. 

The  great  mind  of  the  highly-gifted  and  much-lamented 
Byron  observed  this  phenomenon,  and  he  wished  to  unite  his 
name  with  our  glory.  Other  revolutions  have  happened  m 
his  time,  but  he  did  not  enter  into  any  of  them — he  did  not 
assist  any  of  them ;  for  their  character  and  nature  were  total- 
ly different ;  the  cause  of  Greece  alone  was  a  cause  worthy 
of  him  whom  all  the  learned  of  Europe  celebrate.  Consider, 
then,  my  friends,  consider  the  time  in  which  you*  live — in 
what  a  struggle  you  are  engaged ;  consider  that  the  glory  of 
past  ages  admits  not  of  comparison  with  yours ;  the  friends 
of  liberty,  the  philanthropists,  the  philosophers  of  all  nations, 
and  especially  of  the  enlightened  and  generous  English  na- 
tion, congratulate  you,  and  from  afar  rejoice  with  you;  all 
animate  you :  and  the  poet  of  our  age,  already  crowned  with 
immortality,  emulous  of  your  glory,  came  personally  to  your 
shores,  that  he  might,  together  with  yourselves,  wash  out 
with  his  blood  the  marks  of  tyranny  from  our  polluted  soil. 

Born  in  the  great  capital  of  England,  his  descent  noble, 
on  the  side  of  both  his  father  and  his  mother,  what  unfeigned 
joy  did  his  Philhellenic  heart  feel,  when  our  poor  city,  in 
token  of  our  gratitude,  inscribed  his  name  among  the  number 
of  her  citizens.  In  the  agonies  of  death;  yes,  at  the  mo- 
ment when  eternity  appeared  before  him ;  as  he  was  linger- 
ing on  the  brink  of  mortal  and  immortal  life;  when  all  the 
material  world  appeared  but  as  a  speck  in  the  great  works  of 
Divine  Omnipotence ; — in  that  awful  hour,  but  two  names 
dwelt  upon  the  lips  of  this  illustrious  individual,  leaving  all 
the  world  besides — the  names  of  his  only  and  much  beloved 
daughter  and  of  Greece  :  these  two  names,  deeply  engraven 
on  his  heart,  even  the  moment  of  death  could  not  efface. 
4  My  daughter  !'  he  said;  '  Greece  !'  he  exclaimed ;  and  his 
spirit  passed  away.  What  Grecian  heart  will  not  be  deeply 
affected  as  often  as  it  recalls  to  mind  this  moment ! 

Our  tears,  my  friends,  will  be  grateful,  very  grateful  to 
his  shade,  for  they  are  the  tears  of  sincere  affection ;  but 
much  more  grateful  will  be  our  deeds  in  the  cause  of  our 
country,  which,  though  removed  from  us,  he  will  observe 


APPENDIX.  487 

from  the  heavens,  of  which  his  virtues  have  doubtless  open* 
ed  to  him  the  gates.  This  return  alone  does  he  require  from 
us  for  all  his  munificence  ;  this  reward  for  his  love  towards 
us;  this  consolation  for  his  sufferings  in  our  cause;  and  this 
inheritance  for  the  loss  of  his  invaluable  life.  When  your 
exertions,  my  friends,  shall  have  liberated  us  from  the  hands 
which  have  so  long  held  us  down  in  chains  ;  from  the  hands 
"Which  have  torn  from  our  arms  our  property,  our  brothers, 
our  children; — then  will  his  spirit  rejoice,  then  will  his  shade 
be  satisfied! — Yes,  in  that  blessed  hour  of  our  freedom,  the 
Archbishop  will  extend  his  sacred  and  free  hand*  and  pro- 
nounce a  blessing  over  his  venerated  tomb  :  the  young  war- 
rior, sheathing  his  sword,  red  with  the  blood  of  his  tyrannical 
oppressors,  will  strew  it  with  laurel ;  the  statesman  will  con- 
secrate it  with  his  oratory;  and  the  poet,  resting  upon  the 
marble,  will  become  doubly  inspired;  the  virgins  of  Greece, 
(whose  beauty  our  illustrious  fellow-citizen  Byron  has  cele- 
brated in  many  of  his  poems,)  without  any  longer  fearing  con- 
tamination from  the  rapacious  hands  of  our  oppressors,  crown- 
ing their  heads  with  garlands,  will  dance  round  it,  and  sing 
of  the  beauty  of  our  land,  which  the  poet  of  our  age  has  al- 
ready commemorated  with  such  grace  and  truth.  But  what 
sorrowful  thought  now  presses  upon  my  mind !  My  fancy 
has  carried  me  away;  I  had  pictured  to  myself  all  that  my 
heart  could  have  desired ;  I  had  imagined  the  blessings  of 
our  bishops,  the  hymns,  and  laurel  crowns,  and  the  dance  of 
the  virgins  of  Greece,  round  the  tomb  of  the  benefactor  of 
Greece; — but  this  tomb  will  not  contain  his  precious  re- 
mains; the  tomb  will  remain  void;  but  a  few  days  more  will 
his  body  remain  on  the  face  of  our  land — of  his  new  chosen 
country;  it  cannot  be  given  over  to  our  arms;  it  must  be 
borne  to  his  own  native  land,  which  is  honoured  by  his 
birth. 

Oh  Daughter!  most  dearly  beloved  by  him;  your  arms 
will  receive  him;  your  tears  will  bathe  the  tomb  which  con- 
tains his  body ;  and  the  tears  of  the  orphans  of  Greece  will 
be  shed  over  the  urn  containing  his  precious  heart,  and  over 
all  the  land  of  Greece,  for  all  the  land  of  Greece  is  his  tomb. 
As  in  the  last  moment  of  his  life  you  and  Greece  were  alone 
in  his  heart  and  upon  his  lips,  it  was  but  just  that  she  (Greece) 
should  retain  a  share  of  the  precious  remains.  Missolonghi, 
his  country,  will  ever  watch  over  and  protect  with  all  her 
strength  the  urn  containing  his  venerated  heart,  as  a  symbol  of 
hts  love  towards  us.    All  Greece,  clofhjed  in  mourning,  and 


488  APPENDIX. 

i  nconsolable,  accompanies  the  procession  in  which  it  is  borne  y 
all  ecclesiastical,  civil,  and  military  honours  attend  it;  all  his 
fellow  eitizens  of  Missolonghi,  and  fellow-countrymen  of 
Greece,  follow  it,  crowning  it  with  their  gratitude,  and  be- 
dewing it  with  their  tears ;  it  is  blessed  by  the  pious  bene- 
dictions and  prayers  of  our  archbishop,  bishop,  and  all  our 
clergy.  Learn,  noble  Lady,  learn  that  chieftains  bore  it  on 
their  shoulders,  and  carried  it  to  the  church ;  thousands  of 
Greek  soldiers  lined  the  way  through  which  it  passed,  with 
the  muzzles  of  their  muskets,  which  had  destroyed  so  many 
tyrants,  pointed  towards  the  ground,  as  though  they  would 
war  against  that  earth  which  was  to  deprive  them  for  ever  of 
the  sight  of  their  benefactor ; — all  this  crowd  of  soldiers, 
ready  at  a  moment  to  march  against  the  implacable  enemy 
of  Christ  and  man,  surrounded  the  funeral  coach,  and  swore 
never  to  foget  the  sacrifices  made  by  your  Father  for  us,  and 
never  to  allow  the  spot  where  his  heart  is  placed,  to  be  tram- 
pled upon  by  barbarous  and  tyrannical  feet.*  Thousands  of 
Christian  voices  were  in  a  moment  heard,  and  the  temple  of 
the  Almighty  resounded  with  supplications  and  prayers  that 
his  venerated  remains  might  be  safely  conveyed  to  his  native 
land,  and  that  his  soul  might  rest  where  the  righteous  alone 
find  rest !" 


NO.  III. 

PHILANTHROPIC  SOCIETY. 

Address  of  Nicolas  Jeracaris,  of  Scio,  delivered  to  a  Meet- 
ing of  Patriots  convened  at  Napoli  di  Romania,  on  the 
Xtoth  of  August,  1824,  to  discuss  the  propriety  of  forming 
a  Philanthropic  Society  in  Greece. 

wiFRIENDS  AND  FELLOW  COUNTRYMEN  ! 

"Convinced  of  the  patriotic  zeal  and  humane  sentiments 
which  animate  all  those  whom  I  have  nDW  the  honour  to  ad- 
dress, it  affords  me  great  satisfaction  to  have  an  opportunity 
of  submitting  the  following  facts  for  your  consideration;  sa- 
tisfied that  whatever  may  be  the  result  of  this  day's  meeting, 
they  will  be  received  with  candour  and  indulgence. 

*  The  Greeks  hoped,  and  expected  when  this  was  written,  that  his 
remains  would  be  interred  at  Missolonghi.  But  as  we  have  already 
seen  in  the  account  of  his  illness  and  death,  they  were  transported  to 
England,  to  bo  intombed  with  bis  ancestors. 


APPENDIX.  489 

**  It  must  be  well  known  to  you,  that  after  the  breaking 
out  of  our  revolution,  and  the  cruelties  which  preceded  and 
followed  the  event,  great  numbers  of  families  took  refuge  in 
the  Morea,  both  on  account  of  its  having  become  the  seat  oi 
government,  and  because  it  would  afford  a  safer  asylum  than 
any  other  point  of  the  confederation.  It  would  be  an  act  of 
injustice  to  the  national  character,  were  I  to  say,  that  all  who 
bad  any  means  of  ministering  to  the  wants  of  the  fugitives, 
most  of  whom  came  here  in  a  state  of  the  greatest  destitution 
and  wretchedness,  did  not  do  their  utmost  to  alleviate  the 
sufferings  of  their  fellow  citizens  on  that  occasion.  When 
the  nature  of  the  contest  is  considered,  I  need  hardly  say, 
that  the  number  who  could  stretch  forth  the  hand  of  charity- 
was  very  limited,  while  the  more  important  duties  of  con- 
ducting the  naval  and  military  operations,  precluded  the  pos- 
sibility of  the  Executive  devoting  its  attention  to  the  subject. 
The  natural  consequences  of  this  state  of  things  has  been, 
that  independently  of  thousands  having  become  the  victims 
of  poverty  and  disease,  during  the  early  stages  of  the  war, 
the  spectacle  of  wretchedness  exhibited  in  various  parts  of 
the  Peloponnesus  at  this  moment,  is  not  less  heart-rending 
than  it  has  been  at  any  former  period.  This  is  occasioned 
by  the  recent  influx  of  not  less  than  fifteen  thousand  fugitives 
from  Livadia,  Negropont,  Candia,  and  Ipsara.  These  unhap- 
py fugitives,  of  whom  three-fourths  are  women  and  children, 
have  taken  refuge  at  Epidaurus,  Malvasia,  on  the  adjacent 
coast  of  Maina,  and  in  this  place.  When  I  state  that  by  far 
the  greatest  portion  of  these  poor  creatures,  are  suffering  un- 
der the  double  calamity  of  want  and  sickness,  without  ade- 
quate food  or  raiment,  and  obliged  to  live  in  the  open  air,  f 
feel  assured  that  no  more  is  required  to  prove  the  necessity 
of  the  present  meeting,  or  excite  the  sympathy  of  every  man 
•who  professes  a  spark  of  benevolence  and  Christian  charity. 

"  So  far  as  our  self-interest,  independent  of  every  other 
consideration,  is  connected  with  our  duty  on  the  present  oc- 
casion, I  shall  only  mention  two  points,  which  cannot  fail  to 
Strike  the  most  superficial  observer.  So  long  as  no  steps  are 
taken  to  relieve  the  distresses  of  our  fugitive  countrymen, 
bow  can  it  be  expected  that  they  will  abandon  their  helpless 
families  to  enrol  themselves  in  bur  fleets  and  armies  ?  Thus 
it  is,  that  numbers  of  brave  soldiers  and  seamen,  whose  pre- 
sence would  be  of  such  utility  in  the  field  of  honour,  either 
die  neglected,  or  lead  a  life  of  sloth  and  misery.  But  what 
wiH  be  the  late  of  the  other  sex,  if  nothing  be  done  to  show 

43* 


490  APPENDIX. 

the  national  sympathy  in  their  favour  ?  It  is  true,  the  Greek 
women  have  as  yet  borne  up  against  their  accumulated  mis- 
fortunes with  the  most  heroic  constancy,  preferring  death 
itself,  to  any  dereliction  of  their  duties  as  wives  and  mothers. 
But  it  is  for  you,  my  friends  and  fellow  countrymen,  to  re- 
flect on  the  possible  consequences  of  withholding  charity,  or 
betraying  indifference,  to  our  suffering  countrywomen ! 

"  Impelled  by  the  crying  necessity  of  the  case,  and  anxious 
to  insure  the  co-operation  of  government  in  forming  a  Phi- 
lanthropic Society,  I  have  already  addressed-a  memorial  on 
the  subject  to  the  Executive,  pointing  out  among  other  mat- 
ters, a  mode  by  which  a  sum  of  two  thousand  dollars  per 
month,  might  be  raised  in  this  place  alone,  without  interfering 
with  the  public  revenues.  As  I  shall  do  myself  the  honour  of 
laying  a  copy  of  my  memorial  before  you,  it  is  unnecessary 
to  make  any  further  allusion  to  its  contents  in  this  place. 

"  Should  the  above  most  desirable  association  be  formed 
at  the  seat  of  government,  I  feel  assured  the  example  will  be 
followed  by  the  formation  of  branch  societies  throughout  all 
the  provinces.  Without  dwelling  on  the  mass  of  human 
suffering  which  must  be  removed  by  such  a  beneficent  esta- 
blishment, what  better  reply  can  we  give  to  the  detractors  of 
our  national  character.  Called  by  Providence  to  take  our 
place  among  those  nations  of  Europe,  which  knows  to  what 
an  extent  our  ancestors  contributed  to  modern  civilization,  we 
are  no  less  bound  to  show  those  nations  who  have  so  gene- 
rously received  the  Greek  patriots  in  their  bosom,  that  not- 
withstanding all  the  calamities  of  our  revolution,  we  are  also 
alive  to  the  duties  of  humanity  and  benevolence.  I  am  satis- 
fied, too,  that  the  proposed  measure,  if  carried  into  effect, 
will  be  highly  gratifying  to  the  nations  who  have  in  various 
ways  sympathized  in  our  eventful  struggle  ;  but  more  espe' 
cially  to  those  foreigners,  who,  abandoning  their  own  coun- 
try, have  come  to  share  in  our  misfortunes,  and  even  die  in 
combating  for  our  holy  cause." 


Memorial  addressed  to  the  Provisional  Government  of  Greece, 
relative  to  the  formation  of  a  Philanthropic  Society. 

"  Were  those  who  govern  the  people,  even  gifted  with  the 
hundred  eyes  of  Argus,  such  is  the  multiplicity  of  concerns 
whicli  constantly  occupy  their  attention,  and  the  caies  to 


APPENDIX.  491 

"which  they  are  exposed,  that  it  would  be  impossible  for  them 
to  think  of  every  thing  that  is  required  for  the  benefit  of  the 
governed.  This  is  one  powerful  reason,  why  it  is  the  privi- 
lege of  every  lover  of  his  country,  except  in  despotic  govern- 
ments, to  observe  the  sufferings  of  their  fellow  citizens,  reflect 
on  the  means  of  alleviating  them,  and  lay  his  suggestions  be- 
fore the  proper  authorities.  These  are,  on  the  other  hand, 
in  duty  bound,  to  take  such  suggestions  into  consideration, 
and  if  found  beneficial,  to  carry  them  into  effect  without  de- 
lay. The  consequence  of  treating  propositions  for  the  gene- 
ral good  with  indifference  or  neglect  is,  that  it  proves  the 
rulers  to  have  deviated  from  the  social  compact,  while  it 
renders  them  deservedly  unpopular,  if  not  unfit  to  govern. 

"  Convinced,  as  I  am,  that  the  Provisional  Government 
is  most  anxious  to  diminish  those  evils  inseparable  from  the 
war,  and  which  have  fallen  upon  a  large  portion  of  the  popu- 
lation, and  that  the  variety,  as  well  as  importance  of  other 
matters,  have  alone  prevented  it  from  taking  the  subject 
more  immediately  into  consideration,  I  humbly  beg  leave,  re- 
spectfully to  offer  my  sentiments,  as  to  the  best  and  speediest 
means  of  alleviating  some  portion  of  the  public  misery,  which 
continues  to  aggravate  the  other  horrors  so  inseparable  from 
the  war  of  regeneration. 

"  It  is  well  known  that  thousands  of  my  countrymen,  who 
were  enabled  to  escape  from  the  hands  of  our  blood-thirsty 
tyrants,  have  taken  refuge  in  the  Morea,  hoping  here  to  find 
profitable  employment  and  the  relief  of  their  distresses — dis- 
tresses which  have  deprived  great  numbers,  as  it  threatens  to 
deprive  others,  of  that  existence  which  the  Almighty  had  pre- 
served, in  order  that  they  might  one  day  have  an  opportunity 
of  avenging  the  murder  of  their  wives,  children,  and  parents  ! 
With  every  disposition  to  aid  their  unfortunate  fellow-citi- 
zens, such  is  the  number  of  those  who  possess  no  adequate 
means  of  sustaining  life,  that  it  has  been  impossible  to  pre- 
vent the  miserable  spectacle  of  whole  families  perishing  from 
absolute  want,  while  others  are  at  this  moment  exposed  in 
the  open  air,  without  any  hopes  whatever  of  relief,  except 
through  the  prompt  aid  of  government,  or  those  of  their  coun- 
trymen who  are  enabled  to  come  forward.  Seeing,  therefore., 
that  it  is  impossible  for  the  Executive  to  withdraw  any  part 
of  its  attention  from  the  great  objects  of  the  war,  while  in- 
dividual charity  only  requires  a  proper  impulse  to  become 
general  all  over  the  confederation,  I  beg  leave  to  offer  the. 
following  suggestions,  as  those  which  are,  in  my  humble 


492  APPENDIX. 

opinion,  best  calculated  to  provide  a  proper  remedy  fop  the 
distress  to  which  I  have  thus  alluded.     It  is  proposed — 

"  1st.  That  a  Philanthropic  Society  be  formed  at  the  seat 
ef  the  Provisional  Government,  and  an  immediate  appeal  be 
fssued  by  it,  to  all  classes  of  the  citizens,  calling  on  them  to 
Come  forward  in  aid  of  the  poor  and  necessitous. 

"  2nd.  That  each  shop-keeper  be  called  on  to  contribute 
the  trifling  sum  of  from  4  to  8  paras,  two  pence  half-penny, 
daily,  to  the  Philanthropic  Fund. 

"  3rd.  That  the  ministers  of  the  gospel  be  requested  to 
make  collections  in  their  respective  churches  for  the  same 
object. 

"4th.  That  a  small  box  be  placed  at  the  Custom-House, 
and  another  at  the  entrance  of  the  fortress,  to  receive  such 
donations  as  those  who  return  from  sea  and  land  journies 
may  be  disposed  to  give, 

"  5th.  That  a  small  additional  duty  be  levied  on  imports 
for  the  above  purpose. 

"  6th.  That  a  trifling  sum  be  retained  from  the  pay  of  all 
public  functionaries,  for  the  said  fund. 

"7th.  That  the  Priors  of  Monasteries  be  invited  to  con- 
tribute a  certain  sum  annually  to  the  Philanthropic  Fund. 

"  With  these  aids,  and  the  sums  arising  from  voluntary 
subscriptions,  the  Society  would  be  enabled  to  form  such  an 
establishment,  including  medical  men,  purveyors,  and  other 
attendants,  as  may  be  requisite  to  carry  the  objects  of  the  as* 
Sociation  into  active  effect. 

"  Such  is  the  object  to  which  I  would  entreat  the  support 
and  encouragement  of  the  Provisional  Government.  This 
is,  indeed,  all  that  is  required,  not  only  to  insure  the  success 
Of  the  Society  here,  but  lead  to  the  establishment  of  branch 
associations  throughout  the  confederacy;  thus  proving  to 
the  whole  civilized  world,  that  in  practising  the  fundamental 
principles  of  Christianity,  the  Greeks  are  worthy  of  the  sub- 
lime destinies  to  which  they  aspire. 

(Signed)         "  NICOLAS  JERACARIAS,  of  Srio. 

,  "  Napoli  di  JZo?nania,  Aug.  1st,  1824." 


APPENDIX.  493 

Letter  addressed  by  the  Deputation  of  the  Philanthropic  So- 
ciety of  Greece,  to  Joseph  Hume,  Esq.  M.  P.  William 
Allen,  Esq.  Treasurer  and  Secretary  to  the  Committee  of 
Friends,  in  favour  of  indigent  Greeks — Jeremy  Bentham., 
Esq.  and  John  Bowring,  Esq.  Hon.  Secretary  of  the 
Greek  Committee — enclosing  a  copy  of  the  Rules  of  the 
new  Society,  together  with  a  power  to  act  for  it  in  the 
United  Kingdom. 

1  lt  Napoli  di  Romania,  August  12-24th,  1824. 

M  Gentlemen : 

"  The  number  of  fugitives  pressing  into  liberated  Greece, 
from  those  points  which  are  still  cursed  with  the  presence  of 
our  late  sanguinary  tyrants,  added  to  an  epidemic  disease, 
the  natural  result  of  such  a  struggle  as  that  in  which  we  are 
engaged,  having  produced  the  greatest  distress  among  a 
large  portion  of  the  population,  while  thousands  are  thus 
prevented  from  going  forth  against  the  enemy,  and  our  youth 
left  without  instruction,  a  meeting  lately  convened  for  the 
purpose  of  taking  the  above  important  subject  into  consider- 
ation, with  a  view  of  adopting  ulterior  measures,  resolved  at 
once  to  form  themselves  into  an  association,  to  be  called  the 
Philanthropic  Society  of  regenerated  Greece,  the  organiza- 
tion of  which  we  have  the  honour  to  transmit,  not  doubting 
that  you  will  appreciate  the  advantages  of  such  an  institution 
at  a  moment  like  the  present. 

"  Although  the  success  which  has  attended  the  early  ef- 
forts of  the  Society  at  the  seat  of  government,  far  exceeds 
what  we  had  anticipated,  while  it  leads  us  to  entertain  the 
most  sanguine  hopes  for  the  future  ;  yet  such  are  the  accu- 
mulated wants  of  our  suffering  population,  and  the  multifa- 
rious objects  proposed  to  itself  by  the  Society,  that  it  would 
be  preposterous  to  expect  that  all  the  funds  required  could 
be  raised  in  Greece.  Calculating,  therefore,  on  the  sympa- 
thy which  has  been  shown  towards  the  Greek  cause,  it  has 
been  determined  to  appeal  to  the  Christian  world  of  every 
denomination  and  sect,  in  behalf  of  an  association,  establish- 
ed for  the  express  purpose  of  fulfilling  that  great  maxim  of 
our  common  faith,  which  the  Saviour  of  mankind  sought  to 
impress  on  his  followers  as  the  first  of  duties,  and  affording 
(he  best  claim  to  the  approbation  of  heaven. 

"  As  the  objects  of  the  association  are  fully  detailed  in  the 
accompanying  papejs3  it  only  remains  for  as  to  solicit  foe 


494  APPENDIX. 

iavour  of  your  becoming  the  agents  and  representatives  of 
the  Society  in  Great  Britain,  where  Greece  has  already  ex- 
perienced such  proofs  of  sympathy  and  benevolence.  It  was 
indeed  but  natural  for  us  to  appeal  more  especially  to  a  coun- 
try which  is  covered  with  charitable  institutions ;  and  if  we 
have  selected  you,  Gentlemen,  to  be  the  medium  of  this  ap- 
peal, it  is  because  your  names  have  been  mentioned  to  us  as 
feeing  closely  connected  with  the  formation  of  two  societies 
established  for  the  express  purpose  of  relieving  our  suffering 
countrymen,  or  aiding  us  in  the  struggle  for  independence. 

"  Leaving  the  mode  of  carrying  the  objects  of  the  Society 
into  effect,  in  the  United  Kingdom,  to  your  better  judgment, 
all  we  would  request  is,  that  you  might  be  pleased  to  trans- 
mit regular  lists  of  all  those  who  become  patrons  of  the  as- 
sociation, in  order  that  the  people  of  Greece  may  know, 
through  the  medium  of  the  public  press,  who  are  their 
benefactors. 

"  When  it  is  considered  that  an  institution  like  the  pre- 
sent, if  encouraged  and  brought  to  maturity,  while  it  minis- 
ters to  the  wants  of  thousands  now,  may,  at  no  distant  period, 
become  the  means  of  extending  civilization  far  beyond  the 
limits  of  Greece,  the  undersigned  feel  it  would  be  super- 
fluous to  offer  any  apology  for  the  liberty  they  have  taken  in 
soliciting  you  to  promote  the  objects  of  the  Society,  and  re- 
ceive contributions  for  it  in  England. 

"  With  expressions  of  heartfelt  gratitude  for  your  exer- 
tions in  favour  of  Greece,  the  undersigned  avail  themselves 
of  this  occasion  to  offer  you  the  assurance  of  their  highest 
consideration  and  respect. 

"  NICOLAS  JERACARIS,  Chairman. 

"  N.  KALERGI. 

"  GEORGIUS  GLARAKES, 

«  JOANIS  THEOTOKIS. 
(Signed)  "  DEMETRIUS  DESILLAS. 

«  T.  NEGRIS. 

"J.  CLASSIS. 
"  NICOLAS  fLOJAITES,  Hon.  Secretary," 


APPENDIX.  495 

ORGANIZATION  OF  THE 

PHILANTHROPIC  SOCIETY  OF  GREECE* 

Sect.  I. 

Of  the  Society  in  General. 

I.  Individuals  of  every  nation  and  condition  are  eligible 
to  become  members  of  the  Philanthropic  Society. 

II.  The  members  of  the  society  are  to  be  divided  into 
three  classes. 

I.  The  first  class  is  to  consist  of  persons  who  have  con- 
tributed to  the  funds  of  the  Society,  and  afford  person- 
al assistance. 

%  The  second  class  to  consist  of  those  who  only  contri- 
bute to  the  funds. 

3.  The  third  class  to  consist  of  persons  who,  not  being 
able  to  contribute  to  the  funds,  would  feel  disposed  to 
afford  their  personal  services. 

Sect.  II. 
Objects  of  the  Association 

III.  The  Society  will  occupy  itself  with, — 

1.  The  clothing  and  supporting  the  poor,  sick*  widows 

and  orphans.  . 

&.  The  education  of  orphans  and  destitute  children. 

IV.  The  Society  will  be  fixed  and  hold  its  meetings  when- 
ever the  seat  of  Government  may  be  established. 

V.  The  affairs  of  the  Society  shall  be  managed  by  a  depu- 
ration. 

1.  The  deputation  shall  consist  of  seven  members,  to  be 
chosen  out  from  the  first  class  only. 

2.  The  deputation  shall  be  under  a  president,  who  is  onr 
of  the  members  chosen  by  ballot,  and  elected  monthly 
from  the  number. 

3  The  deputation  shall  keep  records.  It  shall  have  a  se- 
cretary, an  accountant,  apothecaries,  and  their  clerks. 

Sect.  III. 
Of  the  General  Assemblies. 

VI.  The  members  of  the  Society,  personally  present,  shall 
elect  a  deputation  by  a  majority  of  votes. 

VII.  The  functions  of  the  said  deputation  are  to  be  con- 
tinued for  two  years.  Half  the  number  to  be  changed  at  tlir 
end  of  the  first  year;  that  is  to  say,  the  secretary,  treasurer, 
and  store-keeper,  to  be  also  chosen  by  ballot,  will  thus  fce 
changed  at  the  end  of  the  first  year. 


496  APPENDIX. 

VIII.  The  general  assemblies  of  the  Society  will  he  cam* 
posed  of  the  first  and  second  classes,  including  the  members 
of  the  deputation.  The  discussions  to  take  place  under  the 
president  for  the  time  being. 

IX.  In  the  general  assemblies,  (see  article  6)  the  member? 
of  the  Society  and  of  the  deputation  are  on  a  perfect  equali- 
ty as  to  the  right  of  voting. 

X.  The  members  of  the  first  and  second  class,  collected 
at  the  central  station,  are  under  the  obligation  of  attending 
at  all  the  ordinary  and  extraordinary  meetings  of  the  Socie- 
ty, except  when  prevented  from  an  admissible  cause. 

XI.  Every  member  of  the  society  has  a  right  to  publish 
his  speeches  or  opinions,  through  the  medium  of  the  press. 

XII.  The  seal  of  the  Society  shall  be  a  head  of  Apollo, 
with  this  inscription,  "  Philanthropic  Society  of  regenerated 
Greece*" 

Sect.  IV. 
Duties  of  the  Deputation. 

XIII.  The  assemblages  of  the  deputies  will  be  regarded 
as  complete,  whenever  two  thirds  of  the  members,  with  the 
President,  are  present. 

XIV.  The  resolutions  of  the  deputies  will  be  regulated 
by  a  majority  of  votes. 

XV.  All  the  written  documentary  proceedings  shall  be 
signed  by  the  President,  and  countersigned  by  the  assem- 
bled number  of  the  deputation,  and  the  Secretary  shall  cause 
the  seal  of  the  Society  to  be  affixed  to  them. 

XVI.  It  will  appoint  agents  or  correspondents  in  the  pro- 
vinces or  abroad. 

XVII.  It  will  keep  up  a  correspondence  with  the  foreign 
members  resident  out  of  Greece,  and  in  reference  to  objects 
coming  within  the  views  of  the  Society ;  but  always,  how- 
ever, with  the  concurrence  of  the  members  present. 

XVIII.  It  will  convene  the  members  present,  to  attend 
the  ordinary  weekly  meeting,  to  consider  and  resolve  on  the 
various  objects  which  may  arise  for  their  consideration;  and 
it  will  unite  them  to  meet  once  a  month,  to  render  a  special 
account  of  the  diversified  objects  which  have  occupied  their 
attention ;  the  result  to  be  made  public  through  the  medium 
of  the  press. 

XIX.  It  will  promulgate,  by  means  of  the  public  press, 
the  names  of  all  new  members,  as  well  as  specify  the  amount 
of  their  contributions. 


APPENDIX.  497 

Sect.  V. 
On  the  Duties  of  the  Secretary. 

XX.  The  secretary  of  the  deputation  shall  prepare  and 
preside  over  the  correspondence,  keeping  up  the  degree  of 
order  and  punctuality  necessary  in  the  receipt  and  dispatch 
q{  all  documentary  proceedings. 

XXI.  He  will  publish  regularly  the  report  of  meetings, 
containing  a  minute  account  of  all  that  occurs  either  in  them 
or  as  connected  with  the  affairs  of  the  Society. 

Sect.  VI. 
Duties  of  the  Treasurer. 

XXII.  The  Treasurer  shall  keep  registers  of  all  sums  re- 
ceived and  disbursed,  seeing  that  the  entries  are  carefully 
and  promptly  made. 

XXIII.  He  shall  make  no  issue  of  monies,  without  a  legal 
order  in  writing  from  the  deputation. 

XXIV.  All  the  vouchers  of  the  accountant  shall  be  sign- 
ed by  him,  and  countersigned  by  the  clerk  who  keeps  the 
books  of  his  department.  The  accountant  shall  receive  all 
sums  tendered  to  him,  and  shall  issue  the  necessary  receipts 
or  vouchers. 

XXV.  At  the  end  of  each  month,  he  shall  return  the  de- 
putation an  exact  account  of  all  the  receipts  and  disburse- 
ments. 

Sect.  VII. 
Duties  of  the  Dispensers. 

XXVI.  All  the  written  orders  of  the  dispensers  shall  be 
signed  by  the  clerk,  to  whose  department  the  voucher  be 
consigned ;  he  shall  keep  regular  and  appropriate  registers 
of  the  same. 

XXVII.  The  dispensers  are  to  receive  all  the  articles  or 
items  of  money  received  by  the  Society,  and  they  are  to  give 
proper  receipts  for  the  same. 

XXVIII.  The  apothecaries  are  not  to  deliver  the  most 
trifling  article,  without  a  legal  written  order  from  the  depu- 
tation. , 

XXIX.  They  are  to  render  a  monthly  report  of  every 
thing  received  and  delivered  by  them. 

Sect.  VIII. 
Of  Admission. 

XXX.  As  soon  as  they  have  paid  their  contribitions  to  the 
accountant  or  dispensers,  the  members  of  the  first  class  shall 

43 


498  APPENDIX. 

receive  a  written  acknowledgment  as  a  receipt  of  the  same, 
which  they  are  to  present  to  the  deputation,  upon  which 
they  will  receive  a  written  diploma  of  their  admission,  and 
be  thus  recognized  as  members  of  the  Society. 
it  XXXI.  The  admission  of  members  of  the  second  class 
will  be  regulated  in  the  same  manner. 

XXXII.  Members  of  the  third  class  are  admitted  merely 
by  a  written  diploma  from  the  deputation. 

Sect.  IX. 

Of  Contributions. 

XXXIII.  The  Contribution  of  each  member  cannot  be 
less  than  fifty  piastres. 

XXXIV.  The  contributions  may  be  either  in  specie,  or  in 
articles  useful  and  necessary,  and  signified  to  be  receivable 
by  the  deputation. 

Sect.  X. 

XXXV.  The  Society  places  itself  under  the  control  of  the 
laws  and  of  the  government,  and  it  invokes  the  approbation 
and  support  of  the  philanthropists  of  the  whole  civilized 
world. 

XXXVI.  The  undersigned  organizers  of  the  present  Soci- 
ety, take  upon  themselves  its  entire  management,  until  the 
number  of  members  shall  have  increased  to  thirty-one  of  the 
first  and  second  classes ;  and  the  first  general  meeting  of  the 
Society  will  be  convened,  in  order  that  it  may  proceed  to 
the  election  of  the  deputies,  and  the  subordinate  officers,  ac- 
cording to  the  foregoing  plan  of  organization. 

Given  at  Napoli  di  Romania,  l-13th  August,  1824,  in  the 

FOURTH  YEAR   OF  GRECIAN    INDEPENDENCE. 

(Signed) 

D.  Desillas.  Geo.  Glarakes. 

Dem.  Gouzeles.  F.  Negris. 
P.  A.  Anagnostopoulo.    E.  Kalergi. 

Joanis  Theotokis.  N.  Nikitopoulos. 

jf.  Jerakaris.  N.  Theseus. 

N.  Kalergi.  T.  Valiano. 

(True  Copy)  N.  FLOGAITES,  Sechj. 


APPENDIX. 

NO.  IV. 

DECLARATION  OF  INDEPENDENCE. 

THE  NATIONAL  ASSEMBLY  TO  THE  GREEKS. 

The  Greek  nation,  wearied  by  the  dreadful  weight  of  Ot- 
toman oppression,  and  resolved  to  break  its  yoke,  though  at 
the  price  of  the  greatest  sacrifices,  proclaims  to-day,  before 
God  and  men,  by  the  organ  of  its  lawful  representatives,  met 
in  a  national  assemblyy  its  independence. 

Descendants  of  a  generous  and  enlightened  nation,  wit- 
nesses of  the  happiness  which  the  sacred  regis  of  law  secures 
to  the  civilized  nations  of  Europe  !  Ye  all  know,  that  the 
measure  of  our  sufferings  was  full.  It  was  impossible  for  us 
any  longer  to  bear,  without  being  charged  with  cowardice 
and  stupidity,  the  cruel  scourge  of  Ottoman  rule.  Has  not 
the  Turk,  during  four  centuries,  trampling  underfoot  reason 
and  justice,  disposed  of  us  as  his  caprice  prompted  ?  We 
flew  to  arms  then,  in  order  to  avenge  the  injuries  which  an 
insolent  tyrant  had  heaped  on  our  country ;  injuries  utterly 
unexampled,  and  which  left  far  behind  it  all  the  various 
shapes  of  oppression  which  have  ever  desolated  and  dyed 
the  earth  with  carnage. 

Our  warfare  against  the  Turks,  far  from  being  the  effect 
of  a  seditious  and  Jacobinical  movement,  or  the  pretext  of  an 
ambitious  faction,  is  a  national  war,  undertaken  for  the  sole 
purpose  of  reconquering  our  rights,  and  securing  our  exist- 
ence and  honour.  In  vain  did  injustice,  by  depriving  us  of 
all  securities,  hope  to  stifle  in  our  hearts  the  conviction  of 
their  necessity.  As  if,  formed  out  of  the  vilest  materials,  we 
were  condemned  by  nature  to  perpetual  servitude  ;  doomed 
to  crouch  beneath  the  wild  sway  of  ferocious  tyrants,  who 
came  from  afar  to  subdue  and  to  crush  us  !  No,  a  thousand 
ages  of  proscription  would  not  bar  the  sacred  rights,  whose 
creation  was  the  work  of  nature  herself.  They  were  torn 
from  us  by  violence  ;  and  violence,  more  righteously  direct- 
ed, may  one  day  win  them  back,  and  hold  them  forth  in  all 
their  reviving  brilliancy  to  the  admiration  of  the  universe. 
In  a  word,  they  are  rights  which  we  have  never  ceased  re- 
claiming in  the  very  heart  of  our  country,  by  every  method 
which  occasional  opportunities  placed  in  our  power. 

Strong  in  these  principles,  and  wishing  to  advance  as  the 
equals  of  the  Christians  of  Europe,  in  the  paths  of  civilization, 
we  combined  into  one  great  war  all  the  partial  and  secret 
conflicts  which  we  had  long  waged  against  the  Ottoman  em- 


500  APPENDIX. 

pire.  We  swore  to  conquer,  and  to  behold  our  country  go- 
verned by  just  laws,  or  to  disappear  from  the  face  of  the 
earth.  During  ten  months  God  has  blessed  our  steps  in  this 
glorious  but  rugged  road.  Our  arms  have  been  often  vic- 
torious, but  often  they  have  experienced  resistance.  We 
are  struggling  to  remove  the  obstacles  which  retard  our 
triumph.  Our  political  organization  was  then  deferred,  and 
the  nation,  solely  occupied  in  repelling  a  lasting  danger, 
foresaw  that  appearance  of  disorder  which  ever  follows  great 
convulsions,  and  which  the  injudicious  alone  can  make  a 
matter  of  reproach  against  us. 

As  soon  as  circumstances  allowed  us  to  think  of  a  plan  of 
government,  we  saw  the  Greek  continent  of  the  east  and 
west,  the  Peloponnesus,  and  the  islands,  successively  pro- 
ceed in  their  organization,  and  prepare  the  way  for  that  ge- 
neral constitutional  system  which  was  necessary  to  direct 
the  progress  of  our  revolution:  For  this  purpose,  the  depu- 
ties of  the  provinces  and  of  the  islands,  being  duly  authori- 
zed, and  having  met  in  a  national  assembly,  and  after  delibe- 
rately considering  the  state  of  the  country,  have  decreed  the 
basis  and  the  provisional  form  of  the  government  which  is 
to  preside  over  the  future  destinies  of  your  country.  This 
government,  founded  on  justice,  instituted  by  universal  con- 
sent, is  now  the  only  legitimate  and  national  government. 
The  nations  of  Greece  will  therefore  hasten  to  recognize  it. 

Two  august  bodies,  the  executive  power  and  the  senate, 
will  be  at  the  head  of  the  administration,  supported  by  the 
judicial  power,  which  will  discharge  its  duties  quite  inde- 
pendently of  the  former. 

The  assembly  declares  to  the  nation,  that,  having  comple- 
ted its  task,  it  this  day  dissolves  itself.  It  is  the  duty  of  the 
nation  to  submit  to  the  laws  and  the  authorities  which  ema- 
nate from  it.  Grecians !  but  a  little  while  since,  ye  said, 
"  no  more  slavery !"  and  the  power  of  the  tyrant  has  vanish- 
ed. But  it  is  concord  alone  which  can  consolidate  your 
liberty  and  independence.  The  assembly  offers  up  its  pray- 
ers, that  the  mighty  arm  of  the  Most  High  may  raise  the 
nation  towards  the  sanctuary  of  his  eternal  wisdom.  Thus 
discerning  their  true  interests,  the  magistrates,  by  a  vigilant 
foresight,  the  people,  by  a  sincere  devotion,  will  succeed  in 
founding  the  long-desired  prosperity  of  our  common  country. 

EriDAURUS,  the  15th  of  January,  1822, 

and  the  First  Year  of  Independence. 


APPENDIX.  501 

NO.  V. 
DECLARATION  TO  THE  CHRISTIAN  POWERS. 

The  great  struggle  in  which  the  Greek  nation  is  engaged, 
has  occupied  Europe,  as  it  will  the  pens  of  historians.  From 
the  first  moment,  all  hearts,  imbued  with  honour  and  sensi- 
bility, applauded  these  words — "  Greece  is  fighting  for  liber- 
ty." A  prey  to  the  most  humiliating  and  severe  oppression, 
she  excited  the  pity  of  the  whole  civilized  world.  Humanity 
loudly  claimed  the  deliverance  of  her  benefactress.  Justice, 
prostrate  before  the  throne  of  the  Most  High,  accused  those 
who  profaned  the  mysteries  of  Christ,  plundered  all  pro- 
perty, and  caused  the  tears  of  the  widow  and  the  orphan  to 
flow. 

Whence  comes  it  that  European  policy,  far  from  aiding 
such  virtuous  efforts,  suffers  itself  to  be  deceived  as  to  their 
tendency  ?  Whence  comes  it,  that  an  unprecedented  malevo- 
lence endeavoured  to  calumniate  the  views  of  an  oppressed 
nation,  and  to  darken  the  brilliancy  of  actions  which  needed 
not  excuse !  Had  not  the  insurrection  at  once  its  reason 
and  justification  in  previous  oppression  ?  Was  not  armed 
despair  the  only  protector  capable  of  redressing  our  wrongs? 
Whatever  may  have  been  the  occasion  on  which  the  revolu- 
tion burst  forth,  whatever  may  have  been  the  circumstances 
of  its  origin,  it  is  proved  to  have  been  founded  on  the  uni- 
versal discontent,  whose  consequences  were  sooner  or  later 
to  include  all  Greece  in  one  conflagration.  The  Greeks  were 
serving  foreign  masters,  inexorable  tyrants,  insatiable  tigers ! 
No  compact  bound  them  to  the  foreign  power,  which,  in  the 
madness  of  its  pride,  claimed  to  rule  them  by  mere  brute 
force  for  ever.  The  time  was  come,  not  to  overthrow  a  na- 
tional and  respected  sovereignty,  for  some  chimera  of  perfect- 
ibility, but  to  break  a  sceptre  of  iron,  to  repel  force  by  force, 
and  to  substitute  immutable  rights  to  atrocious  realities. 
Besides,  what  disasters  could  be  feared,  greater  or  more  mon- 
strous, than  those  which  were  afflicting  Candia,  Epirus,  and 
the  Morea  ?  An  execrable  administration  was  sucking  the 
last  drop  of  blood  from  the  veins  of  the  political  body.  The 
complaints  of  the  oppressed  expired  before  they  reached  the 
Sublime  Porte,  as  Destiny,  that  merciless  goddess,  used  to 
see  the  incense  of  mortals  melt  away  before  her  temple  of 


503  APPENDIX. 

iron.  Already  a  conversion  to  Mahometanism  appeared  their 
sole  safeguard  to  the  wretched  population ;  and  what  would 
have  become  of  the  sacred  claims  which  the  Gospel  has  ac- 
quired to  the  pious  gratitude  of  the  Greeks  ?  Would  Europe 
have  wished  to  see  the  consummation  of  this  gigantic  act  of 
apostacy  1  Would  she,  though  proud  of  a  Christian  Holy 
Alliance,  have  sanctioned  afresh  the  triumph  of  the  Arabian 
code  over  Christianity,  of  barbarism  over  civilization  ? 

We  did  right  in  taking  up  arms,  if  it  was  only  to  fall  with 
honour;  and  when  the  first  step  was  trodden,  it  was  neces- 
sary to  advance.  The  revolution,  popular  in  its  motives,  be- 
came still  more  so  in  its  progress.  The  frightful  acts  of  ven- 
geance exercised  on  so  many  distinguished  persons,  on  so 
many  illustrious  families,  pointed  out  the  abyss  into  which 
the  entire  nation  would  fall,  if  it  had  the  baseness  to  yield. 
What  security  could  it  obtain  against  the  violators  of  all  law? 
It  is  thus  that  the  Greeks  have  chosen  the  desperate  alterna- 
tive of  perishing  or  of  being  delivered.  And  they  would  in 
fact  have  perished,  if  Providence  had  not  hitherto  vouchsafed 
the  miracle  of  our  successes.  For  the  last  thirteen  months, 
God  has  aided  the  work  of  the  righteous.  They  see  the  all- 
powerful  hand,  which  created  this  harmonious  system  of 
worlds,  laid  heavily  on  both  nations  and  kings,  repairing  the 
ravages  of  time,  and  distributing  the  compensations  of  ages. 
Greece,  abandoned  by  the  rest  of  the  earth,  with  the  volume 
of  her  past  splendour,  and  her  woes,  and  her  rights,  in  her 
hand — Greece  will  still  pursue  her  arduous  career.  Her  ci- 
ties sacked,  her  villages  burnt,  her  population  decimated,  her 
fields  ravaged,  bear  witness  to  her  proud  determination. 
Crushed  by  numbers,  she  will  yet  wash  out  her  defeats  in 
her  blood.  What  will  be  the  feelings  of  Europe  towards 
her  ?  Assembled  Greece  has  solemnly  proclaimed  her  inde- 
pendence, and  has  given  herself  a  government,  surrounded  by 
national  emblems,  having  for  its  first  object  the  welfare  of 
Greece,  and  not  the  interest  of  a  party.  This  legitimate  or- 
gan of  the  nation  has  thought  it  due  equally  to  itself  and  to 
the  people,  to  lay  the  preceding  statement  before  the  Chris- 
tian powers.  Honour  and  hope  will  guide  Grecian  constancy 
through  the  gloom  of  futurity.  The  Greeks  aim  at  peace 
combined  with  independence,  and  at  the  political  fruits  of 
civilization.  They  protest  beforehand  against  any  violation 
of  their  rights,  so  lately  purchased  by  the  most  heroic  sacrifi- 
ces.  In  a  word,  humanity,  religion,  interest,  all  plead  in  their 


APPENDIX.  bw 

favour.  It  is  for  the  powers  of  Christendom  to  decide  on 
this  occasion,  what  legacy  they  propose  bequeathing  to  his- 
tory, and  to  posterity. 

Given  at  Corinth  the  15th  April,  1822, 
The  members  of  the  Central  Government  of  Greece, 
A.  Mavrocordato,  President 
Athanasius  Canacari,  Vice-President, 
Anagnosti  Pappaiannopoulo, 
Joanis  Orlando, 
joanis  logotheti. 

Th.  Negri.— The  Secretary  of  State. 


If 


fi  * 


4) 


Deacidified  using  the  Bookkeeper  process. 
Neutralizing  agent:  Magnesium  Oxide 
Treatment  Date:     oc?         _    ^ 

PreservatsonTechnologies 

A  WORLD  LEADER  IN  PAPER  PRESERVATION 

111  Thomson  Park  Drive 
Cranberry  Township,  PA  1 6066 
(724)779-2111 


LIBRARY  OF  CONGRESS 


0  008  902  951  A 


Ml 


■1 


wn 


toss* 


■I 


AH 

■EBB  ■h^ 

BBHRn 

bBH9      mm 
ra»!l*3§8S«SSsi 


BMBBW 

IWWiliwMBfTlfMHHIlM 


ssmBm 

ifl    - 


V 


hHM.  Bin 

HHHgH       ■■ 


■Ml 


BBS 


Hoi 
Hn 

WW 
Bku 


flHHMHMi 


■